(navigation image)
Home American Libraries | Canadian Libraries | Universal Library | Community Texts | Project Gutenberg | Children's Library | Biodiversity Heritage Library | Additional Collections
Search: Advanced Search
Anonymous User (login or join us) Upload
See other formats

Full text of "The Catholic world"

} J 



i , 



rv ' . 
?M*f 




THE 




. 

i -far to 



CATHOLIC WORLD. 



MONTHLY MAGAZINE 



OF 



GENERAL LITERATURE AND SCIENCE, 



*> 




VOL. L. 

OCTOBER, 1889, TO MARCH, 1890. 



NEW YORK: 

THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, 

427 WEST FIFTY-NINTH STREET. 

1890. 




Copyright, 1890, by 
REV. A. F. HEWIT. 



CONTENTS. 



African Slave-Trade, The. Rev. J. R. Slat- 

Amieland Pessimism. Brother Azarias, 
Amy Howe's Inheritance. A.B. Ward, 
" And Peace on Earth." Jeanie Drake, 
Anne Catherine Emmerich and Clement Bren- 
tano. R. M. Johnston, .... 

Best Music for Congregational Singing, The. 

Rev. A Ifred Young, ..... 

Bodas de Oro, 

Canadian Example, A. J. A. J. McKenna, 
Catholic and American Ethics. Rev. Augus- 
tine F. Hewit, ...... 

Catholic Progress, Old and New. Rev. Ed- 
ward B. Brady, ..... 

Century of Catholicity in Canada, A- J. A. 

J. McKenna 

Charitable Work in Spanish Prisons. L. B. 
Binsse, ....... 

Church and State in France. Samuel Byrne, 
Church and the Toilers, The. Henry O'Keeffe, 
Church, State, and School. Rev. Joseph V. 
Tracy, >...... 

Disguises of Nature. William Seton, . 

Dr. Ward and the Oxford Movement, 

Dream at Christmas, A. A., 

Egyptian Writings, The. Jane Marsh Parker, 

First Catholic Congress of Spain, The. Man- 
uel Perez Villa-mil, . . . . 31, 

Fredericksburg and the Assault on Marye's 
Heights. Thomas F. Galwey, 

Geographical Distribution in Natural History. 
William Seton, 

How Perseus became a Star. Maurice Fran- 
cis Egan, ....... 

Hypnotism. Joseph T. O'Connor, M.D., 

Irish Hamlet, An. Rev. R. O'K., . 

Legend of the Twin Trees, The. Rev. R. 

O' Kennedy, 

Lessons of a Century of Catholic Education. 

Brother Azarias, 

Moderate Drinking and Intemperance, Thoughts 

on. Rev. P. J. McManns, 
Monsieur Duval's Louis Quatorze. Jeanie 

Drake, 

Nationality and Religion. Lew's R. Hub- 
bard, 

New Catholic University and the Existing Col- 
leges, The. Rev. John T. .Murphy 
C.S.Sp., .... 



666 
no 
650 
472 



804 
427 
229 

168 

8 

539 

530 

767 
597 
446 

374 
218 

367 



75 

574 



629 
39 
39 6 



New Departure in Catholic College Discipline, 

A. Maurice Francis Egan, . . , 569 

New Year's Prayer, A. Marian White, . 635 

Novel Defence of the Public School, A. Rev. 

George Deshon, 677 

Nuns' Centenary, The. 77ie Author oj 

" Tyborne,^ ...... 819 

Organize the Laymen. Albert Reynaud, . 285 
114 Centenary : A Glance into the Future. 

Rev. Walter Elliott, . . . .239 

" Our Christian Heritage, " . . . .661 
Outrage at Anagni, The. Rev. Edw. F. X. 

McSiveeny, . . . . , .584 

Painter of Barbizon, The. Marie Louise 

Sandrock, ....... 789 

Plea for Erring Brethren, A. Rev. Alfred 

Presentiments, Visions, and Apparitions. Rev. 

L. A. Dutto. . . . . . .80 

Protestant Propaganda, A. Rev. H. H. Wy- 

man, 468 

"Put Money in Thy Purse." M. T. Elder, 618 

Religion and Mullions. Margaret F. Sulli- 
van, 155 

Revolutionary Governor and His Family, A. 

M. C.L., 776 

Saint Cuthbert and His Times. Charles E. 

Hodson, ....... 307 

San Domingo, A Tale of E. W. Gilliam, 

M.D., . 89, 176, 323, 498 

Scanderbeg. AgnesRepplier, . . .341 

Shakespeare's Handwriting. Appleton Mor- 
gan, . . . . . . .165 

Shakespeare's "Pericles." Appleton Morgan, 723 
Sisters of Mercy in New York, The. S.M.D., 382 
Study of Modern Religion, A. Rev. Wil- 
liam Bat ry, D.D., .... 72, 187 

Talk about New Books, 123, 250, 400, 543, 688, 824 
Temporal Power of the Pope, The. Rt. Rev. 

Francis Silas Chatard, D.D., . .213 

Titles: Their Sense and Their Nonsense.-^. 

F. Marshall, 521 

Typical Irishman, A. Anna T. Sadlier, 484 

University of Oxford, The. Katharine Ty- 
nan, 607 

Washington's Catholic Aide-de-Camp. Wil- 
liam F. Came, ...... 437 

What are Our Children Reading? Margaret 

//. Lawless, 733 

Wonders of the Nervous System. William 

Seton, 452 

With Readers and Correspondents. 132, 260, 412, 
555, 699, 835 



IV 



CONTENTS. 



POETRY. 



At Low Tide. M. B. M 340 

Aux Carmelites. Katharine Tynan, . . 766 

Bethlehem. Rev. Hugh T. Henry, . . 464 

By Charles' Head. Henry H'illard Austin, . 292 

By the Fountain, 7 

Call, A. y. Rev. T. J. O'Mahony, . . 164 

Dream of Pilate's Wife, The. Margaret H. 

Lawless, 775 

Flower-Link,' A. M. A. C., . . . .817 

Hero's Pledge, A.Rt. Rev. J. L. Spalding, 

D-D- 739 

Hospitable Man, The. Rev. Alfred Young, . 497 






Madonna. Alice Ward Bailey, . . .426 

Mine Enemy. J. Gertrude Mennrd, . . 349 
Musing. V. Rev. T. J. O'M., . . .527 

My Puritan, ....... 228 

North Wind, The, 583 

Poem. Mrs. John J. Littleton, ... 60 

Psychnika. John Jerome Rooney, . . 649 

Recompense, ....... 803 

Revelations of Divine Love. Rev. Alfred 

Young, * 7 n 

Rondeau of Eventide, A. Meredith Nicholson, 186 

Sat est Vixisse. Meredith Nicholson, . . 38 

Secret of Life, The. James Buckham, . . 634 

Sister Veronica. Margret Holmes, . . 617 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 



Accompagnement de Chants Liturgiques, . 564 

American Religious Leaders, . . v . 273 

American Statesmen. Benjamin Franklin, . 844 

Appreciations, 704 

Babyland, ........ 564 

Beginnings of New England, The ; or, The 
Puritan Theocracy in its Relations to 

Civil and Religious Liberty, . . . 842 

Book of Superiors, The Little, . . . 273 

Books and Reading, .... 420, 846 



Catholic Family Annual, The Illustrated, 
Catholic Home Almanac, The, 
Church and Modern Society, The, 

Columbiads, 

Continuous Creation, The, 



Dark Ages, The, .... 
Distnbution of Earnings, The Just, . 

Einsiedlen Kalender, 

Epistle to the Galatians, The, . 

Evolution, 

Explanation of Constitution of U. S., 



420 
420 
420 
420 
704 

273 
37 

420 

847 
843 
2 73 



Flower Fancies, 420 

Flowers from the Catholic Kindergarten ; or, 

Stories of the Childhood of the Saints, . 845 

Frederic Ozanam, Professor at the Sorbonne, 845 

Free Method in Elementary Schools, . . 704 

Good Things for Catholic Readers, . . 846 

Hand-book for Catholic Choirs, . . .420 

Hand-book of Humility, 273 

History of Ancient Literature, Oriental and 

Classical, Illustrated, . . . .841 



Hymns for Catholic Schools, .... 704 

Hymns to the Sacred Heart, .... 564 

Introduction to Sacred Scriptures, . . -273 

Leaves from the Annals of the Sisters of 

Mercy, 420 

Life of St. Bonaventure, 420 

Life and Works of St. Bernard, . . . 420 
Little Office of the Immaculate Conception Ex- 
plained, 273 



Manual for Interior Souls, 

Oscotian, The, 

Our Christian Heritage, _. 

Pages Choisies du Due de Saint-Simon, . 
Parish Register of Michilimackinac, 
Parnell Movement, The, 
Pastoral Letter of Rt. Rev. O. Zardetti, . 

Percy Wynn, 

Popular Mineralogy, A, .... 

Prayer, 

Principles of Economic Philosophy, 

Salt Cellars, The, 

Saint Ottilien's Missions- Kalender, 
Saint Alphonsusde Liguori, 

Satan in Society, 

Selections from Sermons of Padre Agostino, 
Short Cut to the True Church, A, . 
Society Gymnastics, .... 



Temperance Songs and Lyrics, 
Thoughts and Counsels for Young Men, 
Treatise on Spherical Trigonometry, 
Two Missionary Priests at Mackinac, 

Virgin Mother of Good Counsel, The, 



846 

420 

564 



273 
273 
564 
564 
273 
273 
273 

2 73 
420 
564 
'37 
564 
137 
273 

564 
273 
137 
273 

273 



THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD 



VOL. L. OCTOBER, 1889. No. 295. 



A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. 

IN discussing the educational question in the United States 
sufficient prominence is not given by Catholic writers to the 
example afforded by Canada in the successful working of the 
dual systems of state and denominational schools. To those 
citizens who fancy that they see in the establishment of parochial 
schools a danger to the commonwealth, an examination of the 
school system of Ontario would be quite a revelation. They 
would find that in that very Protestant province the law provides 
and has for almost half a century provided for the establish- 
ment and maintenance of a class of schools similar to those 
which they regard with such dismay. On further inquiry they 
would learn that in by far the greater part of the entire Dominion 
of Canada corresponding legal provisions are made. And yet 
Canada has gone on and prospered ! To those non-Catholics who 
perceive the dangers of the godless system of education, the 
Canadian example should point the way to a remedy ; and to 
Catholics, who at so great a sacrifice are founding and supporting 
parochial schools, it might suggest some plan of campaign for 
the removal of the injustice under which they labor. What has 
been done in Canada should be within the realm of the feasible 
in that country which is called the land of the free. What works 
for good in Ontario could not possibly have a directly opposite 
effect across the imaginary line. Let us then give a few mo- 
ments' attention to the case of Ontario. 

After the rebellion of 1837 came Canadian home rule. In 
1841 Ontario and Quebec (then Upper and Lower Canada) be- 
came, by an imperial statute, the Province of Canada ; and in that 
year the first parliament of the new self-governing colony met at 
Kingston. In the popular branch of the legislature there were 

Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 1885. 



2 A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. [Oct., 

eighty-four members, evenly divided between Ontario and Quebec; 
and as to religious belief, the division must have been about 
thirty-five Catholics to forty-nine Protestants. The upper chamber 
was composed of twenty-four members, eight of whom were 
Catholics, eight adherents of the Church of England, and eight 
Presbyterians. This parliament made many laws, among which 
was an act dealing with education; and in this act there was a 
clause which provided that whenever any number of the inhabi- 
tants of any township or parish professing a religious faith differ- 
ent from that of the majority dissented from the regulations, ar- 
rangements, or proceedings of the common-school commissioners 
with reference to any common school, they should be at liberty 
to establish a school of their own, to be managed by a board of 
trustees chosen by themselves, and should be entitled " to receive 
from the district treasurer their due proportion, according to 
their number, of the moneys appropriated by law and raised by 
assessment for the support of the common schools." In the 
school bill, when introduced, there was no mention of denomi- 
national schools; but, as numerous petitions praying that the 
Bible be read in the schools were presented, the bill was referred 
to a large select committee, who, seeing the necessity for moral 
as well as intellectual training, and perceiving also the utter im- 
possibility of evolving any common, effective scheme of moral and 
religious training, equally acceptable to Catholic and Protestant, 
Jew and Gentile, wisely inserted the foregoing stipulation. The 
bill as amended passed without opposition. It was not, how- 
ever, found to be equally well adapted to the educational require- 
ments of Upper and Lower Canada, and it was in 1843 -deemed 
advisable to pass separate measures for the two divisions of the 
country. In both provision was made for the establishment and 
maintenance of schools for dissentient minorities. A section of the 
Upper Canada School Act of 1843 provided that, when the 
teacher in any public school was a Protestant, the Catholic in- 
habitants might, on the application of ten householders, have a 
school of their own ; and a like privilege was extended to Pro- 
testants. The application was to designate the trustees of the 
school, which was declared to be entitled " to receive its share of 
the public appropriation according to the number of children at- 
tending." The act of 1843 was from time to time amended, but 
in every amendment a clause similar to the one just referred to 
was inserted. In 1849, however, a school law was passed which 
contained no reference to the rights of dissidents ; but it was 
never enforced, and in 1850 was superseded by an act, intro- 



1889.] A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. 3 

duced by the Hon. afterwards Sir Francis Hincks, which em- 
braced all the decrees in relation to education that had been 
enacted prior to 1849, with such modifications and additions as 
the development of the school system made necessary. 

In a special report on educational matters, prepared for the 
information of the government and the members of the Canadian 
legislature in 1858, the Rev. Dr. Ryerson, then superintendent 
of education for Upper Canada, stated that " until 1850 the 
leading men and press of all parties acquiesced in the separate- 
school provisions of the law " ; and then the objection did not 
come from Protestants. In 1841 there was but one Catholic 
school in Ontario ; but as years went on our people, by availing 
themselves of the separate-school provisions of the law, found 
that these clauses required emendation ; for it is recorded by the 
same reverend doctor that, in order to remove the objections 
of the Catholics, a section was included in the " Supplementary 
School Act" of 1853 which ran in this way: 

"And be it enacted that in all cities, towns, incorporated villages, and 
school sections in which separate schools do or shall exist according to the 
provisions of the common-school acts of Upper Canada persons of the reli- 
gious persuasion of each such separate school sending children to it, or sup- 
porting such school by subscribing thereto annually an amount equal to the 
sum which each such person would be liable to pay (if such separate school 
did not exist) on any assessment to obtain the annual common-school grant 
for each such city, town, incorporated village or township, shall be exempt 
from the payment of all rates imposed for the support of the common public 
schools of each such city, town, incorporated village or school section. . . ." 

This clause went on to declare each such separate school en- 
titled to a pro rata share of the legislative school grant (an 
amount appropriated from the general exchequer in addition to 
the sums raised by municipal assessment) ; and it provided for the 
election by the supporters of such school of a board of trustees, 
whom it empowered to levy and collect school rates, as well as 
to direct and manage the school. The School Act of 1853, Dr. 
Ryerson tells us, passed without a division ; and he adds in his 
report, already referred to : "I think I am warranted in saying 
that those intelligent men of all parties, whom I consulted with- 
out reserve, unanimously agreed to those clauses of the separate- 
school section." 

It is commonly stated that the Catholics of Ontario are wholly 
indebted for the benefits which they enjoy as to separate schools 
to the influence of Quebec in the legislature of Canada. Yet it 
must be remembered that when Ontario and Quebec formed but 
one province, and when provision was first made for denomina- 



VOL. L. I 



4 A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. [Oct., 

tional schools, the Catholics were in a minority both in the coun- 
try and in Parliament ; moreover, we have it on the authority of 
Dr. Ryerson that until 1855 the Quebec representatives never in- 
terfered in Ontario school matters; and even in 1855 the inter- 
ference consisted in the introduction by a member of the Legisla- 
tive Assembly from Quebec of the " Upper Canada Separate- 
School Bill," which had first been submitted to and approved of 
by the representatives of Ontario, who agreed to its introduction 
and passage and supported it at every stage by their votes. 

The act of 1855 may be said to have contained the essence 
of the present law. It enacted that a separate school might be 
established in any city, town, or rural school district on the ap- 
plication of five householders; that the supporters of such school 
should be exempt from all taxes imposed for the maintenance of 
common schools and school libraries, and that such school should 
share proportionately in all legislative school grants. It also en- 
larged and more clearly defined the duties of trustees. 

About this time it would appear that some ultra-Protestant 
devotees of state-schoolism endeavored for reasons which would 
not, perhaps, bear investigation to raise an agitation for the re- 
peal of the law providing for the establishment and support of 
denominational schools, and by 1857 tms movement advanced 
so far as to make the question of repeal one of the issues of the 
general elections of that year. The party who took up the cause 
of the separate schools was led by the present veteran prime min- 
ister of Canada, the Right Hon. Sir John Macdonald, and that 
party was sustained at the polls. 

In 1863 the act of 1855 was elaborated, and the "British 
North America Act" the Canadian constitution passed by the 
Parliament of England in 1867, removed the question of the re- 
pealing of the separate-school clauses of the law from the region 
of practical politics by prohibiting any province of the Dominion 
of Canada from making any law which would " prejudicially af- 
fect any right or privilege with respect to denominational schools 
which any class of persons have by law in the province at the 
union." The same act stipulates that such amendments shall be 
made to this law as may be from time to time deemed necessary 
for its effectual working. 

Chapter 227 of the "Revised Statutes of Ontario, 1887," con- 
tains the present. separate-school law of that province. The first 
few brief clauses deal with Protestant separate schools (which are 
not in demand, presumably because the public schools are suf- 
ficiently Protestant). The remainder of the chapter gives the en- 



1889.] A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. 5 

actments regarding Catholic schools. These provide that five or 
more Catholic heads of families, resident in any rural or urban 
school district, may convene a public meeting of those persons 
who desire to have a Catholic school for the purpose of estab- 
lishing the same ; and that such persons may periodically elect 
a board of trustees to control and manage the school, which 
board is invested with all the powers and responsibilities of a 
body corporate. The supporters of a separate school are exempt 
from paying municipal school taxes, and the trustees are em- 
powered to levy school rates on the Catholic inhabitants, they 
consenting, which rates are collected by the municipal collectors 
and handed to the board of separate-school trustees. Companies 
may require any portion of their property to be assessed for sep- 
arate-school purposes; and in cases where the landlord pays the 
taxes the tenant is taken as the person primarily liable, and he 
decides as to whether the school rates shall be paid to the pub- 
lic or separate school. Each separate school is entitled to share 
proportionately in all public-school grants made by the provincial 
legislature, - and is under the supervision of the Department of 
Education. Two inspectors of that department visit all such 
schools regularly and report on their condition. 

While on this subject it might be well to quote the opinion 
of a man who made a reputation as an educationist a reputa- 
tion not confined to Canada and who was as ardent and de- 
voted, many would say as prejudiced, an advocate of unsectarian 
state schools as ever lived, the late Rev. Dr. Ryerson. In his 
official report of 1858, already alluded to, he said: "In connec- 
tion with these separate schools our public-school system has 
been developed, and has advanced and extended beyond pre- 
cedent or parallel in any country. In a few rural sections some 
temporary or local inconvenience may be experienced from them, 
but in cities and towns it may be questioned whether the char- 
'acter and efficiency of the public schools are not rather promoted 
by the existence of separate schools." These are the words of 
one who was an opponent of denominational education, and they 
were written when the separate-school law was in an early stage 
of development. 

As respects the present standing of these schools, the testi- 
mony of the present minister of education may be found in his 
report for 1887. Here is an extract: "From the reports of the 
inspectors ... it will be seen that the separate schools are 
steadily prospering, and that, both as regards teachers and pupils, 
they are becoming more efficient every year." 



6 . A CANADIAN EXAMPLE. [Oct., 

There are at present two hundred and twenty-nine Catholic 
schools in Ontario, and the reports of the inspectors for last 
year show that they are doing good work, "are healthy in tone, 
and are making substantial progress." 

I have dealt particularly with the school law of Ontario, be- 
cause I think it offers the most striking object lesson to the 
American mind. But I may add a few words in reference to 
some of the other Canadian educational systems. 

In Quebec the system is purely denominational, and the state 
provides for the moral and religious training of children, in con- 
nection with their secutar education, in accordance with the creed 
of their parents. A council of public instruction is charged with 
the exclusive - control of educational affairs. This council is 
divided. '-into, .two committees, one Catholic, the other Protestant, 
which have respectively the direction of the schools of the bodies 
represented - by them. The system works well, and nowhere, as 
stated by trre leading Protestant representative of Quebec* in the 
Federal Parliament, is a minority more liberally treated than the 
Protestant minority in Quebec. 

The school law of Manitoba is very like that of Quebec, and 
this is what Mr. J. B. Somerset, the superintendent of Protestant 
schools in that province, says of it in one of his recently pub- 
lished reports : 

" A word regarding the law itsslf may be appropriate here. It was first 
placed upon the statute book in 1871, and was founded upon the principle of 
the establishment of Protestant and Roman Catholic schools, each governed 
and managed independently. This fundamental principle being embodied in 
the imperial and Dominion acts for the organization of the province, the 
question as to its correctness is outside the scope of practical discussion ; but 
in connection with its workings during the last seventeen years it may be 
pointed out that the schools of the province have been managed without a 
particle of the denominational friction that has caused disturbances and bitterness 
in other provinces f of the Dominion. Our Roman Catholic fellow-citizens have, 
under this law, their own schools, available for religious as well as secular 
teaching, which is a principle invariably contended for by them; and those 
charged with the management of them are accountable to their people for 
their efficiency. On the other hand, Protestant schools are untrammelled in the 
introduction of such Christian teaching, including the daily reading of the Bible, 
as may be found practicable, and which the growing sentiment of the people 
recognizes as holding an important place in the development of the child's 
nature." 

Hon. Charles Carroll Colby, Deputy Speaker. See "Hansard" for 1889. 

f This must refer to the maritime provinces, especially to New Brunswick and Prince 
Edward Island, where the carrying out of a system similar to that of the United States 
caused much disturbance and bitterness. 



1889.] 



BY THE FOUNTAIN. 



It may seem astounding to Americans to be told that most 
of their northern neighbors enjoy greater liberty of conscience 
than do citizens of the great Republic. Nevertheless, the state- 
ment is well founded. True liberty of conscience is incompatible 
with a law that compels those who maintain schools of their own, 
which they are willing to place under state supervision, to con- 
tribute to the support of an educational system of which they 
cannot in conscience avail themselves. Such a law is akin to that 
which forced men to support a church in which they did not 
believe. Is not the Canadian example more in accord with the 
great underlying principle of the Constitution of the United 
States : the greatest individual liberty consonant with the public 
weal ? J. A. J. McKENNA. 



BY THE FOUNTAIN. 

BY the fountain, softly plashing, 
Where I dream away the day, 
Thoughts, like limpid waters welling 
From their hidden deep-wood dwelling, 
Ever growing strong and swelling, 

Sweep me on in fancy's play : 
By the fountain, softy plashing, 
Where I dream away the day. 

By the fountain, softly plashing, 

Where I dream away the day, 
Would ye know how without measure 
My glad heart is filled with pleasure, 
By the flitting dreams I treasure? 

I will tell as best I may : 
By the fountain, softly plashing, 
Where I dream away the day. 

By the fountain, softly plashing, 
Where I dream away the day, 
Put aside all thoughts of earning, 
Put aside all thoughts of learning, 
Live in holy, tender yearning, 

White clad Love reigns there for aye 
By the fountain, softly plashing, 
Where I dream away the day. 




CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. [Oct., 



CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 

FRANCE has been the political volcano of Europe during the 
century which closes with the present year. The lava- torrents of 
human blood that have accompanied its frequent eruptions have, 
each in its turn, either destroyed one system of government or 
marked the inauguration of another. The last disturbance took 
place in 1871, when the Third Republic received only too literally 
its baptism of blood. Is the volcano extinct, or is it smouldering 
still ? Let us take a peep into the crater. 

Until the recent Boulanger incident challenged universal at- 
tention, and set men marvelling as to what strange combination 
of political and social conditions and circumstances had rendered 
such a man possible, even in France, many ordinary observers 
had regarded the French Republic as a country enjoying a stable 
system of government, the only drawback to which was the fre- 
quency with which cabinet crises and ministerial changes occurred. 
And these constantly recurring political fluctuations were com- 
monly ascribed rather to the capriciousness of the national tem- 
perament, and to the fatal fondness of the French people for 
novelty, than to any inherent defect in the constitution, or -any 
grave mistake in the notions which the modern school of French 
statesmen entertain in regard to the line of policy best suited to 
secure the welfare and content of their fellow-citizens at home and 
the maintenance of French prestige abroad. Probably those ob- 
servers have altered their opinions since. 

Of the causes which have contributed to bring about the 
present deplorable state of things in Fraace for deplorable it is 
in all conscience the chief and most potent was the recrudescence 
in 1878, in a mild form, of the terrible fever that broke out in 
the body politic at the time of the first Revolution. True, the 
symptoms were not recognized then ; only by few is the malady 
recognized now. It has changed in the manner of its manifesta- 
tion, but a careful diagnosis discloses its true character and reveals 
its distant origin. Of course, no sensible French Catholic would 
desire to see a return of 1788 any more than he would desire 
to see a return of 1789. It is a temerarious question to put at 
this time of the day, but one may be permitted to ask, without, 
I hope, being considered a blind praiser of the past or a fanatical 






1889.] CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 9 

Ultramontane : What permanent salutary influence has the French 
Revolution exerted upon the destiny of mankind, or upon that 
of the French nation ? Certainly it put an end to abuses and 
corruptions that called to very heaven for a sweeping remedy. 
It razed to the ground institutions which were scandalously bad. 
But with these were torn down also many which were valuable 
and good. And nothing was built up to take their place. Look 
abroad at the world to-day. The American Republic, pre- 
eminently the land of liberty, owes nothing to the French Revolu- 
tion ; and few will contend that the progress of truly liberal thought 
and the solid growth of democracy in England, which have been 
so marked of late, would not have occurred if there never had 
been a French Revolution. The government of Germany is a 
military despotism, and the vast majority of its people are strongly 
devoted to their emperor. The Hapsburgs hold a firm position 
in the affections of the peoples over whom they reign. Russia 
is still what Talleyrand described it : " An absolute monarchy, 
limited by assassination." France itself occupies a very much 
inferior place among the European powers to that which it occu- 
pied before 1789. Discord and discontent prevail within its 
borders. Liberty, equality, fraternity are as conspicuously absent 
as they were in the days of Robespierre. Southey has a pretty 
poem, full of his usual simplicity and strength, in which an old 
man talks eloquently to two young children about the valor of 
the great Duke of Marlborough and the " famous victory " at 
Blenheim. After listening to him for some time, one of the 
children innocently asks : " But what good came of it at last ?" 
One is almost tempted, concerning the French Revolution, to ask 
with little Peterkin : What good came of it at last ? an answer of 
the boast of the military achievements incident to and following 
after it. 

To the country whose heart-bursting throes gave birth to it 
it has brought but little good. It would not be an ungrounded 
assertion to say that it has brought to it much positive evil. 
The French political mind has ever since been in a state of fer- 
ment. Republics have been established and abolished; royal and 
imperial thrones have been set up and pulled down. A spirit of 
unrest seems to brood over the land. The sacred principle of 
patriotism, so dear to Frenchmen, is often violated in obedience 
to the promptings of factious passion. When the Third Republic 
had been fairly started, with that many-sided genius, Thiers, at 
its head, the friends of France hoped, and thought they saw good 
reason for the hope, that the delirium of the Revolution had at 



id Ctn-Kcn ,\.\n STATE /jv FRANCE. [Oct., 

length run its course, that it had expended its last energies in 
the Commune. Thiers' idea was to establish a republic on a basis 
sufficiently broad to suit the generality of Frenchmen of all shades 
tff political opinion, and attractive enough to win gradually the 
fespect, if not the good will, of extremists of both royalist and 
imperialist attachments. There is much to warrant the belief 
that had Thiers' idea been realized, had the policy he outlined 
been pursued, France Would be united and prosperous and con- 
tented now; But when Marshal MacMahon resigned the presi- 
dency, through the pressure of the Gambettist and other groups, 
that hope had to be abandoned. For the republic then fell into 
the hands of the Opportunists and the still more advanced revo- 
lutionaries of the Clemenceau type. The advent to power of 
these men signalized the beginning of a new era. In their hands 
the Republic became what it is to-day, a republic in name only ; 
in reality, a Masonic, revolutionary oligarchy. Under MacMahon 
the Republic struck deep its roots into the hearts of the people. 
Property was protected, liberty of conscience was guaranteed. 
There was peace in the land, and there was prosperity. France 
recovered from the dreadful disaster of 1870-71 with a rapidity 
which astonished the world, and so chagrined Bismarck that he 
resolved to wage war anew against his lately conquered foe. 
And a war there would have been had not Russia intimated that 
in such an event her neutrality could not be relied upon by her 
imperial neighbor. Republican institutions, as has been stated, 
were fast becoming popular. The noble example of unselfish pa- 
triotism set by MacMahon that of subordinating his personal 
political preferences to the single desire to serve his country, 
without reference to the form of government which she had 
chosen had been largely followed by public men of eminence, 
of influence, and of conspicuous ability. But now everything was 
altered. The fever of the Revolution displayed itself again. Not 
by fire and sword, however, did the latter-day devotees of the 
Revolution propose to actualize their principles. The times had 
changed, and the revolutionaries had changed with them. The 
old methods were acknowledged to have been too drastic. Their 
application had always been followed by a strong reaction. They 
were discarded. With the Republic at their backs, parliamentary 
action, legislative measures, could be made successfully to sub- 
serve their cherished purposes. The great object to be attained 
was the banishment of Christianity from the country, and the 
substitution for it of a Masonic cult, of which, in the words of 
Leo XIII., " the foundations and laws should be drawn from 



CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. u 

mere naturalism." To accomplish the complete overthrow of the 
church it would be necessary to paganize the schools. Laws 
must be made, therefore, to place the education of the children 
under the control of the state. In the meantime a policy of 
persecution must be inaugurated toward the church and its ad- 
herents. The religious orders must be expelled. Prelates and 
priests must be harassed and annoyed. Catholics must be ex- 
cluded from public office. The annual appropriation for the main- 
tenance of public worship must be steadily diminished in amount. 
When the proper time (fame the church should be separated 
from the state. 

It was only to be expected that when this insensate pro- 
gramme was announced, as well as when the policy of exaspera- 
tion which it sketched out commenced to unfold itself in practice, 
clear-headed statesmen should have begun to consider seriously 
whether they should longer remain in the sphere of active poli- 
tics. Many had already followed MacMahon into retirement. 
Those who still occupied positions which gave them a right to 
think that they possessed influence raised their voices in solemn 
warning. "We have our Republic, the best form of government 
for this or any other country," they said, " but instead of con- 
solidating it, these hot-headed politicians are doing their best to 
destroy it." Their expostulations were received with derisive 
jeers. Even an earnest and life-long republican, a philosopher 
and a statesman like Jules Simon, was howled into semi-obscurity 
because he had dared to affirm that the way to win respect and 
secure stability for the Republic was to abstain from wounding 
consciences and to adopt a policy of justice to all. A glance 
over the long array of the names of the mediocrities who have 
held cabinet offices since 1877 suggests the query, Where are 
now France's great public men, her adepts in statecraft, her pol- 
ished and astute diplomatists ? Some of them sit in the Senate, a 
small minority, whose sole occupation is to protest against the 
passage of iniquitous laws which they are unable to modify or 
cause to be rejected. Others are in the Academy, where they 
sought and have found the solace which literature never fails to 
afford the bruised heart and the sorrow-filled mind. Others again, 
who can see no hope for their country in the immediate future, 
are shut up in their chateaux, where they dwell in the chastened 
serenity of a solitude populous with remembrances and regrets. 

The school laws of Jules Ferry and Rene Goblet have natu- 
rally embittered Catholics against the Republic. The latter, who 
is a member of the present cabinet, completed in his act, passed 



12 CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. [Oct., 

two years ago, what was initiated by Ferry. That act empowers 
the state to lay its atheistic hand upon the souls of the children 
of Catholic France, and to hold them in its tyrannous grasp till 
it has imprinted upon them a foul mark which will stain and cor- 
rupt them for ever unless a merciful Providence obliterates it. It 
is against the children of the poor and the religiously indifferent 
that this law is principally directed. Their parents cannot afford 
to pay, or are unwilling to pay, for their education in Christian 
schools (free parish schools are still comparatively few and far 
between), and as the law compels the children to attend some 
school or other, the free state institutions are nearly filled with 
them. The " education " which they receive in these establish- 
ments is, needless to say, anti- Christian. They are taught to love, 
honor, and adore the French Republic instead of their Creator, and 
the saving truths of Christianity are either scrupulously kept from 
their knowledge or openly attacked and ridiculed in their hearing. 
The law which obliges young men studying for the priesthood to 
serve one year in the soldier's barrack is another evidence of the 
anti-religious fury which animates the ruling spirits of the so- 
called Republic. 

That to be a Catholic in . France nowadays is an offence pun- 
ishable by civic inequality could be proved by examples of which 
considerations of space forbid the citation. Two proofs will suffice. 
The Finance or Budget Committee is the most important of all 
parliamentary committees, and from the nature of its functions it 
is clear that it should be constituted of men chosen in disregard 
of party bias of any kind. The present Chamber of Deputies is 
composed in round numbers of five hundred and eighty members. 
Of these, four hundred Republicans of various groups represent 
four millions and a half of voters, and one hundred and eighty 
Catholics, or anti-Republicans, represent three and a half millions 
of voters. The Catholic party forms, therefore, almost one-third 
of the Chamber, and represents two-fifths of the votes cast at the 
last general election. Now, if the " Republican " majority of the 
Chamber were actuated by a wish to be fair and honest, one- 
third of the members of the Budget Committee would be Catho- 
lics. The three and a half millions of Catholic voters pay taxes as 
well as the four and a half millions of Republicans, and have an 
equal right to a voice in determining the disposition of the money 
which they pay. But the Republican majority think otherwise ; 
and the thirty-three members who are annually elected to consti- 
tute the Budget Committee never include a single Catholic. The 
second instance, a typical one, occurred in Paris two years ago. 



1889.] CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 13 

A competitive examination was held to fill a vacant government 
position, for which a thorough knowledge of chemistry was the 
special qualification. At the top of the list of the names of those 
who passed successfully was that of a very clever young man, 
who to his proficiency in the science of the laboratory united a 
character above reproach. He had won the position, and his 
rivals congratulated him upon his merited victory. But in conse- 
quence of a private communication which he received, M. Berthe- 
lot, the then cabinet minister with whom the formal appointment 
lay, passed over the winner and gave it to somebody else, whose 
name was much lower on the list. The communication was to the 
effect that the young man thus slighted lived with his aunt, who 
was a devoted Catholic, and that he occasionally accompanied her 
to Mass. An indignant protest was made by the fair-minded 
press against so scandalous a proceeding, but it produced no 
effect. 

The exclusion of Catholics from the Budget Committee is also 
dictated, probably, by a desire for unanimity on a certain point 
amongst its members, who, divided on most subjects, are of one 
mind when anything concerning the church comes up for con- 
sideration. To worry and thwart the church is one of the most 
congenial pastimes of the majority of the Chamber ; to starve her 
out of the land is a cherished idea amongst the advanced wing. 
During the last seven years the Budget Committee has made the 
following reductions in the annual appropriation given for the 
maintenance of the Catholic Church, as being the state religion : 
In 1882, 18,000 francs; 1883, 414,560; 1884, 1,958,860; 1885, 
6,815,193; 1886, 7,007,003; 1887, 7,710,204; 1888, 7,986,221; 
1889, 8,018,621 ; total, 35,928,572 francs, or $7,000,000 an aver- 
age continuous reduction of a million dollars a year. And these 
reductions, it should be borne in mind, are taken from the com- 
paratively moderate sum allowed by the government under the 
Concordat to the French Church in return for her renunciation 
of her claims to the vast possessions which were hers before the 
Revolution. 

In another way the hatred of the members of the Budget 
Committee towards the church finds annual expression. Year 
after year, since the event already indicated as the point of de- 
parture of the Third Republic from the sound principles on which 
it was originally founded, they have struck off the list of appro- 
priations the sum which goes to the support of the embassy to 
the Holy See. This renders it incumbent upon the premier to 



14 CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE, [Oct., 

move, when the committee's report comes up for discussion, that 
the appropriation be restored to its place on the list; and the 
debate which ensues is in reality upon the question whether the 
embassy should not be suppressed. The motion made on behalf 
of the government has always been carried by a majority more or 
less substantial ; and this would seem to indicate that there still 
exists a modicum of common sense amongst the fickle and inconse- 
quent legislators of the Palais Bourbon. The blind hate of those 
who oppose the government on these occasions prevents them 
from seeing the ridiculous position in which they place themselves, 
for before the embassy to the Holy See can be abolished the 
Concordat must be abrogated. It augurs ill, however, for the 
continued existence of the diplomatic tie which binds France to 
the Holy See that the arguments by which successive premiers 
succeed in obtaining the majority on this question are based upon 
considerations of expediency and purely material advantage. 
French Catholic missionaries render an important service to their 
country, especially in Africa and in the far East, by extending 
French political influence, and by propagating the French lan- 
guage, French ideas, and French manners. That this influence is 
considerable is evidenced by the efforts of other powers to sub- 
stitute missionaries of their own for those sent out by the Church 
of France. Therefore, it is annually argued, it is France's inter- 
est to keep on cordial terms with the Pope. No account is taken 
of the immense moral power of the church, of the sublimity of 
her mission to mankind, of the solemn import of the message from 
on high of which she is the faithful herald. This year the cyni- 
cism of the French premier was imitated by the Protestant Temps, 
the organ of the moderate Republicans, certainly the most serious, 
and perhaps the most influential, journal in France. The Temps 
expressed its regret that " considerations so lofty " as those set 
forth by the premier should not have had more weight with many 
of the members of the chamber who made up the strong minor- 
ity who voted against him. For those acquainted with the history 
of modern France it is difficult to believe in the sincerity of the 
regret. The proposal to break off diplomatic relations with the 
Vatican, and the larger proposal that of the separation of church 
and state of which it is meant to be the precursor, are in the 
logic of the situation which the hypocritical Temps has done a good 
deal to create. The bitter war that has been kept up against the 
church for the last ten years has been stealthily supported by the 
very writers of the Temps who now profess to deplore its actual 



1889.] CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 15 

and possible consequences. But the policy of protecting abroad 
the religion which is persecuted at home, of proscribing on their 
native soil the orders and congregations which are defended in 
far-off regions, is one against which the conscience of a great 
people must soon revolt. 

On the question of the separation of church and state in 
France there is as much divergence of opinion amongst Catholics 
as there is amongst the different groups of Republicans. It is a 
subject as to which, of course, the voice of the Catholic laity, as 
such, counts for little or nothing, but with regard to which they 
are entitled to entertain whatever views they deem consistent with 
Catholic principles. Their action in the matter will always be 
guided by the wishes of the Supreme Pontiff. No inconsiderable 
number of them, men of weight and position, would hail with 
satisfaction the severance of a connection which seems to them, 
in the actual circumstances, to be an anomaly. They think that 
there is something incongruous in the union of their church with 
an atheistic state. They feel deeply humiliated at the spectacle of 
their bishops and priests and sisterhoods insulted wantonly by 
every political upstart who chances to get into a governmental 
office, from the ministry of public worship down to the mayoralty, 
of the smallest village. They believe that the spiritual interests 
of their co-religionists, which suffer very much under the existing 
arrangement, would be greatly advanced by the change. The 
appropriation for the church has been so enormously reduced that 
what remains of it is scarcely worth the having. The nation 
which cheerfully furnishes the Holy Father with upwards of three- 
fourths of the total sum annually subscribed by the Catholic world 
as Peter Pence, and which contributes so liberally to foreign mis- 
sionary enterprises, could be relied upon to support with no nig- 
gardly hand the church within its own borders. By far the 
gravest aspect of the present position of the church in France is 
the steady decrease of vocations to the priesthood. Three years 
ago I heard Pere Monsabre deliver from the pulpit of Notre 
Dame de Paris an impassioned appeal to his countrymen to 
undertake the self-sacrifice necessary to ward off the coming peril. 
Not many months ago Mgr. Penaud, Bishop of Autun, and mem- 
ber of the French Academy, sounded a similar note of alarm. In 
a letter which he published he gave eloquent utterance to the 
distress he felt at the prospect of what the Church of France 
might suffer from the scarcity of priests ; and he prayerfully hoped 
" that French Catholics will not allow those sacred sources to 



1 6 CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. [Oct., 

perish from which priests of God are furnished forth," and " that 
the humiliation of seeing the pre-eminently apostolic nation obliged 
to have recourse to foreign priests to announce the Gospel to its 
own sons " might be spared him. It is in the middle and upper 
classes of Catholics that the paucity of vocations is most notice- 
able. The condition of abject slavery to the minions of the infidel 
state which the embracing of the sacerdotal life entails is doubt- 
less the main obstacle that prevents their sons from hearkening to 
the higher call. It might be thought that the very difficulties sur- 
rounding the priest, the indignities to which his profession ex- 
poses him, ought to act as a stimulus rather than as a hindrance 
to vocations; ought to inspire young men with an ardent zeal to 
dare do all for the love of God. But the human element is 
strong and the flesh is weak, and heroes are not found by the 
hundred nowadays. 

Were it not for the fear of a royalist reaction, the various divi- 
sions of the Republicans in the Chamber would have coalesced 
upon a measure separating church and state long ago. The wiser 
heads among the revolutionary wing, which is in power now, deem 
the time inopportune for a stroke of policy which they regard as 
one of the inevitable events of the near future. This view is 
tacitly concurred in by the moderate section, who are indifferent 
upon the subject, except in so far as it affects the durableness of 
the Republic. There is a large group, however, who want the 
church disestablished immediately at all costs; but their influence 
is rendered nugatory by an equally large group who desire the 
maintenance of the union between the civil and the religious 
powers in order that they may gratify their hatred of the church. 
On the morning after a debate and division on the question of 
separation, brought forward in the form of a resolution tending to 
suppress the appropriation for the embassy to the Holy See, I 
met a friend of mine, a Paris journalist, and a member of the 
Extreme Left the group who clamor for immediate separation. He 
had voted against his colleagues. " I cannot understand your 
action in the Chamber yesterday evening," I said. "The attitude 
of your group, that of uncompromising hostility to the church, is 
quite comprehensible. But I know your sentiments too well to 
believe that in voting as you did your motive was to benefit the 
church. Why do you support in practice what you condemn in 
principle?" "The reason is simple," he replied. "My colleagues 
may be all right in their attitude on the church question ; but if 
they succeeded in giving effect to their views, one of the principal 



1889.] 'CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 17 

charms which parliamentary life possesses for myself and a good 
many others who are not of my group would be taken away." I 
confessed that I could not see the point. "Why," he rejoined 
with a smile, " so long as the church is tied to the state we can 
kick the clerics whenever we like. We have an old score against 
them, you know. If separation were brought about, the church 
would be free and strong, and, ma foil the clerics would kick 
us." In these words he voiced the sentiments of an important 
section of the members of the Chamber of Deputies. 

The numerous vexatious measures which have been passed into 
law for the sole purpose of persecuting their church, and the civic 
disabilities from which they themselves suffer, have naturally in- 
spired the Catholic laity with a prejudice against the Republic as 
a form of government. They yearn for a regime which will give 
them liberty, equality, and fraternity. These words greet the eye 
everywhere throughout France. They are painted by order of the 
government officials on the walls of every church, of every school, 
of every public building; they are on the very scavengers' carts. 
They are every place, except where they ought to be : in the 
policy of the state and in the hearts of the people. For Catholics 
the only liberty that exists is the liberty to think as the govern- 
ing infidels think ; the only equality, that of paying taxes for 
which they get no representation ; the only fraternity, that defined 
by Chamfort, the wit of the Revolution : " Be my brother, or I 
will kill thee ! " Even in the matter of walking through the 
public streets Catholics are discriminated against. Pardoned assas- 
sins and blood-thirsty anarchists, with wickedness in their hearts 
and blasphemies on their lips, can and do march through them 
with impunity, flaunting the red flag, the emblem of murder and 
social chaos ; and Masonic sectaries may proceed to Pere-Laehaise 
decked in their idiotic insignia, and inter their dead with what- 
ever fantastic rites they please. But the children of the Church 
of God may not carry aloft in public procession the symbol of 
man's redemption ; may not, in fact, hold any public procession 
at all of a religious character. They must move out of the way 
to let the " red" processionists pass, and listen in silence to the wild 
shouts for the return of the " glorious brotherhood " of the "glo- 
rious days " of the Revolution. A glorious brotherhood and a 
glorious epoch indeed ! It would be amusing, if the theme were 
not so solemn, to remember what these delirious fanatics forget 
that, Saturn-like, the Revolution devoured its own progeny ; that 
in the heyday of their power its ringleaders were thinking of 



1 8 CHURCH AND STATE AY PRANCE: [Oct., 

nothing else but cutting each other's throats ; that Hebert sent 
Vergniaud to the guillotine; that Hebert's own head was lopped 
off by Danton ; that Danton's was in turn lopped off by Robes- 
pierre, and that Tallien closed the gory series by lopping off 
Robespierre's. 

Nor are Catholics themselves wholly blameless for the unfor- 
tunate condition of their church and their country. Instead of 
imitating the energy of their opponents in organizing, in register- 
ing, in voting, in spreading political information amongst the 
people, they have in most instances contented themselves with 
uttering violent and exaggerated denunciations of the Republic. 
They might as well denounce the clouds for the inclemency of 
the weather. An important factor in the situation is the indiffer- 
ence of the rural voter. It is very hard to induce him to go to 
the polls. He is unwilling to take from the time he devotes to 
the cultivation of his farm the few hours or the half-day which 
the recording of his vote would consume. A despicable sel- 
fishness keeps him at home. He knows little and cares less 
about the issues that are to be fought out at the ballot-boxes. 
So long as he has a hazy notion that there is some sort of a 
government in Paris he is perfectly satisfied. 

It is only a sensible decrease in the price commanded by his 
agricultural produce, or a marked increase in the amount of his 
taxes, that can avail to rouse him from his lethargy. As for 
the cultured class of Catholics, and the members of the doomed 
" aristocracy," they for the most part hold themselves aloof, 
watching 'in idleness the succession of events, and awaiting an 
intervention of Providence which shall set things right. The old 
adage that God helps those who help themselves is utterly lost 
on them. Their inactivity is culpable ; it is unpatriotic. By their 
inanity they have allowed the government of their, country to fall 
into the grasp of the tyrannous clique whose maladministration 
brought into play that astonishing union of otherwise antagonistic 
forces which almost succeeded in placing France at the feet of 
an imbecile would-be dictator like Boulanger. 

Such, in brief, is the France of to-day. What it shal 1 be to- 
morrow will depend largely upon the conduct, in the general elec- 
tions which are to be held in October, of those whose rightful 
place is at the head of the Catholic or conservative party. It is 
incumbent upon those of them who have hitherto been living in 
retirement to come forth and throw themselves into the conflict. 
It is incumbent upon all of them to cast aside with their vain 






1889.] CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 19 

regrets their barren loyalty to effete dynasties. To break with 
the past will no doubt occasion a severe wrench. But the wel- 
fare of their country demands it. True patriotism requires self- 
sacrifice. The wounds which have prostrated their native land 
have not been caused by the Republic; they have been inflicted 
by those who have administered the Republic; those who have 
proved recreant to the principles which they profess. Imperialism 
and royalism have been tried and found wanting. True, there is 
one grave defect in the constitution of the Republic, but it can 
easily be removed. The existence of the cabinet depends upon 
the mutations of opinion in a Chamber where hastily-improvised 
coalitions, capable of upsetting the most powerful ministry, are 
possible every day. A glance at the Constitution of the United 
States will at once suggest the remedy. The forthcoming elec- 
tions will present a magnificent opportunity to the leaders of the 
Catholic party. If they cannot exercise much influence over the 
urban voters, the rural voters are at their service. The conditions 
favorable to the transformation of the -rural voter's indifference into 
active interest are widely prevalent : the taxes are high, trade 
and commerce languish, agricultural and industrial depression is 
felt throughout the land; discontent is rife. A united and deter- 
mined effort would secure to the Catholic party a majority over 
their infidel adversaries in the new Chamber. Lafayette accepted 
the monarchy as the best of republics. If French Catholics are 
wise in their day, if they are sincerely wishful of furthering the 
highest interests of their faith and their fatherland, they will 
accept the Republic as the best of monarchies. 

SAMUEL BYRNE. 



VOL L a 



20 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR Y. [Oct., 



GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NATURAL 
HISTORY. 

IN natural history few things are more curious than the geo- 
graphical distribution of* animals and plants. It may be laid down 
as a rule in geographical distribution that the areas in which a 
given species or genus exists are continuous with each other. 
That is to say, the same species or genus will not be found in 
places far apart and between which no individual of the kind is 
to be met with. But there are exceptions to this general rule, 
and these exceptions are interesting. 

In going from England to Japan we pass through countries 
very unlike England in their physical characteristics as well as in 
their fauna and flora. But when the whole of Europe* and a good 
part of Asia have been crossed, when five thousand miles separate 
us from England, we suddenly arrive in the midst of house spar- 
rows, and larks, buntings, wrens, and thrushes absolutely identi- 
cal with the ones at home. Again, all the members of the genus 
blue-bird inhabit temperate and tropical America with one excep- 
tion, a solitary form, ccelicolor, which crops up among the Him- 
alaya Mountains. 

Of two species of blue magpie, one inhabits Spain, the other 
inhabits Siberia and Northern China. The water-mole embraces 
two species, one of which dwells among the Pyrenees, the other 
is in Russia, along the rivers Don and Volga. 

It is certainly strange that two birds belonging to the very 
limited ostrich family, and so closely allied as the rhea and the 
ostrich, should inhabit regions so far asunder as Africa and South 
America. 

Perhaps the most remarkable instance of a mammalian genus 
inhabiting widely separated areas is furnished by the tapir; one 
species is a native of Borneo and Sumatra, all the other species 
are natives of South America. 

The implacental mammals, or marsupials, such as kangaroos, 
opossums, etc., are almost entirely confined to the Australian 
region. These mammals (provided with a pouch in which the 
fcetus completes its embryonic development) are the earliest 
to appear in geological time, having been found in Jurassic 
and Triassic deposits, and they probably stand near the bottom 
of the mammalian series. Now, the American opossum is the 






1889.] GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR v. 2 1 

only non-Australian representative of this extremely ancient 
order. 

As among the higher animals so we find among fresh-water 
fishes, identical species divided from each other by half the globe. 
The shovel-nose sturgeon is confined to the Mississippi River and 
to the rivers of Central Asia. The perch of the Ganges reap- 
pears in the waters of South Australia. The common American 
sucker has one outlying representative in Siberia. 

Among the mountains of Central Asia, confined to Lake Bai- 
kal, two thousand feet above the sea, and a thousand miles from 
the coast, is the singular fish comephorus, whose nearest allies 
are the mackerels, exclusively salt-water fishes. 

The general rule for the distribution of plants is the same 
fundamentally as for animals. But plants being possessed of un- 
common facilities for distribution, their seeds being scattered broad 
and far by the wind and by means of birds, we cannot expect to 
meet with so many identical species widely separated as in the 
case of animals. We shall only mention that the eminent botan- 
ist, Sir Joseph Hooker, found that the plants peculiar to the Gala- 
pagos Islands, six hundred miles from the west coast of South 
America, have decided Mexican affinities. 

But if identical species may be separated from each other by 
great distances, on the other hand a comparatively short distance 
will sometimes show a marked diversity in the fauna and flora. 
On the eastern coast of Africa we meet with giraffes, elephants, 
lions, and rhinoceroses. But if we journey two hundred and fifty 
miles, to the Island of Madagascar, we find not one of these dis- 
tinctively Ethiopian mammals. 

The true monkey has also disappeared, and we meet with the 
half-monkey, or lemur, a lowly organized and very ancient ani- 
mal, which maintains its existence by nocturnal and arboreal 
habits. As we go southward along the eastern portion of the 
United States we seldom lose sight of oaks, sumachs, vines, and 
magnolias, while the birds and insects differ very little from those 
further north. But if we cross the short fifty miles which divide 
Florida from the Bahamas, we find a plant-life essentially trop- 
ical and differing scarcely at all from that of Cuba. The birds 
and insects, too, are not the same as on the mainland ; in fact, 
there is more difference between Cuba and Florida than between 
Florida and Canada. Yet there is nothing in the climate or the 
soil to make us look for such a marked difference. 

Wallace tells us in his interesting book, The Malay Archi- 
pelago, that animal life on the Island of Bali is wonderfully unlike 



22 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTORY. [Oct, 

that on the Island of Lombok, which is separated from it by 
a channel only fifteen miles wide, but very deep. On Bali we 
find red and green woodpeckers, weaver-birds, barbets, and 
black and white magpie robins, not one of which exists on 
Lombok, where we meet with screaming cockatoos, and friar- 
birds, and the strange mound-building megapodes, none of which 
inhabit Bali. 

A very few animals have a world-wide distribution. Among 
these is the bat, which is found in every habitable part of the earth, 
even on the loneliest islands ; although so far it has not been ob- 
served on Iceland, St. Helena, or on the jGalapagos. One species 
of bat has been seen on Chimborazo Mountain, at an altitude of 
ten thousand feet 

Among birds the fish-hawk has the most extensive range. 
Next to it comes the little barn-owl, which is met with every- 
where except in New Zealand and a few of the Malay Islands. 
Next to the bat, the mammals having the most exterisive habitat 
are the leopard and the wolf. But no mammal has so great a 
north and south range as the American panther, whose home 
extends from Canada to Patagonia. 

But if the fish-hawk, barn-owl, and bat are cosmopolitan, 
there are some animals whose range is limited to only one coun- 
try ; it may even be confined to a few square miles or less. Not 
a crow is found in South America, although it exists everywhere 
else, even in Australia. The bird-of-paradise is confined to New 
Guinea. The brown and white cactus-wren is met with only on 
the Isthmus of Panama; while one species of humming-bird, the 
little flame-bearer, never strays outside the extinct crater of 
Chiriqui. 

Among fishes the most isolated, and perhaps the most wonder- 
ful of all living creatures, is the ceratodus of South Australia. 
It is an extremely ancient fish, fossil remains of a closely allied 
species having been found in deposits of the Permian age. Its 
brain presents an embryonic condition ; it is distinguished for the 
primeval form of its fin, and it appears more than probable that 
from the ceratodus have descended some of the earlier amphi- 
bians. 

But it was not until 1870 that we knew there was any still 
existing form of this remarkable genus. In that year a ceratodus 
several feet long was caught in a river in Queensland. Although 
it is a true fish, it leaves the water at night, progressing on its 
fins with a paddling movement somewhat like a tortoise, and goes 
<m foraging expeditions after vegetable food. It browses chiefly 






1889.] GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NATURAL HISTORY. 23 

on myrtle-leaves, and having lungs as well as gills, it is as much 
at home out of water as in the water. It is covered with scales, 
and is altogether fish-like in appearance ; yet its anatomy pre- 
sents points of resemblance to salamanders. A good specimen of 
a ceratodus is preserved in the museum of Columbia College, 
New York. Here let us observe that whenever a species has a 
very local range, when it does not exist outside of a certain nar- 
row limit, it is a sign that it is verging toward extinction. 

Having given this brief account of some of the interesting 
facts in distribution, we may ask if there is any explanation of 
them ? or do they all form a tangle which cannot be unravelled ? 
They do not. And we shall find that the study of how animal 
and plant life is distributed is an important adjunct to geology, 
for it helps to throw light on the past history of our globe. The 
phenomena of geological distribution entirely correspond with the 
phenomena of geographical distribution. In the same geological 
beds we see mingled the same species. As in geography no 
species or genus is, as a rule, found in widely separated areas, 
without also inhabiting intermediate localities, so in geology no 
species or genus is found parted by a geological epoch ; that is 
to say, it has not come into existence twice. 

The geographical distribution of animals and plants is mainly 
dependent on two causes, namely, the changes to which the 
earth's surface has been exposed, and climatal changes; alternate 
cold and warm periods, which cold and warm periods were owing 
to the combined effects of the precession of the equinoxes and 
of the eccentricity of the earth's orbit: the epoch of cold being 
aided, in Mr. Belt's opinion* by increased obliquity of the ecliptic, 
which would extend the width of the polar regions. 

In regard to alterations in the earth's surface, the better 
opinion is that our continents and oceans have been in the main 
permanent and stable throughout all geological time ; but they 
have undergone various and wonderful modifications in detail. 
Every square mile of earth has been again and again under 
water ; inland seas have been formed and afterward filled up with 
sediment, so that now only the trained eye can detect where they 
once existed ; the continents have been crossed by arms of the 
sea, isolating portions of them for varying intervals; and the 
effect of these repeated changes on animal life must have been 
very great. To adapt themselves to new conditions, the species 
of the organic world driven from one region to another have 
been slowly changing in form, and these changes and migrations 
are everywhere revealed in the actual distribution of the species, 



24 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR Y. [Oct., 

as well as in the testimony of the rocks, which preserve for us their 
fossil remains. 

Undoubtedly the true explanation of many remote geograph- 
ical affinities is that they date back to a time when the parent 
group had a wider distribution ; groups now broken up were once 
continuous ; fragmentary forms are only the relics of once wide- 
spread types ; and the more widely the fragments are scattered, 
the more ancient was the ancestral group. 

Thus the marsupials, at present confined to the Australian 
region and to America, are connected by forms which had spread 
over Europe and Asia before the close of Eocene times, during 
which epoch, probably, Australia became an island. America, no 
doubt, got its marsupials from the Old World by way of the land- 
bridge at Behring's Straits, although it was a much later migra- 
tion, for no trace of marsupials appears in the New World before 
the Post-pliocene age. At an early period the land connection 
with Australia was cut off and has never since been restored, 
while long afterwards the northern route between the eastern and 
Vestern hemispheres at Behring's Straits was destroyed. The 
marsupials are, therefore, an old-world group, which, though long 
extinct in its birthplace, has survived in widely divided parts of 
the globe ; the original type undergoing a special development 
in the one case (the opossum) to a life suited to an arboreal ex- 
istence ; in the other, to a life adapted to hot, waterless plains. 
Nor could there be any better evidence of the long isolation of 
Australia than the great variety of its living marsupials (so differ- 
ent in species from its ancient, fossil ones), as well as the almost 
entire absence there of animals met with in other parts of the 
globe. In Australia we have the great kangaroo; the kangaroo 
rat; the native cat the smallest not bigger than a mouse, the 
biggest as big as a wolf; the tasmanian tiger, looking very 
like a dog, and sometimes called the zebra wolf; the native ant- 
eater ; the beautiful flying opossum, so like the flying squirrel of 
North America ; and the tarsipes, not larger than a mouse, with 
an extensile tongue, for it is a true honey-sucker. All these are 
marsupials. But, besides them, we meet in Australia with two of 
the strangest of existing mammals, viz., the ornithorhynchus, or 
duck-mole, and the echidna, or native hedge-hog. They are 
oviparous or egg-laying monotremes, which burrow underground 
and have points of affinity to birds and reptiles. Formerly they 
were classed as marsupials. Let us add to them a new mar- 
supial, which is also a monotreme, discovered only last year in 
Central Australia. It has a small head and rounded snout, 



1889.] GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NATURAL HISTORY. 25 

shielded above by two horny plates, one behind the other. The 
skin is not perforated for eyes, which consist merely of two tiny 
black pigmented points. The tail is hairless like an opossum's, 
and ends in a button. It is an insect-eater, and in general ap- 
pearance resembles a cape mole. Its marsupial character is re- 
vealed by a well-marked pouch bordering the lactiferous area, 
and no* external genital organs are visible. None of the natives, 
except one old woman, had ever seen such a creature before, and 
if this specimen be not the very last one in existence, we may 
safely say it belongs to a genus which is very nearly extinct. 

The tapir, which now inhabits only South America and the 
islands of Borneo and Sumatra, first appeared, like the marsupials, 
in Europe in the early portion of the Eocene epoch. But it was 
not until the following epoch the miocene that the tapir ap- 
peared in North America. Here, however, it seems to have be- 
come extinct, only to migrate anew from Europe and Asia at a 
much later time, and it was this last migration which penetrated 
into South America. We see, therefore, that the tapir, like the 
marsupials, had once a far broader distribution, and that, like 
them, it no longer exists in that part of the world where its re- 
motest known ancestor first showed itself. 

The lemurs, whose headquarters are now in the continental 
Island of Madagascar, had also, like the tapirs and marsupials, 
their ancestors in Europe : and here let us say that the best evi- 
dence points to the northern hemisphere as the ancestral home of 
all the orders of mammals. It seems at first puzzling that this 
great island, a thousand miles long, whose extraordinary fauna 
was evidently mainly derived from the neighboring continent of 
Africa (the presence of mammals on islands is a clear indication 
that the islands have been united to a continent), should yet be 
wanting in all the larger and higher African forms. This curious 
fact may be explained by the connection of Madagascar with the 
mainland during early Eocene times, when lemurs, as fossil re- 
mains testify, abounded in Europe, and when there was more 
than one isthmus across the Mediterranean over which these pri- 
mitive mammals made their way into Africa. But the several 
land-bridges leading from Europe to the southern continent ap- 
pear to have been submerged for a period, and when they rose 
again above the water Madagascar's connection with Africa had 
been broken, so that it was not possible for the higher mammals, 
which now for the first time penetrated into Africa, to reach the 
island. That during the epoch following the Eocene a part of 
Africa was isolated from Asia and Europe by an uninterrupted 



26 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR v. [Oct., 

sea from the Bay of Bengal to the Atlantic, is indicated by the 
marine deposits found in the Sahara and scattered far to the 
eastward through Arabia and Persia. It is possible that when 
Madagascar formed part of the mainland of Africa it was also 
united with India by a vast region now buried in the Indian 
Ocean, and to which some naturalists have given the name of 
Limuria. 

But the better opinion is that Limuria never existed. It may 
very well be, however, that in a former age several large islands 
Mr. Wallace says perhaps not inferior to Madagascar itself did 
extend from near Madagascar to Southern India. 

These ancient islands may now be represented by Bourbon, 
Mauritius, Rodriguez, and other smaller islets, as well as by the 
extensive shoals and coral reefs such as always indicate subsi- 
dence. Nor is it at all unlikely that these detached masses of 
land, at present either entirely submerged or whose highest points 
only rise above the water, were the means by which the ostrich- 
like bird, aepyornis, now extinct, got to Madagascar from India. 
For we know that birds of this family are good swimmers, the 
rhea having been seen battling with the waves as it passed from 
one headland to another off the coast of Patagonia. And this 
reminds us of the singular toothed bird, herperornis regalis, from 
the cretaceous beds of the West, which Professor Marsh has de- 
clared to have been a carnivorous swimming ostrich. 

In Madagascar the aepyornis found small but active carnivor- 
ous animals to struggle against, and through its struggles with 
these enemies, in which the smaller, weaker birds succumbed, its 
size and its strength increased until in time it developed into a 
most formidable bird. But in the other large islands, which Mr. 
Wallace supposes to have existed, there were no carnivoras, no 
enemies to molest the birds that settled on them ; and hence 
through undisturbed repose and disuse of their wings there arose, 
in the course of ages, a race of birds incapable of flight, viz., the 
dodo and the solitaire. They were allied to the pigeons, and a 
few of them still lingered on Mauritius, Bourbon, and Rodriguez 
when these islands were settled by man about two centuries ago. 
But the introduction of cats and dogs soon exterminated them. 

It can hardly be doubted that had the supposed continent of 
Limuria ever existed, such wingless birds would never have been 
developed, for the first birds coming to Limuria would have 
found enemies such as the aepyornis found in Madagascar, and 
they would have had plenty of use for their wings. That the 
dodo and solitaire were really abortions from a more perfect type 



1889.] GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NATURAL HISTORY. 27 

is shown by their having possessed a keeled sternum. Wallace 
maintains that the use of wings on such islands as these birds 
inhabited would have been absolutely prejudicial; for the birds 
that flew up into trees to roost, or tried to fly across a river or 
bay, would have run many chances of being blown out to sea, 
especially during the hurricanes which sweep over the Indian 
Ocean. 

Let us here observe that analogous, though quite distinct, 
forms of wingless birds exist in New Zealand, where carnivorous 
enemies are equally wanting, although we know of no birds so 
utterly helpless as the dodo and solitaire. 

The ancestral ostrich type, like the marsupials, % tapirs, and 
lemurs, at one time no doubt spread over a great part of Europe. 
We know that ostrich remains have been found in the Eocene 
deposits of Europe. It was probably exterminated in its birth- 
place when the higher carnivora appeared. But in Africa, South 
America, and Australia, where some of the birds had migrated, 
they found no enemies, for the carnivorous animals had not yet 
invaded those parts of the globe; and they were able to develop 
into special forms adapted to surrounding conditions. But the 
great size, strength, and speed of the ostrich, rhea, and emu were 
later modifications, brought about by their struggles with the 
enemies who in time came to molest them. 

The cases of affinity between widely separated species of fresh- 
water fishes, such as the shovel-nose sturgeons and a few others, 
is to be attributed either to the survival of once wide- spread 
groups, or to wide-spread marine types having become adapted 
to a fresh-water existence ; while the comephorus of Lake Baikal 
in Asia, so distinctly allied to the mackerels, and which Wallace 
calls one of the special peculiarities of distribution, surely indi- 
cates that marine fishes can become modified to a life in fresh 
water. 

The fact that the ceratodus exists to-day only in Australia, 
while its remains have been found fossil in Europe and America, 
might lead us to suppose a change in the distribution of land and 
water. But a closer study of this extraordinary fish, which fur- 
nishes the most marked instance of persistence in the whole range 
of the vertebrates, affords good evidence that the ancestral mem- 
bers of the genus were of an oceanic character. 

Plants being longer lived specifically than animals, do not so 
easily become extinct through changes in geography or climate, 
and moreover, as we have said, their seeds are broadly scattered 
by the wind and by birds. We therefore find few botanical 



28 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR Y. [Oct., 

groups whose allies are separated from them by great distances. 
The interesting fact that the plants peculiar to the Galapagos 
Islands have a decided affinity to the plants of Mexico, Wallace 
explains by the past history of the American continent; its sep- 
aration by arms of the sea at Panama; and when the Atlantic 
and Pacific Oceans were united, a portion of the Gulf Stream 
would very likely have swept into the Pacific and on its current 
the seeds of these Mexican plants may have been floated to the 
Galapagos. 

The marked difference between the animal and plant life of 
Florida and of the Bahamas, although separated by only fifty 
miles, is to be explained by each having had a different history. 
The fauna and flora of the Bahamas, so similar to that of Cuba, 
is essentially West Indian, and descends from the time when these 
islands, as well as nearly all the West Indian islands, as sound- 
ings indicate, formed part of South America ; at which time there 
was not much of Florida in existence. The difference between 
the fauna of Lombok and that of Bali, in the Malay archipelago, 
is owing to the fact that the Island of Bali, as the shallow sea 
indicates, belongs to Asia and was peopled by Asiatic types; 
while Lombok, only fifteen miles distant, belongs to the Austra- 
lian region ; the boundary line between the two being a narrow 
but very deep channel. 

And now to repeat what we have already said, the present 
distribution of animals and plants has been mainly brought about 
by changes in the climate and geography of the earth. Nor 
could there be a better evidence of climatic change than the fact 
that at one time poplars, birches, hazels, elms, and the swamp- 
cypress flourished in Grinnell Land within eight and one- quarter 
degrees of the pole, as well as the discovery in Yorkshire, Eng- 
land, of the remains of the hippopotamus. This period of warmth 
was followed by a period of cold, called the Glacial epoch ; and 
it was in order to escape from the deep snow and the glaciers 
which were slowly burying Europe and which, if astronomers 
are correct, lasted, with mild intervals, for almost two hundred 
thousand years that the elephants, antelopes, and monkeys, which 
then inhabited Europe, passed south into Africa over the several 
land-bridges at that time uniting the two continents. Soundings 
indicate that one of these land-bridges connected Italy with Tunis, 
and another connected Gibraltar with Morocco. The former isth- 
mus is to-day from three hundred to twelve hundred feet under 
water, while the Mediterranean to the east and west of it falls 
in some places to more than thirteen thousand feet The sub- 



1889.] GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NATURAL HISTORY. 29 

merged bank at the Straits of Gibraltar is now covered by one 
thousand feet of water. When the glacial epoch finally came to 
an end, probably between fifty and a hundred thousand years 
ago, these land-bridges had disappeared, and the animals we have 
mentioned were not able to return to their old haunts in Europe. 
But we find to-day the remains of three extinct species of ele- 
phants in Malta, two of which are pigmy species only five feet 
high when adult; and strange to say, an ape still inhabits the 
rock of Gibraltar, similar in species to the Barbary ape on the 
opposite coast. 

But the cold period was not confined to Europe. Marks of 
glacial action may be seen in many parts of North America. 
Mr. Thomas Belt, a good authority, believes that the huge 
boulders, three thousand feet above the sea, near Ocotal, Nicara- 
gua, were carried there by glaciers. Professor Hartt, in Geology 
and Physical Geography of Brazil, has found glacial drift and 
true moraines from Patagonia all through Brazil to Pernambuco; 
while the most extensive plateau in South Africa bears unmis- 
takable evidence of ice action. But if this be true if, as the 
author of The Glacial Period in North America maintains, the 
cold was simultaneous in both hemispheres we may well ask, 
What became of animal and plant life ? where did it go to find a 
refuge ? Let Mr. Belt answer : 

" I believe that there was much extermination during the glacial period, that 
many species and some genera as, for instance, the American horse did not 
survive it, and that some of the great gaps that now exist in natural history were 
then made, but that a refuge was found for many species on lands now below the 
ocean, that were uncovered by the lowering of the sea caused by the immense 
quantity of water that was locked up in frozen masses on the land." 

Mr. Alfred Tylor, in the Geological Magazine, vol. ix., believes 
that the ice cap of this period must have caused the sea to fall 
at least six hundred feet. But Mr. Belt calculates that an ice cap 
existing in both hemispheres at the same time, and reaching 
almost to the equator, would have lowered the level of the sea 
not less than two thousand feet. There are certainly many facts 
tending to prove that at the height of the glacial epoch the land 
all over the world stood much higher above the water than it 
does now. 

The Azores might then have formed the summit of an exten- 
sive plain, stretching a thousand miles from east to west ; and 
Cuba, Hayti, Jamaica, and the Bahamas would have been united 
with each other, as well as joined to Yucatan and Venezuela. 



30 GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION IN NA TURAL HISTOR Y. [Oct., 

In the East Indies, too, many islands would have been formed 
into one, and it was perhaps now that the tapir found his way 
to Borneo and Sumatra. And in these regions, happily laid bare 
by the sea, animals and plants may have been able to exist. 
But by-and-by the ice age ended. And now, if we may believe 
Mr. Belt, something awful happened that has never been forgot- 
ten a cataclysm of which a dim tradition has come down to us 
through the ages. 

Plato tells of Atlantis having been swallowed up in one day 
and one night by the ocean ; and in the Tea Amoxtli, translated 
by the Abbe Brasseur de Bourbourg, we read of a country over- 
whelmed by the sea, out of which thunder and, lightning issued: 
"The mountains were sinking and falling when the great Deluge 
happened." 

Is the story told by Plato in Europe and by the Indians in 
America altogether to be despised ? Atlantis may well have been 
the broad plain of the Azores, and the engulfed regions men- 
tioned in the Tea Amoxtli may have been the uncovered lands 
in the area now included in the West Indies. When the ancient 
snow and the glaciers of thousands of years began to melt and 
flow down off the continents, an enormous body of water must 
have poured into the ocean, and many a low land, teeming with 
life, may have been drowned in the almost world-wide inundation. 
And the Flood may have been accompanied by numerous rend- 
ings of the earth's crust, and by volcanic upheavals of unparalleled 
fury, owing to the great transference of weight from the poles 
toward the equator. Indeed, an actual change in the earth's cen- 
tre of gravity may have occurred. But whether or no we agree 
with Mr. Belt's views of what took place when the glacial epoch 
ended, these views are not so improbable. 

And now let us conclude by saying that if we accept the 
latest results of geological and palaeontological science ; if we make 
use of the key which the theory of descent with modification 
furnishes us; and if we study the various ocean depths, which 
may point to a former union of islands with continents, we shall 
be able to solve very many of the puzzling problems of natural 
history. 

WILLIAM SETON. 



1889.] THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 31 



THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 



I. 

FOR about ten or twelve years past lamentable divisions among 
Catholic publicists have existed in our country. Some were par- 
tisans of the dynasty restored with Alphonso XII. ; others sided 
with the Carlist cause, which since 1833 has been represented by 
three Carloses in as many civil wars ; the latter were most im- 
placably opposed to any compromise whatever with liberal prin- 
ciples, while the former favored partial tolerance. As these con- 
tentions found expression in the press and were warmly advocated 
by either side, the cause of religion suffered serious detriment ; 
the bonds of charity were loosened, main questions were left aside 
for the sake of secondary ones, and the common foe improved 
the opportunity of these discords to resume their assaults against 
the pope, the church, and Christian truth. 

This sad state of things occasioned general sorrow. There 
was need of a powerful, authoritative, and energetic hand to re- 
store unity, and a clear voice to call forth from the depths of 
this ever faithful land those rich fountains of living water which 
in times past had made Spain the privileged soil of Christianity. 

With this end in view, the wise Bishop of Madrid conceived 
the idea of a great Catholic congress, at which all the Catholics of 
Spain should meet by their representatives, and in which they 
would undertake in common the task of defending the interests 
of religion, and agree upon the most efficacious means for the 
moral reform of society. 

The same prelate, with the assistance of competent persons, 
drew up rules and regulations, which were published on the I5th 
of last October. By these he convoked the congress for the 24th 
of April of this year, and indicated the topics for its discussions. 
In order to proceed methodically, six sections were established : 
the first to discuss clerical matters and ecclesiastical censor- 
ship ; the second, those of a scientific nature ; the third, those 
relative to teaching ; the fourth, those connected with charity ; the 
fifth, those relative to literature, arts, and the press ; and the sixth, 
questions concerning the management of the congress, precedence, 
reception, and attendance of its members. In accordance with 



32 THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Oct., 

these rules, the routine of the congress was placed under the di- 
rection of a central committee composed of members residing in 
Madrid, and chosen by the bishop of that diocese, assisted by the 
representatives of the other prelates of Spain and by the heads 
of the different sections. Members of the congress were either 
titular or honorary. The former were to take an active part in the 
deliberations, and the latter ,to support and help the congress with 
their personal or social influence, with donations, subscriptions, 
and in any other possible manner. 

Article XIX. of the Rules provided that during the public 
sittings of the congress neither discussion nor controversy should 
be allowed, and only those were permitted to speak who had ob- 
tained from the central committee a right to the floor, in order 
either to present some of the indicated scientific theses, or to read 
s6*me memoir or a brief relation concerning some work or insti- 
tution of general utility from a religious or a social standpoint. 
General discussion was to be confined to the meetings of the sec- 
tions or large committees hereafter described. In order, also, to 
prevent the public sittings from being too lengthy, forty-five minutes 
was the maximum of time allowed for the presenting of a thesis, 
and fifteen minutes for the reading of a paper or statement. In 
order to insure the doctrinal purity of matters laid before the con- 
gress, all were .to be submitted beforehand to the inspection of 
the central committee. 

Such, briefly stated, was the organization of the congress 
recently held in Madrid, and which will mark an epoch in the 
religious history of Spain during the present century.. The fol- 
lowing is a summary of the subjects for study and debate allot- 
ted to each section. 

The first had in charge to consider the most efficacious means 
in our day for reviving and sustaining the Catholic faith in the 
people; to ascertain what religious orders and associations are 
best adapted to spread piety and secure the frequentation of the 
sacraments among the laboring classes; to devise a permanent 
system for the protection of the ministers of religion from ca- 
lumny ; to find ways to spread a knowledge of and promote the 
works of Peter Pence, the Propagation of the Faith, and the Holy 
Childhood, also for providing for the needs of convents of nuns 
and of poor churches in Spain ; for promoting the observance of" 
feast days and of the precept of fasting, and to secure to the 
dying the reception of the last sacraments ; to devise means for 
practically obtaining for the church its rights in regard to ceme- 
teries, and particularly of that of denying Christian burial in cases 



1889.] THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 33 

that call for it ; to consider what are the duties of Catholics in 
the matter of the temporal sovereignty and independence of the 
Sovereign Pontiff, and the best way to fulfil them ; also the ex- 
pediency of having a Catholic centre for the organization of con- 
gresses, pilgrimages to Rome, the Holy Land, and the most 
celebrated shrines in Spain ; the best way to encourage vocations 
to the priesthood, secure maintenance of the clergy, and the ex- 
emption of seminarians from military service ; and, finally, the ad- 
vantages to be obtained by getting up every two years statistics 
about the condition of the Catholic Church in other countries. 

The second section had in charge the consideration of the 
subject of science in its relation to the teachings of the church, 
and of the refutation of certain theories which are in opposition 
to the latter. 

The third had in charge to formulate rules for the better de- 
fining of the respective rights of church and state, and to demon- 
strate in what respect those of the former are at present suffering 
detriment ; to show how far rights of parents in the matter of 
the education and instruction of their children are infringed upon 
by existing laws, and what measures are needed to remedy ex- 
isting wrongs in that respect; to consider the rights of Catholic 
educational institutions and the supervisory power of the church 
in educational matters, also the best way to give effect to 
Article II. of the Concordat ; to determine what standard schools 
under secular direction should have in order to entitle them to 
be considered Catholic; what is needed for the promotion of 
Catholic Sunday-schools and catechism classes; and for the Chris- 
tian training of women desirous of following teaching or some 
other professional career. 

Section four had in charge to report on charitable institutions 
at present existing in Spain ; on present obstacles in the way of 
their prosperity and usefulness ; on the condition, moral and phy- 
sical, of the laboring classes ; on institutions intended for their 
benefit and advancement; on objections to the labor of women 
and children in great centres of production, and on other matters 
for the betterment of wage-earners ; and about the share of effort 
which Spain is called upon to take for the abolition of slavery in 
the interior of the African continent. 

Section five had in charge to consider subjects connected with 
the cultivation and development of literature and the stage ; with 
archaeology and Christian art and architecture, and their applica- 
tion to wants present and future ; proper religious music and the 
Gregorian chant ; the duties of Catholic writers in regard to the 



34 THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Oct., 

church, with the evil effects resulting from giving publicity in the 
press to duels, suicides, and the perpetration of great crimes; 
the management of the Catholic press, and the means to be 
adopted for its extension. 

Section six had specially in charge needful arrangements rela- 
tive to the holding of the congress.* 



II. 

As every Catholic periodical in Madrid is affiliated with some 
political party or other, the bishop thought it proper that none 
of them should be entrusted with the task of officially represent- 
ing the congress as its organ in the Spanish press. He accord- 
ingly started a paper for that special purpose under the title of 
The Catholic Movement. The first number appeared on the 2 7th 
of last October, containing an appeal to Spanish Catholics closing 
with the following words : " The editors of The Catholic Move- 
ment, which has been founded to expound the ideas of the con- 
gress, remove suspicions, prejudices, and animosities, and to defend 
the Papacy in its spiritual as well as its temporal power, enter- 
tain the hope that they will have the active support of Spanish 
Catholics in this creditable and very honorable undertaking. They 
consequently hope that when the hour comes for the opening of the 
congress, when they will see themselves amidst a large concourse 
of people, congregated around our prelates, blessed by the Holy 
Pontiff, all will be prompted to exclaim : ' Behold our beloved 
Spain awakened from her lethargy, shaking off her indifference, 
and crushing in her robust hands the viper of discord! We are 
still worthy to be the favorite sons of the Mother of God ; we 
once more show that we are Catholics by our own free choice ; 
again we can claim to form the vanguard of that Christian army 
which will free the Vatican prisoner from the power of his ene- 
mies, and restore to him, besides his freedom, the entire and ma- 
jestic splendor of his sacred dignity.' " In its first number 
the organ began to publish the names of promoters of the con- 
gress, and kept the list open until it had assembled, when it was 
found to foot up fifteen hundred names, a greater number than 
ever before recorded for any Catholic Congress held in Europe. 

The central committee, as soon as organized, on the iQth of 
December, forwarded to His Holiness Leo XIII. a message ending 

* This summary does scant justice to the clearness, comprehensiveness, and thoroughness 
with which the topics referred to were drawn up. 



I889-J THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 35 

with these words : " We proclaim ourselves determined to unite 
our efforts and desires with those of all the other faithful in the 
Catholic world, in order to claim the independence of the illustri- 
ous successor of St. Peter ; because we believe that there is not a 
member of the great Christian family who can enjoy tranquillity 
of conscience and security in the profession of his faith as long 
as the beloved Father and the Supreme Pastor of that family re- 
mains under duress, the vassal, of a foreign power." It is un- 
necessary to state the welcome which the congress received from 
the Holy See. The letter of Cardinal Rampolla to the Bishop of 
Madrid, under date of August 31, is as enthusiastic and eulo- 
gistic as could be desired. The Holy Father showed himself ex- 
ceedingly pleased with the undertaking, and looked forward to great 
benefits from it for Spain and for the church. 

As regards the Spanish episcopate, they all adhered to the 
plan of their eminent brother of Madrid, and in the " bulletins " 
of their respective dioceses they advocated it and brought to it 
numerous and enthusiastic adherents. The Bishop of Madrid ar- 
ranged that the public sittings should be held in one of the finest 
churches of this capital, which was properly prepared and deco- 
rated ; the Municipal Council, despite its liberalistic character and 
the affiliation of its members with Masonry, having co-operated in 
the work of decoration, so great was the influence and prestige 
of the venerable bishop. Finally, the central committee resolved 
that a medal commemorative of the holding of the congress should 
be struck ; and as this work was entrusted to a good artist, the 
result is a beautiful work of art. On its face is an engraved 
cross and two palms with artistically interwoven branches, and 
this inscription: " Et fiat unum ovile et unus pastor"; and on 
the reverse : " Primer Congreso Catolico national, celebrado en 
Madrid, en la iglesia de S. Jeronimo, siendo pontifice S.S. Leon 
XIII., en 24 de Abril, dt 1889."* 

Having thus disposed of the preliminaries of the congress, we 
must now take up the subject of its sessions, premising that the 
result has been beyond the brightest hopes, and that the first 
Catholic congress of Spain opens a new era of progress and 
triumph for religion in our country. Having been convoked 
under circumstances apparently unfavorable, it has really proved 
a great success. A few months sufficed for all needed prepara- 
tions, the bishop having himself superintended the entire under- 
taking. 

* First Catholic National Congress, held in Madrid, in the Chinch of St. Jerome, during 
the Pontificate of Leo XIII., on the 24th of April, 1889. 
VOL. L. 3 



36 Tin-: /'/A'.sy CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Oct., 



III. 

The church in which the public sittings were held was deco- 
rated with remarkable taste. The walls were hung with rich 
tapestries and banners, and were adorned with the escutcheons ot 
Spain and the Pope ; spacious galleries were erected ; the floors 
were richly carpeted, and the ensemble was magnificent. 

On the 23d of April, at three P.M., a preparatory session was 
held under the presidency of the aged Cardinal Benavides, as- 
sisted by thirteen prelates. In the morning a general Communion 
was received by the titulary members, a solemn High Mass was 
celebrated in the cathedral, at which the nuncio of His Holiness 
officiated, and a sermon was preached on the importance and 
aims of the congress by the secretary of the nuncio, Monsignor 
Almavar, archpriest of the diocese. In the afternoon the session 
was largely attended, there being more than one thousand mem- 
bers present. It opened by sending a telegram to Rome ex- 
pressing devotedness to His Holiness. After a brief speech ot 
the venerable president, many enthusiastic despatches of adherence 
were read. Then the hours for meeting and the duration of the 
public ., sittings, eight in number, were settled, and the places 
where the different sections were to meet selected. When these 
and other minor details of organization were disposed of the ses- 
sion closed with lively cheers for Spain and the Pope-King. Let 
us now take up the account of the proceedings at the public 
sessions. 



IV. 

The appeal ot the venerable Bishop of Madrid had been re- 
sponded to by eminent writers ready to develop the theses sub- 
mitted to the consideration of the congress. It was noticed with 
pleasure that among them were learned professors of the official 
universities, especially of that of Madrid. The papers submitted 
were many and good. A committee appointed to that end se- 
lected those which were to be read at the public sessions. The 
aggregate of said writings form a monument of Christian science. 
Theodicy, moral laws, political economy, civil law, history, litera- 
ture, and art in fact, human knowledge in a variety of branches 
furnished the material for excellent productions. At no time in 
the present century have Catholic writers made so creditable a 



1889.] THE FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OP SPAIN. 37 

display of their learning. It has now been made evident that in 
Spain Catholics have the lead as regards science and literature. 
The unbelievers make more noise, display more activity, but they 
prove shams in the end. To get at solid knowledge on all 
manner of subjects, recourse must be had to learned Christian 
men. 

The congress held its first public session on the 24th, at three 
P.M. Two hours in advance multitudes of persons belonging to the 
most distinguished social circles began to repair to the church, 
converted, as we have said, into a hall of assembly. More than two 
thousand people were gathered together within its spacious walls. 
The aspect of the platform was most imposing. Cardinal Bena- 
vides presided, having eight bishops on each side of him. It 
looked like a council of the church. 

After the session had been opened, a numerous choir sang 
without accompaniment the hymn of invocation to the Holy Ghost. 
Then the cardinal-president delivered an eloquent speech, duly 
explaining the importance and significance of the congress just 
inaugurated, its eminently Catholic character, the results it was 
expected to accomplish for the triumph of the church, for the re- 
form of manners, the development of sound studies, and the glory 
of Spain. Enthusiastic applause greeted the words of the illustri- 
ous cardinal. In conformity with the decisions arrived at in the 
preparatory meetings, that at each of the public sessions three 
addresses were to be delivered and two papers read, the president 
called ibr the opening address by Senor Sanchez de Castro, pro- 
fessor of literature in the University of Madrid, who read a most 
eloquent discourse on the theme, "The Roman Pontiff should 
now and for ever possess temporal power as a guarantee for 
the free discharge of his apostolic duties." The numerous audi- 
ence listened with an enthusiasm which showed itself by con- 
stant applause during the address, which abounded with historical 
facts, profound thought, and incontrovertible arguments. It was 
followed by another and an eminently practical one delivered by 
the young Marquis of Solana, in which he set forth a permanent 
system for the defence and vindication of priests and religious 
orders against the hatred and calumnies to which they are sub- 
jected. It is hardly necessary to add that the address met with 
the applause which it so well deserved. 

Of the* two papers read at this session, one was on the origin, 
development, charitable work, and general condition of the Com- 
munity of the Servants of Mary, by the Rev. P. Minguella, an 
Augustinian ; the other was on the Congregation of the Brothers 



38 SAT EST VIXISSE. [Oct.,, 

of St. Teresa of Jesus, by Senor Olivares y Biac, vice-secretary 
of the Supreme Tribunal of Justice. Both congregations are Span- 
ish, of modern creation, have had a rapid growth, and are among 
those which recommend themselves by the good results they ac~ 
complish. MANUEL PEREZ VILLAMIL. 

Madrid, May i, 1889. 

[TO BE CONTINUED.] 



SAT EST VIXISSE. 

I. 

To have lived ! 
To have felt a quickened beat 

Of the heart in spring; 
To have known that something sweet 

Moved the birds to sing; 
To have seen dim waves of heat 
O'er a field of green retreat ! 

II. 

To have found the hiding-place 

Of the wild-wood rose; 

To have held, a little space, 
Any flower that grows ; 

To have known a moment's grace 

Looking in a loved one's face. 

To have lived, to have lived ! 

III. 

Still, doth it suffice alone 
That the world is fair ? 
O'er what fields have these hands sown ? 

Are they gold or bare ? 
And though all the flowers are flown, 
If to God my heart is known, . 

Then shall I in truth be shown 
How to live, why to live ! 

MEREDITH NICHOLSON. 




1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. 39 



MONSIEUR DUVAL'S LOUIS QUATORZE. 

I. 

THE 'lusty negro hucksters, of beggarly rags and imperial gait, 
who swarm the streets of an old Southern town, saw a pretty 
sight early one morning, when they paused in front of a small 
shop to ask coaxingly, " Any nice berries dis mornin', my 
missus ?" It was a slender girl, dark-haired and dark-eyed, the 
creamy tint of her clear skin set off by a gown of dull blue stuff 
and a black velvet ribbon around her throat. She stood on tip- 
toe to reach a lump of sugar to her canary overhead, and, with 
red lips puckered, whistled clearly and melodiously several bars 
of an operetta, to which the bird listened with his head on one 
side and the depreciating air of a professional critic. Then she 
looked up and down the narrow, winding colonial Main Street, 
where the sun was just gilding the slanting roofs of shingle oppo- 
site. An unusually energetic native, hose in hand, was watering 
the ground in front of his place. The odor of moist soil came 
to her with a breath of violets from a fruiterer's stand near by. 
" Ah, the delicious air !" she said with a half-sigh of content- 
ment ; "I am glad we came here." In tKe meantime an elderly 
and obtrusively bow-legged darky had taken down the shutters 
from the one window, and there was disclosed a wonderful assort- 
ment of curls, wigs, and toys for the head, with an array of pins 
and poking-sticks of steel such as Autolycus never dreamed of. 
The crash of a falling shutter brought the girl's thoughts back to 
practical matters, and, with smiling response to the negro's " Mornin', 
missus," she tied on a white apron with a charming air of busi- 
ness, and presently disappeared, seeming to take with her half of 
the delicious freshness and fragrance of the Southern spring-time. 

If Hudson Longwood, clerk in a wholesale hardware store, 
had not slept too late this same morning, he would not have 
needed to depart from the hereditary, leisurely step which usually 
took him, with due punctuality, into the uncertain light of his 
employer's countenance. Nor would he, in his unwonted haste, 
have nearly upset a lady into the gutter, and, just escaping this, 
have carromed into the arms of a man who stood half-in and 
half-out of a door-way on Main Street. " I beg your pardon," said 
he with that fulness of courtesy which in an age of haste has 



40 MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

come to be thought provincial. The man, not answering, reeled 
from the shock and fell slowly backward. Longwood hastily 
caught him, and was then conscious of a velvet coat sleeve and 
a curious hardness and heaviness, and, looking into his victim's 
face, encountered only the unresentful stare of a pair of glass 
eyes gazing fixedly out of a waxen face. The young fellow's 
ears crimsoned warmly with the instant confusion of a man with- 
out humor at such a mistake. But no fleering, gibing youth of 
his acquaintance chanced to be passing; and inside the shop was 
no one more formidable than a dark-haired girl, who stepped 
quietly from behind the counter and, without a trace of the 
smile which he dreaded, helped him to steady the assaulted 
effigy on its mysterious foundation. " There is no harm," she 
assured him, in very pretty English, with just the faintest foreign 
accent. " It is only papa's Louis Quatorze. He has often the 
compliment of being mistaken for a person." 

Ordinarily the youth's very practical mind would have re- 
volted at this statement, in view of the dummy's preposterous- 
simper, amazing curled and powdered wig, embroidered coat, and 
gilt snuff-box, held stiffly forth in one waxen hand. But how 
could he doubt any fact so soothing to awkwardness, and so sen- 
sibly cooling to overheated ears ? Besides, he had but a moment 
for hurried excuses. Such other incoherencies as: " Pretty girl"; 
"What shop is that? must be a hair-dresser's"; "Who the deuce 
is 'papa'? and why does he call his dummy 'Louis Quatorze'?" 
may have afterwards winged their slow way through his mind, 
but were soon put to flight by a busy day with Steele & Co. 

It was only when strolling homeward in the dusk, scissors 
and knives, shovels and tongs, weights, chains, and similar ob- 
jects of art well off his mind, that the morning's incident recurred 
to him. " A. Duval, Artist," he read from the hair-dresser's sign. 
" What does ' artist ' mean a barber ? Why, that's Hatton's 
place, that's been vacant so long " ; with that intimate knowledge 
of others' affairs, and altruistic interest in them, less common in 
large cities or where the thinker's mind is devoted to generalities, 
glittering or otherwise. " I heard he had a stranger, a little 
Frenchman, for a tenant. I guess he'll get the rent of the 
off months out of him. Ah! here's my friend, the dummy." 
But Louis Quatorze's glassy stare steadily ignored any previous 
scuffling acquaintance with him, and likewise the present atten- 
tions of various dusky little shoe-blacks. 

"Das Mass Linkum w'en he git ole," said one, "an' he hair 
dun tu'n w'ite." 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. 41 

"You fool, boy!" was the retort courteous of another; " das 
a juke! Tis on'y a juke kin hab all dat gole on de coat." If 
they had confined themselves to admiring comments all would 
have been well, but shortly one of them laid a sacrilegious 
hand on the ribbon of no particular order worn by Monsieur 
Duval's anointed ; and out came a small man with white hair 
and mustache, and fierce black eyes, who swore thrice, emphati- 
cally, in his own language. Over his shoulder looked another 
pair of eyes, a little anxious but half-laughing. Longwood, 
turning suddenly on his heel, dispersed the shoe-blacks by point- 
ing out an approaching policeman, and went in. 

" A thousand thanks, sir," said Monsieur Duval, effusively. 
" I find them fatiguing, the street-boys here, the small negroes. 
They lay hands on my admirable figure, my Louis Quatorze." 

" It might be well," said Longwood, practically, " to take the 
dummy in. Then your customers could admire it as well, and it 
would not bother you with a crowd of boys. It's rather uncom- 
mon here so very fine, you know." 

" He is fine," assented M. Duval ; " he is of inestimable value. 
He has been with me for years. All the way from France he 
has come. If you think* he will be safer in-doors I shall keep 
him here," clearing out an available corner for him. " Monsieur 
is most kind. Can I do anything for him ?" 

" Some some hair-pins, I believe," vaguely. 

" Josephine, my daughter, some hair-pins for monsieur." 

Longwood now, with what he thought to be deep artfulness, 
appeared for the first time to perceive the young girl. On her 
part she met his glance with sudden recognition, and the gleam 
of amusement she had carefully avoided showing in the morning. 
Spreading before 'him various little packages, taken from a glass 
case, she said, smiling : 

" Your interest in Louis, monsieur, is doubtless in amends for 
your attempt at revolution this morning. You would not see the 
sovereign insulted whom you tried to depose." Her little jest 
was wasted on a rather obtuse youth ; but her pretty smile was 
not so, nor her soft voice, nor the graceful turn of her head. 
His unconsciously intent look caused her to assume a certain for- 
mality. 

" Will these suit monsieur ?" 

" Oh ! ah ! quite well," stammering ; " and if they should 
not please ahem ! my mother?" 

" They may be exchanged, without doubt." 

Monsieur Duval, who had now finished arranging Louis 



42 MONSIEUR DUVAI^S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

Quatorze to his satisfaction, stepped back with an enthusiastic : 
" My faith ! he looks well there in the shady corner. His 
Majesty is in no one's way now. It is an improvement, on the 
word of Aristide Franois Marie Duval !" His daughter smiled 
in sympathy, and the young fellow lingered an instant, Whatever 
may have been his idea on entering, it was, in some subtle way, 
clear to him now that circumstances here were not favorable to 
what he would have vaguely and ingenuously termed " a good 
time " with a pretty saleswoman. If he had needed further proof 
of this, it was given in the courteous bow which seemed to dis- 
miss him. 

When he reached his home the family tea was progressing ; a 
meal which in this most conservative of towns sturdily holds its 
own against the late dinner of the rest of the world. His mother 
looked up at him from the head of the table with pitying eyes, 
and a habitual nervous touch of her thin hands to the widow's 
cap she wore. " At work until now, my poor boy ? How tired 
you must be ! I suppose it is too much to expect of a Mr. 
Steele that he should have any softness for others." This with 
the restrained contempt she showed, in his absence, for her son's 
employer. It seemed to her a cruel injustice of Fate that this 
'* nobody from nowhere," as she had described him to an intimate, 
a mere capitalist, an English mechanic originally, should hold in 
thrall, for a consideration, the son of Colonel Longwood, the 
grandson of Judge Longwood. 

" My dear Sue," she had said that very day to the same in- 
timate, who was Hudson's godmother, " I never fully realized the 
contrast between former days and these until I went once into 
the place where Hudson works. There I found my poor boy " 
her voice breaking and large tears suffusing her* eyes " my son, 
Hudson, on his knees before an iron machine, rubbing it " very 
slowly and solemnly "with an oiled cloth ! Can you imagine it, 
Sue ?" 

" Maria, I can imagine it," replied Sue, divided between sym- 
pathy and a desire to laugh. " But Henry has a better place, 
you said ?" 

" Henry has just obtained one of the city offices. It seems 
too bad when those places go to people one never heard of be- 
fore the war. Our own people, who have nothing now, ought to 
be provided for." 

" I would not say so, if I were you," dryly commented Sue, 
otherwise Mrs. Willard. She had not an exalted opinion ot 
Henry's parts, and she had lived now for some years in a metro- 






1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. 43 

polis, where life is viewed from a broader plane than in her girl- 
hood's home. 

" One must not even talk freely these days, it seems," sighed 
Mrs. Longwood ; " we did not care, nor even know, before the 
war." 

" My dear Maria," interrupted Sue briskly, " you remember 
I was here for some time after the close of the war, and can 
bear witness to much heroism in endurance. But, after all, the 
present is the present. I am told," with a laugh, " that Sarah 
Hawkins remarked the other day that she had had nothing to 
eat since the war, and you know she is very, very stout." 

Echoes of this dialogue may have been still sounding in Mrs. 
Longwood's ears ; for she said, absently, as she handed Hudson his 
second ,cup of tea : " I am sure I have never had cause to doubt 
the existence of Providence ; for never has a Longwood, no, nor 
a Hudson, wanted for bread !" The inferential humor of this, 
that the mere commonplace starvation of Smith or Jones should 
never tempt one to agnosticism, was unperceived by her sons, 
who, after a reverential pause of adhesion to her sentiment, went 
on with their discussion of country sports. Henry's animated ac- 
count of a recent visit to an uncle's small Yiver plantation, the 
only one left in the family, was heard with the interest common 
to men who have spent much of their boyhood in the country. 
The elder brother was, in contrast to Hudson, a very rapid 
talker, running his words together ; which, with local peculiarities 
of pronunciation, such as "I wa'nt " for " was not"; "wite" for 
"white"; "cyart"; "gyarden," and " gyirl," made it sometimes 
difficult for a stranger to follow him. Presently he went out ; 
the mother moved away about some household task, and Hudson 
was left alone. 

He walked restlessly in and out through the high-ceilinged, 
bare-looking rooms. The house, large and old, was built in the 
colonial style, a wide hall-way through the middle, broad 
piazzas to the south. The outer surroundings looked better by 
night than by day ; the street, once fashionable, being very 
narrow and dark, and all around having sprung up dingy shanties 
and corner bar-rooms ; from the water-side, not far off, coming 
often loud, quarrelling voices and odors of fish. In-doors, though 
carefully neat, the household gods were few in number, and 
noticeably ancient and forlorn. There was some handsome oak 
panelling in the parlor, which held further a few well-worn pieces 
of horse-hair covered furniture ; a pair of heavy silver candle- 
sticks, and some bits of finely carved ivory, overlooked probably 



44 MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATOKZE. [Oct., 

by an invading army when collecting souvenirs of its Southern 
trip. A mahogany arm-chair, in which Lafayette once sat when 
visiting an ancestor, was still in evidence ; as well as several fam- 
ily portraits, one with a bayonet-thrust in the corner, and some 
fine miniatures smiling, indifferent to the family vicissitudes. 
There had been trying times when, though deeming it sacrilege, 
Mrs. Longwood would almost have treated these last in Charles 
Surface's reckless fashion, Sut here they were still ; and here were 
the old judge's books, unopened now by any one. Hudson 
thought, in an undecided way, of countless relatives whom it was 
his wont to visit evenings; and then, bringing a paper- covered 
volume from a table, sat down beside the student-lamp. It was 
some tale, perhaps by the " Duchess" or " Ouida," as those ladies 
shared between them what admiration a very practical mind had 
to bestow on literature. He presently leaned back, thinking idly 
of his mother's remark about Providence. As far as he was con- 
cerned, the past glories of his house were merely a fairy tale, 
having come to an end before he was born. He did not remem- 
ber his distinguished grandfather, nor his less distinguished father, 
or, indeed, any one belonging to him, whose name might be used 
to conjure by. Since his birth, shortly before his father's death, 
black Care, before a clandestine visitor, had become an open and 
permanent dweller in the house. The handsome coach-horses, 
with plantations, slaves, plate and china, had long ago trotted 
away into nothingness. So had strange, or possibly not strange, 
to relate all taste, ambition, or culture beyond the ordinary. But 
he had kept through a long term of hard work and self-denial a 
fine t simplicity, a single-minded honesty, a truthful directness, far 
more than ordinary. He took his square, sturdy form and pleas- 
ant, homely face across the moonlit piazza, down the steps lead- 
ing into the garden. Here was contained all the poetry he knew 
or cared for in life. This blooming, luxuriant, old-fashioned 
Southern garden was his care, and his alone. It was he who dug 
and weeded, planted and watered, and reserved to himself the 
right of giving. He carefully cut now a glowing red rose, the 
first on the tree; then called across the low fence to a negro 
passing : 

"That you, Abram ? " 

"Das me, Mass Hudson, sah ; I jess comin', praise Gord! 
from de class-meetin'." 

" What are you doing now ? " 

" I an't doin' nuttin', sah dat's to say, studdy. I does odd 
jobs fur a French gemman, Mistah Joowal, on Main Street. I 






1889.] MONSIEUR D OVAL'S Locis QUATORZE. 45 

has de rheumaticks a good deal, Mass Hudson, an' my jugglm* 
wein's werry bad ; but de Lord '11 purwide." 

" He'll provide something strong for you, Abram, if you play 
off on Mr. Duval any of those tricks I've heard of from my 
uncle/' 

" Now, Mass Hudson, enty Mass Robert know, an' enty you 
know, dat de grace ob de Lawd hab straighten up my hah't et 
he an't straighten my legs," in a lower tone. 

" Keep straight, then ; and here's a dime for tobacco." 

He thought, as he went upward with his fragrant rose, that 
in a day or two he might exchange the package of hair-pins still 
in his pocket. 

II. 

It was, in fact, but three days after that Josephine Duval, 
singing softly to herself behind a lace curtain in the rear of the 
shop, while she manipulated, mermaid-wise, locks of golden hair, 
not growing, however, on her own shapely head, looked up at 
sound of a footstep, and murmured : " It is the Frondeur." 

She pushed aside her little wooden frame, and stepped forward, 
politely attentive. 

"The hair-pins I bought, Miss Miss Duval, did not suit my 
mother. She likes them longer." 

" But certainly," producing others. 

" She asked me to get her a comb, you know a comb for 
her back hair." He usually spoke the truth, but finding the de- 
scent to Avernus delightfully easy, this unhappy youth was pre- 
paring some other invention when, by good fortune, his eye fell 
on Louis Quatorze. 

" Ah ! does your father like the new place for him better ? " 

" For Louis Quatorze ? But yes, thanks. The little blacks 
give no trouble now. I found them droll, but he did not. It 
surprises you, perhaps," with hesitation, "his care for that 
figure? " 

Then responding to his interested look : " He brought it with 
him from Paris when we came to New York. It was all he had 
left from his beautiful place, on the Rue St. Anne, after the 
Communists smashed everything. He is Royalist, you know, 
and had his clientele in the Faubourg, and he thought this 
figure had the grand air, and so and so," half-laughing, " we 
have fallen into the way of calling it Louis Quatorze." 

" From New York ? You thought you might do better here ? " 
tentatively, leaning on the glass case. 



46 MONSIEUR DUTAL'S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

" Oh ! for example, no. But my father was hurt at the 
trenches, and it left his chest weak, and the early spring in the 
North was so bad for him, the doctor said. He did well there, 
and I have been at the convent in Canada always. But he is 
old now, my father, and must rest; and I learn affairs to be 
I should say a business woman." 

" You are only two ? You will not be lonely ; or have you 
friends here ? " His curiosity had but the masculine justification 
of her sweet voice, and dark eyes, and curved lips. 

"It is lonely sometimes," with a wistful note. "We know 
no one, and I miss my friends so much, and papa his. But," 
cheerfully, "we have each other." Then bethinking herself that 
this was a stranger, and not knowing or accepting his justifica- 
tion, she handed him his purchase with her little conventual 
bow. 

An excuse could readily be found for returning soon again. 
He discovered as an interesting historical fact that his mother 
had never worn a " back-comb " in her life. It must be ex- 
changed. Josephine suggested some tortoise-shell pins, which 
proved to be somewhat higher in price. 

" I would rather not go over that price. I am economical, you 
see," with a smile ; adding, with entire simplicity, " I am obliged 
to be." 

The girl quietly sought another trifle; but looking for the 
first time with something like interest at the young fellow she 
had heretofore found ugly, and even a little common in his gray 
business suit, she saw that his teeth at least were beautifully 
white and even, his eyes frankly respectful, and his figure well 
knit, if undersized. 

(< You see," he said, moved in unwonted fashion to talk 
freely, " I must practise economy for the people before me, who 
did not have to do it. You have studied, of course, about our 
civil war at the convent ? " 

" Certainly yes." 

" Well, my people were planters, and I was born after slaves 
and all were gone, and it has been hard times here ever since." 

" But we are in sympathy ! " she cried, opening wide her 
brown eyes. " It is just alike, the case. Papa, come here. It 
is Mr.?" " Longwood " " Longwood will interest you." 

" A. Duval, Artist," had been reading his paper behind the 
lace curtain, but his soul was yearning for a sociable chat, as 
his daughter knew, and he came promptly. 

" But it is precisely alike ! " he exclaimed, with enthusiasm, 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL s Louis QUATORZE. 47 

when he understood the subject. " Our fortunes have been the 
same. Just as the enemy ruined your plantations, houses and 
all, so was my beautiful studio on the Rue St. Anne destroyed 
by those beasts of Communists. Ah, monsieur! if you could 
have seen my plate-glass windows shattered on the pavement, 
and my flasks of hair- tonic, composed by myself! I have sold 
it to princesses ! We are, truly, companions in misfortune ! " 

Hudson Longwood was sensible of much mental confusion as 
the old Frenchman stated this conviction. He had been edu- 
cated to believe the material ruin of the house of Longwood 
and its like a stupendous fact unparalleled in history, except, 
perhaps, by the fall of the Roman Empire, or the undoing ot 
the royal line of Stuart. And here was a French hair-dresser 
claiming brotherhood in misfortune ! If it was true that to have 
been rich and proportionately influential, and to become poor and 
so obscure, was as momentously unpleasant for one human being 
as for another, then certain of his ideas would require readjust- 
ment. He wondered what his mother would think of these wild 
and whirling words ; then his eyes falling on Josephine's piquant, 
softly-tinted face, he decided not to mention the subject to his 
mother for the present. Abram was now putting up the shutters 
for the night, but Monsieur Duval, enchanted to have an auditor, 
fitted by Lachesis herself to sympathize with him, suggested : 
" Fifine, my dove, perhaps monsieur would try a cigar with me 
in our little parlor." 

The young man, with a poetic lightening which amazed him- 
self, thought this " dove " more like a brilliant humming-bird, or 
one of his own fresh, dewy, deep red roses. 

"I do not smoke," he replied, "but should enjoy a little more 
talk with Mr. Duval." 

"You do not smoke? That is well; it is a bad habit," said 
the Frenchman, with the common easy approval of other people's 
abstinence from one's own small vices. 

" Not because it is injurious," explained Longwood, unfor- 
tunately candid, as his mother considered him, " but I never had 
pocket-money as a boy to buy tobacco, and now I do not care 
for it." 

" Very right, very right," said M. Duval, who had not heard 
him as he led the way through the tiny workshop, behind the 
curtain, into a small parlor in the rear, Josephine following after 
a few moments. 

" How very pretty ! " thought Longwood, entering the room, 
small, it is true, but very cheerful and cozy, after the large bare 



48 MONSIKTK DITALS Locis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

rooms to which he was accustomed. An engraving or two and 
a few aquarelles by Josephine herself brightened the walls. Her 
little sewing-table stood in one corner, her father's smoking-stand 
in another. The canary in his shining cage reposed after a day 
of song ; a knot of violets stood in the long-stemmed vase under 
a marble Psyche, poised for flight on a bracket 

"You have a garden?" he asked Josephine. 

" What you see," smilingly, pointing through the glass 
door, which opened on a square of grass with scarcely room for 
the traditional cat, and shaded by one large fig-tree. "Oh! the 
violets? I buy them sometimes from the fruiterer." 

That, at least, he thought, might be remedied. She took out 
from a tiny buffet a foreign-looking straw-covered bottle of some 
very light wine, which, with glasses, she placed where her father 
could help himself and his guest. The evening was mild, and 
she wore a gown of creamy paleness and a touch of golden yel- 
low at the throat. Her father talked about Paris and New York, 
Prussian and Communist; but what man with eyes in his head 
could listen with Josephine Duval moving about the room ! As 
she sat down afterwards to some bit of work, Abram came in, 
reporting lights out in front and all closed. He was making 
his usual shuffling bow of good-night when Longwood asked 
him: 

" Ever show Mr. Duval how you can jig, Abram ? He used 
to be the best jig-dancer on my uncle's place once, Miss Duval." 

" Mass Hudson," solemnly, " dem dar was my undegin'rate 
days. I an't bin shake a foot in de dance sence tree years nex' 
Chrismus ; sence I bin jine de chu'ch, all my singin' an' 
shoutin's fur de Lord. 'Tis mighty ha'd to keep outer de deb- 
bil's claws when you goes caperin' an' jiggin'." 

" I did not know the devil was fond of jigging," said M. 
Duval. 

" He am fond, Mistah Joowal, sah, ob ebbry t'ing dat jubi- 
lates, kase den you forgits de Lawd, an' in two shakes he got 
you ! " 

In a few minutes after his disappearance there came from 
an African church near by sounds of congregational singing. 

" I can distinguish Abram's voice," said Josephine. " It is 
wonderfully rich and mellow. I think he leads. He seems very 
pious." 

" He may be now," replied Longwood, dubiously, " but I 
ought to tell you that his plantation record was not a very good 
one. He is quite a fearful liar; I know that myself." 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. 49 

" Ah, well!" said Josephine, "he has doubtless changed." 

M. Duval spoke of something else ; he was not interested in 
the peculiarities of the African race, and Longwood found him- 
self giving animated accounts of boating, swimming, shooting ad- 
ventures in the country, making himself a little the hero ot 
these events, as Othello before him was tempted to do, by a 
pair of eyes softly interested, and slim hands lying idly on their 
work. 

"Will you sing for us, my daughter?" asked M. Duval 
later on ; and the girl put the broad ribbon of her guitar 
about her neck, and sang two or three French and English 
ballads. 

"Was not the last Spanish? You learned that at the con- 
vent, too ? " asked Longwood. 

"Not at the convent; from a a friend in New York," with a 
faint blush he did not perceive. This was a memorable evening 
for Longwood. Here shone on him picturesqueness, grace, color, 
glimpses of foreign lands, and such things as he had never known 
or even dreamed of in his life, spent within a radius of twenty 
miles. He thought of his cousins and other girls he knew, pale, 
sweet-faced, super-refined in manner, narrow in views, and con- 
trasted them with this one, so softly bright and delicately glow- 
ing. He had never realized before how gray and monotonous 
were his days. What had his ancestors done for him, or what 
would they do ? 

When he arose to go it was remembered that he had left his 
umbrella in the shop, and Josephine lighted a candle to lead the 
way there. While he sought the umbrella, she carelessly rested 
her hand with the candlestick on the shoulder of Louis Quatorze, 
whose glories were now hidden under a long gray duster. 

"He looks like a ghost," said Longwood, and in the same 
breath called out, too late : " Take care, Miss Duval ! " for the 
candle-flame, held too close to Louis' wig, had set fire to the dry 
curled hair, and it was quickly in a blaze ; the lace of her sleeve 
caught from that, and a bit of burning hair falling on her skirt still 
farther threatened her. At one bound Longwood had torn the 
covering from the dummy, had thrown it around her, and, holding 
her closely in his arms, was crushing out the flame of her sleeve. 
Was it a lifetime or a minute he held her so, both hearts beating 
fast, her startled, wide-opened eyes looking into his ? Monsieur 
Duval, whom the sudden blaze had attracted, was here now with 
a wild 

"Ah, heaven! my Louis he will melt! " And tearing off the 



50 MONSIEUR DUVAL' s Louis QUATOK/.E. [Oct., 

still burning wig, trampled it under foot. " It was, alas! his 
best," he sai^l, mournfully. " But you, my daughter, what is it? 
are you hurt? " 

" More frightened than hurt," she answered, with an attempt 
at lightness. In fact the hurt was slight, as was seen in the 
other lighted room, there being only a few blisters on the round, 
white arm, from which the tatters of sleeve fell back. She 
was curiously white though, and her eyelids drooped. " It is a 
mere nothing," she went on, smiling with pale lips, "but your 
hand" 

" Can wait," said Longwood, briefly, nor would he allow it to 
be looked at until the arm was duly bandaged ;' then his rather 
badly burned hand was tended with gentle ministrations sweetly 
smelling rose-glycerine, cool strips of linen, little touches of soft 
fingers, pitying words ; on the whole, a painful burn was a thing 
to be desired. 

He was already in the side-passage leading to the street, after 
saying good-night, when Josephine called out : " One moment, 
Mr. Longwood ; would it trouble you to mail this letter for me 
on your way ? " handing a letter, stamped and addressed. 

" Our friend Mr. Delgado, papa," she said, as though with inten- 
tion, " will think we are neglecting him only writing once a week." 

"Delgado who is Delgado?" pondered Longwood, passing 
through the silent, dimly-lighted streets. " It's a confounded ugly 
name, anyhow," he concluded with manifest injustice. 

While this young Columbus carried on his discoveries in a 
fair new land, other adventurous spirits would fain have done the 
same. A passing glimpse, an apparently unnoticed chance word 
of admiration from sister or aunt, had incited novel needs in 
, shopping on the part of young men whose daily walk took 
them past the sign of " A. Duval, Artist." With meagre results, 
for the most part, apparently; for the Lothario of the hardware 
establishment remarked one afternoon some weeks later: 

" She's a beauty that little Duval, you know, fellows ; but 
seems a little stiff distant, you know. Sort of trick, I suppose, 
to draw you on." 

"You find her distant ?" said Longwood, slowly; "she has, no 
doubt, the reserve of a lady." 

" A hair-dresser's daughter ? " replied Lothario, raising his 
eyebrows. 

" We are small clerks ourselves," replied Longwood, calmly ; 
" and let me tell you, Johnstone, that the young lady in question 
has a better education and manner, generally, than any of us." 






1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAS Louis QUATORZE. 51 

"Very fine girl, no doubt, as you seem to know," mean- 
ingly. 

" I was presented by a friend of the family," rejoined Long- 
wood, with frowning directness. The others stared, but said no 
more, Longwood's dislike to a careless discussion of refined 
women's names being known, and his muscle highly respected. 
He found Mrs, Willard with his mother that evening. 

"Well, Hudson," cried his godmother, fixing keen eyes upon 
him, " why are you neglecting me so this visit ? You used to 
like being with me." 

" My dear Sue," answered his mother for him, " he must in- 
tend his flowers to represent him, then. I never saw him get up 
so early in the mornings to arrange bouquets as since you 
came." 

" His flowers are certainly a" credit to him," was all Mrs. 
Willard said to this. The merry glance of intelligence she 
directed towards Hudson proved her a woman of discretion. 
She had had flowers from him but once. "You used to walk 
home with me from church, too," she went on, diverging, " and 
now I only see you on Sundays when I pass the Catholic 
church." 

" The Catholic church ! " exclaimed his mother, in horror. 
The Episcopal body in this venerable city was eminently old- 
fashioned in its ways. It called itself Protestant, and continued 
to protest against forms and ceremonies violently rejected a mat- 
ter of two or three centuries ago. It remembered that Lot's 
wife, hankering after what she had left, repented it ever afterward 
in briny tears. So any weak fancy on the part of younger, more 
frivolous members for pictures, crosses, incense, matins, and the 
like was gravely discouraged. To read privately about the Rev- 
erend Machonochie was all the comfort of progressive young 
" churchwomen " in this place. So Mrs. Longwood inquired 
anxiously : 

" Is it wise for you, Hudson, to expose yourself to such an in- 
fluence ? " 

" I don't know," he said simply. " I don't go in." Then, 
with unfilial thought of teasing, he said : " But you ought to like 
that church, mother; you admire everything old and firm in its 
ways." 

She was still protesting when he started with Mrs. Willard 
for her hotel. When they were safely in the street the latter 
began, abruptly : 

" I know, Hudson, that some pretty girl is causing your neg- 

VOL. L. 4 



52 MONSIEUR DUVAL' s Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

lect of me. I suppose I may not venture to inquire her name, 
or whether I know her people ? " 

" Aunt Sue," he answered, with a directness which took her 
by surprise, half-jesting as she was, " it is a girl, but you do 
not know her people at all. She is more to me than all the 
world beside ; but it is of no use," with a change of tone, " for 
she told me only to-day that she is to marry some one else." 

III. 

Being unendowed in either way, it seems easier for a man to 
acquire an enemy than a friend ; a single chance word or deed 
sufficing often for the one, while the hooks of steel necessary to 
grapple the other are liable either to miss their mark, or to sub- 
sequent rust or breakage. Certainly, Monsieur Duval, a well- 
meaning, gregarious soul, had during several weeks' residence in 
town made no intimate acquaintance, save his pastor, unless Long- 
wood might be accounted his. On the other hand, he had by 
some stray reflection on Bismarck converted his next-door neigh- 
bor, a German jeweller, into a stolid but implacable foe. To this 
Monsieur Duval was profoundly indifferent, holding the German 
nation as less than the dust beneath his feet, notwithstanding its 
chance successes. 

" I see," said he, one evening, with some unchristian satisfac- 
tion, glancing up from his paper over his glasses, " that animal 
of a Mollenhauer has been robbed. His store was broken into 
last night" 

His daughter did not hear him, for Longwood was just then 
entering, after a length of absence. Since the morning she had 
told him the fact, merely, of her engagement to Mr. Delgado, a 
retired tobacconist in New York, he had exerted sufficient self- 
control to stay away ; but to-day, all in a moment, he had re- 
marked to himself, quite unnecessarily : "I am just a man not 
an angel, and I must see her." So here he was now, with his 
hands full of roses. 

" I have much missed your flowers," she admitted, smiling 
enchantingly over the rose-blooms before she buried her face in 
their fragrant coolness. 

" It was stupid in me I might have sent I have been so 
busy," he stammered. 

" I would be sorry for Mollenhauer," pursued M. Duval, eyes 
and mind still fixed on his paper, " but a little trouble may do 
him good." 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL: s Louis QUATORZE-. 53 

" I did not properly congratulate you on your engagement 
the day you mentioned it, Miss Duval," Longwood said, in a 
low tone and stiffly, as one recites a lesson. " Let me do so 
now." 

"Thank you many times," murmured she, apparently intent 
on counting her roses. 

"Yes, it may do him good," repeated Monsieur Duval, going 
behind the screen in pursuit of a match. 

" You are very kind to take an interest," said Josephine, rais- 
ing her eyes now ; then, perceiving that some rash speech was 
trembling on Longwood's lips, she turned hurriedly to take some- 
thing out of a drawer. " It is the picture of Monsieur Delgado " 
holding it out. Longwood took the photograph, glanced at it, 
then laying it down, looked at her steadily. 

"Do you mean to tell me," he asked, in a tone low but full 
of indignation, " that that is the man ? " 

"Why?" she faltered, "he is fine-looking, I think." 

" But he is old, old as old as your father." 

" Not quite," weakly. 

" Can you tell me, on your honor, that you love that old 
man ? " 

" It is no question of love," she answered, constrained by his 
vehemence. " Mr. Delgado is wealthy, a friend of my father's, 
and very good and kind. He can take care of me. It was ar- 
ranged while I was at the Convent." 

" And you are so tame, or so cold, you will marry that old 
man without caring for him ? " still at white heat. 

" Mr. Longwood ! " Suddenly recalled to her dignity, she 
threw back her graceful head proudly : " How do you dare what 
right have you to speak so to me ? " 

" A right that you know very well the right that comes from 
loving you myself with all my heart and strength ; and Josephine, 
I do believe " Just at this point M. Duval returned through 
the rear door, while through the front came Mr. Mollenhauer and 
a policenlan. The German looked apoplectic. He seemed to see 
no one but M. Duval, whom he abruptly addressed : " I vas robt 
last night, as berhaps you know, Mistair Duval! Dey hafe took 
diamants and vatches. My cook haf seen a man get ofer your 
fence pefore de morning sunshine, und dinks he come not off your 
yart again. I don'd say notings against nopoddy, but I must look 
for my diamants." 

Monsieur Duval's fierce wrath on discovering that this meant 
a search-warrant for his premises was as nothing to Longwood 



54 MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

beside Josephine's pale face of horror. She stood speechless, with 
distended eyes, while Mollenhauer and his attendant, escorted by 
M. Duval, breathing fire and flame, went over the house. The 
young man's tact, newly born from deep devotion, taught him to 
speak no word, but merely to push towards her a chair, on the 
back of which she leaned. He quietly directed Abram, now, to 
put up the shutters and leave lights burning. The search outside 
was so short and perfunctory as to suggest to him an idea that 
the German did not really suspect Monsieur Duval, but was using 
this insulting means of paying off his grudge. They moved about 
the shop, however, looking here and there; and Louis Quatorze 
being in the policeman's way, he pushed him aside, then started 
suddenly, for he had heard a faint jingle. The dummy's velvet 
coat, made, like most articles of Paris, with artistic perfection, was 
furnished with pockets deep and wide. These it was but the work 
of a few moments to explore, and from the staring figure's dress 
were brought forth, in the midst of general consternation, several 
fine watches and chains, and four or five diamond rings. The 
rest was like an oppressive dream : Josephine's frozen misery melt- 
ing but for a moment to tell her father that the horrible mistake 
would be quickly set right, she knew ; Mollenhauer's stupefaction, 
that his charge should be justified after all. When they were 
gone Longwood took the girl's hand, hanging limply by her side: 
" Josephine, dearest, do not look like that, for God's sake ! It 
will all be cleared up to-morrow." 

"Oh!" she cried, wildly, "how could such a thing happen to 
a man so old, and always brave and true and honorable ? " 

" We will prove him so to-morrow, you will see," with a firm, 
reassuring pressure. " My uncle is a lawyer, and I am, at least, 
your friend." 

The sympathizing tone was too much for her ; she burst into 
tears. " Oh, my dear father ! and I am all alone without him " ; 
and suddenly, in her forlornness, she threw her arms around the 
waxen neck of Louis Quatorze and sobbed on his shoulder. A 
furious, irrational desire to rend his pink-and-white Majesty 
piece-meal took possession of Longwood. It was hard that her 
tears must be shed on that irresponsive breast when he stood 
there ! 

"Josephine, sweetest" probably Mr. Delgado's betrothed did 
not hear " oh, my dear love, don't ! You break my heart ! " 
He took her hand once more, kissing it with chivalrous devo- 
tion worthy of his courtly grandfather, this youth, who had often 
bluntly declared he "saw no use or sense in kissing a woman's 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL! s Louis QUATORZE. 55 

hand." When she had recovered, in a measure, her self-control, 
he left her for a moment to speak to Abram. 

" Abram, can your wife come here to stay with the young 
lady to-night ? " 

" I sorry, Mass Hudson, but we gwine to a settin' up ; an' 
we'se de bes' shouters dere. 'Tis too bad 'bout Mistah Joowal, 
but I done yere him say 'tis a good t'ing fur de Dutchman." 

Longwood's resolution was taken. " Miss Duval," he said, 
quietly re-entering, " will you do us the honor of spending the 
night at my mother's ? You can't stay here alone. The bur- 
glars may be still in the neighborhood." 

" Oh ! " she said, raising a tear-stained face he longed to kiss, 
"your mother would be surprised. She does not know me." 

With steady persistence he overruled objections ; sent her 
masterfully for her hat, saw to the fastenings, and half an hour 
afterwards was presenting her to his mother with a grave, 
" Mother, let me introduce Miss Duval. Her father and her- 
self are strangers here, and he being detained from her to-night, 
I have persuaded her to accept your hospitality." 

The girl's beauty and grace added a little misgiving to Mrs. 
Longwood's secret amazement ; but her training enabled her to 
welcome the unexpected guest with at least a show of cordi- 
ality. 

" No trouble at all, my dear," she assured her, and, at a hint 
from her son of Miss Duval's fatigue, led the way to a spare 
room. 

" I knew I could trust your kind heart, mother," said her 
son, on her return, forestalling searching inquiry. " Her father's 
being away left poor Miss Duval very desolate this evening ; 
and they are strangers." 

"Yes," doubtfully, "but who is she? I don't know them." 

" Her father is a fine old fellow, a Frenchman, a ahem ! 
hair-dresser, but," quickly, on sight of the gathering cloud 
" they are only here for a while, and the young lady is engaged 
to a wealthy retired merchant in New York." 

It was as well, however, that Mrs. Longwood's prejudices were 
not too heavily taxed ; her hospitality being needed only until 
the next evening, which restored Monsieur Duval to freedom and 
to his daughter's arms. This happy result was due to Long- 
wood's exertions. He might not have found courage to ask the 
necessary holiday but for a letter in his pocket just received 
from an intimate friend in the West, laying siege there success- 
fully to fortune. 



56 MONSIEUR DUVAI^S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

" I have my own moderate capital," he wrote, " and what I 
need in a partner are the energy, industry, and honesty I know 
that you have." With this in view, it was easier to confront 
Steele & Co.'s surprised reluctance; and the day was spent in 
novel detective work. There was his uncle to consult, Mollen- 
hauer's cook to interview, a clue obtained through one watch 
which was missing and traced, and Longwood^s suspicions, all 
along pointing to Abram, were confirmed. That fallen pillar of 
the church, being enforced to confession, owned that since Louis 
Quatorze had been his charge, "to uncover in the morning, dust 
off and enwrap again at night, the innocent dummy had fre- 
quently been an unconscious receiver of such unconsidered trifles 
as might be conveniently hidden on his august person, until re- 
moval was safe. Upon this Monsieur Duval was shortly liber- 
ated, and Abram, with many appeals, led off to execution. 

Was it his absence, Longwood wondered, which caused the 
little shop to be unopened at the usual hour for business? It 
was still closed when he approached at twilight, and he then 
entered the narrow gateway, and, walking swiftly along the side 
passage, tapped at the parlor door. 

" Come in," said Josephine's voice, and when he went in 
he found her alone, looking pale and dispirited. He asked im- 
mediately : 

" Is there anything wrong ? " 

" It is papa that is sick to-day in bed, but not very ill, I 
think. Only the shock and his excitement anger, I would say 
that such a thing could happen to him." 

"May I see him?" 

" But certainly ; he wants to thank you. Will you take the 
trouble to go up ? " 

In half an hour he came down, saying cheerfully: "You 
need not fret about your father; he will be all right in a 
day or two. It was just the excitement, and he not being strong. 
I think I have done him good. He likes to talk to me." 

"Of course," gratefully, "you have been always so kind." 

" In course of time, I do believe," very deliberately, " he 
might like me as well as he does Mr. Delgado." 

She blushed crimson, but only said: 

" He told you we were going back ? He cannot bear this 
place after yesterday." 

" That is not just, when only that rascal Abram was to blame. 
But I do not mind. I am going away myself. Will you let me 
write a letter here ? " 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL' s Louis QUATORZE. 57 

"But certainly," with some curiosity, arranging pen and paper 
on a small table. 

Then he went quite close to her and took her soft hands 
firmly in his own work-hardened ones. " I want you to write a 
letter first" 

" A letter ? What letter? " 

" Josephine, my letter will be in acceptance of a favorable 
opening in the West, and I want you and your father to go with 
me ; but first you must write to Mr. Delgado, and ask him to give 
you back your word, because you have met some one you really 
love ! " 

" Mr. Longwood ! " trying to withdraw her hands. 

"You need not write it, then, if you will look me straight in 
the eyes and say you do not love me." 

She drew herself up proudly, and commenced : " I do not" 
Then her eyes falling under his gaze, she could only hide them 
on his arm, murmuring : " Oh ! I do, I do ! " 

After this things went badly for Mr. Delgado, retired tobac- 
conist, of New York. And if " A. Duval, Artist," had been gifted 
with the kind of eyes disclaimed by Sam Weller, he might have 
seen two letters written in his little parlor with varied, interest- 
ing, and picturesque interruptions. 

It is probable that Longwood's irrepressible buoyancy of as- 
pect might, in any case, have attracted maternal attention ; but 
as usual with him, the straightforward way seemed the best 

" Mother," he said, at the first opportunity, " I have had a 
letter from Wilson, in Natoka, offering me a partnership in his 
growing business. I would not have thought of it if Henry's 
salary did not make you both very comfortable now. As it is, I 
have accepted." 

" O Hudson ! I shall miss you so. And you will miss the 
dear old ways here and our own people so much. But, if it is 
for your good " 

" Yes, mother," more slowly, " and you will be glad to know 
that I need not be entirely lonely, as I am thinking of being 
married soon." 

"O Hudson! to whom?" 

" To Miss Duval," very clearly ; " the young lady who was 
here the other night She was engaged then, but it is broken 
off, and she is to marry me." 

A crash as the quaint old cup she held fell unheeded. 

" A stranger ! a nobody ! tradesfolk ! One of us to marry so, 
and so many nice girls among our own people !" she mourned, as 



58 MONSIEUR DUVAL'S Louis QUATORZE. [Oct., 

one without hope. Hudson she knew too \vell to attempt to 
dissuade. 

Henry could only give the faint comfort " that it wasn't quite 
so bad's if they were goin' to live here." 

In her despair she resolved on a bold step ; and in the course 
of the day Josephine was surprised by a visit from Mrs. Long- 
wood. Her smiling welcome was acknowledged only by a 
haughtier bearing of the widow's thin, black-clad form. 

" I will sit a moment, thank you," accepting the offered chair ; 
then without farther preface: "My son informs me, Miss Duval, 
that he has made an offering of his hand to you. He may not 
have told you that such a marriage would not have my approval, 
nor that of any of his people. We think it most unsuitable/' 

"Your disapproval would grieve me, but how * unsuitable,' 
madam ? " color mounting to her cheeks. 

"Unsuitable," repeated her visitor, impatiently, "that one of 
the Longwood family, settled here in colonial times, and always 
wealthy and influential, should marry a foreign hair-dresser's 
daughter." 

Josephine's color deepened into crimson, but she answered 
gently : " I know from Mr. Longwood himself that all that has 
been gone a long time. Our circumstances are alike, for my 
father was rich and has now but a small income." 

" Your father ! " with cold surprise. " I hope that you do 
not compare my son to him ! " 

" No, madam," replied Josephine firmly, " I do not To be 
a hardware clerk, like Mr. Longwood, may be higher than my 
father's business, though he was always head. In other things 
looks and manners forgive me, I find my father much more dis- 
tinguished ! " Mrs. Longwood winced. " I knew, as a child, 
people of rank in Paris ; to keep up prestige they needed wealth, 
or remarkable personal gifts. It must be more so in this 
republic, where there are no established castes. Without any of 
these things, or special culture " here came an expressive 
gesture. 

" It is to be supposed," icily, " that the society my son is ac- 
customed to would unfit him for your friends." 

"Pardon me," still gently but very steadily, "I have been 
carefully educated, yet I have not heard, before coming here, the 
name of Mr. Longwood or his friends. Again, my father and his 
few friends nearly all speak two or three languages, are musical, 
paint or draw, have all travelled more or less, discuss the affairs 
of the world. I do not find these things with Mr. Longwood." 



1889.] MONSIEUR DUVAL' s Louis QUATORZE. 59 

Here Mrs. Longwood winced again. " You will, perhaps, ask 
me then, why, why ? " This was turning the tables indeed ; but 
Mrs. Longwood sat mute, as though stunned. " Ah ! " said the 
girl, with a soft illumination of her beautiful face, "he is so 
good and true, and strong and manly, that I yes, I love him ! " 
When, after the little foreign bow, Mrs. Longwood found herself 
once more in the street, there was left on her troubled mind an 
impression that this was at least a lovely and spirited creature. 

" O Sue ! " she cried piteously, seeking Mrs. Willard later, 
" can you do nothing for Hudson in this infatuation ! And what 
is still worse, I understand he has met the Catholic priest here 
and will soon join the Church of Rome." 

" I can go and see his sweetheart, Maria," answered Mrs. Wil- 
lard. " He has been with me, and I have promised to 'meet him 
there." 

So this forlorn hope failed her too. It was dusk as Mrs. 
Willard hastened to keep her appointment. The hair-dresser 
seemed to be in darkness, save a faint glimmer from Monsieur 
Duval's room. The lady stepped along the side passage, smiling 
at the novelty. The parlor door was ajar, and as no one 
answered her tap she entered. A murmur of voices drew her 
attention to the door opening on the shop, which, with the lace 
curtains, was wide open. A candle held by a young girl lit up 
her face of delicately glowing beauty, while her fresh voice 
insisted: 

"Yes, sir; you must do homage to Louis. Was not he the 
cause of it all ? " And there was the prosaic Hudson, while Jo- 
sephine's laughter rang out, bowing lowly to a most astonishing 
dummy, and saying: "I thank your Majesty." 

"And I too, sire," said the girl, with a magnificent curtsy. 
" Permit me to touch your gracious hand," with a pretence of 
kissing the fingers which held the snuff-box. 

" I call that a waste of material," said the youth sternly ; 
and " Take care ! " cried Mrs. Willard, involuntarily, at the same 
moment, for Louis' wig was once more in danger. 

" I suppose," she remarked later, when Josephine's blush had 
subsided, "that when I visit you two some day in the West I 
shall find reverently enshrined in your fine mansion Louis Qua- 
torze." 

"I am not sure," said Longwood, most ungratefully; "he has 
played his part, and does not belong to the present. He might 
retire now." 

JEANIE DRAKE. 



6o [Oct., 



NOT from the hot flames of sorrow 

Cooled she her heart in God, 
Not from a sight of sin's horror 

Sought she a refuge in God, 
Not from the mad whirl of pleasure 

Turned she famished to God, 
Not from love's dear buried treasure 

Mounted her soul up to God, 
Not from the pain of sad loving 

Less than " an image of God," 
Not from the shame of first proving 

Men false to her and to God : 
But all in her youth and beauty 

Turned she with joy unto God, 
Rapturously loving each duty 

That brought a message from God. 
A creature who longed for the gladness 

Intended for men by God, 
And found that the world in its madness 

Knew not that joy was in God. 
Vowing her life richly freighted 

With beautiful thoughts of God ; 
Forgetting, in love, that she'd weighted 

Her youth with the cross of God. 
And her cheek and her brow have brightened 

In the radiant glances of God, 
And her smile and step have lightened 

With some of the swiftness of God. 
And her soul in tender communing 

Expands like a flower in God, 
A lily whose exquisite blooming 

Is fair to the vision of God. 



MRS. JOHN J. LITTLETON. 

Nashville, Tenn. 






1889.] ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH. 61 



ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH AND CLEMENT 
BRENTANO. 

A THOUGHTFUL student of history is often made to pause in 
order to remark what seem strange instrumentalities in the pro- 
duction of great events, and in the kinds of commemoration 
which rescues them from oblivion. It has pleased God at various 
times, and at times when such manifestations were least expected, 
to show mankind how infinitely above their greatest he may lift 
up one of his least : as in the case of David the stripling, the 
maiden Esther, and that long list of weaklings who by such 
election have become the heroes and heroines of the world. We 
have been led into this reflection after reading the Life of Anne 
Catherine Emmerich, by Very Rev. E. R. Schmoger, of whose 
revelations Goerres in his Mystique says: "I know of none richer, 
more profound, more wonderful, and more thrilling." In some 
respects these are the most interesting that have been made in 
many centuries. In infancy, before she had learned to utter 
words, this woman understood entirely the significance of the 
feasts and holidays of the church ; afterwards recalled with full 
accuracy her consciousness and the chief incidents of her baptism; 
and the first words ever spoken by her mouth, when in the 
second year of her age, were those of the Lord's Prayer. At four 
years her habit was to rise out of sleep in the depths of the 
night, and, her knees upon a little block that she had set beneath 
a simple picture of the Blessed Virgin and the Infant Saviour, 
spend much time in prayers, of some of which these are exam- 
ples : " Ah, dear Lord ! let me die now, for when children grow 
up they offend thee by great sins " ; and, " Rather let me die 
than live to offend my God ! " Already, and in answer to her 
own prayer for an expiatory life, she had begun to impose upon 
herself penalties in behalf of the sufferings and faults of children 
of her acquaintance. "I knew," she said afterwards, "that God 
never sends affliction without a design. And if these afflictions 
weigh so heavily upon us at times, it is because, as I reasoned 
with myself, no one is willing to help the poor sufferer to pay 
off his debt. Then I begged to be allowed to do so. I used to 
ask the Infant Jesus to help me, and I soon got what I wanted." 
These prayers were uttered day and night, in labor and pastime, 
for her father was poor, and, although small and delicate herself, 



62 ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH [Oct., 

she had to do much of even the hardest work in the field. Yet 
she had the gayety inseparable from innocent childhood, and at 
times was irritable and whimsical like the rest of her age, and it 
is marvellous how even in babyhood she exaggerated her infirmi- 
ties, suffered for them, and tried to subdue them. At five she 
received assurance that she was to become a religious. Here is 
an account of the visitation : 

?* I was only a little child, and I used to mind the cows a most trouble- 
some and fatiguing duty. One day the thought occurred to me, as indeed 
it had often done before, to quit my home and the cows, and go serve 
God in some solitary place where no one would know me. I had a 
vision in which I went to Jerusalem, where I met a religious in whom I 
afterwards recognized St. Jane of Valois. She looked very grave. At her 
side was a lovely little boy about my own size. St. Jane did not hold 
him by the hand, and I knew from that that he was not her child. She 
asked me what was the matter with me, and when I answered she com- 
forted me, saying : 'Never mind. Look at this little boy. Would you 
like him for your spouse?' I said, 'Yes.' Then she told me not to be 
discouraged, but to wait till the little boy would come for me, assuring me 
that I would be a religious, although it seemed quite unlikely then. She 
told me that I should certainly enter the cloister, for nothing was impos- 
sible to my affianced. Then I returned to myself and drove the cows home. 
From that time I looked forward to the fulfilment of this promise. I had 
this vision at noon. Such things never disturbed me. I thought every one 
had them. I never knew any difference between them and real intercourse 
with creatures." 

It interests deeply to contemplate this little child of humble 
parents, gay among the gay, in social intercourse wilful, taking 
with submission rebukes, yet in this, while accorded by Heaven 
visions, interpretation of prophecies, sometimes led along the 
places in Jerusalem and Bethlehem where the God- Man had been 
born and reared, where he had worked, suffered, died, risen from 
the dead, and ascended to his Father, and in the simplicity of 
childhood wondering at none of these things, believing that she 
had seen nothing outside the experience of the children of her 
acquaintance. 

At twelve, hired as a feeder and tender of cows to a kinsman 
of her father, faithfully, cheerfully minding her work, yet she 
began to take advanced views of her vocation, wearing next her 
person a coarse woollen garment in prelude of the expiatory life 
which she was destined to lead. After three years, taken home 
while making preparations to be put with a seamstress, she made 
known to her parents her hopes of a religious life. They opposed 
these with much hostility, urging among many other considera- 
tions that a poor, ignorant peasant girl like her was most unfit for 












1889.] AND CLEMENT BRENTANO. 63 

such a vocation. Her answer was: "God is rich; though I have 
nothing, he will supply." How much more strong often is child- 
hood than manhood! stronger because, not taught in the experi- 
ence of disappointment, it trusts undoubting the promises given 
to its aspirations, and boldly advances along its appointed way. 
Not that this child was not to suffer from the postponement of 
these aspirations, but to suffer without complaint, even with 
thankfulness. In those years, from seventeen to twenty, while in 
the employ of a mantua-maker for the sake of earning sufficient 
money for admission into a convent, she let her wage week by 
week go to the poor instead of being laid away in accordance 
with her purpose. But already had she realized that superior to 
the reception of heavenly visitations ; superior to the gift of 
looking back and forth over time and space, tracing the events 
of the distant past and future in countries far and near in the 
sequence wherein they had occurred and were to occur ; superior 
to these and to all human hopes and endeavors was charity, and 
that whatever apparent loss befalls the purest, loftiest aspiration 
from delaying in order to answer the claims of charity was not a 
loss, but a gain, and the more precious because of the temporary 
disappointment in these lesser things for which greater were will- 
ingly deferred. In the midst of such alternations, all in the line 
of virtue and piety, these three years were spent, It was indeed 
a sign of the extraordinary mission to which she had been called 
that when her application without a dowry was made to the 
Augustinians of Borgen, was favorably entertained, and she en- 
tered among them with a thankful heart, beholding the laxity 
in the spiritual state of the community, she took her leave, and 
again, utterly poor in fortune, and now become as poor in bodily 
health, she looked about her for another house wherein her 
yearnings might be realized. First she asked for the Trappistines 
of Darfeld. Answered by her confessor that in conscience he 
could not consent for one so frail of body to join an order so 
severe, she turned to the Clares of Miinster. The condition 
imposed by them was that she should first learn the organ, and 
thus be able to render some compensation for the absence of a 
dowry; and although she had for music a dear love and a deli- 
cate ear, she never could acquire the art. It is pitiful to hear 
the reason. To Dean Overberg, who years afterwards became 
her guide, she said : 

"As to learning the organ, there was no question of such a thing. I 
was a servant of the family " (oae Soentgen, an organist of Coesfeld). "I 
learned nothing. Hardly had I entered the house when I saw their misery, 



64 ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH [Oct., 

and I sought only to relieve it. I took care of the house. I did all the 
work. I spent all I had saved, and I never learned to play. Ah ! I learned 
in that house what hunger is ! We were often eight days together without 
bread! The poor people could not get trust for even seven pence. I 
learned nothing. I was their servant. All that I had went, and I thought 
I should die of hunger. I gave away my last chemise. My good mother 
pitied my condition. She brought me eggs, butter, bread, and milk, which 
helped us to live. One day she said to me : ' You have given me great 
anxiety, but you are still my child! It breaks my heart to see your vacant 
place at home, but you are still my child ! ' I replied : ' May God reward 
you, dear mother ! I have nothing left ; but it is his will that I should 
help these poor people. He will provide. I have given him everything. 
He knows how to help us all.' Then my good mother said no more." 

We must uncover our heads and bate our breath in the pre- 
sence of one who can act and speak like this ! Be it known 
besides that at that very time she was sought in marriage by a 
young man regarded by her parents as well fitted in all respects to 
be her husband. But the thought of such a union was appalling 
to her very heart of hearts. Thus to serve and thus to want 
while waiting for the accomplishment of a purpose, a divine mis- 
sion that had been longed for since earliest childhood, to see her 
hopes deferred from year to year, and yet never to complain or 
think of yielding up, were evidences of the preternatural as irrefrag- 
able as ever have been presented in the history of mankind. For 
was not her life to be a life of expiation ? She had been born 
in a period wherein, particularly in Germany, little interest was 
felt in the existence of a supernatural vocation ; when young 
women entered convents in the main from considerations far 
below those which might be expected to lead even to a very 
earnest desire for such a manifestation of the divine will, and that 
indifference this poor girl, of a poor family, frail, uncultured, and 
undowered, must expiate. Her reception at last (after vain 
applications at several religious houses) by the Augustinians of 
Diilmen was due to the fact that the daughter of Soentgen, the 
organist, who was a good musician, applied for admission at the 
same time, and her father, influenced by gratitude to his bene- 
factress, and in admiration of her virtues, would not allow his 
daughter to enter except she could take along with her this dear 
companion. Well may that be called the crowning act which, 
towards the end of her sojourn with Soentgen's family, occurred 
one day at noon-tide as she was kneeling in the Jesuits' church 
at Coesfeld, when the Royal Bridegroom, in the form of a radiant 
youth, presenting himself, and holding in one hand a garland, 
she chose that which he simultaneously presented in the other 



1889.] AND CLEMENT BRENTANO. 65 

a crown of thorns and when laid gently on her brow, lifting 
both her hands she pressed it firmly down, and afterwards car- 
ried with her to the grave the glorious stigmata, which over and 
over again were to be seen by all her acquaintance. " Treat me 
as the last of all, and the least of all," she asked of the superi- 
oress on the day of her reception, and her request was gratified. 

But for the never-failing confidence which we must place in 
the Creator while fitting those of his creatures whom he most 
loves for their specially chosen work, we should feel too much 
pain in the contemplation of the sufferings endured by this girl 
during her novitiate ; hard work, the subject of unresting con- 
tempt and detraction, made the victim of grossest slander, repri- 
manded in full chapter on baseless accusations, apparently hated 
for her physical infirmities, her poverty, and her virtues, made to 
ask upon her knees pardon of her associates for offences of which 
she ought to have been known to be guiltless, and afterwards 
denied the freedom of proving herself guiltless, yet sometimes 
flinging herself down before the Blessed Sacrament and crying : " I 
will persevere, even if I should be martyred ! " It seems almost 
incredible what she told long afterwards to the man who was to 
be the chief historian of her career. " In spite of these trials, I 
have never been so rich interiorly, never so perfectly happy as 
while there, for I was at peace with God and man. When at 
work in the garden the birds perched on my head and shoulders, 
and we praised God together." 

When the time of her novitiate expired, and the conventual 
chapter sat in deliberation upon her case, no reason could be 
assigned for her dismissal other than that from her bodily weak- 
ness she must become in time a burden on the house. In fine, 
she -was voted to remain, being then in her twenty-eighth year. 
"After my profession my parents became reconciled to my 
being a religious, and my father and brother came to see me 
and brought me two pieces of linen." 

During the remaining years previous to the closing (in 1811) 
of the convent of Agnetenberg, the same repugnance and neglect 
attended her. It is of human nature to grow wearied in time at 
the sight of a frail, diseased creature that will neither grow strong 
nor die. " How was it," was asked of the sisters by authority, 
" that Sister Emmerich was not loved in the convent, and why 
was she so persecuted ?" They could only answer by admitting 
the facts and disclaiming knowledge of any reason. The mother 
answered : " It seems to me that this was the cause : Many of 
the sisters were jealous of the particular interest the Abbe Lam- 



66 ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH [Oct., 

bert took in her, and some thought her ill-health made her a 
burden on the community." The excellent old man referred to, 
an exile from France, her fast friend during ten years, fatherly, 
meaning to be tender, but never comprehending the greatness of 
her mission, discouraged her relation of the visions that came to 
her, called them mere meaningless dreams, yet bore her from 
the dismantled convent to the house of a widow at Diilmen. 
After the death of Father Chrysanthe, who had been her con- 
fessor, Father Limberg, a Dominican, then and since the suppres- 
sion of his monastery in Miinster residing in that village, came 
into that relation to the nun, and he also followed in the line of 
discouragement. Even while the blood was flowing from her 
stigmata the abbe, who had been chaplain to the convent at 
Agnetenberg, had said to her : " You must not think yourself a 
Catherine of Siena " ; and he cautioned the Dominican in these 
words, " Father, no one must know this ! Let it rest . between 
ourselves ; otherwise it will give rise to talk and to annoyance." 
And this seer of heavenly sights, in her humility, rejoiced in the 
suppression, and continued so to rejoice until the command- came 
from heaven to her to let the glorious things that had been com- 
municated to her be made known to the world. 

It comes not within the limits of a magazine article to more 
than allude to the ecclesiastical commission instituted by Von 
Droste-Vischering, Vicar- General of Munster, afterwards renowned 
as Archbishop of Cologne, with the co-operation of Dean Over- 
berg, for the investigation of the rumors concerning these appari- 
tions. Persons outside the Catholic Church must wonder if they 
but understood how rigidly careful is the church in such investi- 
gations. It is painful to read of the many various, ingenious, ap- 
parently pitiless tests to which this girl was subjected. "The 
physicians," said the report, " have been more unreserved than 
ecclesiastics in pronouncing the case miraculous, as the principles 
of science furnish more certain rules for their guidance." Yet, 
after such irrefragable evidence, Father Limberg felt or seemed to 
feel it his duty to treat her as any other religious ; and it grieved 
her if on any occasion he relaxed the sternness which it was his 
habit to employ, to which in her spiritual life or elsewhere she 
was used to yield most passive obedience. It is another evidence 
of such caution on the part of the church that henceforth, dur- 
ing the succeeding years, while every one was in continual ex- 
pectation of her death, no effort was made to preserve the reve- 
lations that were being imparted. She knew full well what was 
to be done. To the eminent Dr. Wesener, who attended her long, 






1889.] AND CLEMENT BRENT A NO. 67 

she said (September 26, 1815) : "I have yet another task to ac- 
complish before my death. I must reveal many things before I die." 
Again : " It is certain that not for myself do I lie here and suffer. 
I know why I suffer ! Publish nothing about me before my 
death." And again : " I know indeed why I lie here. I know it 
well, and last night I was again informed of it" 

For three years longer she lay there in the silent endurance 
of pains of which it appalls even to hear the mention, and waited 
and waited for one to come from afar. She had not been told 
his name nor the place from which he was to come, but for 
years she had been familiar with the face he was to wear, the 
tones in which he was to speak, the ways he was to lead in 
doing the work that he would be sent to perform, and the trials to 
which she was to be subjected in^ relation which, had it pleased 
God to answer her prayers in that behalf, gladly would she have 
avoided. Already she had given him a new name, The Pilgrim, 
a name by which in all her speeches he was designated. At 
last he came, and his coming was almost as surprising to the 
simple folk of that rural community as that of Tyrtaeus, the 
elegist, whom the Athenians, answering the request of the .Lace- 
daemonians for a general in their war with the Messenians, sent 
to them in derision. In Frankfort-on-the-Main had been born a 
man who, now forty years of age, was numbered among the il- 
lustrious men of letters in Germany. He was a novelist and a 
poet, an ardent disciple of the Romantic School, which 'had been 
making a long, patriotic struggle to throw off the yoke of the 
classicism of France. He had been a thoughtful student of Dante, 
Calderon, and Shakspere, and had attained much fame by his 
published works, Ponce de Leon, The Founding of Prague, The 
Fair Annerl, The History of Caspar the Brave, and other works, 
among which was The Boy's Wonderhorn, a collection of old 
popular German songs, which have had a most salutary influence 
upon the modern lyric poetry of his native country. This book 
he had written in connection with Arnim, another well-known 
author, who was a Protestant. He was not objected to on this 
account by his colleague, who, "a Catholic in name, like thousands 
high and low then in that region, cared not enough how a 
Catholic was bound to think, and perhaps as little how to act. 
Lately, however, a change had come over him, and having made 
a general confession, he felt himself, although not very definitely 
it appeared, submitting to be led back to some sort of practice of 
the religious duties which theretofore he had been neglecting. 
One day, apparently by accident, having been shown a letter in 

VOL. L. 5 



68 ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH. [Oct., 

which was related some things of Anne Catherine Emmerich, he 
became considerably interested. It was yet some years before he 
was to meet her. Finding himself one day in the vicinity of 
Diilmen, accepting an invitation of a friend, he went to the house 
wherein she dwelt, and, with the exception of a brief interval 
after a first sojourn of some months, there he remained during 
six years. This was Clement Brentano, whose name must be 
for ever associated closely with hers, for our knowledge of whose 
wonderful career we are indebted to him mainly. Fascinated by 
the sight and conversation of the invalid, he lingered and lingered, 
with purposes far short of being definite in his own mind, but 
vaguely pointing in the direction of a poem in which he was to 
immortalize in song the dreams of this most strange dreamer. 
His coming, not at all understood by himself, yet foreseen and 
waited for by her, served to give free vent to the thoughts and 
the words which had been pent within her own being by the in- 
ability of one of her directors to comprehend her and the tim- 
idity of the other, and it was not until her spiritual direction had 
been assumed by the wise and gifted Dean Overberg that Bren- 
tano could become what he had been sent there to become, that 
and nothing more, . Anne Catherine's amanuensis. A strange 
person for such a task ! A high-bred poet, ardent, restless, wil- 
ful, on whose brow was many a laurel-leaf won in the fields of 
poesy, came to this poor abode, into the chamber of an uncul- 
tured invalid, having to pass " through a barn and some old 
store-rooms before reaching the stone steps leading to her room." 
There he was to stay to the end of recording, what time out of 
other multifold engrossments she could give to their utterance, her 
rapturing words until death should put an end to the revealings 
she was to disclose. How happy she was now ! " I am amazed 
at myself," she said to him one day not long after his coming, 
" speaking to you with so much confidence, communicating so 
much that I cannot disclose to others. Yet from the first glance 
you were no stranger to me. Indeed, I knew you before seeing 
you. In visions of my future I often saw a man of very dark 
complexion sitting by me writing, and when you first entered the 
room I said to myself, ' Ah ! there he is ! ' ' 

The poet, dreaming of the high part that himself was to play 
before the world in the poem that he was to create upon a 
theme so unexpectedly found, was delighted with his finding. In 
letters written to friends he described her as a " flower of the 
field ; a bird of the forest whose inspired songs are wonderfully 
significant, yes, even prophetic." He believed that "being sick unto 






1889.] AND CLEMENT BRENTANO. 69 

death, living without nourishment," her state " might be improved 
if some change could be made in her exterior condition," as the 
having a good servant who might " relieve her of domestic cares, 
and ward off everything that could give her anxiety." Fain 
would he have had her removed from that dull town which " may 
have attractions for simple souls." He was too simple-hearted 
himself to indulge any feeling like contempt or any other than a 
sort of poetical compassion when he wrote the following : 

"It is a little agricultural town without art, science, or literature. No 
poet's name is a household word here. In the evening the cows are milked 
before their owner's doors. The feminine employments of the gentler sex are 
carried on in the fields and gardens, preparing the flax, spinning the thread, 
bleaching the linen, etc. Even the daughters of well-to-do citizens dress no 
better than servants. Not a romance is here to be had." 

Anne Catherine knew and she felt not only that her visions 
were to be recorded by this man, but that through her influence 
he, a man of genius and celebrity, who, in some sense a Catholic, 
yet found little peace in believing, might have his disquietude 
removed to return no more. Not long before he had said : " I 
feel that if I seek peace in the Catholic Church I shall find my- 
self in such perplexity and embarrassment as to render my 
position worse than before." Yet it was most touching after- 
wards to see how blessed to his being were the influences of the 
sufferer into whose confidence he had been led. " The blessed 
peace, the deep devotion of her child-like countenance awoke in 
me a keen sense of my own unworthiness, of my guilty life. In 
the silent solemnity of this spectacle" (she was in prayer) " I 
stood as a beggar ; and, sighing, I said in my heart, ' Thou pure 
soul, pray for me, a poor, sinful child of earth who cannot pray 
for myself!' I feel that my mission is here, and that God has 
heard the prayer I made to give me something to do for his 
glory that would not be above my strength !" 

Henceforth the relations between these persons have an interest 
more peculiar, it seems to me, than ever have been known to 
exist between two friends. Transported with admiration for the 
woman and her wonderful graces, yet the native ardor, wilful- 
ness, and impatience that he could not entirely yield impelled 
him to many an act which put upon her much distress, and at 
one time brought about a separation. But through the prudent 
management of Dean Overberg he was allowed, greatly to her 
happiness, to return and there remain until the last, and in spite 
of his continued waywardness, and his repeated expressions of 



;o ANNE CATHERINE EMMERICH. [Oct., 

anger and disgust that his friend had to be interrupted so often 
in her narrations by the poor, dull, uncongenial people around 
her, before whose claims she put not even the ecstatic beholdings 
that in ever moving sequence were before her eyes, he kept 
watch by her side. Sometimes she reprimanded him with a 
gentleness beautiful as one of her loveliest visions, smiling at his 
too anxious wish to put unneeded polish upon her rude Westpha- 
lian dialect, and to plant flowers more than fruits in his garden ; 
yet obeying the heavenly monitor's injunction to persevere, she 
pointed before his astonished eyes to scenes which, far beyond all 
dreamings of philosopher or poet, are, perhaps, the most extra- 
ordinary in all the history of the militant church. That Clement 
Brentano was elected to record these visions is as patent as that 
Anne Catherine Emmerich was elected to behold them. 

And what visions they were ! Take The Dolorous Passion 
of Christ. Published but a brief while 'ago, what has it done 
already in holding back an age so prone, outside the Catholic 
Church, to unbelief! It is the most imposing monument to the 
church that, at least for many a century, has been erected. The 
great things inscribed upon it would have been far more numer- 
ous, though not more splendid, but that the chosen servant of 
the Most High never failed to remember that among all gifts 
coming down from heaven was charity. Upon that poor bed for 
years and years she lay, her wretched body always racked with 
pains beyond the cure of human physician, and in the midst of 
sights of ineffable beauty and significance, often denying herself 
to the Pilgrim eager to catch and throw them upon his canvas, 
but never, not one time, to the poor, the unlettered, the lame, the 
outcast, who came, some for relief, some from sympathy, some 
from curiosity belonging to the vulgar. Sometimes one is moved 
to smile at the frettings- of Brentano, thoroughly honest as he was, 
at these frequent interruptions of his work by the importunities of 
the ragged rabble of acquaintance and kinsfolk. Yet such out- 
bursts did not let him relax. The charm that at first had fasci- 
nated held him bound to the last. He who had come a seeker 
for a theme of poesy, remained a disciple ; alternately docile and 
argumentative, but finally yielding to irresistible influences, and 
accepting them with gratitude. Often she had chided him, but in 
Words of affection: "The Pilgrim prays nervously, mixing things 
quickly. I often see evil thoughts running through his head; 
they peer around like strange, ugly beasts ! He does not drive 
them away promptly; they run about as over a beaten path." 
And he would answer, " Unhappily, it is only too true." Yet 



1889.] AND CLEMENT BRENTANO. 71 

after she died he proved the efficacy of her admonitions, spend- 
ing his remnant of life in works of charity. 

We might like to linger before some of the visions of this 
woman : Among the wheat-fields, when the tired harvester was 
exhausted with the tying of the sheaves ; with Noe in the Ark 
offering incense on an altar covered with red and white ; with 
Moses among the bones of Jacob ; with Josue at the sun's delay ; 
with Zephyrinus suffering from persistence in maintaining the 
dignity of the priesthood; with St. Louis at his first Communion; 
with the guardian angel while leading into the Seven Churches ; 
at the feasts of the Scapular and the Portiuncula; with Our Lady 
of the Snow; on the mountain of the Prophets; with Judith 
among the Mountains of the Moon ; with the suffering bishops 
of the Upper Rhine ; among the sacred relics that from ruined 
convents and monasteries were brought to her, of " St. Agnes, 
and by her a little lamb"; before the " veil of the lady who 
went from Rome to Jerusalem and Bethlehem " ; with St. Agatha, 
martyred in Catana ; with the youth converted at the martyrdom 
of St. Dorothea ; with Apollonia, the widow, on a cape of the 
Nile ; with Benedict and Scholastica ; with Eulalia, virgin martyr 
of Barcelona ; with Francis de Sales and Frances de Chantal ; 
with Valerian at the side of Cecilia, first a mocker, then a con- 
vert; finally before that package from Cologne enclosing shreds 
of hair from the heads of the Blessed Virgin and Him who all 
in all was her Father, her Bridegroom, and her Son ! 

In all these things were designs far beyond our ken. We 
can only contemplate them with awful reverence, and strive to be 
thankful both for the lowly maiden to whom the Deity made 
such signal manifestations, and for the poet by whom, so strangely, 
yet so felicitously, these manifestations were recorded. 

R. M. JOHNSTON. 

Baltimore. Md. 



72 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Oct., 

A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 

II. 

WHAT I find in the modern conception of God, as expressed 
by philosophers like Spinoza and poets like Goethe, are these 
three elements: First, an overwhelming sense of dependence on 
some Power or Being, infinitely mysterious in its qualities and un- 
searchable in its ways, which, dwelling " afar from the sphere ot 
our sorrow," as Shelley sings, never unveils its face, yet is so near 
that in momentary ecstatic moods we have a true experience ot 
it, and can reply to the base Atheism which would deny all be- 
yond sense and matter with an " I have felt," as the poet of In 
Memoriam did long ago. Again, consequent upon those moments 
of rapture that come to all, and yet more upon prolonged scien- 
tific research and experiment, a conviction that the Infinite abides 
in all things, and is their very life. Nature, the Earth-spirit 
chants to us in Faust, is " the life-garment that Deity wears," 
woven upon the " roaring loom of Time " ; and instead of the 
ancient creed wherein he appears as First Cause and Creator, we 
are bidden to cherish as a grander idea the immanence, in every 
atom as in all the stellar universes, of a Life, filling them with 
reality ; unhasting, unresting, weaving and working everywhere. 
It is the Life that does not decay when the world of vegetation, 
after its hour of ripeness, goes down amid autumnal melancholy 
in a blaze of color, or .when man and beast are untimely cut off; 
the Power that makes generation to spring up after generation, 
and " in them groweth not old " ; a fruitfulness dwelling in the 
world as its heart and its seed, the root of all things, which goes 
down into the depths, and rises up through stem and branches 
into the heights, like its emblem, the tree Ygdrasil, in the Norse 
mythology. And, because of its enduring while the visible phe- 
nomena come and go like bubbles on a stream, it follows, third- 
ly, that whether it be called their Substance or their Sum, it alone 
is real and they are but shadows. It was, and is, and is to come ; 
whilst they now are, and in a little space will have ceased to be. 

It surely is but a doubtful inference from these deep thoughts, 
and more like a logical sleight-of-hand than the expression of 
genuine feeling, when God is declared to be impersonal ; unless 
it be meant to deny a very gross and childish anthropomorphism 
rejected by every church in Christendom. And a no less ques- 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 73 

tionable conclusion is it assuredly we cannot term it an intui- 
tion of the reason by which the individual realities have been 
identified with that which upholds them, survives them, and shares 
in none of their imperfection or contingency. In that most re- 
markable "Credo of Naturalism," which Goethe put forth in the 
year 1780, it is said: " She" that is, Nature" lives simply in her 
children, but the Mother where is she ? " Yet were it literally 
true that her existence and theirs were identical, were she no 
more than they, the principle of fruitfulness whereby from age to 
age the world continues would be impossible. The ground of 
things which pass cannot be in the things themselves. 

Leaving, then, the inferences, true or false, of logic for a mo- 
ment, let us insist rather on that common and safe foundation 
where Christian and non- Christian may stand the ground of ex- 
perience, be it in things of sense or things of intellect. Those 
high religious moods which are familiar to Wordsworth, and to others 
less pure-minded than Wordsworth, bear assured testimony to the 
fact that in the universe there is Something or Someone whom 
without absurdity we may invoke. Nay, when we are not asking, 
but simply meditating, what is that presence of which we become 
suddenly aware, as though a light had broken out round about 
us ? To have such an experience is to know that we have not 
been deluded ; it is strictly of the spirit, without imagery or con- 
ventional language, or symbols adapted from any ritual. It goes 
beyond the dreams of fancy, and has naught in common with 
them. But there is no object or scene in Nature, no vision of 
stars, or of wild waters, or of morning or evening twilight, no ten- 
der hue in a blossom, or sweet, simple chant, that may not be- 
come the medium of this divine experience. It is spontaneous, 
and will not be given for the seeking; but as surely as we know 
a friend by the sound of his voice, so surely can we tell when the 
Presence is about us. At such moments we feel that it would be 
always there, and is there always, did we not lose ourselves in the 
stream of phenomena, and so hide from it, like the guilty Adam 
among the leaves of Eden. Thus we learn the religion of the 
Great Silence, which is the beginning of all seriousness. " Truly 
thou art a hidden God ! " cries the Hebrew seer Deus Abscon- 
ditus ! There are " secrets known to all," which distinguish 
human life from that of the lower animals, truths and facts of ex- 
istence consecrated in the wonderful Christian sacraments of mar- 
riage, baptism, and the Eucharist. We have but to follow this 
train of thought, and we shall begin to understand that the es- 
sence of all religion, as of all reverence, is the acknowledgment 



74 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Oct., 

of secrets too awful for the loud voice of daily speech. After the 
astonishingly profane controversies, indulged in by every school, 
which deafened the ears of pious men from the Reformation to 
the outbreak of the Revolution, it is a wholesome sign that poet 
and metaphysician suspend at the entrance to their temple the 
rose of Harpocrates, bidding those that would think worthily of 
divine things keep silence. It is the religion of those hermits of 
Thebais, who followed the device given them by Arsenius, Fuge, 
tace, quiesce. And it is the meaning of that great and seldom 
understood institution of contemplative orders in the Roman 
Church, the abuses or dangers of which I am not now called 
upon to point out, but which, in itself, is an answer to the 
soul's genuine need, as its power and grace are testified in num- 
berless ways by modern literature. It is one of the chief meet- 
ing-places of old and new. 

But we must take account of all our experience, not of one 
aspect only, though the most sapred. The Infinite reveals itself 
in Nature, truly, but much more in Man, to whose " deep heart " 
even Shelley, the passionate lover of earth and sky, knew that 
he must turn at last. The Pantheist delights to wander by the 
shore of ocean and lose himself in secret communion with its 
voices. But there are yet higher degrees of initiation. Life in 
the individual and in the History of Nations is, on the whole, 
so tragic, so full of moving incident, that it carries us away from 
the scene on which it is enacted. At Thrasymene "the fury of 
the combatants made them unconscious of the earthquake which 
took place during the battle." Of such battles life is full; men 
look coldly upon Nature as a painted hieroglyphic, the meaning 
of which, in their agitation, distress, and accumulated pangs, lies 
utterly remote from them. That trance of the spirit to which 
a devout Buddhist aspires cannot be the normal condition of 
beings constituted as we are. It is the opening of a window 
upon Eternity, into the depths of the divine ether which has no 
limits ; but we are limited, and our work lies in a small room, 
amid the family, the tribe, and the nation where our lot is cast. 
It is in these, idealized by sympathy and unselfishness, that the 
Infinite reveals even a nobler aspect of himself than we could 
perceive we, I mean, the ordinary, the average of men and 
women in solitude. Left to ourselves, we should be fantastic 
and stiff-necked, and our religion would become fitful and vision- 
ary as a dream. We are required, then, to be " true to the 
kindred points of Heaven and home," and to unite with our kind 
in the bonds of doing and of suffering. There is a sense in 






1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 75 

which we cannot be said to love anything but man, for it is 
through man that we come to know God so as to love Him. The 
largest and most divine Theology yet to be written will found 
itself on those words of St. John, the advent of whose age has 
so often been prophesied : " He that loveth not his brother 
whom he seeth, how shall he love God whom he doth not see ? " 
We need not be afraid of falling into idolatry or anthropomorphism 
by maintaining that man is the highest revelation of God to man. 
So far as we know by experience, we are the only living crea- 
tures in the visible universe that can speak their thoughts to 
one another, stranded as we are on this island-world " encircled 
by the illimitable main." The exercise of virtue, the deeds of 
human heroism, make us aware of a divine power in things which 
not the most sublime or the most beautiful objects in Nature could 
have disclosed. The Monist, therefore, who is willing to ascend 
the steps of the temple, may here pass on from recognizing an 
impersonal sacredness in the world to the sight of those per- 
sonal attributes, Love and Duty and Self-sacrifice, which are no 
more original in man than the rest of his being, but must be 
derived from that which makes and dwells in him, at once his 
source and consummation. Why should we not combine the 
greatness with the lovingness, the nearness with the immensity, 
and speak of our Father who is in Heaven? Did he breathe life 
into our nostrils and not love also ? In the Great Silence there 
are some of the qualities of love, such as peace, humility, glad- 
ness, resignation. But in communion with our fellows they are 
not to be mistaken; and Goethe's lines concerning his own Iphi- 
genie hold true of the deepest human experience : 

" Alle menschlichen Gebrechen, 
Subnet reine Menschlichkeit." 

Not a few have drawn near to this truth, by the one side 
or the other, but only to give it a strange interpretation. They own 
there must be a union of all men in self-denying sympathy a 
Communion of Saints and that every man is called into it. So 
far well. But to them it is no revelation of the Eternal; man's 
own heart, they say, prompts him to pity and love; and though 
they feel at the root of his life a something out of which it 
springs, they cannot believe that there is either pity or love 
in the Most High a marvellous doctrine, making the effect 
greater than the cause and allowing the phenomenon to be in 
its very essence self-originated. But there is another way out 
of the difficulty. Let us, all through, be loyal to experience. 



76 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Oct., 

Suppose, then, we behold, in the pages of a certain history, a 
man devoting himself in the most heroic manner conceivable, 
body and soul, life and spirit, for the good of others, and hu- 
mankind the better as long as it exists by reason of what he 
has undergone ; suppose the bitterest of deaths endured by a 
man of sorrows, and its outcome the ennobling of death and 
sorrow for evermore as any revelation of the Infinite in Nature 
equal to this? To have disclosed the secret of death, which 
seems so much more hopeless than that of life, and thereby to 
have created an ideal of virtue and purity higher than the world 
had ever dreamt of, yet accessible to the lowliest, and to have 
done so, not by preaching a dreary doctrine of annihilation, nor 
by violating reason and setting up empty Nothingness above 
Infinite Being such was the fruit of Christ's dwelling among men, 
and it is confessed on all hands that he has done what he pro- 
posed. Regnavit a ligno ! 

Thus we come from the moaning, inarticulate voices of the sea, 
and from the contemplation of silent, starry worlds shining in 
the midnight sky beautiful indeed, but remote from us to Cal- 
vary, the Mount of Lovers, as it is called by St. Teresa. It 
is not custom or tradition only that inspires a naturally religious 
mind with awe at the name of Jesus; neither was it imagina- 
tion in his immediate followers, or in those who believed on 
their word, that recognized in the Crucifixion the world's tra- 
gedy, an atonement the like of which never was before or since, 
and God reconciling mankind to himself through Christ. Listen 
again to the witness of Goethe : The Religion of Sorrow, he 
tells the nineteenth century, is a height to which the world has 
attained by means of the Gospel, and from which it will never 
fall away. I might remark on these astonishing words that they 
furnish or suggest an argument for the truth of Christianity anal- 
ogous to that which we find in modern science for the New- 
tonian law of gravitation. All physics, as we know, must pro- 
ceed in due observance of that law; to forget or deny it would 
mean, in the realm of physical research, disorder which could not 
be healed. In like manner, there can be no religion preached 
to mankind at large that does not contain its sanctuary of sorrow, 
for Christ has shown that the cross is the measure of things 
and the key to all human enigmas. I am not going upon theo- 
ries or inferences. I am stating -historical facts. In the develop- 
ment of man's spirit, Calvary is the highest summit, up towards 
which all mysteries move, as down from it illumination flows 
upon the darkest places of existence. 



1889.] 



A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 



77 



Here, then, is the Unknown of which men stand in trembling 
fear, manifesting itself as certainly as it does in outward phe- 
nomena, and lifting from its countenance the Veil which they 
have thrown over it. Whilst we study things inanimate, and 
strive by music, painting, and landscape-poetry to interpret 
them, it may seem as if the spirit which they adumbrate were 
less like ours, by far less conscious or personal, than the Chris- 
tian faith teaches ; it is the vast and vague of Eternity, not the 
life answering to our life, which weighs upon so many like a 
nightmare. There is art or design or law in every particle 
and atom, we feel it surely; yet the experience resembles that 
of a man moving through some strange enchanted palace, who 
detects a presence unseen, and wanders from chamber to cham- 
ber, admiring the order and the beauty, and vexed that the 
master of the spell does not come forth to meet him. But in 
the history of the New Testament that still atmosphere kindles 
to a brightness ; the sacred Memnon-face appears. To our gener- 
ation, as to the eighteen centuries past, the story of that perfect 
Life and Death is the supreme of arguments ; alone it has the 
power permanently to lift us beyond what we surmise in gazing 
upon Nature and its marvels, multiplying as it does for us the 
sweet low music until it fills the world, and giving to it intel- 
ligible speech where before it did but murmur, let me say, as 
with ^Eolian and unreasoning strings. The charm that drew men 
to Christ will draw them yet again ; his " pure Humanity " 
reine Menschlichfyeit is a revelation of the power behind the veil 
which can never be surpassed or superseded; it tells us intensive 
what God is like, as Nature is incapable ' of doing. Those that 
were of his company, that touched the hem of his garment, that 
heard his words and saw him in his deepest humiliation, were 
convinced that he knew the secrets of Eternity, and made their 
own, in a certain measure, the interpretation he bequeathed of 
this world and the world to come. Let us think whether we 
can go beyond it now. 

It is certain that in ourselves we have no revelation but these 
momentary glimpses that open and shut again, " swift as any 
dream " ; for science, commonly so-called, teaches law but not 
virtue, and the abstractions of metaphysics are faint and cold 
when most we need an energy counter to our passions. We 
must all live, as experience proves, by communion with the 
strength and wisdom and purity of another. The Stoic ideal, 
which was Spinoza's, of the lonely perfect man is not human 
and cannot be realized. Now, I hold that the only Higher Self 



7 8 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Oct., 

we may reasonably look up to and follow is that Prophet of Religion 
whose teachings will harmonize life, whether by renunciation or 
by the use of its opportunities, whose principles abide unshaken 
though knowledge and experience increase, whose recorded acts 
are the pattern of perfect grace and nobleness, unrivalled when 
History has written the authentic praises of hero and saint in 
every creed. It matters little that conjecture and recklessness 
and subtlety have done their worst trying to make many pages 
of the Gospels illegible. What is left, even after men have 
hacked and hewed with their too often jagged instruments of 
criticism, will suffice to show what manner of man he was, how 
he taught and felt and suffered, and the spirit that dwelt in 
him. To me it appears that the idea, and much more the exist- 
ence, of Jesus of Nazareth are, when deeply considered, fatal to 
Pantheism in all its forms. For who can deny that the Person 
of Christ depicted in the four Gospels, in the Epistles of St. 
Paul, and in the Apocalypse the fact as illustrated by the view 
taken of him from the beginning is a demonstration that He 
came from the bosom of the Most High ? Is not, then, the 
Most High an infinite, self-conscious Spirit ? To Jesus the Eternal 
was his heavenly Father. Can modern thinkers, with all their 
science, arrive at a grander or more intellectual conception of 
That Which Is, and of its relation to men ? And if they pos- 
sessed, in however slight a degree, the moral strength, the purity, 
the unselfishness that are perceptible in his character, as we speak, 
would not their knowledge tend to resolve itself into such a view 
of life and death as lay before his eyes ? Their experience will 
have to grow wider, then, until it finds room for the Idea of Jesus; 
they must reconcile their speculations with his existence. The 
words and works which he has left us are as truly data furnished 
by experience, as real scientific facts, as the observations of 
Newton or Kepler. To pass them over and not account for them, 
is to neglect the elements of a perfect induction and infinitely 
more disastrous to the science of life than if, while attempting 
to measure the capacities of genius, we took no heed of Homer, 
Socrates, Julius Caesar, and Shakspere. It is to read a curtailed 
chronicle of man in which what is best can no longer be found. 
Our so-called prophets, whose fame often rests at bottom on 
their quotations from Christ's teaching and their skill to render 
his words in every-day language, are far too silent concerning 
him. When they count upon their bead-roll the great men who 
have been makers of the world they will not, or dare not, pause 
upon his name. Were such omission due to reverence, it would 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 79 

add strength to the argument on which I am here enlarging ; 
but as I cannot suppose that to be always the case, I look upon 
it as an unwilling homage to his incommunicable dignity and a 
tacit acknowledgment of his elevation above every power that is 
named among men. And thus, too, we may be persuaded that 
he came forth from God, not as all things do, but by a way 
which no other has trodden, Verbum e sinu Patris ; and that in 
very truth, and not as Spinoza deluded himself. He has beheld 
the Divine Original of the Universe in the light of Eternity. 
As I have written elsewhere, the life and Person of Christ, exhib-'- 
ited in prophecy by the Old Testament, and in historical record 
by the New, that, and no other revelation whatsoever, no power 
nor argument, nor experience, will be a match for the Atheism 
and Pantheism which have been fused together in a Religion of 
Humanity, or of Nature, or of Nescience for these names it has, 
and many more of which the note is that in identifying man 
with the One Substance it throws him to an infinite distance 
from the source of Knowledge and of Holiness. The mediator of 
God and man is the Incarnate Word, by whose virtue all things, 
whether in heaven or earth, are kept in their due order, a scale 
or hierarchy of Being like the ladder of Jacob on which were 
seen angels ascending and descending and God himself leaning 
upon it. The last word of Christianity is Reason belief in the 
Divine Logos. The last word, as it is the first, of Pantheism is 
Unreason, the denial and confusion of ranks and orders of exist- 
ence. But from the elements which it mingles together we can, 
by due separation, recover the ancient truths. Its contemplation 
of Nature may thus be made subservient to the doctrine that God 
is present in least and greatest, and that they are in him, though 
distinct and individual. Its " pure Humanity " should lead us to 
the Gospels, whence in truth it has been derived and of whose 
essence it is a degradation. Its doctrine of silence may remind 
us of the limits that in better days a reverent sober mysticism 
set to the overbold conjectures of rationalizing theologians, to 
whom the Deity was a subject for dissection instead of the object 
of adoration. Its very appeal to darkness, its often frantic exul- 
tation in revolt and evil, is not without some compensating advan- 
tage in a day when the multitude are taught from Liberal pulpits 
that "there is nothing in God to fear." There is no evil to fear 
in God, but there are the consequences of evil done by man, 
which his righteousness will see carried out. And the larger view 
of things favored by Monism, and already, as from afar off, sug- 
gested in our laboratories and halls of science, begins to prevail 



8o PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. [Oct., 

over the shallow enlightenment to which miracles, prophecies, and 
the entire realm of the supernatural were things incredible and 
absurd. To restore belief in the supernatural we must commence 
by looking at the facts. There was a time when science obsti- 
nately refused to glance their way ; but the hand on the dial 
points to a change. 

Yet there remains the question to which all I have said is a 
preliminary. We must, I have insisted, renew our faith in Jesus 
of Nazareth. But can we believe in a dead Christ ? And if not, 
where is he living at this hour ? I propose, in my concluding 
paper, to suggest the answer by once more appealing to facts 
which cannot be denied. Mankind, said Goethe, will never de- 
scend from the height they have attained in the Religion of Sor- 
row. Its sanctuary, therefore, is still raised aloft ; nor can it be 
in ruins or a forsaken city like Tadmor in the wilderness, far from 
the haunts of men. Our duty, surely, is to seek its whereabouts. 

WILLIAM BARRY. 



PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. 

THE Rationalists of to-day (see Webster's definition of the 
word) have shifted their ground, and abandoned, in combating 
supernatural religion, the tactics of their predecessors of a hun- 
dred and of fifty years ago. With the latter the Old and the New 
Testament were legendary tales, and Jesus Christ himself with 
some, at least, of the more advanced . apostles of reason a myth. 
But the severest tests of criticism having only served to establish 
more firmly the authenticity and genuineness of the inspired 
writings, and archaeology, bibliography, and paleography having 
in their onward progress all contributed to more lucidly illustrate 
the reliableness of the sacred text, new weapons must now be 
used to do away with the supernatural. Scores of materialists and 
pantheists are entrenched behind the following a priori: The 
supernatural is impossible ; therefore it does not exist. There 
is, however, a school of deists who, admitting the authenticity 
of the Bible and the existence of a personal God, the author of 
the laws of physical nature, acknowledge the possibility of the 
supernatural while they deny its actual existence. These endeavor 
to explain as natural events the countless supernatural manifesta- 
tions recorded in Holy Writ and in history. Rev. J. M. Buckley, 



1889.] PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. 81 

the author of an article on " Presentiments, Visions, and Appari- 
tions," in the July number of the Century Magazine, although a 
Methodist minister, seems to belong to this school. He starts 
out by saying : " Exclusive of the sphere of true religion, which 
does not claim to be an infallible guide except to repentance, 
purity of motive, and the life beyond, omens, premonitions, pre- 
sentiments, visions, and apparitions have exerted the greatest in- 
fluence over the decisions and actions of men." As repentance, 
purity of motives, and the life beyond (the existence of God ad- 
mitted) are readily accepted by pure reason, I gather that Mr. 
Buckley's religion is free from any supernatural element. But he 
admits the pbssibility of the supernatural, as can be seen from 
the following sentence : " To prove that the dead are seen no 
more or cannot appear to living beings is, of course, impossible." 
And again : " That God could produce such impressions none 
who admit his existence can doubt." 

Mr. Buckley's logic appears to me defective in many points. 
It would seem natural to treat of visions and apparitions 
jointly, inasmuch as there can be no vision without a corre- 
sponding apparition, and nothing can be seen without a seer. 
To prove that there are no supernatural visions is to prove at 
the same time that there are no apparitions. But the writer in 
the Century, for reasons best known to himself, thought proper 
to write of visions and apparitions separately. This much is plainly 
noticeable. His method afforded him an opportunity of arraying 
under separate heads two long lists of spurious visions and appa- 
ritions, which display to advantage his encyclopaedical erudition. 
But his prolixity and redundance of style render him at times 
painfully obscure and his meaning problematical. Take, for instance, 
his concluding paragraph, which will give us at the same time 
the real motive of his writing the article : " If it be assumed that 
the testimony of one person or of one hundred persons to a 
supernatural event is not sufficient to prove that it occurred, the 
question, What becomes of the testimony of the apostles and the 
five hundred brethren to the resurrection of Christ, and of Stephen 
to his seeing the heavens open ? comes up again. It admits of 
but one answer. If they had nothing to give us but the fact 
that they saw a person alive who had been dead, it would be 
necessary to reject it on the ground that it is far more probable 
that they were deceived than that such a thing occurred. But 
that is not the case. They present to us the whole body of 
Christian doctrine, declaring that it was received from that Person 
who had predicted that he would rise from the dead, and whom 



82 PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. [Oct., 

they believed themselves to see, and with whom on various oc- 
casions they conversed after his resurrection." Mr. Buckley's 
logic here is not good. If the testimony of the apostles and the 
five hundred brethren, taken by itself, does not prove Christ's 
resurrection, it cannot do so by its being taken in connection 
with the whole body of Christian doctrine, because the resurrec- 
tion of Christ must first be established before we can accept the 
truth of his doctrine/ St. Paul, who seems to have been a very 
good logician, argued so, and wrote (according to King James' 
translation) : " And if Christ be not risen, then is our preaching 
vain " (the body of Christian doctrine), " and your faith is also 
vain." In fact, as Christ predicted his own resurrection, if his 
prediction be not fulfilled, he is an impostor, and his doctrine a 
mere philosophical theory. Happily, Mr. Buckley explains (?) him- 
self. " If the body of Christian doctrine, in its relations to the 
moral nature of the thinker, does not convince him of the divine 
origin and consequent truth of the record, we know of no other 
means of doing so." Why not tell us at once that the truth of 
the Christian doctrine is subjective and not objective ? Visions 
and apparitions evidently do not agree with the writer's system 
of philosophy. Hence he needs to prove that they are subjective 
hallucination. 

" By vision I mean appearances to the mind's eye where there 
is no corresponding reality." So writes Mr. Buckley. It would 
have been more satisfactory if he had given us such a 
definition as he found it convenient to do for the word "pre- 
monition." But it would not have suited his purpose. However, 
it has the merit of being clear. But it describes hallucinations, 
not visions. The author evidently takes the two words to be 
perfect synonyms of each other. What need, then, of nine col- 
umns of closely printed matter to prove that " hallucinations " 
are possible, and that they are not of unfrequent occurrence ? 
Did Mr. Buckley think that one reader of the Century among its 
thousands would be found not believing in the possibility and 
occurrence of "visions" if .they be nothing more than "appear- 
ances to the mind's eye where there is no corresponding real- 
ity"? What need of the following? "A question of deeper 
interest and of closer relation to the subject treated in these 
articles is whether subjective visions are possible to the sane ; 
and, if so, whether they are at all common, and liable to occur 
as isolated circumstances." But the author's obvious intention was 
to prove that there are not and never have been any objective 
or real visions, and that all supernatural manifestations known as 



1889.] PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. 83 

such are delusions. That much is plain from the conclusion quoted 
above, which he draws from his premises. He should have then 
clearly stated his thesis, and not take for granted from the be- 
ginning the propositio probanda. His whole argument, in form, is 
a petitio principii; in substance his conclusion is wider than the 
premise. His process of reasoning, boiled down to its substance, 
is reduced to the following : Subjective visions that is, hallucina- 
tions are possible and frequently occur. Therefore, there are no 
objective or true visions. Of .course, one proposition does not 
follow the other as conclusion. The spurious coin rather argues 
the existence of the genuine. True supernatural visions carry 
with them the seal of their own genuineness, producing effects 
impossible to account for on natural grounds. Thus, after the 
vision of the Holy Ghost experienced by the apostles on the day 
of Pentecost they were endowed with a universal knowledge of 
languages, unexplainable except on supernatural grounds. Spurious 
visions, on the contrary, generally have in themselves the ear- 
marks of their falsity. The Koran demonstrates that Mohammed 
lied in the recital of his pretended visions, and the writings of 
Swedenborg show his to be the product of a diseased imagi- 
nation. Thus the visions of Luther, of Zwingli, of the early 
Methodists, etc., can be easily explained on natural grounds. 
But we see that Philip's vision (Acts, ch. viii. v. 26) had a 
supernatural origin from what followed it (ibidem, verses 39 and 
40). It would not be difficult to multiply examples. It is the 
critic's task to discern true from false visions. Stringing together 
many spurious with a few genuine ones, as Mr. Buckley did, 
creates confusion, but will never prove that the latter are not of 
a supernatural origin. Speaking of St. Teresa, the author says 
that " there is no difficulty in explaining her visions on natural 
principles. She was a religious woman in such a state of health 
as to be subject to trances, and they took their character from 
her conventual and other religious instructions." Will Mr. Buckley 
explain on "natural principles" the immediate effects of her visions 
and trances ? The sources of information that tell us of them 
i.e., her biographers and herself inform us also that during said 
visions and trances she was raised more than once several feet 
high without visible support, and remained stationary in mid-air 
for more than an appreciable length of time ; and that she fore- 
told future events (every one of which came to pass) quite beyond 
the control of human or any other material agency. Was it fair 
to omit, in the description of St. Teresa's visions, all the elements 

VOL. L.--6 



84 PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, ANJD APPARITIONS. [Oct., 

which tend to prove their supernatural origin, and then say that 
"there is no difficulty in explaining them on natural principles"? 
We are told that " there were great differences of opinion as to 
the source of her visions," but we are not told that these differ- 
ences disappeared as soon as the visions had been critically ex- 
amined, and that, though " several very learned priests and con- 
fessors judged her to be deluded by the devil," this very fact 
proves that there was no difference of opinion as to the super- 
natural nature of the visions. 

Mr. Buckley treats the visions of the dying separately, and 
lays down the following five canons to prove that they are all 
hallucinations : " The following facts cannot be disputed nor dis- 
regarded in the elucidation of the subject: First. Such dying 
visions occur in all parts of the world, under every form of civiliza- 
tion and religion; and if the dying appear to see anything, it is 
in harmony with the traditions which they have received." The 
answer to which is "Not proven." Second. "Such visions are 
often experienced by those whose lives have not been marked by 
religious consistency, while many of the most devout are per- 
mitted to die without such aid, and sometimes experience the se- 
verest mental conflicts as they approach the crisis." The argu- 
ment would have force had it been proved that visions are in- 
tended by God solely as a reward for virtuous lives. But such is 
not the case. Third. " Where persons appear to see angels and 
disembodied spirits, the visions accord with the traditional views 
of their shape and expressions, and where wicked persons see 
fiends and evil spirits, they harmonize with the descriptions which 
have been made the materials of sermons, poems, and supernatural 
narratives." The author is misinformed. If he will make a good 
course of reading in hagiography, he will learn that angels and 
fiends have appeared to dying Catholics under almost every im- 
aginable form and shape. Very frequently he will find nothing 
traditional about their visions. The argument is ab ignorantia. 
Fourth. " Many of the most remarkable visions have been seen 
by persons who supposed themselves to be dying, but were not, 
and who, when they recovered, had not the slightest recollection 
of what had occurred," etc. All those " many remarkable visions" 
were evidently nothing more than hallucinations of feverish brains. 
But, I must repeat, they do not prove the non-existence of genuine 
visions. Fifth. " A consideration of great weight is this : The 
Catholic Church confers great honor upon the Holy Virgin ; 
Protestants seldom make any reference to her. Trained as the 






1889.] PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. 85 

Roman Catholics are to supplicate the sympathy and prayers of 
the Mother of our Lord, when they have visions of any kind, I 
am informed by devout priests and by physicians that she gen- 
erally appears in the foreground. Among the visions which dying 
Protestants have been supposed to see I have heard of only two 
in which the Virgin figured, and these were of persons trained in 
their youth as Catholic." 

To show that Mr. Buckley makes general assertions formulat- 
ing broad theories without having sufficient ground to base them 
upon it is sufficient to quote the case of Alphonse de Ratisbonne. 
He was born, bred, and trained in the Jewish religion, but when 
grown to man's estate gave up all religious belief and avowed 
himself a sceptic. Provided with abundant wealth (he was a 
banker of Strasbourg), his worldly prospects were of the bright- 
est. But on the i8th of January, 1842, while on a pleasure trip, 
he entered with his friend, the Baron de Bussieres, the Church 
of St. Andrea delle Fratte, in the city of Rome, where he was 
vouchsafed a vision of the Blessed Virgin. It proved very effi- 
cacious, and caused the young De Ratisbonne to abandon home, 
country, parents, wealth, the world, and to become an humble 
priest. He spent upwards of forty years in the exercise of works 
of charity, and died at Jerusalem in 1884. The Holy Virgin 
does not reserve herself to Catholics exclusively, but grants oc- 
casional visions of herself to men of good-will outside the church. 
I warn Mr. Buckley that many a "devout priest" is fond of a 
practical joke. About six million Catholics die yearly. Of this 
number it is doubtful if six have any vision at all, true or false, 
at the hour of death. Catholics are probably not as visionary as 
Protestants. The two apostates mentioned by the author had 
perhaps connected themselves with some of the modern sensa- 
tional sects. The frequency of visions among Catholics is greatly 
exaggerated by Mr. Buckley. 

He gave us the definitions of premonitions and visions. Nat- 
urally we should have expected him to tell us also what he means 
by apparitions. The reader would have then learned the differ- 
ence, according to the author's conception, between visions and 
apparitions. But he begins by quoting Johnson's well-known 
passage concerning apparitions. Johnson's argument is what is 
known as the consensus generis hitmani i.e., that whenever any 
fact ascertainable through the senses has been accepted at all 
times, in all places, by the entire human family, it must be true. 
Apparitions are plainly within the dominion of the senses (unless 



86 PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. [Oct., 

we take it for granted that they are hallucinations, which is beg- 
ging the question), and have been believed in everywhere, at all 
times, by the entire human family. Therefore they must be true. 
The following is thought sufficient by Mr. Buckley to overthrow 
Johnson's argument : " The concurrent testimony of all ages and 
nations can hardly create a presumption, unless it be assumed 
that there have been no universal errors. The assertion that the 
opinion could become universal only by its truth compels the 
assumption that all universal opinions are true." The answer to 
which is : There has been universal ignorance of facts, but no 
universal errors ; that is to say, mankind has never been de- 
ceived, everywhere and at all times, in apprehending through the 
senses material objects. If it has, we must then adopt the phil- 
osophy of universal doubt scepticism ; we must reject the testi- 
mony of all mankind, the statements of Mr. Buckley included. 

"The testimony of a single witness to an apparition can be 
of little value, because whatever he sees may be a spectral illu- 
sion or an hallucination. The. state of mind of a person who 
thinks that he sees an apparition is entirely unfavorable to calm 
observation, and after he has seen it he has nothing but his re- 
collection of what he saw, unsupported by analogies or memor- 
anda taken during the vision. To say that immediately after he 
witnessed such a thing he made a note of it is at best to say 
only that he wrote down what he could remember at that time." 
This process of reasoning would not be thought worthy of serious 
criticism had it not appeared in a magazine which has serious 
claims to respectability. Imagine an attorney gravely addressing 
the jury in defence of his client : " Gentlemen of the Jury : The 
testimony of a single witness to a murder can be of little value, 
because whatever he thinks he sees may be a spectral illusion or 
an hallucination. The state of mind of a person who thinks that 
he sees a murder is entirely unfavorable to calm observation ; and 
after he has seen it he has nothing but his recollection of what 
he saw, unsupported by analogies or memoranda taken during 
the murder. To say that immediately after he witnessed such a 
thing he made a note of it is at best to say only that he wrote 
down what he could remember at that time." According to the 
author's logic, the testimony of two or a hundred witnesses would 
not be sufficient to convict a murderer. He says : " It has fre- 
quently been laid down as indisputable that if two persons see a 
vision at the same time its objective and authentic character is 
conclusively demonstrated. This by no means follows ; on the 






1889.] PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. 87 

contrary, a hundred persons may be confident that they see an 
apparition, and the proof that they do not may be conclusive." 
To prove his assertion he tells us of the vampirism of the mid- 
dle ages: that "some dreamed that these malicious spectres took 
them by the throat, and having strangled them, sucked their 
blood"; that "others believed that they actually saw them," etc.; 
but he fails to give us a well-authenticated instance of one hun- 
dred creditable witnesses testifying to their having seen an appari- 
tion, when the proof that they did not was conclusive. To tell 
us that the negroes in the South and sailors generally believe 
easily in ghost stories proves that they are superstitious, but not 
that there are no true apparitions. The tale borrowed from Mr. 
Ellis (who published Brand's Popular Antiquities] proves that the 
sense of sight, when properly applied, is a reliable medium to test 
the truthfulness or falsity of apparitions, nothing more. Mr. Buckley 
is profuse in quotations of cases of hallucinations, all of which can 
be accounted for on natural principles. He could have as easily 
quoted as many apparitions which cannot be explained without 
the admission of the supernatural. 

The concluding argument against the truth of apparitions must 
be given whole to be fully appreciated. "When we consider the 
horrible injustice inflicted upon orphans whose estates are squan- 
dered by trustees, the concealment or destruction of wills; the in- 
gratitude to destitute benefactors; the diverting of trust funds for 
benevolent purposes to objects abhorrent to those who with painful 
toil accumulated them, and with confidence in the stability of hu- 
man laws bequeathed them ; the loneliness of despair that fills 
human hearts; and the gloomy doubts of the reality of a future 
existence, all of which would be rendered impossible if actual ap- 
paritions took place ; the conclusion that neither in the manner of 
the alleged comings nor in the objects for which they come is 
there any evidence to be found of their reality, gathers almost ir- 
resistible force." Were it claimed by the believers in supernatural 
apparitions that they can be had at the bidding of man, this ar- 
gument against them would have force. But such a claim has 
never been made. As it is, Mr. Buckley's majestic period of 
some one hundred and twenty words has nothing in it but bad 
logic. 

The author of the article in the Century evidently considers 
mankind as the toy of an invisible, undefinable, unreal something. 
Man, according to him, has been ever since his creation running 
after an ignis fatuus called premonitions, visions, apparitions ; 



88 PRESENTIMENTS, VISIONS, AND APPARITIONS. [Oct., 

which, however, "exclusive of the sphere of true religion, have 
exerted the greatest influence over the decisions and actions of 
men." For six thousand years mankind has been swayed by this 
mighty spell. The six hundred thousand Jews who saw "a pillar 
of a cloud by day, and by night a pillar of fire," week after week, 
were hallucinated (Exod., ch. xiii. v. 21). Zachary was halluci- 
nated when he saw an angel by his side in the temple, and when 
he was struck dumb by the vision (Luke, ch. i.) Mary the 
Virgin was hallucinated when she held a conversation with the 
Archangel Gabriel, after which she conceived, although she pro- 
tested that " I know not man " (Luke, ch. i.) The wise men 
from the east were hallucinated when they traversed the deserts 
to follow a star without an orbit (Matthew, ch. ii.) The twelve 
apostles and the five hundred brethren were hallucinated when 
they saw Christ after his resurrection ; ate with him, travelled with 
him, conversed with him, touched him, etc. Again, the apostles 
were hallucinated when, on Pentecost, they beheld the Holy Ghost, 
and received the gifts of tongues and of miracles. For " when 
the evidence is rigorously, though fairly, examined, the Scotch 
verdict, Not proven, must be rendered concerning the reality of 
apparitions." 

A careful perusal of Mr. Buckley's article has convinced me 
that if he has not proved " that in the course of some six thou- 
sand years " mankind has been persistently hallucinated, he has 
undoubtedly demonstrated that even a scientific philosopher may 
be betrayed into attempting to prove an absurd proposition. 

L. A. DUTTO. 

Jackson, Miss. 






1889.] ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 89 

* 

I79 i_A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 

CHAPTER VI. (Continued^} 

THE day after the " Crop Over " the colonel had ridden down 
to the Cape, and finding that Henry Pascal had been prompt to 
make satisfactory arrangements, he decided upon bringing over 
his family the following morning. But on the eve of departure, 
even of a temporary character, one often finds unexpected things 
to do, and, in the absence of such sources of delay, the Tourners 
did not prove an exception. Preparations had not been completed 
when it became evident that a storm of unusual force was de- 
veloping. The departure was, in consequence, postponed till the 
next day, and everything made ready against an early move, to 
avail themselves of the forenoon, which even in the rainy season 
is commonly open. These preparations had kept them up late, 
and, after retiring, the outbursts of the elements allowed but a 
broken rest. The cooled air and quietude, however, that came 
with the close of the storm invited repose, and Colonel Tourner 
had fallen into sound sleep, when a piercing cry from his daugh- 
ter smote his ear. 

Her anxiety of mind, consequent upon the general condition 
of affairs, had been greatly deepened by Henry Pascal's visit and 
preparations for flight to the Cape, and this evening, after a day 
of bustle and fatigue, her brooding spirit had risen to a state of 
positive agitation at the unexpected delay and their having to 
pass another night in the midst of lurking and horrible dangers. 
The terrors of the storm lent their aid, and her imagination be- 
came so wrought upon that it was long before she could catch 
even fitful sleep. In one of her rousings her suspicious ear de- 
tected, as she thought, footfalls upon the lawn. She rose and 
looked out. The heavens were shrouded, but the moon was up 
and cast a dim light. She could see nothing, however, and sup- 
posed, as the negroes kept late hours, it may have been some 
one passing through the grounds after the storm. Examining 
anew the lower sash of the windows, the fastenings of which she 
had taken the precaution to secure, she again sought her couch, 
when presently sounds on the piazza-roof startled her. Were they 
rain-drops shaken from the boughs, or the stealthy movements o/ 
an intruder ? With her heart in her mouth she started up, and 



9O 7/p^ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 



as she drew aside a curtain a negro burst open the sash. She 
sprang back terror-stricken, and with the appalling cry that aroused 
her father. Bounding from the bed, he seized his sabre and a 
brace of heavy double-barrelled pistols, as his daughter wildly en- 
tered, exclaiming that negroes were breaking into her room. 

" Be in reach of me with this, if you can, and, if I fall, use 
it upon yourself," he said in a breath, thrusting a pistol into her 
hand (for it would be impossible, he knew, in the struggle upon 
him, to control the sabre and more than one pistol ; nor could he, 
being in night-dress, secure the other about his person), and rush- 
ing out, for he was a man of courage and a master of weapons, 
he met the foremost negro in the hall-way and ran him through, 
yet not without receiving a slash upon the upper left arm. An- 
other negro, making at him with an axe, fell dead from a pistol- 
shot within the door-way of his daughter's room. At a third, 
who was entering the window, he fired, but in the dim light the 
ball went astray, and the negro, adroitly avoiding a sabre-thrust, 
sprang upon him with a yell. Colonel Tourner was a man of 
strength as well as courage, but the left arm was helpless from 
the stab in the muscles, and the negro, who was a powerful fel- 
low, had borne him to his knees, and was wrenching the sabre 
from him, when he cried out^ " Shoot, Emilie ! " 

She had kept behind her father, almost expiring with terror, 
yet resolute to help him, if she could. She could tell in the dim- 
ness he was wounded, for his left side was all bloody, and when 
the hand-to-hand struggle began, she saw his disadvantage with 
an awful, despairing, sinking dread. But as her father went down 
a tremendous' spring of energy suddenly steeled her, and at his 
outcry, quick as thought, she levelled the weapon and fired at 
close quarters, the negro pitching over, fatally struck. 

Meanwhile, two of the insurgents had broken into the colonel's 
chamber and were now struggling with the house-servants, who, 
having rushed up-stairs at the uproar, came to their master's aid. 
Seizing the pistol from his daughter, the colonel despatched one 
of these with the remaining barrel, when the other negro was 
overpowered. 

Madame Tourner, at the outburst of terror, had remained a 
moment in an agony of prayer. She was one of those ordinarily 
nervous women, whose steadiness comes to the surface in extrem- 
ities. Descending by a private stairway, with outcries to the 
house-servants, she ran for the alarm-bell. The ringing and firings 
at once aroused the plantation. The manager rushed forth with 
arms, the slaves flocked from the quarters, and falling upon the 






1889.] I79 1 ^ TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 91 

rest of the band in greatly superior numbers, speedily put them 
to flight. 

With a sense of infinite relief Colonel Tourner saw from the 
window that his slaves were proving faithful, cheered his wife 
and daughter as they stanched and bound his wound, and has- 
tened out. But the insurgents had fled, leaving several of their 
number slain in the melee. Calling his slaves about him, he 
thanked them again for their devotion, and asked if they would 
protect him to Petite Ance, where the neighboring whites, he knew, 
would concentrate for safety. They answered with a will ; and 
directing M. Fanchet to have a conveyance in immediate readi- 
ness, he turned in for the preparations. Not an instant was to be lost, 
for the insurrection would gather every moment in numbers and 
ferocity. All blood-stained and among frightful corpses, Madame 
Tourner and her daughter threw on their garments and entered 
the double gig with the colonel and M. Fanchet. The accompa- 
nying negroes, armed with plantation implements and whatever 
else they could lay hands on, were fleet of foot and kept up with 
the horses. A third of the distance had been made when, look- 
ing back, they saw Belle Vue in flames, fired either by another 
band or a disaffected remnant of the plantation negroes. At the 
end of the next mile the negro guard returned, Petite Ance being 
in view ; and, a few moments after, Colonel Tourner and his family, 
thanking God for their lives, pressed into the distracted village. 

Fugitives from massacred homes were flying in at intervals, 
their agonies finding vent on realizing their personal safety, and 
increasing every instant the consternation. The terrified people 
thronged the street, uncertain what course to pursue. Some were 
for making a stand at the village. Others thought that if the 
rising was general the negroes would soon unite in overpowering 
force, and that they could make a body sufficiently numerous to 
resist the individual bands in which the insurgents were for the 
moment acting, and reach the Cape. Colonel Tourner's arrival 
strengthened the latter view, and a considerable party at once set 
out for Cape Franois. Progress was as rapid as circumstances 
would allow, for almost all were afoot, the greater part in naked 
feet, and among them many tender women, accustomed to every 
surrounding and refinement of wealth. Negro bands were met, 
but the party was too strong to be resisted, and towards day- 
break reached the Cape. Henry Pascal had remained at his post, 
eagerly searching and inquiring among the fugitives. In this 
group he found his friends, and, transported with joy, accompa- 
nied them to the Hotel de Ville. 



92 /7p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 



CHAPTER VII. 
THE BATTLE. 

The morning of the 23d broke dismally over Cape Francois. 
The first action of the authorities, as the formidable character of 
the insurrection became more and more apparent, -was to lay an 
embargo on the vessels in the harbor and send aboard the women 
and children. Of the British vessels in port, one was despatched 
to Jamaica for aid, and this step, following the loud talk that had 
been prevalent at Cape Fran9ois of a British protectorate, gave 
rise to a widespread rumor among the insurgents that the Eng- 
lish were coming to possess themselves of the island. 

The General Assembly was now in session at the Cape. Imi- 
tating the example of the National Legislature, it had taken af- 
fairs entirely into its own hands, the royalist governor-general, 
M. Blanchelande, giving a mere formal assent to proceedings he 
could neither arrest nor amend. The sudden presence of a great 
and common danger healed the breach. The General Assembly 
at once placed in the governor's hands the National Guard ; as 
many sailors and marines as could be spared from the ships 
were sent ashore ; all able-bodied men were enrolled into the 
militia, and a force of five or six thousand straightway organized 
for the city's defence. A strong mulatto contingent formed a 
part of this force. For, moved by the extreme gravity of affairs, 
the General Assembly not only took measures to protect the 
mulattoes from the threats of the petits blancs, but by formal ac- 
tion ratified the i$th of May decree. The mulattoes were, in con- 
sequence, entirely won, and with all the zeal that the powerful 
interests of property inspire (the well-to-do among them being 
universally slave-owners), they proffered to march with the whites 
against the insurgents, leaving their wives and children as host- 
ages. A part of the troops was employed in fortifying and guard- 
ing the city. An assault by land was possible only at two 
points the strip between the bay and the Western Morne, and a 
narrow exit to the northwest between the Western Morne and its 
northern companion. The guns of the British frigate Sappho 
commanded the seaward strip, and the attention of the authorities 
was concentrated upon making good the northwestern passage. 
The larger and more efficient portion of the troops was designed 
for offensive operations against the insurgents. 

In the midst of all these preparations M. Tardiffe managed to 






1889.] 179 z A TALE OF SAA? DOMINGO. 93 

elude military service. A soft, sensual, luxurious mode of life 
the .truffles and capons of Gonaives would alone satisfy him 
rendered him averse to war, even had he naturally possessed a 
more martial spirit. He was, too, secretly with the blacks, and 
believed they would ultimately triumph, if not through their vast 
numerical superiority, at least by the aid of the rising Jacobin 
party in France. Besides, he had no interests in San Domingo 
beyond his passion for Emilie Tourner ; and in behalf of this 
passion he was eager for freedom to turn to account the aus- 
picious opportunities events were placing before him. Availing 
himself, therefore, of the recognized influence with the blacks 
which his extreme and well-known Jacobin opinions had procured 
for him, he successfully represented to M. Blanchelande, while pro- 
fessing hearty sympathy with the whites in the present crisis, that, 
as an occasion for mediation might arise, it would be better that 
he should remain neutral. 

Early next morning he made a flying visit, to Madame Tourner 
and her daughter on the man-of-war Sappho, where they had 
quarters. Prior to going he had brought forth from its drawer 
in the escritoire his bank-book, between the leaves of which were 
a number of ^100 notes recently received from London, and 
these he took out and held for some moments in a meditative 
way. He was evidently weighing something, and presently 
reached a conclusion a conclusion quite satisfactory, judging 
from the ripple of complacency that passed over his features, and 
one apparently involving the use of a part of this money ; for, 
drawing out a note, he very carefully folded it, and securing the 
same in a neat little package, transferred it to his vest-pocket. 
Before replacing the book, he turned with triumphant eyes to 
his bank-account There stood the 5 0,000 record of deposit, 
made four years back ! There, too, stood the interest interest 
that had been freely used, but still showed a substantial balance. 
There it was ; all down in black and white, and no mistake. 

" Sagacious me, happy me," ran his thoughts, " who have 
this in solid British gold in place of howling, cut-throat blacks 
and wasted plantations ! Emilie Tourner captured, and then for 
England ! For where one's treasure is, there one's home should 
be also, and there shall the nest be made for this shy bird. The 
maiden disdains me, but I shall possess her with the greater joy. 
And you, my potent yellow boys" as with an exulting ha! ha! 
he patted the bank-book " aid thy master's cause." 

He was cordially received by Madame Tourner, still dazed by 
the shock she had sustained, and who, in an hour so dreadful, 



94 I 79 I -A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

thinking less of personal loss than of the common peril, was 
most eager for authentic news. Notwithstanding the excited 
throng aboard they succeeded in finding a place apart for con- 
versation; and as they became seated he said, in the bland and 
turgid style peculiar to him: 

" Most heartily, Madame Tourner, do I felicitate you again " 
for his greeting had been given with an expression of joy at see- 
ing her alive " upon your marvellous deliverance. All manner 
of on dits are current in regard to it." 

" I am indeed thankful, monsieur." 

"Where is mademoiselle, and how is she?" he asked. 

"Poor Emilie! she is prostrated, and unable to see any one." 

" Is it true," he queried, " that she slew one of her father's 
assailants? Her magnificent conduct is the town's talk." 

" She had skill with the weapon, having often practised with 
her father, and fired to save him. The ebb of the terrible strain 
has left her well-nigh undone. But oh! monsieur," she added, 
averting her head, and with a movement of the hand as if push- 
ing away something dreadful, " spare me from recalling the horrors 
of that night! Let us speak of the present. What news 
have you of Colonel Tourner ? I have neither seen nor heard 
from him for the past twelve hours." 

" Your husband, madame, is now a veritable colonel, command- 
ing a citizen regiment, and fortifying the Northwestern pass 
beyond the Champ de Mars." 

" What is Monsieur Pascal doing ? " 

"You refer, I presume, to the younger Pascal?" 

" Yes. He sent Emilie a hurried note yesterday afternoon, 
telling her he expected to be in battle on the 25th to-morrow 
yet saying nothing of his special duties." 

" Monsieur Pascal has been assigned to an artillery company, 
and is drilling at the arsenal." 

" Tell me, monsieur, how go affairs in the city, and what is 
thought of the situation ? " 

" The Cape is a bee-hive, void of drones," he replied ; " every 
soul pressed into service and laboring most sedulously. Even 
Monsieur Charles Pascal refuses to be excused, and is in the ranks 
of the citizen soldiery." 

" How happens it, then, monsieur, that we have you here ? " 

" Have I not sufficient interest in you and yours, madame, to 
importune for an hour's leave of absence?" 

" Your kindness is most considerate," she answered. 

" My dear madame," he said, expanding somewhat his usual 






1889.] Z 79 r A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 95 



smile, "the leave of absence is a jest. Notwithstanding, my in- 
terest in your behalf is none the less sincere. The truth is, a 
conference with M. Blanchelande has resulted in my being held 
in reserve for special prospective duties, in the discharge of which 
I may be far more serviceable than I could possibly be on the 
field or in the trench." 

A moment's pause ensued, when he answered the inquiry he 
saw upon the lips of his hostess : 

" It is known, as you are no doubt aware, that I possess in- 
fluence with the blacks, and I am reserved as a possible peace- 
maker." 

" Are hopes of peace entertained ? " she asked eagerly, " and 
do you think, monsieur, we shall regain our possessions ? " 

The latter interrogatory turned the conversation in the precise 
direction desired by M. Tardiffe, who replied : 

" I might answer more definitely after to-morrow's battle. 
The blacks are concentrating near Petite Ance under the noto- 
rious Dessalines, and a number of battalions march from the Cape 
to-morrow morning to attack them." 

" Would our prevailing, do you think, monsieur, crush the 
rebellion ? " 

With a shrug of the shoulders, and lifting his brows, he 
slowly answered : 

" Pos-si-bly." 

" * Possibly ' ! do you say, monsieur ' Possibly,' under 
these circumstances ? " she asked, as the distress upon her coun- 
tenance visibly deepened. " Mon Dieu ! then you despair." 

"The sentiment of France, madame, favors the blacks. The 
planters may recover their estates, but their slaves, in my judg- 
ment, never ! " 

" What are estates without cultivators ? " she asked, with an 
absent air and a tone of bitterness. 

"The estates, madame, if regained would be but naked soil. 
Fire, I hear, has devoured the plain. The blacks have destroyed 
everything, and rendezvous in the mountains. I trust your own 
sterling slaves have saved Belle Vue." 

" No, monsieur ; alas ! no. The flames burst forth when we 
were a mile away. We have lost everything" tears filling her 
eyes, " and have sunk at once to utter poverty." 

"Hundreds of others, madame, are in similar circumstances," 
said her visitor in a voice of apparent sympathy. 

" So much the worse, monsieur. Tis impossible for me to re- 
alize our situation. I know the dreadful truth must come crush- 



96 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

ingly come ; but I am utterly confounded, and as yet it makes 
little impression upon me that, except the clothes we wear and a 
casket of jewelry I caught up in leaving, we are absolutely pen- 
niless. My woes, Monsieur Tardiffe, are like those sudden and 
fatal wrenchings of the body which deprive the victim of the 
power to feel." 

" It gratifies me to know," said M. Tardiffe, as if endeavor- 
ing delicately to divert from herself her painful thoughts, yet 
adroitly pursuing his object, " that the circumstances of our Pas- 
cal friends are not so deplorable as I had supposed." 

She turned upon the speaker a look of interested inquiry, and 
he continued : 

" You remember my mentioning, the evening of the ' Crop 
Over,' a bit of Cape gossip, that the Pascal estates were to pass 
under the auctioneer's hammer ? " 

She nodded assent. 

" Well, the gossip was an error," he went on to say, " and 
arose out of Monsieur Pascal's half-formed purpose to dispose of 
his profitless possessions." 

" In what respect, monsieur, is he better off? " 

" I apprehend, madame, that simply to lose all is preferable to 
losing all and being, moreover, encumbered with debt." 

" I suppose so," she answered, in a dejected and negative 
sort of way. 

" Last evening Monsieur Pascal was telling me he had naught 
remaining save his son's right arm, and he bitterly regretted not 
having realized, as he had had thoughts of doing, upon his 
plantations." 

" Alas ! monsieur, how many are stung with the same 
regret ! " 

% " At the beginning of revolutionary activity," remarked Mon- 
sieur Tardiffe, " I anticipated the probability of these issues and 
disposed of my possessions here ; and I would have bidden adieu 
to San Domingo," he added, dropping his voice to the pitch of 
emphasis, " had not my love for your daughter restrained me a 
love, alas! that has proven hopeless." 

At a loss for reply to the latter sentiment, Madame Tourner 
asked abruptly : 

" What, monsieur, are your present purposes ? " 

"To take flight the instant I can arrange my affairs. San 
Domingo is no longer a domicile for whites, even for those pos- 
sessing affluence." 

"And whither do you go?" she asked again. 



1889.] 



A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 



97 



" To old England." 

" Your investments are there," she remarked. 

" Yes, madame ; investments in lieu of what otherwise would 
have been insurgent slaves and estates in ashes." 

" Oh ! that my husband, monsieur, had shown the same fore- 
cast ! Mon Dieu ! Mon Dieu ! " she exclaimed in tones of keen 
distress, as the thoughts her visitor had been thrusting upon her 
took effect, " what will become of us ? Where we shall go, what 
we shall do, God only knows ! " 

Deeming the wound sufficiently irritated for the emollient, 
M. Tardiffe said, in his kindest manner : 

" Be reassured, dear madame, be reassured ; you have a stay 
in adversity, even able and willing friends. At this juncture to 
realize on your bijouterie would be impossible, and I crave ac- 
ceptance of this," handing her the little package from his vest- 
pocket. "One word more, madame, if you please" as he saw 
himself threatened with interruption. " If you can't receive it ab- 
solutely, reimburse at your convenience. I concede the amplest 
limit ; and remember," laying stress upon his words, " whatever I 
possess is freely at your service" 

She was still on the point of replying, when he again inter- 
posed : 

" Pray, don't speak of it, madame, don't speak of it, I must 
insist. The obligation is upon myself for the opportunity. I 
must now to the city," he said, rising and extending his hand. 
" Remember, dear madame, you are to feel perfectly secure as re- 
gards finance. What are we for but to assist each other ? And 
please commend me to mademoiselle." 

On opening the package immediately after the departure of 
her guest, Madame Tourner was surprised at the amount, and 
doubted much whether, without the concurrence of her husband, 
she should have taken it. It annoyed her, likewise, that while 
their pecuniary condition was most deplorable, she had gone be- 
yond the strict reality in stating it, since Colonel Tourner had 
saved his cash in hand, and " absolutely penniless " was not the 
actual status. There was, too, a pang from wounded pride in 
receiving this aid. The result of M Tardiffe's visit, however, 
was a decided balance of comfort, and for his considerate and 
ample generosity her thoughts went out towards him in a very 
grateful way. 

Thursday morning, the 25th, a force some three thousand strong, 
commanded by M. de Touzard, a distinguished French officer, left 
the Cape in high feather to assault the insurgent camp. The 



98 //p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 



march was from the arsenal along the quay, and as the troops 
passed the Sappho at the southern extremity of the city, they 
received a salvo from the man-of-war. Emilie Tourner was on 
deck in the throng, but seemed oblivious to the roar and huzzas. 
In apparent expectancy her eyes were bent upon the troops filing 
by. Suddenly her 'countenance brightened as she caught the flutter 
of a handkerchief from one of the batteries, and a wave from her 
own answered the salute. 

The San Domingo blacks were a remarkably energetic race 
of negroes, and, in numbers and efficiency greatly underrated by 
the 'whites, had now concentrated near Petite Ance. Their leader 
was Paul Dessalines, twin brother to the famous chief, Jean 
Jacques Dessalines, who, some years later, aided by yellow fever, 
drove out the veterans of Napoleon, avenging the perfidious 
seizure of Toussaint 1'Ouverture, and winning black independence. 
The equal of Jean in ability, he would have equalled him in re- 
nown had not his cruelties early in the struggle made him the 
victim of a conspiracy. The brothers, physically and morally, 
bore to each other the most striking resemblance. Paul Dessa- 
lines was the black slave of a mulatto carpenter of the same 
name, from whose cruelties he had fled to the mountains, where 
he raised the standard of revolt The course of affairs in France 
and the struggle of the mulattoes for civil rights engendered 
among the blacks a wild spirit of liberty, which a general laxity 
of rule throughout the colony greatly favored. Under these cir- 
cumstances, Dessalines gained many recruits, and soon became the 
recognized head of a formidable band, and was the chief fomenter 
of the insurrection. His men were disciplined with inexorable se- 
verity and drilled in the most careful manner, arms being readily 
obtained from the neighboring Spaniards, whose troops were dis- 
tributed along the line of demarcation, and between whom and 
the French there existed an inveterate jealousy. They were in- 
different shots, but the dreadful bayonet, attached to muskets of 
unusual length, proved in their powerful hands well-nigh resist- 
less. Dessalines himself was entirely illiterate, unable either to 
read or write, yet possessed a shrewd intelligence, and delighted 
in the display of a low cunning. His profound knowledge of 
negro character, joined to great bodily strength and undaunted 
courage, enabled him to acquire over his followers unbounded in- 
fluence. His military talents stood in daring movement and as- 
tonishing celerity. In his morals he was execrable, a lustful, 
bloodthirsty monster, whose savage character was deepened by 
daily potations of rum. His subordinates trembled before him, 



18890 



1 7 g i A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 



99 



and never felt their heads safe upon their shoulders until out of 
his presence. Withal, a preposterous vanity possessed him. He 
surrounded himself with mimic royalty, gave his officers grand 
titles, dressed in flashy uniform, and (it is said) even carried 
about with him a dancing-master, whose instructions, as Mr, 
McKenzie has humorously observed, very much resembled an at- 
tempt to teach a tiger civilization. He made occasional forays 
upon the plain, retiring with the booty beyond the Spanish line, 
and his name was a terror throughout all the Northern province. 

A league west from Petite Ance, or, rather, from its site, for 
Dessalines had just destroyed the village in fire and blood, lay a 
valley, skirted on three sides by dense woods, a sylvan cut de 
sac. At the head of this valley Dessalines had encamped with 
a force six or seven thousand strong, a force constantly increas- 
ing, almost wholly unorganized, many without arms save an axe 
or a club, yet fresh from massacres, raging with ferocious pas- 
sion as famished tigers that had tasted blood, and unconscious of 
the fate awaiting failure. Every step of progress on the part of 
the French from the time of leaving the Cape his runners made 
known to the black chief. He awaited an attack, instead of 
being, as he usually was, the attacking party, because his camp 
was a centre for concentration, and every possible moment was 
needed to put in some sort of array the raw and swelling throng. 
His trained musketeers, divided into squads, he distributed through 
the mass to serve as centres of discipline and steadiness. Fearing 
the effect of the artillery, in order to counteract if, as well as to 
force, as far as possible, hand-to-hand fighting, and give the su- 
perb physique of the blacks its opportunity, Dessalines encour- 
aged a notion prevailing among them, that could they once touch 
the cannon and mutter over them certain magical words the guns 
would be hurtless. 

M. de Touzard rested his troops through the mid-day, and 
sighting the insurgents late in the afternoon, immediately advanced 
upon them with his batteries in the centre. The first discharge 
from the cannon was a signal for the onset of the blacks, who 
rushed with wild cries to the muzzles of the guns. Several of 
these were served by experienced artillerists from the ships-of-war 
in port, and did fearful execution. The blacks, moreover, were 
exposed to a cross fire from the wings, and before the deadly 
volleys fled into the forest. The French began to think the 
battle ended, when the enemy again charged pell-mell from the 
woods. These charges were repeated with a promptness and im- 
petuosity astonishing to De Touzard ; and though the blacks in 

VOL. L. 7 



ioo lypiA T-ALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 



some instances reached the enemy's line and got in bloody work, 
yet they were invariably driven back by -the fatal French fire, 
and as nightfall approached, Dessalines resolved upon a change 
in the disposition of his men. Concentrating, therefore, his mus- 
keteers, he placed himself at their head, and, followed by his en- 
tire force, threw himself resistlessly upon the batteries. The 
artillerists were overwhelmed, and clubbed or bayoneted almost 
to a man ; the French centre was completely broken, and De 
Touzard was in despair, when, to his utter amazement, the main 
body of these brave but untutored warriors, having put the spell 
upon the cannon and being unconscious of their advantage, betook 
themselves with a number of prisoners to the woods. The French 
rallied, and drove back the remainder of the enemy. 

It was now dark, and firing ceased. De Touzard, confounded at 
the numbers and desperate courage of the blacks, and finding they 
were receiving constant accessions, deemed it prudent to retreat. 
With the camp-fires burning, he quietly withdrew, leaving his dead 
and cannon behind, and reached the Cape after midnight. The 
French loss was small compared with that of the insurgents, who 
exposed themselves in the most reckless way. 

Among the captives was Henry Pascal. He had been struck 
down senseless, and was about receiving a bayonet stab when a 
powerful black rushed up and, thrusting aside the weapon, ex- 
claimed : " He's my prisoner ! " His rescuer, whoever he was, 
became lost to him in the darkness and tumultuous retreat to the 
woods. 

CHAPTER VIII. 
INTERCEDING. 

When Dessalines discovered the retreat of the French it was 
too late to pursue ; but he despatched several fleet mulatto run- 
ners, who, mingling with the mulatto troops in the French army, 
entered the Cape in the confusion, and during the night scattered 
on the streets copies of his proclamation. As shown below, it 
was a bombastic and sanguinary production, thoroughly charac- 
teristic of the man, and written, at his dictation, by his secretary, 
Chantalte, an educated mulatto ; for Dessalines' learning did not 
go beyond the ability to mechanically scrawl his name. 

" LIBERTY OR DEATH ! 

"Blacks! the God of justice has brought the axe to bear upon 
the decrepit tree of slavery and prejudice, and raised my arm to 



1889.] 



/ A TALE OF SAN* DOMINGO. 



101 



strike off your fetters. The irritated Genius of San Domingo 
appears his aspect is menacing his hand is powerful. Like an 
overflowing and mighty torrent, that bears down all opposition, 
let your vengeful fury sweep away your oppressors. Tyrants ! 
usurpers ! tremble. Our daggers are sharpened, your punish- 
ment ready ! Ten thousand men, obedient to my orders, burn to 
offer a new sacrifice to Liberty. Awakened from your lethargy, 
with arms in your hands, join your brothers, and claim your 
sacred and indelible rights. Where is the black so vile, so un- 
worthy of regeneration, as to pause ? If there be one, let him 
fly ; indignant nature discards him from our bosom. Let him 
hide his infamy far from hence. The air we breathe is not suited 
to his gross organs ; it is the air of liberty, pure, august, and 
triumphant. 

" Yellows ! whom the infernal politics of Europeans for a long 
time endeavored to divide from us, rally to our standard. Simi- 
lar calamities, hanging over your proscribed heads, should make 
us indivisible and inseparable. It is the pledge of your happi- 
ness, your salvation, and your success. It is the secret of being 
invincible. Independence or death ! Let these sacred words be 
the signal of battle and of union. 

" They tell us that the English from Jamaica are coming to 
assist the French, and refasten upon our limbs the galling fetters 
of slavery. Let these English be accursed. Every man from 
Jamaica falling into our hands shall be put to death. 

" Headquarters near the Cape, August 24, 1791. 

"(Signed) GENERAL DESSALINES." 

Tidings of the repulse spread like wild-fire, and the morning 
of the 26th found the Cape in an agony of despair. The inhab- 
itants were horror-stricken and in the most dreadful state of un- 
certainty as to what course to pursue. It was believed that 
Dessalines was marching on the city. His force was vastly ex- 
aggerated, and many thought it better to at once make terms, 
even with such a monster, than to provoke his rage by fruitless 
resistance. Such at the moment was the fear and irresolution 
that, had the black chief appeared before the Cape, it must un- 
doubtedly have fallen. Happily for it, he was then planning an 
assault upon Dondon and Grand Riviere, and the inhabitants 
of the Cape, recovering from their panic, soon rendered its 
naturally strong defences impregnable. 

The news of Henry Pascal's capture at once became known 
throughout the city, where his frank, open manners and generous 



io2 ijc)i A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

qualities had made him a universal favorite. In view of Dessa- 
lines' proclamation, there was but one opinion as to his fate; for 
he was partly English or American born, had an English air, and 
spoke the language as a native. Withal, he had recently arrived 
from Jamaica, and, in ignorance of the proclamation, would not be on 
his guard. Beyond this consideration, it was thought the savage 
Dessalines would not fail to wreak vengeance on the prisoners for 
the horrible tortures with which certain captured blacks had been 
just put to death at the Cape. Early on the morning of the 26th 
Colonel Tourner, who could not leave his duties, by one of his men 
despatched a note to his wife with a copy of the proclamation, 
acquainting her with the situation, and deeply commiserating the 
capture of M. Pascal. He detailed the grounds for the opinion 
universally entertained in regard to his fate, and added that, as 
his daughter would scarcely avoid hearing the report, it would be 
better she should break the news to her without delay, and as 
considerately as possible. 

Confused rumors of the disaster had reached the Sappho, wild 
fears prevailed among the refugees abroad, and the desire for 
authentic intelligence was intense. Madame Tourner, therefore, 
received her husband's letter with the utmost eagerness, and im- 
mediately repaired to her apartment to read it, accompanied by 
her daughter. The latter was intently listening, when suddenly 
her mother's voice ceased. 

" What is it ? " she anxiously cried, advancing to look over 
the letter. 

" In a moment, Emilie ; there is something here for me" 
answered Madame Tourner, as her eyes rapidly ran over the lines. 

An explanation was unavoidable, and making a hurried finish, 
she said before her daughter could speak, and with as much com- 
posure as she could assume : 

" Your father, Emilie, mentions unpleasant news as to one of 
our friends." 

" What friend ? Is it Monsieur Pascal ? " she exclaimed almost 
in the same breath ; for she knew he had been exposed to danger, 
and it flashed into her mind there could be no other friend whose 
misfortune would be likely to be withheld from her. 

"Yes, Emilie; but" 

" Has he been killed ? " she broke in with a quivering lip. 

"No." 

" Wounded ? " 

"No." 

" What, then, has befallen him ? " 



1889.] ijt)iA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 103 

" He is a captive." 

"A captive in the hands of Dessalines!" she cried out, with 
a countenance turning deadly pale, as the negro horrors she had 
lately experienced, and all the stories she had heard of the black 
chief, conjured up the most harrowing fate. " O Maman ! 
Maman ! it would have been better had he fallen in battle !" And 
she sank into her seat and sobbed aloud in her anguish. Madame 
Tourner rose, and tenderly kissing her daughter, put her arms 
about her. 

" He yet lives, Emilie, and while there is life there is hope." 

" What does my father say ? " she asked, looking up. 

Her mother remained silent 

" Let me see his letter." 

There was a momentary reluctance to yield it, when she wildly 
cried : 

" Oh ! I must see it, I must know all ! " And receiving the 
letter, she read it and the enclosed proclamation with intense px- 
pression, her manner the while undergoing an evident change ; 
for, having finished, she said with a firm voice and resolute air: 

"There is but one possible means to save him, and I must put 
it into immediate execution." 

Madame Tourner directed towards her daughter a quick glance 
of interrogation, and she replied : 

" I will crave the intercession of Monsieur Tardiffe ; he has 
great influence with the blacks," rising, as she spoke, to make 
preparations for leaving. 

" My child! my child!" exclaimed Madame Tourner, alarmed 
for her daughter's mind under these terrible and repeated strain- 
ings, " are you beside yourself? Will you go to the city, and 
unprotected, too, when Dessalines is hourly expected, and they 
are preparing the Sappho for action ? " 

" I have no fears," she replied with a calmness strange to her 
mother; for her being, though powerfully roused, had become 
harmonious and steady, as all the faculties settled around a defi- 
nite, firm, and hopeful resolve. " My father's messenger will be 
my companion." 

" But, Emilie, my child, consider, I beseech you. What grounds 
have you for reckoning upon success with Monsieur Tardiffe ? He 
has noble, generous qualities, and such an appeal may not exceed 
their limit; but it would, under all the circumstances, be strain- 
ing them very far." 

" I know," she answered, with the same strange and sudden 
calmness, more alarming to her mother than the outgush of grief 



IO4 I79 1 ^ TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

had been, " that I have declined his addresses to receive those of 
the man for whose life I am to entreat his intercession ; but these 
very circumstances are the nobleness of the opportunity. If there 
be in Monsieur Tardiffe anything great and generous, he will hear 
me ; and I feel I shall succeed," she added, glowing with noble 
thought, and judging him from the standpoint of her own lofty 
nature. Madame Tourner knew the resolute character of her daugh- 
ter. She was fearful, too, of the effect of useless opposition upon 
an already overstrained mind ; and conscious, withal, that any 
hope for Henry Pascal lay in the direction of the proposed step, 
ceased to /remonstrate. In a few moments Emilie Tourner had 
made herself ready, and stood in the presence of the Sappho s 
commander, Captain Winslow, to ask a permit for an hour ashore. 
Astounded at . the request, the first impulse of the captain was a 
downright, peremptory refusal. But youth and beauty, pleading 
for a noble object, make a powerful advocate. Captain Winslow 
listened, and, as Dessalines had not been reported near, at length 
yielded to his lovely suppliant on a life and death mission ; 
exacting, however, her 'immediate return aboard upon the signal 
of the enemy's approach, a gun from the Sappho ; and within an 
hour after the arrival of her father's messenger she had landed 
on the quay, with her companion, from the jolly-boat of the ship. 
They at once crossed to la rue St. Nicholas, Emilie Tourner 
being closely veiled and directing her companion, for the Cape 
was familiar to her, and she knew the location of M. Tardiffe's 
home. A few blocks off, they turned north into la rue Dauphine, 
up which their course lay. Comparatively few persons were met, 
the citizens being all under arms at the assailable points. Here 
and there groups of mulatto women were observed gossipping in 
low tones, and the city wore a hushed and oppressive air. At 
the corner of la rue des Trois Chandeliers they passed " Aunt 
Sabina," in those days a well-known and eccentric Cape character, 
who for many years had been vending from this corner her famous 
ginger-bread and sugar-candy. The terrors of the hour were ap- 
parently lost upon the aged negress, who occupied her customary 
stool, with a tray of merchandise before her. A twenty minutes' 
walk brought them to the Place d'Armes, the most beautiful 
square in Cape Francois, and fronting which on the north 
side stood the mansion of M. Tardiffe. The fountain was playing, 
and the park, under the influence of the early rains, in splendid 
leaf and flower, but, absorbed in her thoughts, Emilie Tourner 
was oblivious to external objects. Of the church alone, just south 
from the park, did she appear conscious, and, in passing it, de- 



1889.] ifyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 105 



voutly crossed herself in supplication upon her mission. Here she 
dismissed her attendant, with a message to her father to see her 
as soon as possible. A stroke from the knocker brought the 
valet, and she was ushered into M. Tardiffe's luxurious draw- 
ing-room. 

When he presently appeared he was so utterly confounded at 
meeting Emilie Tourner, and at such a crisis, and with a coun- 
tenance so stricken by the terrors and griefs she had experienced, 
that for a moment he could not speak. Recovering himself, he 
quickly advanced, extending his hand, and catching from the in- 
tense soul before him a spirit of reality, broke through the mask 
of blandishment he commonly wore, and exclaimed with genuine 
feeling : 

" Mademoiselle ! Is it possible ? In God's name, what has 
happened ? " 

In low, intense tones, without a blush or hesitation, for self- 
consciousness was sunk in an overpowering fear for her lover, she 
answered : 

" Monsieur Pascal is a prisoner, and I am here to ask you, as 
the only hope for his life, to intercede with Dessalines ; a word 
from you, monsieur, can save him." 

M. Tardiffe was again completely thunderstruck, and for an in- 
stant could not reply. When he did, it was to repeat the words: 

" To intercede with Dessalines ! Mademoiselle, do you know 
anything of this man ? " 

" I have heard of him," she replied, " as a bloody-minded, 
merciless marauder, and he swears death to every comer from 
Jamaica." 

" Yes, mademoiselle ; and if he has heard of the horrible and 
indiscriminate torturing of blacks here, his fury is boiling to re- 
venge it." 

" It needs not, monsieur, to deepen the character of Dessa- 
lines. I know enough to feel persuaded that you alone may save 
Monsieur Pascal, even if it be not already too late to make the 
effort." 

" It was not my design, mademoiselle, believe me," replied 
M. Tardiffe, falling into his usual manner of speech, " to assure 
you of the fate of these unhappy captives, but to indicate the 
danger, even to an intercessor, with Dessalines in his present 
mood." 

"But you have great influence with the blacks," she answered. 

" I have influence in that direction, they say, mademoiselle ; 
though quite probably it is overestimated." 



io6 1791 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

" And I have ventured here, monsieur, to beg of you to use 
it in mercy," spoke the same low, intense voice. 

" Mademoiselle," he replied, still bewildered at the request, 
yet begfcming to see in it possible advantages for himself, and 
delaying an answer. until he could better take in the bearings, 
" I have never met Dessalines." 

"But Dessalines, monsieur, certainly knows of you, and he 
will hear your word. Let me entreat this favor," she added with 
fervid emphasis, and lifting her hands in supplication ; " beyond it 
there is no hope." 

It was observed just now that a lovely woman, in distress, 
and pleading for a noble end, wields a magic eloquence ; and 
fimilie Tourner's profound grief and appealing look and voice 
drew sympathy even from a nature as cold and as selfish as that 
of M. Tardiffe. He could not find it in his heart to prolong or 
dally with the mental agony visible behind her comparatively 
calm exterior, and which gave her an almost preternatural aspect ; 
and therefore replied : 

" Mademoiselle, I am at your service, freely. Whatever can 
be done shall be done. But I must have time to consider. 
What you ask involves difficulty and danger. The whereabouts of 
Dessalines is not now known. Many think he is advancing upon 
the Cape. Some definite intelligence will doubtless be received 
this afternoon, and I shall be able, most probably, to give an 
answer by four. Under no circumstances could action be taken 
before to-morrow morn." 

Warmly and fittingly Emilie Tourner expressed her thanks, 
and, rising, said : 

" I must now return. I had but an hour's leave of absence, 
and the time is almost expired," glancing, as she spoke, at an 
antique French clock, the face of which was ingeniously contrived 
to form portions of a picture upon the wall. 

" But, mademoiselle, you must not return afoot in the heat. 
I will have a gig instanter," said M. Tardiffe, as he left the 
room ; and ordering a servant to immediately place refreshments 
before his guest, he went for the vehicle himself, dwelling the 
while upon this startling request to intercede with Dessalines. 
Returning with the livery, he rapidly drove his visitor to the 
Calle opposite the Sappho. The ship's boat was hailed, and Emilie 
Tourner went aboard a few moments behind time. Madame 
Tourner's note and the accounts given by the messenger greatly 
alarmed the colonel, and the jolly-boat had been scarcely made 
fast when he hailed its return to the Calle. 



1889.] 



/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 



107 



" Tidings have just come," he said, as he embraced his wife 
and daughter, overjoyed at seeing him, " that Dessalines is yet 
in camp, and planning a move upon Dondon, and I have a bit 
of time off. I am here mainly on your account, Emmie," turn- 
ing to his daughter, and using the name by which he commonly 
addressed her. " I reached Monsieur Tardiffe's just after you had 
left. Your trip to town was reckless, RECKLESS, my child, and it 
amazes me that Captain Winslow should have allowed it." 

"Well, it is all over," she answered, with a faint smile, "and 
you see me safe and sound." 

" I don't see," he replied, " that you are altogether safe and 
sound ; your face is flushed, and your eyes look congested," 
scrutinizing her. " My daughter," he added in quickened tones, 
as he took her hand and pressed it, " have you fever ? " 

" Oh ! no," was her answer, with an evident effort to brighten 
up. " Don't you think I have passed through enough to account 
for some excitement and headache ? " 

" I dread, Emmie, these keen mental strainings. They are 
fraught with danger; and it grieves me you should have height- 
ened them this morning by what will prove, I fear, a barren effort." 

" There is hope for success, my father," she eagerly rejoined. 
" As far, at least, as regards Monsieur Tardiffe's willingness." 

" Emmie, Emmie, don't set your heart upon this hope. It 
needs a great height of generosity, such as I must believe is be- 
yond Monsieur Tardiffe's reach." 

This remark drew a response from Madame Tourner. The 
character of M. Tardiffe, as suitor to their daughter, had often 
come up for discussion between herself and her husband, and 
she as often had defended it from what she considered unjust 
disparagements. His recent generous conduct would not permit 
her to be silent now. 

" Monsieur Tardiffe," she said, " has taken all the action 
which, up to this time, is possible ; he has declared his willing- 
ness to do what he can, and so far, at least, I think he deserves 
credit." 

" Professions are cheap things, Marie," dryly observed the 
colonel. 

" He was our first visitor since our arrival on board," went on 
Madame Tourner, worried at the unfair reflections upon her friend. 
" He came here early yesterday morning to inquire after us, and 
offered, too, to place his means at our service." 

" Professions again, my dear, and in this quarter I have never 
doubted Monsieur Tardiffe's ability." t 



io8 /7p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Oct., 

Madame Tourner had determined for the present, at least, to 
withhold from the knowledge of her husband M. Tardiffe's bene- 
faction; but the opportunity to maintain her view and clear the 
character of her friend was an irresistible temptation, and she re- 
plied with an air -of triumph, as she drew forth the bill : 

" Does not this 100 note Monsieur Tardiffe left with me 
prove him a man of deeds ? " 

The colonel's face darkened in silence. Never before had 
money been received under such circumstances. Madame Tour- 
ner saw his chagrin, and hastened to exclaim : 

" Forgive me, my husband ! Monsieur Tardiffe's delicacy pre- 
sented it not as a gift, but to be paid back whenever we choose. 
I was in doubt whether I should receive it, and knew not the 
amount until after his departure. But, whatever our own views 
about taking it, its bestowal, I think, shows him to be something 
more than a bundle of mere professions." 

" Marie," the colonel gravely said, pursuing the train of thought 
awakened by this incident, "we are not yet outright beggars." 

" My husband, what have we left, save a remnant of cash and 
a few pieces of jewelry ? " 

" Getting back 'our own, Marie, is not impossible." 

" Oh ! that I could see the faintest ray of hope," she ex- 
claimed. " Shall we get back our slaves, with the negroes in 
open rebellion, and the current of national legislation setting in 
strongly towards emancipation ? " 

" But, Marie, the horrible deeds of the villains must change 
the current." 

" And do you suppose, my husband, the negroes would yield 
then, outnumbering us as they do, and flushed as they are by 
their successes ? " 

" And do you suppose," rejoined the colonel with emphasis, 
" we shall not be able aided, as we hope to be, from Jamaica 
to bring an effective force against them ? " 

" Oh ! Colonel Tourner, I can't imagine a darker prospect. 
Even were our slaves regained, how could we get on our feet 
again, with fields stripped and every house in ashes ? " 

" Affairs are dark, dark, Marie, I own ; yet light has broken 
over darker outlooks. As for this money, I grant the gener- 
osity of the act ; but my wish is that you hand it back, and that 
you say to Monsieur Tardiffe we have enough for present wants. 
When a loan is needed, there are other friends I would prefer 
seeking." 

" My dear husband," his, wife replied, still pressing into view 



1889.] I 79 I ~ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 109 

her despairing thoughts, " where can you find that other friend 
who is not also beggared ? And should one be found, what se- 
curity have you to offer for a loan ? Mon Dieu ! Mon Dieu ! 
what is to become of us ? " 

" Come, come, Marie ! Our talk is distressing Emmie, whose 
looks, by the way, give me concern. I've been absorbed in pub- 
lic duties, with little time for thought upon personal matters, yet 
I am not and shall not be hopeless. Great mercies have been 
granted us in the sparing of our lives, and, whatever the dark- 
ness, in the path of right I shall look for light." 

" Emmie, my dear child," he continued, turning to her, and 
speaking in a voice of subdued tenderness, " calm yourself, and 
yield to whatever God may will. You are a brave girl and a 
good Christian, and an hour like this is a trial by fire. The panic 
is waning, and the Cape can be made sure against all the force 
Dessalines may bring. In any hap, you and your mother are 
thoroughly safe here." 

" Do you think there is hope for M. Pascal ? " she asked in 
an intense way, indicative of her burning thoughts. 

" Have you read my note to your mother, Emmie ? " 

" Yes," she said, " but I thought your opinions may have un- 
dergone some change for the better." 

"I have nothing to add, my child, and let us not dwell upon this." 

" Do you think, please let me ask, that M. Tardiffe's interces- 
sion would be successful ?" 

" I have warned you," he replied, " not to set heart upon his 
trying it." 

" But, my father, should he attempt it, what think you would 
be the issue ? " 

" Well, Emmie, I can say thus much : M. Tardiffe has un- 
doubted weight with the blacks, and should he have the daring 
and greatness of soul to meet Dessalines and press the cause, I 
believe there would be good ground for hope. But I must have 
a word with the captain before leaving." 

And so saying, he sought Captain Winslow, an interview with 
whom in reference to certain matters bearing on the Cape's de- 
fence consumed the residue of the colonel's time. Kissing, there- 
fore, his wife and daughter, and bidding them keep brave hearts, 
and promising, if nothing prevented, to see them again on the 
morrow, he took the jolly-boat and was speedily put ashore. 

E. W. GlLLlAM, M.D. 

[TO BE CONTINUED.] 



no AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 


AMIEL AND PESSIMISM.* 

I. 

MRS. HUMPHRY WARD recently stormed the reading world with 
a questionable boon in the shape of a novel which was widely 
read and commented upon, and which is now being safely stowed 
away to give place to the next novelty. The book pictured the 
disintegration of the faith of an Anglican clergyman beneath the 
cold touch of scepticism. The arguments and temptations to 
which the hero yielded are not stated ; they are simply hinted 
at ; we do not know their strength. We only know that a soul 
wrestles unto death and is overcome. The book has been regarded 
as a propagator of Agnosticism. Perhaps it is. And if so, it is 
because Agnosticism has become an intellectual fashion. As a 
matter of curiosity, we should be glad to come upon a specimen 
of the intellect honestly seeking the truth and influenced in its 
search, to the extent of a hair's-breadth, by Robert Elsmere. 

Mrs. Humphry Ward now introduces to the reading world 
another work, the Journal Intime of Amiel, and whether it is to 
be regarded as a bane or a boon we shall leave to the reader to 
decide. It is a powerful book. There are passages in it worthy 
of Pascal. It is the revelation of a soul wrestling in all earnest- 
ness with all the various life-problems that come before it 
sounding all and solving none. Amiel was born in 1821 and 
died in 1881. He was educated in the doctrines of Calvin. 
From his twenty-first to his twenty-seventh year he studied in 
Berlin and travelled through Europe. He afterwards settled down 
in Geneva, making an indifferent professor, a solitary student de- 
vouring all kinds of books, reserved, but ill-understood except by 
a few intimate friends, who were continually deploring that " a man 
so richly gifted produced nothing or only trivialities." Amiel was 
the victim of revery. He lacked will-power. He confesses as 
much himself: " I have too much imagination, conscience, and 
penetration, and not enough character. The life of thought alone 
seems to me to have enough elasticity and immensity, to be free 
enough from the irreparable ; practical life makes me afraid." 

* The Journal Intime of Henri-Frederic Amiel. Translated, with an Introduction and 
Notes, by Mrs. Humphry Ward. London and New York: MacMillan & Co. 1889. Pp. 
i.-xliii., 1-304. 



I889-J AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. in 

Such is the man whose journal is before us: a soul in which 
the beliefs of Calvinism are shattered by the philosophies of Hegel 
and Schleiermacher and Schopenhauer ; a soul in which you look 
in vain for a consistent system of thought, and which out of all 
the wreck seems to have saved the Calvinistic sense of sin, a sense 
of personal responsibility, an intense feeling of the transitoriness of 
all life, and a yearning for the Nirvana of Buddha. In 1848 he 
began his journal with the beautiful Christian sentiment, " There 
is but one thing needful to possess God." In 1873 he is over- 
come by his old enemy, the sense of the vague. " It is," he says, 
" a sense of void and anguish ; a sense of something lacking : 
what? Love, peace God, perhaps/' That Presence which was a 
certainty to him at first is now a perhaps. He feels and be- 
moans this drifting away from the old moorings : " My thought 
is straying in vague paths ; why ? Because I have no creed. 
All my studies end in notes of interrogation,, and that I 
may not draw premature or arbitrary conclusions, I draw 
none." Unconsciously does he find himself landed in har- 
mony with Schopenhauer, even while insisting that there is 
good in the world. He writes : " The individual is an eternal 
dupe, who never obtains what he seeks, and who is for ever de- 
ceived by hope. My instinct is in harmony with the pessimism 
of Buddha and Schopenhauer." * His intellect still sees the 
good and the true of life ; f it revolts against the blasphemies 
of Bahnsen and Proudhon, and foresees a reaction in favor of 
Christianity. J His religious instincts sustain him to the end 
in a spirit of resignation to God's will. But the God of Amiel is 
not the God of Christianity ; it is rather the God of Spinoza. He 
has retained the Christian formula of expression, but he long ago 
abandoned what he calls " Semitic dramaturgy." Does not this 
sentence read like an extract torn from The Imitation f " Crucify 
the rebellious self, mortify yourself wholly, give up all to God, 
and the peace which is not of this world will descend upon 
you." And again he says : " To me religion is life before 
and in God." || And yet he is far removed from the spirit of 
Christian mortification and expiation. 

But the problem that pressed most heavily upon Amiel was 
the problem of evil. 

" Ah ! " he exclaims, " the problem of grief and evil is and will be always 
the greatest enigma of being, only second to the existence of being itself. . . . 
The Christian says to God : ' Deliver us from evil. ' The Buddhist adds : ' And 

* 3ist August, 1869. t Ibid. J 29* December, 1871. 

i5th April, 1870. || soth April, 1869. 



ii2 AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

to that end deliver us from finite existence, give us back to nothingness !' . . . 
One thing only is necessary, the committal of the soul to God. Look that thou 
thyself art in order, and leave to God the task of unravelling the skein of the 
world and of destiny. What do annihilation or immortality matter ? What is 
to be will be. And what will be will be for the best. Faith in good perhaps 
the individual wants nothing more for his passage through life. Only he must 
have taken sides with Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, and Zeno against materialism, 
against the religion of accident and pessimism." * 

The vacillation running through his life is also part of his 
thought. He cannot long hold to a thread of argument. The 
main idea projecting from this passage is acquiescence in the 
Must-be. But the problem of evil remains unsolved. It crops 
up all through the journal, but with no better result. He asks : 
"Is not destiny the inevitable? And is not destiny the anonymous 
title of Him or of That which the religious call God ? To descend 
without murmuring the stream of destiny, to pass without revolt 
through loss after loss, and diminution after diminution, with no 
other limit than zero before us this is what is demanded of 
us." f And to his credit be it said, he lived up to this rule of 
bearing suffering and disappointments with great patience. The 
pathos of his last entry, made on the eve of death, is most touch- 
ing: "A terrible sense of oppression. My flesh and my heart 
fail me. Que vivre est difficile, 6 man c&ur fatigue / " f Submis- 
sion, indeed, to the Must-be, but no hope. A death worthy of a 
disciple of S^kya-Mouni. Amiel struggled against pessimism 
through life, but pessimism had practically taken up its abode in 
his soul and he was more at one with Schopenhauer than he 
ever admitted to himself. Were it not well to examine a system 
that has wrecked so many promising lives, and is daily more and 
more pervading our current literature ? Pessimism is a problem 
of the hour. 

II. 

Schopenhauer is the philosopher of pessimism. Let us ask 
him his solution for the problem of reconciliation between the 
secular and religious elements of society. But first a word upon 
the pessimism of the nineteenth century. Leibnitz was emphati- 
cally the philosopher of modern optimism. He taught that all was 
for the best in this best of possible worlds. During the eighteenth 
century his optimism prevailed among the writers and thinkers of 
Europe. It entered as a soothing element into the philosophy of 
superficial complacency then prevalent. Shaftesbury and Boling- 

* 24th April, 1869. t 5th January, 1877. \ igth April, 1881. 



1889.] 



AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. 



113 



broke basked in its sunshine. Pope, in his Essay on Man, feebly 
reproduced its main tenets. Hume picked flaws in it. Voltaire 
cleverly satirized certain aspects of it in his Candide. With the 
dawning of the nineteenth century a spirit of unrest and vague 
yearning hovered over sensitive natures. Chateaubriand was for 
a time under its influence during which he wrote Rene but he 
cast it off with the infidelity that threatened to blight his beauti- 
ful intellect. Byron inhaled its noxious vapors ; they rendered 
him cynical and embittered toward the world, and inspired Cain 
and Manfred. Lamartine took the malady in a milder form ; its 
presence may be detected in the melancholy tone pervading some 
of his sweetest poems. Heine felt the depth of human misery, 
and liis muse sang the world-pain, Der Weltschmerz, but his 
moods were many and he could not long remain a pessimist 
Lenau was deeply impressed with the vanity and the transitori- 
ness of all things ; their fleeting seemed part of himself.* 

But the poet of pessimism is Leopardi (1798-1837). A life- 
long invalid, his body racked with pain, his soul ever stooping to 
drink of the waters of pleasure, and, Tantalus-like, ever finding 
them recede farther and farther beyond his reach, he came to look 
upon life as the greatest evil and death as the greatest good, arid 
he sang the song of the world's desolation and unhappiness 
infelicita with the nerve and calm of confirmed despair. Life 
was to him somethmg wretched and dreadful, f a burden which 
he dragged along with loud murmuring. " He everywhere saw 
lamentation, cruelty, cowardice, injustice, and weariness." \ And 
the vision was to him a source of dreary delight. " I rejoice," 
he wrote to his bosom friend, Giordani, " to discover more and 
more, and to touch with my hands, the misery of men and things, 
and to be seized* with a cold shudder as I search through the 
wretched and terrible secret of the life of the universe." Life 
had for him no other worth than to hold it in scorn. || 

Elsewhere he tells us : " We are born to tears ; . . . 
happiness smiles not upon our lives ; our afflictions make heaven 
rejoice." fl In the poem in which, in a final groan of despair, he 
concentrated all the sorrow, all the agony, all the defiance of his 
unhappy life, he assures us that " on this obscure grain of sand 
called earth . . . nature has no more concern for man than 

*Es braust in meines Herzens wildem Tact 
Verganglichkeit ! dein lauter Katerakt ! Die Zweifler. 

t Opere, i. 59. \ Licurgo Cappelletti : Poesie di Giacomo Leopardi, p. 38. 

Epistolario, \. 352. 

|| Nostra vita a che val ? Sola a spregiarla. A un Vindtore ml Pallone, op. i. 57. 
IF // Sogno, op. i. 84. 



ii4 AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

she has for the worm." * Need we wonder that he should envy 
the dead ? His pessimism grew into his soul till it became part 
of himself. Patriotism, enthusiasm, aspirations for the good and 
the true in their highest and most ennobling sense, all came to a 
premature blight beneath the touch of scepticism, and his gifted 
soul stands out parched and arid as the barren sides of Vesuvius 
on which he was wont to gaze. His life and his writings form a 
complete contrast with the life and the writings of Manzoni. Each 
is perfect in his art ; but where one strikes out morbidness and 
blank despair, the other is joyous, hopeful, and patriotic. And 
the cause of this difference ? Within the breast of the author of 
I Promessi Sposi glowed the fire of religious faith ; within the breast 
of the singer of La Ginestra that fire had become extinguished 
and was reduced to a cold burned cinder, such as underlay 
the broom-shrub he sang, f 

While Leopardi was chanting the song of pessimism, Schopen- 
hauer (1788-1860) was forging its philosophy. And what is his 
solution of the problem of evil ? How does he reconcile the se- 
cular and religious elements of society ? To begin with, Schopen- 
hauer is a rabid opponent of Hegelism. He denies the Hegelian 
Idea. He sees no growth or development towards a better or a 
best in this world ; he considers it the worst possible world that 
could have existed, the domain of accident and error, into which 
man is born that he may live in misery and^ die the victim' of a 
deceiving power that overrides all things and makes the individual 
miserable in the interests of the species. That power Schopen- 
hauer calls Will. This is neither the infinite personal Will which 
we recognize as an attribute of God, nor the finite personal will 
of the human soul. In the philosophy of Schopenhauer there is 
place neither for the soul nor for God. Will he* defines to be "the 
innermost nature, the kernel of every particular thing, and equally 
of the totality of existence. It appears in every blind force of na- 
ture ; it manifests itself also in the deliberate action of man ; and 
the great difference between these two is merely in the degree of 
the manifestation, not in the nature of what manifests itself"! 
This Will underlies all phenomena. It includes the operations of 
the material world as well as those of man's consciousness his 
hopes and fears, his loves and hates. In one sense it may be 
identified with the noumenon of Kant ; in another it is more than 
the noumenon, or the Thing-in-itself. It is the ultimate re- 
ality of all things, the bond of unity holding the universe together. 

* La Ginestra. \ La Ginestra is the broom-shrub. 

\ Die Weltals Wille und Vorstellung, i. 131. $ Ding an Sich. 




AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. 115 

It is the real source of all human action, personal and external 
motives being the special conditions for its various manifestations.* 
It works without end, and apparently without aim. Pain and 
misery follow its course. Pain is the positive state of life ; pleas- 
ure is its negative state. The only real enjoyment in life is that 
derived from intellectual culture. All others, when analyzed and 
the philosopher enters into a searching analysis of each and every 
source of pleasure to man are found to be fleeting, unsatisfactory, 
and merely the absence of pain. This part of his system may be 
summed up in the words of Byron : 

"Count o'er the joys thine hours have seen, 

Count o'er thy days from anguish free, 
And know, whatever thou hast been, 
'7 something better not to &e." 

What remedy is there for this state of things ? How may 
the misery of man be best ameliorated ? The supreme remedy, 
according to Schopenhauer, is for all men and women to lead a 
life of celibacy, and thus hasten the end of all human misery. 
In the absence of this universal understanding, it is the duty of 
each individual to resist with all the energies of his nature the 
tendencies and impulses of the tyrannical Will which is the 
source of all his sufferings. In order to render his resistance 
effective, he seeks an emancipation of the intellect from the 
dominion of the Will. This emancipation is brought about, 
in the first placCj by the practice of virtue, and especially 
of charity and pity for suffering and misery ; and secondly, 
by renouncing all the aims of life, and seeking self-control and 
resignation in the fastings and mortifications of asceticism. It is 
the remedy of Sakya-Mouni without the gentle spirit of Sakya 
to give it life. It is a seeking after Nirvana. This is a consum- 
mation to which the proud and selfish spirit of Schopenhauer was 
certainly unequal. " He has," says Amiel, " no sympathy, no 
humanity, no love."f 

But why dwell upon this system in the broad daylight of the 
nineteenth century ? Has it not been called " a philosophy of ex- 
ception and transition "? j: It is because the exception bids fair 
to become the rule. It takes no deep insight into European 
thought to detect its widespread influence. "The whole of the 
present generation," says Vaihinger, "is impregnated with the 
Schopenhauer mode of thinking." Von Hartmann, while ac- 

* Sully : Pessimism, p. 70. t i6th August, 1869. 

t M. Caro : Revue des Deux Mondcs, 1877, p. 514. 

$ See Ferdinand Laban : Die Schopenhauer-Literatur, Leipzig, 1880, p. i. 
VOL. L. 8 



ii6 AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

cepting the same pessimistic views, undertook to reduce their so- 
lution to a still more scientific demonstration. He also asserts 
that creation is a mistake, the result of blind folly, and, therefore, 
that death is preferable to life, not-being to being. He recognizes 
a power pervading and unifying all nature and all history. He 
calls this power the Unconscious. It is instinctive, blind, and yet 
somehow it works with design. It is ever struggling from the 
lower to the higher forms of life, bringing with it increased capa- 
city for pain according as it grows into consciousness. " It is an 
eternal pining Schmachten for fulfilment, and is the absolute un- 
blessedness, torment without pleasure, even without pause." It is 
not to be confounded with human consciousness. The latter is 
subject to disease and exhaustion, is conditioned by material 
brain or nervous ganglia, and is liable to error. The Uncon- 
scious is above all conditions of space and time and matter, and is 
infallible in its actions. Man is apparently free, but his work is 
laid out for him and he is moved by the Unconscious. The Un- 
conscious is the organizer of all life. It moulds plant and animal 
each according to its kind. It determines the various forms of 
life rather than Darwin's principle of natural selection, which only 
accounts for physiological changes. The world was born of will 
and idea. Existence Hartmann conceives to be created out of the 
embrace of the two super-existent principles, " the potency of 
existence deciding for existence," and " the purely existent." 
Now, " the potency of existence " is simply the Aristotelian and 
scholastic "matter," and the "purely existent" is their "form." 
Hartmann is only repeating the time-honored idea that all 
things are the product of matter and form. Will, according to 
him, is the prime factor of human misery. But there is a scale 
in the capacity for suffering. The animal suffers less than man, 
the oyster less than the animal, and the unconscious plant less 
than all. Thus does suffering increase with the degree of in- 
telligence. This has been formulated as follows : " Pain is an 
intellectual function, perfect in proportion to the development of 
the intelligence." * 

The Unconscious is the guiding spirit of history. By means 
of the sexual impulse it founds the family. By means of the 
social instinct it founds the clan. By means of the instinct of 
"enmity of all to all," and the consequent struggle for exis- 
tence, it consolidates the tribe and founds the nation. On, on 
it moves in its iron purpose through the ages. Individuals are 

* M. Richet : La Douleur, Etude de Psyckologie Physiologique. Revue Phllosophique, Novem- 
bre, 1877. 




1889.] AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. 117 

sacrificed, peoples suffer, nations grow and decay and are blotted 
out from the face of the earth ; but, unheeding, unpitying, onward 
still it moves. It manages so that the right men are born at the 
right time, that the right work is done at the right moment, caring 
naught for the suffering and misery entailed in the process. 
Such, in a nutshell, is the system of Hartmann. 

And what is his remedy against all this pain ? Does he also 
seek refuge in the teachings of Buddha ? No ; but after reading 
his solution of the problem of evil, you ask if sanity can dictate 
such thoughts. He considers it the highest duty of man to 
work in harmony with the Unconscious, and promote general 
growth of intelligence and spread of sympathy. Then, after all 
intelligences shall have become enlightened, " and as wisdom grows 
and the hopeless monotony of grief is acutely felt by the race, 
humanity will rise up boldly to the last great act of despairing 
suicide and reduce the Unconscious to its primeval nullity." To 
this nightmare of a cosmic suicide does Von Hartmann reduce his 
philosophic dreams. No wonder Amiel should write : " Every- 
thing has chilled me this morning : the cold of the season, the 
physical immobility around me, but, above all, Hartmann's Philo- 
sophy of the Unconscious.'" * 



III. 

A cold, cold study is this. Let us now examine our results 
in the warm and genial rays of truth as they have been trans- 
mitted to us. Our uppermost thought is that the phases of 
intellect we have been dissecting are abnormal. They are sicklied 
o'er with the pale cast of thought. Amiel struggled against the 
baneful current, but, as we have seen, to little purpose. Blight 
and sterility mark his life. His reveries destroyed his will-power. 
Hartmann had to write his autobiography in order to defend 
himself against strange rumors. Books have been written to prove 
an hereditary taint in the mind of Schopenhauer ; books have 
been written to prove that Leopardi's views are the outcome of 
his physical and moral torments. As one of his admirers forcibly 
puts it: "Pain has never given birth to hymns of joy, and he 
who has hell in his soul cannot certainly celebrate the glories of 
the blessed, nor sing the joys of paradise."! Amid other en- 
vironments, and with the aid of prayer and the habit of self- 
control, these lives would have given out other notes. 

* 'Journal, p. 162. t L. Cappelletti: Poesie di G. Leopardi, Parma, 1881, p. 90. 



ii8 AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

Still, if pessimism were confined to a few abnormally sensitive 
natures, and within the covers of a few books, we might leave it 
untouched and dwell upon philosophic issues of more general in- 
terest. But pessimism is spreading its baneful influence over 
every department of literature. It has its organs of opinion and 
expression throughout the world. It has found its way into the 
books of the hour. You read it in their exaggerations of the miseries 
of life. It places arguments in favor of suicide in the hands of 
the coward who lacks the courage to face life's difficulties. It is 
the inspiring doctrine of socialism and nihilism. The philosophy 
of despair, it finds no worth in life, for it recognizes life 
only as a quest after one knows not what, ending in disillu- 
sion and disappointment. Do you not find this view of life per- 
vading many a volume in verse and prose that makes up some 
of the most artistic literature of the day ? It is the inspiration 
of the philosophic poems of Madame Ackerman. It runs through 
the novels of Sacher-Masoch. It flavors those of Turgenieff. It 
has indited the City of Dreadful Night. It traced El Diablo 
Hondo of Espronceda. In Russia the godless and prayerless 
asceticism of Schopenhauer has its fanatics.* Bitterness in 
thought and feeling, and cynicism and inanition are its legit- 
imate fruits. It destroys the normal joyousness of the healthy 
soul. It is indeed a virulent malady. Thus has the ration- 
alism of the day attempted to do away with God and religion. 
But men must have a formula into which they can trans- 
late their emotions. Religion has supplied that formula in 
prayer. Rationalism now appeals to science to supplant the 
religious formula, but science is unequal to the task. 

Little good is to be looked for in a philosophy as purely 
subjective as this pessimism. " The world is my idea Vors- 
tellung my intellectual perception. The world is my will." So 
reiterates Schopenhauer. And Hartmann tells us that there is no 
such thing as happiness, just as there are no such things as God 
and truth. All are subjective. Things are what we think them. 
Thus all thought, all science, the moral and the material world, 
even God, in this system, are reduced to a mere act of conscious- 
ness. The philosophy that refuses to recognize object as well 
as subject as a primary element of thought is bound to end in 
just such a quagmire. The pessimist's solution for the great 
modern world-problem the reconciliation between the secular and 
religious elements in society is the destruction of God, the soul, 
and all religion. He would make a waste and call it peace. 

* Revue des Deux Mondes, Juin, 1875. 



1889.] AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. 119 

Another fundamental error underlying pessimism is that it 
assumes pleasure to be the object of existence. Now, we are not 
in this world for the amount of pleasure it may bring us. Both 
Hartmann and Schopenhauer read in their master, Kant, a higher 
purpose. He taught them that morality is the chief aim of life; 
that man is here for the fulfilment of duty ; that in this fulfilment 
is his supreme earthly happiness ; that in the struggle to over- 
come himself he creates his own personality, and that sufferings 
and mishaps are so many stepping-stones by which man rises to 
the full growth and development of his nature. Kant might at- 
tempt to disprove the existence of God, but he could not destroy 
the moral purpose of life and the sense of duty in the human 
breast. And in these planks saved from the general wreck of 
the Critique of Pure Reason we have the wherewith to scale to 
heaven's threshold and demonstrate the existence of God. The 
pessimist may reject but he cannot destroy these elementary 
truths. In their light existence has a totally different meaning, 
and we begin to realize how vastly before pleasure stands 
duty. 

But bad as the world is in the eyes of our pessimists, the 
world still retains this sense of obligation, be it ever so ignored 
by philosophy. The world cannot move without the moral code. 
Renan, even while denying its obligations, acknowledges its 
necessity. " Nature," he says, " has need of the virtue of indi- 
viduals, but this virtue is an absurdity in itself; men are duped 
into it for the preservation of the race."* Surely if virtue 
is an absurdity into which men are duped, then indeed is there 
no obligation. Then is there no such thing as sin. This thought 
caused Amiel to ask : " What does M. Renan make of sin ?" 
And M. Renan, with his characteristic flippancy, answers : Eh bien, 
je crois que je le supprime.^ 

If Renan is right, then he who rises up against this terrible 
illusion and seeks to destroy it be the consequences what they 
may is a true philosopher and deserves well of all men. If 
Renan is right and Schopenhauer is right, then all honor to 
pessimism for rending the veil of delusion and revealing the 
reality. A simple remedy this of overcoming a difficulty, to sup- 
press it, ignore it. As though the dishonest debtor could 
satisfy justice by wiping out the amount of his indebtedness, or 
the man who injured his neighbor by word or deed could repair 
the wrong by ignoring the injured neighbor ! 

Although the pessimist in his speculations wanders so far away 

* Dialogues Philosophiques, intro. xiv.-xvii. t Amiel's Journal, fntro. xl. 



120 AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

from our most elementary standard of truth, still is he a keen 
observer and analyzer of men and things. He states facts even 
while misinterpreting the facts. And our safest method of refu- 
tation consists in separating theory from the facts and principles 
underlying the theory. If we would understand any system we 
must stand at its central point on a common ground with him 
who holds the system. It not unfrequently happens that the 
whole difference between two disputants consists in each giving a 
different name to the same thing. To begin with, then, there is 
in the whole animal creation man included a tendency that 
makes for the preservation of the race at the expense of the in- 
dividual. There is a struggle for survival carried out along the 
whole scale of vital existence. There are in the human breast 
fierce passions which, when unleashed, play havoc with the indi- 
vidual and society. It is a natural tendency for man to 
lift hand against his fellow-man in contention for supremacy. 
What other meaning have those immense armies now exhausting 
the energies and resources of Europe? So do the occupants 
of neighboring ant-hills wage war; they also have their tribe 
and race feuds; they fight their battles of extermination 
and subjugation. So far we are at one with the pessimist. But 
here our roads diverge. Man with us is not all animal ; he is 
also a rational being. Those tendencies and impulses which in the 
brute creation are a matter of accurately defined instinct, which 
guides them and measures their use, are in man subject to his 
reason. And the dictates of his reason are distinct from the 
promptings of his passions or his natural tendencies. St. Paul 
recognized and clearly defined hese two tendencies in his nature, 
and he called each a law : " I see another law in my members, 
fighting against the law of my mind, and captivating me in the 
law of sin, that is in my members."* It is this natural tendency 
and impulse that Schopenhauer calls Will and that Hartmann 
interprets as the Unconscious. 

Dark as is the pessimist's picture of the world's misery, it is 
scarcely overdrawn. The physical suffering, the untold pangs of 
the wounded and the breaking heart, the groans of remorse, de- 
spair and wretchedness, the havoc of war and famine, disease and 
death all ascending at every moment from this revolving sphere 
of ours, in one agonizing wail of pain, is appalling. The church 
recognizes this misery. She calls us exiles passing through " a 
vale of tears. "f In a variety of ways she repeats the words 
of Job : " Man born of a woman, living for a short time, is filled with 

* Romans vii. 23. t " Salve Regina." 



1889.] AMIEL AND PESSIMISM. 121 

many miseries. He cometh forth like a flower, and is destroyed, 
and fleeth as a shadow, and never continueth in the same state."* 
She insistently impresses upon us that we are not to look for hap- 
piness here below, for ours is a higher destiny. One who has 
faithfully interpreted her mind says: " Thou canst not be satisfied 
with any temporal goods, because thou wast not created for the 
enjoyment of such things, "f The church alone holds the 
clue to the miseries of life, she alone has the solution of 
the problem of evil. Mallock gave his graceful but not over- 
serious intellect to the study of this problem, and what was 
the outcome of his studies ? " Religious belief," he tells us, 
" and moral belief likewise, involve both of them some vast 
mystery ; *and reason can do nothing but focalize, not solve 
it" | After questioning modern science, he finds himself 
forced to seek the only satisfactory solution in the teachings of 
the church. Amiel in all his wanderings finds nothing better 
than Christianity, for the reason that Christianity alone has a solu- 
tion for the problem of evil. " Man must have a religion," he 
says; "is not the Christian the best, after all? the religion of 
sin, repentance, and reconciliation, of the new birth and the life 
everlasting." To the church, then, which alone contains the ful- 
ness of Christian truth, let us go for the solution of the problem 
of evil. 

Recognizing the sin and the misery with which life is beset, she 
does not say with Sakya-Mouni : " The great evil is existence." 
On the contrary, she holds existence to be a boon, since it is a 
pure and gratuitous gift from a good God. The misery and the 
pain, though inseparable in the present order of things, are still 
mere accidents of existence. She accounts for their presence by 
the doctrine of original sin. The whole struggle going on in every 
human breast between reason and impulse is an effort to restore 
the equilibrium in human nature lost by original sin. In her 
teachings there is no room for the question, Is life worth living? 
Life is a state of probation. It is within the power of every man 
to make it a blessing or a curse. Man is born info this world 
without his consent; he lives within certain environments, over 
which he' has no control ; accidents befall him ; he is circum- 
vented in many ways ; that which he most ardently seeks flies 
farthest from him ; that which he least covets is what comes most 
readily into his possession. But the measure of man's success in 
life is not the mere attainment of his desires. This is a life-lesson 
as old as human nature, but none the less a lesson that human 

* Job xiv. t Imitation, iii. xvi. I. \ Is Life worth Living? p. 269. 



122 AMIEL 'AND PESSIMISM. [Oct., 

nature is frequently ignoring. Conduct and motive are the two 
elements that enter into the fulness of human life and make of it a 
success or a failure. He whose conduct is upright and whose motive 
is sincere has not lived in vain. His frame may be racked with 
pain and disease ; adversities may befall him and friends forsake 
him ; these things disturb not the calm of his soul ; he turns them 
to account as aids to his spiritual growth. He knows that the 
be-all and the end-all is not here. He recognizes a life above 
and beyond the plane of the natural, to which all men are destined 
and which all men can attain. This supernatural life is of the 
invisible world. We can neither touch nor taste nor see it, but 
it is none the less a reality. It is in us and about us. The light 
of faith reveals it to us in all its beauty and harmony and glory. 
Therein we read the meaning of the world, the plan and purpose 
of man. By prayer do we hold communion with this unseen 
world ; by the sacraments does the church communicate to us 
saving grace out of this unseen world, and by hope do we live to 
enter upon a new and a higher life in this unseen world. 

And now, having" glanced at the current of pessimism against 
which Amiel struggled in vain, we return to the Journal Intime. 
It abounds in some beautiful descriptions, some very clever com- 
ments upon the books he was reading or the persons he met, and, 
above all, in some searching inquiries into the depths of his own 
soul. Mrs. Humphry Ward has done her work well. But Amiel's 
Calvinism narrowed and distorted his vision and made his criti- 
cisms, especially of any and everything Catholic, extremely parti- 
san. His redeeming trait is his sincerity. But we close the book 
saddened at the sight of so much talent wasted, such feeble efforts 
made to break the spell of inanition that was weaving its folds 
about him, so much subtle egotism gnawing at what was best in 
him and reducing his brightest hopes and clearest resolves to 
ashes. The blight of scepticism was upon his life. 

BROTHER AZARIAS. 



1889.] TALK ABOUT 




123 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

MR. CRAWFORD'S new novel, Sanf. Ilario (New York : Mac- 
millan & Co.), is the promised continuation of Saracinesca the 
continuation but not the conclusion of that much-praised tale. 
On the contrary, for after taking his amused and interested 
reader through nearly four hundred and fifty pages of exciting 
incident, bloody battles, family feuds, forgery, blackmail, suicide, 
unwarranted jealousy and renewed confidence between his mar- 
ried lovers, Sant' Ilario and Corona, and such other solids, liquids, 
and confectionery as he is continually spreading before the 
public, Mr. Crawford leaves Faustina and M. Gouache still un- 
provided with a suitable denouement for their remarkable adven- 
tures and their romantic love. Like many another prolific novelist, 
Mr. Crawford seems settling down as the continuous chronicler of 
the doings of a certain set of fictitious characters. The tendency 
is easily understood, and it has provided the groundwork for 
some of the most memorable of modern tales. Anthony Trollope 
tells us that he grew so fond of Glencora Palliser, that when a 
remark he overhead about her at his club drove him home to 
kill her in the opening sentence of The Duke's Children, her 
passing was a real loss to him. So, indeed, it must have been to 
many a one among his readers. Characters so handled, in how 
light and evanescent a shape soever they may first have pre- 
sented themselves to their creators, must get body with age, as 
wine does. To have an undisputed property in two or three 
such " stand-bys," around whom new circumstances gather natur- 
ally in course of time, must be a singular lightening of prepara- 
tory labor to the professional novelist. What a confusion of 
mind, by the way, an author might be thrown into should it oc- 
cur to another equally reputable member of the craft to adopt one 
or more of his most successfully vitalized creations, transplant them 
into other soil, wilfully disclose their mysteries, tamper with 
their consciences, abate their prejudices, amend their manners, 
and totally unfit them for further use on their original lines ! 
Would any action for libel stand, or, say, for abduction, should 
Mr. James, for example, lay violent hands on the Rev. Mr. 
Sewall, or Mr. Howells undertake to tell us what was the real 
secret of Mrs. Temperly's apparently objectless diplomacy? 

Derrick Vaughan, Novelist, by Edna Lyall (New York : Frank 



124 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS, [Oct., 

F. Lovell & Co.), is rather goody-goody in its general scope and 
style. In part it is a glorification of that vocation of novelist to 
which its author has been called, and which she treats as one 
who believes undoubtingly that the Frenchman was right who 
said "the man of letters has a cure of souls." Some of the de- 
tails of the story remind . us of Mr. Harold Dijon's novel, Paul 
Ringwood, lately concluded in this magazine. Like all Miss 
Lyall's work, it is conscientiously done, and may be read without 
weariness even by those who turn to fiction rather for entertain- 
ment than instruction. 

One of the most obtrusively flat of recent books if flatness 
can ever be called obtrusive except in noses is American Coin 
(New York : Appleton & Co.), by the author of Aristocracy. A 
somewhat prolonged observation of American girls has never 
brought one resembling either Lillie Winslow or Mamie Snelling 
under our notice. Possibly that may be because our range has 
included so few young ladies whose " pas " are millionaires and 
whose " mas " have but recently exchanged calico and the back 
kitchen for satin and the best rooms in the best native and 
foreign hotels. One recognizes perfectly the Daisy Miller type, 
but who, except the writer of American Coin, knows a nice Amer- 
ican girl capable of losing herself in a London street at night 
after the theatre, and of writing such a letter as this to her "pre- 
server " the next day ? 

" Earl of Atherleigh, London. 

" DEAR EARL : I call it real mean of you never to have called as you prom- 
ised. Pa said he wanted to take you by the hand as a man, and didn't care a 
continental for your title. Ma has stopped in all day for fear of missing you. 
Charlie, he kept away playing billiards down-stairs, and I well, I just cried like 
a little fool, so I did. There, now, you don't think any the less of me for telling 
you ? I never so much as dreamed you were an earl. I should have been real 
afraid of you if I had known. I'm afraid we won't ever meet again, as we go 
home from Havre in the French line. But, if you should ever come over to 
'Frisco again to see the ' Yo-zem-mite ' and the ' Geezers,' as you English people 
call them, like lots of your countrymen do, why, you must be sure to let pa know 
at once. I guess he can show you round pretty comfortably. 

" Very truly your friend, 

" LILLIE." 

At this point the Talker's monologue abruptly merged into 
dialogue which for convenience of space is printed in small type. 
The occasion was furnished by the inadvertent reading aloud of 
the letter just quoted. 

" You think that is caricature, do you?" was the unexpected remark which 
followed from one of the ladies present. "Why, where were you brought up? 
The woods are full of just such girls as that. I know them by the dozen." 






1 889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 125 

" I made a distinction," says the Talker. " I said ' nice girls.' " 

" Well, I mean nice girls, as niceness goes nowadays. Girls with plenty of 
money to spend, and fathers and mothers to do the modern equivalent of what 
my own mother did for me in a different fashion. I see plenty of them. I've 
got young friends and relatives about me all the time." 

" Girls capable of getting up a german at a hotel for the express purpose of 
dancing with a strange man whose name they learn only from the hotel register, 
simply because, as ' Lillie ' says, ' he's just too sweet for anything,' and knows 
how to dress? Don't libe your countrywomen, Polly." 

"Get up a german at a hotel for that reason?" says Polly in a smiling 
falsetto. " Is that the worst you've got to say against them ? Lillie and Mamie 
must have been so near decorum's self that I begin to believe your author must 
have selected them as real models of what ought to be what in respectable Amer- 
ican society. It's not what's what, I can tell you that. Why, I've known girls 
good girls, mind you to go off together by the half-dozen at a time to Asbury 
Park, or the Branch, or wherever else, for the express purpose of having 'a good 
flirt.' " 

" And that means?" 

" It means getting into conversation with any presentable-looking young 
men they may meet there, dining or supping with them, eating ice-cream or 
drinking soda at their expense." 

"And then?" 

" Then nothing. Sometimes they learn each other's names and keep up the 
acquaintance, but usually it is dropped. If they meet each other in the street 
afterward, the girl don't recognize her ' beau ' of an afternoon, and that's all 
there is about it." 

"Incredible!" 

" I guess Polly 's about right, though," chimes in a younger speaker. " I 
know when I was a girl myself, which wasn't so very long ago, I was voted de- 
cidedly slow and old-fashioned because I couldn't quite see my way to that sort 
of thing." 

" You had a mother," suggests the Talker. 

" So have they," puts in Polly. " Nice, good women, too, who go to church 
and say their prayers, and don't seem to think there is anything much the mat- 
ter, except that there certainly is a mighty difference between the new ways of 
going on and those they were brought up to. Why, I knew a girl who met a 
man just in that way, in Central Park. Afterwards he followed her up, called at 
the house, she introduced him to her parents, and first thing you know they 
were married. And the next thing you know, another wife turned up from 
Jersey or somewhere with two children. It just ruined the whole family. Kate 
was an only daughter, her father was wealthy,' and set his whole heart on her, 
and when this disgrace came he took to drink, failed in business, died, and Kate 
goes down-town to work now every day. And she never was brought up to it, 
nor her mother before her." 

" That was rough on Kate," suggests some one else, "but her father and 
mother seem to have got something very like their just deserts. That sort of 
thing must be more the fault of parents than of children. Haven't they common 
sense ? Don't they know their girls are losing their good name and more than 
that?" 

"Ah!" says Polly, " that's just where you're wrong in nine cases out of ten. 
I told you I meant nice girls, good girls, girls that have got their own stand- 
ard of what is proper, and who don't go beyond it. They go in for fun, they 



126 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Oct., 

say, when you scold them about it. Oh ! I've scolded till I was tired, and much 
good it does ! It goes in one ear and out the other." 

" I'll tejl you about the mothers," says a male voice, coming for the first 
time into the talk. " For the most part they are good, simple women, either 
foreigners, or at best brought up by parents who were foreign, and under the 
strictest kind of supervision. If they never had any approach to the kind of 
liberty their children take, it was chiefly because * they wouldn't be let,' and they 
submitted to restraint without ever getting any very definite notion that there was 
any reason in the nature of things for the restrictions, beyond the fact that it is 
the nature of parents to veto whatever the hearts of children are most inclined to. 
The present state of affairs, caricatured by your novel there, as you seem to 
think, fairly enough described according to my judgment, is in great part the 
result of trying to ' swap horses in the middle of a stream.' The old-world idea 
of surveillance, of governing at every point and all the time, has had to be re- 
laxed here the climate is fatal to it. We all agree that ' men are governed too 
much,' and from that the step to children are governed too much is easy. Au- 
thority was the word under which our parents grew up ; license, modified by 
what Polly calls 'their own standard of what is proper,' is what our young people 
are claiming in the rebound. The next generation will be like enough to swing 
into the just medium, or even go a trifle further back. Meantime, such trash as 
this American Coin, and its predecessor, Aristocracy ', serve a recognizably good 
end, though whether they do so intentionally is more than doubtful. Why not 
paint in all its flatness and imbecility a condition of social life to which those 
epithets are substantially the worst that will generally apply ? If such a state of 
things can be shown up as absurd and contemptible, so -much the better." 

The Reproach of Annesley, by Maxwell Gray (New York : D. 
Appleton & Co.), is plainly the work of a woman possessed of 
more than common powers, though powers of which she is not 
yet in complete mastery. Her previous novel, The Silence of 
Dean Maitland, has been praised so highly that our anticipations 
for the present one, in which we first make her acquaintance, 
were raised somewhat unduly high. Nevertheless, it has unusual 
merit. Like most of the more pretentious novels of the day, it 
abounds in passages of more or less poetic prose, descriptive of 
nature in her various moods. Many of these are fine in a cer- 
tain way. The words are well chosen and full of color, the sen- 
tences are musical. Their defect is that they seldom make pic- 
tures to the mind. They are like landscapes which a clever 
draughtsman and colorist might produce from hearsay if he had 
never beheld any with his bodily eyes. 

The character painting of the novel is better than the scene 
painting. Some of the sketches of English rustics seem particu- 
larly well done, even when they have an invincible tendency to 
remind one of similar work in Adam Bede. It is not always 
that they do so. Raysh Squire, the bell-ringer, and Daniel Pink, 
the shepherd, hold their own extremely well, even in comparison 
with Mrs. Poyser and Bartle Massey. 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 127 

Mam Gale, too, is amusing, not least so when she indig- 
nantly protests against the proposal made by her "betters" that 
her consumptive son shall enlist in a regiment going out to India, 
in hopes that the warmer climate may give him a renewed 
chance for life : 

"Mam Gale dropped, thunderstruck, upon a chair, regardless of the pile of 
freshly-ironed caps she crushed beneath her. ' Our Hreub goo vur a soldier," 
she cried, when her indignation at last found voice ''Hreub what never drinked 
nor done aught agen the Commandments ! Our Hreuben 'list ! We've a zeen a 
vast of trouble, Miss Lingard, but we never known disgrace avore ! ' 

"Alice ventured to say that Mr. Annesley had broken no Commandments, as 
far as she knew, and that his friends were glad when he went for a soldier ; to 
which Mam Gale replied with dignity that she wondered that Miss Lingard knew 
no better than to forget what Reuben owed to his position in life. ' 'Tain't no 
harm vur gentlevolk ; they can do without characters and hain't no call to be 
respectable,' she said ; ' but our Hreub, what have always looked to hisself, it do 
zeem cruel to let he down." 

The 1 two girls, Alice Lingard and Sybil Rickman, are also very 
well studied. The men are less satisfactory. Necessary as it is 
to the unfolding of her plot, more knowledge- of human nature 
would have made it plain to Maxwell Gray that Edward Annes- 
ley's silence when his confidence is demanded by Alice as the 
sole preliminary to her acceptance of his suit, is not in the verit- 
able order of things between souls bound by the tie she has 
imagined. A cast-iron plot, conceived beforehand, to which all 
things else must bend, is a serious thing for a novelist to burden 
himself with if he aspires to the highest rank in his profession. 
On that little stage which alone is his, the nearest approach which 
he can make to that great, order and sequence of things which 
rules the real world around him, is to be arrived at by giving 
human nature its free play, preserving truth of motive and of ac- 
tion as closely as he may, and then permitting a great deal 
which seems pure accident to bring about his preconceived end. 
In life everything may happen except radical changes in human 
nature itself. There is more than one sufficient reason which 
might prevail to set asunder, with their own free will, a man and 
woman between whom exists that unique and pure passion which 
alone deserves the name of love, and which Maxwell Gray has 
essayed to describe. For the most part she has imagined it very 
well. But, granting its existence, it is not in nature that a man 
laboring unjustly under the suspicion of a foul crime, from which 
he can clear himself by incontestable evidence, should not do so 
to the woman he loves, when that is the only obstacle to pos- 
sessing her ; especially when, as is the case with Edward Annes- 



128 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Oct., 

ley, the truth could not injure any living soul. With this serious 
exception, Maxwell Gray has managed the details of her story with 
much skilH Her manner of telling it is rather jerky and discon- 
nected, the successive chapters being apt to come upon one with 
a certain .shock of unpreparedness. The book is a clever one, 
nevertheless, and more than usually worth reading. 

Merze: The Story of an Actress, by Marah Ellis Ryan (Chi- 
cago and New York : Rand, McNally & Co.), shows constructive 
ability, and a certain literary aptness which might be used to 
better purpose than in this story. It is more than doubtful, how- 
ever, whether work of a higher class would gain as wide a pub- 
lic as has probably been reached by the author's present venture. 
The worst that can be said of it is that it is sensational. It seems 
to be inevitable that the American and the French novels of the 
day shall hinge in some way upon illicit love. Bad is the best. 
The chief choice between them concerns the manner in which the 
authors handle this perennial theme. As Miss Ryan has suc- 
ceeded in steering safely between the Scylla and Charybdis 
through which she .freely chose to take her course, she possibly 
deserves congratulation. But it is a perilous course at best, and 
we recommend her to study better models than are supplied by 
the daily journals and the most widely current native fiction. 

Miss Laura Jean Libbey is so absurd when considered as a 
novelist, that nothing but her vogue could excuse mention of her 
last preposterously silly story, That Pretty Young Girl. Im- 
moral it is not, except as inanity and trash must always be de- 
moralizing both to those who produce and those who consume it. 
When one reflects upon the multitude of potential Laura Jean 
Libbeys now standing behind counters, or mollifying conversation 
with chewing-gum on the upper decks of Coney Island boats, 
and to whose delight alone such books as these can satisfyingly 
minister, the future looks gloomy. If anywhere the adage that 
like loves like approves itself as true it is in the matter of the 
reading that occupies by choice one's leisure. It is unfortunate 
that the Hahnemann principle that like cures like is not equally 
true in the same region. Still, since Miss Libbey finds readers in 
phenomenal numbers, it is pleasant to be able to say with truth 
that absurdity is her chief fault, her chief merit being, in this 
story at least, the success with which she imitates at a long dis- 
tance, it is true the scheme devised by Miss Anna Katherine 
Greene in the contrivance of her plots. That scheme, as the 
readers of Hand and Ring remember, is to have a murder per- 
petrated early in the tale, and then confuse the reader's mind by 



1889.] 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 



129 



throwing suspicion on several persons, whose motives and oppor- 
tunities are laid bare by turns with more or less skill, and each 
of whom is nearly brought to the gallows in consequ/ence. The 
mystery is finally cleared up by the discovery that some entirely 
unsuspected actor has done the deed. Edgar Poe worked on the 
same lines in that ingenious story, The Murders in the Rue 
Morgue. The trick is not a very costly one, as it consists merely 
in putting together again the pieces of a dissecting map, one of 
which has been purposely withheld from those to whom the 
puzzle was apparently submitted in its entirety. 

Miss Libbey's characters have a delightful way of subsiding 
into poetry at most unexpected moments. Her hero, narrating 
in the first chapter the troubles which have decided him to com- 
mit suicide as soon as he has written them all down, tells how 
his sweetheart informed him that notwithstanding their intense 
love, "your bride I can never be." To this announcement he 
avers that he responded thus: 

"'Helen,' I said slowly and with great emotion, 'do you remember the 
lines of an old poem we read together in a book a few days since ? Do you wish 
me to repeat them and apply them to you ? 

" ' Good-by for ever, my darling, 
Dear to me even now.' " 

And so on through three stanzas of sixteen lines each, recited, 
doubtless, in the highest style of back-parlor elocution, until the 
justly aggrieved Helen put an end to it by sobbing: "Stop! you 
torture me ; I cannot bear it ! " 

Helen herself is a confirmed elocutionist of the same type. 
Called into her father's study to receive the dreadful tidings that 
he more than half-believes himself to be the murderer of the 
man she was on the point of marrying, and being first asked 
whether she will promise "to trust and believe in me, no matter 
what comes, no matter how great the shock ! " she answers : 

" ' I shall always believe in you, papa. My affection is as true as steel, as 
faithful as the unswerving magnet to the pole. I say with Lord Byron (sic) : 

" 'Come rest in this bosom, my own stricken deer, 

Though the herd have fled from thee, thy home still is here,'" 

until she has finished the whole of the poem. Even the de- 
tective, Hubert Harper, when he too falls in love with the all- 
subduing Helen, that "pretty young girl," declares himself in 
this style : 

" ' Miss Trevalyn, Helen ! ' he whispered, clasping her hand suddenly in his, 



130 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Oct., 

'shall I tell you the reward, and the only reward I would take? Oh, do not 
turn from me; listen to me ! I am not what I seem an humble gardener I 
am Mr. Hartier, the detective, and I have learned to love you, Miss Helen, with 
a love that is so intense it is eating my very life away day by day. I must speak, 
though this is neither the time, place, nor is it under the right condition, but you 
are so gentle you will listen to me. I am not a poet, but oh ! this I say unto 
you : 

" ' Perchance if we had never niet, 
I had been spared this vain regret 
This endless striving to forget,' " etc., etc., 

for half a page. The hopeless thing about books like this, when 
considered as mental pabulum for the multitude, is, of course, 
their inane, vacuous mediocrity, both of ideal and of execution. 

Deborah Death (New York : G. W. Dillingham) belongs to 
the theosophic, " psychic " school of fiction, but is not a very 
good specimen of its class. Without being ill-written, it still has 
not sufficient distinction, either of good qualities or of bad ones, 
to make it of importance. 

The same thing may be said in substance of Mr. Edgar Sal- 
tus's new novel, The Pace that Kills (New York: Belford, Clarke 
& Co.) Like all its author's work, it leaves behind it a nasty taste 
upon the reader's palate. In the present instance, this is attribut- 
able solely to the personal flavor of its author, who cannot even 
avoid immorality in a cleanly way. What Mr. Saltus says of his 
hero on the occasion when that most disagreeable creature struck 
his wife, expresses sufficiently well the effect this author has in- 
variably upon his present critic's mind. " By instinct he was not 
a gentleman," he writes of Roland Mistrial ; " for some time he 
had not even taken the trouble to appear one ; yet at that moment, 
dancing in derision before him, he saw the letters that form the 
monosyllable Cad." It must surely be the irony of fate which 
always compels Mr. Saltus to etch a portrait like this at some 
spot or other of any plate he takes in hand. There is a certain 
air of premeditation about them, it is true, but their final effect 
is to recall the words of the apostle concerning him who, after 
looking in the glass, straightway forgets what manner of man 
he is. 

Mr. William A. Leahy's " poetical drama in five acts," The 
Siege of Syracuse (Boston : D. Lothrop Company), is smooth and 
easy in versification, and permits itself to be read without weari- 
ness. The scene is laid in Syracuse during the Athenian siege, 
B.C. 414-413. The characters are few and sufficiently well defined, 
even though they are not full enough of life to compel attention 
or haunt memory. The drama is, doubtless, a clever and credit- 






1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 131 

able performance, and if, in these prosaic latter days, there were 
either laurel crowns to be won by skilful versifiers from the 
eager public, or ducats to be hoped for by them from their pub- 
lishers, a kindly critic might with a clear conscience encourage 
Mr. Leahy to continue paying his court to the refractory yet not 
forbidding muse. 

Campion: A Tragedy (New York: Catholic Publication So- 
ciety Co. ; London : Burns & Gates), is a translation made by the 
Rev. James Gillow Morgan from the French of the Rev. G. 
Longhaye, S.J. It reads more like an original than a transla- 
tion, Father Morgan having, in common with Mr. Leahy, a 
marked talent for English blank verse. The tragedy is in four 
acts, preceded by a dramatized prologue, which, as its action 
antedates by fifteen years the play proper, " cannot," says the 
author, " be correctly considered a first act." It condenses well the 
events of the Blessed Edmund Campion's life and death, and sets 
them before the reader in an interesting way. It would not be 
easy for the most spiritually purblind to avoid seeing a hero in 
that noble and faithful soul, and impossible to keep the most plain 
and simple setting forth of him void of strong attraction. 

To any reader who likes a good laugh, without a shade of 
malice or evil suggestion in it, we commend The Wrong Box (New 
York : Charles Scribner's Sons), by Robert Louis Stevenson and 
Lloyd Osborne. Mr. Stevenson is never otherwise than pleasant 
in his manner, even when his matter is not altogether to one's 
mind ; with Mr. Osborne's aid he has succeeded in descending to 
low comedy without loss of dignity. One of the authors, says 
the brief preface, "is old enough to be ashamed of himself, and 
the other young enough to learn better." But their readers will 
be inclined to wish that they may remain just where they are long 
enough to indulge again in " a little judicious levity " of an 
equally innocuous sort. We should despair of doing any manner 
of justice to the fun of the book by condensation ; even to 
sample it by quotation would not be easy without more prelimi- 
nary explanation:, of the situations than we have space for. 
Its mirth-provoking , quality is so equally compounded from its 
matter and its manner that nothing short of the book itself can 
adequately convey it. 






VOL. L. 9 



132 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Oct., 



A 
WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 

THE REVOLUTIONARY DOGMA.* 

THE purpose of Mr. Lilly in writing A Century of Revolution is to refute the 
French Revolutionary dogma, which he states as follows : " The essence of the 
Revolutionary dogma is that only in equality, absolute and universal, can the 
public order be properly founded. Arrange that every adult male shall count 
for one, and nobody for more than one, and by this distribution of political 
power, whatever the moral, social, or intellectual state of its recipients, you realize 
the perfect and only legitimate form of the state " (p. 14). "To sum up, that 
complete freedom or lawlessness for the two things were supposed to be identi- 
cal is the natural condition of man, that all men are born and continue equal 
in rights, that civil society is an artificial state resting upon a contract between 
these sovereign units, whereby the native independence of each is surrendered, 
and a power over each is vested in the body politic, as absolute as that which 
nature gives every man over his limbs, and then ' that human nature is good, and 
that the evil in the world is the result of bad education and bad institutions,' that 
man, uncorrupted by civilization, is essentially reasonable, and that the will of 
the sovereign units, dwelling in any territory under the social contract that is, of 
the majority of them expressed by their delegates is the rightful and only source 
of justice and of law such is the substance of the dogma which the Revolution 
has been endeavoring for a century to unite to the reality of life " (p. 15). 

Having placed these definitions upon the nose of his reader as the medium of 
sight, Mr. Lilly proceeds to point out to him what he wants him to see upon the 
map of history. His definitions are inaccurate, and therefore misleading, and 
his use of facts is neither complete nor candid. It is not true that the French 
Revolution began or was carried through upon the principles stated by Mr. Lilly. 
It began in hatred of admitted abuses of the governing orders which had become 
intolerable, and it was carried on to the destruction of the orders themselves, 
mainly in blind hatred, ferocious, bloody, and often criminal to the uttermost 
degree. Thus the energizing force was negative. Positive governmental theories 
and constitutions were drawn up and adopted and changed repeatedly, ranging 
from anarchism to imperialism ; this positive side continually changed, but the 
Revolution went on. It never gave a reason for itself that survived twelve month?, 
except that something was bad and should be destroyed. And herein is the no- 
torious error of the Revolution, that its only abiding principle is hatred of the bad 
and its only abiding force is destruction. And it is the initial fault of Mr. Lilly 
that he fastens upon it a single scheme of politics, whereas history tells us that it 
has had many and various ones. Louis Philippe's last will had for its first clause a 
recommendation of the principles of 1789 to his heirs, and he was a monarch and a 
monarchist. The hymn of the Anarchists is the ' ' Marseillaise," and they hold every 
form and quantity of government to be tyranny. Both agree in the one and only 
Revolutionary dogma: Destroy. Napoleon III. claimed to be a true child of the 
Revolution, and his claim was valid, though he was an imperialist and an emperor. 

It is not our purpose to follow the author through his arguments, much less 
to refute them, for with many of them we agree. But with the main drift of his 
book we disagree. We condemn the Revolution for what it did, in so far as it 
destroyed much that was good. As to what it taught, much was true, much was 
false ; or, rather, it taught nothing, though revolutionists taught every theory of 

* A Century of Revolution. By William Samuel Lilly. London : Chapman & Hall. 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 133 

political life. The Revolution had a motto : Liberty, equality, fraternity. But 
a motto is not a dogma. 

It seems to us that a partial explanation of the confusion and ohesidedness of 
this book' is to be looked for in its author's deep aversion for the iFrench people 
as a race, evidenced in several places and plainly so. He believes, indeed, in 
" prescription and privilege," and what he calls the "teaching of history," mean- 
ing thereby that the few govern the many by the law of 'the survival of the fit- 
test ; but this is not a sufficient explanation of his attack on the characteristics 
of the French race, which is in our opinion worthy of the epithet venomous. 
Together with that is what is to be looked for in its company, the divinizing of 
the English people. He should have been frank enough to avow himself a Tory, 
opposed to all form and name of Democracy; yet listen to him : " There are in 
the modern world two types of Democracy." [By the modern world he means 
Europe. America does not exist to him. Or perhaps he places the great Re- 
public alongside of France in the prisoner's dock.] " There is the type moulded 
by an abstract idea, and that a false one, which adopts the Credo of the Revolu- 
tion ; which in the name of a spurious equality assassinates liberty and deper- 
sonalizes man; which gives the lie to the facts of science and the facts of history ; 
which is essentially chaotic, as lacking the elements of stability and tradition es- 
sential to society ; which opposeth and exalteth itself above all that is called God 
or that is worshipped, to the moral law which is its voice, to the laws of 
social life which are his ordinance the formula ni Dieu ni maitre correctly ex- 
presses it ; which has no sense of any law superior to popular wilfulness, and 
which is condemned already simply by the very fact that it is anarchic, that it is 
consilii expers, at variance with the reason of things, which no man or nation of 
men can disobey under dire penalty. . . . That is one type of Democracy, 
faithfully represented by contemporary France." 

We pause here to point out that if Mr. Lilly thought the United States an ex- 
ception, he must have noted it in this place. What we proceed to quote from 
him shows a positive exclusion of the American form of government from rational 
freedom. The reader will be surprised at his exclusive list of the genuine free 
states: " There is a temperate, rational, regulated Democracy, the product of 
that natural process of ' persistence in mobility ' which is the law of the social or- 
ganism, as of the physical ; a Democracy recognizing the differences naturally 
springing from individuality, allowing full room for the free play of indefinitely 
ranging personalities, and so, constructive and progressive, the nurse of patriotism 
and the tutor of freedom; a Democracy in harmony with the facts of history and 
of science, and with the necessary laws of human life, issuing from the nature of 
things, and therefore, in the truest sense, divine ; a Democracy where the masses 
are not fawned upon by the discounters and jugglers of -universal suffrage, 
who so well understand the old maxim, 'Flatter and reign,' but schooled and 
governed by the strong and wise ; a Democracy at once the subject and outcome 
of law. Such is the Imperial fabric of Democracy which has been reared in Ger- 
many, upon the sure basis of national traditions and historical continuity, intel- 
lectual culture and moral discipline and domestic piety ; philosophers and poets 
like Kant and Hegel and Goethe and Schiller, true kings of men like the patriot 
princes of the noble house of Hohenzollern, puissant and prescient statesmen like 
Stein and Bismarck, being the chief master-builders " (p. 184). 

Our readers cannot help noticing that America does not exist for Mr. Lilly's 
purposes. The study of revolution, democracy, liberty, equality during the past 
century can be pursued and completed by him as if America had never been dis- 
covered, the American Revolution never fought, and a nation of sixty millions of 
people resting on manhood suffrage was but a dream. Yet the countries from 



134 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Oct., 

which the people flee away to take shelter in the American Republic are the ones 
that he holds up in favorable contrast with France. The French stay at home 
with all their Doubles ; the Germans and the natives of the British Islands cannot 
get away fast enough to a nation which believes that men are created equal and 
are endowed by their Creator with inalienable rights of life, liberty, and the pur- 
suit of happiness; which is therefore tainted with the " Revolutionary dogma." 

We are willing to follow Mr. Lilly in his denunciations of the French Revo- 
lution, for it was a saturnalia of crime. But it was not to blame if it placed rights 
instead of duties as the basis of government ; we wish it had done so, for that is 
a sound theory and, carried out in practice, would have prevented crime and es- 
tablished order, just as, to a limited extent, the English Revolution of 1688 had 
done. That Revolution is the author's model, he all but worships it; and yet it 
was but the restoring the fundamental ideas of government in England to the 
acknowledgment of rights from which as a basis it had been shifted to duties by 
the Protestant Tudors and Stuarts. The author says, speaking of Christendom : 
" The public which gradually arose throughout Europe on the ruins of the 
Roman Empire was a vast hierarchy of duties. . . . And these duties were 
conceived of as the source and the measure of human rights " (p. 6). 

Now, what we have first to criticise in this assumption is that the author has 
herein dropped the terminology of free England and chosen that of England un- 
der the Stuarts. When the English people unseated James II. by act of parlia- 
ment a parliament without a king and made William and Mary sovereigns, it 
was not a Bill of Duties but a Bill of Rights which gave utterance to their su- 
preme will. The Bill of Rights is the nearest approach to a written constitution 
known to English politics, and, excepting the hateful word Protestant, is a true echo 
of the Magna Charta which hundreds of years before sprang to the lips of free 
Englishmen from the essence of Catholic doctrine. In the concluding words of the 
Bill of Rights the Lords and Commons of England "claim, demand, and insist upon 
all and singular the premises as their undoubted rights and liberties " ; not even 
twisting the relations of men awry and speaking of their rights as the king's du- 
ties. This twisting awry is what Mr. Lilly has done throughout his book : "These 
duties were conceived as the source and the measure of human rights." No; 
the source and measure of duties are rights, and not the contrary. Civil govern- 
ment, as St. Thomas and all sound Catholic writers teach, is for the people and 
not the people for the government. There is a government that the people may 
be protected in the enjoyment of their rights ; only in a secondary sense that 
transgressors may be made to do their duty. In holding the opposite view Mr. 
Lilly is as un-English as he is un-Catholic, and to be consistent should .hold the 
Gallican theory of the divine and immediate right of kings, and therefore should 
be as bitter an enemy of the English Revolution of 1688, in which the people 
unseated their king and chose another, as he is of the French Revolution of a 
century later. 

Pope Leo, in his Encyclical on the Constitution of the Christian State, says men 
are equal in having the one same nature, the same end and destiny, and the same 
means of arriving at it. Now, if there be anything else in man that is essential, 
let us know it. Equality of nature, of destiny, of means of arriving at it is essen- 
tial equality, if the word has any meaning. Such equality generates liberty, ne- 
cessitates fraternity, and this in every order of life. Nor does this militate against 
inequality of function, office, gifts of nature or of Providence. But all these last 
are not corrective, much less destructive, of essential equality. They do not con- 
cern essential manhood. In discussing this principle and fact, for it is both, Mr. 
Lilly, in assailing what he thinks is " the dogma of the Revolution," has injured 
the dogma of Christianity. W. E. 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 135 

THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS .OF BOOKS, i ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WESJ 1 FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY. 

How many members are needed to form a Reading Circle ? This question has 
been asked by many of our correspondents. In reply we may state that the 
Columbian Reading Union will not make any rules concerning the number of 
members or the private management of any organization affiliated to it. Our 
work is to gather information and publish lists of books which will be of assistance 
to all interested in the diffusion of good literature. Individuals, as well as Reading 
Clubs, may obtain the advantages thus offered. 

Reading circles can be organized in different ways, either in connection with 
parochial or public libraries, or on an independent basis. It makes a consider- 
able saving of expense if the books to be used can be borrowed from a library. 
The Cathedral Library Reading Circle and the Ozanam Reading Circle, both of 
New York City, are in alliance with Catholic circulating libraries. Books re- 
commended in the lists of the Columbian Reading Union are purchased in each 
case by the parish library, and are made accessible without extra cost to the 
members of the Reading Circles. In many places the same plan could no doubt 
be applied to public libraries. 

There is no fixed way of starting a Reading Circle. Some one must begin to 
talk about the matter. Five members are enough, although a much larger 
number should be enrolled wherever it can be so arranged. Very few rules are 
necessary. It is not advisable to undertake a burdensome course of reading. 
Some profound scholars read good works of fiction as a mental relaxation. The 
members of a Reading Circle must decide whether they wish to have an annual, a 
monthly, or a weekly meeting. From Miss Emilie Gaffney, of Rochester, N. Y., 
we have received the following 

PLAN FOR FORMING A READING CIRCLE. 

" I propose an initiation fee of fifty cents and an annual fee of one dollar. 
With this amount to select a sufficient number of books. Each book will contain 
on the fly-leaf a printed list of members, arranged according to residence. To 
every member will be sent one or two books, which may be retained two weeks, 
and must then be passed to the one whose name follows on the list. All books 
to be passed the first and fifteenth of the month, and the dates when received and 
when passed to be noted by each member. 

" In forming a book club it is necessary to avoid too heavy reading, which 
would soon discourage "all but those above the average literary taste. Many 
timid persons might be deterred from joining a club in which too much individual 
effort would be required, and my object in the start being to interest all, I con- 
sider this a cogent reason for suggesting this plan, which will give each one an 
opportunity of becoming conversant with Catholic literature without the necessity 
of frequent discussion or public reading. However, I hope from this beginning 
will emanate many local clubs for critical study and research. 

" Any one desiring to purchase a club book may signify such intention. At 
the close of the year it will be sold for half the original cost. Books of fiction 
will be circulated with a more solid work." 

The form of personal invitation by letter was adopted to put the plan given 
above into actual operation. In this way conflicting opinions were avoided at the 
outset, and those invited were at liberty to attend the first meeting or not as they 
chose. Only two officers were selected, a librarian and a treasurer. To the 
librarian was assigned the labor of selecting the list of books by Catholic authors, 



136 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Oct., 

and the arranging of the names of members on a record to be pasted in each 
book with a view to the speedy transfer of the volumes from house to house. 

" Each.meinber receives with her book a card with a few minor directions 
and the address of the one to whom her books are to be passed after they have 
been retainedtwo weeks, the time allotted for reading a book. 

" It is necessary to have as many books as members, but well to have more, 
so that two or more small volumes may be sent together, or, if a subject is too 
heavy for the ordinary taste, one of lighter nature may be passed with it. 

" In assigning the books care should be taken to place them so fiction will al- 
ternate with solid reading. 

" Members should note on the list opposite their names the date when they 
receive and pass each book. Those who wish a book the second time must wait 
until the entire circuit has been made, and then apply to the librarian. 

" The fee depends on the number of members. Our Circle contains sixty- 
four members. With the fees given by them were purchased seventy-eight 
books at a cost of $84 87, the incidental expenses, including printing, reckoned 
about $8. 

'' An annual meeting will be held for the payment of dues, to report the con- 
dition of books, etc. 

" It is intended to arrange soon for special culture by fortnightly meetings. 
This will form a distinct branch of the Reading Circle. 

" With sixty-four members two years and a half will be required for each 
book to make the circuit. The annual fee will be necessary to replace some ot 
the books which may be worn out before that time." M. C. M. 



{The following addendum to "A Canadian Example" our leading article 
in this issue, reached us too late to be printed with it. ) 

Since this paper was written an effort has been made by certain militant 
politicians to create in Manitoba an agitation against denominational schools 
and the official use of the French language; and the Winnipeg Free Press, 
an influential secular journal, in the course of an able leading article, makes, 
after referring to the language question, this argument in favor of the separate 
schools : 

" It is vastly different with separate schools. That is a matter of conscience, 
not of convenience. Since the creation of Manitoba the English have largely 
outgrown the French in numbers, and while this may be a sufficient reason for 
abolishing the dual language system, it will be seen that is no reason at all for 
abolishing separate schools. The same consideration which demanded that 
this concession be made to the religious scruples of five thousand Roman 
Catholic fellow-citizens, when they formed a full half of the population, must 
be observed now when they number only a fifth. No disparity of numbers 
can affect a question of conscience. The French language may go, under the 
preponderating weight of the English ; but no preponderance of Protestantism 
will justify the withholding of the least right from any number of Catholics, 
however small. Those of us, therefore, who, in our thoughtlessness, have 
agreed that because the few French must give way to many English in the absurd 
and trifling matter of a double language, the few Catholics must give way to 
many Protestants in the matter of separate schools, will on reflection recognize 
the important difference in principle between the two." 

I may add that the constitution of Manitoba provides for the establishment 
of denominational schools and for the official use of the two languages, and that 
the amendment of the constitution is ultra vires of the Provincial Legislature. 



1889.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 137 



i 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 



THE JUST DISTRIBUTION OF EARNINGS, SO-CALLED "PROFIT-SHARING"; 
BEING AN ACCOUNT OF THE LABORS OF ALFRED DOLGE IN THE TOWN 
OF DOLGEVILLE, N. Y. New York, 1889: Printed and published for the 
section " Participation du Personnel dans les Benefices " Paris Exposi- 
tion, 1889. 

Alfred Dolge, to-day " the largest felt and felt-shoe manufacturer, as well as 
the leading manufacturer and dealer in piano materials, in America," has his 
works at Dolgeville (formerly called Brockett's Bridge), situated on both sides 
of East Canada Creek, eight miles northeast of Little Falls, in Herkimer 
County, this State. He uses water-power and employs altogether about 600 
hands. His main products are organ and piano felt hammers, felt shoes, sound- 
ing-boards for pianos and organs, and piano casings and mouldings. It is 
pretty evident that he is not much troubled by competition in his business. 
Most persons understand how great an advantage it is for a manufacturer to be 
able to make his own prices and stick to them. It enables Mr. Dolge to estimate 
the value of his services at $25,000 yearly, which he has declared is "what he 
would ask as a salary to manage his business for a corporation, because he knows 
he can earn that amount of money." He was born in Chemnitz (Saxony), 
December 22, 1848, and up to his thirteenth year attended the public school 
in Leipzig, and then entered his father's business of piano-manufacturing as an 
ipprentice to study piano-building. When seventeen years old, and at the close 
of his apprenticeship, he came to New York, returned to Leipzig for a short 
time, and afterwards again to New York, where he found his first employment in 
the piano-factory of Frederick Mathusek. While employed there his first success 
was the importation from Germany of hammer leather, which he knew was 
manufactured there of much better quality than in the United States. He 
added to that business, which went on increasing, the importation of Poehl- 
mann's wire, at that time comparatively unknown in America. In 1869 he be- 
came an importer of piano materials, and by his efforts placed the wares of the 
German makers whom he represented in the best piano-factories in the United 
States. This led him to undertake the production of hammer felt, an important 
article used in the manufacture of pianos. After many discouraging experiments 
of all kinds he finally succeeded in turning out excellent felt on which he lost 
money every year, but the profits of his importing business enabled him to stand 
his losses in felt-making. In 1873 Dolge, then only twenty-five years old, 
exhibited his hammer felt at the Vienna Exhibition, won the highest prize, and 
received large orders from European manufacturers. In 1874 the demand for his 
felts had increased to such an extent that in order to enlarge his manufacturing 
facilities he removed to the village of Brockett's Bridge, already mentioned. He 
built there large factories and mills, which are considered among the finest in 
the United States. In 1876 Dolge received two medals and diplomas at the 
Centennial Exhibition in Philadelphia. At the Paris Exhibition in 1878 he 
exhibited for the first time, besides his piano and organ felts, piano sounding- 
boards, and received first prizes for both. The enormous growth of his sounding- 
board industry compelled him to purchase over 18,000 acres of forest land in the 
Adirondack Mountains, and build three saw-mills, at Otter Lake, Port Leyden, 
and Leipzig. He brought over from Saxony a forester learned in the science of 



1 3 8 NE w PUBLIC A TIONS. [Oct., 

forestry to look after his woodland. Some ten years ago he began the manufac- 
ture of felt shoes, of which 1,500 pairs are made by him daily. 

Havingkfeus recounted his rise to great manufacturing and commercial pros- 
perity, we ha^e now to speak of another field of labor and philanthropic utility 
in which he has made himself prominent. He has conceived an idea which he 
has expressed in these words, taken from a letter to the Chicago Morning News, 
published January 19, 1889: 

" There is no doubt in my mind that manufacturers will eventually make all their em- 
ployees partners in the business, so to say, as there is undoubtedly something wrong at 
present in the relation of capital to labor. In many instances capitalists enrich themselves 
immeasurably at the expense of labor. It would certainly be welcomed by the majority of 
the American people if a plan could be devised, just for both sides, whereby labor will get its 
rightful proportion of the earnings of a business." 

This basic idea is frequently reiterated in letters written and speeches de- 
livered by him (these last mostly at Dolgeville to his employees), and which 
have been published in the pamphlet now before us. He has not, however, as 
yet found a plan of so-called profit-sharing that he considers thoroughly prac- 
tical, and this because the greatest stumbling-block he has met has been that 
the majority of his men were not sufficiently prepared intellectually for such an 
experiment. In the meanwhile he proceeds in this wise: He sets aside each 
year, according to his own decision, a calculated amount of profits of his busi- 
ness for the benefit of his men. This sum, however, he does not distribute 
among them in cash, but he invests it for their benefit in various benevolent 
schemes, of which the principal are a pension fund, a life insurance plan, a 
mutual aid society, a school society, a building fund for the erection of homes, a 
club house, and a public park. 

Pension Fund. Every regular employee, after a continuous service of ten 
years, becomes entitled to a pension in case of partial or total inability to work, 
caused by accident, sickness, or old age, as long as such inability may last, and it 
is to consist in the following quota of the wages earned during the last year of 
employment, viz. : 

50 per cent, after ten years' service. 

60 " " thirteen years' service. 

70 " " sixteen years' service. 

80 . " " nineteen years' service. 

90 " " twenty- two years' service. 

100 " " twenty-five years' service. 

In case of accident while on duty, or of sickness contracted through the per- 
formance of duty, employees shall be entitled to a pension of 50 per cent, at 
any time previous to the completion of ten years' service. 

Life Insurance. Each employee who has, for five consecutive years, been in 
the employ of the firm is entitled to a life insurance policy of $1,000, and, at the 
expiration of the tenth year of steady employment, to another $1,000 policy. 
Premiums and all expenses will be paid by the firm as long as the insured is in 
its employ. For those who have been rejected, an amount, equal to the pre- 
miums which would have been paid had applicants been received, will be 
regularly deposited in the German Savings-Bank of New York. 

At present the number of policy-holders is fifty-two, of which number forty 
hold policies of $1,000, six hold policies of $2,000, three hold policies of $3,000, 
and three hold policies of higher amount. The total outlay in this depart- 
ment since it was established is $10,441 66. Mr. Dolge discriminates in favor of 
his high-priced help where he deems it just, as, for instance, the director of his 
felt factory, who carries $10,000 in life insurance. To the school society he 



1889.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 139 

contributes $300 a year, and in 1886 donated $7,000 for a -new school-house, and 
$2,000 of taxes besides. He has agreed to contribute $4,000 yearly towards 
Dolgeville Academy, for which he is erecting a new building at hi^f own expense. 
The large club-house cost him $10,000, and contains gymnasium, otage, bowling 
alley, library, billiard rooms, etc. Beer only is sold there ; no liquor and no 
gambling is allowed. He also helps his men to buy their homes. He builds 
houses for his employees on plans prepared by them, and allows them to pay the 
cost in monthly instalments of $10 each. He allows his workmen to leave their 
wages with him, if they so desire, but does not encourage them to do so. At 
the beginning of each year a reunion and banquet is given to the employees. 
Remunerations, pensions, and the life insurance he considers to be an equaliza- 
tion between the wages of the workingmen and the increased profits resulting 
from their work. He protests against the two last-named benefactions being 
called philanthropic acts on his part ; they were simply business-like moves from 
which he expected to benefit and actually did benefit. In 1886 he was not 
troubled with strikes. His employees knew well that he would not for a moment 
submit to a strike or confer with a committee, but would consider every man 
discharged who was dissatisfied. Mr. Dolge, for reasons which he gives, con- 
siders any plan or system of profit-sharing a failure where the profits are divided 
on a per cent, basis of wages, or by a certain fixed percentage of the net profits, 
but that it must be considered the duty of every employer to pay his employee, 
besides the regular wages, whatever he may have properly and justly earned, the 
estimation of which must be left to the entirely arbitrary decision of the em- 
ployer. 

He expects by January i, 1890, to have matured a system of detail book- 
keeping which will show how much more, if any, a man has earned than the 
wages paid him. These earnings will be arrived at after deducting from the gross 
earnings all the usual expense items> such as wear and tear of machinery, salary 
for himself, interest on capital invested, and a proper amount for the reserve fund. 
There will then remain the net amount for distribution, from which will first be 
deducted moneys paid for life insurance and pensions. Whatever remains then 
will not be paid to the men, but credited to their profit-sharing accounts, giving 
the men certificates, this money to be invested for them in undoubted interest- 
bearing securities, and not paid over to them until they either quit, are dis- 
charged or retire under the pension law, or are sixty years of age. With such a 
plan neither the men nor anybody else will know how much profit was made, for 
it can happen that in a very prosperous year an entire department may not receive 
anything at all, while another may receive more than usual, according to how the 
men have worked more or less faithfully. 

Since no percentage has been promised to the men they have no right to ask 
any questions, and yet they will be encouraged to do their best to secure some- 
thing extra at the end of the year. Mr. Dolge is a firm believer in the acquisition 
of knowledge and training of the intellect as the most efficacious of all means to- 
wards elevating the wage-earner and the voter ; that progress in education is posi- 
tively necessary; that the only remedy to prevent universal suffrage from proving 
a failure is education, good schools, plenty of them, and rigid school laws ; that 
it is our sacred duty to make by good education every child a good citizen ; but 
he does not say if this panacea for the immortal part of our being includes train- 
ing of the will through religious influences, and the inculcation of a knowledge 
of God and of our duty to him. In fact, I do not recollect to have met with that 
august and revered name in any of his writings or speeches, not even in a funeral 
oration, in which he did not even hint that the deceased had an. immortal soul. 
From the fact that in a speech to the Dolgeville Turnverein he alludes to the/a&/e of 



140 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Oct., 

the forbidden fruit given us in the Bible, it is more than likely that he is an indiffer- 
entist. On that same occasion he denounced " cakes, pies, and especially hot 
rolls, as the tousc of dyspepsia." That was sound teaching, but he might have 
mentioned th<ruse of tobacco as another powerful cause. B. 

SATAN IN SOCIETY. By Nicholas Francis Cooke, M.D., LL.D., with an In- 
troduction by Caroline F. Corbin, late President of the Society for the Pro- 
motion of Social Purity ; together with a Biographical Sketch of the Author 
by Eliza Allen Starr, author of Patron Saints, Pilgrims and Shrines, etc. 
Chicago : C. F. Vent Company. 

This book is a diligent research into the department of human physiology 
that relates particularly to the laws of life, and a fearless condemnation of the 
errors and sins which cause the nameless evils arising from the violation of those 
laws. In the first part it treats of the education of boys and girls, and, in a way 
in which a medical man of extensive experience alone can speak, it treats of the 
solitary vice, with its frightful consequences. In the following chapters " The 
Philosophy of Marriage" and the "Sphere of Women in the World" are 
treated. Finally, in the last chapters, the " Social Evil " is spoken of. It is a 
book on delicate subjects, yet it is a book written with an elevation of tone and 
a purity of sentiment that finds no place for libidinous suggestiveness. We well 
know that the country is flooded with books whose hidden purpose is to pander 
to a prurient taste or to advertise some nostrum, or to gain notoriety for some 
charlatan who has a specific for peculiar diseases. These books tend rather to 
increase the evils they profess to mitigate. Satan in Society is infinitely dif- 
ferent from this class. It is as far above it as the widespreading branches of the 
stately oak is above the stagnant pool that lies at its base. The late Dr. Cooke 
was a high-minded, conscientious physician, who here lays bare the social sores 
only to heal them, and he does it with a delicacy of touch and a firmness of 
grasp that is in the spiritual order like the sk'ill acquired by long experience with 
the scalpel. 

Dr. Cooke was a convert to Catholicity who sacrificed not a little in his con- 
version to the faith. He acquired a thorough grasp of Catholic principles, and 
on disputed points he states his own convictions with no uncertain sound. 

It is refreshing to see an eminent physician state plainly and frankly, " with- 
out putting a tooth in it," that the child has a divine right to be born, that it 
would be better to murder the child in the cradle than the one in the womb, and 
that the physician who would undertake to procure abortion or to destroy life in 
the womb in any other way, or for any other reason than he would after birth, is 
" a monster and a scoundrel." 

It is related that when Dr. Cooke went to Cincinnati to deliver a course of 
lectures before the Pulte Medical College he called to pay his respects to Arch- 
bishop Purcell. When that venerable prelate entered the room he exclaimed, 
extending both arms, "Dr. Cooke, author -of Satan in Society, come to my 
arms, my son! You have attempted a difficult work, but it was needed, and you 
have done it well." 

A SHORT CUT TO THE TRUE CHURCH; OR, THE FACT AND THE WORD. 
By the Rev. Father Edmund Hill, C.P. Notre Dame, Indiana: Office of 
the Ave Maria. 

This little book is really very much to the point and to the purpose. It is 
not addressed to everybody, but merely to those who, as the author says at the 
start, " believe with me in the Divinity of Christ and the inspiration of the four 
Gospels, but are not in the communion of Rome." And, thank God ! there are a 
good many such left yet ; the whole non-Catholic world has not become agnostic 



1 889.] 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 



141 



or altogether infidel. Father Hill has a very large audience to address, and one, 
moreover, on the whole, at least in our judgment, more sincere and earnest, as 
well as more enlightened, than the unbelievers and the sceptics.^ 

The first part, the direct proof of the church, strikes us as uncommonly 
good. It is just the plainest and clearest kind of common sense, the nail hit 
on the head every time, and at very short intervals ; not a word is wasted. 

In the second part, as we may call it, though there is no formal division of 
this kind, the author takes up the principal difficulties which stand in the way of 
Protestants, and prevent them from examining the claims of the church. These 
" mountains," which he "tunnels," are four the Papal Supremacy, Transub- 
stantiation, Confession, and Devotion to the Blessed Virgin. These he handles 
very ably, and in his treatment of the second and fourth especially there is a 
good deal which we do not remember seeing in any popular treatise before; 
The style is here necessarily more diffuse, but perhaps none the worse for that, 
for the taste of the majority of readers. 

The book is really an interesting one, and from the excellence of its style, as 
well as the importance of its matter, an easy one to read. We would advise 
Catholics as well as Protestants of the kind not a few of us ourselves have been, to 
read it ; for it is so short and plain that much of it may be kept in mind, and 
may be of service when we are talking to Protestant friends. And it would be a 
very good idea to call their attention to it, or to lend them a copy, for they are 
not very likely to see it, cr any Catholic book, unless we do so. 

PAGES CHOISIES DES MEMOIRES DU Due DE SAINT-SIMON. Edited and anno- 
tated by A. N. Van Daell, late Director of Modern Languages in the Boston 
High and Latin Schools, etc., etc. Boston: Ginn & Co. 1889. 

This small I2mo volume contains selections from the voluminous memoirs of 
the Duke of Saint-Simon, which have afforded such valuable materials for writing 
the history of France during the seventeenth century. There are in the text a 
very few misprints which should have been avoided. Besides the preface and a 
useful appendix, there are three introductory pieces ; one on absolute power, from 
the writings of Alfred Raimbaud ; and the other two, one on the court of Louis 
XIV., and the other on his biographer, are essays by Henri Taine. All three 
are interesting and serve a purpose of instruction as well, though, to some per- 
sons, the last two might seem a little onesided. Saint-Simon was the chronicler of 
the miseries and meannesses which either accompanied or were concealed behind 
the glory and splendor of his time, and which he industriously labored to truth- 
fully reveal to succeeding generations. He was a man of strong resentments. 
His style is faulty though vigorous, his sentences are frequently disjointed. 
Sainte-Beuve, quoted in the preface, points out this defect forcibly in these words : 
" Sa phrase craque de tous cotes." The thirteen extracts have been well selected ; 
the subjects are likely to interest readers well enough up in French to understand 
the author. They will find instruction and entertainment throughout, and it is 
to be hoped will derive edification from two chapters, one descriptive of the 
nascent virtues and excellent intentions of the young Duke of Burgundy, heir 
apparent to the throne ; and another which gives a full narrative of the last mo- 
ments of Louis XIV. His reign of seventy-two years, during which, as he con- 
tritely confessed on his death-bed, he had too much indulged his taste for erecting 
buildings and for war, and had not sought to bring relief to his subjects as he felt 
he should have done, was closed by a truly Christian death. A proper apprecia- 
tion of the importance of such a closing of earthly labors might lead one to say, 
without exaggeration in his case, that having "set forth a deep repentance, 
nothing in his life became him like the leaving it." B. 



142 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Oct., 1889. 

A TREATISE ON SPHERICAL TRIGONOMETRY AND ITS APPLICATION TO 
GEODESY^ AND ASTRONOMY, with numerous examples. By John Casey, 
LL.D., H.R.S., F. R.U.I., Member of the Mathematical Societies of London 
and Fraifce, Corresponding Member of the Royal Society of Sciences at 
Liege, Professor of Higher Mathematics and Mathematical Physics in the 
Catholic University of Ireland. 

The author's preface tells us that this work is intended as a sequel to his 
treatise on Plane Trigonometry. It is certainly constructed on the same lines, 
there is the same evidence of wide reading in the latest works on the subject, both 
English and Continental, and the same critical and masterly treatment by 
which the book has been reduced to a connected whole, instead of remaining a 
thing " of shreds and patches." The old methods, where it has seemed advis- 
able, have been altered for better ones, many of which are original. There are 
over five hundred examples, a large number of which are themselves interesting 
theorems. In particular we may draw attention to Cauchy's beautiful method for 
solving the various cases of oblique-angled triangles, to some interesting conver- 
gent series due to Briinnow, and to many important theorems due to Hart, 
Keogh, Neughberg, P. Serret, etc. By expressing the Spherical Excess as 2F 
instead of E great simplicity has been attained in a large number of important 
formulae. We have Frobenius' theorem, a determinant relation between the mu- 
tual powers of one set of five small circles on a sphere to another set of five. The 
deductions from this theorem and its particular applications are very numerous 
and interesting. Amongst them we find here Dr. Casey's theorem, that if four 
circles on a sphere are touched by a fifth, and the mutual powers of two 
opposite pairs of circles be multiplied in every way, the sum of two of these pro- 
ducts is always equal to the third. This theorem, which is an extension ot 
Ptolemy's theorem, was proved by another method in Dr. Casey's original paper 
as far as we can recollect. There is an interesting chapter on Inversion and 
Stereographic Projection, much of the latter being taken from P. Serret's work. 
There is another kind of Inversion used by Dr. Casey himself for the first time in 
his memoir on " Cyclides and Spheroquartics," and introduced into this work (p. 
105). We have no time to describe it or other matters of interest which we 
have noticed in turning over the pages. 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Mention of books in this place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers. 

THE LIFE OF ST. BONAVENTURE, Cardinal-Bishop of Albano, Superior-General of the 
Franciscan Order. Translated by L. C. Skey. London: Burns & Gates; New York: 
The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

THE LIFE OF JOHN MITCHEL. With an Historical Sketch of the '48 Movement in Ireland. 
By P. A. S. Dublin : James Duffy & Co. 

THE CHURCH QUESTION IN SCOTLAND. A Proposed Scheme for its Solution. Glasgow: 
James Cameron. 

OUR LADY OF GOOD COUNSEL. Containing an authentic account of the translation of the 
Miraculous Picture of Our Lady of Good Counsel, with full information about the " Pious 
Union." By the author of The Penitent Instructed, The Augustinian Manual, etc. Seventh 
Edition. Boston: Cashman, Keating & Co. 

MANUALE CLERICORUM. In quo habentur Instructiones Asceticoe Liturgicaeque ac variarum 
precum formulas ad usum eorum prcecipue qui in Seminariis clericorum versantur. Collegit, 
disposuit, edidit P. Josephus Schneider, S.J. Editio tertia, recognita et emenclata. Ratis- 
bonae, Neo-Eboraci et Cincinnati! : Sumptibus, Chartis et Typis, Frederici Pustet. 

REMARKS UPON THE ORIGIN OF THE FIRST-AID MOVEMENT. By Daniel Murdoch, 
M.R.C.S. London : Published by the Author. 

AN EXPLANATION OF THE CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA. Pre- 
pared for use in Catholic Schools, Academies, and Colleges. By Francis T. Furey, A.M. 
New York: The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

APPLETON'S CYCLOPAEDIA OF AMERICAN BIOGRAPHY. Edited by James Grant Wilson and 
John Fiske. Six vols. New York: D. Appleton & Co 

OLD CATHOLIC MARYLAND AND ITS EARLY JESUIT MISSIONARIES. By Rev. Wm. P. 
Treacy, author of Irish Scholars of the Penal Days, etc. Swedesboro, N. J. : St. Joseph's 
Rectory. 

THOUGHTS AND COUNSELS FOR THE CONSIDERATION OF CATHOLIC .YOUNG MEN. By 
kev. P. A. Von Doss, S.J. Freely translated and adapted by Rev. Augustine Wirth, 
O.S.B. Permissu superiorum. New York and Cincinnati : Fr. Pustet & Co. 



THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD. 



VOL. L. NOVEMBER, 1889. No. 296. 



THE LESSONS OF A CENTURY OF CATHOLIC 
EDUCATION. 

A CENTURY ago there was in the United States a single 
Catholic college. Georgetown was established in 1789. Two 
years later St. Mary's Seminary was opened. Since then our 
colleges and seminaries have been multiplying throughout the land. 
During the first half of the century our parochial schools and 
academies were few and far between. The clergy were sparse, 
Catholics were poor and struggling, and churches had to be built 
and paid for. Hence the difficulty of maintaining parochial schools. 
Here and there an Irish or German schoolmaster would wield the 
rod in the basement of a church, upon no other income than the 
uncertain pittance the children might bring him. Mother Seton 
established the Sisters of Charity. Bishop England, in Charleston, 
attempted to establish a community of sisters, but failed. Bishop 
Timon made the same attempt in Buffalo with no better success. 
Religious orders are not organized in a day. In 1847 tne 
Brothers of the Christian Schools opened their first house in the 
United States, at Calvert Hall, Baltimore. Their beginning was 
very humble. In the following year they opened a school in 
Canal Street, New York. Since then these and other religious 
orders of men Franciscans, Xaverians, Brothers of Mary, Brothers 
of the Holy Cross, Brothers of the Holy Ghost have spread 
rapidly over the country, and the good work continues to prosper 
under God's blessing. Teaching orders of nuns and sisterhoods 
have multiplied with still greater rabidity. Seminaries and col- 
leges and universities, free-schools and orphanages and protec- 
tories, schools for the higher education of women and schools for 
the deaf and dumb, schools for the Indian and schools for the 
negro, all exist in one or other part of this vast continent. All 

Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 1889. 



1 44 LEssoiVS OF A CENT UK Y OF CA THOLIC ED UCA no.v. [Nov. , 

these educational works are now being crowned by a great Cath- 
olic University, which purposes to give the latest and best word 
on all subjects of higher study. It is with no small pleasure and 
thankfulness to God that every Catholic can read the following 
testimony borne to our educational strength and efficiency by a 
non- Catholic authority : 

" All other denominational service in education is partial and irregular com- 
pared with the comprehensive grasp of the Catholic Church. Their aim is all- 
inclusive and assumes no other agency. Ignoring the public school, their plan 
is co-extensive with their membership. With one-fifth of all the theological 
seminaries, and one-third of all their students ; with one-fourth of the colleges, 
nearly six hundred academies, and twenty-six hundred parochial (elementary) 
schools, instructing more than half a million of children, the church is seen to be 
a force which, educationally considered, is equalled by no other single agency but 
the government itself. . . . As a matter of fact, ninety-three per cent, of them do 
maintain parochial schools, in which are educated, generally by the priesthood, 
rarely by laymen (except in the teaching congregations), the 511,063 pupils. In 
addition to these are five hundred and eighty-eight academies, usually for girls, 
and ninety-one colleges."* 

This is the record of our centennial cycle. Those who saw the 
lowly beginning have lived to witness the placing of the coping- 
stone upon the structure now on the way to completion. It is a 
noble showing. Our educational progress has kept pace with our 
growth in other respects. But let us not allow ourselves to be 
dazzled by our present splendors. Let us not take unto ourselves 
the credit of what has been done for us by others. Nay, in the 
midst of the sending up of sky-rockets and the waving of bunt- 
ing and the blank-cartridge roars of laudation and glorification that 
is now going on from throat and press, let us pause and think a 
moment of* those who bore the burden and heat of the day, and 
fought for us the battles and won for us the victories which we 
are now celebrating. Above all must we never forget the noble 
and stubborn stand taken by Archbishop Hughes in the great 
cause of education at a time when the sky lowered and our very 
existence as Catholics was threatened. Let us not forget the priva- 
tions of teachers, the self-denials and almost heroic sacrifices of 
priest and people in order to maintain these schools. It is within 
the memory of all of us how brothers and sisters, after breathing 
the poisonous air of ill-ventilated and over-crowded class-rooms, 
would return to a wretched abode, narrow and confined and poorly 
furnished, and open alike to the severe cold of winter and the in- 
tense heat of summer. Day after day, year in, year out, did they 
move in this circumscribed round of duty, till disease and ex- 
haustion overpowered them and they died, happy that they were 

* Boone, Education in ///< (Tinted States, pp. 267-268. 



1889.] LESSONS OF A CENTURY OF CATHOLIC EDUCATION. 145 

allowed to do some little good among God's chosen poor. Great 
was their privation and suffering, and cheerfully was it borne. We 
look about us and we sum up the results of a century and we 
call them splendid ; but we make no record of the religious men 
and religious women whose lives have gone into the building up 
of these splendid results. Be it so ; the task is faithfully done by 
the recording angel of the hidden sacrifices. This day of holo- 
causts is fast waning. Thanks to the thoughtfulness of the rev- 
erend clergy and the generosity of the people, our school-houses 
are large, commodious, well lighted and well ventilated, and our 
religious teachers are comfortably housed, so that in airy rooms 
they can breathe freely after the excitement of the day's duties in 
class, and calmly prepare their work for the next day. Without 
such a house it is impossible for the most robust constitution to 
withstand for any length of time the strain of spending five or six 
hours with a roomful of children, and immediately afterwards 
shutting one's self up in retirement and study. A large dwelling- 
house may mean luxury in the eyes of the world, but it is 
simply a matter of life or death for a religious community. 

In consequence of the poverty of our people and scarcity of 
money, our schools suffer in many ways. Our teachers are but 
ill-paid. Even our religious teachers would find it to their ad- 
vantage to receive more than the mere pittance now allowed them 
for food and clothing. It may be asked : What more does the 
religious want ? Were man living on bread alone, personally he 
would require little else. But whatever surplus remains in a re- 
ligious community goes to the support of a novitiate, a normal 
school, the infirm and the aged, and the running of the administrative 
departments of the order. With larger means the young men and 
young women aspiring to be religious teachers could be given a 
more thorough training; the normal schools could be more fully 
equipped with chemical and physical apparatus and specimens in 
natural history all of which are most expensive. So, also, in every 
community the library could be increased and made more efficient. 
Some pastors have been very thoughtful in this last respect ; we 
have known them at auction sales and elsewhere to procure large 
quantities of books for the libraries of the sisters and the broth- 
ers. Some of our publishers, non-Catholic as well as Catholic, 
have made generous donations to the libraries of religious houses. 
After all, books are a teacher's tools. And what is any work- 
man, be his skill what it may, without his favorite tools? Here, 
then, is one advantage to be derived from more generous pay- 
ment of teachers. Our religious orders will be able to man our 

VOL. L. 10 



146 LESSONS OF A CENTUR Y OF CA THOLIC EDUCA TION. [Nov., 

schools with more competent and better-trained sisters and 
brothers. But this is not all. 

No matter how numerous our sisterhoods and brotherhoods 
become, they cannot monopolize all Catholic teaching. We must 
have Catholic lay teachers. Much of the success of our 
Catholic schools will depend upon the character of these teachers. 
Now, what is the fact ? Our parochial lay teachers have 
no standing as a body. We have not far to go for the 
cause. They are poorly paid. They have no inducement to 
continue an hour longer at their post than they can help. If 
clever teachers, they too often pass over to the public schools, 
where their merits are recognized and their servkes liberally 
remunerated. Here and there we meet exceptional cases of 
men or women who fully realize the great dignity of being 
Catholic teachers, and who accordingly devote their lives, their 
energies, their talents to the noble cause in as great a spirit 
of self-denial as any religious teachers. They are driven to it 
from the sight of the great need, the immense harvest and 
the few laborers. But theirs is the rare exception. And it is 
certainly sad to contemplate that the calling in life which of all 
human callings is the most elevated should be so slighted. In 
whatever light you look at the teacher's profession you find it 
a noble one. To mould intellect, to develop character, to influ- 
ence the whole future of a soul by directing the youth and 
turning his tastes and aspirations in the path you would have him 
follow there is no more sacred calling than this, after the priest- 
hood, which is a divine privilege. Some are unworthy to touch 
this holy work ; no man is too great for it ; no man stoops in 
undertaking it. Surely it should be thoroughly respectable. 
Surely our Catholic lay teachers should cultivate a sense of the 
dignity and responsibility of their position. Now, though we 
cannot ennoble the teacher's profession in the sight of God and 
his angels, much may be done to raise its standard in the sight 
of men. As things now are, no young man or young woman of 
fair endowments finds an inducement to make teaching in our 
Catholic schools a life-work. Remuneration is too scant. The 
result is that all our best Catholic teachers, at the time that 
their experience has ripened, pass from the work of the class- 
room to other callings in which they are better paid, and give 
place to raw recruits, who in their turn acquire experience at 
the expense of the children. 

Thus we find that, much as has been done, all our educa- 
tional problems are not yet solved. We cannot yet rest upon 



[ 889.] LESSONS OF A CENTUR Y OF CA THOLIC ED UCA TION. 1 47 

our achievements. The second century of our educational exist- 
ence will find many things to complete and amend in our present 
institutions. It is best that we look the fact full in the face, and 
recognize it, and set about supplying our shortcomings according to 
time and occasion. Self-complacency is the bane of many a 
noble undertaking. When we begin to congratulate ourselves on 
our achievements we cease to make further effort. From that 
moment decline and decay enter into our work. It is true of the 
individual; it is true of nations ; it is true of institutions. And 
were this paper devoted exclusively to the work of eulogizing, 
it had better remain unwritten. In the midst of our jubilation a 
little introspection made, not in a carping spirit, but with charity 
and good-will and real desire for our educational progress, in the 
same temper in which we indited other educational articles which 
met with the approval and appreciation of the thoughtful and 
the learned, cannot fail to be wholesome, and will meet the views 
)f the reverend editors in asking an article on the subject.* 

Take our primary schools. It is difficult to define the limits 
to which studies should be carried on in them. In our large 
;ities there should be central high-schools, in which boys who can 
afford to remain long enough at school might enter and receive 
a more extended training. These high-schools would determine 
the extent of the primary course. But without defining what may 
or may not enter the course, we can lawfully insist that the three 
R's be well taught. Now, as a matter of fact, is this not a cry- 
ing evil in all our American elementary training, one from which 
our young men suffer in all their collegiate careers, that very 
many of our children after five, six, seven years' attendance in 
schools cannot read intelligibly; cannot spell; write a poor, illegi- 
ble hand, and are unable to make the simplest mathematical cal- 
;ulation ? Look at the examination papers of the average candi- 
date for West Point, or the Naval Academy, or for entrance into any 
of our colleges, and note the tale they unfold of negligent teaching 
at the time that they should have been well grounded in this 
primary, essential foundation of all knowledge. Can teacher and 
pupil not be impressed with the fact that while it is no great 
honor for any person to speak and write with ordinary correct- 
ness his mother-tongue, it is a great discredit for him not to be 

* To avoid repetition of what we have said elsewhere, and for clearer development of what 
we here can only hint at, we would refer the reader to the following papers from our pen : i. 
" Psychological Aspects of Education," a paper read before the Board of Regents of the Uni- 
versity of New York, July u, 1877. New York: E. Steiger & Co. 2. "The University Ques- 
tion in England and Ireland," American Catholic Quarterly Review, October, 1878. 3. "What 
is the Outlook for our Colleges? " in the same Review, July, 1882. 



148 LESIONS or A CExrrR v OF CATHOLIC EDUCA TION. [Nov., 

able so to use it ? Let the three R's be learned before anything 
else. It will make all other study a pleasure. 

Our parochial schools must be kept Catholic in tone and 
spirit. Our books must be Catholic ; our historical knowledge must 
be studied from the Catholic point of view ; our Catholic religion 
must be clearly expounded, and her ritual and ceremonies made 
attractive. Is there nothing to mend in this regard? We have 
school-books enough with the name Catholic attached. How many 
of them are worthy of that name ? We ask the question, acknowl- 
edging our utter incompetency to decide. But we have seen in 
our day many changes of books, and we have come to the con- 
clusion that that publisher will succeed best who gets up the 
book with brightest cover, neatest type, clearest pictures, and best 
paper. Put a book written by the ablest educators in the land 
into a slovenly binding and you will not find one teacher in ten 
to touch it. We are in this respect becoming no better than our 
non-Catholic public-school brethren. In the matter of the extrava- 
gant get-up of text-books, America has become the laughing- 
stock of Europe. It has more than once become literally true 
that books .have been judged and adopted by school-boards 
merely on the merits of their covers. However, the text-book 
is the least instrument of education. Provided it is succinct and 
covers the ground, the teacher can develop, and the less reliance 
placed upon the book and the more the teacher explains, in 
words few, clear, and to the point, the better it will be for the 
pupil. He must memorize; but he memorizes in order that he 
may understand the teacher's lesson intelligently. The mere reci- 
tation is not the lesson. Another complaint about text-books in 
parochial schools is their want of uniformity. A parent moves 
into a neighboring parish, and forthwith that parent must purchase 
as many new sets of books as he has children going to school. 
This is found to be a great hardship. Here, also, we can 
only indicate the grievance, not suggest a remedy. Tastes differ, 
publishers must live, and competition is strong. But if our paro- 
chial schools are to be anything more than nominal, if they are 
to compete with other schools, they must be uniformly graded 
and subjected to strict supervision. In each city there must be 
an inspector. And this inspector must be no theorist. He must 
be a practical teacher, who has taught class himself, and therefore 
knows all the difficulties that beset the teacher's position. A 
mere educational doctrinaire would only worry the teachers, upset 
the school, and experiment on the pupils. Such an inspector 
were worse than none. 



1 889.] LESSONS OF A CENTUX v OF CA THOLIC ED UCA TIO.\. ' 149 

We come to our academies. Here, also, thoroughness is the 
reat, all-important need. Are our pupils well drilled in whatever 
icy have gone over ? Are they well posted as to all that goes 
to make a good sentence ? Do they know the essentials of Eng- 
lish grammar ? We do not believe in the long and laborious drill 
in parsing and analysis that runs over years of school and ends in 
nothing practical. It makes one neither a better reader, nor a 
>tter writer, nor a better speller. Were the time so spent occupied 
in writing composition, or in developing sentences, or in learning to 
appreciate some of our literary masterpieces, it would be a clear 
rain to the pupil. Whatever our boys have studied in arithmetic, 
>r algebra, or geometry, or mensuration, do they know .it well ? 
Is it so known that they can continue with security their studies 
in the higher mathematics ? And how are they grounded in their 
Latin and Greek grammars ? Is it sought to make them familiar 
ither with Latin and Greek construction than with many authors ? 
The mere skimming of a classic author without a good foundation 
in grammar and construction is great waste of time, and handicaps 
the pupil later on in his collegiate course, when he should be 
prepared to bring a certain relish and appreciation to the reading 
of his author. Are the students of our academies grounded in a 
few principles of natural history and the physical sciences? If 
not earlier, at least in our academies should our pupils acquire 
some elementary knowledge of the great divisions of the mineral, 
the vegetable, and the animal kingdoms; they should understand 
whence we derive the coal that warms them, the chalk with which 
they write on the blackboard, and all the minerals that fall under 
daily observation and are in daily use. Then the student should 
be initiated into the divisions and subdivisions of the animal and 
vegetable kingdoms. He should not live and die ignorant of the 
origin and history of the things within his immediate environ- 
ment. What he learns in this respect should be well and pro- 
perly taught. We are not in favor of cramming, nor do we ask 
our academies to initiate their pupils into all the 'ologies of the 
day. This were folly. We are somewhat surprised to find a man 
of Sir John Lubbock's attainments endorse that superficial dictum 
of Lord Brougham, that one should try to know " everything of 
something, and something of everything." And this he calls not 
being possessed of a smattering, but "being well grounded."* It 
is one of those brilliant generalities that dazzle, but will not bear 
analysis. How may one know everything of any the least subject ? 
How get to know something about all subjects ? Impossible. 



* The Pleasures of Life, p. 181. 



1 50 LESSONS OF A CENTUR Y OE CA I^IOLIC EDUCA TION. [Nov., 

Away with the vague and the indefinite from our educational 
courses ! Be our teaching thorough. Again, we would not be 
understood as complaining. At the writing of these words an 
incident has come to us which will show that we have no reason 
for complaint. A student of one of our academies presented 
himself for West Point. There were several candidates, some of 
them from our public high-schools, some from private non-Cath- 
olic schools. They were asked to read, which they did with more 
or less expression. They were then told to give in turn an ac- 
count of their reading, and the only one to do so with intelligence 
was the student of our Catholic academy, and he won the prize, 
standing first in every branch. Nor is this an exceptional case. 
In many of our academies is solid work being well done. 

Turn we now to our convent schools. We are all proud of 
them. They are to-day among the noblest and most powerful 
strongholds of womanly virtue in the land. They have been the 
educators of our Catholic mothers and our Catholic sisters. Every 
convent school is a garden of choicest and rarest flowers of girl- 
hood and womanhood, exhaling modesty, purity, and all those 
amiable qualities that make our homes an earthly paradise. The 
convent schools are real educators. Who can name the infinite 
pains the nuns take with every child confided to them ? How 
they study every fold of character, touch every fibre of the heart, 
and mould the soul through childhood into girlhood, and from girl- 
hood to budding womanhood. They never grow tired in their 
efforts to control children's impetuosities, keep their vanity within 
legitimate bounds, and teach them the great and useful lesson of 
self-control. In after years, when worry and suffering come upon 
her who was at one time "the sweet girl-graduate," with what a sigh, 
an intense pleasure, she looks back to the days she spent within the 
peaceful haven of the convent walls. Even a Louise Michel or a 
Georges Sand cannot contemplate those days without emotion. 

But while the nuns leave little to be desired as educators, is 
there nothing in which they may not improve in their methods 
and subjects of instruction ? Is their course in literature sufficient 
to carry their pupils beyond a taste for the novel ? Do they give 
them a desire for solid reading ? Do they gratify that desire ? 
The instruction they impart, is it of that robust character that it 
really grapples with subjects and presents their great principles 
and main issues before the pupils ? Or does it simply nibble at 
the odds and ends of a subject in such a manner as to conceal 
the principal branches and leave the pupils content with the 
crumbs given them ? Can our convent graduates in general liter- 



1 889.] LESSONS OF A CENT UK v OF CA THOLIC EDUCA TION. 1 5 1 

ature, in solid scientific study, hold their own with the graduates 
of our non-Catholic seminaries ? Will the knowledge they have 
acquired carry them through to any of the universities or any of 
the professions which are now opened to our young women ? 
Have they settled literary principles ? Are they prepared to form 
a clear judgment as to the merits or defects of a book ? Have 
they mastered a good, sound course of historical reading ? Or is 
their knowledge of history confined to the mere text-book ? Are 
they prepared to answer the objections raised against their reli- 
gion ? Have they literary ballast enough to keep them from gush- 
ing over the latest literary fad or craze, and at the same time to 
see whatever merits it may possess ? Are they prepared without 
being at all blue-stockings to undertake serious reading in 
history, in popular science, or upon any of the social questions of 
the day ? We only put these questions as an introspective review. 
We do not pretend to answer them. We dare say some of our 
convent schools are fast coming abreast of the times and prepar- 
ing to do full justice by their charge ; let us hope that before 
long all will be found equal to the best schools among our non- 
Catholic neighbors. 

Then there are our colleges. Have we reason to be satisfied 
with their working? Do we find nothing in them to improve 
upon ? We are now speaking of those institutions in which real 
effort is made to give a thorough collegiate training; not the 
numerous boarding and day-schools bearing the name. Have not 
our professors been overworked ? How else may we account for 
their sterility in literature and science ? Young men and old 
men, in the midst of onerous duties and responsibilities, are 
flooding the press with original work of considerable merit, with 
editions of the classics, in Latin, in Greek, and in Anglo-Saxon, 
writing thoughtful articles for periodicals, reading papers at liter- 
ary and scientific gatherings ; of all these, what percentage is 
Catholic ? In Germany the professor who ceases to produce is 
considered a dead branch. According to this, how much dry 
wood there must be in our Catholic colleges ! 

Hitherto our collegiate courses have been carried out upon 
exclusively seminarian lines. The classics have had a predomi- 
nance. And yet, considering the time devoted to them, our grad- 
uates have not acquired that proficiency which might have been 
expected. Only recently an eminent professor in one of our 
leading theological seminaries asked us why it was that young 
men graduating from our Catholic colleges were so ignorant of 
Latin construction. Is it not due to the absence of thoroughness 



152 L KSSONS OF A CENTUR Y OF CA THOLIC El) UCA TIOX. [Nov. , 

in the earliest years' study, and to the superfkialness with which 
authors are afterwards skimmed over ? Boys are put reading the 
poets too early, and the labor expended on them is all lost so 
far as Latin construction is concerned. A study of the idioms of 
Cicero and Caesar is the only study that avails for purposes of 
prose composition. Now, classics as they are taught, and a short 
course of mathematics, and a very superficial course of history 
and English, with a few experiments in physics and chemistry, is 
the make-up of our collegiate training up to the philosophy 
year. To these is added a course of some text-book giving the 
essentials of scholastic philosophy, with or without explanation. 
The whole trend of modern thought is ignored, or casually alluded 
to as a thing outside and far away. Modern literatures and 
modern sciences social, political, physical, and sesthetical are all 
knocking at our doors for admission, and we cannot keep them 
out without doing grave injustice to our students. These young 
men are to live and labor and fight their battles out in the nine- 
teenth century, and they are equipped in sixteenth-century armor. 
Somehow this is not the occasion to discuss so fruitful a theme 
an adjustment must be made, and place given to modern literatures 
and modern sciences in our schedules of study. Lastly, in our 
colleges, above all, must there be a complete > religious training : the 
doctrines of the church fully exposed, the errors of the day pointed 
out and separated from the truth on which they are based, the 
beauty and significance of ritual and ceremonial shown forth. Every 
Catholic student finishing his collegiate course should perceive the 
plan and purpose of the church in the world's history. There 
now lies before us a letter from one who has made a special 
study of every eddy and current of modern thought, whose name 
is identified with what is highest and best in modern literature, 
and speaking of the higher education, he says: "The waste of time 
and material is enormous. ... If I were to say in one word 
what I think most wanting to us, I should declare it was a 
reform in the principles and method of teaching. But where is it 
to begin ? " Catholic educators, where is it to begin ? 

We Catholics hold the traditions of all education. Whatever 
is had to-day from Greece or Rome has come down through our 
Catholic ancestors. As we hold supernatural truth in its com- 
pleteness, so also should the whole of natural truth be ours. . 
Therefore, in our schools should we find place for every science and 
every art. This is another part of the work of the second cen- 
tury of our existence, to establish schools for the various branches 
of science and art. Have we ever considered the untried pos- 



1 889.] LESSONS OF A CENTUR Y OF CA rnouc ED UCA TION. 1 5 3 

sibilities of our educational institutions in America? There are 
many such in which we Catholics may excel here in the future 
as we have excelled elsewhere in the past. Why may we not 
with time possess a school of art that will educate all America ? 
Ours are the traditions of art in their purest and best forms. 
To us belong the Leonardo da Vincis, the Fra Angelicos, the 
Michelangelos, the Rafaels. And when one of our Catholic ladies 
interprets for us their masterpieces in language classic and ele- 
gant, we feel a new sense awakening within us, and we are all 
the better. Compare the criticisms of Eliza Allen Starr with the 
sometimes coarse remarks of Ruskin or the insinuations of Taine, 
and you will at once form a faint conception of how Catholic 
feelings and Catholic instincts alone can direct true art. Is it a 
dream beyond all realization, in these days of wonders, that in 
every large centre there may not be such schools of ecclesiastical 
art as is that of St. Luke's, conducted by the Christian Brothers, in 
Ghent, Belgium ? We will have churches to build and decorate 
then as now. Why should we let our beautiful Catholic tradi- 
tions, our noble Catholic ideals, become lost in modern realism ? 
Then a wide field is open in the organization of schools for 
the study of the mechanical arts. The future of the world is in 
the hands of the workingman. Now is the day and the hour 
in which to hold him under control and give him guidance. 
The morrow may be too late. It is with a sense of terror we 
notice the amount of anti-Christian and anti-social reading 
matter that is being circulated among the artisans. They are 
a hard-headed, logical class of men, who do their own thinking 
while working at their trades ; they like to be spoken to 
seriously ; they are not content with trashy reading ; they 
must have solid works. You will find in their hands 
treatises on political economy, tracts on the social evils and 
their remedies, works of self-improvement. You will find 
among them certain leading spirits who give color to their 
views and teach them how to interpret their readings in a 
good or bad sense. They will reason with you and look at 
many sides of a question before accepting its conclusions. They 
are a most independent body. They ask no favors. They stand 
on their rights. You may convince them, you may lead 
them, but you cannot drive them. Their children's children are the 
future rulers of the land. How may they be reached ? By the 
establishment of schools for the trades and mechanical arts in 
which a Christian atmosphere is inhaled and the Christian 
.spirit is preserved. These schools would graduate a certain 



154 /- SSSl >. \ '.V OF A C EN TUX Y OF C'A THOLIC ED UCA TION. [Nov. , 

number each year, who would be in great demand as foremen, 
and who by their education and general intelligence would 
wield influence in the clubs and associations of which they would 
be naturally the central figures. Through such a class of skilled 
mechanics, with a Christian spirit, might the workingmen and 
artisans of America be preserved from the socialistic deluge that 
now threatens the world. 

Besides the technical schools which would reach only a special 
class, another and a comparatively large body -may be reached 
by technical night-schools, in which mathematics, drawing, and sur- 
veying could be taught. There are thousands of young men in 
our large cities who would gladly attend such schools during two hours 
a certain number of times in the week, and who would be most 
grateful for the assistance thus rendered them.* 

Lastly, a want pressing us upon all sides, an urgent want 
which we cannot too soon set about remedying, and which we 
cannot too earnestly study, and devise ways and means to com- 
pass, is this : How may we keep our boys, especially of the 
poorer class in the congested districts of our large cities, out of 
the saloons and the contaminating influences under which they live 
after they have left our parochial schools, say from their sixteenth 
to their twentieth year? Generation after generation of this class 
pass through our schools. They have made their first Commu- 
nion ; they have been confirmed ; they have frequently knelt in 
confession, and yet what becomes of them all ? What multitudes 
of them fall into sinful habits of life ! How very many of them are 
anything but a comfort to their pastors or to their aging parents ! 
Now, how can this class be reached and held to a sense of duty 
and respectability ? How can the faith be kept aglow in their 
breast so as to sustain them in temptation and render them hon- 
est, upright, law-abiding citizens ? Will sodalities keep them to- 
gether and bind them to the church ? Will Catholic clubs and 
Catholic literary societies ? Will charitable organizations ? Will 
lectures ? Will public entertainments ? These things all appeal 
to the young man of respectable home and good home-training 
but do they touch the hearts of the sons of poverty and destitu- 
tion ? We know not ; what we do know is that prayer will benefit 
them and God in his own good time will send the man who will 
reach them and teach others how to reach them and mould them 
into good citizens and sincere Catholics. BROTHER AZARIAS . 

* While writing this we find with pleasure the announcement made that St. Francis 
Xavier's College, New York, has opened a night-school in which poor youths may be instructed 
gratis in Latin and Greek (New York Sun, September 9, 1889). It is a step in the right direction. 



1889.] RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 155 



RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 

THERE is a subdued but palpable humor, a delicately re- 
served satire, not the less delicious on that account, in Mr. Wil- 
frid Ward's story * of the youth of his father. It pervades without 
obtrusiveness the margins of the great roadway over which that 
strong and quaint man trudged, always athletic even in his 
errors, always manly even in his mishaps, seeking truth and find- 
ing for many years only hardship, perplexity, and opposition. 
Mr. Ward has given a singularly comprehensive picture of Oxford, 
of the time that drew so many intellectual giants from mere aes- 
theticism of religion into rock-based theology and Christian love. 
He has drawn a powerful sketch of one of the most original and 
forcible leaders of that striking procession into whose still 
passing ranks the finest thought of England contributes annually 
many notable men and women. Equally with the truth of the 
single portrait, the toning of the picture must fascinate every ob- 
server. No light is forced ; no artificial draperies hang beside 
the rugged and muscular subject. Ward appears in absolute sim- 
plicity of character ; the view of Oxford, of his contemporaries, of 
his associations and domestic and collegiate career, is alive with 
charming truth. The volume deals only, it should be added, 
with the earlier life ; it ends with his conversion. His great life 
was to come afterward. He was to be professor of dogmatic 
theology by the choice of Cardinal Wiseman ; Pope Pius IX. was 
to confer upon him the Doctorate of Philosophy ; he was to be- 
come editor of the Dublin Review, and in its pages refute the 
theism of John Stuart Mill. He was to become, with eccentrici- 
ties and imperfections, one of the stalwart figures in Catholic 
England, and to leave after him he died in 1882 an imperish- 
able addition to the best English literature. 

The humor of this first volume, gentle and restrained, exists 
in the phenomena of the time and the circumstances surrounding 
religious life in Oxford. It is not at all in the design of Mr. 
Wilfrid Ward's book. Where it appears in the text it is spon- 
taneous and inevitable because of its propriety as a legitimate 
part of the story. Goethe has correctly pronounced humor one 
of the elements of genius. It protects the greatest of intellects 
from the consequences of false reasoning ; by making incongrui- 

* William George Ward and the Oxford Movement. By Wilfrid Ward. Macmillan. 



156 RELIGION A. YD MULLIONS. [Nov.,. 

ties obvious, it has preserved statesmen and poets from ludicrous 
or mortifying blunders. The want of it deprived Wordsworth of 
the power of discriminating, as Lowell has so wittily said, between 
truth, which is the breath of the muse's nostril, and fact, which 
suffocates her. An almost Scotch poverty of humor has prevented 
Mr. Gladstone from detecting the many self-contradictions in his 
controversial writings, and tricked him into that famous pamphlet 
of fifteen years ago in which, having hung upon the wall of his 
vast mind a ridiculous assumption concerning the Vatican Council, 
he proceeded to expound therein a long series of erroneous in- 
ferences and ingeniously absurd deductions. Intuitively the world 
that understands the vast range of Mr. Gladstone's industry has 
come to appreciate the certainty of this modern peripatetic to 
lose his way in downright seriousness ; and moved by that scien- 
tific approval which selects the best things a man does and forgets 
the paltry, the erring, and the transient, the Vatican pamphlet 
has been forgotten. 

Nothing could be more unlike than the humor of Sir Thomas 
More and the humor of Ward, the Oxonian. Both were devotees 
of the classics ; both were trained in the austerest dialectics ; 
each was profoundly religious by nature, and both, humble and 
reverent, could smile at misfortune even while it tortured body 
and harrowed soul. The humor of religious natures is necessarily 
akin to humility. The more a reasonable creature contemplates 
the folly and the term of human life, the more acute is his con- 
tempt of its pomps, whose emptiness he is enabled more clearly 
to perceive. The longer a disciplined mind dwells in the peaceful 
calm of sane reflection, the deeper his duties or opportunities may 
carry him into the quiet world of scholarship, the more fully he 
realizes the vanity of pretentiousness and the insincerity of assum- 
ing that it is in anybody's power to know more than a very 
little of this world's knowledge, and none of that of the next ex- 
cept what God has chosen to impart. It was this consciousness 
which made Thomas Aquinas so impervious to flattery ; it was 
the manifest incongruity between his apprehension of his attain- 
ments and his conviction of the greatness of the knowledge un- 
attainable in a human life that caused him to shrink with actual 
grief from the posts of responsibility and distinction to which he 
was so often called in vain. It was this correct but for common 
mortals unintelligible appreciation of incongruities this noble 
humor which helped to make him for all time " a mystery of 
moral loveliness." 

The humor of Sir Thomas More was subtle, witty, penetrating, 



I889-] 



RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 



157 



and exquisite. It was that of a temperament in which the philo- 
sophic habit contended with the fancy of the poet and the charity 
of a saint. There must have been an incessant combat between 
his natural tendency to be caustic and his acquired grace of being 
invariably sympathetic. He could not but jest even on the scaf- 
fold ; but his most pungent quips wound only hypocrisy ; his 
most elaborate satire is aimed only at the stupidity of the calcu- 
lation that political contrivances are ever going completely to 
remedy the evils and inequalities of human society. A man bred 
in university erudition and expert with the foils that sawed the 
air of college life during periods when air-sawing was the chief 
gymnastic, he was devoid of that insistent combative spirit which 
usually is inherent in energetic tempers. Ward in many respects 
was the opposite of Sir Thomas, while resembling him in massive 
and imperturbable simplicity. He was less subtle, more virile, 
less penetrative, more resonant ; slow where More was alert, 
ponderous where More would have been incisive and fatal, bel- 
ligerent where More would have been patient and silent. Ward 
was not the equal of More in accomplishments, and lacked the 
natural inclinations that rendered the great chancellor the most 
capable critic of art and of architecture, the most eminent aesthete 
(we may not be pardoned for saying) of his time. Ward had 
not More's versatility, his love of nature, his fondness of sea, of 
sky, of the mountains, the vales, the birds and flowers, that found 
in. the patron of Erasmus a lay Saint Francis. Taking into ac- 
count their totally different stations in life, their corresponding 
philosophic and theological habits, there is enough in common 
between them to make their disparities attractive. Both prove, 
in essentially unlike ways, that humor, gayety, a child-like superi- 
ority over the dismal and gruesome, capacity to smile kindly at 
even the rasping and anguishing of human influences, are har- 
monious with, perhaps an indispensable constituent of, healthful 
intellectual activity. 

In his early youth the humor and the genuine morality of 
Ward manifested themselves closely together. One of his pro- 
genitors was clerk to one Cornwallis, involved in a pathetic inci- 
dent this side of the Atlantic (at Yorktown, to wit), from the 
effects of which he recovered sufficiently to participate with un- 
feigned disgust in the corruption and abolition of the Parliament 
of Ireland a few years afterward. The Ward who paid the king's 
forces off at Gibraltar did not accompany him to America, hav- 
ing engaged in the more agreeable if not more honorable duty 
of marrying a Spanish wife with the suggestive name of Raphael; 



158 RELIGION AND MULLIONS. [Nov., 

and certain traits in Ward of Oxford are traceable to the heritage 
of intensity and enthusiasm thus introduced into Isle of Wight 
veins. Ward's father was a Tory member for London, a director 
of the Bank of England, an authority on finance and an investiga- 
tor of the East India Company, a friend of the Duke of Welling- 
ton and a famous cricketer. The family lent useful men to the 
statesmanship of earlier times, one of them being a protege of 
the younger Pitt; another was in one of Lord John Russell's 
cabinets. Ward himself in his childhood was a sturdy fellow, not 
to be dragooned into politeness nor very changeable in any re- 
spect, except by the grace of God. He was addicted to music 
and mathematics a natural and delightful combination ; he yearned 
for the theatre and he detested society. Prodigious talent in cer- 
tain gifts was associated with an awkwardness, a clumsiness, and 
a taciturnity which made him seem generally bored. On one 
occasion, when forced by his father to go to a children's ball, he 
behaved himself with desperate impropriety, during the whole 
evening giving out what Sydney Smith so admired and rarely 
got in Macaulay, "a brilliant flash of silence." Like Macaulay in 
only one respect, he had an extraordinary memory, and read, like 
him, everything he could lay hands on. He finally escaped alone, 
and ran home through muddy roads and pelting rain, his feet wet 
in his evening shoes. He was never asked to go to another party. 

With all his love of fun, his pranks and propensity for ad- 
venture, he felt a horror of the vices that had established them- 
selves in the preparatory school to which he was sent, and be- 
fore he entered Oxford a spirit had been born in him which was 
to burn with unflagging zeal for the purifying of the education 
of English youth. Fond of sport, but amenable to law ; indiffer- 
ent to conventionalities, but rigidly honest in all his doings, his 
conscientious detestation of the low, the coarse, the ignoble, be- 
came so well known in his young manhood that he was easily 
named among the coterie who lent in his day to the quadrangles 
and river paths an odor of something better than fighting, of 
something more rational than cramming. 

It is not the purpose (3f this article to touch upon the grave 
controversy which was developed out of the Tractarian movement. 
It is only to look for a moment upon that strain' which preceded 
this momentous impulse and which has survived it ; which dwells 
in Oxford as in a pagan temple ; which breaks out in ritualism 
and sobs in languid religious poetry ; whose germ is in every 
tender and worshipful heart, and which to many excellent souls 
is religion. A great architect, himself a convert to the Catholic 






1889.] RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 159 

Church, visited Ward several years before the latter's admission. 
He was a devotee of Gothic architecture, which his father had 
done so much to revive in England. He found upon Ward's 
table the works of Saint Bonaventure and the Summa of Saint 
Thomas. He believed with Faber, but in a material sense, that 

Christian culture, 

" rejecting heathen mould, 
Should draw her types from Europe's middle night." 

To him Gothic architecture alone was suitable for the render- 
ing of divine service. When he became acquainted with the 
profound earnestness of Ward, now in the middle of the task 
which he had set to himself the solution of his own religious 
doubts the architect declared to a common friend: " What an 
extraordinary thing that so glorious a man as Ward should be 
living in a room without mullions to the windows." 

Nothing was more natural in Oxford, and the words were 
uttered in a sincerely devout spirit. Pugin spoke for a vast body 
of cultivated Christians who then and now confound taste with 
prayer, and to whom theology necessarily implies almost, if not 
quite on par with itself, conventionalized externals artificially re- 
lated to faith. The mediaeval environment, translated into a 
modern fad, possesses a talisman for imaginations that conceive of 
cathedrals as necessarily filled with only dim religious light, and 
who amiably cherish the illusion that light to be religious must be 
dim. Ward was not of this weakly if gentle tribe. " What are 
mullions ? " was his brusque reply. " I never heard of them ! " 

The chief trouble with Mullions Christians is that they want 
only mullions and not windows, and that mullions stand to them 
for the whole duty of man. The trouble with mullions under 
such conditions is that they keep the light of God from getting 
into a temple, and they keep the eyes of a Christian who makes 
a cult of mere aesthetics in religion from seeing the beautiful 
world that is outside them ; what is vastly more important, from 
seeing that while the world itself is beautiful it is filled with the 
lelpless, the crippled, the unfortunate, the misled ; with poverty 
it needs assuagement, with children that have no parents, with 
)ld age abandoned to despair on the threshold of the grave ; 
rith the dead hand, which is no longer mortmain in real estate, 
>ut entailed bigotry or unbelief which goes down from family to 
imily, acquiring nothing but encumbrances of added doubt ; and 
ie theism which ribbons itself out with various fine names, but 
is dead for all good in this world and totally careless of the next. 
[ullions in religion has much to do with religious mortmain. 



160 RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 

To poetic minds there is something very alluring in incompre- 
hensible religious symbols. The mullion has been architecturally 
consecrated. It is universally admitted to be, if not religious, at 
least ecclesiastical. It is not exclusively Gothic. Nor has it an 
antiquity to boast beyond the period when Norman-French was 
stamping its graceful caprices and beautiful dreams upon the plastic 
English that was not yet all English, but considerably Scandi- 
navian and somewhat Dutch. If we look into its pedigree the 
scriveners are found at fault. In the standard dictionary where 
the Wards not in Oxford may seek to cure their ignorance, we 
are told that mullion is perhaps from the French to mould ; and 
possibly out of this the Mullions Christians may derive a con- 
solatory myth. They may fancy that Christianity with mullions 
is moulded more upon the mediaeval than Christianity without 
mullions ; that it is more aesthetic and represents a higher grade 
of religious sensibility and a more splendid ritual than a plainer 
Christianity. Unhappily, there appears to be no warrant for this 
etymology. The correct form of mullion is munnion, according 
to the best authority ; and munnion is, alack ! only a stump. The 
mullion of a window in a Gothic or Renaissance temple is the 
stump of the division before it breaks off into the tracery. 
Beautiful as well designed and skilfully executed tracery is, es- 
sential as is the stump to the frame of the opening for air and 
light, it is the air and the light after all that are essential ; and while 
mullions are highly decorative, if the house be harmoniously 
composed, it is possible to exaggerate their importance. 

Oxford has become the home of mullions Christianity. The 
Wards are less numerous than they were in the elder half of the 
century. The university supplies England now with politicians, lite- 
rary men, candidates for benefices in which the income is the only 
living the occupant is generally dead in all senses but the physical. 
Honest men there are in great numbers, earnest and unselfish 
men, striving, many of them, to do good for their fellows. But 
the pews are empty except upon social occasions, and the gap 
between the Establishment all mullioned and the poor, for 
whom the Gospel is supposed to be peculiarly intended, since they 
have nothing else, are little disposed to soil the cushions or find 
heavenly consolation in the mullions. No other city in the world 
is so generally mullioned as London. The light is shut out as firmly 
as possible from the churches, from the Houses of Parliament, 
from the Law Courts, from the Temple. It is shut out desper- 
ately from the million or two of starving toilers in garrets, in 
attics, in even the lowest floors of the great rat homes that 



1889.] RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 161 

tumble upon each other's scrawny necks in miles of narrow and 
dingy lanes and courts. The learning of England is infatuated 
with lancet windows ; and the mullion that ornaments the exte- 
riors of the most imposing edifices in the cathedral towns is 
apparently no more insensible than the smut that hides the light 
from English poverty in factory centres and metropolitan dens 
which the police never enter except in squads. 

Ward was a Christian without mullions. Some years later he 
had a house built, and Pugin was the architect. The latter had 
contrived a remarkably fine screen for Old Hall College, near 
which Ward's house was. But in it " comfort was preferred to 
beauty of form ; lancet windows were tabooed ; plenty of light 
and plenty of air were insisted on at the cost of any infringe- 
ment of the rules of art." Pugin felt the barbarity of Ward 
keenly. He regretted building a house for him at all after he 
found how profligate was his insensibility to mullions. He deplored 
that such a man was permitted^ to live near the screen of Old 
Hall College. Indeed, the screen became a contention. There 
were pro-screen men and anti-screen men. Because Ward criti- 
cised rood screens as undevotional, Pugin wrote to him : " I con- 
sider you a greater enemy to true Christianity than the most 
rabid fanatic." 

Life as well as religion was very practical with Ward. He 
was married when he entered the Catholic Church. He resigned 
his post in Oxford. He was without any but the scantiest in- 
come. There were no mullions on the windows for either him 
or Mrs. Ward. A very humorous glow is perhaps unintentionally 
imparted to this portion of the chronicle. The clergyman who 
had eased his ferry across from the younger into the older church 
showed, he says, " such a knowledge of human nature. He told 
Mrs. Ward to make a retreat and to practise certain austerities; 
but he told me to unbend my mind as much as possible and go 
to the play as often as I could." As it was necessary for 
Mrs. Ward to be cook in the cottage, her retreats were possibly 
culinary. There may have been mullions upon the kitchen, for 
so unsuccessful was she that when friends were invited to dine 
upon a haunch of venison sent as a gift to Ward, one of them had 
the shocking manners to say it tasted like cold wet blanket. 
Happily, Ward came into an inheritance soon afterward ; and 
although he adhered to light and air in preference to mullions, they 
were enabled the remainder of their days to have healthful diet 
with their healthful Christianity. 

The life of Ward at Oxford is felicitously as well as truthfully 

VOL L. II 



1 62 RELIGION AXD J/r/././av.v. [Nov., 

written. The picture has changed little except that one who 
visits the town to-day will feel that mullions are more and more, 
and faith is less and less, within its enticing precincts. Ruskin 
was indeed justified in pronouncing its great street the most 
beautiful in the world. Whatever one's creed or cult, Christian, 
Pagan, Buddhist, Confucian or nothing but mullions one 
might well wish to live in Oxford. Westminster Abbey makes 
even an Irish heart soften to hard England. In Oxford all 
national and racial metes are effaced. Its clusters of colleges, 
its groves, its meadows and river are monumental witnesses to 
the universality of scholarship and the democracy of true learn- 
ing. Intellectual and moral progress is epitomized in its hoary 
structures. The prevailing tendency of the age to get away 
from religion of every positive kind is emphasized in the mem- 
ories that are most popularly cherished. The visitor is led to 
Addison's walk, but the door is locked that leads to the pulpit 
in which John Henry Newman Breached the sermons that have 
troubled a century. The tree under which Heber, remembered 
as poet, loved to study is carefully protected from clipping ; the 
slab that covers Pusey must be discovered by chance. The 
days when ivied cloisters echoed the chants of studious monks 
are not gone more completely than the later ones when Angli- 
canism felt the pulse of tremendous spiritual individualities yearn- 
ing for worthier work than the dry didactics of the lecture-room 
or the suave offices of state functions. 

It is one of these spiritual Anglicans, Dr. Jessop,* who has said 
that the Church of England has never known how to deal with a 
man of genius. Where he has not been the object of relentless 
persecution, he has been at least regarded with timid suspicion, 
shunned by prudent men of low degree, and forgotten by those of 
high. " In the Church of England there has never been a time 
when the enthusiast has not been treated as a very unsafe man." 
Wordsworth felt this even in his early time. Mullions were then 
as they are now the preponderating feature of Oxford architecture. 
The more modern the structure, the more pronounced the mun- 
nioning. The ancient spirit of open air, of love of sun and de- 
light in humanizing contact, has been yielding steadily to "men- 
tal stone -breaking" in the closet and pedantic exclusion in libra- 
ries; to palsy of spirituality and to agnosticism concerning all 
things not material. Wordsworth's question was answered half a 
century ago. Time has confirmed the reply. 

" Is ancient piety for ever flown? " 

'' 'I'll, " the I-'ri :>:-. 



I889-] 



RELIGION AND MULLIONS. 



163 



'The crowds who used to flock about the Anglican altars in 
the earlier years had disappeared. 

* " Alas ! even they seemed like fleecy clouds 

That, struggling through the western sky, have won 
Their pensive light from a departed sun. " 

Mullions have their value. They are a graceful and monotoning 
influence. They have acquired an eminent moral significance. It 
is already very much deteriorated in consequence of making them 
a commonplace of hotel facades, market elevations, and town-hall 
fronts. They 'note the roads by which religious symbolism is dis- 
appearing in England. The mullion, even in religion, is not to 
be derided. Ruskin has observed in Pr&terita that it was well 
for him to have been born in a humble house in Brunswick 
Square and have Warwick Castle to be astonished at, than to 
have been born in Warwick Castle and have nothing to be aston- 
ished at. It is certain, he adds, that it would not help matters 
in the least to have Warwick Castle pulled down. So with mul- 
lions and religion. It is better to have religion without mullions 
and have mullions yea, the entire category of aestheticism to 
surprise and entertain, than to have only aestheticism and no faith 
here or hereafter. It is certain that religion would be badly off with- 
out Gothic and Roman and Renaissance ; it is a pure and authentic 
impulse in the heart that seeks to embellish ritual and temple 
with decorative dignity, and to make the holy places of earth 
shrines for the beauty its Creator has conferred upon it, and the 
love of which he has implanted in our nature. But mullions may 
be made too much of. Pugin's luminous mind became clouded 
by the excess to which his culture of Gothic carried his too sensitive 
imagination. The misery that pervades England to-day and has 
convulsed her capital is a loud protest against a mullion Christian- 
ity. Be it Agnostic, Anglican, or Catholic, it may please the eye 
of the aesthetic ; the Christianity of Christ pleads for air and light, 
for love and practical brotherhood. It is an affectation, not a 
true thing. It is material. It is deaf and dumb. It is incap- 
able of healing a soul or binding up a body. Against its wood- 
enness rises up, in the verse of Katharine Tynan, 

" The world's cry, desolate, 

Like a sad, gray, wounded bird, 
Beating wild at Heaven's gate 

And One speaking not a word ; 
Like a dead King keeping state 
With his tender heart unstirred." 

MARGARET F. SULLIVAN. 



164 A CALL. [Nov., 



A CALL. 

" Now what will I read ? " I was saying to myself, I thought, in 

my study chair, 

Looking up at my books from shelf to shelf, fondly feeling there, 
In their words enshrined, lay many a mind of the greatest that 

ever were. 
'Twas at the moment my eyes fell on the one I had long loved 

most, 
And labored at, too, for all that I knew men said, " Twas love's 

labor lost " ; 

As if lost could be labor honestly loved, whatever it cost ! 
With that thought, while I looked, like a Presence stirred the 

depths of my inmost sense ; 
Not as seen or self-felt, but as being there known of my being's 

self-reverence. 

Then ah ! why try to explain ? What more may I know 
Than as of over-consciousness was mystical outflow, 
My life from, to that life-word of the World's Scholar-Saint, 
As there my spirit his would seize, but, yearning so, waxed faint 
For very sweetness of the yearning. When forth, like a living 

breath, 

As the spirit of his spirit came, mine strengthening, and yet 
So sweetly soothing ! Earth's cares, e'en the old self-care, did die 
Within my soul, the while the whole of what used to say " I," 
Alert, instinct with some new sense, as of a second youth, 
Felt living the true life at last, Love listening to Truth. 
Seemed the Voice to say, not in the way of sound to hearing's 

sense, 

But as spirit unto spirit, in pure thought's conference : 
" 'Tis time. Turn in. Within thee seek the centre of thy soul. 
Self silence there. Then shalt thou hear Mind's mystic echoes roll 
From out the everlasting hills, self telling of the whole. 
So shalt thou sing. And though the voice, yea, though the words 

be thine, 

Shalt for the universal need 
Of head and heart, of truth and deed, 
Thought-echo the Divine ! " 

T. J. O'MAHONV. 

All Hallows College, Dublin. 



1889.] 



SHAKESPEARE' s HANDWRITING. 



165 



SHAKESPEARE'S HANDWRITING. 

IT is rather remarkable (or perhaps, in view of certain ten- 
dences, we should say, it is not in the least remarkable) that in 
all the tergiversations of three hundred years of Shakespearean 
Criticism, some very apparent and sublunary, and absolutely as- 
certained data of his life and ways, remain entirely unhandled. 

This simple, unostentatious gentleman, who, by minding his 
own business, accumulated one of the largest fortunes of which 
we have any record in King James the First, his times ; this 
man, who brought the English stage up from the vilest condition 
of the cock-pit and the bear-garden, and made it what it is at 
its most and its best an Arbiter of Letters and of manners 
this man never trod the earth ! He walked, not the London pave- 
ments, but the Empyrean ! His motive and aim were to teach 
Ontologies and Eschatologies to his fellow-men and to Posterity. 
He wrote Julius Ccesar to warn humanity against the error of 
confounding Patriotism with Passion ; his Tempest to show that 
Enchantment, Astrology, and Sorcery were really Engines of 
Personal Providence ; his Lear to teach how Emotion, vexed to 
a Strain of Life, must centralize into an Arch-Form of Tension, 
which would form a Derationalization of Nature-Movement! 

I hasten to say that I do not understand the above terms. 
I merely copy them literally from some of the latest London 
(not Bedlam) Shakespearean Commentary ! Without comment 
upon them, my only purpose, in this brief paper, is to call atten- 
tion to a very commonplace concern indeed, absurdly vulgar, in- 
deed, as contrasted with the noble introspection above indicated. 
I merely desire to basely suggest that perhaps we could construct 
an alphabet of William Shakespeare's Handwriting ! 

Of the four or five so-called autographs of Shakespeare (and 
they are well enough known, and there is something in favor of 
each of them), I do not propose a recapitulation. But, of them 
all, there is one which, by English Law and by all custom, precedent, 
and probability, MUST be authentic. I mean the last signature 
at the bottom of the last of the three sheets of paper upon 
which William Shakespeare's Last Will and Testament was sol- 
emnly written. The Law required that a testator's name should 
be written on each sheet. It did not say that each sheet should 
be SIGNED by the Testator. But the Testator was supposed to 



1 66 SHAKESPEARE 's HANDWRITIXI.. [Nov., 

sign, once and finally, the document ; otherwise it could not have 
been his Will at all. Now, the first two sheets of Shakespeare's 
Will bear each the name " WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE"; but the writ- 
ing (and the orthography, for that matter) of each is as unlike 
the other as both are unlike the " signature " in the Florio, or in 
the Title Deed. But, on the last sheet, there are the words, 
" BY ME, WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE," as follows (and that he wrote 
them thus with his own hand and not by another's, is only to 
say that by the document so signed his worldly chattels were dis- 
posed, and his realty devised) : 





Now, I am not aware that any commentator has called atten- 
tion to the fact that, out of the twenty-six letters of the English 
Alphabet, here we are informed how William Shakespeare wrote 
thirteen, viz. : 

a b e h i k 1 m p r s w y. 

And if, perhaps, it would not be quite as transcendental as 
finding the lofty purposes of Trinculo or Ariel in the Tempest ; 
to conjecture, that from the forms of certain letters at the point 
of a . rapid writer's pen, we might shape certain others possibly 
we might assume that William Shakespeare's g or q was some- 
thing like his y or his c, and his o something like his i or his c ; 
or his u and his n and his v not so very different from his m y 
save in a stroke the less ; or his d like his q or his g reversed, 
or his t more or less like his / if we might go as far as this, I 
say, we would then have substantially the alphabet that an English 
writer uses; for we have only left the /, f, ;tr, and #, four of the 
least used of letters, and the /, after all, was indifferent with the 
was only in fact an initial small i ; and // and v were mainly 
written as one. 

It would be interesting indeed to proceed further, to demon- 
strate that the above postulate, if granted, might throw some 
curious lights and shadows upon what commentators are pleased 
to call the CRUCES SHAKESPEAREAN^ (by which they mean the 
readings which most of us absorb, even if we cannot quite syn- 
thesize the meanings of). Perhaps my limits might justify a 
single example. When Juliet is longing for night to come, that 



1889.] 



SHAKESPEARE' s HANDWRITING. 



6 7 



her banished lover may snatch his first nuptial visit, she says, in 
pathetic poetry (the second quarto of 1599, the first of 1597 con- 
taining no such lines) : 

Spread thy close curtaine, love performing night 
That runnawayes eyes may wincke, and Romeo 
Leape to these arms, untalkt of and unseene. 

Nobody, I venture to say, who can read this passage with 
any appreciation at all, is troubled because " runaways eyes " 
standing by itself is a term not exactly definable by equivalents. 
Certainly, even if unintelligibly wrenched from the context, it is a 
liquid symbol most congenial to the tearful and tender invocation 
of the husbandless bride. But all Juliet's tears cannot keep the 
commentators off it. They read " rumours eyes " ; rumourous ; 
rumourers ; Cynthia's ; rude day's ; soon day's ; roving ; sun-day's ; 
curious ; envious ; sun away's ; yonder ; runabouts' ; runaway spies ; 
runagate's ; Renomy's (French Renommee= Rumour), and so on, and 
so on, to infinity. 

/But, if we joined them, and said that perhaps the second 
quarto printer of 1599 printed from Shakespeare's autograph 
manuscript, and that every other printer since, from that day to 
this, has simply followed him in making the word " runaway 's,'* 
whereas what Shakespeare wrote was : 

Spread thy close curtaine, love-performing night 
That nooitf day's eyes may winke, and Romeo 
Leape to these arms, untalkt of and unseene ; 

(and that the figure of noonday mournfully weeping at the com- 
ing of sunset was a not un- Shakespearean figure or conception), 
let us timorously attempt to construct, from Shakespeare's script 
alphabet, the latter word : 

Would it not be something like this ? (the characteristic being 
the tendency to an upward stroke at the ends of words) : 



And would such a reading convince a Shakespearean commen- 
tator that there was something to be said in favor of letting well 
enough alone ? 

APPLETON MORGAN. 



1 68 CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. [Nov., 



CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS.* 

EVERY attentive observer or worker in the field of charity in 
our country can hardly fail having noticed certain impediments 
to its free general exercise, resulting from the absence of unity 
of religious belief. In the first place, there is no uniform under- 
* standing as to the proper base for charitable action; some place 
it on religious, others on mere philanthropical, motives. Some, 
through religious sympathy or necessity, confine their dispensa- 
tions to members of their own denomination ; others use theirs 
as a cover for active proselytism ; while others again, repudiating 
any such purpose, burden what they give with something or 
other that is repugnant to the consciences of the recipients. More- 
over, religious aversion, or religious indifferentism, in the givers, 
and the lack of sympathy resulting therefrom, will naturally make 
their effects felt in many ways. 

In view of the above considerations, it should be interesting 
to examine into the work and results of charity in Christian na- 
tions or communities where those who give and those who receive 
are both fully united in one religious belief. Spain in particular 
presents very suitable examples for this study, and one of them 
has been selected as the subject of this article. 

It is not amiss to mention here that with our people there is 
a general indisposition to give that country due credit for the 
good institutions and good customs which it possesses. A recent 
instance occurs in the report of the commission (in this State) to 
investigate the most humane and practical method of carrying 
into effect the sentence of death in capital cases, wherein the fact 
is ignored that Spain is more than half a century in advance of 
the State of New York by adopting exclusively the garrote as 
preferable to hanging, abolished in all Spanish dominions and de- 
pendencies by royal decree of April 24, 1832.! 

There is at present in Spain a long-established charitable 
guild of laymen, called La Real Archicofradia de Caridad y Paz 

* Memoria historica del piadoso institute de la Real At chicof radio, de Caridad y Paz y catalogo de 
los Hermanos asistidos por ella des de 29 de Agosto de 1687 hasta 26 de Octubre de 1867 ; preset! fada 
y leida en junta de 28 de Octubre del proprio aiio, por el Secretario D. Mariano de la Lama y 
Noriega. Madrid, 1868. Manuscript extracts from minutes of the society. 

t Although under the title of "Burning" sufficient information was given in the report 
about that mode of infliction of death penalty, in use in many other European countries at the 
time it was in Spain, it was besides very unnecessarily brought in under the heading of Auto da 
ft. The authors of the report do not seem to have been aware that in London, as late as 1788, 
one Phoebe Harris was burnt alive before Newgate for the offence of coining. 



1889.] 



CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. 



169 



[The Royal Archconfraternity of Charity and Peace), who aim at 
earning the reward for having visited our blessed Redeemer in 
>rison ; which merit, he tells us, will, with other special ones, be 
remembered by him, and be so potent on the day of judgment. 
Their charitable work consists in helping to prepare for the world 
to come criminals under sentence of death, in accompanying 
them to the scaffold, and providing their bodies with Christian 
burial. They also, at the present day, visit for purposes of as- 
sistance and consolation convicts in the prisons of Madrid and ol 
the principal cities and towns throughout the realm. 

A very remarkable feature in the case of this corporation is 
its uninterrupted active corporate existence for at least four and 
half centuries, and the active personal services which its mem- 
bers have continuously rendered during so long a period. 

The origin of the confraternity is connected with a very re- 
markable event. At the close of the fourteenth century a pro- 
fessor of the University of Paris had argued publicly against 
>elief in the doctrine of the Immaculate Conception, and also 
igainst other teachings of the church. His opinions were con- 
lemned as heretical by the Archbishop of Paris and the doctors 
in theology of the university. From their decision he appealed 
Pope Clement VII., whose chair was then in Avignon, but 
fearing an unfavorable result to his appeal, he made his way to 
>pain, hoping to make there converts to his teachings. But as 
a belief in the doctrine of the Immaculate Conception was long 
seated in the minds of that people, and widely spread, from the 
monarch down to the humblest subject, so far from meeting with 
my welcome, he was driven out of the land. 

In the year 1421 John II. and his queen, Dona Maria of 
.ragon, were prompted by the event above narrated to erect in 
bhe Campo del Rey, in Madrid, the first church in that city in 
lonor of the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin. They 
>esides founded and instituted a lay confraternity, to whom the 
:hurch was given in charge, and who had the additional duty 
Laid upon them of assisting, consoling, and giving Christian burial 
all criminals undergoing the death penalty, and to the friend- 
less wretches who happened to die in the streets and public places 
>f Madrid. The church became a favorite one, and much re- 
nted to by the citizens of that capital, and possessed on its main 
iltar the royal gift of a beautiful image of the Blessed Virgin. 

After a lapse of sixty-five years, in 1486, the Bishop of As- 
torga, Don Garcia Alvarez de Toledo, founded a small hospital, 
the first one known in Madrid, and built it close to the church 



170 CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. [Nov., 

above mentioned, and gave it the name of Hospital de la Con- 
ception. He devoted it to female patients, equipped it with every- 
thing needed for twelve beds, and gave it in care of the confra- 
ternity in charge of the church. The hospital did good service, 
particularly in 1580, when all Spain was afflicted with a severe 
catarrhal epidemic; but in 1587, it having been thought advisable 
to merge the eleven hospitals then in existence into a general 
one still existing, this measure involved the suppression of the 
Bishop of Astorga's foundation. Philip II. having signified 
his desire to have for royal purposes the land occupied by the 
church and hospital, the confraternity parted with their realty, 
and with the price obtained for it bought the chapel of Santa 
Cruz (Holy Cross), which they hold at the present day, and con- 
tinued their charitable work in connection with it, substituting 
for the care of the sick, from which they were exempted, the pro- 
viding poor orphan girls with dowries, and feeding prisoners on 
Christmas, Easter Sunday, and Pentecost. Their church was very 
unfortunately visited by two destructive and calamitous fires ; by 
one which occurred in 1620, in the sacristy, many and very valuable 
documents and records, inclusive of the charter of foundation of 
their society, were burned ; and by the other, which happened in 
the night of September 8-9, 1763, everything contained in the church 
was wholly destroyed. In the course of years two other confraterni- 
ties became merged in theirs, both connected with hospitals, one 
called de la Conception, and the other de la Paz* (of Peace); this 
led to the formal adoption, in 1797, of their name as it is at present. 
It is customary in Spain to have criminals condemned to 
death spend the last three days before execution either in the 
regular chapel of the prison, or in a room prepared as a chapel, 
in which an altar for the celebration of the Holy Sacrifice is 
placed, as also other religious emblems suitable for reviving re- 
ligious impressions and arousing sentiments of contrition. This 
practice is called poner en capilla (to put in chapel). As far back 
as 1567 the confraternity had begun to particularly devote itself 
to seeing that that class of sufferers should receive Holy Com- 
munion before death, and for providing and suitably equipping 
capillas in prisons where they were needed. The Holy See 
recognized the value of the services thus rendered by granting 
to the confraternity several privileges, one of which was that, if 

* Some say that the hospital, which was for consumptives, was known as of Holy Job, 
whose patience and resignation were there held up for imitation, and whose image is now on an 
altar in the church of Santa Cruz, the only one in Madrid where he is venerated. But it is also- 
more probable that the name was owing to the marriage of Philip II. with Isabel of Valois, 
which led to a lasting peace between Spain and France. 



i88 9 .] 



CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. 



171 



ic condemned had approached the Sacrament of Penance and 
lesired to receive Holy Communion, the confraternity might have 
it administered at a Mass celebrated for that purpose tivo hours 
efore daivn. The charitable work of providing with Christian 
mrial the bodies of destitute persons found dead, either from' 
lisease or accident, in the streets of Madrid was kept up by the 

lild until 1809, when a change of government and other cir- 

imstances brought about its discontinuance. The expenses of 

lese burials, while the custom lasted, were paid for by alms, ob- 

lined by a member of the society, who for that purpose was 
stationed at the portal of a certain prison, where the corpse lay 

>r a stated time as in a morgue, and where he appealed to the 
:harity of passers-by. 

At the present day the guild administers its charity in this 
rise to criminals under sentence of death. 

As soon as the mayordomo mayor or president of the guild 
las been notified of the death sentence, he goes, in company 
the treasurer, to the prison where the condemned man is 

mfined, informs him of it, draws near to him, greets him cor- 
lially, embraces him, and accompanies him to the capilla. Then,. 

ter attending to his immediate needs, the president arranges the 
luty of attendance to be discharged by the mayordomos or mem- 

>rs of the confraternity, two at a time, and relieved every two 
hours. He hands the alcaide or superintendent of the prison a 
list of the names of the members who are to serve, and provides- 
>r the condemned man's meals. In regard to these, the regula- 
tion is that they are to be plain and good, without any attempt 
it gratifying whims or particular appetites ; they are to be eaten 
>ut of metal utensils only, no glass nor stoneware, nor knives and 

>rks being allowed ; meat or fish is served without bones, and 

le bread is cut up in very small slices. 

The president then hands to the member first on duty the 
ceys of the chests containing the articles belonging to and needed 
>y the corporation in the exercise of its functions, and also a list 
)f the names of the colleagues selected for service. He then 

scertains from the proper authorities the hour, place, and man- 
ler of execution, and when the removal of the corpse will be 

emitted. He then goes to the church of Santa Cruz, directs 
lights to be kept lit on the altar of the Blessed Virgin- in 

tat church and certain others until the society's work is all 
)ver, and also the display at its doors of two framed statements 
)f the spiritual favors granted by the Holy See to persons sen- 
tenced to death, and to charitable persons contributing to their 



1 72 CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. [Nov., 

spiritual or temporal relief. He arranges with the curate of the 
church or his representative about the Mass of supplication to be 
celebrated on the occasion, posts up a notice of the Mass in the 
usual place, and, if time permits, publishes same in a paper 
called Diario de Avisos (daily notices), so that the faithful that 
care to do so may have it in their power to be present at the 
service. A table, upon which are set a crucifix and two lamps, 
is brought out into the small piazza before the church of Santa 
Cruz, and members of the confraternity are present by it for 
the purpose of receiving alms of charitable persons, and remain 
at their post until their associates return from the cemetery after 
having given burial to the body of the executed criminal. 

When the sentenced man takes his meals the president, 
treasurer, and one or more associates attend and serve him in 
the presence of his spiritual advisers, the superintendent of the 
prison, and the alguacil on guard, and recite the usual prayers 
before and after the repast. On the last of the three days spent 
in capilla another Mass of supplication is celebrated in the 
church of Santa Cruz, which is usually numerously attended. 

On the night before execution the condemned man is made 
one of the Brotherhood of Caridad y Paz, so as to entitle him 
to all the spiritual favors and indulgences accorded to its mem- 
bers. This is accomplished in quite a formal manner by the 
president, secretary, and such other members as the former may 
require to be present. The newly-made brother signs in a book 
of record the entry of his admission, is informed that he is at 
liberty to dispose of one-fourth of the aggregate of alms collected 
for his benefit, and that his last wishes will be faithfully carried 
out so far as circumstances and the regulations of the brother- 
hood will permit. The remainder of the alms is applied to cover 
the expenses incurred by the brotherhood in the case, and any 
surplus over and above these is devoted to offerings for Masses 
celebrated by needy priests having very small incomes, who re- 
ceive for each Mass eight reals (forty cents). 

On the morning of execution the president and treasurer 
are on hand, and, after the doomed culprit has received Holy 
Communion, "with that tenderness and charity which its religious 
meaning requires," clothe him with the black tunic which he is 
to wear. For a regicide or a parricide it is yellow, with red 
sleeves and with a yellow cap. He goes to the scaffold in 
a cart, escorted by the entire body of the confraternity, to which 
he now belongs, and preceded by a priest bearing a crucifix and 
wearing a green cape. Two associates carry boxes containing 



1889.] 



CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. 



173 



rater, wine, biscuits, and vinegar for the brother's use in case he 
should become faint on his way to death. In the portal of the 
prison is placed an image of the Blessed Virgin, before which, 
upon leaving, he kneels and implores her blessing and assistance. 
The duty of going at day-break of that day through the streets 
of Madrid, asking alms for the sentenced man, is also incumbent 
>n the confraternity. Two boys go along on the occasion, carry- 
ing locked alms-boxes, and each ringing a bell. There are, how- 
iver, some cases in which this is not done. 

As soon as the execution has taken place, the bells of Santa 
Cruz begin to toll, and the knell continues until the confra- 
;rnity have returned to it from the scaffold, reciting on the way 
prayers for the repose of the soul of the departed brother. Then 
follow other services and a low Mass, which also take place in 
the church of San Jose, because the place for executions lies 
it present in that parish. 

At the time appointed by law the confraternity return to the 
:affold, take down the corpse (which all other persons are for- 
)idden to do), invest it with the Franciscan habit, and carry it to 
te cemetery, where, after saying over it the usual prayers, it' is 
lid to rest in consecrated ground. 

Men in military service condemned by court-martial to be 
lot are cared for by the guild the same as civilians sentenced 
die by the garrote, with this difference only, that the corpse 
taken in charge as soon as the shooting party has filed off 
from the place of execution. 

The society has kept records of the names of all the con- 
lemned to whom they have ministered from the first of August, 
1687, and whom, in their charity, they always designate as 
hermanos (brethren). The mode of execution, the prison, and 
imount of alms collected are stated in each case. Up to the 26th 
)ctober, 1867, they had assisted one thousand and thirty-four, of 
m a few were pardoned shortly after having been placed in 
ipilla, others, in very rare instances, on the very scaffold, or as 
ley were getting ready to be shot. Very many belonged to the 
Spanish army; a very few were women; one of these, in 1687, 
>as a slave. The names of the priest Merino, who in 1852 at- 
tempted the life of the queen of Spain ; of the patriotic General 
Riego, garroted in 1823 ; of a patriotic parish priest, who with many 
French officers and soldiers suftered death during the period of 
French domination all appear in the record. The death penalty 
was, up to 1832, inflicted principally by hanging; by burning, 
once in 1702 and twice in 1704; and from 1692 to 1765, eight 



174 CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. [Nov., 

times by garrote and burning, which latter part of the sentence 
must have applied to the culprit's remains after death. The con- 
fraternity point in triumph to the fact, ascertainable from the 
records, that out of the entire one thousand and thirty-four two 
only died impenitent, and these were not natives of, to use their 
own words, nuestra querida Espana (our beloved Spain). The 
alms collected vary greatly in amount ; for instance, in one case 
they were thirty-three reals ; in another, three hundred and fifty- 
three ; in another, that of Merino, three thousand five hundred 
and sixty-two ; in another, four thousand six hundred and fifty- 
four ; which, assuming the real to be vellon, worth five cents, 
would be respectively equivalent to $i 65, $17 65, $178 10, $232 70. 
But they generally exceed one thousand reals, say $50. As the 
average annual number of sufferers attended to by this society 
of charitable laymen during the period of one hundred and eighty 
years, ending in 1867, is nearly six, it is plain that the aggregate 
of their labors must have been pretty arduous, rendered more so 
by the manner of annual distribution ; for while in the early 
years only one, two, or three offenders have been sentenced per 
year, and none in 1703, during the first half of this century 
they have been numerous in consequence of very many con- 
demnations of military men by court-martial. Thus the total 
was forty-four in 1811, thirty-nine in 1812, forty-two in 1824, 
thirty-seven in 1825, twenty-five in 1837, an ^ sixty-five in 1866;. of 
which last twenty were artillery sergeants, all shot at the same time. 

It appears from extracts from the minutes of the society from 
1878 to 1886 that, through an organization having conferences 
like those of the Society of St. Vincent de Paul, the sphere of 
utility of their labors has become enlarged and more comprehen- 
sive. The Obra de la Carcel (Work in Prisons), to which they 
now devote themselves, takes in imprisoned convicts, to whom they 
try to do spiritual and material good. They have established 
conferences in Pamplona, Santiago, Vich, Vittoria, Tortosa, Tudcla, 
Montanchez, La Bispal, Huesca, Villavieja, Reus, Valli, Tor- 
rente, Manresa, Montilla, Orense, Alcoy, Alicante, Antequera, Sa- 
badell, Tarragona, Tuy, Banolas, Barbastro, Borja, Mataro, Si- 
guenza, and Coruna. 

The work of these conferences consists in visiting the pri- 
soners semi-weekly, weekly, or not less than semi-monthly, ac- 
cording to the needs of the locality; giving the convicts good 
books to read, arranging for the recital with them of the Rosary 
or Salve Regina at stated times, and, what is most important 
of all, getting them to go to confession and Holy Communion 






1889.] CHARITABLE WORK IN SPANISH PRISONS. 175 

and perform their Easter duty, in the reception of which 
last sacrament the members always, and sometimes at Easter 
the prison officials, join. The conferences distribute clothes 
to prisoners that need them ; in many prisons they give elemen- 
tary instruction ; in others, like Manresa, where the prison 
fare is very poor, they eke it out at times with a little better food, 
and not unfrequently they spread out un rancho estraordinario what 
we would call an extra good square meal. In Vich efforts to 
keep the convicts employed at some productive industry have 
been successful, and the case is mentioned of a man who had 
lived away from his wife many years, and whose evil courses had 
at length brought him to prison; after his time was up he took 
up a little door-mat shop and supported his family in peace and 
respectability. In Valli the conferences even attend to having 
the prisoners' hair cut and kept in decent appearance. 

An Englishman, apparently an intelligent Protestant, who had 
seen Pius IX. wash the feet of the pilgrims during Holy Week, 
was heard, at table d'hote, by a lady relative of the present writer, 
to give out as his impression that it was a " na-asty business." His 
appreciation could not further go. It is quite probable that others 
also of like tone of mind have been similarly impressed by the 
sight he had seen. 

Well, very unpleasant personal service is very often just what 
the exercise of heroic charity requires. It is evident from what 
has been related in these pages about the labors of the Real 
ArcJiicof radio, de Caridad y Paz that in the past its members have 
had abundant personal experience of work trying and repugnant 
to human nature, and that those of the present day fare no bet- 
ter. When holy Tobias, in order to give dead Israelites sepulture, 
left his dinner, hid the corpses by day in his house and buried them 
by night, he must have felt his labor to be somewhat repulsive. 
But Holy Scripture tells us how it appeared in the eyes of God. 

It is reliably stated that " over sixty thousand persons are 
to-day prisoners in the various penal institutions throughout the 
United States, and that, in addition to this, there are over eleven 
thousand inmates of reformatories ! " No doubt a large propor- 
tion of these are Catholics. Here, plainly, is a large field for 
Catholic laymen to labor in, doing good in such way as may be 
possible and advisable. 

May the example of devoted charity to prisoners set for so 
long a time by these sons of Spain serve for edification to all, 
and for instruction and suggestion to some of the American Cath- 
olics who may read this account of it ! L. B. BlNSSE. 



176 //p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Nov., 



A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 

CHAPTER IX. 
VAIN PLEADING. 

IMMEDIATELY upon her father's leaving Emilie Tourner sought 
her sleeping apartment for repose, declining le second dejeuner, 
the light midday repast common among the upper classes in the 
West Indies. Madame Tourner had partaken of refreshments, 
and was sitting at the table abstracted when M. Tardiffe's card, 
requesting a private interview, was handed to her. She at once 
received him, and they conferred together long and earnestly. 

The substance of his communication was, that San Domingo 
could no longer be a fit place for whites; that, had emancipation 
been brought about peacefully and by degrees, with the institu- 
tions and methods of civilization preserved, and the negroes 
gradually raised to a fair standard of citizenship, their freedom, 
as he believed, would have been a blessing to all ; but that, 
having risen in merciless rebellion, the ignorant and bloody 
wretches would keep the colony a pandemonium ; that, under the 
most favorable circumstances, prosperity could not return for a 
generation, and that -he had resolved, by the first opportunity, to 
leave for England; that if Henry Pascal were alive, of which he 
had very little expectation, his penniless condition morally freed 
mademoiselle from her engagement; that M. Pascal himself, as 
soon as he had time for sober reflection, could not, as a man of 
honor, do otherwise than insist upon the release ; that his own 
desire and purpose was to offer himself again in marriage to the 
daughter ; that the effort .of his life would be to provide for her 
a happy home in Old England, and that he would welcome her 
parents to share it with her. He thanked Madame Tourner 
very warmly for her friendliness towards him, expressed the hope 
that she would second his final suit, and asked her to give to 
mademoiselle the note he presented, as an answer to her suppli- 
cation to intercede with Dessalines in behalf of Henry Pascal. 

Madame Tourner entered into M. Tardiffe's views' and hopes 
with the utmost eagerness. The latter had sedulously cultivated 
her, and succeeded in thoroughly insinuating himself into her 
favor. Flattered and pleased by his adroit blandishments, she 






1889.] if<)iA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 177 

remained deceived as to his real character, and regarded him as 
being altogether the most eligible offer she knew of in the colony. 
From the first she had been partial to his suit, as the colonel had 
been to that of Henry Pascal. At the same time she entertained 
a just regard for the high character of the latter, and, her 
daughter's decision having been made, acquiesced in it cheerfully. 
Now, however, as the fortunes of both families had been swept 
away at a stroke, and the continuance of the engagement, in her 
view, out of the question, she considered it the plainest wisdom 
and a moral necessity on her daughter's part to accept M. Tar- 
diffe's offer. A lady of fashion and of luxurious tastes, which 
wealth had enabled her freely to gratify, the sheer poverty con- 
fronting her was an unspeakable dread, and she became wrought 
up almost into an ecstasy for the complete and happy deliverance 
so easily within her daughter's power. She was persuaded M. 
Tardiffe had the qualities to make a good husband, and could in 
time win Emilie Tourner's affections; .and the contrast between 
her daughter's portion as the wife of such a man, with a home 
of affluence in sterling Old En^and, her father's ancestral land, 
and where she herself had but recently been educated the con- 
trast between this outlook and a life of despairing poverty in 
distracted San Domingo, with the island in the hands of insurgent 
slaves, and not an influence at work or in prospect under which 
the colonel could expect to lift himself up, was so overwhelmingly 
for the former view that she could not be without hopes that 
the offer would commend itself to her daughter's solid judgment. 
Nevertheless, she thought with alarm of opening the subject 
to her, a request M. Tardiffe had been particular in pressing. 
She well knew how closely the. affections of Emilie Tourner's 
strong nature were knit to Henry Pascal; the excitements and 
terrors, too, of the past few days were visibly affecting her; and, 
deeply loving her daughter, she dreaded to add aught to the 
strain. But she regarded it as a life-and-death crisis. It was a 
tal moment, not to be recalled, for attempting the deliverance 
)f her daughter and family from unutterable wretchedness, and 
Madame Tourner summoned her resources to the delicate and 
fateful task. As four o'clock drew on, Emilie Tourner rose from 
the ottoman, whereon she had vainly wooed sleep, and made 
ready to meet M. Tardiffe. Her expectations for a favorable 
response had been heightened by the news her father brought, 
that Dessalines was yet in camp. She presently joined her 
mother, and, scanning the quay, expressed the hope that M. 
Tardiffe would justify his reputation for punctuality. 

VOL. L.--I2 



i ?8 77^7 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Nov., 

" I trust you are feeling better, Emilie," said Madame Tourner, 
greeting her daughter in a cheery way. 

" No, maman, I am not better, and my father's apprehensions 
may be realized. I shall be glad, indeed," shading her eyes with 
her hands as she spoke, as though the light was painful, " when 
the interview with Monsieur Tardiffe is over." 

" I hear," remarked Madame Tourner, hesitating from a sense 
of dread to open the subject her mind was full of, " that Captain 
Winslow intends sailing for England as soon as the safety of the 
Cape is assured and the embargo raised." 

" For England ! " musingly replied her daughter " England 
is a favored land." 

"It is indeed, Emilie.". 

"Strange that this people should be so quiet and prosperous, 
while a few miles over the channel another people are writhing 
in political insanity!" 

" Would to God, my child, we were all there ! " 

" I have passed some happy days in England," remarked 
Emilie Tourner, unheeding her mother and speaking in the same 
musing way, as her eyes pensively looked out over the north- 
ward waters, " days so expectant and hopeful. Ever since my 
return the clouds have been darkening, darkening over us." 

" I hear, too, Emilie, that Monsieur Tardiffe is to leave for 
England by the first opportunity; perhaps on the Sappho." 

" I'm not surprised," answered the daughter. " My surprise 
is that, having transferred his wealth thither when he saw this 
storm brewing, he should have remained till it burst." 

"You know the cause, Emilie. Who has held him in San 
Domingo ? " 

" I have never given him encouragement, maman," she quickly 
answered. 

" Alas ! my child, 'tis but too true. As affairs have gone, it 
would have been far, far better had you listened to Monsieur 
Tardiffe's suit." 

" But the matter is decided, maman, and why should you 
recall the issue now? I hope," she added, "he will soon be 
here," as she again scanned the quay and drew her hand across 
her forehead. 

Madame Tourner's moment had come. 

" Emilie," she said, speaking slowly and with a sudden acces- 
sion of mingled tenderness and solemnity, " I have somewhat to 
say to you, and I beseech you, as though they were a mother's 
dying words, to hear me patiently." 



1889.] 1 79 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 179 

Surprised at the strength and abruptness of the appeal, her 
daughter answered, as she drew back in the attitude of amaze- 
ment: 

" Maman, what can you mean ? Have I been disposed to be 
wanting in proper respect for your opinions and wishes ? " 

"When I look, my child, upon your stricken face," her eyes 
filling at her words, " I dread to speak ; but I must speak. 
Will you consider what I have to say ? " 

" Maman, what do you mean ? " she replied, more and more 
astonished at her mother's language and manner. " What I must 
know let me know at once, and I promise the filial heed you 
have ever received." 

" Emilie, my word is this, and bear with me in saying it : 
If Monsieur Tardiffe seeks your hand once more, let me implore 
you to ponder the opportunity. " 

A solicitation more unexpected, and, under all the circum- 
stances, more trying, to Emilie Tourner could scarcely be conceived. 
With disaster and distress multiplied around her, and her tender- 
est anxieties profoundly roused at the desperate straits of Henry 
Pascal, it was an appeal, at the very moment she was endeavoring 
to rescue her lover, to turn her back upon him for his discarded 
rival. She perceived, too, in the suggested breach of faith a moral 
obliquity, and altogether her mother's words smote her intensely. 
Hardly believing her ears, she exclaimed with suppressed indig- 
ition : 

" And this from you to me, maman ! Is it possible you can 
mnsel so heartless an abandonment of Monsieur Pascal at the 
lour, too, of his utmost need, and when my effort for him 
>rings from the relation I bear to him ? " 

" My heart bleeds for you, my daughter," tenderly answered 
[adame Tourner. " Alas ! that they who love must often weep, 
hit hear me through, and decide. Have you not promised filial 
iced ? " 

" I have," she replied ; " but, mon Dieu ! why reopen here this 
:losed issue ? " 

" I will tell you, Emilie. Emilie, I love Monsieur Pascal, I 
ipplaud your effort for him, yet I see not how the engagement 
in continue." 
" On what grounds ? " 

" Because the fortunes of the families have changed, Emilie. 
tonsieur Pascal is penniless, and what dowry could you bring 
him?" 

" If the worst should continue here, he still has expectations/' 



i8o 7797 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Nov., 

replied Emilie Tourner, with evident effort and reluctance at speak- 
ing, yet unavoidably drawn into the conversation. 

"You refer to the Harrison project in Jamaica?" 

"Yes." 

" But you are aware, Emilie, of the common talk, that this 
rising of the slaves must rouse those in Jamaica, and that the 
hope of England's interfering in our affairs is founded upon her 
fears in this direction." 

She looked towards her daughter for an answer, yet received 
none. 

" Monsieur Pascal's expectations, Emilie, are very doubt- 
ful ; were they far more assured, mere expectations are not the 
proper preparation for matrimony ; even were they realized, Emilie, 
Monsieur Pascal's income would be meagre and insufficient, with 
an infirm father, too, now dependent upon him." 

Emilie Tourner sat silent, with eyes downcast. Fever was in 
her veins, and grief swelling in her heart. 

" Emilie," her mother continued, " had the fortunes of the 
families a year since been what they are to-day, do you think 
Monsieur Pascal, whatever his affection for you, would have 
sought you in marriage ? " 

Her daughter still sat silent. 

" For a stronger reason, Emilie, are you morally freed from 
the engagement, because both of you have suddenly sunk from 
affluence to poverty, with all the trainings of affluence remaining ; 
and Monsieur Pascal, as soon as he can reflect, will, I feel sure, 
insist upon the release." 

An answer came from poor Emilie in a flood of hot tears. 

Sorrow is king of this world, thought Madame Tourner, as 
her eyes tenderly dwelt upon her stricken daughter. Her tears 
she deemed it best not to attempt to interrupt. She herself, 
though hoping the worst now over, was nevertheless greatly 
moved. The pang she felt compelled to inflict upon her daughter 
touched her motherly heart to the core, and, Emilie Tourner's 
paroxysm of tears having passed, she said to her, in a voice low 
and full of sweet sympathy : 

" It distresses me, Emilie, very deeply indeed to have to say 
these things ; but a mother's love moves me, and if I have 
chosen this hour to speak, it is because an unparalleled and ap- 
palling crisis is upon us." 

" Maman," answered her daughter, to whom tears had brought 
temporary relief, and who for the moment felt less disinclined for 
a part in conversation, " I understand you, and believe you speak 



1 88Q.] 



A TALE OF SAA? DOMINGO. 



181 



for what you think is best. But even should reverse of fortune 
result in cancelling the engagement " (her eyes filling again), " it 
is enough that my hand cannot be given where my heart is 
withheld." 

" Emilie," rejoined her mother in a tone of earnest yet ten- 
der expostulation, " it is a school-girl's notion that matrimony 
must needs be the sequence of a passion." 

" Matrimony, maman, is a sacrament, and a holy estate, and, 
should I wed Monsieur Tardiffe, I would be guilty before God." 

" No, Emilie, no ; what justifies marriage, on sentiment's side, 
are the qualities that command friendship." 

" And are you yet to learn, maman, that Monsieur Tardiffe, 
in my own estimation at least, is lacking in such qualities ? " 

' His wooing was rejected, Emilie, as I had supposed, not 
from positive dislike, but because your preference had been won 
in another direction." 

" I forbear," rejoined Emilie Tourner, " to speak here of his 
character as I have read it, for he shows a disposition to aid in 
Monsieur Pascal's rescue, and so far I own his conduct noble, 
and am deeply, deeply grateful." 

' Emilie," said her mother with increasing earnestness, and 
encouraged by a willingness on her daughter's part to bear the 
mversation, " our straits are desperate ; one word from you can 
save us." 

" I know our forlorn condition, maman ; no word from you 
in deepen my sense of it, and to any honorable sacrifice I 
rould give myself oh! how joyfully." 

" The hour is supreme, Emilie ; out of it issues for life will 
come. Reflect before finally answering Monsieur Tardiffe. I beg 
vou on my knees" exclaimed Madame Tourner, with passionate 
energy, rising and apparently about to assume the humiliating 
posture. 

"Never! You must not! Will you forget, maman, a parent's 
dignity ?" exclaimed Emilie Tourner, rising herself and extending 
her hand deprecatingly. 

" I forget everything, my child, save the pressure of this crisis. 
Will you weigh your answer, Emilie ? " she added, resuming her 
seat and bending upon her daughter an intense look. 

" You have my word to give you filial heed. But, maman, 
be brief, if *you have aught else to say. I feel I hardly- know 
how," passing her hand across her brow, for the momentary bet- 
terment was vanishing before the rising fever. " I can scarce sit 
up, and this light seems burning into my eyeballs." 



1 82 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Nov., 

" Bear with me, my daughter, one moment more. Emilie, 
Monsieur Tardiffe is a gentleman, amiable and in every way ac- 
complished, a man of experience and ripened judgment, of ample 
fortune, and with no faults that a good wife would not be able 
to control." 

She paused, expecting a reply, but Emilie Tourner sat mute, 
with her head bowed and the left hand shading her eyes. 

" A man of such a character, Emilie, devoted to your happi- 
ness, should command the friendship that justifies marriage. II 
you would listen to him he would take us all to England to 
England, where you have lived some happy years, and for which, 
since these awful days have darkened over us, I have often heard 
you sigh." 

She glanced at her daughter, but no response came from the 
bowed form. 

" The alternative, Emilie, is wretchedness for you and for us. 
We are face to face, my daughter, with absolute, hopeless pov- 
erty, and this, to those who have known affluence, means a living 
death. Even should our slaves be recovered a hope I see no 
expectation of ever being realized how utterly despairing, Emilie, 
would the prospect be, with the estate in ashes, our friends as 
stripped as ourselves, and the colony all torn and at the mercy 
of Jacobin legislation ! Your father, Emilie, is unskilled in any 
calling. Were it otherwise, where would positions offer in dis- 
tracted San Domingo ? And could a position be obtained, the 
pay would be that of a menial and cover vulgar wants. His 
mind is now absorbed in other directions the defence of the 
Cape excites and engrosses him ; but he must soon wake up to 
his personal condition, and cruel, cruel days, Emilie, are at hand 
days of weary and fruitless strugglings with poverty, and of 
bitter memories, and humiliation for his family. Oh ! my daugh- 
ter, save yourself and us from lifelong woe ! " 

Her mother again paused ; and lifting her head, and display- 
ing a countenance on which grief and illness were tracing unmis- 
takable lines, Emilie Tourner replied : 

" Maman, I shall weigh the answer, as you have asked me to 
do ; but I must retire. Call me when Monsieur Tardiffe comes." 

" He has been here already, Emilie," said Madame Tourner. 

" Been here already ! " she cried out in blank astonishment. 
" Why did you not call me ? " 

" It was unnecessary, my daughter." 

" He refuses, then," she said. 

" No, Emilie, he has arranged to go early to-morrow morn- 



889.] ifpiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 183 



ing; but he goes conditionally, and his valet is to be here at six 
for your answer. This is his note." 
She seized it and read : 

" MADEMOISELLE : San Domingo can no longer be an eligible 
abode for whites, and by the next ship I bid it adieu for Eng- 
land. On the eve of departure let me solicit again the hand I 
have sought so long, and place at your feet what fortune I pos- 
sess, and the love that repulse has not diminished. Let me ask 
you and your parents to share with me a happy home in a 
noble land, far away from this frightful island. 

" Your mother is empowered to explain matters more fully ; 
and should this note receive your approval, I shall hasten to 
comply with your request, and imperil my life in the attempt to 
rescue M. Pascal. 

" I am, mademoiselle, with profound respect, 

" Louis TARDIFFE." 

In her disturbed state of mind the closing sentence, for an 
instant, was unintelligible. She re-read the note, and its import 
delivered a blow not to be withstood. The sudden extinguish- 
ment of all hope for Henry Pascal, save at the price of wedding 
a rejected suitor, from whose character she shrank, and whose 
heartlessness now took such an advantage of her necessity to- 
gether with her mother's distressful appeal was too much for an 
already overburdened spirit, and Emilie Tourner sank fainting to 
the floor. 

Madame Tourner's experience in the plantation hospital taught 
her the proper course at this crisis. Quickly adjusting her daugh- 
ter's form to a horizontal position, she applied cold water plenti- 
fully to the face. Under these influences Emilie Tourner rapidly 
revived, and, her mother having hurriedly called in help, they 
assisted the patient to her apartment, where, exchanging the dress 
for a wrapper, Emilie Tourner sought her bed, desiring to be left 
entirely to herself and protected against light and noise. Madame 
Tourner retired to the sitting apartment, and, collecting her 
thoughts, received comfort at this dreaded interview's being over. 
On the whole it was much more satisfactory than she had had 
reasons for expecting, and she was not without some decided 
hopes for a successful issue. She felt convinced her daughter's 
practical mind must see that the engagement to Henry Pascal 
was at an end, and several considerations encouraged the impres- 
sion that she would, upon reflection, think favorably of M. Tar- 



1 84 1791 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Nov., 

diffe's offer brilliant under ordinary circumstances, and now 
plainly providential. Misinterpreting the source of Emilie Tour- 
ner's comparative passiveness (for it was illness, not a tendency 
to acquiesce), she considered it hopeful that her daughter did not 
resist the appeal more decidedly. Her wish, too, just expressed, 
to be left entirely to herself, was taken to signify reflection on 
what had been said to her, and reflection, under all the circum- 
stances, Madame Tourner regarded as a prelude to the hoped-for 
decision. The advantageousness of the proposal in every way, 
and the moral necessity of closing with it, could not but com- 
mend itself, she thought, to her daughter's practical intelligence ; 
and even should she regard its acceptance as a pure offering to 
her parents' welfare, her mother knew there was a spirit and a 
piety equal to the sacrifice, for Emilie Tourner was heroic of 
soul, and a daughter, too, in whom filial affection and dutifulness 
were ornaments of grace to the head and cliains of gold about 
the neck. These favoring circumstances being dwelt upon by 
Madame Tourner, and colored and exaggerated by her intense 
desires, she was wrought up to think that what her daughter 
ought to do she would do, and awaited the arrival of M. Tardiffe's 
valet with some sanguine anticipations. From time to time she 
softly approached the entrance to the apartment of her daughter, 
whom she found apparently resting in quiet, and would not disturb. 

The exterior quiet, however, was fallacious. Emilie Tourner 
was on the verge of acute illness. The fever was fast passing- into 
delirium, and her outward repose was in vivid contrast with the 
agitation of the mind, whose chambers were thronged with dread- 
ful visions drawn from the horrors of the past few days. At six 
the valet arrived punctually, and Madame Tourner entered her 
daughter's apartment as the latter, in a state of semi-conscious- 
ness, was rousing herself from one of these frightful visions, in 
which the monster Dessalines orders Henry Pascal to execution. 
Seeing her daughter awake, she said : 

" Emilie, Monsieur Tardiffe's valet has come ; are you ready 
to give an answer ? " 

"Oh ! let him save Monsieur Pascal," she cried in tones of deep- 
est pathos, starting up and resting on the elbow, and speaking with 
a wild, terrorized look, which, in the shaded room, was lost upon 
Madame Tourner. 

" On the conditions, Emilie, he has asked?" 

"Yes, yes!" 

"Shall I write him in your name?" 

"Yes; he must save him." 



1889,] ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 185 



" O Henry ! " she cried, with an outbreak of tears, and for a 
moment becoming herself, " what horrors have I dreamed ! The 
light," she almost screamed, looking towards the entrance to her 
apartment, the curtain of which Madame Tourner had partly 
drawn, " is blinding me oh ! my head is bursting ! let me be 
alone " and she clasped her hands to her forehead and sank back 
upon the couch. 

In the agony of a great grief even a mother is an intruder, and 
Madame Tourner immediately withdrew. Anxiety in regard to 
the decision now gave place to sympathy for the sufferer. She 
knew through what pangs the decision had been reached, and her 
heart was wrung for her daughter. Still, there was a vast sense 
of relief that it was all over, and over so happily. It would all 
be for the best, she knew, and her daughter's words rung in her 
ears as angels' voices. The prospect cleared up beautifully. A 
dark, devouring cloud rolled off from before her, and a flood of 
silvery sunshine began pouring in. She at once addressed herself 
to the note to M. Tardiffe, and wrote as follows : 

" DEAR MONSIEUR TARDIFFE : I write in haste and in Emilie's 
name. She accepts the conditions ; and I trust and believe, should 
you find M. Pascal alive, that you will be able to rescue him. 
Emilie, as you may suppose, is in great distress. But the storm 
will soon be over, and all, I am sure, will be bright and for the 
best. 

" Be on your guard against the claws of Dessalines. He is a 
veritable tiger, and I shall be in dread till your return. 

" I remain, monsieur, most sincerely, 

" MARIE TOURNER." 

Madame Tourner handed the note to the valet, and saw him 
off, and had returned to her quarters but a few moments when, 
hearing her daughter's voice, and hastening to her side, she was 
astounded and very greatly alarmed to find her in a state of de- 
lirium, in which the names of Henry Pascal, Dessalines, and M. 
Tardiffe were continually and piteously recurring. The ship's sur- 
geon was immediately summoned. After a brief diagnosis he pro- 
nounced it a case of acute and critical cerebritis, superinduced by 
intense mental strain. Help was called in, and the patient soon 
disrobed and the prescribed remedies administered, when Madame 
Tourner withdrew a moment to despatch a second note to M. 
Tardiffe. As ardently as she desired the match with the ex-pro- 
prietor, yet she was a woman of honor and a true mother, and 



1 86 A RONDEAU OF EVENTIDE. [Nov., 

would not, for an instant, allow M. Tardifife to act under mistaken 
impressions. She accordingly wrote to him that her daughter had 
been suddenly stricken with brain fever, and that her supposed 
assent to the "conditions" was given, as she now feared, in a mo- 
ment of delirium and irresponsibility. 

On applying to Captain Winslow for the service of a messen- 
ger, she found that the hour for allowing permits ashore had 
passed. The letter was delayed, therefore, until the following 
morning, and despatched then at the earliest practicable moment. 
It failed, however, of its object; for the messenger reported on 
his return that M. Tardifife had left for the country an hour pre- 
vious to his arrival. 

E. W. GlLLlAM, M.D. 

[TO BE CONTINUED.] 



A RONDEAU OF EVENTIDE. 

AT Eventide, when we are prest 
By shadows, and seek any rest 

That twilight brings at waning day, 

Ah ! well with us if we can say 
For aye we sought and found the best. 

God's hand all nature has caressed, 
Till beauty is his love confessed, 

Till bud and bloom his love display 
Through Eventide. 

Why should we not pursue our quest 
For such good things as bear the test 

The things worth loving bear alway ? 

"Full life, full life," we sometimes pray, 
Full life to higher life addressed, 
Till Eventide ! 

MEREDITH NICHOLSON*. 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 187 

A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 

III. 

To feel the need of religion is a first and necessary step towards 
acquiring it. When the multitude of conscientious and cultivated 
men have begun to cherish that feeling in their hearts, when ex- 
perience has convinced them, as it will, that neither the master- 
pieces of Athenian literature, nor the art of mediaeval Italy di- 
vorced from its faith, nor the Renaissance, nor the laboratories of 
Berlin and Paris, can give them what they seek an assured hope 
beyond the tomb and peace at the centre of their being they 
will be prepared to undertake another kind of search and, 'per- 
haps, to return upon paths they had forsaken, to Christianity with 
its glad tidings and its universal creed. It is much, it is 
more than we can duly estimate, that Religion is coming once 
again to be recognized as a faculty in the constitution of man, as 
a power outside him in Nature, as an aspiration that cannot be 
thwarted without disaster, and, in brief, as the crown of human 
existence. 

The age of Voltaire, which discarded all but the coldest 
Rationalism as an unsubstantial dream, is passing away. The con- 
ception, at once so disheartening but in the eyes of a great nym- 
ber so plausible, that the world is merely a series of mechanical 
movements regulated by the formulas of physical science, shows 
signs of yielding to a larger, deeper thought. A new philosophy, 
call it for the present Monism or Idealism, has come upon the 
scene, and, without suffering man to linger in La Mettrie's hideous 
prison, flings open all doors and strikes asunder the walls that 
closed him in. It bids him, by the voice of a thousand singers, 
look out upon Nature indeed, blooming around him in the sun- 
shine, eternally young and fair, and breathing such a spirit of 
poetry that he cannot wonder if their strains 



" modulate with murmurs of the air, 
And motions of the forests and the sea, 
And voice of living beings, and woven hymns 
Of night and day, and the deep heart of man." 

In this keen feeling of life and its mysteriousness, in its en- 
thusiasm and contemplative worship of the ideal in Nature, which 



1 88 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Nov., 

therein appears as the. " mother of an unfathomable world," sacred 
and in some way responsive to invocation, lies the charm of 
Pantheism. It seems to be ever in the presence of the Great 
Unknown, watching its shadow and the darkness of its steps 
through worlds innumerable. It has a spiritual sense, and by 
means of it is familiar with the " open secret," to the thought of 
which corresponds a mood of ecstatic silence, of wonder which 
cannot be expressed. Have I no warrant, then, for discerning 
some at least of the elements of religion in these things ? And 
may I not view them, as Cardinal Newman exquisitely suggests 
in treating of a parallel subject, on the " ascending course of in- 
quiry and of faith"? Why, my argument runs, should not a sin- 
cere Pantheist, who has escaped from the prison of abstract forms 
and dead matter, rise steadily upward on that ascending scale, 
learning what the phenomena of life betoken and from them 
gathering analogies whereby to apprehend, though not indeed to 
comprehend, the infinite self-conscious Spirit who is their cause but 
not their substance ? Why should he not from the vague Impersonal 
go on, aided by his enthusiasm for Art, for the Beautiful in Nature, 
even as Spinoza sometimes appears to have done, to the thought 
of a categorical and perfect Intelligence (to use the expression of 
Novalis) self-contained, and of so high a quality that all other 
knowledge, compared with it, is ignorance ? But in thus ascend- 
ing he would have discovered in man the capacity of a Beatific 
Vision, and in God its object, boundless in all His attributes. 
Nature, not so much worshipped as lovingly interrogated, will 
then confess itself to be a means, not an end, a mythology 
leading on to Religion, or a sacramental system of which the in- 
ward significance is the Divine Nature itself communicating its 
grace to mankind. Everything, again Novalis remarks, how indi- 
vidual and chance-seeming soever, will then be capable of realiz- 
ing God for us, will be an instrument in the universal organism, 
in the Cosmos visible and invisible, which is upheld and informed 
by the Holy Spirit. This wide-reaching doctrine takes us, on 
the one hand, very near to the conception, indispensable to our 
daily life, of an overruling Providence ; on the other, it prophesies 
of the Incarnation. 

Pantheism I look upon as the perversion of a deep instinct to 
which these various teachings of the Christian creed are the 
answer. The indefinable aspirations that lend to modern poetry 
so strange an air, showing themselves now in an overwrought 
passion of joy and now in brooding sadness always, perhaps, 
mingled with a grain of fantasy have to my thought the pre- 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 189 

sage in them of something beyond what is seen, like the sweet- 
smelling branches and birds of a plumage hitherto unknown that, 
cast upon the shores of Europe by western gales, awakened in 
Columbus a suspicion of lands from which they were brought 
across the ocean. This, too, I find in the pregnant writings of 
the author whom I have already quoted. " There are many flow- 
ers in this world," he says, " of unearthly origin, which will not 
flourish in our climate, and which are peculiarly heralds and loud- 
voiced harbingers of a better existence. Such, above all, are religion 
and love." Let us complete the suggestion and the argument by 
turning to another profoundly philosophical thinker, Pascal. " Con- 
sider," he bids us in the well-known summary of his argument, 
" consider the foundation of the Christian religion. Here is a 
religion contrary to our nature, which establishes itself in men's 
minds with so much gentleness, as to use no outward force ; 
with so much energy, that no torture could silence its martyrs 
and confessors. Consider the holiness, devoutness, humility of its 
true disciples ; its sacred books, their superhuman grandeur, their 
admirable simplicity. Consider the character of its Founder; 
His associates and followers, unlettered men, yet possessed of 
wisdom enough to confound the ablest philosopher; the astonish- 
ing succession of prophets that heralded His coming; the con- 
dition at this day of the Jewish people, who rejected Him and 
His religion ; its perpetuity and its holiness ; the light which its 
doctrines shed upon the contradictions of our nature ; let any 
man judge, when he has taken these things into account, if it 
be possible to doubt whether it is the only true one." 

So far I had reached in my last article. The Life of Christ, 
I said, is a disclosure, even to the eyes of science, of moral per- 
fections which must have their ground in the nature of things, 
like all else that we experience. " God was in Christ, reconciling 
the world to Himself," is the sum of the Gospels. But it is 
likewise authentic history recorded in the world's annals. From 
Jesus of Nazareth we can trace a spiritual transformation onward 
which, beginning with the individual, little by little extended its 

t influence till it fashioned anew the Roman Empire, and for more 
than a thousand years impressed its seal upon every form of 
civilized life ; so that, as the ambassadors of Pyrrhus on seeing 
Rome had described it as the temple and throne of all the gods, 
in like manner a pilgrim travelling from Asia to the remotest 
bounds of the West, might in his own dialect have exclaimed 
that Europe had become the kingdom of God and of His Christ. 
All other powers had vanished before the Cross. Not only was 






190 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Nov., 

it borne at the head of armies and woven into the diadem of 
kings, but a far more significant token of its greatness at the 
corner of every street and the entering in of every village it was 
raised on high, that all things might be seen to acknowledge the 
sovereignty of Him who died upon it. The Galilean had con- 
quered ; the Religion of Sorrow, not forgetting its austerity, was 
seated on the thrones of the world. An ideal communion of 
mankind had been established by the authority of Jesus, and on 
the pattern of His Life. The Incarnation was to be perpetuated 
in His mystical body, the Church, for so tradition understood 
Him to have laid it down to His disciples: "Lo, I am with you 
all days." If we consult history, and not imagination or preju- 
dice, we shall perceive from the middle, at least, of the second 
century to go back no further the lines growing distinct on 
which the mediaeval Theocracy was founded, as well as the great, 
all-embracing Ritual, inwardly sustained by His Presence, of 
which all the details were signs or instruments to renew in the 
hearts of His people the Birth, the Passion, and the Teaching of 
the Only-begotten Son. This was that spiritual kingdom which 
ruled from Constantine to Napoleon, and in which the Idea of 
Jesus itself became incarnate. 

Not for a moment do I forget the tragic shadows cast upon 
mediaeval history, whether by the ignorance, the ferocity, or the 
superstition which were ingrained in races that could not lift 
themselves to the Christian height. Nevertheless, it was an age 
of divine faith ; and its ideals, so far as they were derived from 
the Gospel, can at no time be antiquated. When the sixteenth 
century, in its reforming zeal, substituted the letter of an infalli- 
ble Book for the living Spirit of Jesus, and dissolved the Chris- 
tian consciousness, organized hitherto as a Church, into the private 
judgment of the individual, it took a backward step, and, while 
it imagined that it was restoring Israel, did in its consequences 
make room for anarchic heathendom, where every man's hand 
is raised against his brother's. The reliance on single texts, torn 
from their place and made shibboleths of a language to which 
they did not belong, has proved fatal to the religion of Protes- 
tants, and has degraded the humane conception of society in which 
the first Christians believed. " Texts " have been urged in de- 
fence of every extravagance and of a cruelty which the heathen 
never practised on so large a scale. Polygamy, free-love, perse- 
cution, slavery itself, have been defended by an appeal to the 
Sacred Volume. A terrible sermon might be preached and 
against how many so-called churches ? on that most pregnant 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 191 

but most neglected of single texts, "The letter killeth." Truly 
it killed, in America no less than in Europe, century after cen- 
tury killed soul and body together, and is still in ten thousand 
hearts doing its deadly work. Of the letter, as of the law, we 
may declare with St. Paul that it is "holy and just and good." 
But a dead letter, misinterpreted, can be no rule of conduct for 
mankind. Idolatry, be its object Bible or Church, is always 
idolatry ; and to make that which was ordained as a means of 
communion with God into a wall shutting out the sight of Him, 
is the essence of all "creature-worship" and "will- worship." 
Rightly therefore did Lessing tax his Protestant brethren with 
making an idol of the letter. He bade them think that Christ 
was greater than the Bible, and was its end and true significance. 
" Let that mind be in you which was in Christ Jesus." There is 
no going beyond or behind those words ; they are the believer's 
Great Charter, securing his freedom and tracing the path of his 
development. The relation of each man and woman in the Church 
to their Redeemer is personal, daily, intimate ; and while the 
creed which we chant assures our community of thought, the liv- 
ing, practical application of it has ever depended, under God's 
Providence, on the faithfulness with which individuals enter into 
its spirit. The prophetic office among Christians is not confined 
to the sacerdotal order, but may be given to one or other, as 
God wills. Let us consider, for instance, how it was fulfilled by 
St. Catherine of Siena, or St. Teresa, by Savonarola, Dante, or 
Pascal, each of them lights to enlighten their own and after ages, 
while the appointed guardians of the faith were often careless and 
perfunctory, doing what they must as ill as it could be done. 
The formal teaching was safe, but the Idea which formal teach- 
ing can never adequately represent, where was that living except 
in the humble saints who looked upon it as their Exemplar, and 
who enabled the multitude to see what it truly was even when 
these did not follow it ? 

Thus by the positive witness of history we may confront the 
real Christianity with its counterfeit. That Catholic Church, pos- 
sessing as it did the secret of drawing millions into closest unity, 
combined with it in a wonderful degree the power of fostering, I 
had almost said of creating, individual types of character. The 
Gospel story painted in its frescoes, sculptured in its soaring archi- 
tecture, acted over again in its most moving ritual, preached by the 
wayside, wrought by meditation and penance into the very flesh 
and spirit of its ascetic men, this it was that raised up the 
Columbas, and the Winfreds, the Bernards, Hildebrands, Norberts, 
TTt-nno.'q O f Assisi and Dominic; the hemir mediaeval kings, Louis, 



192 A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Nov., 

Stephen, Ferdinand, and, in another class, Roger Bacon the 
student of science, Columbus the explorer, Copernicus the new 
geographer of the universe. With such names the calendar of 
the Roman Church abounds, yet some of the grandest are wanting 
there and may well some day be added, from Joan of Arc to Father 
Damien, unconscious heroes of whom the highest civilization 
would be proud. They did marvels and fled from the praise of 
them ; they had no taint of Pantheism, yet they saw God in all 
things. Their lives were full of beauty, sweetness, tenderness, 
while they were marked as strongly with the greatness of daring 
action. If Christ ever lived again, it was in such souls as these. 
Faith, purity^ silence, patient welcoming of sorrow, renunciation of 
things perishable, hope in the Unseen to these issues were their 
spirits touched, and by a strength confessedly not their own. 
For if Christ was multiplied in them, to Him they gave the glory. 
Now the Catholic Church, descended from those ages and 
plainly inheriting their tradition, nay, their life, professes to be 
supernatural in her innermost essence. If the reason of her long 
continuance, her persistent vitality, be demanded, she points to 
the promise of Christ in Scripture and to His presence, within her 
by his Spirit, on her altars by His Eternal Sacrament of Love. 
To no such vivifying presence can the Reformed sectaries lead us ; 
all they took away, or could take 'away from the sanctuary which 
they abandoned, was the historical truth that there had been a 
Christ. Fuit Christus. From the New Testament they turned as 
by instinct to the Old, for a plan of life. They renounced the 
Beatitudes and with them the essentially Christian conception of 
Poverty, Chastity, and Obedience. They reduced St. Paul to a 
metaphysician of the gloomiest type ; or they became Christians 
of the school of Epictetus and Seneca. The indwelling life, the 
supreme authority of Jesus in a human brotherhood to which all 
must belong, they utterly denied by their doctrine of predestina- 
tion, and put to scorn in their social and political economy, of 
which the fundamental maxim was borrowed from Cain, " Am I 
my brother's keeper ? " Personal religion came to mean selfish 
isolation, as success in life meant trampling on the weak and de- 
fenceless according to the law of supply and demand. "The re- 
solution of religion into emotion, the negation of the value of 
work, the contemplation of the scheme of salvation, with a cer- 
tain quantity of devotional reading" such is Mr. Froude's ac- 
count of Evangelicalism, and we all know that Evangelicals are 
Protestant of the Protestant By way of counterpoise, we may 
dwell upon the intense money-making, slave-driving Secularism 
which rules non-Catholic society with an iron hand, scoffs at 



1889.] A STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. 193 

salvation and its schemes, and talks of God and Satan as " con- 
tingent futures " of no marketable value. Is not Christ dead to 
these? "Dead?" echoes Heine with one of his cynical laughs; 
" yes, and the Christian religion is in course of liquidation ! " If 
only the churches of the sixteenth century were taken into ac- 
count, beyond all doubt the sarcasm would be justified and the 
bankruptcy of faith at hand. 

But that which was from the beginning, " the word of life," 
which is bound up neither with a dead Book nor with empty 
abstract " schemes " of " salvation," proves its vitality in our day 
by its effects, as it did before the Reformation was heard of. The 
past never returns ; Luther and Calvin have gone their way, leaving 
no heir but Socinus, who in his descendants is visibly yielding to 
Spinoza, to Giordano Bruno, to the schools of Rationalism or of 
Pantheism. But while the past is in its grave, the eternal does 
not change. The Idea which was made visible in Jesus Christ 
manifests as great a power over the individual's thought and man- 
ner of living as ever it did. The society which it created is yet 
sustained by it. When we view Christianity in the Catholic 
Church we see that it has retracted nothing, doubted nothing, 
altered none of its dogmas, nor abated one jot of its pretensions. 
In conflict with the rulers of this world's darkness it has dared 
and suffered greatly ; but its unfailing persistence would be shown 
to-morrow, were the flood to come and sweep away those mili- 
tary governments which outwardly are strong but within have no 
principle to bear them up. To overthrow historical Christianity, 
resting on the rock of St. Peter, is a far more hopeless enterprise 
than to turn back Europe to its primitive barbarism ; for it would 
be needful to conquer not a system or a tradition of men but, as 
Catholics believe (and they have the argument of eighteen hun- 
dred years to confirm them in their belief) the Son of God .Him- 
self dwelling among men. 

When I consider, on the one hand, that renewed devotion to 
the Person of Christ which is the most cheering sign of the times, 
and on the other, that hatred of the idea of Personality charac- 
teristic at once of Monism, of an over-driven physical science, and 
of the multitude of political and social theories now in the ascen- 
dant, I seem to perceive the lines of future cleavage in society 
coming surely to the light. Impersonal Nature or the living God 
such are the alternatives of that tremendous battle. To have 
nothing but an abstraction over one is to be lawless and free 
but free in a destructive not an ennobling sense. Those who 
speak of an "autonomous conscience " in the German schools do 
VOL. L. 13 



194 ^ STUDY OF MODERN RELIGION. [Nov., 

not mean a conscience not subject to man, but one which owns 
no God. They are resolved not to " retain God in their knowl- 
edge," for they cannot but feel that an impersonal, unconscious 
Nature is incapable of becoming a true object of worship, or the 
sanction of the moral law ; they are aware that it is, after all, in 
the language of Milton, " a buzzard idol " without sense or intel- 
gence, nay, as Goethe contemptuously remarked, it is " a goose 
into which we must put a meaning if we would make anything 
of it." The innate law of Spinoza fails in the long run and with 
the majority of men to curb the lower instincts. Pantheism, on 
the descending scale, becomes lust and self-will, artistic indiffer- 
ence, or a cultus of the supposed " larger possibilities " which 
Satan has always attached to the knowledge of evil and to the 
taste of forbidden fruit. The abstract and the impersonal, I am 
convinced, will turn out, as time goes on, to be the Great Adver- 
sary " who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called 
God, or is worshipped." It is the Everlasting No, " dcr Geist der 
stets verneint" of which we have heard terrible things from some 
of its prophets. 

As, however, in the reformed churches there have always been 
apparent diverse tendencies, one towards the truth of Christianity 
and the other away from it, so now in the vague modern religion, 
or religiosity, of which I have been speaking, we may discern 
principles that make for the old faith no less than rebellious 
instincts with which no worship of God in any sense is compati- 
ble. In every sect there are men of good will, desirous to follow 
the light. To such, be they called Agnostic or Pantheist, we who 
profess the creed of the Gospels, have a mission ; we are bound 
to think of them and for them, if we would enlarge the skirts of 
Christendom or provide against a future in which Protestantism, 
as we have known it, will be no more. It is idle to seek the 
living among the dead. Books of controversy written for the 
sixteenth or the eighteenth century are out of date. Methods of 
arguing in which the inspiration of Scripture, the authority of 
Fathers and Councils, were taken for granted, are simply futile in 
the eyes of a generation that has broken with church traditions 
of every kind,. Catholic or not. We must make a new beginning, 
though we preach the ancient faith. And the first step towards 
an undertaking which every day renders more imperative, is to 
enter into the thoughts of those who differ from us, to interpret 
rightly the principles on which they reason, to sympathize with 
the good and the beautiful in which they believe, and, in short, 
" whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are honest, what- 



1889.] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. 195 

soever things are just, whatsoever things are pure, whatsoever 
things are lovely, whatsoever things are of good report, if there 
be any virtue, and if there be any praise," in the ten thousand 
phenomena that make up modern life and literature, to deal with 
them as our fathers did with the elements of truth in Greek and 
Roman civilization, that so they may be brought to baptism, and 
in the name of Him from whom every good and perfect gift 
comes down to us, be consecrated. Nature has been called an 
enigma and a parable ; it is for Christians to make it a Sacrament 

WILLIAM BARRY. 



THE BEST MUSIC FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. 

THAT so much of what practically concerns the form of public 
divine worship can only be completely realized by congregational 
singing is a thesis which has been pretty fully discussed from 
various points of view in the pages of this magazine. Besides 
the favorable opinions expressed in several of our Catholic jour- 
nals, the writer has privately heard both from clergy and people 
quite enough of unqualified agreement with the arguments pre- 
sented to convince him that with the right-thinking congregational 
jinging is a pathway of intelligent devotion into which multitudes 
uld gladly press if once opened to them ; and their senti- 
lents are also quite assuring that no one will appear to take up 
cudgel for the defence of the present system of concert music 
our churches. Despite its general use, every one who cares 
lough for the subject to express an opinion feels himself quite 
liberty to step out and deplore, denounce, and even ridicule it 
an intrusion, a nuisance, and, in not a few places, a scandal. 
An amusing specimen of this popular criticism lately appeared 
the London Tablet, on the performance by the choir in a 
-iverpool church, from which I cull a few sentences. " I think 
le whole mass that I heard last Sunday was in an exceedingly 
id style. A few remarks on the Credo will explain what I 
lean. The bass began very quietly to declare his belief, and 
>resently the tenor woke up apparently and acquiesced in the 
opinions (?) of the bass. The soprano had seemingly been en- 
gaged in conversation while this was going on, and had no time 
to say anything, but suddenly, though tardily, gave vent to her 
belief also by a startling and unearthly yell somewhere up at G 



196 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

above the stave. At the negro minstrel performances some such 
surprise is practised upon one of the ' corner men ' who is sing- 
ing a song in a melancholy mood, and draws from him a startled 
and indignant protest. The congregation was no doubt startled, 
but it could not protest. This plan of never allowing the differ- 
ent voices to say the same thing at the same time was character- 
istic of the whole mass. When one voice was saying one thing, 
the rest were invariably silent, or saying something else, and no 
two voices saying the same, except perhaps when all joined, with 
every conceivable sign of disunion, in saying Amen. At the 
Crucifixus the listener became puzzled by the evidently intense 
grief of the singers, not that our Lord was crucified, but that it 
happened under Pontius Pilate, and their feelings seemed to be 
specially lacerated by the fact that Pilate's name was Pontius. 
Perhaps, however, the composer thought the word Pontio meant 
' crucified ' and thus led his singers into a trap. The wailing at 
this part of the Credo was very painful. ... I could not 
understand why it should be so painful to the lady who used 
the tremolo to express her belief in the Holy Ghost unless she 
was only a half- converted Greek. She trembled and writhed 
over the two words, and died away in agonizing distress, bequeath- 
ing the business to the tenor, who believed in something else. 
The rowdy joy of that body of singers at the prospect of ' the 
life of the world to come ' was something that baffles all descrip- 
tion. The whole mass was a congeries of spasms, jerks, wails, 
groans, and shouts. Oh ! how I longed for a little intelligible 
melody that would express the meaning of the words and speak 
to the minds and hearts of simple people." 

I take it that the gravamen of complaint against modern church 
singing lies in this : it is nothing but a musical concert for an 
audience to listen to, who, hearing it, will be pleased or displeased, 
charmed or indifferently bored, by the performance ; but in any 
case will be drawn instinctively to criticise it, just because it is a 
concert of performers, during which, moreover, the people are pre- 
vented from enjoying, or lose sight altogether of, their privilege 
and duty to unite personally with the singing as an act of divine 
worship. This complaint is equally applicable to the whole 
system, whether the music be that of the tuneful operatic style, 
or the more religious-toned compositions which the Cecilian 
Society is now offering to church choirs to be used in its stead. 

The writer distinctly disclaims any personal or professional 
animosity against the truly commendable and well-meaning efforts 
of his friends, the Cecilians, to " ameliorate " the present lamen- 



1 889.] THE BESJ^ Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. 197 

table state of church music. He presumes to think, however, that 
all true reformations should be founded upon the affirmation of 
principles which, as they generally go to the root of the evil 
complained of, are justly esteemed as radical. Now, it can hardly 
be said that the Cecilian movement has gone to the root of the 
church-music evil. That the movement and phraseology adopted 
by them is more reverent and decorous, apart from the declara- 
tion in their programme that before all the chant is and should 
be esteemed as the true music of the church, is indeed a great 
gain in itself, not to be lightly estimated ; but it cannot be 
denied that in the amelioration of the fundamental evil they have 
not advanced one step, and have besides carried intelligibility of 
the musical phraseology in many and specially in their choice 
productions to a region where the musically uneducated mind 
cannot follow. 

There is another point worth noting. To give a decent 
rendering of their worthy compositions would require the voices 
of far more skilled performers, both as vocal artists and readers 
(and, I may add, as Christians full of personal faith), than now 
generally stand among the choruses who " do " the popular masses 
and vespers of the old style. 

On the whole, I think I would rather be present at the mur- 
der of one of Mozart's or Haydn's masses than at the murder of 
one of Dr. Witt's, Greith's, or Stehle's. The former might, at 
least, be more or less amusing, but the latter would be exasper- 
ating. But be there murder or be there none, I, who have been 
one of the audience, have certainly been on the rack criticising, 
d either writhing in every nerve, or else sliding deliciously 
wn a musical toboggan hill in blissful excitement, and put into 
a condition which makes " worship " between whiles very like 
ragging the sled up-hill again ; and I fancy I can see many a 
worshipper " feeling just like myself. So long as the concert 
le is sanctioned the mouths of the people will be shut. " To 
sing the praises of God " is a definite act of worship. If the 
people do not sing, then they do not perform that act, an act of 
the highest order and of the very first importance, as I think 
has been sufficiently proven in former articles. 

If the people are to sing, then the Cecilian masses, despite 
eir reverent tone and dedication to the saints, will have to go 
to the concert-hall along with the masses of Haydn, Mozart, and 
others. 

But now comes a very serious practical question. Having 
abundantly discoursed upon " How to cook the hare," I hear 



: 

3 



198 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

some one ask : " Where is the hare to cook ? " It is quite evi- 
dent that the organ-loft contains no music which the people 
down-stairs could sing, not only because they lack the vocal edu- 
cation requisite for such a task, but because it is a form of 
musical language utterly beyond their comprehension. One might 
as well expect them to pray in Sanskrit or Choctaw. That the 
vast majority of all modern compositions performed by church 
choirs are notably lacking in melody (commonly called 
tune), and depend for their effect on both mind and heart upon 
the harmonic result obtained by combination of different vocal 
movements and expressions, is a fact of which most unmusical 
people are ignorant. To the common people only such music is 
agreeable, popularly liked, and remembered which offers to them 
more or less of a distinct tune. That explains why the music of 
the Cecilia Society fails in obtaining popular favor. In its own 
order it is too good for the common mind to appreciate. " It may 
be very fine music," I have heard remarked, " but there is no 
tune to it." And, because it is not like the vulgar and flashy 
music generally heard, some ignorant persons speak of it as 
"poor" music.* 

It would be cynical and unjust to deny to composers of sacred 
music for the church the motive of desiring to dedicate to the 
service of God's praise those works in which they have sought to 
express greater scientific and artistic perfection of tone, even at 
the risk of not being understood by the uneducated masses. 
Neither can one say that such rare productions of human genius 
are in themselves unworthy as offerings to the Most High, or 
would be unacceptable in his sight. That question is nothing to 
the present point. Worshipping God by song, and a true though 
simple song, by those who can only offer such melody to him, 
is an act of religious privilege and of moral duty of which they 
must not be debarred because a few geniuses are able to give a 

* In an article on " Dr. Witt and the Restoration (sic) of Church Music," in the Month 
(June, 1889), by H. S. Butterfield, the writer says of the music composed by the Cecilia Society: 
" With reference to the catalogue, it has been said that some of the compositions therein are 
poor. Of course they are, because the weakness of choirs has to be considered. The humblest 
village choir must be reached. ' Worthy music for divine worship, the edification, elevation, 
and education of the people by means of devout and solemn music, down to the smallest village 
that was his [Dr. Witt's] programme. Is it not a grand one ? " By no means, if we are to 
understand, as it seems, that poor music is good enough for poor and humble folk, but fine, 
artistic music is to be given to the rich who can pay for it. Here, at any rate, is a plain con- 
firmation of the justice of our complaint against the whole system. In the praises of God by 
church song the people have no lot or part except to listen. All honor to Dr. Witt for his good 
intentions, but had he succeeded in locking up the concert gallery and put the key in his pocket, 
and used his musical genius to forge another key that would open the locked-up mouths of the 
people, then indeed his programme of " Worthy music for divine worship, " etc., as above, would 
be a grand one. 



1 8 89. J THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. \ 99 

loftier and more scientific expression of musical principles. All 
sciences and arts, though capable of vast development, are based 
upon very simple fundamental principles, which can be applied to 
simple operations. 

The clatter of the tea-kettle lid when the water boils is one 
of those operations, for example, founded upon the same principle 
as the working of a mighty steam-engine, and, by the way, the 
song which the tea-kettle sings, simple as it is, shows how sweet 
and touching even such a simple song may be when accompanied 
with proper environments. Its capacity of voice and range of 
tone is limited, but no one can deny its eloquence. My reader, 
lover of Dickens, will doubtless be reminded of a celebrated con- 
cert in which even a tea-kettle performed its part with a certain 
merry " cricket on the hearth," and I take it that this delightful 
picture, drawn with such life-like power by the immortal novelist, 
aptly illustrates the criterion which I propose to offer upon which 
to judge what is sure to be the very best music for congrega- 
tional singing. 

Both tea-kettle and cricket sang "as 'tis their nature to." 
The truth, the beauty, the moral tone of their song lay in its 
naturalness. If it were possible to suppose the least trace of arti- 
ficiality in the melody of either, all charm would be gone. 

In point of musical education, whether regarded as a science 
or an art, it must be owned that the people, as a congregation- 
ally assembled multitude, are to be esteemed as so many tea- 
kettles or crickets. They can sing and they will sing what is 
truest, best, and most beautiful when they sing what " 'tis their 
nature to." Therefore I take it as not coming too quickly to a 
conclusion for the perspicacity of my readers for me to assert 
that the kind of music the fittest for congregational singing can- 
not be any other more scientific or more artistic than what is 
natural for all men and all women young men and maidens, old 
men and children to sing. 

The appreciation of a certain succession of tones upon which 
all possible melodies are formed is the result of a natural, God- 
given instinct which is practically universal.* 

* In contradiction to the asserted universality of this instinct of true tone-progression some 
write^ have alleged the inharmonic music of the Arabs and Hindus, and the defective scales 
of the Chinese, Mexicans, and Africans. But these are aberrations, the explanation of which 
would be too long to give here. As an argument a part it will be a sufficient reply to say that 
the existence of polytheism and fetichism found among certain nations does not invalidate the 
truth of the doctrine that the rational, natural, God-given instinct of mankind is to believe in one 
God, and that barbarism is a degradation of the naturally civilized man. The popular use of 
the " diabolus " has, per gratiam Christi, not yet succeeded in wholly vitiating the rational tonal- 
ity amongst ourselves, or we too might be quoted as an exception. 



the " 
ity an 



200 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINCIVG. [Nov., 

If there be exceptions, and if there are to be found those who 
do not know one note from another, and are unfortunately music- 
ally deaf and dumb, that does not invalidate the general rule. It 
has been noticed, by the way, that these music-deprived souls are 
generally to be found, not among the simple and unlearned, but 
rather among those endowed with rare gifts in the domain of 
science. Hence the apt saying of the brilliant and witty musi- 
cian, Gretry: " Oui, disons hardiment a celui q?ii ria ni chant, ni 
invention, ' Jc te condamne a etre savant!'" Yes, let us plainly 
tell him who can neither sing nor make a song, " I sentence you 
to become a scientist ! " What he thought of such a condemna- 
tion compared with the enjoyments of those favored with the ca- 
pacity for song, in which the simple and unlearned are seldom 
lacking, may be gathered for another saying of his: " Aujour- 
d'hui, phis nous deviendrons savans, plus nous nous eloignerons du 
vrai" To-day the more scientific we become the farther off we 
are taking ourselves from truth. This sentiment, written in 1794, 
is not without its own application in 1889. 

I have endeavored to make what follows simple enough to be 
understood by the general reader, but if it should appear too 
technical to be interesting, I beg such persons to skip it and con- 
tinue reading from page 203. 

To the principles of a natural succession of tones that is, an 
order of tones ascending and descending, rightly denominated the ' 
true natural order, being instinctively intoned by all men alike 
without special education (exceptions already noted) I oppose 
what is properly termed artificial, viz., a progression of tones, con- 
ventionally assumed as true, but which will, in fact, be found on 
examination to be actually false. 

All musical students know that what is called modern music, 
whether vocal or instrumental, is founded upon a system of tones 
arranged according to an arbitrary, scientific division of the octave. 
This division is either what is called but is not natural, viz. : Do, 
Re, Mi, Fa, Sol, La, Si, Do, or it is chromatic by the introduc- 
tion of half-tones, named sharps of the lower, and flats of the 
higher, whole tones adjacent. These half-tones are essentially re- 
quisite in order to apply the principle which is peculiar to 
modern music, viz. : modulation by artificial dissonance from 
one tone of the scale as tonic to another ; as, for instance, mo- 
dulating from the key of C as tonic or key-note to the key of 
G as tonic by sounding F# instead of F after starting from C. 
As nature demands us to sing Ft, we can only sing Fit by arti- 
ficial intent and effort, in order to change the key-note of our 



] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. 201 

tune from C to G. I will just here call the reader's attention to 
a fact to be alluded to more fully further on, that if we start from 
F of the so-called natural scale of C, nature would not lead us to 
sing BS, but what is called Bb. For the moment one has sung 
the sixth note of a scale we have affirmed the fourth as a new 
tonic F, for instance, in the scale of C.* F as tonic requires 
Bb for its fourth, and to sing Bfc requires the same intent and 
effort as we had to make in order to sing F after starting from 
C. So that we actually modulate artificially from the new key 
of F, made tonic by singing A, the sixth of the scale of C, back 
again into the key of C by forcing ourselves with an artificial and 
unnatural effort to sing Br. This will be more evident if the 
reader will try to sing down the scale beginning at C. How 
much easier it is to sing C, Bb, A, G, F, than C, Bh, etc., in- 
stinctively accenting the C as one will ! And it will be observed 
that if he forces himself to sing Bi, then he is " naturally " led 
to sing thus : C, Br;, A, G, F# (instinctively accenting the Bt]), and 
again G, when lo ! he finds he has come to a stop on a new 
key-note and is in the scale of G. Why ? Because, as I showed 
above, it is the sounding of the major third note above another 
which determines the first tone as key-note : E determining C, 
A determining F ; and so, when he sang Bt; (major third above 
G), he announced G as the key-note, and naturally ended there. 
So, again, it is proved BH is not in the natural vocal scale of C. 
The conclusion is plain that both the natural and chromatic 
lodern scales are artificial. No such tone-progressions exist in 
lature ; and despite the fact that nowadays almost any singer can 
irn a modern tune, though musically uneducated, it is not ac- 
>rding to nature to do so. He does so by virtue of some tradi- 
ional education, hearing all music sung and played in this way. 
That modern tone-progressions are not only artificial, but 
practically false and discordant, is easily proved in this way. 
most persons it would be supposed that if a singer sang a 
>ong of which every note was in perfect tune with a "perfectly" 
tuned piano or organ, he would be singing correctly. But that 
vould be a great mistake, for, saving the interval relation of each 
lote to its octave, Do to Do, Re to Re, C to C, D to D, etc., 
for example, every other note of the piano or organ when per- 
fectly tuned is in actual discord and out of tune. Ask the man 
who comes to tune your piano if I am not right. Nature does 

* This change of the tonic by natural, diatonic, concordant tone-progression differs essen- 
tially from the artificial, chromatic, dissonant modulation used in modern music, and notably 
in its moral effect. 



202 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING, [Nov., 

not divide up the respective notes of an octave into equal divi- 
sions of vibration, but the tuner is obliged to so divide the 
octave. Our sense of hearing is not generally acute enough for 
us to distinguish the difference, and we fancy the product is true 
harmony ; but it is, in fact, altogether dissonant and out of har- 
mony. Nevertheless, although the mind is not rationally conscious 
of the effect produced by this lack of harmony, the soul may be 
said to be morally conscious of it, and does suffer without know- 
ing why, the result being a spiritual damage of no small conse- 
quence, which I will presently point out. 

Let it be borne in mind, then, that the natural sequence of 
tones in an octave is not at all the same as those of the piano 
or organ or of any keyed instrument But all modern music is 
written to produce tunes which are founded upon such a se- 
quence. Therefore, again, all modern music is artificial and not 
natural. 

It will be interesting to see this demonstrated by a compara- 
tive view of figures representing the relative vibrations of the 
tones of an octave as they are by nature, and also as we hear 
them actually given by the piano and organ, and to which we 
force our voices to bend and comply when accompanied by those 
instruments. 

The natural gamut may be represented thus, the figures repre- 
senting the relative number of vibrations of sound in a unit of 
time : 

Do Re Mi Fa Sol La Sa Si Do 

CDEFGAB^BC 
240 270 300 320 360 400 426} 450 480 

Compare this with the figures of the piano notes : 

Do Re Mi Fa Sol La Sa Si Do 

CD E F GABb BC 

240 269,7(5 302i l oV 320 M, 359ro x o 4O3iV'> 427 iV.r 453 &' 4-8o 



From which it will be seen that I was right in saying that every 
note except the octave is out of tune. There is also another diffi- 
cult and unnatural complication and dissonance, arising from the 
fact that nature suggests two different Re's and La's according 
to whether the mind has taken up Fa as tonic to go on to its 
fifth Do, or Sol to go on to its fifth Re.* 

These facts explain why beginners whose ears have not been 

*This fact is fully proved by r profound musical scholar, Rev. Ignatius Trueg, O.S.E.; 
vide: " The'Natural Diatonic Gamut compaicd with Artificial Scales" (The Voice, April, 1888, 
etseq. New York: Edgar B. Werner.) 



1889.] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. 203 

falsified by practice with instruments appear to sing some tones 
flat when they sing pieces of modern music. They naturally sing 
in tune correctly with nature, and, of course, out of tune with 
the artificially-tuned piano or organ, as shown above. 

But now some, if not every one, of my readers will ask : To 
what purpose all these refinements of differences, which I acknowl- 
edge, after all, not one in a million can practically distinguish ? 
Does it all amount to any more than a mere scientific demonstra- 
tion ? What possible effect can all these fractional differences of 
vibration have upon the singing of a congregation ? Before I 
reply I would like to call the reader's attention once more to 
the scientific scale of modern music given above, and remind 
him of all the wonderful scientific music built upon it, and then 
quote for his meditation once more the words, of the musician 
Gretry : " To-day the more scientific we become the further oft 
we are taking ourselves from truth." 

Whether it is better that a congregation of divine worshippers 
should sing the praises of God, the Author of all harmony, out 
of tune and out of harmony because modern scientific music with 
its false tones has the floor and the organ has the gallery, may at 
least be questioned ; but what I insist upon is that, take the 
people as they are en masse, uneducated to sing the artificial 
scales, if they are to sing with truth true to nature, with a corre- 
sponding moral effect upon their spirit they must have music 
which, for its truth to nature, their souls will instinctively appreciate", 
and therefore feel, and feeling, lead them to make a heart-offering 
of their song to God. The popular ignorance of the subtle influ- 
ence of music would be apt to ascribe this reasoning to pedantic 
exaggeration. Serious musical writers, however, know well that 
variations in tone so small as to appear unimportant have far- 
reaching consequences, not only upon the general artistic charac- 
ter of the music which is the product of these variations, but 
upon the moral sentiments excited thereby; a consideration of 
vastly greater importance in vocal than in purely instrumental 
music. As has been well said : " The scale of musical tones is 
like the skeleton of organized beings, who show different charac- 
ters, tendencies, and developments as soon as characteristic dif- 
ferences are set up in its construction." Referring to the results 
of these variations in instrumental music, the same writer, speak- 
ing of the scale of tones as given by piano (and organ), observes : 
" Its defects have had a marked influence on the music written 
for it. Sustained melody has been more and more obscured ; 
and for it have been substituted infinite and complicated musical 



204 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

figures, scales, cadences, shakes, etc., calculated rather to call up 
the pride of a brilliant executant than the musical sentiment of 
the hearers. For the few simple lines of great musical works are 
substituted infinite arabesques of a new order of the grotesque."* 

One instinctively offers what is natural to God, and what is 
artificial to one's self; a truth exemplified in the very first 
records of the human race, when the offerings of the firstlings of 
his flock by Abel were acceptable to God, and the offerings of the 
first-fruits of the earth, the results of his own labor and cultiva- 
tion, by Cain were rejected. It is this difficulty of making a 
heart-offering of modern music which is its bane. Without a 
special, spiritual effort, which does violence to prevaricated human 
nature, it never gets lower than the head, where it is learned, 
and where its " fallen " nature breeds self-conceit the offering 
of homage to self for one's artificially-acquired attainments and 
skilful performances. How very few persons nowadays think of 
singing except to be heard by some one else in order to be 
praised for it? Singing for pure love either of God or man, 
with perfect sense of self-obliteration, pouring out one's whole self 
in rapture, would be voted the fanciful ideal of a crank. And 
he who writes is certainly offering himself as contending for first 
prize as champion crank when he asserts that* the same is the 
bane of all so-called " modern science," which I dare to stigma- 
tize as artificial science when compared to what deserves the 
name of natural science, whose end is the heart-offering of truth, 
first to God, whom the Psalmist praises as the " Lord of all sciences," 
and secondly to man. But who cannot see that the real, if not 
the professed, object sought by the self-crowned scientists of our 
day is the idolatry of the intellect, shown in the vain attempt to 
account for the existence and action of all things in the universe 
quite apart from any logical design or moral purpose, and that 
the presentation of their scientific investigations for the purpose 
of inspiring the contemplation of truth as the means of uplifting 
the hearts of men to God is something not at all in their pro- 
gramme ? Who does not see to what a ridiculous extent this 
science puffeth up ? 

How does this come about ? Precisely as it does in music. 
They insist upon tuning their scientific instruments to an arti- 
ficial scale, each one to an artificial theory of his own devising, 

* The Theory of Sound, P. Blaserna. In faith this writer is an anti-Catholic; but simply 
as a musician he proves the inferiority of the artificial scale and urges its abandonment. "It 
has had its day, and has no longer any raison d'etre. Man is capable of a much finer class of 
music than that performed at the present day. Singing would gain enormously by a return to the 
exact, natural scale. ' ' 



1 889.] THE BEST Music I-GR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. 205 

and lo ! the Harmony of the Universe as they understand it. 
And they play to us some very pretty and even wonderfully 
artistic tunes upon their instrumental scales ; but just as in the 
case of modern music, their tone-progression is all out of tune 
and in discord with the fundamental principles of creation given 
by the Author of all natural science ; hence it all ends just where 
modern music does by virtue of its artificial principle of modula- 
tion out of the key, by an ever-varying denial of the Divine 
Tonic God, the logical Reason and Generator of all tone and all 
creation. 

Oh ! yes, only relieve yourself of the necessity of constantly 
affirming God as the Fundamental Tone the Tonic in the Harmony 
of Creation and you can make the most enchanting and sensuously 
pleasing artificial scientific music. But keep Him in view always, 
let Him be, as musicians say of the tonic, always " heard," be it 
in your melody or in your scientific investigations, and I ac- 
knowledge that your music or your science will be only simple 
and natural, in perfect accordance with the common sense and 
religious instincts of mankind ; but the best of it all will be that 
it will be true, and therefore profoundly sublime and heart-com- 
pelling. 

The true scientist is always profoundly humble and religious ; 
but if you wish to find the exemplars of arrogant self-conceit, I 
need only to direct you to the writings of the God-denying 
scientists, before whose self-glorifying dicta the ignorant and un- 
reasoning world of to-day stands with mouth agape in abject 
wonderment. 

Is this a digression? If it be, we -have come around to the 
point I wished to arrive at. The music which people are to sing 
to God (as also the science which they must offer to him) must 
be true, simple, natural, sublime, and heart-compelling, and that 
can only be done by its being founded upon an essentially nat- 
ural tone-progression, and which cannot admit the false fourth 
tone ascending from the tonic known as the sensible or leading 
tone, the sounding of which immediately forces the denial of 
the original tonic, and compels the affirmation of a new one 
Do, Re, Mi, Fa#, or Fa, Sol, La, Si. This progression, called by 
all ancient religious musicians Diabolus in musica the devil in 
music has its counterpart in science by the introduction of that 
lying spirit which, if affirmed, denies God as the Origin and 
Author of the Harmony of the Universe. 

No one ever yet sang, " as 'tis his nature to," Do, Re, Mi, Fa3, 
or Fa, Sol, La, Si. Take the first boy you can seize upon and 



2o6 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

start him at Do or at Fa ; let him sing alone, unaccompanied by 
an instrument, and see how he will come out. That simple ex- 
periment ought to settle the question. Modern music does, and 
must so sing, and therefore it is unnatural and artificial. Being 
so, it is unspiritual, lacking in the flavor of divine melody, and 
does not lead one naturally to God, as all music to his praise at 
least ought to. And what is more, the tone vibrations of the 
boy's voice while singing, as he naturally will, Do, Re, Mi, Faq, 
or Fa, Sol, La, Si?, will in neither case exactly correspond with 
those tones as given by your piano or organ. You may prob- 
ably not have sufficiently acute hearing to detect the differences, 
but, as I have already shown, positive differences do exist, as 
all musicians know. The boy's intuitive perception of nature's 
laws leads him instinctively to sing true; and because true, his 
heart is correspondingly .affected. The subtle power of tone 
vibration, although but minutely dissonant, is none the less real 
and productive of positively moral or immoral results. Force 
him to sing as your piano or organ plays, and you vitiate the 
heart-effect, and so much of the divinely natural influences upon 
his character of what perfectly true song would impart is 
frustrated. 

Now, any congregation of people taken haphazard or as they, 
as a rule, assemble for divine worship are just like this boy. 
They have the same instinct of true tone-progression they have 
it more vividly and express it more naturally than musicians 
educated to intone the popular false progression and therefore 
I conclude again that if they are to be brought under the purest 
and highest heart-influence whilst giving expression in singing 
to their sentiments of divine faith, hope, and charity, and have 
the sentiments of those virtues enforced and deepened thereby ? 
they must have a melody to sing which is perfectly in harmony 
with that true tone-progression. 

I want the best. I am arguing for that, and hoping by my 
words to forcibly bring the matter home to the consciences of 
those whose duty it is to give to the people that which they 
can render to God, who ought to have the best. In that I am 
an optimist. Just here I allow myself to enjoy a quiet smile at 
the wonderment of some of my readers who have been accustomed 
to argue for the use of modern music in church, indubitably the 
worst kind, on the score of what they have -fancied to be a 
clinching argument that God ought to have " the best music." 

I do not say I refuse to take less, if I cannot hie ct nunc 
have all. Better is half a loaf than no bread. But I tell you 



1889.] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGATIONAL SINGING. 207 

there was a time when all the musicians of the church would 
have abhorred singing your false tone-progression of modern 
music (as their greatest work, the chant, now still stands in 
several volumes of melodies, wholly free from it), as they would 
have abhorred the sight or sound of the devil, and they said so 
in their celebrated distich, 

" Si contra Fa 
Diabolus est in musica " 

Si heard with (sounding against) Fa is the devil in music. 

Mais, nous avons changez tout cela. But we have not nor 
can we ever change the musical instincts of mankind, God-given 
as they are, and given for more profound reasons than it is likely 
will ever be known this side of heaven. 

Is it not a singular fact that so long as church musicians 
kept " the devil " out of music congregational singing prevailed ? 
No, not at all singular if my arguments have been logical and 
my conclusions drawn from true premises. History indeed con- 
firms the truth of them by showing us that the introduction of 
the " diabolus in musica " (not without strong protest) was coeval 
with the rise of concert performances in church, pretty much in 
the same style as we have them now, saving that the attractive 
feminine element was excluded, and that the music was infinitely 
superior in quality, as it was unquestionably more artistically 
rendered, as in those days singers were not bond slaves to a 
loisy organ. It is 'also true that as this new style of church 
singing came into vogue the ancient tradition of congregational 
singing died out. The history of this remarkable revolution in 
lurch music is not so very ancient after all, for modern music 

not over three hundred years old. Like Protestantism in 
ligion, its principle of life, which conceived and gave birth to 
)th, is individualism, and both will probably die and be buried 
ibout the same time. 

My reflective reader will here doubtless say to me : If what 
assert be all true, then the shortest road to the practical 
^storation of congregational singing would be to restore the 
ime kind of music, written upon the scale of pure natural into- 
nation, which you say prevailed before the rise of modern music. 

To which I reply, that is one way, a good way, and, where 
it can be done, I would judge it to be the shortest way. I am 
also of opinion that in more places than is generally supposed 
that way could be easily found if there was a will to look for 
it. That kind of music, commonly known as Gregorian chant, 



208 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 



the church still adheres to officially in all her liturgical books, 
and has indeed never officially embodied with her words of divine 
prayer and praise one single piece of modern music. That 
is to say, the diabolus in musica, in spite of his almost universal 
triumphs in the outside world, and despite his diligent attendance 
at almost all church services, at which his voice is constantly 
heard, has never succeeded in getting himself officially recognized 
by the church. Her words of encouragement and conditions of 
what she will at least patiently endure, knowing, like God, what 
is in man, and similarly long-suffering with his weaknesses, although 
they may have come from persons holding the highest ecclesias- 
tical offices, have never in fact amounted to more than this : 
The church's own Gregorian chant is the best, and we would 
rather have it ; but if you will write and sing other music, study 
that chant as you would a divine model and get your inspira- 
tion from it. The nearer you conform to it in style and into- 
nation, the more religious, and, if we may use the term (and we 
think we may), the more sacramental, will your music be in its 
tone and quality, and therefore more in harmony with the sacra- 
mental character of the divine worship of the church. And if 
you will accompany the singing with the playing of the discord- 
ant organ, play just as little and as softly as you can, remember- 
ing the maxim of the councils of the church, " Music for the 
words and not words for the music." I think that is a concise, 
honest, and fair interpretation of all such quasi-official commenda- 
tions as have been given to any other music but the chant ; 
and if the contrary is believed to be true, I would like to see 
some one try to prove it. 

I have endeavored to come at the proof that the Gregorian 
chant, of all music now known, is the very best music for congre- 
gational singing on the simplest principles, and such as, I hold, it 
is impossible to controvert. To go into detail and illustration of 
its fitness, its aesthetic value, and to quote one hundreth part of 
all I have at hand that has been written in favor of the suprem- 
acy of the chant from every point of view as religious music, 
by the most eminent musicians of this and former times, would 
be to fill a volume. 

But while the fundamental principles' of pure intonation and 
true, natural tone-progression, which give to chant its unique, 
unrivalled character, must be regarded as essential and as incon- 
trovertible as the laws of acoustics which scientifically prove their 
truth and are confirmed by experiment of centuries, as no' less 
morally essential to the best expression and nurture of true 



1889.] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. 209 

religious sentiment, I am not prepared to assert that the whole 
musical repertory of melodies as the outcome of the eight 
Gregorian modes, or even the scale divisions of true tonal 
progression as made by St. Gregory, may not become the subject 
of revision, and, under the inspiration of some other genius and 
chosen mouthpiece of the Holy Ghost like St. Gregory, a still 
more perfect and sublime religious music be breathed which the 
church may adopt as a truer, holier, and more sanctifying ex- 
pression of her voice of prayer and praise than the chant has 
been for the past thousand and more years. I must confess, 
however, that there is very little present promise of the coming 
of such a mighty minstrel of divine Tone, seeing how vain a 
task it would certainly be for the most skilled musicians of our 
day to attempt to compose even a Gregorian melody which 
would be accounted of any value. One might also as soon 'look 
for the coming of another Psalmist like David, whose words the 
church would accept in preference as the language of a higher 
and diviner consecration of the soul, and nobler intonation of 
divine praise than the Song of Israel's Royal Singer, which 
has been rolling on for centuries in one ceaseless, majestic wave 
of soul-inspiring and heart-uplifting psalmody. And yet, of 
course, even that is not impossible. But one thing is certain, 
neither will happen in an age of which it can be said with 
Gretry : " Plus nous dcviendrons savans, plus nous nous eloignerons 

Rvrai" 
If the poets had had half the assurance of musicians, and, 
ving succeeded in getting a stage erected in the church, a 
choir gallery, for the recitation of their rhymes, dared to 
clothe their art in like subtly sensuous garb, it is not unlikely 
that ere this there would have been issued more than one similar 
" official " commendation from high quarters, and rescripts of pa- 
ternal advice given to rhymesters who would insist upon writing 
something (" for the church," of course, and not for their own 
fame), and having their verses recited by artistic "readers" at Mass 
and Vespers in place of the old-fashioned and no-longer-under- 
stood psalms of David advice and counsel which (as in the case 
of music) would no doubt draw the line at what, for instance, 
should not be in Shaksperean, Tom Mooreish, or Swinburnian 
style, or what might otherwise savor of the theatre, or be " las- 
civious or impure " in diction. It is also not unlikely that the 
aforesaid versifiers and their admirers would feel quite sure that 
their sweet and elegantly turned periods were far superior to the 

VOL. L. 14 



210 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

antiquated Hebrew antiphonal phrases at least for high festivals ! 
I leave my readers to pursue this suggestive and entertaining 
comparison. 

Now let us get down to a practical resolution of the difficulty 
of restoring congregational singing in places where it is assumed 
that the shortest way through Gregorian chant cannot be taken. 
Suppose it to have come to pass that in place of the people 
reciting the psalms of David and the various ascriptions of divine 
praise of which the Liturgy is composed we found a custom 
prevailing for centuries for the people to be silent and left to 
listen to the " reading " by a few chosen artists of poems written 
in Miltonian, Tennysonian, Faberian, or even, alas ! in Swin- 
burnian or Gilberto-Sullivanian style, and that they had become 
so accustomed to this manner of worship that it would be re- 
garded as practically impossible to return at once to the common 
use of the church's liturgical language and its recitation by all 
the people, what would practical common sense suggest as a first 
step towards the desired reformation ? Would it be to make no 
attempt whatever to do away with the hired artists, but to per- 
mit their " readings " to go on, only substituting for the popular 
and pleasing, and at least somewhat intelligible, poems of modern 
poets the verses of some antiquated writer like Spenser and 
Chaucer, or imitations of their style, full of obsolete words, 
phrases, and incomprehensible spelling, as the Cecilians have done 
in their attempt to revive or imitate the works of Palestrina, and 
find equal difficulty with them in procuring artistic readers com- 
petent to render them ? Would not that infallibly put con- 
gregational " reading " still further beyond the hope of restora- 
tion ? 

It seems to me that even if the " readers " had to be tolerated 
for a while, the first thing to do would be to decide that the ar- 
tistic reading style is uncatholic and to be got rid of as soon as 
possible. Then to get the people to do some congregational read- 
ing, and encourage the practice by having them read all together 
on stated occasions of devout assembly specially designed for 
that end. Having become, by supposition, entirely ignorant of 
the real liturgical language of the church and familiar only with 
the works of great dramatic and lyric writers, it would be the 
part of wisdom to prepare a selection of decent, appropriate 
poems, etc., in modern style though they be, which they can 
readily apprehend and are more or less accustomed to read. It 
is plain to see that the two cases are perfectly parallel, and I 



1 889.] THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. 2 1 1 

now go on to explain what place or purpose is to be given to 
the congregational singing of hymns in modern English poetry, 
set to modern tunes and harmonies. 

Though I seek and argue for the best, I am nevertheless not 
such a rigorist as to hinder the work of encouraging the restora- 
tion of congregational singing and prevent the people praising God 
by the use of even inferior means if better cannot be had or is 
not permitted them. If I did I would stand self-condemned ; 
for, in order to entice people to sing congregationally, I have my- 
self prepared a collection of modern hymns and set them to 
tunes in modern music in whose accompanying harmonies and 
modulations in the melodies the " Diabolus " appears, of course, 
this kind of music being the only one they have ever heard in 
their lives, save the chanting of the priest, and the only kind 
the majority of them now living are ever likely to hear, more's 
the pity ! Neither have I spared any effort to encourage the 
singing of such music, hoping and praying and vigorously con- 
tending meanwhile for what I know is essentially truer, purer, 
holier, better in every respect for the congregational worship of 
God. 

Do I betray the truth by this ? God forbid ! I am a dis- 
ciple of St. Paul, and have learned to give milk to babes but 
to reserve strong meat for the nourishment of men, or I might 
repeat the advice given me once upon a time, apropos of the 
question of the immediate presentation of the claims of chant, 
>y a prominent Cecilian : " Let us not throw pearls before 
swine." It is of the first importance in the interest of popular 
lith and morals to get the concert style of church music abol- 
ished and that of congregational singing established, no matter 
what music is at first employed, provided the words be at least 
free from expressions of erroneous doctrine, and the melodies do 
lot shock one's sense of propriety or excite disgust by their 
merility. For evident reasons, the use of hymns in the vernac- 
ilar, used at special devotional services, set to modern music, ac- 
companied by the organ all in discord though its tones are 
presents the most practical means to give congregational singing 
start and thus establish a right custom by ousting a false one. 
If this artificial music is lacking in like power with the Holy 
Chant in naturally leading the singers to God by its tonal inspi- 
rations, that defect can be, and care should be taken that it be, 
supplemented by directing the people to make positive acts ot 
spiritual offering of their song of prayer and praise. Surely, if it 



2 1 2 THE BEST Music FOR CONGREGA TIONAL SINGING. [Nov., 

is taken for granted that they do make such an offering of the 
song of the hired gallery singers, it ought not to be difficult to 
get them to so offer their own song, in spite of the "devil" in 
the harmonies of either. 

But, deeply impressed as I am with the truth of the prin- 
ciples I have adduced, and which have been well. proven and 
sufficiently illustrated, it would ill become me and the vows of 
my life if, time and opportunity being afforded, I failed to make 
known their application to that special use of music as the 
vehicle of divine praise by the people, for the furtherance of 
which religious duty on their part I have been so persistently 
raising my voice. I cannot but be conscious that, let the 
efforts of the friends of the very best music for congregational 
singing be what they may, they can do little more than plant 
here and there a seed without the hope of living to see 
or enjoy either tree or fruit. But who that comes upon an 
inheritance of barren plains will not at once plant seeds which 
some day may give wholesome fruit and blessed shade to 
others who may come after him ? I would say to any one 
who recoils from labor of which he will probably never see the 
fruit : Let it be no hindrance to thee to know that hogs will eat of 
the fruit of oaks which thou mayest plant, or that oxen and 
asses will find shade beneath their spreading branches, and even 
spurn with their hoofs the very ground that covers thy forgotten 
bones beneath. Plant oaks all the same ! 

ALFRED YOUNG. 



1889.] THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. 213 



THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. 

THERE is a logical sequence in events and a very inexorable 
one. If we make a mistake, we must take the consequences; if 
we wilfully do wrong, we shall suffer for it. The principle is one 
of universal application, and the question just now is whether the 
Masonic conspiracy which compassed the downfall of the Temporal 
Power, and brought it about in September, 1889, did not make a 
very colossal mistake, and is not at this very moment hurrying 
downward in the logical course which will make it fall over the 
precipice. We are of the opinion that this is so. The campaign 
of Cavour and his abettors and allies, Mazzini and the Masons of 
Italy, was entered on with reliance on " moral force " La forza 
morale. This moral force was to sweep away opposition. It 
was to consist in the force of public opinion, which was to be 
sedulously, cautiously and with great tact, directed against the 
pope's temporal dominion and against the church to the cry : Una 
chiesa liber a in uno stato libero "A free church in a free state." 
The press and the telegraph were secured, and misrepresentation 
was the order of the day; so that public opinion was manu- 
factured and presented daily for the complacent assent of all 
whose early education taught them to look on Rome as the 
symbol of oppression in religious belief. 

The Italians have a saying: La bugia ha le gambe corte "A 
has short legs" and a very true saying it turned out to be 
in this case. This misrepresentation of the real state of things in 
Rome has been trying to keep ahead ; but in these days of 
pedestrianism the truth is catching up, and the moral force of the 
world and of public opinion seems to be taking a direction that 
will bring retribution on those who despoiled Pope Pius IX. of his 
lawful authority. The great mistake the revolutionists made was 
in thinking their " moral force " would meet with no opposition ; 
they thought from their reliance on Freemasonry that they would 
have the support of the world, Freemasonry having spread so 
widely, and controlling not only cabinets and monarchs, but the 
press, the great power of the nineteenth century. What could 
the pope do against this ? When to moral force were added the 
wily diplomacy of Cavour and Ratazzi, the plots and intrigues of 
Mazzini, the acquiescence of Napoleon, the free corps of Gari- 
baldi, and the cannon of Cadorno and Bixio, success was certain ; 



214 THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. [Nov., 

and once gained, Rome could easily be held. And so, when they 
got into the city of the popes, gazing on the trophies of anti- 
quity and art of the most famous city of the world and delighted 
with the sight, they complacently sat down and exclaimed : Hie 
manebimns optime. But they reckoned without their host ; they 
were in the pope's house. They did not think of his " moral 
force," which has two elements that make it well-nigh omnipotent: 
first, the truth, and, secondly, the opportunity to make the truth 
known. It was a tremendous mistake on their part ; so we must 
not be surprised to see the subsequent career of the despoilers of 
the pope marked by unmistakable signs of that folly which leads 
to ruin. To enumerate these signs would be to go over the 
whole history of Rome since its capture by the Italian army. 

There is one thing to be said in favor of the royal house of 
Savoy : the father of the present king went to Rome against his 
will and better judgment, and the present king is not responsible 
for being there ; for he did not create the circumstances by which 
he has been surrounded, and, as a constitutional ruler, he is 
powerless to alter the condition of things without the consent of 
the legislative bodies who, through the ministers, govern the land. 
Both he and his father have always tried to have public order 
preserved, and the safety of the Sovereign Pontiff secured. But 
this said, pretty much all is said that can be urged in extenua- 
tion of the presence of the king in the city of the popes. The 
course of the parliament has been marked always by the spirit of 
undying hatred of the Church of God which characterizes Free- 
masonry in Europe, and more or less its affiliations everywhere. 
Suppression of religious orders ; seizure of monasteries and eccle- 
siastical revenues ; forced sale of church property the price not 
paid in cash, but by public securities at five per cent.', with an 
income tax of i3 T 2 oo per cent.; these and kindred acts ending 
lately in the Draconian Penal Code against the clergy which is 
to go into effect on January I, 1890, have marked the delirium 
of enmity to the church from which the legislators of the Italian 
kingdom have suffered. 

As an illustration of their deep scheme of persecution, and of 
their throttling of freedom of speech, we give the following 
extracts from the code just named : 

Art. 182 says: "The minister of worship who, in the exercise of his func- 
tions, publicly blames or belittles the institutions, the laws of the state, or 
the acts of authority is punished with imprisonment not longer than a year, 
and by fine not exceeding one thousand francs." Art. 183: " The minister of 
worship who, making use of his position, excites others to contemn the institu- 



1889.] THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. 215 

tions, the laws, the dispositions of authority, or to disobey the laws, the disposi- 
tions of authority, or to neglect duties inherent in a public office, is punished 
with imprisonment from three months to two years, by a fine of from five 
hundred to three thousand francs, and by perpetual or temporary privation 
of his ecclesiastical revenues. If the fact take place publicly, he may be 
imprisoned three years." "The same penalty may be inflicted on a minister 
of worship who, making use of his position, compels or induces any one 
to acts- or declarations contrary to the laws, or prejudicial to the rights 
acquired under these laws." Art. 104: "Whoever commits an act directed 
to the placing of the state or a part of it under the dominion of a foreigner, 
or to diminishing its independence, or to breaking up its unity, is punished 
with imprisonment." 

The fear of the movement going on in Italy for the restora- 
tion of the temporal power has driven the lawgivers of the king- 
dom to enact these tyrannical laws to punish the priest or bishop 
who, in the discharge of his duty, is bound to condemn laws 
that are anti-Christian, and public acts 'which violate the sacred 
rights and liberty of the successor of St. Peter, or destroy the 
influence over his people of him whom all Catholics regard and 
believe to be the Vicar of Christ. These laws are an answer to 
the demonstrations which were evoked by the wonderful Jubilee 
of Pope Leo XIII., in which, we may say, all the sovereigns and 
peoples of the earth joined. The moral force of the Papacy has 
at last caught up with the " moral force " of the Revolution, and 
these laws show that spirit of desperation which confesses ^ the 
iminence of defeat. 

But of all events which have occurred to show the hatred 
id fear of the power of the Pope, not only as a claimant of the 
imporal power but as head of the Catholic Church, the late 
)theosis of the pantheist Giordano Bruno, in Rome, as a 
mnter demonstration against the Pope's Jubilee, and against 
;vealed religion, towers above all for the manner in which the 
'hole infidel world was invited to take part in it, and by the 
it did so by subscriptions to pay for the statue and by the 
:ual presence of representatives. It finds its parallel only in 
le so-called Feast of Reason in the French Revolution, when a 
irtesan as Goddess of Reason was installed in the cathedral of 
fotre Dame, in Paris. This public worship of Giordano Bruno 
las served to arouse the attention of Catholics the world over, 
id make them realize that the battle going on in Rome is 
>etween Freemasonry and the religion of Christ, and see that the 
time has come to raise their voice against this state of things, 
and claim for the Pope his temporal power, of which he has 
been wrongfully despoiled, and which alone can save him and 



216 THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. [Nov., 

the Church of Rome from the present deplorable condition of 
things. Let us hear what the Holy Father himself has to say 
on this demonstration of his enemies. In his allocution pro- 
nounced to the cardinals on the 3Oth of June last he tells what 
occurred, facts which have already been made known through 
the press. 

The Holy Father begins by saying that after the taking of 
Rome by the present government our holy religion and the 
Apostolic See have been subjected to a long series of acts of 
injustice, but that the secret societies intend shortly to do worse 
things which hitherto they. were not able to accomplish. They 
have obstinately determined to impose upon the chief city of 
Catholicity a rule of distinctively profane character and one of 
impiety, directing against this citadel of the faith the hatred of 
the world. He then illustrates this by the fact of the erection of 
the statue to Giordano Bruno in Rome. " Of a truth," he says, 
" as if they had not brought about ruin enough during these 
past years, see how they try to outdo themselves in audacity, 
and on one of the holiest days in the Christian year they erect 
in public a monument by which a spirit of contumacy towards 
the church is commended to posterity ; and assert their will to 
wage a decisive war with the Catholic faith." " They honor a 
man twice a fugitive, judicially convicted of heresy, whose per- 
tinacjty against the church ended only with his last breath. In 
fact it was exactly for this that they gave him distinction." " He 
had no remarkable knowledge; for his writings show him to 
have been a pantheist and materialist entangled in common 
errors, and not seldom in contradiction with himself." " He was 
not a virtuous man, but a very bad one ; a man of no public 
merit, but deceitful, mendacious, selfish, intolerant of others, a 
flatterer, of abject mind and evil disposition. The scope of these 
honors to such a man, the language describing them is this: life is 
to be led without regard to revelation, and the minds of men are 
to be entirely emancipated from the power of Jesus Christ. This 
aim of those who honored Bruno is the same as that of the 
secret societies which are striving to alienate whole peoples from 
God, and fight with infinite hate and unceasing strife against the 
church and the Roman Pontificate." "That this insult might be 
the more marked and its cause more widely known, they resolved 
to celebrate the dedication with great pomp and with a great 
concourse of people. During those days Rome saw within her 
walls a multitude of no mean proportions called hither from 
everywhere ; banners most hostile to religion impudently carried 



1889.] THE TEMPORAL POWER OF THE POPE. 217 

about; and, what is especially revolting, there were not wanting 
some with figures of the evil one, who refused to be subject to 
the Most High in heaven, the prince of the seditious and the 
instigator of all rebellions. To this wicked crime was added the 
insolence of the speeches delivered and of the articles in the 
press, in which the holiness of what is most sacred was made a 
jest of without shame and without measure, while that lawless 
freedom of thought was vehemently extolled which is the fertile 
source of evil opinions, and which shakes the foundation of disci- 
pline and of civil order while striking at Christian morality. 
This sad work was allowed to be prepared long before, and 
perfected, those who are in authority not only knowing it, but 
continually and openly giving it favor and incitement. It is a 
sad thing to say, and like unto a portent, that the praise of 
reason rebelling against God should be heralded from this foster- 
ing city of the faith in which God has placed his Vicar to dwell ; 
and, whence the whole world is wont to seek the uncorrupted 
precepts of the gospel and counsels of salvation, there, by an evil 
change, foul errors and heresy itself are consecrated with monu- 
ments. To this have the times led that we should see the 
abomination of desolation in the holy place" 

We do not wish to detract from the eloquence and power of 
the representation of the Holy Father in this remarkable allocu- 
tion by any comment of ours. What is here said shows unmis- 
takably the state of things and the nature of the " hostile 
domination " under which the Pope lives. For Catholics every- 
where the contest is for their home pro aris et focis. The 
determined foe is there, and he must be put out. The Sov- 
ereign Pontiff claims his liberty and independence through the 
temporal power, and more than once the voices of the epis- 
copate and of the noble-hearted Catholic laity have re-echoed his 
words. Oar duty is to aid him as we may, and since it may 
not be possible for us to help in any other way, we should 
contribute to strengthen by our prayers, our sympathy, and our 
words of loyalty that moral force which is rising like a tidal 
wave, in its own moment to do the augean work of cleansing 
the chosen citadel of the faith of what now defiles it. 

FRANCIS SILAS CHATARD. 

Indianapolis i Ind, 



218 FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Nov., 

FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. II. 

V. 

THE second public session of the congress was no less inter- 
esting than the first. The Marquis of Vadillo, professor of law 
in the University of Madrid, delivered an address, which was 
warmly applauded, in which he proved, with all the vigor of a 
logical and learned lawyer and scholar, that " the rights of St. 
Peter's successor to temporal sovereignty are indefeasible." " Why 
are they subject to no lapse ? " said the orator ; because, against 
all that constitutes an essential right of the institution in question, 
exactly as in the case of an essential right of a human being, 
there can never be recognized any limitation or bar. Who would 
venture to assert, for instance, that because during many years, 
nay, during centuries, human slavery existed that it ever involved 
a lapse of the essential rights inherent to human nature, its dignity, 
and its liberty ? After this address four papers were read in the 
following order : One by Senor Lopez Novoa, precentor of Huesca, 
relative to the " Hermanitas de los Ancianos Desamparados " 
(Little Sisters of the Destitute Aged), established by himself in 
1872, numbering to-day eight houses in Spain, and whose work 
is the same as that of the Little Sisters of the Poor. The second 
paper was read by Senor Aranar, prebendary of Saragossa, on 
"The Rights of the Church in regard to Public Education," con- 
taining an interesting statement of facts and statistics showing the 
moral ravages resulting from bad education. Senor Laredo, also 
a priest, read an interesting account of the " Catholic Schools of 
Madrid," founded in 1870, supporting at present thirty- three 
schools in the most neglected suburbs of that city, in which four 
thousand children are being educated, and six hundred yearly 
prepared for first Communion. Finally Senor Lajuente, professor 
in the Madrid University, read an extract from a voluminous work 
written by him on the subject of " Devotion to the Holy Virgin 
and her Prerogatives, as proved by the Works of Ancient Art." 
His erudition, eloquence, and research were much applauded. 

VI. 

The third session opened, as the former ones, with numerous 
telegrams of adherence, two of which, from the two congresses of 



1889.] 



FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 



219 



Oporto and Vienna, in session at the same time, were welcomed 
with particular satisfaction. Senor Vogel ascended the tribune, 
and as a representative of the German Catholic press read a message 
which was warmly applauded, mainly on account of a passage to 
this effect : " When it comes to the common interest which 
we Catholics all have in defending our rights and showing our- 
selves united in love and obedience to the church and the pope, 
the distinctive nationalities of French, English, German, or Spanish 
cease to exist." The Cardinal-President replied to this speech 
with deserved praise of the German Catholics, whose prudent and 
courageous behavior has put an end to the Kulturkampf. He pro- 
claimed the union of Catholics throughout the whole world in 
love for Jesus Christ, in profession of one faith under the guidance 
of one shepherd, and in a firm desire to bring about the social 
reign of our blessed Redeemer. Senor Orti y Lara, professor of 
metaphysics in the Madrid University, read a discourse on the 
"Temporal Power of the Pope." He demonstrated, logically and 
philosophically, that the subjection of a superior authority such as 
that of the pope to an inferior one of a secular prince involves 
a contradiction. " Let senators and deputies," he said, " be 
elected who will pledge themselves to defend the pope's temporal 
power." This address was greeted with encouraging applause. 

Being unable to attend the congress, the learned Cardinal San 
Zeferino Gonzales, who belongs to that foremost rank of philoso- 
phers which is an honor to Europe, was desirous of contributing to 
the work of his learned colleagues in the assembly by an address 
worthy of his high ability. His thesis was on " The Time 
elapsed since Adam and Eve appeared on Earth." Prehistoric 
theories cannot affirm, on any substantial grounds, anything con- 
trary to the Mosaic narrative of the creation of the world and the 
antiquity of man, nor have they, up to the present time, furnished 
sufficient reasons for asserting the existence of the tertiary man. 
It is quite impossible to make selections from the speech, because 
it is throughout a marvel of learning. " However much," his 
Eminence said, " geological science may have progressed, it cannot 
yet determine with precision how old the world is; and the so-called 
scientists who have tried to do so have made themselves ridiculous. 
They have even gone so far as to assert that the domestication 
of the horse occurred nineteen thousand three hundred and thirty- 
seven years ago that is to say, in the one hundred and ninety- 
fourth century before Christ; but they cannot say in what year 
the reindeer migrated from southern to arctic regions, nor when 
the elephant disappeared from the southern part of our Spain." 






220 FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Nov., 

The learned cardinal nevertheless rejoices at the progress which 
geology has made, and hopes that the union of all such labors 
will result in solid elements for the advancement of science. 

This session closed with a discourse from the Marquis de 
Valle-Ameno, professor of political economy at Saragossa, in 
which he demonstrated that the Catholic Church blesses the de- 
velopment of industry and commerce, and alone can indicate the 
legitimate place they must occupy in social life. "The church," ex- 
claimed the young professor, " does not nor ever has condemned fair 
profits ; she condemns abuse in that respect as in all other things, 
and is opposed to mercantilism, so-called, which degrades nations, 
because, having for its motive money-greed, it stifles in souls 
every noble aspiration, and withers the bloom of every generous 
nature." 

VII. 

The sittings of the congress, far from becoming languid, as 
frequently happens in such assemblies, kept on exciting more and 
more interest. At the fourth, held on the 29th of April, Senor 
Murua, canon of Cadiz, read an address in which .he learnedly 
and eloquently advocated international arbitration by the Roman 
pontiffs, because of their constant love for justice and of the truth 
which has always conspicuously shone forth in their decisions. 
After having laid stress on the great naval and military arma- 
ments now constituting an unbearable burden for nations, the 
orator exclaimed : " And who is qualified to intervene between 
armed nations, in order to avert the terrible shock which threa- 
tens to involve Europe in its horrible whirlwinds of destruction ? 
Only the church, and consequently the pope ; first, because his 
power is the oldest existing at present on earth, and is the constant 
protector of all others ; secondly, on account of the sacred charac- 
ter with which it is invested in the eyes of all other national 
governments." 

Next, Senor Uribe, rector of a church in Madrid, read an 
account of an ancient institution at present existing in Madrid, 
known as " The Congregation of Native Priests of St. Peter," 
which is devoted to the relief of poor and sick priests. Since its 
foundation the number of such relieved in the hospital established 
by the congregation has amounted to two thousand one hundred, 
and would have been greater but for the aversion which persons 
of good social position have to entering hospital, and also the im- 
pression of many that only priests natives of Madrid were assisted. 

A learned professor of Barcelona, Senor Donadio, read an 



1889.] FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 221 

address, proving by solid arguments from Catholic philosophy 
that, " though liberty really exalts man above all other beings on 
earth, it does not make him independent of law." The address 
was in two parts : in the first the speaker studied and defined 
the true conception of individual liberty as against the errors of 
positivism and fatalism in all ages of the world ; and in the 
second part he treats of the idea of liberty in nations, and refutes 
liberalism, in accordance with the teachings of the encyclical 
Libertas of Leo XIII. 

Senor Butamonte, the principal of a college, discoursed on the 
means for rendering effective the rights of fathers of family in 
the matter of the education of their children, and for enabling 
them to discharge their duty in that regard. The reasoning of 
this illustrious professor is irrefutable against the monopoly of 
education by the state. He shows the moral havoc caused by 
education without religion. "The will of youth," he argued, 
" remains untrained ; there is no awakening .in it of a taste and 
inclination towards that moral good which it should practise ; the 
noble sentiments of the soul, which should constitute its moral 
character, fail to develop, and even the tenderest affections, 
through want of a fertile soil in which to strike deep root, remain 
exposed, to perish by the lightest breath of sensuality." 

This sitting ended with a memoir by Senor Marquis del Busto, 
on the " Origin, Benefits, and actual Condition of the Congrega- 
tion of the Oblate Brothers," for the reformation of young people, 
an institution founded by a Benedictine monk, titular Bishop of 
Daulia, who not long ago passed away to a better life. 

VIII. 

The fifth session was held on the 3Oth of April. It com- 
menced with an address by Senor Uiliguez, a learned professor of 
sciences, having for its purpose to demonstrate the incompatibility 
of positivism with science. " Science," he said, " entirely free on 
its own ground, must ever remember that there is something 
superior to it, something which, far from presenting obstacles to 
its development, serves really as a luminous beacon-light." He 
next went into a conscientious criticism of the materialist and 
positivist schools, severely censuring that scientific humbug called 
spontaneous generation. Astronomy, to the study of which he is 
devoted, was termed by him the most perfect of sciences, because 
founded upon the Newtonian theories of universal gravitation, while 
the others, inclusive of optics and thermo-dynamics, are based 



222 FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Nov., 

only on postulate ; his object being to show thereby how little 
solidity has so far been reached by human sciences. He after- 
wards took up the famed theory of Laplace, and thought that in 
the irresoluble nebular hypothesis claimed by that French savant 
to be the origin of the cosmic world the believer can see the 
first act of Divine Power. Giving next his attention to the 
genesis of our globe, he agrees with Newton that any liquid mass 
submitted to a violent rotary motion ultimately adopts the sphe- 
rical form. He brought out finally various other arguments, all 
of them strong, scientific, and presented in a novel form, in order 
to arrive at the conclusion that it is necessary to admit a pri- 
mary cause, external to the world, which gave the world birth, 
and which, through infinite power and adorable providence, con- 
tinues to preserve it. 

This splendid address was followed by another, very short but 
pleasing and practical, of Senor Valentin Gomez, a dramatic poet 
and a Catholic publicist. It embraced a criticism of the modern 
stage from a Christian standpoint, and an explanatory statement 
of the duties of Catholics in reference to fhe enjoyment of thea- 
trical performances. He drew the following conclusions: ist. That 
governments should be required to establish a censorship for the 
purpose of prohibiting, as far as present precarious legal means 
will allow, the performance of such dramatic works as by their 
plot, literary form, or the display wherewith they are put on the 
stage are injurious to morality. 2d. That Catholic papers should 
not advertise or recommend any theatre in which such perform- 
ances are given, and that they should zealously and unceasingly 
contend against the abominable tendencies of such theatrical litera- 
ture, using to that end sensible and conscientious criticisms. 

The dean of the faculty of law of the University of Valladolid 
next had the floor. He examined, and with great ability, posi- 
tivism in its relations to the penal laws. After having narrated 
the history of positivism, he attacked the penal anthropological 
school as opposed to sound philosophy, and concluded by assert- 
ing that if such absurd principles succeeded in getting admittance 
into the camp of science, there would be no longer peace for 
society nor tranquillity among nations. 

This interesting session closed with a learned address of the 
well-known geologist, Senor Vilanova, who has taken so large a 
part in scientific congresses of Europe. His theme was similar to 
that already developed in the third session by Cardinal Gonzales, 
but he managed to give it such a new aspect and to render it so 
experimental that it was very interesting. 



1889.] FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 

IX. 



223 






The sixth session opened on the 1st of May. It began with 
a learned address from the dignified canon of Valladolid, Senor 
Jerreiroa, author of a history of the popes. He chose for his sub- 
ject, " The Greatnesses of the Papacy and the Benefits conferred by 
it upon the World." His discourse met with deserved applause. 

Another professor of the faculty of law in the University of 
Madrid, Sefior Torres Aguilar, read an address in which he took 
up the same topic before treated by the Marquis de Vadillo, the 
rights of the Papacy. This may be considered one of the best 
of the many papers read in the congress, in view of the temperance 
in tone, energy in arguments, and classical correctness of style. 

The learned professor of medicine, Marquis del Busto, followed, 
and presented the following thesis : " The human soul is neither 
a function of the brain nor of the spinal marrow, and still less a 
result of physical and chemical forces, but rather a spiritual and 
immortal substance, entirely independent of the body." He began 
by stating that he had come to the congress as a Catholic, a 
Spaniard, a physician, and a professor, in order to give evidence 
of his faith and patriotism, to protest against that opinion which 
supposes physicians to be materialists, and also to give his pupils 
practical examples of the doctrines he teaches them. These de- 
clarations called forth great applause. In the name of medical 
science he made a strong attack on materialism ; he dwelt upon 
the light shed upon science by the spiritual school, which he 
claimed is the only one that can satisfactorily explain the myste- 
ries of the brain and the marvels of thought. The novelty of his 
reasoning, founded on anatomy and physiology, secured the ad- 
miration of his professional colleagues themselves, who were very 
numerous in the hall, and brought out enthusiastic applause from 
the whole audience. 

This session was closed by the Dean of Zamora with the 
reading of a learned paper, in which he fully demonstrated that 
the church is the real depository of truth, and by divine right 
the only infallible teacher. 

X. 

The seventh session, held on the 2d of May, was of varied 
interest. The opening discourse by the deputy to the Cortes, 
Senor Sanchez Toca, bore on several questions relative to the 
teaching of youth. He ended by demanding the enactment of a 
law which would make teaching free in reality. 



224 FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Nov., 

Amidst thundering applause that wonderful man, Senor 
Menendez Pelayo, ascended the tribune. At twenty years of 
age he was a marvel of learning; three years later he obtained, 
after successful competition, a professorship in the faculty of 
letters, and to-day, when in his thirtieth year, he is a member 
of all the academies in Madrid and the admiration of the entire 
learned world. The subject of his address was the "Theological 
and Philosophical Schools of Spain." It ended by an appeal for 
the study of Spanish philosophers and theologians. "We may 
make use," he said, " of foreign philosophic teachings, but subject 
to very prudential control, because our own form an inexhaustible 
source for all our needs, and we should make theology the golden 
axis around which the whole organism of our knowledge should 
revolve." The enthusiasm caused by this speech was wonderful. 
It alone would have sufficed to prove the Catholic Congress a success. 

The Marquis of Lerna read a very interesting and opportune 
paper on the relations of the Catholic Church with all other tem- 
poral powers. 

The proceedings of the day closed with an essay on religious 
music by the illustrious composer and academician, Senor Bar- 
bieri. After a brilliant historical excursion through the field of 
sacred music, to show the protection which the church has 
always granted it, he made an eloquent vindication of the Grego- 
rian chant as being the best adapted to the solemn majesty of 
divine worship, and he expressed' ardent prayers for the return 
of those times when the Spanish cathedrals were real conserva- 
tories of music, when the art was professed and taught with 
classic severity and without forgetting its glorious traditions, and 
when those singing-schools of young men were organized which 
were a prolific nursery of famous musicians. He concluded by 
saying that the church has been the queen and mistress of 
the art of music, and that it should be our care to prevent her 
from becoming a slave to bad taste and the profanations prevail- 
ing in our day. 

XI. 

The eighth and last session was a worthy crowning of the 
edifice. After the reading by Senor Orti y Lara of a paper on 
the necessity of founding a Catholic university, and after another 
discourse by a professor of primary instruction upon the impor- 
tance of religion in the education of youth, the tribune was 
taken by the celebrated orator and ex-minister of the crown, 
Senor Pidal y Mon, who delivered an admirable address, in which 



1889.] FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 225 

he showed, by most solid and profound arguments obtainable from 
philosophy, " the false idea of God entertained by those contem- 
poraneous philosophical schools which have separated themselves 
from Catholic truth." From this speech also it is impossible to 
select extracts. One passage was loudly applauded : "The scien- 
tist who has given himself his own diploma of learning pro- 
claims from the height of his professorial chair, ' God does not 
exist.' This declaration the magistrate listens to with amazement, 
and, interpreting it according to his conscience, exclaims, 'There is 
no suck thing as justice' ; it reaches the ears of the criminal, who 
says to himself, ' There is no such thing as crime ' ; the youth 
blessed with family training hears it, and logically concludes that 
'There is no such thing as virtue* ; it comes to the knowledge of 
the governed, and they think ' There is no such thing as au- 
thority ' / the ambitious conqueror meditates on it, and says, ' Let 
us seize Rome and despoil the Vicar of Christ ' ; and when the 
teaching finds its way down into the depths w r here misery excites 
every instinct of rebellion and concupiscence, 'We don't want to 
hear talk about God, nor future life, nor heaven, men cry out ; 
"science tells us that these are a dream and a lie. We don't want 
them ; what we ask for is hell, nonentity, but . . . with as much 
-enjoyment as may be had beforehand.' " 

It had been intended to give a popular musical festival on 
the 4th of May, but such was the throng seeking admittance 
that the gravest fears of accident were entertained, and the fes- 
tival was postponed. 

On the day following a Mass of thanks was celebrated in the 
edral, at which the Archbishop of Valladolid preached, and 
with this religious and solemn act the congress, which has filled 
the Pope with joy and the Spanish Catholics with legitimate 
satisfaction, was closed. 

K3n the roth the official organ of the congress published the 
lutions finally adopted, an abstract of which is as follows : 
1st. The congress resolves first, and before everything else, the 
nee of truth in Spain, which is comprised in the social reign 
of Jesus Christ. To this end it will work unceasingly to bring 
about the re-establishment of Catholic unity in our country; to 
fill our lives with the spirit of the church, and to make justice 
the rule of our legislation and the unalterable rule of our social life. 
2d. This relates to the paramount importance of the temporal 
sovereignty of the Pope for insuring his dignity, independence, 
and liberty in the government of the Universal Church, and pro- 
claims the unanimous vote of the congress that the Roman ques- 
VOL. i.. 15 



226 FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. [Nov., 

tion, far from being an internal Italian one, is, on the contrary, 
one which deeply concerns entire Catholic Christendom. 

3d." The congress asserts and maintains the undeniable right of 
the church to direct and supervise teaching in all Spanish public 
and private institutions of learning, in order to prevent anything 
contrary to Catholic dogma and morals from being taught therein, 
which right is recognized by the Concordat of 1851 and the 
Constitution now in force. 

4th. The state being Catholic, is bound to assist and defend 
the church in the exercise of the right aforesaid. 

5th. The congress considers the rights of the church to suffer 
grave prejudice on the part of the state, because of the mono- 
poly and secularization of teaching ; of the suppression of moral 
and religious instruction in educational institutions, and of making 
these branches in normal schools subordinate and accessory ; of 
not protecting children attending primary schools from the influ- 
ence of teachers who either refuse to teach Christian doctrine, or 
actually teach heterodoxy, or who set bad example by manifesta- 
tions of impiety and irreligion ; of not enforcing the precepts of 
the church in regard to the prohibition of books and teachings 
opposed to good morals and sound doctrine, and of permitting 
immoral and irreligious books in the libraries of educational insti- 
tutions, and to be even distributed as premiums. 

6th and /th. The undoubted right and duty of Catholic parents 
to instruct their children in conformity with the doctrines of the 
Catholic Church ; hence their right to require, as tax-payers, from 
the state, which is Catholic, that all official instruction shall be in 
every respect Catholic in its character, and that neutral, secular, 
or atheistical schools in which anti- Christian doctrines are taught 
shall neither be established nor subsidized by any authority, 
whether state, provincial, or municipal; this requirement being in 
accordance with the existing constitution, which, while it tolerates 
personal dissenting worship, does not authorize public education 
injurious to religion. 

8th. The congress denies, in carefully stated terms, the pos- 
sibility of any conflict between religion, and science, points out 
the need for the study of the science of metaphysics, and for the 
establishment of professorships of logic and psychology, to be con- 
ducted in harmony with the spirit of the encyclical ALtcrni Patris. 

9th. Urges Spanish artists to keep to the path of pure Spanish 
Christian art. 

loth. Relates to the establishment of a central council in 
Madrid, composed of the bishop of that city as president, and 
such other members as he may appoint, which shall have in 



1889.] FIRST CATHOLIC CONGRESS OF SPAIN. 227 

charge to look after the public interests of religion until the next 
congress meets, and by agreement with bishops of other dioceses, 
to establish ancillary councils therein. 

nth. Recommends the establishment of a Catholic daily paper 
for the special end of defending Catholic interests. 

1 2th. Calls on the charitable faithful not to abate their zeal in 
the support of existing charitable institutions, nor in the estab- 
lishment of new ones where needed. 

1 3th. Implores owners of manufactories to take, as a few of 
them do, measures for promoting the spiritual good of the oper- 
atives in their employ, and to prevent blasphemy among them, 
having recourse if necessary to the provisions of the penal code. 

1 4th. Relates to obtaining from the government the enforce- 
ment of the observance of Sundays and festivals by punishing 
offenders who profane them, to repress the licentiousness of the 
irreligious press, and prevent the circulation of shameless pictures 
and caricatures. 

1 5th. While thanking God for the well-known temperate habits 
of Spaniards, the congress believes that the state should do some- 
thing for checking the abuse of drink by exercising supervision 
over drinking-saloons, seeing that they are closed at a stated hour 
of the night, that prohibited games are not carried on therein, 
and by stopping all immoral performances and concerts. 

1 6th. Expresses fullest sympathy with the charitable purpose 
our Holy Father Leo XIII. for the extirpation of slavery, par- 
ticularly on the African continent, and hopes that Spain will give 
e efforts of Cardinal Lavigerie generous and earnest support. 

1 7th. Provides for printing and publishing the addresses and 

ers read at the congress, as also the resolutions adopted. 

In conclusion, the first Catholic Congress of Spain is declared 
adjourned ; thanks are offered to Heaven for the success it has 
had ; expressions of gratitude are tendered to the Holy Father 
for the encouragement with which it has been favored by him, 
d next year is appointed for the meeting of the Second Cath- 
c Congress, in the church of El Pilar, at Saragossa. 

I have now brought to an end my narrative of the Spanish 
Catholic Congress, in which I have left facts to speak for them- 
Ives, and have been moderate in comments and praises. 

What remains is that the tree which has been so well planted 
shall be equally well cultivated. Let us hope that Spain, shaking- 
off the indifference to which she has been reduced by the sterile 
contests and divisions among her Catholic people, shall regain her 
place in the vanguard of the Catholic nations of the world. 

Madrid, May 20. MANUEL PEREZ VlLLAMIL. 




for 

= 

C; 
sr 

_j: 



228 MY PURITAN. [Nov., 



MY PURITAN. 

MY Puritan, I love thee well ; 

Our souls are near akin, 
Far closer knit than words can tell, 

For love is most within. 
Thou art not of that sturdy race 
Who dared the seas and turned their face 

A sterile soil to win ; 
Their pains and courage I admire, 
But thou hast set my heart on fire. 

I scarce had thought that love would e'er 
Spring in my soul and flower, 

And least of all was I aware 

Twould hold me with such power. 

And yet I'd cast it from my heart, 

And bid my Puritan depart, 

In that same day and hour 

Wherein I found my hopes deceived 

His worth not that I had believed. 

What is it that has wrung from me 

The tribute of my love ? 
What but that fine nobility 

That lifts and keeps above 
The crowds that surge, and sway, and pass, 
An unaspiring, heedless mass? 

Tis this in thee I love; 
Tis this that makes thee more the man, 
For this I call thee Puritan. 

The chains of earth enthrall thee not, 

A rare, pure soul is thine, 
Whose destiny is ne'er forgot 

That it should be divine, 
And scorn to throw its love away 
On flowers that blossom for a day 

And die with day's decline. 
Thy bosom Truth and Strength possess, 
And Peace gives thee His blest caress. 



& 

: 



z 



1889.] A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 229 



A CENTURY -OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 

So frequently do we hear of the undue favoritism to the 
Catholic Church in this country many people have come to be- 
lieve that here at least it is, and ever has been, the pampered 
child of a dotingly paternal government. They imagine that at 
the conquest the church of Quebec, the mother-ciiurch of Canada, 
well nurtured by France, passed under the civil jurisdiction of 
England robustly developed and hedged about by invulnerable 
treaty stipulations, which have invariably been most liberally con- 
strued. Such, however, is not the case. Even under the French 
regime the church was not altogether untrammelled. The evil in- 
fluence of Madame Pompadour was not confined to France. We 
read that the "system of vexatious trickery organized against the 
church and the people of the country by some of the chief and 
subordinate officials sent out by the court of Louis XV." * was 
such that Bishop Briand, the incumbent of the see of Quebec at 
the date of capitulation, did not weep over the result, as he, in 
the words of Mgr. Plessis, " perceived that religion herself would 
gain by the change of domination." 

But the effect of treaties, like that of statutes, depends very 
uch on the interpretation ; and the nature of the interpretation 
contingent upon the predisposition of those in authority. The 
proximate consequences of the change scarcely justified Mgr. 
Hand's expectations, though the ultimate result, no doubt, has 
en in accord with his hope. The treaty of 1763 provided for 
e free exercise of the Catholic religion in Canada in so far as 
compatible with the laws of Great Britain. That was not 
ry far. The proviso gave a dangerous latitude to those charged 
ith the conduct of public affairs in the new colony ; and in the 
rly days they were, as Governor Murray said, " a most immoral 
collection of men " men who had come to lord it over the con- 
uered, and who were not at all disposed to put a liberal con- 
uction upon the provisions of the treaty. The Imperial Act 
of 1774 subjected the church in Canada to the royal supremacy 
and handed it over to the tender mercies of those men, whose 
great desire was to make the church a creature of the state and 
the colony Protestant. The American Revolution cooled their 
ardor. During the war, and for some time after, the Catholic 

* Life of Bishop Plessis, by Abbd Ferland. 



230 A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. [Nov., 

bishop and priests were allowed to exercise their functions in 
comparative peace. In 1799, however, renewed efforts were made 
by the colonial' authorities to destroy the authority of the bishop, 
to control the appointment of parish priests, and to get the schools 
into their hands. From the time of the conquest the primary 
schools were mainly supported by the Jesuit endowments, but in 

1800 the government seized the property of the society, and thus 
closed the schools. Much of what was taken from the schools 
went, as Catholic ecclesiastical property had gone before, to the 
maintenance of Protestant worship. A great effort was made to 
get possession of the estates of the Society of St. Sulpice for the 
purpose of founding an educational institution. Then, as now, 
it was clearly perceived that the most effectual way of undermin- 
ing the faith of the people was by controlling the schools. In 

1 80 1 a law for the encouragement of public instruction was promul- 
gated with a flourish of trumpets and many protestations of a 
righteous desire to promote the welfare of the people by supply- 
ing more efficient schools than those the church had established 
and the state had closed. By this law was created what might be 
called a board of education, consisting chiefly of Protestants, with 
the Anglican bishop as president. The Protestants at that time 
were two and one-half per centum of the population. The follow- 
ing extract from a letter* written by an official of the colonial 
government gives a good idea of the spirit which actuated the ad- 
ministration : 

"I have long since laid it down as a principle (which in my judgment no 
governor of this province ought to lose sight of for a moment), by every possible 
means which prudence can suggest, gradually to undermine the authority and 
influence of the Roman Catholic priests. This great, this highest object that a 
governor can have . . . may be accomplished before ten years shall have passed 
over. . . . The instructions of his Majesty, by which it is ordered that no per- 
son in this province shall have the cure of souls but by virtue of a license under 
the governor's hand and seal, . . . once followed up, the king's supremacy 
would be established, the authority of the Pope would be abolished, and the 
country would become Protestant. 

"We have been mad enough to allow a company of French rascals to de- 
prive us for the moment of the means of accomplishing all this, but one prudent, 
decisive step might rectify this absurdity. In all events I would advise every 
governor of this province most scrupulously to follow the same line of conduct 
which has established so widely the authority of the Pope of Rome, to avail 
themselves of every advantage that can possibly occur, and never to give up an 
inch but with the certainty of gaining an ell." 

This gentleman in his communication used the term "popish 
clergy," and, as an apology for the employment of the not very 

* Letter of Mr. Ryland, 23d December, 1804. Christie's History of Lower Canada, vol. vi. 



1889.] A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 231 

classical adjective, he wrote : "I call them popish to distinguish 
them from the clergy of the Established Church, and to express 
my contempt and detestation of a religion which sinks and debases 
the human mind and which is a curse to every country where it 
prevails." 

At an anterior date the Anglican bishop, Dr. Mountain, who 
had been given the mitre in England and despatched to Canada 
as Bishop of Quebec, chagrined at the comparative failure of the 
efforts to annihilate the church of the people, wrote thus to Lord 
Hobart, the colonial secretary, at London : " While the superin- 
tendent of the Roman Church assumes the title of Bishop of 
Quebec, he, as well as his clergy, studiously denies that title to 
the Protestant bishop ; he has the absolute disposal of all the 
preferments in the diocese ; he erects parishes and grants dispen- 
sations for marrying at his discretion, etc., etc.; all of which 
functions are clearly contrary to the royal instructions, and all 
of which are denied to the Protestant bishop." 

Such was the animus of the governing authorities when Mgr. 
Plessis became Bishop of Quebec ; and it would be impossible to 
give a better picture of the condition of the church at that time 
than is conveyed in this extract from a letter addressed by the 
bishop to a friend in London in 1806: " Examine the map and 
you will perceive the impossibility of a single bishop extending 
his solicitude with any success from Lake Superior to the Gulf 
of St. Lawrence. That space contains more than 200,000 Catho- 
and yet there are only 180 priests to supply all their wants, 
idd to that their numerous difficulties from their entanglement 
dth a Protestant population, and the constant vigilance necessary 
avoid being compromised with a government which views 
tings only through the medium of its own principles and is con- 
itly making some new effort to establish the supremacy of the 
mg." 

In 1807 the good bishop, weary with constant conflict and 
iscouraged by what seemed insurmountable obstacles to the suc- 
>s of his work, acknowledged to a friend that human resources 
tiled him, and that he scarcely hoped for any amelioration 
rom appealing to the treaty stipulations. The colonial office in 
-ngland was being urged to inaugurate a vigorous anti-papal 
)licy ; and Dr. Mountain himself repaired to London, and in 
lany conferences with the ministers pressed that the grievances 
)f which he complained in his letter to Lord Hobart might be 
removed, and that he might be made in Canada monarch, as to 
things ecclesiastical, of all he surveyed. Help came from a quar- 



232 A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. [Nov., 

ter whence it was least expected. Lord Castlereagh, in a memo- 
randum on the situation in Canada, gave it as his opinion that 
the law secured to Canadian Catholics the free exercise of their 
religion, and to their clergy their accustomed dues and rights, 
subject to the royal supremacy ; that as the Bishop of Quebec, 
who was not a foreigner, was the head of the church in Can- 
ada, his jurisdiction was not opposed to the Act of Supremacy, 
and that it would be a very delicate undertaking , to interfere 
with the Catholic religion in Canada. It need hardly be said 
that it was no sense of justice which impelled this noble lord 
not to apply his Irish formula in the New World. The storm 
brewing at Washington dictated his course. But even this did not 
effect a truce. The conflict continued. Governor Craig, who ar- 
rived in 1807, placed himself in the hands of his advisers men 
who had come to Canada to make an Ireland of Quebec ; and 
the opposition to the church continued. Owing to the exigencies 
of the times, however, the plan of attack was somewhat modified, 
or, rather, a more insidious scheme was adopted. The govern- . 
ment was prepared to fully recognize the episcopal authority of 
the Catholic bishop, to confirm him in his see by commission 
from the king, and even to secure him a revenue, if the gov- 
ernment were accorded the privilege of nominating the parish 
priests, which privilege, it was believed, "would insensibly oper- 
ate in effectually undermining the people's religious faith." 

Writing in 1811, Bishop Plessis gave the following account of 
a conference had with Sir James Craig : " Yesterday I had a con- 
versation with his excellency the governor, which lasted one 
hour and three-quarters, in which he exhausted himself, and me 
also, in speaking, without our being able to fall into accord upon 
the only point that was agitated, to wit : the nomination to 
cures. He viewed it obstinately as a civil affair, and as a pre- 
rogative of the crown which it would never abandon." 

The war of 1812, like the War of Independence, acted as a 
sedative, of a mild and transient kind, to the anti-Catholicism of 
the colonial officials. After the Revolution Sir Guy Carleton de- 
clared that the Catholic priests preserved the Province of Quebec 
to the crown. In the interval of peace the clergy were attacked 
and their loyalty questioned. In 1813 an official despatch was 
transmitted to the governor of Quebec, informing him that "his 
Royal Highness, the prince regent, in the name of his Majesty," 
desired that one thousand pounds should thereafter be the allow- 
ance of the Catholic Bishop of Quebec, " as a testimony rendered 
to the loyalty and good conduct of the gentleman ... as well 



1889] 



A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 



233 



as of the other members of the Catholic clergy of the province." 
Still there was a little lump of the old leaven left. 

It had been for many years the desire of the Bishop of Quebec 
to have his vast diocese subdivided. The church, which in the 
earlier days could easily be ruled by one ordinary and a co- 
adjutor, had grown with the country. One can now scarcely 
realize how Bishop Plessis, who had to be ever on the alert to 
defend his church from the premeditated assaults of the civil au- 
thorities, who was striving to develop two or three small semi- 
naries for the training of much-needed priests, and endeavoring 
to supply the wants of scattered and very differently circum- 
stanced missions from the Atlantic to the Pacific, and from the 
great lakes to the islands of the Gulf of St. Lawrence, could 
undertake a journey to distant Prince Edward Island, Cape Breton, 
and the Magdalens, visiting en route the scattered settlements of 
Acadians, and then making his way as best he could to the faith- 
ful who were grouped at different points in the virgin forest of 
Upper Canada. No wonder he sought relief. When the crozier 
was placed in his hand he braced himself for unremitting toil, for 
trials and tribulations. But the burden was more than one man 
could bear. The zealous pastor bent beneath it and cried for 
help. Rome was prepared, but another power had to be con- 
sulted. In those days it was absolutely necessary to obtain the 
consent of the civil authorities to the erection of new sees ; and, 
although after years of useless struggling they were compelled by 
circumstances to recognize the Ordinary of Quebec, they seemed 
determined to have no more Catholic bishops, at least with native 
titles, in the British half of the continent. In 1817 the Bishop of 
Quebec was relieved of the charge of Nova Scotia, which was 
made an apostolic vicariate and confided to the care of the Rev. 
Edmund Burke, who had long labored there as a missionary. 
This, however, was scarce a perceptible lightening of Mgr. Plessis' 
charge. He wished to have Canada divided into five dioceses : 
two in Lower Canada, with their centres at Quebec and Mont- 
real ; another to comprise the Maritime Provinces, a fourth to in- 
clude Upper Canada, and the fifth to extend over the Hudson's 
Bay country and away across the Rockies to where the waves 
of the Pacific lap our western shore. This plan was in part sug- 
gested, and in its entirety concurred in, by the Propaganda ; and, 
in order to secure the concurrence of the civil power, Bishop 
Plessis journeyed to England in 1819. Just after his departure 
bulls arrived from Rome elevating Quebec to the dignity of a 
metropolitan see, naming Mgr. Plessis its first archbishop, and 



234 A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. [Nov., 

giving him, in addition to the vicariate of Nova Scotia, two suf- 
fragan bishops, one for Upper Canada, the other for Prince Edward 
Island, New Brunswick, and the Magdalens. But, as Bishop Plessis 
feared, this had only the effect of strengthening the opposition to 
his plan. On no account would the government assent to his 
assuming the title of archbishop ; nor would they agree to the 
creation of any new sees. After much negotiating he succeeded 
in obtaining the acquiescence of the powers that were in the 
establishment of apostolic vicariates and in the appointment of 
bishops in partibus infidelium. It was explicitly stipulated, how- 
ever, that these titular bishops were not to have independent, 
jurisdiction, but were merely to be auxiliaries to the Bishop of 
Quebec, who alone was to have a legal status. Vicariates were 
accordingly formed, and the men who had been fixed upon to 
rule over the desired dioceses were consecrated. 

The Reverend Jean Jacques Lartigue, a Sulpitian priest, was 
placed over the district of Montreal, which then contained 189,119 
Catholics of, with few exceptions, French origin. 

The presence of Irish Catholics was discovered only a short 
time previously. A priest was summoned to attend a dying 
stranger, and the stranger was found to be an Irishman. The 
priest learned that there were compatriots of the dying man 
in the neighborhood, and invited them to his church. On the 
following Sunday, in the sacristy of the old Bonsecours' church, 
thirty Irish exiles met and had the Gospel preached to them for 
the first time since they had crossed the sea. There were only a 
few Irish Catholics in Canada at that time, and they came then 
and afterwards, to different points, under circumstances which so 
militated against their success that their prosperity cannot but be 
marvelled at. The first Irish families who arrived at Quebec were 
so destitute that had it not been for the kind interposition of 
Bishop Plessis, who placed them with French farmers and well-to- 
do towns-people, they would have reached the land of promise 
only to find paupers' graves in its frozen ground. A sad story 
indeed is the story of Irish emigration. 

Over most of the country south of the Ottawa spread " the 
forest primeval " when the nineteenth century broke upon the 
world. What is now Ontario was then in the main a wilderness. 
Among the United Empire Loyalists who migrated there when 
the thirteen colonies cut loose from Britain were some Scotch 
Catholics. These were augmented by a colony of a disbanded regi- 
ment of Highlanders, led in 1803 from the old country by the 
Rev. Alexander Macdonell. Both contingents were given land, 






1889.] A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 235 

and grants were also made by the government for churches 
and schools in recognition of the loyalty of the colonists and their 
pastor, and with the object, no doubt, of strengthening that feel- 
ing, so that the crown might have devoted subjects on the border 
of the young Republic. The first Irish settlers arrived in Upper 
Canada in 1823. They were not very hospitably received. Ap- 
plication was even made for a military force to drive them out, 
or to guard the loyal inhabitants ; and so exercised were the 
home authorities by the reports which the loyalists sent them 
concerning the " riotous and mutinous " Hibernians, that Father 
Macdonell, who was then in England, was requested to hasten 
back to Canada to do something with the wild Irtish. He assured 
them there was no cause for fear, and offered to pledge his life 
for the good conduct of the abused refugees. " Put that in writ- 
ing," said the Under Secretary for the Colonies. And the bond 
was signed.* 

When Father Macdonell, who was given charge of the 
vicariate of Upper Canada, came to the country there were 
only two or three small places of worship f and a couple of 
priests one a Frenchman, without any knowledge of English ; 
the other an Irishman, who left the country shortly afterwards. 
For years the apostolic Macdonell had no fellow-laborers, and had 
to travel in the exercise of his holy office, often with his vest- 
ments on his back, over seven hundred miles of a country with- 
out roads or bridges. 

In 1821 the Rev. ^Eneas Bernard McEachern was consecrated, 
and to him was confided the care of the church in the Maritime 
Provinces, the Vicar-Apostolic of Nova Scotia having died two 
years previously. A biography o{ this missionary prelate would 
make interesting and edifying reading. His life, however, like the 
lives of many of the pioneers of the faith in our country, has yet 
to be written. But what at best can one write of a missionary 
priest but the mere outlines of his career? Only he who has in 
perils on land, on river, and on sea preached the Word and 
administered the Sacraments can fill in between the lines the story 
of such a life. When Father McEachern arrived in Prince Ed- 
ward Island in 1790 there were no churches, no schools, no 
material resources, few Catholics, poor and scattered, and difficul- 
ties innumerable. The other provinces over which he was after- 
wards called to exercise episcopal jurisdiction presented a some- 

* Reminiscences of the late Hon. and Rt. Rev. Alexander Macdonell. 

t In the Reminiscences of Bishop Macdonell we are told, in one chapter, that there were 
three churches; in another chapter the bishop is reported to have said that on his arrival he 
found no churches. 



236 A CENTUXY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. [Nov., 

what similar spectacle. There were a few Scotch settlers, here 
and there a poor Irish emigrant, and along the shores hamlets 
of Acadians, who, 

" Scattered like dust and leaves, when the mighty blasts of October 

Seize them, and whirl them aloft, and sprinkle them far o'er the ocean," 

drifted back to their dear Acadia. 

But of all the ecclesiastical districts into which the old diocese 
of Quebec was then divided the most uninviting was that con- 
terminous with the country extending from what was at that time 
called Canada to the Pacific, and from the northern boundary of 
the Republic to ihe frozen islands of the Arctic. There roamed 
the red men, and with them some venturesome Canadians who 
traded with the Indians for furs. Many of these voyageurs mar- 
ried Indian women and settled along the Red River. Father 
Provencher, who, with Father Dumoulin, was sent to this mission 
in 1818, was selected for the charge of the vicariate. 

In 1824 Joseph Octave Plessis, the last bishop who alone 
ruled over the whole of Canada, passed to his reward. He lived 
in the seed-time, and labored faithfully and well. What a trans- 
formation has since taken place ! " Lift up thine eyes round about 
and see." " The flowers have appeared in our land . . . the 
fig-tree hath put forth her green figs, the vines in flower yield 
their sweet smell." With the development of the country and the 
growth of civil liberty, the church expanded and threw, off the 
incubus of state interference. Before a decade of years elapsed 
the titular bishops took native sees; and, in 1844, the Ordinary 
of Quebec publicly assumed the title of archbishop. Now a car- 
dinal sits in the chair of Laval, and with him six other archbishops, 
sixteen bishops, and two vicars-apostolic guard the spiritual in- 
terests of over two millions of Catholics in this Dominion ; and the 
sacrifice foretold by Malachi is offered by two thousand three hun- 
dred priests. An army of religious go about doing good. Cathe- 
drals and churches, flanked by colleges and schools, dot the land ; 
and 

" The charities that soothe, and heal, and bless, 
Are scattered at the feet of man like flowers." 

The people, too, have prospered. There are no more con- 
tented and comfortable husbandmen than the descendants of the 
old colonists who till the soil. Many of the offspring of poor 
emigrants have in the different walks of life attained positions of 
wealth, influence, and eminence. Two gubernatorial chairs are 






1889.] A CENTUXY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. 237 

filled by Catholics.* Three provinces have Catholic prime minis- 
ters. In the parliaments of the nation Catholics occupy promi- 
nent places, and six out of the fourteen members of the Domin- 
ion cabinet are Catholics. 

A most marvellous example of rapid development is furnished 
by Quebec. A colony whose population at the date of the con- 
quest is estimated to have been not more than sixty thousand, f 
a colony of Frenchmen having to struggle for existence and for 
faith against powerful and alien rulers, and depending for exten- 
sion almost entirely on self-increase, has grown in Quebec alone 
to nearly a million and a half,! besides extending its ramifications 
into Ontario and the New England States. Counting all, the 
posterity of the sixty thousand now outnumber two millions. A 
cardinal wearing the pallium occupies the primatial see. The 
little seminary of long ago has developed into a great university 
with branches in Montreal, where presides another archbishop. 
Six bishops and a vicar-apostolic watch over the flock in other 
parts of the province. Over fifteen hundred priests dispense the 
mysteries in one thousand temples, and teach in university, semi- 
naries, and colleges. Of the latter and last there are twenty-one, 
with over half a hundred commercial and classical academies, and 
two hundred and fifty convents, in connection with the great 
majority of which boarding and day schools are conducted.* There 
are in addition to these, three thousand five hundred state-sup- 
ported religious schools, thirty-seven hospitals, and seventeen 
asylums. Thirteen communities of women and twelve of men 
devote themselves mainly to teaching and active charity. 

It is the fashion with some people to say that Quebec is priest- 
ridden and crushed by clerical imposts ; and what has been 
written may seem to them but proof of what they assert. Mr. 
Edward Farrer, the present editor-in-chief of the Toronto' Mail, an 
ultra- Protestant journal, effectually disposed of such nonsense in a 
paper contributed a few years ago to the Atlantic Monthly. 
He wrote : " The habitant is not crushed by clerical imposts. 
. . . As a class the Canadian priests are men of much merit. 
Their parishes in very many cases are as large as an English 
county, and their work, especially in the winter-time, involves not 
only arduous toil but no small peril. The history of the priest- 
hood is the history of the country." 

* The term of a third Catholic governor expired a few weeks ago. 

t Garneau's History of Canada. 

fin 1881 the Catholic population of Quebec numbered 1,170,718, a proportion of 861.4 
per thousand of the total population 01 that province, and an increase of fifteen per cent, in 
ten years. 



238 A CENTURY OF CATHOLICITY IN CANADA. [Nov., 

In Ontario, where Bishop Macdonell in the first years of the 
century labored almost unaided, three archbishops, four bishops, 
and one vicar-apostolic,* assisted by four hundred priests, watch 
over a flock numbering three hundred and seventy-five thousand.! 
In the centres of population cathedral crosses point aloft to heaven, 
and the province which boasts of its Protestantism is jewelled with 
more than five hundred Catholic fanes. There are a university, 
three colleges, thirty-seven academies, and two hundred and 
twenty-nine state-supported parochial schools. The sick are cared 
for in nine hospitals, and orphaned youth and destitute old age 
find refuge in seventeen asylums. Different communities of reli- 
gious teach and tend the poor and sick, while from more than 
one convent of cloistered nuns ascend perpetual prayer and 
praise. 

Less than one hundred years ago there were in the Maritime 
Provinces only a few humble chapels like that in the storied vil- 
lage of Grand-Pre, " on the shores of the Basin of Minas " ; now 
there are almost four hundred sanctuaries, wherein every one that 
asks receives, and he who seeks finds. An archbishop, four 
bishops, and two hundred and forty priests have the cure of over 
three hundred thousand souls. f For the education of boys there 
are four colleges, one conducted by the Fathers of the Holy 
Cross, and an academy directed by the Christian Brothers ; and 
four different sisterhoods have charge of forty boarding-schools for 
girls. A non-religious school system is by law established in the 
Maritime Provinces, but, notwithstanding this, there are many 
Catholic schools, especially for girls, maintained without any assis- 
tance from the state, except in Halifax, where schools under .the 
direction of religious are supported by the government as the 
result of a compromise. 

The northwestern vicariate of former days is now an ecclesi- 
astical province, embracing Manitoba, British Columbia, and the 
intervening territories. The Catholics of these regions are only 
about one-fifth of the population. They numbered in British 
Columbia, in 1881, 10,043, an d in Manitoba and the Northwest 
Territories, in 1885, 23,952. These are ministered to by an arch- 
bishop, two bishops, two vicars-apostolic, and one hundred and 
fifty priests. The Jesuits conduct a theological seminary and col- 
lege at Winnipeg, Manitoba; and in British Columbia there are 
two colleges directed by the Oblates of Mary Immaculate. Four 

* One archdiocese and the vicariate extend into Quebec. 

tThe Catholic population in 1881 was 320,839, an increase in ten years of over seventeen 
per cent. 

Jin 1881 the Catholics numbered 273,693, an increase of fifteen per cent, in ten years. 



1889.] OUR CEN TEN A RY : A GLA NCE INTO THE PUT URE. 239 

sisterhoods manage a score of academies for girls, and there are 
several Indian industrial schools under the supervision of religious. 
There are five hospitals and seven asylums. In Manitoba and the 
territories the school system is denominational, and the different 
parishes have their schools. A similar system does not obtain in 
British Columbia ; still a few Catholic schools are in operation in 
that province. 

Catholic progress in this country may not be as striking as 
that in the United States ; yet in Canada the Catholic population 
has in this century been blessed with a ten-fold increase, and 
the church, like "a tree which is planted near the running 
waters," has taken deep root, and its branches have spread over 
all the land. J. A. J. McKENNA. 

Ottawa, Ont. 



OUR CENTENARY: A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 

A HUNDRED years have passed since the Catholic people of 
the United States received their ecclesiastical organization by the 
elevation of John Carroll to the episcopate. Forty or fifty thou- 
sand Catholics, for the most part of the honored stock of the 
Pilgrims of the Ark and Dove, welcomed their first prelate to their 
hearts ; they had long loved him as the foremost priest among 
them, and as the most conspicuous clergyman of any denomi- 
nation in aiding the founders of the Republic to expel the British 
forces from the country. The clergy were about a score in num- 
ber, excellent priests, belonging for the most part to the Society 
of Jesus, then lately suppressed. A hundred years have passed, 
and with the immense increase of the nation the Catholic Church 
has more than kept pace. The best blood of every Catholic 
people has been poured into the national life, till we number up- 
wards of ten millions of souls, have eighty-four bishops to represent 
to us the mild rule of the Catholic Apostolic hierarchy, and our 
altars are served by more than eight thousand priests, that society 
alone to which our first bishop belonged now numbering in the 
neighborhood of seven hundred members among us, flourishing 
in the second youth to which it was restored before his death. 

We have an ample equipment of colleges, a good beginning 
of primary Christian education, more than an abundance of female 
academies. Best of all, we have a University in the city of Wash- 
ington, founded by the spontaneous will of the people and priest- 



240 OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. [Nov., 

hood, the jubilant proclamation of the Vicar of Christ, and happily 
controlled by the energy and wisdom of the episcopate. 

The charities of the Catholic people of America are in a most 
flourishing condition, standing easily first among all our works 
, in financial prosperity, in fulness of success, and in the good will 
of all classes and creeds in the community. 

Meantime the church and her people are in good repute 
among their fellow-citizens. Barring the vice of drunkenness 
and the evil of saloon-keeping, there is little to be said against 
the citizenship of Catholics, and these defects are odious to the 
great body of the Catholics, and must and shall be remedied. 
Our open enemies are a small number of bigots whose course is 
a regret to the body of non- Catholics generally. It is true that 
on the question of Christian schools we stand before the Ameri- 
can people with a grievance. But our cause is righteous and we 
are able to prove it ; our tribunal is just, and we cannot doubt 
an equitable decision. 

It is the purpose of this article to cast a glance into the 
future and to endeavor to penetrate the very inner chambers of 
the temple. We wish to consider what should be the spiritual traits 
of American Catholics, for upon the spiritual life will depend the 
whole external order of things. 

The distinguishing trait of Catholicity here or elsewhere must 
be a quality of the interior life of man, for religion is primarily 
interior. A religion which fulfils the idea involved in the very 
name is only at its best development in the order that is spiritual. 
The main purpose of religion is not to enroll members but to 
sanctify individuals. It needs organization ; but, having organiza- 
tion, it may yet fail of its purpose, which is, indeed, with the 
many and with all, but with the many and with all taken one 
by one as well as all together. It is a delusion to fix the suc- 
cess of religious effort upon the glory of its outer aspect. Men 
may adhere together as religious bodies from principles of cohe- 
sion which are but partly spiritual; as a matter of fact, they are 
largely due to traditions of race and family. Thes.e could not 
originally establish a form of religion among intelligent men and 
women or maintain it in existence long. 

The strongest bonds of Catholicity lie altogether deeper than 
what is shown by census tables or by perfection of ecclesiastical 
polity. These last may give a deceptive appearance, but a people 
full of the Holy Spirit must show many signs of truth besides 
unity and good public order. Holiness is a note of the truth, 
and in these days, perhaps, a more necessary one than any of 



1889.] OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 241 

the others. Men may cling together and tlreir religious societies 
resist the solvents of time for a few generations because they are 
joined by the cement of blood in race-kindred, but the bond of 
the Spirit is the only eternal bond. 

Now, this new nation gives no bond of race-heredity; nay, it 
is a powerful solvent of those brought from the Old World. Cath- 
olicity finds in America principles of public conduct in the polit- 
ical order consonant with its fundamental truths ; but it cannot have 
aids that are governmental, national, or racial in. America as it has 
had them in Europe. The only enduring life of Catholicity in 
America must be sincerity of conviction in its individual members 
maturely and intelligently assimilated, together with consistent and 
courageous Christian behavior. 

The Catholic Church among us cannot fail from want of an 
efficient organization, for it has a perfect one, a divine one. Nor 
can it fail from feebleness of manhood, for the Irish and the Ger- 
man races, from which its membership is chiefly made up, what- 
ever they may be accused of, are not accused of being effete ; 
feebleness of character is not a trait of the Teuton and the Celt. 
Nor, again, can we fail because we lack numbers. As already 
said, our numbers are far over ten millions, and these are well dis- 
tributed ; enough, surely, not only to hold our own but, having 
the ever-progressive element of truth, to leaven the whole Amer- 
ican lump. Under any circumstances, we are not likely to break 
up and fail soon. But in a future not too distant to speculate 
>n we may fail from want of religion properly so-called that is 
say, the want of cultivation of the interior life rooted in intel- 
ent conviction of the truths of faith and bearing fruit in super- 
itural love of God and our fellow-men. 

Organization may be retained and the census table be yet 
lore enlarged, but the one will be an effigy and the other a false 
^itness if a very large proportion of the members of the church 
ire not earnestly seeking one by one to be entirely conformed to 
le divine ideal. A prominent divine of the Anglican Church, 
Canon Westcott, said in one of his recently published lectures that 
religion that is divine must do two things : it must give man an 
ideal, and it must provide him with the means of realizing it in 
lis own proper person. We add that the ideal should be super- 
latural and divine. To equal the highest human ideal is, in a 
fay, to equal only one's self. Now, the moment an individual 
Christian loses sight of Christ as his own proper personal ideal, as 
something to be assimilated and put on, to be absorbed into and 
identified with himself, he may indeed go on externally using the 

VOL L. l6 



242 OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. [Nov., 

means of realizing his destiny, but the inevitable tendency is to drop 
them also and drop everything positively religious, whether sudden- 
ly or little by little. The reader has doubtless known cases of both 
kinds, men who have stopped church-going of a sudden, and 
others who have dropped away gradually. But the cause of all 
failure in religion has ever been the same : men turning away 
from God in the interior of the soul. 

Let us not be misunderstood. Organization is needful, and in 
the Catholic Church is divine. It is of essential necessity for the 
interior spirit itself, fosters it, informs it with that brotherhood 
which gives it its necessary note of universality. But it is a 
means to an end. The primary end of religion is not the integ- 
rity of the Church as an outward society, but it is the interior 
union of its members with God in a state to which they attain 
by means far above the natural. This union is, taking mankind 
and the ages of the world together, conditioned upon the exist- 
ence of the external society founded by Christ and called the 
church ; so much is undeniable. But one must make a distinc- 
tion between that which conditions and that which is conditioned, 
between the means and the end. Furthermore, the church organ- 
ization is more in need of the interior integrity of the Christian 
life than that life is in need of valid organization in the external 
order ; of course we speak in a sense apart from the divine aids 
of religion in the sacraments. The organization will decay more 
rapidly from the decay of the interior spirit in the people than 
that interior spirit will suffer from a break-up in the external 
order of religion, a misfortune which, among an intelligent and 
well-meaning people, cannot last long. Such a condition of things 
can raise up saints to repair and to rebuild the tottering house of 
God. The authority of the church can do many things, but it 
cannot by itself create saints. The saint is the product of forces 
which are interior, however truly such forces are communicated 
by the very act of the worthy reception of the sacraments. The 
same is true of widespread movements of men which have made 
the great eras of Christendom, such as the Benedictine movement, 
the mendicant, and the Jesuit. The inner force is the greater 
force of Christendom. Let us not forget this while maintaining 
the divinity of the outer order and pointing out its evident neces- 
sity. It is not a Catholic principle that the ecclesiastical order 
exists for its own sake. 

So that we must trust to the interior life among Catholics for 
the permanence of Catholicity in America. There must be a wide- 
spread impulse towards the ascetical and mystical principles and 



1889.] OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 243 

>ractices which bring men's souls into union with God. Maintain 
the dignity of office, but do not suppose that success in such 
things is the measure of the success of our religion. Maintain 
proper and uniform discipline among the people, but be not de- 
rived ; conformity is not the supreme virtue, and discipline is 
not the perfect fruit. What is supreme and perfect in religion 
is interior union with God. The end of religion is, by the grace of 
Christ, to raise human nature above itself into a state of super- 
natural union with the divine nature, giving man a participation 
through Christ in the nature of God. Now, the fruit and the 
joy and the substance of this is mainly interior, and forms a 
new life hidden from the gaze of human vision. 

What has thus far been said is plainly enough true, yet needed 
to be said. It is always necessary to be on one's guard against 
in excess of esprit du corps. It is a good sentiment, but apt to 
degenerate into boastfulness and over-confidence in appearances ; 
ind this is especially true in America. One way of celebrating 
>ur centenary is to count our numbers ; nor is this altogether 
vain, for the Catholic citizens of the great Republic are numerous, 
and the church is powerful here. Nor, taking us as v a body, can 
it be said that we are not good Catholics as far, at least, as out- 
ward use of the forms of religion is concerned. Various tests may 

applied successfully, such as attendance at divine service, out- 
spoken loyalty, generosity, obedience. But a most important 
question is, do not these exist among us in a great degree from 
race traits inherent in our parents and ourselves, and which come 
from the Old World ? How will it be in a couple of generations 
lore ? When our people have become Americans, as purely such 

are now the descendants of the original colonists, what sort 

Catholics will they be ? Will the American Catholics of the 
lext century be good ones ? 

It is certain that we cannot count on the continuance of race 
traits of character after the race has been changed in the course of 
successive generations. We must fall back on the interior spirit of 
Catholicity ; that is the first plain fact. The second is that we must 
seek aid, if we can get it, from the national traits of Americans. 

We are good Catholics at this centenary largely because our 
religion is held in an environment of qualities which are tradi- 
tional to foreign peoples. Race traits of some sort must be had ; 
religion is not in the abstract. But future generations of Catho- 
lics in this country must get these quasi-religious environments at 
home. The Catholic religion, in itself universal, must actually exist 
in epochs, races, forms of government, social systems ; and these 



244 OUR CENTENARY : A &LANCE INTO THE FUTURE. [Nov., 

make, not an essential difference indeed, yet, nevertheless, a real 
one. The light of the sun is everywhere the same, but there is a 
difference in it when reflected from the ruby, the diamond, and 
the emerald. On one side of a prism the light is colorless, but 
when it has passed -through it is broken into various tints. This 
illustrates the unity and variety of the true religion ; it can be 
one and yet various. Universality is not only strong but it is 
elastic. It not only binds diverse elements together, but it does 
so by such a pliant adjustment as to avoid crushing, or even chaf- 
ing, innocent sensibilities ; nay, it uses every good trait and ele- 
vates it into something better without wrenching it from its own 
native place. Catholicity is one in every race, yet its homes have 
a difference. 

We know that essentially a Catholic is the same here and in the 
Old World, for his religion is one and universal. But there is an 
evident difference in the religious traits of, for example, Irish, 
French, and Italian Catholics, though there is but one Catholicity 
among them all. The Irishman is by nature a clansman, and that 
is a chief reason why his conspicuous religious trait is loyalty or 
fidelity. The Irishman's faith is his natural tendency to loyalty 
and fidelity enlightened and consecrated and made supernatural ; it 
is world- renowned for steadfastness. On the other hand, the 
Frenchman is noted for a naturally enthusiastic temperament 
the perfervidum ingenium Gallorum is a proverb. Hence in 
religion his peculiar characteristic is the heroic. Zeal is his 
trait as a Christian, as is enthusiasm as a man, and that is 
why no nation of modern times compares with the French 
as missionaries to the heathen. The Italian differs most plainly 
from both the Irishman and the Frenchman. He is endowed with 
the gift of interpreting nature in a divine sense ; and all nature and 
art become to him means of symbolizing to eye and ear the 
truths of revelation. The Italians are supreme in religious sym- 
bolism, which is certainly one of the most potent forces of life. 
Italy, itself a vast gallery of the masterpieces of natural scenery, 
is the studio of the divinest expression of religious truth. It is 
true that the Irishman is far from being without zeal or without 
symbolism ; the Frenchman partakes of much that both the Irish- 
man and the Italian have for their peculiar gifts. All I say is 
that each has something which is Catholic and which is yet 
peculiarly his own. We might pursue these illustrations and 
comparisons further, and discuss, in addition, the religious traits 
of the Germans, the Sclavonians, and others. But enough has 
been said if, indeed, it were necessary to say anything to 




tha 
ace 







1889.] OUR CENTENARY: A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 245 

make palpable the fact that nations and races, differing in natural 
characteristics, must differ, and do, in their assimilation of revealed 
truth. To be a Catholic is by no means exactly the same thing 
for an Irishman and a Frenchman and an Italian, for a German 
and a Spaniard ; yet they are all members of the same religion, 
each in a way differing from the others. The difference is found 
in the diversity of natural traits. 

Agreement in the bare articles of faith and unity in one exter- 
nal organism do not secure a uniformity so exacting as to elimi- 
nate race differences in religion. Quid quid recipitur, say the 
scholastics, secundum modum recipientis recipitiir ; which may be 
interpreted thus : As men differ from each other, so does the 
truth differently affect them. 

At the present moment the Catholic people of America are 
divided into parishes very much in view of the race traits of the 
Old World, and are ministered to, as far as possible and that is 
pretty fully by priests selected accordingly. The priest who 
succeeds best with the Irish congregation has a strong flavor of 
the " Soggarth Aroon" He is the chief of their religious clan. 
Fidelity to him, personal and affectionate, has much to do with 
their fidelity to the church and with their Catholicity. But in a 
generation or two the Soggarth Aroon will be a poetical legend ; 
yes, even now there are many parishes, whose people are of Irish 
ck and good Catholics, and yet in which great harm could be 
ne by placing them in charge of even the best priest who would 
How the old Irish policy of dealing with the people. What 
oes this show ? Does it show the stupidity of the religious traits 

the more Irish parish, or the decadence of religion among 
Irish-Americans ? Neither the one nor the other. It only shows 
at there is a difference between them which must be taken into 

:ount There are many Irish in America, but America is not 
Ireland, and it is futile to attempt to make it so, idle even to 
wish it. There are many Germans here, but Germany is not 
here, nor is Italy, nor France. This is America. 

God has sent the peoples of the Old World to this country to 
ecome Americans, not to remain colonies of their mother-coun- 
ies. The difference between the Yankee and the Englishman of 
the present day is not greater than that which shall be between 
Irish-Americans and Irishmen fifty years from now. 

The following extracts from Bishop Gilmour's address to the 
Congress of German Catholics, recently held in the city of Cleve- 
land, is an expression from high authority of the sense of what I 
have here written : 



246 OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. [Nov., 

"The less we have of sectionalism or nationalism among us the better. 
The sooner we recognize tfie fact that we must coalesce and blend the better for 
our future. This fact seems not sufficiently grasped. . . . Among the subjects 
quite worthy your deepest thought and calmest discussion is the nationalism that 
so gravely menaces us with danger. This subject grows steadily apace with our 
increasing numbers. It will not down ; we are fully confronted with it. Shall 
nationalism be engrafted on the Catholic Church of America ? Shall the Catholic 
Church put on the garb of foreignism ? Shall Catholics be arrayed in separate 
camps or shall they be blended together in a common faith and under a common 
flag? Shall Catholics be Americans or foreigners ? These are subjects that not 
only demand the best thought of this Catholic congress, but press for considera- 
tion. Nationalism is pressing to the front and must be discussed. The bishops 
and priests must discuss it ; the laity must discuss it. The young will not wait. 
Let me urge upon you the necessity in dealing in a measure at least with this all- 
important subject. Let there go out from you a clear-cut note. Let the world 
know we are one in faith and one in country Catholics and Americans." 

If it be agreed, then, that Americans, whatever may be their 
parent stock, are different in race traits from other nations, the 
question follows, What will be their dominant characteristic as 
Catholics ? we mean, of course, in matters which do not touch 
unity of faith and discipline, for in essentials our religion is the 
same among all nations. What will men call the distinguishing 
mark of American Catholicity ? Will it be a compound of all the 
traits of all the nations blended into one in this land ? This is 
an absurdity. Will it be the Irish trait of loyalty? We may 
hope for a solid faith, but the renowned faith of Erin shall not 
be ours. Shall the progress of taste and the cultivation of art, 
keeping pace, as it does, with the increase of wealth, give us the 
distinguishing feature of Italy's Catholicity, religious symbolism ? 
But who dreams that any land but Italy shall be the home of 
Christian art ? Shall we be borne along upon the deep current 
of French enthusiastic zeal ? We shall have zeal, and symbolism, 
and faith, and enough of these and of all the other qualifications 
of good Catholics. I?ut we must be Americans ; we cannot be 
anything else if we would. 

We shall seek, then, in American environments the clue to 
the difficulty. The peculiar trait of our Catholicity will be the 
product of the strong forces which are especially American. We 
do not claim them to be American in an exclusive sense, for they 
belong to the present civilization everywhere ; but they are dawn- 
ing elsewhere, and here they are beaming in nearly meridian 
splendor: liberty and intelligence. These undoubtedly are the 
forces of this age which must prevail everywhere, and which do 
now dominantly prevail in the United States. 

While not denying, therefore, these circumstances of life to 






1889.] OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 247 

other countries, we may fairly say that they are American in a 
degree worthy the adjective distinctive. Liberty and intelligence 
are meant by the providence of God to be characteristic of the 
times we live in, and to be shared by all. But among the great 
peoples of the world there is none which enjoys so large a 
measure of education and of freedom as the citizens of this Re- 
public, if, as to education, Germany be excepted. It is true that 
we fought a great war for unity, and that obedience to legitimate 
authority is enforced with penalties, and a large measure of uni- 
formity is attained. But the war was provoked by the abridg- 
ment of human liberty in the national territories, and it was 
ended by the extension of equal civil freedom to a whole race 
among us. Americans will stop to establish at any cost obedi- 
ence to legitimate authority, but this is not the great movem.ent. 
The movement onward in America is for rational liberty. The 
primary purpose of the law here is to save good men from inter- 
ference in the enjoyment of their native liberty, and to leave 
them as free as possible in their personal and private efforts in 
pursuit of happiness. The best use we have for governmental 
institutions is that they secure us individually from unjust in- 
terference in our endeavors to attain to our destiny. Among 
the means of attaining to our happiness is a certain amount of 
obedience and of conformity. But these do not hold the highest 
laces, which are awarded to intelligence and liberty. To be 
appy, we are persuaded in America, one should be free; and 
be worthy of freedom, one should be enlightened. 
" What the church," says Dr. Zardetti in his admirable book, 
Devotion to the Holy Ghost* " will probably be more or less 
everywhere in the world she is at present in America, a vigorous, 
ree, independent church of individuals. Princes and parliaments 
e church has not to deal with here, being exclusively based on 
he people." He then proceeds to show, and in a manner en- 
irely convincing, that the cultivation of devotion to the Holy 
host is the chief duty of the Christian ministry, to aid them in 
hich he has written his little volume. It is men as individuals, 
ealing in the solitude of conscience with God alone, who must 
sanctified. The inner life, using a sanctified freedom with an 
nlightened intelligence, must be the life of the American Church. 
It can be no other. It will be in vain to strive for results by 
methods of past times, however glorious, or by appealing to traits 
of distant nations, however near of kin they may seem, unless 
these are fully adjusted to the new order of Providence, which 

* Devotion to the Holy Ghost; A Manual, etc. Milwaukee: Hoffmann Brothers. 






248 OUR CENTENARY: A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. [Nov., 

deals more directly with the individual. This is the country of 
the free man, and in those words the church finds her guide 
in her ministrations. Where the spirit of God is there is liberty, 
and where liberty is there should be the spirit of God. 

" The peril of the day," says Dr. Zardetti, " is the unspiritual- 
ity of man and the revival of naturalism in the world." To 
counteract this influence he says that devotion to the Holy 
Ghost is the most efficacious means that could be used, awaken- 
ing " in us the consciousness of the presence and indwell- 
ing of the Holy Ghost, not only in the church as a whole, 
but also in each one of us." It is just here that we find 
the application of the aids to the spiritual and supernatural 
life of the Christian properly distinguished. All that a Christian 
gets, from God he gets in some sense through the church, but 
there is a vast difference between the gifts received, because some 
are external and strictly sacramental, and others are unseen and 
unknown by any but the very recipient. The former are con- 
nected with the uniform practices of the faithful, the latter are the 
secret touches of God's spirit, experienced in moments of special 
devotion or infused gradually during seasons of special visitation. 
These secret touches are evidently far more personal than the 
external ones, because they are fitted to each individual in his 
own peculiar personality and are bestowed in a spiritual retire- 
ment made sacred against the intrusion of even the most sacred 
representations of the authority of God in the external order. 
Wisdom, Understanding, Counsel, Fortitude, Knowledge, Piety, 
and the Fear of the Lord are the gifts of the Holy Ghost to 
enlighten, guide, strengthen, sanctify us. These interior gifts are 
as much the heritage of the Christian as the forgiveness of sins 
in Penance and union with our Lord in Communion ; nay, they 
are the very substance of that heritage, for the highest dignity 
the sacraments can give us is the privilege of living by the in- 
stinct of the Holy Ghost in the power of his celestial gifts. But 
these graces bring us into a relation intimate and personal with 
the Third Person of the Holy Trinity. Our sanctification is made 
more and more perfect in proportion as the action of the Holy Ghost 
is more and more immediate, which is the same as saying that the 
test of fruitfulness in our external devotions is our ability to catch 
the divine words of guidance ever being uttered within us. 

The following words, published in this magazine by Father 
Hecker less than a year before he died, are a plain statement of 
the practical method to be followed in dealing with souls in our 
times, and especially in this country : 



1889.] OUR CENTENARY : A GLANCE INTO THE FUTURE. 249 

''The work of the priesthood is to help to guide the Christian people, under- 
standing that God is always guiding them interiorly. 

"An innocent soul we must guide, fully understanding that God is dwelling 
within him, not as a substitute for God. 

"A repentant sinner we must guide, understanding that we are but restor- 
ing him to God's guidance. 

" The best that we can do for any Christian is to quicken his sense of fidelity 
to God speaking to him in an enlightened conscience. 

"Now God's guidance is of two kinds : one is that of his external providence 
in the circumstances of life ; the other is interior, and is the direct action of the 
Holy Spirit on the human soul. There is great danger in separating these two. 

"The key to many spiritual problems is found in this truth : the direct action 
of God upon the soul, which is interior, is in harmony with his external provi- 
dence. Sanctity consists in making them identical as motives of every thought, 
word, and deed of our lives. The external and the internal (and the same must 
be said of the natural and supernatural) are one in God, and the consciousness 
of them both is to be made one divine whole in man ; to do this requires an 
heroic life-sanctity. 

"All the sacraments of the church, her authority, prayer both mental and 
vocal, spiritual reading, exercises of mortification and of devotion, have for their, 
end and purpose to lead the soul to the guidance of the Holy Spirit. St. Al- 
phonsus says in his letters that the first director of the soul is the Holy Ghost 
himself. 

" It is never to be forgotten that one man can never be a guide to another 
except as leading him to his only divine Guide. 

" The guide of the soul is the Holy Spirit himself, and the criterion or test 
of possessing that guide is the divine authority of the church." 

Therefore Catholics should be made aware that they have a 
witness of the truth of religion within them, and that it is a pecu- 
irly Catholic virtue to be guided by the Holy Spirit. The 
rhole church of God should concentrate every activity upon deep- 
ming the inner life. Never was the true faith in better condition 
to start upon this noblest of all her offices. Her external author- 
is secure, fully rounded into dogmatic completeness by the 
lecrees of the Vatican Council. Her children are one not only 
>y reason of hearty agreement of mind and unity of organism, 
>ut by an intercommunion among themselves wonderfully per- 
^cted by the appliances of modern commerce. Her academical 
equipment is approaching a completeness more ample than the 
most sanguine could have hoped for, and the masses of the 
Catholic people are being daily brought to the enjoyment of sound 
Christian education. 

If the religious life of our people be brought more and more 
directly under the immediate inspiration of the Holy Spirit, we 
shall be secure of a future more glorious than the past, and the 
external order of religion will gain proportionately in unity and 
universality. WALTER ELLIOTT. 



250 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Nov., 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

Miss MARY AGNES TINCKER'S new novel, Two Coronets 
(Boston and New York : Houghton, Mifflin & Co.), is one of those 
issues of the Riverside Press which force the present critic to find 
the motto of the firm, Tout bien ou rien, just a trifle over-confi- 
dent. There is at least one of the first series of Miss Tincker's 
novels, The House of Yorke, and one of the second, Signor 
MonaldinVs Niece, which could hold their own when compared 
with the work of any of the women novelists, Elizabeth Stuart 
Phelps perhaps excepted, whose names appear on Houghton & 
Mifflin's list. The first of those tales seemed, as her early readers 
all remember, to give great promise. In reality, as the same 
readers would probably admit now with equal unanimity, Miss 
Tincker's talent, and her aspirations also, really touched their 
highest mark in it, and have since declined. True, Signor 
Monaldini's Niece was of less value than The House of Yorke from 
the spiritual side alone. Its literary quality did not suffer by 
comparison with her first effort. It was the author who suffered 
by the comparison the book forced between her then self and 
that ideal of her and her possible achievement wfiich the earlier 
book had permitted one to entertain. 

Her present story belongs to what might be called the com- 
posite order of architecture in novels. It has no central design. 
Between the two threads of her narrative, the American and the 
Italian, there, is no connection not purely arbitrary and unessen- 
tial. They make a twist of which each end is raw, and for 
either strand of which something else might be substituted with 
equal propriety and fully equivalent general effect. Even the 
bearing of the title upon the novel is so occult that to determine 
it is a labor we abandon in ' despair. Nor are we quite certain 
whether there is a moral to Miss Tincker's tale. Against a dark 
and even bloody background of Italian Catholic duplicity and 
crime, a sweetly pure American Protestant domesticity is thrown 
up with all the skill of which the author is capable. When 
Count Alinori, being at the time a widower of twice her age, 
inspires Atalanta Elizabeth Martin (a delicious combination that, 
by the way ! ) with a passion which would have been her death 
if her parents had really insisted on making her go back to 
America and wait a year before marrying him, she is rescued 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 251 

rom an early grave by " a civil and Protestant and private " 
larriage in Venice. And when, later on, the count discovers 
that a near relative of his has committed both perjury and mur- 
der, his horror at those crimes is only exceeded by his dread 
lest Atalanta Elizabeth should ever discover them. 



" ' For God's sake, Beatrice,' he says to his cousin, ' don't let my wife know.' 

" ' Why do you not tell her all ? ' answers Beatrice. ' Why do you have 
any concealments from her ? ' 

Tell her ! ' he cried. ' Impossible ! In the name of God, Beatrice, how 
can you suggest such a thing ? ' 

I think that you might trust to her generosity. All this is not your fault. 
She will pity you.' 

" ' It is impossible,' he repeated. ' It would be my ruin and hers. The 
question is not how she will feel toward me, but of the effect on herself. I know 
her. If she did not die of horror she would fly from us all as from a people ac- 
cursed. . . . We are not like Atalanta, Bice. In the sight of God we may not 
be so bad as she would think us ; but we have become accustomed to many 
things which to her are satanic.' 

" 'I suppose you know her best,' Beatrice answered with a sigh. ' I only 
believed that a woman who truly loves is generous. ' " 

Miss Tincker, we are sorry to see, has not yet cured herself of 
that peculiar way of looking at her own sex through distinctively 

lale eyes which has done as much as anything toward alienating 
her early well-wishers. It would be easy enough to characterize 
it by a word, but some words are heavy. We prefer to let Miss 
Tincker herself afford our readers occasion to pronounce them. 

>he is describing her American heroine as she appeared to the 
eyes and thoughts of her cousin, Francis Elder, when, himself un- 
seen, he watched her in the act of shooting a bear : 

" She did not float up softly, though her smooth motion made no sound nor 
jerk ; he saw the light strain of the lifting shoulders which seemed to raise the 
body, and guessed at the lifted foot and fine, steely muscles of the leg." 

And again, when Atalanta Elizabeth, descending from an 
Italian railway train, is seen for the first time by her future 
husband : 

" A cloud of floating brown gauze was blown out the door, and a young lady 
stepped down with an astonishing ease and lightness, scarcely touching the hand 
raised to assist her, and not leaning at all. Then, at a word from her cousin, 
she turned toward his wife. The dress, a little lifted on the step behind her, 
allowed it to be seen that she turned on tiptoe, and was by no means squarely 
settled on her feet. A repressed excitement betrayed itself in the count's usually 
self-contained face." 



self-c 



252 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Nov., 

Such things as these recall Mr. Egan's way of quoting Louis 
Veuillot concerning " ces femmes-autetirs" We take into con- 
sideration, in estimating this novel and certain others of its 
author's later productions, the seeming necessity under which a 
Catholic writer lies who desires to reap some more tangible 
reward than an approving word from his fellow- Christians. Yet, 
after all, there are ways of avoiding burning questions which touch 
belief, and so rouse animosity, without betraying at any point 
an apparent readiness to concede more than is demanded by the 
public to which a novelist by profession must needs cater. Sup- 
pose one were to suggest to Miss Tincker, that if she really finds 
it necessary to jump so high in order to clear the puddles in 
the road, it would be better to choose another path or stand 
stock still. 

Lora : The Major's Daughter (New York : Worthington Co.), 
translated from the German of W. Heimburg by Mrs. J. W. Davis, 
is better than either of the tales by this author which the same 
publishing firm has issued within the year. It is a natural, un- 
affected, and purely domestic story of a sort on which our German 
kinsmen Seem to have an almost exclusive patent. An unbroken 
thread of narrative conducts the reader from one incident to an- 
other by well-trodden, homely ways, and through an atmosphere 
suffused with sentiment, until it brings him contentedly to the 
most orthodox and prosperous of endings. The good are rewarded 
and the evil punished, deaths happen opportunely, and people 
inconvenient to the villain of the piece turn up at the most con- 
venient moment for his trembling victims. Why is not that as 
good a way as any to construct a tale ? Does it not sufficiently 
imitate, in that little world of which the novelist is creator, the 
system of rewards and punishments to which we who are Chris- 
tians look as the final explication and rounding out of that which 
would otherwise be bafflingly incomplete, and too painfully mys- 
terious for mere human nature to contemplate with patience ? 

Besides its other merits, Lora has that of suggesting too 
indirectly, to be sure, yet still effectively the wholesome lesson 
that there are bounds beyond which self-sacrifice ceases to be a 
virtue. Mr. Howells, in the face of a good deal of old-time 
morality which, by dint of repetition, has got itself generally re- 
cognized as infallible, has been insisting on that truth with more 
or less effect ever since he put it into definite form in The Rise 
of Silas Lapham. The issue made in that story, however, was a 
side one. The strait in which Lora is placed is quite different 
from that of Penelope Lapham ; her difficulties are not sentimental 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 253 

ones but very real. Their counterparts occur in actual life with 
more frequency, one must suppose, than such as Mr. Howells has 
devised. The situation, at all events, is one which is as old as 
the hills in the fiction of all lands, from the story of Andromeda 
down to that of Miss Libbey's Pretty Young Girl, or the last 
" shilling shocker " issued from the London press. Here are 
the parents, penniless, old, and threatened with disgrace ; here is 
the young, impenitent profligate whose selfishness has brought 
them to distress; here is the ravening monster with his jaws all 
wide, fuming with horrid fetor ; here the fair virgin, loath, reluc- 
tant, trembling with personal disgust, tDrn between rival loves, 
her kindred appealing to her on one side, her plighted lover on 
the other. What shall be done with the virgin ? What shall she 
do herself? 

"Tie her fast to the rock!" her next of kin have cried with 
one voice in every age, in every song and story. " When once 
we are safe, let her take her chances that Perseus may happen 
along in the nick of time to set her free. If he never does, as 
is most likely, or if he comes just at that pinch when the only 
exit from the situation is through the divorce court, still, what 
sense is there in making such an outcry ? Is not marriage mar- 
riage, when all is said and done ? One would think we were 
murdering her instead of providing her with a most excellent 
husband and ourselves with a security against bankruptcy or the 
county jail. What is her religion for,- if it has not taught her 
that, for women at least, the greatest of virtues is self-sacri- 
fice ?" 

Had we the counselling of a girl in such a plight, we should 
seek to persuade her, not alone in the name of human nature 
but in that of Christianity itself, not to violate her instincts 
nor surrender her personal freedom for any threat, or any bribe, 
nor to avert any natural evil from herself or any other. We 
should point her to a line of virgins in whom the human ties 
were strong, but who won their martyr's palm by overcoming 
them in order to remain true to a more inward and constraining 
bond. We should remind her of that "Virgin of all virgins blest" 
whose fiat was not spoken to the visible messenger of God until 
he had shown her that in becoming the Mother of the God-Man 
she should not forfeit her allegiance to that secret instinct of the 
Holy Ghost which kept her integrity ever stainless. We should 
tell her that personality and love are sacred things, not to be 
outraged for any reason ; that though there may be more than 
one sufficient cause which ought to keep apart a man and woman 



254 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Nov., 

who sincerely love, yet that no call which urges to a loveless 
marriage ever is a true call of duty. Nine times in ten the sequel 
to such marriages proves the sacrifice to have been made utterly 
in vain, even from the point of view of those who furthered them. 
If they were in every case successful, merely from that stand-point, 
the case against them would not be altered. Self-sacrifice is, 
indeed, the essence of Christianity. Our Lord Jesus Christ has 
bidden us, if we would be like Him, to deny ourselves, take up 
our cross, and follow Him to the mount of immolation. But what 
was it He denied Himself? Nothing but ease, pleasure, riches, 
power, mortal life the things to which the merely natural man 
gravitates by the very weight of his mere human nature. But 
faith, integrity, personal purity did He ever show any sign of 
yielding these ? Was He ever invited to do so but by the devil ? 
For these are things which have the divine imprint on them ; 
they are the only coin which can buy peace in this life and joy 
eternal in the next one. And every one of them is more or less 
defaced and battered, even when not wholly cast away and lost, 
by whoever ventures upon a marriage from which the heart 
recoils. Granted that natural love, even when mutual, is not the 
one all-sufficient requisite for marriage ; yet no marriage is justi- 
fiable where in some one or other of its grades it does not exist. 
Why ? Because marriage is a natural good, and the means to it 
cannot be disparate to the end and not defeat its purpose. 

That is the sound lesson about love which the novelists, those 
preachers to the rank and file of every class, would do well to 
teach. So much sane doctrine any man or woman capable of 
looking at social questions with unbiased eyes, and gifted with a 
talent for story-telling, might well inculcate from the stand-point of 
the natural order. We who are Christians are bound to go fur- 
ther still. While we insist that the instincts of humanity are good 
in their own nature and never to be wholly disregarded, we 
must still more strongly insist that though love in its very es- 
sence is of God, the Unifier, yet it cannot exist in its ideal ful- 
ness apart from the true faith of Jesus Christ. Why ? Because 
apart from Him there is no sure hope of that immortality which 
pure love demands and foreshadows. Hence the essential evil of 
mixed marriages, offensive to God and rued by men ever since 
the days when " the sons of God saw the daughters of men, that 
they were fair, and took them wives of all which they chose." 

Max O'Rell's Jacques Bonhomme (New York : Cassell & Co.) 
has the merit of being a lively, readable, and faithful representa- 
tion of a most interesting subject the well-to-do peasants, shop- 






i889-J TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 255 

keepers, and artisans of France. It is the work of a man who 
knows what he is about, and who has acquired his knowledge 
less by study than by imbibing it insensibly through his pores. 
There is a tone about a book written out of the fulness of 
personal observation which commends it as truthful even to read- 
ers who cannot corroborate its statements of fact from studies of 
their own. One does not instinctively feel as if its generalizing 
were based on so narrow an induction that he shrinks from its 
conclusions even when they do not seem obtrusively top-heavy. 
To readers who have some first-hand French impressions of their 
own, this gossipy little volume will furnish as ready an answer 
as is needed to the following rather stupid remarks lately made 
by Mr. W. S. Lilly in A Century of Revolution : 

"Can we predicate liberty of the peasant proprietors of France? Can we 
even predicate of them personality except in the most elementary sense ? . . . 
The French peasant " (M. Zola being the witness against him whom Mr. Lilly 
summons) " will stand revealed in .all the repulsiveness of actual life ; consumed 
with ' the furious passion for possessing land ' " (a passion, by the way, which he 
notoriously shares with certain English proprietors at the farthest remove from 
the peasant) ; "avaricious, penurious, dishonest, tyrannical, foul ; sunken in a de- 
pravation one hardly likes to call bestial ; it is unfair to the beasts." 

So far Mr. Lilly. Now for Max O'Rell, to the truth of 
whose portraiture the present Talker can bear some personal 
testimony : 

" To-day the French peasant lives in his own cottage, cultivates his own field, 
and demands nothing beyond peace and fine weather. No doubt this cottage 
would appear to an English tourist " (especially if he had forgotten that of the 
peasant in his own island and elsewhere throughout the blest domain ruled by 
Victoria the Good) " to be lacking of many comforts. It is carpetless, it is true, 
but it belongs to him, and that makes up for many drawbacks. He is contented 
and rich, like the rest of us, not in the things which he possesses, but in those 
which he knows how to do without. He is peaceful, simple, sober, and laborious. 
His ideal of life is the independence which is the fruit of labor and economy ; he 
is satisfied with very little in the days of his strength, because the prospect of 
eating his own bread near the door of his own cottage when his strength is gone 
makes him happy. So he works steadily, unceasingly, with a wife who is a true 
helpmate. He is no fire-eater, no dreamer of new worlds to conquer. The surg- 
ing passions of great towns, bred and fed by vice and improvidence, are horrible 
to him. He wants to be left alone, and cries for peace at the top of his voice. 
So eager is he after this blessing that in 1881 his representatives in Parliament 
upset the first Ferry ministry by a majority of 355 to 68 on account of the expe- 
dition to Tunis, although that expedition had been highly successful from a mili- 
tary point of view. In 1882 the Freycinet ministry was defeated on the vote of 
credit which they asked to enable France to join with England in an armed inter- 
vention in Egypt. In 1885 the second Ferry ministry was upset by a majority 
of 356 to 149 on account of the Tonquin expeditions. So much to show how 



256 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. . [Nov., 

aggressive the French nation is ! The permanently aggressive nations are the 
nations where the people are oppressed and wretched. Militarism is not com- 
patible with national prosperity and happiness. The prosperity of the common 
people, and the use they are learning to make of liberty, are the great facts which 
will tend to make France a nation more and more peaceful. The French peasant 
might well express a wish that the government should still improve his position ; 
but he is quiet, and no government thinks of him particularly. If he were to 
make as much noise as the Paris workman, he might be listened to. ... 
The present House of Deputies is all occupied with the question of employers 
and employed, granting one by one all the demands of the latter. Nobody 
seems concerned about the rural population, by far the most interesting of all. 
How is that ? Simply because the peasants do not hold stormy meetings, do not 
speak of erecting barricades, and are quiet, peaceful, industrious, sober, and law- 
abiding people. The peasant has the sun, and if his harvest is destroyed by 
the frost, the hail, or the drought, it is for him to make the best of it ; while the 
Paris workman goes to the music-halls, smokes cigars, and talks politics. Sup- 
pose the country engages in war, the Paris workman assumes a uniform and sings 
war-songs, but the peasant sees his land laid wast* and his cottage burned down; 
and this is why you will understand that he feels it his duty to hate Germany in a 
theoretical way, but hopes and trusts that he may not live to see the day when he 
or his sons may be called upon to avenge the disasters of the terrible year 
1870." 

Nevertheless, with all his love for peace and his unwillingness 
to be used as a counter in games which concern him little, the 
French peasant does possess by eminence that personality and in- 
dependence which Mr. Lilly so scornfully denies him. We recall 
one little hamlet, counting in all not more than thirteen voters, 
not one of whom was a shopkeeper, and not more than two or 
three artisans. The rest were peasants and fishermen. They 
managed to split up into three factions, representing the Legiti- 
mist, the Orleanist, and the Republican parties, in one of the elec- 
tions to which Max O'Rell refers in the paragraph we have 
quoted, and the canvass was vigorously if quietly carried on to a 
presumably satisfactory conclusion. True, the French voter, ac- 
customed to a tolerable sameness in the general condition of 
things despite the frequent treading on each other's heels of what 
seem opposing influences at the helm of state, probably confides 
undisturbed in the truth of the maxim quoted by Mr. Ham- 
erton with regard to French changes of ministry : Plus (a 
change, plus c'est la meme chose. He has his own mind about it, 
though. He has his local papers which are read and discussed 
in every cafe. In his appearance he is neither brutalized nor 
bestial, neither servile nor ill-mannered. He looks after his own 
household, sends his children to school and to catechism, minds 
his own business and attends to that of his commune. He is a 
free man and he knows it, and he demands and receives from 






1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 257. 

other men the consideration that he gives. Yet Mr. Lilly says 
of him : 

" Doubtless, as a rule, the French peasant must be credited with the virtues 
of industry and frugality. Without them it would be impossible for him to live. 
But, on the other hand, he is given over to the spirit of utter selfishness, of com- 
plete indifference to all except the pettiest personal interests, of blind hatred and 
unreasoning fear of everything above his social and intellectual level, of abject 
meanness displayed by no other peasantry in Europe to the same degree. And in 
politics he is tJie facile prey of the charlatan who can best prey upon these passions. 
... In political emergencies they are absolutely helpless. They have no prin- 
ciple of cohesion. They are a mere rabble, incapable not only of meeting but 
even of understanding any great crisis in the affairs of their country. Shall we 
account as free these human automata, these voting animals, driven to the ballot- 
box as sJicep to the slaughter \ at one time by the government official, at another by 
the professional demagogue ? " 

Surely these would be unnecessarily hard words to apply to 
one's fellow- Christians for the sake of bolstering up the hopeless 
fabric of caste and prescription, and the subjection of the many 
to the few, even if they were as true to fact as they are actually 
untrue and misleading. But it is unfair to waste on Mr. Lilly's 
venom space which might be so much more veraciously and 
pleasantly filled by a less biased observer. Listen to Max O'Rell 
on that ''time-honored Anglo-Saxon 'chestnut': the French lan- 
guage has no equivalent for the English word home" \ 

" To feel the whole meaning of those sweet words chez-s.oi, chez-nous, one 
ust know the language they form part of. How many English or American 
ople have an inkling of their value ? Do they care to know that, some hun- 
years back, the French used to say en chez (from the Latin in casa, at 
me), and that the word chez was a noun ? That, later on, they took to add- 
g a pronoun, saying, for example, en chez-nous ; and that the people, mis- 
taking the word chez for a preposition because it was always followed by a noun 
or pronoun, suppressed the en, so that now the French language has lost a noun 
r home, but has kept a word, chez, which has all its significance ? " 




:: 



We recommend this bright little book to any reader who 
cares to look at French men and women, French ways and man- 
ners through a pair of frankly French spectacles. There is 
neither moralizing nor philosophizing in it, but there is what is 
better, a kindly observation which any one devoid of British pre- 
judices, who has lived long on French soil, will recognize as true 

the facts and suffused with the spirit of the facts. 
The Master of Ballantrae (New York: Charles Scribner's 
Sons) is a strong and admirably told story. We do not know 
why Mr. Stevenson has not as fairly earned the title of En- 
chanter as Sir Walter that of Wizard. Kis reader has no option 

VOL. L. 17 






258 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Nov., 

about yielding to any illusion which he chooses to create. His 
magic is both pleasant and convincing. Somewhere, in one of 
the essays of the volume called Memories and Portraits if our 
memory serves us, Mr. Stevenson appears to confess that his style 
is a work of art, the result of long and painstaking effort with 
his first crude attempts to express himself. His labor, surely, 
was like that of diamond-cutting. There was no hacking into 
shape of refractory material in order to adapt it to some precon- 
ceived, wholly external form. There were doubtless excrescences 
to cut away, facets to polish, but there could have been nothing 
to add to a possession so purely personal and individual as Mr. 
Stevenson's native gift of speech. His style, independent almost 
of his matter, is a thing to take delight in. And as a teller of 
tales he has, to our mind, no living English-speaking rival ; his 
work is so well modelled, with never a stroke too many and' not 
one ineffective. He is clean-minded, moreover, and may be 
safely given to young people, whom he will be certain to enter- 
tain. 

Jacob Valmont, Manager, by George A. Wall and George B. 
Heckel (Chicago and New York: Rand, McNally & Co.), is not 
bad for a first attempt. Now and then one comes across a sen- 
tence in it which suggests that one or other of its joint pro- 
ducers has, as Mr. Stevenson says he once had, a style in pro- 
cess of extrication. As a story it is rather ineffectual and point- 
less. Jacob Valmont is a Jew who poses as a Christian, that he 
may the more readily grasp at Gentile gold for purely Hebraic 
and quasi-religious purposes. He is a shrewd business man, 
scheming and unscrupulous, dishonest in large ways and for what 
he deems great ends, but punctilious enough in small ones. He 
is an enthusiast for Judaism. He belongs to a secret order 
whose aim it is to make Israel once more a nation, the Heaven- 
appointed rulers of the world. Secretly he aspires to seat him- 
self upon the throne of David. Warned by his immediate 
superior in the " Holy Order," the " Patriarch of the West, 
Rabbi of the Holy Temple, Prince of the Palace of Jerusalem," 
that the aforesaid " Holy Order " disapproves of his backing a 
rascally candidate for office in Vermont, and forbids him to rob 
his Gentile stepdaughter even to advance the Jewish triumph, 
Jacob at first concludes to heed the warning, to go in for pure 
politics and to be strictly honest. But presently his dreams of 
Israel's future and his own prospective kingly grandeur determine 
him to disobey in secret, and trust to his assured success to win 
him pardon. Then one misfortune after another crowds upon 



1 889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 259 

him. His once-beloved Jewish wife, whom he had discarded in 
order to marry a rich Gentile, turns up again as an actress, in- 
sists on paying him a visit in the character of his sister, finds 
out all his underhand ways and brings him to very complete 
grief. He escapes the summons to commit suicide as a penalty 
for his disobedience to his Order only by the accident of being 
murdered through mistake by one of his discharged workmen. 
The reader sees the plot to be fantastic and uncompulsory on 
the imagination. There is some very fair side-play in the book, 
however, and it is clean both in conception and execution. 

Mrs. Schuyler Van Rensselaer's Six Portraits (Boston and 
New York : Houghton, MirHin & Co.) is made up of essays con- 
tributed by her within the last three or four years to various 
American magazines. They treat of Luca della Robbia ; Antonio 
Allegri, commonly known as Correggio from the place of his birth ; 
William Blake, Jean Baptiste Corot, George Fuller, and Winslow 
Homer. In associating these artists, so far apart in time and char- 
racter, the aim of the writer has been first to show "the mean- 
ing of individuality in art," and secondly to illustrate the " general 
truth that it is the part of the student to put himself in perfect 
sympathy now with one artist and now with another." How far 
Mrs. Van Rensselaer would be held by experts in art and in art 
criticism to have succeeded in either of these special aims we 
cannot undertake to say. She has certainly made an interesting 
and well-written book, which has a literary value, and should 
entertain many people to whom the pictures she speaks of are un- 
known. Coming to those we personally know, we do not read 
her paper on George Fuller with less pleasure because her esti- 
mate of his paintings is higher than our own. With what she 
says of the masterly and wholly individual work of Winslow 
Homer we are altogether in accord. 



260 WITH READERS AXD CORRESPOXDEXTS. [Nov., 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 

THE HISTORY OF A CONVERSION. 

I DID not have the misfortune, as so many had who were born in New Eng- 
land more than a quarter of a century ago, to hear much of Calvinism with its 
pessimistic conclusions. My father belonged to none of the sects, though he 
attended the Congregational Church with my mother, who was a member of it, 
every Sunday. 

He was, however, a religious man, reading his Bible through, "Apocrypha 
and all/' as he used to say, once every year. He did this for over sixty years, 
and tried to live up to the teaching which it brought home to his heart. 

The religious element in my beloved mother showed itself when she prom- 
ised me to God as a minister of his word while I was of the most tender age. 

Every Sunday so far back as I can remember we children used to meet in my 
mother's room on Sunday afternoon to read Scripture and sing hymns. It was 
here that I learned the doctrines of the Trinity, the redemption of mankind, the 
never-ending happiness in heaven for the just. Here I learned that God is a 
merciful God, good, kind, and compassionate to sinners, wishing that all should 
come to repentance. 

It was towards the close of my thirteenth year, when I had completed the 
first year in the high-school, that a revival was started in the church where our 
family worshipped. My parents were away at the time, and I was allowed 10 
attend the meetings every evening. I soon became " convinced of sin," but I 
could not "feel converted." I felt that I was a sinner, and 1 felt also that I 
wanted God's forgiveness for my sins. I remember to-day the keen anguish of 
mind and heart which pierced me to the centre of my being when I was told the 
awful, satanic lie, that the reason I did not feel as I wanted to was because in 
all probability I did " not belong to the number of the elect." Thanks be to God ! 
I rejected this untruth, my own heart and my good angel telling me alike of the 
truth which I learned from my mother in the words of Holy Scripture: " For 
God sent not his Son into the world to condemn the world, but that the world by 
him might be saved." 

The rejection of this falsehood of Calvin was my first positive step towards 
the Catholic Church. 

The next great change in my life came during the same year. I was sent to 
that great and now famous school for boys in Concord, N. H. It was here that 
I came in contact with the Episcopal Church, in what is known as the "high- 
church school." Never can I forget the comfort which the first words of the cate- 
chism brought to me. They told me that I was by baptism "made a member 
of Christ, the child of God, and an inheritor of the kingdom of heaven." 
Blessed Catholic truth ! For six weeks the sting of that revival had rankled in 
my soul, and now I was at peace. I felt strong. 

I asked how my sins were to be forgiven, and I was told that Christ had left 
power on earth to forgive sins to his ministers. And although at this time I did 
not confess my sins except to God alone, yet I felt that there was the means of 
forgiveness ready at any time, and when, Sunday after Sunday, I heard the words 
of the " General Absolution " read, I truly thought that by their virtue my sins 
were washed away. 

The question now arises in my readers' minds as to my opinion of the Catho- 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 261 

lie Church at this point in my life. It may best be told by a little circumstance 
which happened while I was at this school. L C and I were one after- 
noon out together in a boat on the large mill-pond beside which the school stood. 
He asked me suddenly, without any previous conversation on the subject : " Do 
you believe in the Pope ? " Surprised, I made a very indignant answer, and stated 

that I had been taught to believe and still did that he was Antichrist. C 

only laughed and assured me, when I asked him, that he believed in him. It is 
many years since this, and that boy is now a man and, like the writer, a Catholic 
in deed and in truth. If he chances to read this, I am sure he will pardon me for 
bringing him into my little story. 

It was here that I learned many things regeneration in Baptism, the Real 
Presence, the sacrifice of the Mass, prayers for the dead, the invocation of 
saints. I do not mean to say that these things were taught explicitly by the 
authorities of the school, but they were floating about among the boys and the 
masters, and I learned them and believed them as well. 

I left this school at last when I was ready to enter college, and for four years 
I paid very little attention to religion other than attending church every Sunday. 
I was an Episcopalian, but I cared very little what church I went to at this time, 
and I was as likely to go to a Catholic church, if the fancy struck me, as to any 
other. In fact, I remember receiving a rather sharp reprimand from the presi- 
dent for attending St. Patrick's. He told me if I did it again I should be marked 
absent from church e"ach time it happened until, being absent a certain number 
of times, I might suffer the penalty of suspension. 

I remember calling on the Rev. Lawrence Walsh (on whose soul may God 
have mercy !) and being received with the utmost kindness. My motive, which 
must have been evident to him, was curiosity to speak to a Roman Catholic 
priest. Nevertheless, he received me with the greatest kindness and charity, 
which he knew so well how to dispense to those who needed it. 

Thus by little and little were my prejudices wearing away and becoming less 
and less. 

In the autumn of 187 a great thing happened which changed all my plans 

the future. There had been with me in college for two years a young man, 
or rather a boy, of nineteen. Between us sprang up a deep friendship that has 
lasted until now. Leaving college in the spring of that same year, he went to 

his home in S . It was after I had returned to college in the autumn that I 

received one day a package. I opened it. It was from his brother, stating that 
had sent his love from his death-bed, and that shortly before he died he 
had been baptized in the Roman Catholic Church, to which his family properly 
belonged. 

The lesson was a profound one. " Suppose I were to die to-morrow, where 
would my soul be?" The result was the resolution then made, and not for 
many years accomplished, to become a priest. It seemed as if a voice had 
spoken to me, saying, " Except you become a priest you cannot save your soul." 
No doubt my friend was praying for me. For nearly two years after this I wa"s 
beset with difficulties which rendered it impossible to pursue my studies with the 
intention I had formed. But at last a way was opened and I began to prepare for 
a calling which I believed to be the greatest. I at once found the Catholic Church 
staring me in the face. One day one of the professors said in class: " You can 
find all the germs of Roman Catholicism in the prayer-book of the Episcopal 
Church." This sort of teaching had quite a different effect on me from what he 
had expected. It gave me a positive love for that church which I had once hated, 
and then the step from love to union was but short. 

I had been an Episcopalian minister about a month and was connected with 



262 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Nov., 

a ritualistic church where they had a fine choir of boys. I had been placed in 
charge of them, and one of my duties was to visit their homes and become ac- 
quainted with their parents. One evening a number of new boys made their appear- 
ance, and I took their names and addresses down in my note -book. There was 
one among them that evening who, on being asked his name, addressed me with 
the title of " Father." I asked him what church he went to, and he mentioned 
the name of a certain well-known Roman Catholic church in the city. The next 
day I wrote a note and delivered it myself to a gentleman of my acquaintance 
who was a member of that church, requesting him for the sake of the boy to 
inform his parents and his pastor that he was making arrangements to sing in our 
church. 

The next day I was struck at the apparent absurdity of my action. If I be- 
longed to the Catholic Church, if the Protestant Episcopal Church were a branch 
together with the Greek and the Roman, then why should I have done such 
a deed ? I resolved then to begin at once the study of the primacy and the in- 
fallibility of the pope. For five long months I labored through huge folios, pick- 
ing out with much difficulty the proofs of the fact that Rome is the centre of 
unity, and that in order to belong to the body of the church one must be in 
communion with the see of Peter. 

Once I arrived at this conclusion, or, better, when the light of God's grace 
let me see this truth, then I joyfully made my abjuration and was received. 

Since that day I have had, at last, the inestimable privilege of becoming a 
priest. In closing I beg a prayer from my readqrs for the grace of final per- 
severance. SACERDOS. 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS OF BOOKS, ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WEST FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY. 

One of the largest Catholic circulating libraries in New York City has fol- 
lowed the plan of admitting no book of fiction unless approved by competent 
judges, a plan which should be universally adopted. In the catalogue of this 
library we find an entry printed in bold type, " All the stories of Christian Reid." 
This is a compliment given to but few authors in the department of fiction. 
Prompted by a desire to get information on this matter from another source, we 
examined the catalogue of the Boston Public Library, which is guided on liberal 
principles, and we find that it contains fourteen stories written by Christian Reid, 
whose real name is Frances C. Fisher. Among Catholics these praiseworthy 
stories are now becoming more generally known, though they have been well re- 
ceived by all classes of readers who can appreciate fiction of a high order of 
excellence. 

We are pleased to know that Christian Reid is a constant reader of THE 
CATHOLIC WORLD. As a Catholic writer she approves, in the following letter, 
the work of our Reading Union : 

" I have been very much interested in all that 1 have seen regarding the 
Columbian Reading Union. It appears to me admirably adapted to encourage 
among Catholics a knowledge and love of literature, and to train a discriminating 
faculty, which is much needed. For while intellectual culture is the ' note ' of the 
present age, the means by which ideas are widely diffused and the ruin also of 
unnumbered souls effected, we cannot afford to ignore it, to neglect the use of so 
powerful a weapon, and provide no antidote for the subtle poison lurking in popu- 



D 

' 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 263 

lar novel, critical essay, and scientific manual alike. We need to encourage the 
growth of a Catholic reading public sufficiently cultured to appreciate the best 
books of the best authors, sufficiently critical to discriminate between good and 
bad literature, sufficiently learned to detect false history and perceive the shallow- 
ness of false philosophy. For these ends the first list of books prepared by the 
Cathedral Library Reading Circle of New York seems so well arranged that no 
suggestion could improve it. I hope most earnestly that the Union may succeed, 
and do a great work for Catholic literature, while doing a greater work yet for 
Catholic minds and souls. CHRISTIAN REID. 

" Salisbury, North Carolina." 

We are waiting patiently to hear from other Catholic authors on this subject. 
Any one wishing to get the first list of historical novels, published by the Colum- 
bian Reading Union and so highly praised by Christian Reid, can do so by 
sending ten cents in postage. 

From the letters received we quote some specimens to show the opinions 
already formed of the movement in favor of Catholic Reading Circles : 

" We feel an active and very 'lively interest in the plan for Reading Circles, 
and earnestly hope it will prove a success. Anything that we can do to further its 
interests will be cheerfully done. In our opinion it is one of the most useful and 
praiseworthy conceptions of 1889. 

" SR. M. STANISLAUS CAMPBELL, Directress. 

" Academy of the Visitation, Mobile, Ala" 

"The prospectus of the Columbian Reading Union has been received, with 
the list of ' historical novels ' prepared by the Cathedral Reading Circle of New 
York. This list, embracing as it does a most valuable and interesting collection 
of works of fiction, will, with the added books of reference, prove a safe guide to 
minds thirsting for the. good things of Catholic literature and a knowledge of 
what the church has done and is still doing for the cause of Christian civili- 
zation. 

" To the youth of both sexes ambitious of preserving and enlarging the 
education acquired at college or academy such a course of reading will prove of 
incalculable benefit, and many an hour which otherwise would pass without 
profit may be converted into a time of usefulness by bringing into the home 
circle the refining influence of pure Catholic literature. Parents and friends of 
maturer years will be glad to interest themselves in promoting the good work. 

" In the far West it is impossible to obtain Catholic works from local dealers, 
nd the generous offer of the Columbian Reading Union to purchase books for 
its members is indeed a boon to be appreciated. 

" I know that many difficulties will beset the way of the Union. Habits of 
indifference must be overcome, an interest in Catholic literature awakened, en- 
couraging words and substantial aid freely given, until success crowns its efforts, 
and daily increasing numbers prove that in union lies its strength. 

Gilroy, California. MARCELLA A. FITZGERALD." 

The world does not know enough of Catholic thought. People are enthusi- 
astic over the theories of Theosophy and Buddha, and talk as though such beauti- 
ful thoughts could never possibly have been written elsewhere. Those outside the 
church read a great deal, and on just such subjects ; they are always restless, 
while attributing our satisfaction to a certain contentment with ignorance. It is 
well to impress them with example, but if Catholics read more and could give 
better explanations of their different practices, would it not in a measure counter- 
act some of the anti-Christian thoughts pervading our literature? J. E. P." 



act s< 



264 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Nov., 

4 'Everywhere I find interest and curiosity regarding the faith. I certainly 
do not invite controversy, but it seems to me I live in a state of amicable 
argument with every thinking man and woman I meet. I cannot think my ex- 
perience is unique, and it is this that makes me feel so strongly the necessity of a 
broader and deeper religious education. Protestant clergymen, free-thinking 
lawyers, cultured agnostics, all open the subject of religion in conversation. 
They would not speak on the subject to a priest, perhaps would not read a 
Catholic book, and it is only through social contact they learn anything of Catho- 
licism. It fairly appalls me to think how much I ought to learn in order to ex- 
plain my position. Aided by my experience of many years' unbelief, and a 
knowledge of the weak points of my adversaries, I get along fairly well ; that is to 
say, if I don't convince anybody I can at least make them thoroughly uncomfort- 
able. But I know I ought to do more. It is difficult to know where to begin in 
the pursuit of proper intellectual training. I would be thankful if the Columbian 
Union would indicate a course of reading for those who feel this special want. I 
want to fight in others the indifference and agnosticism that blighted the best 
years of my own life. I so thoroughly understand the anatomy of doubt that, if 
I can ever gain a knowledge of the proper remedies, I will know perhaps rather 
better than those who have always had faith how to treat the disease. But, as I 
say, the task is appallingly difficult, and if it were not borne in upon me as a stern 
duty I would give it up. If you will help me with advice I will be truly thank- 
ful. Certainly the idea of the Columbian Union is Heaven-sent, and you have 
no more admiring and gratefu^ member than myself." 

We are indebted for letters and suggestions to : 

J. A. H., Pittsfield, Mass.; E. L. T. L., St. Thomas, Tasco Co., Fla. ; 
A. M. H., Cincinnati, O. ; A. J. K., Philadelphia, Pa.; R. D., New York 
City; S. M. P., Portland, Ore.; J. J. M., Toledo, O. ; K. M. J., New York 
City; D. J. S., Jefferson City, Mo.; J. A. McD., New York City ; B. A., 
St. Louis, Mo. ; P. F. C., Litchfield, Ills. ; N. T. B., Buffalo, N. Y. ; C. J., 
Liberty, Ills. ; T. D., New York City; A. F. S., St. Louis, Mo. ; J. P. R., 
Chicago, Ills. ; S. M. G., Worcester, Mass. 

We have received from Miss Mary M. Meline, of Cincinnati, an account of 
the plan adopted for a Reading Circle lately established at the residence of Mrs. 
Debar. The following is a copy of the circular sent to those who were requested 
to become members : 

" CONCERNING A READING CIRCLE. 

" Many complaints have been lately made as to the want of patronage of 
Catholic literature. In several cities Reading Circles have been formed, and in 
New York it is proposed, through THE CATHOLIC WORLD, to establish a general 
reading union. 1 have been encouraged to attempt the formation of a local circle 
in Cincinnati, which may be affiliated with the Columbian Reading Union. 

" A subscription often cents a month is the amount decided upon by those 
circles in active operation. If those who are willing will pay in the year's sub- 
scription, $1.20, at once, a sum sufficient to purchase books will soon be accu- 
mulated. 

" As soon as I have eleven names, I will ask those eleven to meet me and 
discuss the matter, determine how the circle shall be governed, whether a meet- 
ing of the members, for the purpose of talking over the books read and deciding 
upon the purchase of others, shall be called once or twice a month and decide 
(each one bringing his or her list) what books shall be obtained to form the 
nucleus of the circle. t 

"Rules. Subscription to be paid on the first of every month. Those who 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 



265 



leglect this for two months to be dropped from the roll. Books not to be loaned. 
Jooks to be transferred on the ist and I5th of each month. Fine for defacing a 
>k, 25 cents ; for non-return or lending of book, 10 cents per week." 

In explaining the mode of delivering books to members Miss Meline 
writes : 

" I hire a boy twice a month at fifty cents and car-fare to carry the books 
)und. He has a pass-book containing the names of subscribers. Each one is 
squired to enter in it the name of the book, date of reception and return, be- 
sides the entry on the lists marked 'when received,' 'when returned,' in the 
ront and back of the volumes. The rules are few and simple to insure the 
ifety of the books. 

" We have purchased books sufficient for the present membership. 
" Among the books I ordered was Ozanarn's Life, which is out of print. A 
reat pity, for it should be in the hands of every Catholic. Also Philosophy of 
History, by Ozanam, not to be had. MARY M. MELINE. 

" Walnut Hills, Cincinnati, Ohio." 

The librarian of a Reading Circle writes as follows : 

" In this city our list of Catholic women contains comparatively few names 
of literary culture or social experience. Some read standard works, not Catholic, 
and others read little else than newspapers. My plan interests all these by send- 
ing into their homes miscellaneous books by Catholic authors. The reading is, 
of course, desultory, but a branch for study will be formed later on. 

" My experience shows that it is most difficult to unite people with varied tastes 
on any plan ; hence I left nothing to the option of the members except the disposal 
of the books passed through the club, but presented the details of the plan in the 
form of a personal invitation. This may seem dogmatic, but has proved even 
more successful than expected. We had no organization, the members accept- 
ing the invitation to join elected a treasurer, consenting to leave all else to me 
ter it had been explained that nothing would be required of them beside the 
is, except to pass each book in turn promptly to the member whose name fol- 
>ws on the list and whose address would be sent with the book. * * * " 

For the convenience of those about to organize a small Reading Circle we give 
fac-simile of the list to be inserted in each book : 



Girafe. 



Treasurer. 



......... ..... Librarian. 

ANNUAL SUBSCRIPTION - . 

PLEASE PASS BOOKS PROMPTLY ON THE IST AND I5TH OF THE MONTH. 



NAMES. 


Rec'd. 


Pass'd. 



























266 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS, [Nov., 

This statement was prepared to go with the list of subscribers : ' 

" Considering the individual tastes of the members, it is hardly expected that 
they will be interested in all the books passed, but as those selected include many 
subjects history, biography, poetry, fiction, and a few religious works it is 
thought each member will derive some pleasure therefrom, and have the satisfac- 
tion ofencouraging the beginning of a work which is expected to result in an ex- 
tensive intercourse with the best Catholic authors and the formation of many 
libraries and literary clubs in the future." 

We are much encouraged by the letters received from E. F. B., Hartford, 
Conn.; S. M. C., Sinsinawa, Wis.; I. P. M., Narriston, Va.; J. A. K., Colum- 
bus, O.; A. F. S., St. Louis, Mo.; O. A. H., Sunnydale, W. T.; M. G. M., 
Portland, Ore.; D. J. S., Jefferson City, Mo.; A. J. McD., Marinette, Wis.; 
J. A. M., Sioux Falls, Dakota; G. H. W., St. Louis, Mo.; A. J. K., Philadel- 
phia, Pa.; E. M. T., N. Y. City; E. A. McM., South Boston, Mass.; G. S. C., 
N. Y. City; E. McG., Columbus, O.; R. B. M., Portland, Ore.; A. G., St. 
Louis, Mo.; S. P., Madison, Wis.; M. E. M., Springfield, O. 

Through one of our correspondents we have obtained information of a circle 
organized in Chicago which has proved very beneficial to its members. Our in- 
formant thus writes : 

"We meet weekly, under the guidance of a zealous priest, to consider 
the teachings of the church on matters of religion, history, science, and 
philosophy. We were advised to follow a consecutive course of reading, 
consulting standard works, and were asked to submit in writing, for explanation 
and discussion, any individual objections or troublesome questions. These con- 
ferences led to a close study of infallibility, the Inquisition, Genesis as related to 
science, Darwinism, Buddhism, etc., and resulted in Unbounded admiration for 
the liberality of the church and increased confidence in her doctrines. Our circle 
numbered several Protestant ladies, who were greatly edified and interested. 
I wish all Catholics had such an opportunity for serious intellectual and spiritual 
development. A. M." 

The information which we give in this issue of THE CATHOLIC WORLD will 
enable the writer of the following letter to answer his own questions : 

" I do not think that THE CATHOLIC WORLD has done a better service to 
Catholics than it is now doing in calling attention to Reading Circles. The 
methods proposed by the Columbian Reading Union are practical and will suit 
our people, who for the most part are great readers ; the plan will gratify the 
taste for reading that which is useful as well as interesting. 

" When I was sixteen years of age I followed a course of reading planned 
by a high-school professor, who, I believe, meant well, but I realize now was 
very injudicious; his plan included such authors as Gibbon, Hallam, Buckle, and 
Lecky, with the result that it nearly destroyed my faith, and in reality did so for a 
companion who pursued the same course. It need not be said that there were no 
Catholic 'works on the list. I have since been interested in the methods of the 
Chautauqua Reading Circles. I was about to adopt these methods for our boys 
and young men when THE CATHOLIC WORLD began to discuss the subject. 

" Last week, having occasion to address a society of young men, I called their 
attention to the Columbian Reading Union as a practical method of literary 
work, and was agreeably surprised at the enthusiasm at once aroused ; they re- 
solved upon immediate action, and it is at their request that I write these lines. 
We know not how to begin. 

" I believe that a circular or pamphlet giving information about the organi- 






1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 267 

zation of circles, embracing the points given below, would hasten the adoption of 
the reading course very generally : 

" i st. How to get up a Circle; what officers required; what fees for 
membership. 

" 2d. Should all the members of a Reading Club read the same book, or 
should the members be divided into circles of 5, 10, or 15, each circle to read one 
or other of the books suggested in the same group ? 

" 3d. How much ought to be read every fortnight, supposing the society 
meets fortnightly, as ours does? 

" 4th. Should the reading be done privately by each member and discussed 
in public meeting, or should one of the members read aloud to the Club from the 
book selected to be studied ? F. H. G." 

From many sources we have been favored with information asked for by one 
of our correspondents on the subject of Hypnotism : 

" In Brownson's Quarterly Review for July, 1875, will be found an. article on 
'Our Lady of Lourdes,' in which the writer sets forth that 'Satan, though a 
creature, has a superhuman power, and is able to work, not miracles, but pro- 
digies which imitate miracles, and which the unvfrary may mistake for them. But 
Satan, being a creature, has no creative, and, therefore, no supernatural power.' 
This article may also be found in Brownson's Works, vol. viii. p. 104. 

"See also Brownson's Spirit-rapper, published in 1854, and republished in 
Brownson's Works, vol. ix. pp. 1-234. 

"Father Hecker delivered in 1871, or thereabouts, a very able and satis- 
factory lecture on spiritism. That ought to be published if it can be found in 
print or manuscript. * * * " 

" Inquiry was made in THE CATHOLIC WORLD whether any reader knew of 
a Catholic work on Hypnotism. There is a book published by Letouzey et Ane, 
Paris, called Le Merveilleux etla Science, etude sur ['hypnotisms, par Elie Meric, 
docteur en theologie, professeur a la Sorbonne. The author's name is sufficient 
guarantee for the scientific treatment of the subject. To me the work seems to 
have the additional merit of showing the wisdom of the Holy See's decisions on 
Hypnotism and kindred systems, which is seen by the care shown in distin- 
guishing what is clearly false in these systems from what may be true, and in 
the refusal, even before scientific proof of what is true in them had been made, 
to condemn absolutely these systems, although repeatedly urged to do so. 

"Boston, Mass. T. J. WHELAN." 

"The subject of Hypnotism is treated in the Lyceum, a Catholic periodical 
published monthly in Dublin. In February, 1889, the first article appeared and 
was followed by others during three successive months. What I have read in the 
numbers of the Lyceum indicates that every subject is seriously considered and 
treated with ability, though, as in the case of Mr. Mivart's stand-point, with an 
ultra-critical acerbity. * * * " 

Through the kindness of the business manager of THE CATHOLIC WORLD 
we have obtained copies of the Lyceum, with the articles on Hypnotism. It is 
considered in its relations to psychology. By processes purely artificial it has 
been found that persons may be subjected to an influence by which conscious- 
ness becomes disordered or suspended, and strange phenomena are manifested as 
well of the organic as of the mental order. For different reasons Hypnotism has 
been examined by students of medicine, by lawyers and theologians. In some 
respects it is very much like Mesmerism. 

The Messrs. Benziger Brothers are agents for the Lyceum, to whom Amen- 



268 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Nov., 

can and Canadian subscribers are requested to send their orders. The articles 
on Hypnotism are from the pen of the Rev. Father Finlay, S.J., editor of the 
Lyceum. 

We publish this month only two of the many letters received from priests, 
whose words of commendation we esteem very highly. Their active co-operation 
will give valuable assistance to the Reading Circles in their parishes : 

" Please enter my name on the list of membership as the representative of 
the Young Ladies' Sodality and find enclosed $i yearly dues. 

" I have been watching the 'development of the Union with great interest and 
doubt not that it will accomplish much good among Catholics. It is certainly 
deplorable to see the Catholic youth of our land forced, as it were, to derive their 
intellectual life from the dangerous books of the public library. I wish all suc- 
cess to this praiseworthy undertaking. * * * " 

" I am in charge of a large parish in the country, and I know there exists ac- 
tual spiritual thirst for Catholic reading. I hope the Union can slake this thirst, 
and I will use every effort necessary to establish a flourishing branch in my 
parish. * * *" 

In answer to the numerous inquiries made by correspondents we are glad to 
state that Brother Azarias' essay on " Books and Reading" has* been published 
in pamphlet form and is sold for the benefit of the Cathedral Library. Copies 
may be had by addressing the Rev. Joseph H. McMahon, Librarian, 460 Madison 
Avenue, New York City. The price per copy is twenty-five cents, payable in pos- 
tage-stamps. M. C. M. 



THE SLAVE-TRADE. 



A very interesting lecture, delivered by M. Jules Simon, on the loth of 
February last, before a numerous and distinguished audience, in the great 
amphitheatre of the Sorbonne in Paris, has been fully reported in the Bulletin de 
la Societe Antiesdavagiste, an anti-slavery paper published monthly in that city. 
The lecturer describes with careful accuracy and from reliable sources the hor- 
rors and abominable cruelties of slavery and the Arab slave-trade as at present 
carried on in Africa. He has derived his facts from Elisee Reclus' work on that 
continent, from reported interviews with British and French officials there, and 
lastly from statements of French missionaries, narrators of what they have them- 
selves either seen or been told by credible native witnesses. 

Slavery has existed from time immemorial in Africa, and it is estimated that 
practically at least one-half of its population hews wood and draws water for the 
other half in a state of slavery. Hereditary slaves are usually treated by their 
owners ''as well as one barbarian knows how to treat another." The great 
generators of servitude there are famine and war. In a part of the country suf- 
fering from a dearth of food a family can get it from more fortunate neighbors 
only in exchange for their own freedom or that of some of their members. Cap- 
tives made by war often meet with a much worse fate, being reserved either for 
cannibal feasts or for human sacrifices to royal majesty. The purposes for which 
slaves are wanted in Africa are mainly three : If men, to cultivate the soil or 
carry burdens ; if women, to supply harems. For instance, Zanzibar is one of 
the spots where field-hands find their best use. The clove-plant grows well 
there, and is successfully cultivated throughout the island. Its culture at first 
does not require much labor, but when the season for gathering the crop comes 
one man has as much as he can do in attending to twenty plants. Consequently 
on some clove plantations there are as many as five hundred slaves. 






1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 269 

The entire transportation of ivory from the interior one of Africa's most 
valuable products and of goods in return, is done on the backs of slaves, who 
are often overloaded, and then urged along cruelly by the lash. The creed of 
Islam, with its accompaniments, polygamy and harems, has greatly increased in 
Africa the demand for female slaves, and it may be fairly assumed that a yet 
further increase of slavery will follow, as a consequence, on the growth and 
spread there, already very large, of that belief. 

Traffic in African slaves is carried on either openly, or surreptitiously if 
forbidden by treaties made with European powers. In the former case it has the 
sanction of the authority and supervision of the king of the locality, who derives a 
large part, if not all, of his revenues from it, and even pays his officials their 
annual salaries with slaves. In the latter case, the Mussulman princes, who have 
bound themselves unwillingly by treaty to prevent a trade which, sad to say, 
their consciences seem not to tell them is iniquitous, and who conceive themselves 
to be the great losers by deprivation of it, have to manage things underhand. 
Parties pay the prince one or two piastres for every slave introduced, and he 
wilfully closes his eyes to violations of the law. Officials have to be bribed in 
like manner, and, in the instances of Tripoli and Morocco, it is the only pay 
governors of provinces get. It was reliably ascertained some years ago that the in- 
come from this source of several of these dignitaries amounted to forty or fifty 
thousand francs yearly. A piastre is the equivalent of four francs, say eighty cents. 
According to a letter received by the learned lecturer only two months previous, 
from Father Jamet, of the society of Lcs Missionaires d'Alger, and dated from Zan- 
zibar, quotations for slaves' were as follows: In places where there was not an 
active demand, fifteen kilogrammes (thirty-three pounds) of salt would easily buy 
two slaves. In cities, where usually the market is better, a negro lad eight to 
fourteen years old would bring twenty piastres, an adult of between twenty and 
thirty years, forty piastres, and a girl a higher price, according to her attractions. 
Eunuchs always fetch fancy prices. The learned lecturer then quoted from a 
bulletin of the Societe Esclavagiste de France the personal testimony of a British 
consul at Messfoua. He had noticed that a large number of negro children 
whom he happened to meet appeared very^ ill and suffering. He inquired in 
vain of the Moors who came to visit him in his tent whether the cause of their ail- 
ment lay with the drinking water or the climate. Later on he was confidentially 
informed that these poor boys belonged to a vast establishment for the supply of 
eunuchs for the harem of his sheriffian majesty, and that out of thirty children 
operated on at least twenty-eight were sure to die in a slow agony from the 
effects. The consul's informant added that it would cost him his life if the caid 
should happen to find out that he had revealed this horrid fact. 

Slave dealers get their prohibited commodity, some by regular purchase 
from owners who have it to sell; others, and these are the more numerous, by 
organizing bands of two or three hundred men, well armed and mounted on 
selected camels, who either stir up wars between tribes, and come in afterwards 
to purchase the captives, or by making during the night raids on villages 
around which they have lain in ambuscade during the day, and setting them on 
fire. The result is generally that from 1,000 to 1,500 of the villagers are mas- 
sacred, and the small remnant of survivors are made slaves and prepared for a 
long tramp of from 1,200 to 1,500 miles. Each male captive has a sort of bridle 
and bit put in his mouth ; an iron fork, the handle of which rests on the shoulder 
of the man behind him, is made fast around his neck ; his hands are bound behind 
his back, his feet are bare, and not infrequently his legs are hobbled in order to 
render flight impossible. The women are fettered and laden with heavy bur- 
dens, and their children, if they have any, trot along crying by their side, and when 






270 WITH READERS AND CO-RESPONDENTS. [Nov., 

they get tired must be carried by their mothers. It is a not unfrequent occur- 
rence for a suffering, overladen woman to be unequal to the task of carrying both 
burdens, whereupon one of the conductors of the caravan descends from his 
camel, draws a pistol from his girdle, and settles the matter by blowing the 
child's brains out while in its mother's arms. The only food the captives get is 
sorgo and corn. At night they are carefully inspected, and such as are plainly 
too sick and weak to get to their journey's end are knocked on the head and left, 
as are those who may have died on the march, to become food for the hyenas 
and jackals, which always follow looking for this prey, as also do the marabouts 
and vultures, soaring overhead, intent on getting their share. 

The march of these caravans can easily be traced by the skeletons of slaves 
who have perished on the way, and who almost always have around their necks 
the iron fastening by which they were secured. It is also an ascertained fact that 
these overfeasted beasts of prey have more food of this kind than they care or are 
able to devour. 

The waste of life is therefore frightfully great. Reliable calculations show 
that on an average out of four captives setting out on the journey one only 
reaches its end. One instance is cited in which 1,500 men were massacred to 
secure fifty-two women ; of these hardly fifteen reached their place of destination. 
In another case five caravans, organized to raid in succession in the same extent of 
country, accomplished the following ruin to secure an aggregate booty of 2,500 
slaves. A land twice as large as Belgium, containing one million inhabitants 
and one hundred and eighteen towns, was so thoroughly ravaged and made deso- 
late that neither inhabitants nor habitations remain. A British consul-general 
once expressed to a Mussulman sovereign his indignation that such atrocities 
were permitted. The potentate admitted that the poor sufferers had a hard road 
to travel before finding masters, but that afterwards their life was not hard, and 
" they were," he said, " as well treated as European servants." 

After the captives have reached their destined mafket, if it be in a country 
not bound by treaty for the suppression of the slave-trade, their sale takes place 
at a fair, just as if they were cattle, along with other goods, and becomes the 
occasion of great rejoicing. If the market lies in a country whose government is 
bound by treaty, then the sale has to be managed on the sly. Some slaves are 
sold for transportation either to Zanzibar or to Turkey in Europe ; in the former 
event they are crowded into large sail-boats; in the latter they are shipped by the 
fine steamers of the Mahsousse line, and they pass the supervision of the Ottoman 
authorities by the payment of a few piastres, and by the owners exhibiting docu- 
ments which attest that the negroes he has put on board are freed slaves, which 
of course the poor fellows, who cannot read what is shown them, cannot contra- 
dict. Slaves shipped to Zanzibar or the Island of Pemba, where there is also a 
great demand for them, have to endure on the passage fresh sufferings very 
different from those undergone before on land. They are stowed away, chained, 
in boutres, large boats carrying one hundred or less, and are so crowded that 
they have to squat with their heads resting on their knees, and can neither move 
nor rise. On a platform aft the skipper and sailors sail the craft, and throw, 
when feeding-time comes, balls of sorgo and maize and beans mixed among the 
human cargo, each individual of which must get his share if he can. Some are 
so sea-sick that they cannot eat. Sometimes a destructive epidemic breaks out 
among them and carries many off. If the boutre is chased by a cruiser, the corpus 
delicti with fetters on is thrown overboard, to be devoured by watchful sharks 
always following in the wake of the vessel. As under the most favorable circum- 
stances some slaves are sure to die at sea, and the dying are to be got rid of 
as well as the dead, the work of heaving overboard has to be done almost 



:889-] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 271 

lily. Survivors have told a missionary that they have ever ringing in their 
irs the two-fold noise of a corpse falling into the sea and that of the sharks 
ishing to devour it. 

The peroration of the discourse consists of eloquent and timely expressions 
>f Christian charity and duty, and of grounds for hope ; of a tribute of praise to 
ic missionaries who leave all to go to those suffering lands, and of complimen- 
iry mention of the initiative and impulse given to the anti-slavery movement by 
Ordinal Lavigerie. B. 



CONGREGATIONAL SINGING IN DUBLIN. 

' During last August, after celebrating Mass one Sunday morning in the 

fesuit church in Dublin, I asked the sacristan at what hour Vespers would be 

ing. " We have no Vespers," he replied, "but we have a devotional service 

;ith a sermon in the evening at 8 o'clock." I confess that I was greatly sur- 

>rised to hear this, as I had been informed by a Jesuit father with whom I had 

jen travelling that St. Francis Xavier's, Dublin, was one of the best working 

>arishes of the society. 

But in the evening, when I attended this service, I found it to be of a most inter- 
sting and practical character. About one-third of the best seats in the church were 
occupied exclusively by men who were members of some confraternity. All of 
the remaining seats were filled promiscuously with men, women, and children. 
First the Rosary was recited with great devotion, all of the congregation respond- 
ing to the prayers in loud, clear tones. Then a regular sermon of half or three- 
quarters of an hour was preached, plain, practical, and to the point. As the 
preacher descended from the pulpit that vast congregation united in singing a 
hymn which impressed me more than any singing which I had ever heard in 
church, except thp.t of the congregation of the Cologne Cathedral and that at 
the Holy House of Loreto. After the hymn the Tantum Ergo was sung with 
even greater effect, the preponderance of the men's voices being particularly 
noticeable ; and the Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament followed. 

It seems to me that a better service than this for afternoon or evening could 
not be found. H. H. WYMAN. 



BLESSED IS THE PEACEMAKER. 

The city of London claims to be Christian, but the religion of Christ exerts, 
nhappily, only a feeble influence on the city's social life. A state church, half 
ealous and half friendly towards its numerous rival sects, speaks, if it has a 
ublic voice apart from the state at all, in tones so varying and hesitating that it 
ives forth an uncertain sound ; and it is so identified with the rich and the noble 
that to the common people it is an intruder ; and the smaller sects are weaker 
still. When, therefore, this vast metropolis was disturbed and its prosperity en- 
dangered by the strike of the dock laborers, the official church and the wrang- 
ling and petty sects of Protestantism were almost powerless to intervene, although 
five-sixths of the strikers were born of Protestant parents. At any moment the 
conflict between labor and capital might have become a bloody social war. Jus- 
tice and charity had been both violated, or such a crisis could not have arisen. 

Now, on such occasions the public looks for some man with a great moral 
power back of him to intervene. The Protestant clergy could not produce such a 
man, for he must represent a positive moral force, kindred at once to the rich and 
to the poor, and the Protestant ministry is too much divided or too much in sub- 
jection to the capitalist class to answer the requirements of the situation ; even 



jectio 



272 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Nov., 

upon questions of plain, every-day morality they find it difficult to disencumber 
their attitude of the vagueness of a religion which is essentially negative. The 
labor unions and the dock companies looked for something more than a state 
bishop or a dissenting minister to stand between them. These, moreover, too 
often feel as little interest in such matters as they are conscious of lack of power, 
of that which shall enable them to speak as men having power. Who, then, 
shall represent the higher law ? 

Cardinal Manning. He is a man full of courage. He is an Englishman, and 
a thoroughgoing one, full of leve of country. He is a dignitary of an institution 
supremely independent of all classes, and yet identified essentially with the well- 
being of all. He is a judge in the highest human tribunal. His creden- 
tials as a moral teacher are not doubtful. His life is an argument for his faith, 
which works by charity. His endeavors to make the peace are successful be- 
cause adequate causes skilfully applied produce commensurate results. The 
manliness of his character, his sympathy with the poor, his participation in all 
the great movements of his time and country for the relief of distress, his emi- 
nently spiritual life, the unworldliness of his motives, his great age all this and 
more of the like characteristics made him welcome to the toilers of the docks, 
even to the socialists, who have obtained leadership among them. On the other 
hand, his standing in the intellectual world, his princely office in the great church 
of mankind, above all, the absolute certainty that the power behind him was the 
solid foundation of stability in the social order, made it impossible for the reluc- 
tant owners of the docks to deny him. 

His words touched the dead sympathies of the capitalist and awaked a sign 
of life. To the workingmen his words sounded with the tones of unfeigned 
brotherly love. The insignia of his splendid office was no hindrance to his access 
to the poor man's heart and aroused not their suspicions ; and yet that office was 
a most valuable auxiliary in his gaining the confidence of the rich. 

The reason of Cardinal Manning's success is plain. He preaches 
and exemplifies the living Gospel of Jesus Christ. He has a real office in that 
dispensation, and he is worthy of it. That gives him a power more than human ; 
he lifts up the poor man, he makes the rich man charitable, and his word is like 
His who brings peace on earth to men of good will. 

All human organizations are at best weak instruments ; they cannot rise 
above their origin. Who can move the rich to pity ? Not those who depend 
upon their favor for very existence. Who can sincerely plead the cause of the 
needy toilers ? Not those who do not know them. Philanthropy needs to be 
baptized by the charity of Christ and to receive the gifts of the Holy Ghost 
before it can do its work. Then the evangelical virtue of poverty makes common 
cause with the poverty of necessity, the divine gift of chastity rebukes and destroys 
impurity wherever its influence is felt, and the' divine counsel of obedience be- 
comes a powerful promoter of law and order, and a lovely ornament of rational 
liberty. 

Cardinal Manning's philanthropy is Christian and Catholic. He labors for 
men's welfare both here and hereafter. He walks in the pathway, and directs 
others to walk in the pathway, which Jesus Christ has marked out. He is a well- 
c!hosen leader among men, because he seeks not his own glory, but the glory of 
God. He is one whom none but the malignant fear, and whom all guileless men 
love. The lord-mayor, the directors of the dock companies, and John Burns, 
representing British law, British capital, and British labor, all recognize in him a 
true friend and wise counsellor. "Blessed," says our Lord, "are the peace 
makers, for they shall be called the children of God." 






1889.] NE w PUB LIC A TIONS. 273 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

AMERICAN RELIGIOUS LEADERS. Jonathan Edwards. By Alexander V. G. 
Allen, D.D., Professor in the Episcopal Theological School in Cambridge, 
Mass. Boston and New York: Houghton, Mifflin & Co., the Riverside 
Press, Cambridge. 1889. 

The series of biographies of "American Religious Leaders " is one of sev- 
eral series, "American Commonwealths," "American Men of Letters," and 
"American Statesmen," which are in the course of publication by the firm of 
Houghton, Mifflin & Co. The lives of " Religious Leaders " announced, be- 
sides the one under present notice, are those of Dr. Wayland, Dr. Hodge, Dr 
Wilbur Fisk, Archbishop Hughes, Theodore Parker, and Dr. Muhlenberg, to 
be followed by others. 

So far as the style of publication is concerned, the present volume, like all the 
others of the various series which have appeared, is worthy of the publishers 
and printers, which is the highest praise, for this sort of excellence, we can give it. 
The editing, in respect to the index and other appendices of the biography, is in 
the accurate, scholarly manner of Cambridge. 

Dr. Allen writes in a pleasing style, with an evident effort at an impartial 
critical estimate of the character and work of the great man who is the subject of 
his memoir. It is very noteworthy that the biographer of Edwards should be 
sought for in Cambridge, and in an Episcopalian seminary. The other biogra- 
phers have a close affinity with their subjects. It would appear that in the circle 
of eminent authors who might be supposed competent to write a biography of 
Edwards, and who are in the same ecclesiastical connection, no one could be 
found who would be willing to place himself in the attitude of an advocate of his 
theology, or in open opposition to the same. Dr. Allen, as an outsider, compro- 
mises no one by his criticism. He is in sufficient sympathy with his hero as a 
religious leader whose character and career are interesting to appreciate his 
great mental and moral qualities, and his marked influence in and beyond New 
England in his own and succeeding generations. He is in decided opposition, 
however, to his specific theological opinions, and therefore a critic, not an advo 
cate or apologist, though free from the odium theologicum which would interfere 
with an impartial judgment of the personal worth of the subject whose opinions 
are the object of criticism. 

Jonathan Edwards was a man of superior intellectual gifts, of pure and severe 
morals, with a considerable tincture of imagination and amiable dispositions. 
He had the native capacities of a great philosopher and theologian, and it was not 
his fault, but his misfortune, that he failed to become either the one or the other 
His mind and conscience were held in bondage by the tradition of his sect, and 
although he labored hard to find a harmony between its gloomy tenets and the 
dictates of reason, his efforts only proved the impossibility of the task. He was 
earnest, and strove to be consistent in acting up to his religious convictions. 

" John Ward, Preacher," is a well-drawn picture of a man of like character, 
a good and loving man, in whom there is a struggle to reconcile opposing elements. 
The struggle killed John Ward, and the heroic effort of Jonathan Edwards to 
make his religious ideas dominant in New England ended in a collapse which 
finished his career as a preacher and pastor, and gave a blow to his peculiar 
theology from which it has never recovered. It is now, to a great extent, obso- 
lete. Probably the majority of those who belong to the ecclesiastical connection 
VOL. L. 18 



274 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Nov., 

of Edwards, and who read Dr. Allen's biography, will agree substantially with 
him in his estimate of the character and work of Jonathan Edwards as a reli- 
gious leader. 

THE PARNELL MOVEMENT, WITH A SKETCH OF IRISH PARTIES FROM 1843. 
With an addition containing an account of the great Trial instituted by the 
London Times, and giving a complete history of the Home Rule struggle 
from its inception to the suicide of Piggott. By T. P. O'Connor, M.P. 
Authorized version. New York, Cincinnati, Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

The writer of this book is a prominent member of that most energetic of all 
contemporary political parties, the Irish Nationalists. He was born about the 
date at which his retrospect begins, the "Fall of O'Connell," and his youth and 
early manhood were passed amid the sadness of the ever-decaying fortunes of his 
country. He saw his countrymen and countrywomen dying by the roadside in the 
famine while the shipping bore away the abundant surplus grain of their 
farms. He saw the great processions of emigrants whose tearful eyes and pallid 
cheeks and drooping hearts told that they were exiles as well. He has felt all 
his life the dire oppression of tyranny, alien and bigoted and greedy, brutal and 
relentless. But his book is defiant in tone, and even jubilant with the joy of ap- 
proaching victory. 

Something like two-thirds of the volume give the story of the inception, de- 
velopment, and present condition of the Irish political movement named after its 
chief promoter. The other third, which is the first part, is devoted to that mis- 
erable era of starvation, flight, spasmodic politics, and rebellion between the 
break-down of O'Connell and the collapse of Fenianism. We have seldom read 
a better summary of events and estimate of results than Mr. O'Connor gives us 
in these first chapters. His thesis is always for Home Rule, understood in both 
the principles and methods of the present Irish Parliamentary party; and cer- 
tainly all that happened between 1846 and 1870 seems to furnish arguments 
enough for the boldness of purpose and the thoroughness of performan.ee of the 
present leaders. One might say that the first third of the book is a diagnosis of 
the Irish nation's disease and the rest of it the minute description of the remedies 
applied by the National party, their application, and the results achieved. 

The success of the present movement is twofold, an Irish success and an 
English one ; at any rate, it is so in its general features. The latter is the winning 
of the Liberal party to the Irish cause. There were promises from both parties 
before, but there was little else but disappointment and chagrin to show for them, 
unless we add the periodical absorption and dissipation of the Irish parliamentary 
representation in the two hostile English parties. At the present time there is 
the stated adhesion, explicit and effectual no doubt final of the entire machin- 
ery of the English Liberal party, and its electorate almost wholly gained, the 
liberal dissidents being toryized to an extent that is likely to sever them for ever 
from their former party affiliation ; and all this without interfering with the 
autonomy of the Irish party in Parliament. Along with this has come about a 
general enlightenment of the English people upon the Irish question. It is easy 
enough for that people to tell what is right and wrong in politics whose lines do 
not interlace with their own. But when in following the threads of investiga- 
tion they find them crossing the lines of their own imperial destiny, there are none 
so blind as the enlightened English, none so mean as the famous lovers of fair 
play. It is a little strange that the Irishmen who have softened the British heart 
and anointed British eyes with the oil of righteousness in reference to Irish ques- 
tions are the most independent and defiant Irish politicians who have ever 
stopped short of violence a great fact, assuring an early and fair settlement, and 
due to nothing so much as the movement so well described by the author of this 



1889.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 275 

book. Accompanying this result, and in a great degree its cause, is the organiza- 
tion of the Irish voters in Great Britain. It is commonly enough said that Mr. 
O'Connor himself has had much, perhaps most, to do with this feature of the Irish 
agitation. 

The author's description of the results achieved in Ireland is graphic, sym- 
pathetic, and much in detail. He shows how the civil and religious elements 
have become one, thus stamping the patriotic demands with the broad seal of 
religious approval in the almost unanimous, not simply adhesion, but hearty par- 
ticipation of the Catholic clergy ; and on the other hand adorning the altar with 
the trophies of Catholic patriotism. How deep a satisfaction fills the American 
priest's heart to know that the priesthood of Ireland, now leading, now following, 
have been almost unbroken in their hearty, active, public, private co-operation in 
the present agitation for the civil liberty of their race ! 

The unity of the race is another glorious victory of the Parnell movement, in 
itself enough to secure the final triumph of the cause. The curse of that people 
has been the clan with its narrowness and its brutish tyranny. Now the clanship 
is transferred to the whole race, rendering unity of purpose and effort only the 
more passionate as it unites the ardor of blood kinship to the intelligent and 
appreciative love of a good cause. It was Irish unity which broke down the last 
barrier in Gladstone's mind ; that the whole of Celtic Ireland, and even part of 
Scotch Ireland, sent a delegation to Westminster in which there was not a single 
friend of the present parliamentary union. 

This unification of the Irish race embraces the members of the race in every 
part of the world. The Irishman in the United States or Canada or Australia 
who is not a Parnellite is considered to have broken the Celtic bond, and he is 
hard to discover, anyway. Yet more: the British dependencies which enjoy 
political autonomy, without, we believe, a single exception, have officially ex- 
pressed their approval of the Irish demand for Home Rule. This is of far greater 
weight to the English electorate than the almost unanimous adhesion of the people 
of the United States, in all that the term means, private views, the press, the pul- 
pit, the legislatures, and the executives of the States and of the national government. 

The interest one finds in this book, if extremely engrossing, is not altogether 
pleasant. There are too many sad scenes to make the drama less than tragical. 
The spectacle of a small, poor, unarmed nation ridden down by the richest and 
most powerful state in Christendom, brutally, continuously, without even the 
hypocritical pretence of granting civil rights, is hard to look upon. Later events 
have deepened the black darkness going before the dawn. It has remained for 
Mr. Balfour to exhibit a new sort of British tyranny. The English race is stal- 
wart, and heretofore it has been represented in the dragonnades and priest-hunt- 
ings and peasant-starvings by the genuine English brute. But " the most 
dangerous and the most cruel of men," says Mr. O'Connor, speaking of Balfour, 
are not the robust and the bold and the brutal tyrants. It is the men of 
effeminate minds and temper. Their vanity leads them to do things that look 
strong, and their effeminacy induces a certain tendency to political hysteria that 
has very cruel and very callous elements. . . . Mr. Balfour's acts fully justify 
this conception of his character." 

The author's account of the coercion policy as at present enforced in Ireland, 
and which the Tory government declares to be its policy for the next twenty 
years, is very circumstantial. His main line of criticism, based on notorious 
fact, is that taken by Mr. Gladstone and the English Liberals. If there be any 
fraction of truth in it, there is no such happy lot as mere obscurity or political 
ostracism in wait for Balfour, as was the case with Forster. Balfour's name will 



276 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Nov., 

be held in execration and his memory be an heir-loom of horror and loathing to 
all future generations of the Celtic race, and of all other races among whom love 
of freedom and hatred of cynical and smiling cruelty shall be cherished. 

PRINCIPLES OF THE ECONOMIC PHILOSOPHY OF SOCIETY, GOVERNMENT, 
AND INDUSTRY. By Van Buren Denslow, LL.D. New York: Cassell 
& Co. 

The domain of political economy is too wide, and its regions yet unmapped 
too extensive, to permit one yet to say that he can follow obediently any particu- 
lar guide, even the most distinguished ; and we presume that the author of this 
book would hardly claim such allegiance for his views. It must be owned that 
he brings to his work very wide and, we doubt not, very mature studies, and he has 
treated his dry topics with a certain rhetorical elegance which makes his work 
pleasant reading to any person of intelligence. The volume is readable, some 
parts of it really of much interest to even the average observer of the social and 
industrial problems involved in the science if such it really be of political 
economy. We venture to say that Mr. Denslow's work would serve for an excel- 
lent book of reference. The arrangement of chapters is wisely made, each of 
them being fully summarized in the table of contents, and a notably large index 
of seventy-six double-column pages facilitating its use. In addition to this the 
paragraphs are numbered throughout, affording greater convenience for refer- 
ence in case of the revision of future editions changing the present paging. 

One pleasant feature is the frequent occurrence of historical excursions with 
the object of more fully illustrating the author's arguments. These are partic- 
ularly well written and in a style of condensed English leading us to infer jour- 
nalistic antecedents in the author. This book differs in many other ways from 
an ordinary work on political economy, being an honest and fairly successful at- 
tempt to philosophize on the secular relations of men to each other and to the 
temporal gifts of God. We do not, as we began by intimating, quite agree with 
the author in some of his conclusions, especially those referring to legal corpora- 
tions, their uses and abuses. He is frankly opposed to the government absorp- 
tion of railroads, whereas we think the question is, to say the truest word about 
it, in a state far from settlement one way or the other, the experience of Europe 
teaching the economy of the governmental system, yet not conclusively settling 
the question for our peculiar commercial and political environments. The 
author's theory of the division of profits between labor and capital is not original, 
nor does he claim it to be so. It is, however, far in advance of the thoroughly 
immoral principle that labor is a commodity with no more rights against low 
wages than the soil or the metal has rights against the men who work them. 
But Mr. Denslow's figures tending to show that as a matter of fact labor and capi- 
tal actually do divide the profits of their joint production are suspicious and, we 
fear, illusory. 

What the author has to say on these subjects and the other equally interest- 
ing ones embraced in his wide scheme of economic and social philosophy is 
extremely valuable, not simply from the weight of his own conclusions, but be- 
cause he groups together and compares statistics and authorities so numerous 
and well chosen as to give him the undeniable merit of patient, intelligent, and 
extensive research. With reference to the tariff controversy, he is a moderate 
protectionist as to policy, and a thoroughgoing one as to theory. He is also a 
moderate advocate of the uses of paper money. Taken altogether, the book is 
one which may serve for a text-book for college classes and even, as we have said, 
for a book of reference. There is a pleasing absence of dogmatism, and a kindly 
and tolerant tone towards his opponents' views throughout. 






1 889.] NE W PUBLICA TIONS. 2JJ 

THE DARK AGES. Essays Illustrating the State of Religion and Literature 
in the Ninth, Tenth, Eleventh, and Twelfth Centuries. By S. R. Maitland, 
D.D., F.R.S., F.S.A. New Edition. With an Introduction by Frederick 
Stokes, M. A. London: John Hodges. (For sale by Benziger Bros.,, New 
York, Cincinnati, and Chicago.) 

A history of the Middle Ages written purely in the interests of truth is what 
a vast number of our fair-minded countrymen are anxious to find. The writings 
of the older Protestant historians are filled with such coarse and filthy abuse of 
the eras which mark some of the greatest triumphs of the Christian name, wit- 
nessed the holiest lives, and wrought the most wonderful moral and social reforms 
in the world that they are self- condemned. 

As writers of this class whose writings are useless and dead I may instance 
the following : Mosheim ; Robertson, the author of History of Charles the Fifth ; 
Warton, the writer of History of English Poetry ; Jortin, and Blanco White. 
The author of The Dark Ages was a Protestant clergyman, distinguished for 
his love of historical research and acquaintance with mediaeval books and manu- 
scripts, who in the essays before us has exposed the glaring misrepresentations and 
absurdities of the above-mentioned writers. No one who reads these essays of 
Dr. Maitland can fail to see that he has had the cause of truth most at heart. 
" Whenever," he says, " I give a reference (unless the contrary is stated) I copy 
immediately from the book to which I refer." They have been extensively 
read, as they were first published in the British Magazine between March, 1835, 
and February, 1838, and since then three editions have been exhausted. 

It is needless to remark that the old lines of misrepresentation of this period 
have now been abandoned. Later Protestant historians for the most part consider 
Catholic Christianity as most suitable for the Middle Ages, and as designed by the 
providence of God for them, and some consider it to-day as the best form of 
Christianity for vast multitudes of men and for particular races, and are not in 
sympathy with those who make war upon it. 

When this work first appeared in book-form, in 1844, the Oxford movement 
was in its full vigor. Accessions to the party of Newman and Ward had become 
so numerous that the instinct of alarm among the Evangelicals and Church-Lib- 
erals was aroused to the highest degree. Everything that had ever been said or 
could be said against the Catholic Church was caught up by them and reiterated 
with fresh venom. At length the indignation of Dr. Maitland, the fair-minded 
and scholarly librarian of Lambeth Palace, was aroused and he was prompted to 
write a refutation of some of the vile historical calumnies of unscrupulous bigots. 

This exposition of the falsity of the assertions of some of the most popular 
Protestant writers by one who was himself a Protestant is an edifying spectacle. 
Truth is mighty, and, much as its enemies then hated to see it prevail, they found 
themselves disclosed as favoring falsehood and deception of every sort, and their 
designs frustrated, by one in their own camp. Now, again, the enemies of the 
truth are as bold as fifty years ago. They simply ignore refutation, trusting to 
the ignorance of their followers. Of this class we have notable examples in Dr. 

Mendenhall, of the Methodist Review , Dr. Armitage, the historian of the Bap- 
tists, not to mention such offensive and ridiculous creatures as Joseph Cook and 
Justin D. Fulton. Dr. Maitland's book, therefore, has still a mission to fulfil. 
It is truly a standard work, and worthy of further editions. The introduction by 
Mr. Frederick Stokes is remarkably well written. 

INTRC 

: 



INTRODUCTION TO THE SACRED SCRIPTURES. In two parts. By Rev. John 
McDevitt, D.D. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

There never was a time when general information about the Sacred Scriptures 



278 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Nov., 

their origin, their authorship, their authenticity, and their inspiration was more 
needful than it is to-day, and this need is common to all believers in God's reve- 
lation. Difficulties, scientific, historical, philological, and even moral, are floating 
in the air. The press and the pulpit are alike playing fast-and-loose with the 
inspired Word ; and outside the church, at least, the masses are losing their hold 
on the essential character of divine revelation. Destructive criticism has become 
the fashion of the day, and every writer that panders to it is eagerly read. The 
objections that are raised and the theories that are advanced against the Sacred 
Scriptures are known to school-girls, but the most intelligent men and women of 
the time are utterly ignorant of the cold facts and solid arguments on which 
Biblical science rests. The gross ignorance with which the flippant rationalism 
of the age approaches the Sacred Writings exhibits the most disgusting phase in 
the whole history of human folly and impotency. Men who have never spent 
one hour in the study of Biblical science proclaim their views on the subject with 
all the lofty disdain of a Voltaire ; newspaper writers, who never graduated even 
from a Sunday-school class, give forth their dicta on the Sacred Scriptures with 
as much affectation of original research as St. Jerome. And the deluded throng 
accept their pseudo-science and repeat their views ad naitseam. The principles 
of Protestantism are largely, if not altogether, responsible for this attitude of the 
age towards the Bible. Thrown broadcast to the masses without note or com- 
ment, and left to the private judgment of each individual reader, the natural 
result has followed : confusion, doubt, denial. 

In this condition of things every work that gives the general outlines of 
Biblical science and marshals in clear array the chief facts and arguments on 
which this science is based should receive a hearty welcome, and Dr. McDevitt's 
book does all this and more. It is not as profound a work as Dr. Dixon's, and will 
not supplant it, but it is more modern and, for the average reader, more useful. 

The difficulties raised by modern science are boldly stated, for the most 
part in the very words of their authors, and they are honestly and skilfully met. 
We are glad to see that he adopts Cardinal Newman's views on the question of 
inspiration, and is in other important points in harmony with the best science of 
the times, though, of course, his general treatment follows the traditional lines. 
The work, though primarily intended for ecclesiastical students, is quite within the 
range of any intelligent layman's reading, and we trust it will have a wide circula- 
tion among English-speaking Catholics all over the world. The press-work and 
binding are excellent. 

THE LITTLE OFFICE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION EXPLAINED IN 
SHORT CONFERENCES, WITH APPROPRIATE PRAYERS SUITABLE FOR 
SODALITIES OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN. By Very Rev. Joseph Rainer, 
Rector of the Provincial Seminary of St. Francis, near Milwaukee, Wis. 
New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

The purpose of this little book is to explain the Scriptural allusions met with 
in the Little Office of the Immaculate Conception, both in a general sense and 
particularly as they concern prophetical types of Our Lady found in the older 
dispensation. The deep and sacred meaning of these foreshadowings of the 
Messias and of his mother are brought out and explained with a view to making 
the recitation of the office more intelligent, and therefore more fruitful. The 
conferences were first delivered in the chapel of Salesianum, the well-known 
seminary of the Province of Milwaukee ; they therefore have the merit of a 
practical test of their utility. Indeed, it was by the urgent solicitation of the 
ecclesiastical students that the author was induced to print them. A virtue pecu- 
liarly adapted to fill the aspirations of candidates for holy orders is devotion to the 



1889.] NE w PUB LIC A TIONS. 279 

Mother of Jesus, and hence a custom of reciting her office is a fit accompaniment 
of the study of divinity. But these conferences can be used by all clients of 
Mary with much profit, whether they recite her office or not, there being no such 
artificial arrangement or choice of matter as at first glance the title would 
indicate. 

Although there is no parade of learning in this little work, the subjects are 
treated with much intelligence and in a way to show perfect competence for the 
task. It gives us great pleasure to bear testimony to the elegant and idiomatic 
English employed, the more so as we believe the writer is a born German. 

HAND-BOOK OF HUMILITY; OR, THE LOVE OF SELF-CONTEMPT. From the 
Italian of Father Joseph Ignatius Franchi, Superior of the Oratory, Florence. 
New York : The Catholic Publication Society Company ; London : Burns 
& Gates. 

Of all the virtues which the Christian is by his vocation bound to practise 
there is perhaps none so little understood as humility, and therefore so little 
practised. The average man labors under the delusion that humility is a love of 
one's own degradation, whereas it is in reality a short cut to one's true and ra- 
tional elevation. The word self-contempt, as used by spiritual writers, would be 
equivalent in meaning to self-deceit if it meant anything else but a wise distrust 
of our sinful inclinations and a thoroughgoing hatred of our sins. The more a 
man despises himself as a sinner, the more he loves himself, or wishes that he had 
good reason to love himself, as a saint. It is a weakness to despise one's better 
self; only it is dangerous to calculate on one's own goodness and to inspect it too 
narrowly. It was no sin in King David to be proud of the numbers and strength 
of Israel, but it was pride in him to order Joab to take the census, and he was 
punished accordingly. 

Hence the usefulness of this little treatise. It was written by a saintly Orato- 
rian, about the end of the last century, who was conspicuous for the virtue herein 
inculcated. It not only carefully lays down the doctrines belonging to the subject, 
and thus solidly establishes it in the reasoning faculties, but it elaborately illus- 
trates it from every-day life, interspersing here and there prayers and invocations 
ippropriate to the points touched upon. 

VOICES OF THE SPIRIT. By George Matheson, M.A., D.D., minister of the 
parish of St. Bernard's, Edinburgh ; author of Moments on the Mount, My 
Aspirations, etc. New York: A. C. Armstrong & Co. 

The reader of these meditations will find little between him and the good 
loughts expressed in them, unless he interpose an obstacle himself. A style of 
writing more strictly a means to its end the unveiling of the writer's mind we 
link it would not be easy to find. Simplicity of expression is the most excellent 
niality of composition if the expression be adequate to ail the meaning, and that 
attained by Dr. Matheson in these pages. 

His little book is strictly devotional, few of the ''voices " aiming at any other 
)urpose than to stimulate the longings of the soul towards a more virtuous and 
iworldly and prayerful life. Being a Protestant, the author does not accentuate 
Hne of the religious aids which Catholics know to be in greater or less degree 
iseful, and even essential, to at least the integrity of the state of grace ; but he 
does not, as far as an incomplete examination of the book permits us to judge, 
say anything against them ; and whatever he does treat of he does it by the light 
of sound theology, and with much maturity of thought and devoutness of ex- 
pression. 

There are ninety-five little chapters in the book, scarcely any of them running 
over two pages. They are each divided into two parts, the first stating the words 



280 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Nov., 

of Scripture to be meditated on, and enlarging on their meaning and drawing out 
their lessons ; the second is usually a simply worded prayer to the Holy Spirit, 
expressive of the needs of the soul discovered in the previous meditation. There 
is nothing very extraordinary in this arrangement or in the matter presented, yet 
there is a plain sincerity quite attractive and a large measure of unction which 
keeps the reader going on further and further to a constant repetition of the 
method and equally constant variety of spiritual entertainment and profit. 

The writer's church was, in the days of the old religion in Edinburgh, rilled 
with worshippers who found in St. Bernard, after whom they named their shrine, 
a beloved patron before God's throne in heaven. We cannot help but think that 
that great preacher and contemplative has obtained for Dr. Matheson and his 
people, descendants of the original Catholics of the parish, some of the unction of 
the Holy Spirit which was so abundantly his own. May the same intercession 
obtain for him and his people the fulness of the true faith ! 

A POPULAR MINERALOGY AND GEOLOGY. By Katherine E. Hogan. Second 
edition. New York : A. Lovell & Co. 

Women are coming to the front even as writers of scientific text-books. Some 
months since we had the pleasure of noticing in this magazine a thoroughly scien 
tific text-book of botany written by a lady, and here we have a popular little 
treatise on the kindred subjects of mineralogy and geology from a competent 
female pen. Women have undoubtedly far more tact than men in teaching 
children of tender years, and in this primer of physics there is a woman's tact 
combined with no ordinary knowledge of science. The excellent lady takes the 
young aspirant after scientific lore to her knee and tells him in the clearest and 
most comprehensive way the wondrous story of creation. 

The endorsement this little volume has received from the press and from 
those actually engaged in the work of public instruction proves that it is one of the 
most successful attempts that has yet been made to simplify science and bring 
it within the reach of all. 

PRAYER. By the author of Golden Sands. Offered to novices and pious people 
of the world; taken from the Book of the Professed. Translated from the 
French by Miss Ella McMahon. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : 
Benziger Bros. 

This is a compendious treatise on prayer, its nature, necessity, efficacy, con- 
ditions, and effects, together with a chapter on methods or forms of prayer. It is 
primarily intended for religious, but it is useful to all, for it insists upon the ne- 
cessity of prayer for the fulness of human existence in any state of life. We 
particularly recommend the chapter on the " life of prayer," which clearly sets 
forth the Christian doctrine that the end of man is supernatural union with 
God, and that the means of attaining to it is prayer; that the realization of 
human destiny is the product of prayer. 

Little books like this, pleasantly and clearly written, embodying those lessons 
of religion which are most fundamental, are deserving of much praise, and should 
be sought after and used by all intelligent Christians. 

THE SALT-CELLARS. Being a Collection of Proverbs, together with Homely 
Notes thereon. By C. H. Spurgeon. New York: A. C. Armstrong & Son. 

This book has an interest as a collection of proverbs taken from various 
sources, but principally from the folk-lore of England. We do not think it will 
add anything to Mr. Spurgeon's reputation, for his "Homely Notes" seldom betray 
the vigor and other peculiar qualities that characterize his utterances in the pul- 
pit ; in fact, it would seem as if these notes were written with the sole view of get- 



1889.] NEW PUBLICATIOA r S. 28 1 

ting out a book. The notes are for the most part tame, devoid of the " short- 
ness, sense, and salt" he insists upon, and are often carelessly written. The 
" very learned man " he quotes as saying that the three hardest words to pro- 
nounce in the English language are " I am mistaken " should have added to his 
learning a knowledge of English. Some of the salt of both proverb and note is 
far from savory. Mr. Spurgeon, we regret to say, never allows an opportunity to 
pass without giving evidence of his anti-Catholic and dissenting animus. 

AN EXPLANATION OF THE CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES OF 
AMERICA. Prepared for Use in Catholic Schools, Academies, and Colleges. 
By Francis T. Furey, A.M. New York: The Catholic Publication Society 
Company. 

We do not think it too much to say that this book should be in use in every 
Catholic school in the land. The study of the Constitution, of the principles 
upon which our organic law is based, does not receive as a rule that attention in 
the class-room which is demanded by its importance. Indeed, as the author of 
the book before us notes, there are some States in which the study of our Consti- 
tution has no place in the curriculum of public education. For the most part, our 
young men leave college with but a superficial knowledge of the fundamental law 
of the Union. In many cases this knowledge is only the indirect effect of a study 
of the history and principles of the great political parties, since the criterion of 
political orthodoxy is found in the Constitution. 

Such a defect is to be deplored, especially in this land of intelligence and lib- 
erty, and more especially still among Catholics, since in no other country in the 
world have the principles of civil government so intimate a harmony with those of 
our holy religion j it is in the home of intelligence and liberty that the fairest fruit 
of personal sanctification can thrive. The study of our Constitution will make our 
Catholic youth not only sensible of the privileges and duties of citizenship, but 
wilt intensify loyalty to the land whose organic law is based upon such solid 
Catholic principles. 

The book is specially to be commended because of its insistence upon this 
feature of our fundamental law. It is, of course, a text-book, but the condensa- 
tion implied in this can be supplemented by the teacher. The book should find 
place not only in our colleges and academies, but in the upper grades of our 
:hial schools. 

'wo MISSIONARY PRIESTS AT MACKINAC. A. lecture delivered at the village of 
Mackinac for the benefit of St. Anne's Mission. 

'HE PARISH REGISTER OF THE MISSION OF MICHILIMACKINAC. A paper 
read before the Chicago Library Club. By Edward Osgood Brown. Chicago : 
Barnard & Gunthorp. 

Perhaps no one place in the interior of the United States has such interesting 
:iations with persons and events of the earliest history of the European ex- 
loration as the Straits of Mackinac. It is the cross-roads of the great lakes, 
fater- carriage was something like a necessity, even when one had no burdens 
>ut the hunter's rifle and pack to carry, for the unbroken wilderness was pathless, 
ccept to the eye keen enough to detect the secret marks of the Indian trail. But 
>m either Quebec and lower Canada, or the frontier settlements in Ohio, access 
mid be had by the great lakes during all the summer and autumn months to the 
dries of the region now known as the States of Illinois, Iowa, Wisconsin, and 
[innesota, and to the numerous tribes which roved over them. To obtain their 
iltries for the ladies and gentlemen of Europe, and to supply them in exchange 
nth arms and ammunition, simple ornaments, blankets, and too often rum, an 



282 NE w PUBLIC A TIONS. [Nov. , 

easy route was open upon the broad bosom of these inland seas, whose great 
waters are drawn by nature's grasp into a knot at Mackinac. 

Hence the Indian missionaries, Jesuits and Recollect Franciscans in the earliest 
days, then secular priests and other Franciscans and the Redemptorists, have al- 
ways made the island itself or some point adjacent their headquarters. Summer, 
and winter too. the savages would come to the lake-shore to fish, and so be made 
accessible to the fathers' canoes. Mr. Brown, in this large and very interesting 
pamphlet, tells much of the story of the heroic lives of these best sons of France 
and of Ignatius who passed by the Straits and left their names upon the records 
of the mission ; and their memory in all that region is embalmed in the tender affec- 
tion of perhaps the fiercest race of savages that ever lived. Those men were the 
heroes of a conflict as bitter as any war, but their glory is spotted with no blood 
except their own, which jewels it with the noblest form of martyrdom. Some per- 
ished in the woods, some laid their bones at mission stations or were brought 
from the lonely shores to the little bark chapels by their Indian and half-breed 
companions and buried near the altar, as was the case with the renowned 
Jacques Marquette. Some spent a long lifetime of dauntless struggle against 
the brutish savagery of man and the rigorous treatment of nature ; but the length 
of life was in endurance and the lapse of time was short ; then their canoes crept 
down the lakes to Quebec, bearing their broken forms but courageous hearts to die 
of exhaustion. 

To many the first paper here printed, treating in general terms of the wit- 
ness gathered from this trysting-place of barter for skins of beasts and souls of 
men, will be the most interesting. But to us the study of the baptismal register 
in the second paper is of superior interest, and contains much that we have never 
before seen in print. The story of the half-breed Charles de Langlade is like the 
flight of the novelist's fancy. He had a whole lifetime of most exciting adven- 
ture, almost from the day his name was written in the baptismal register at the 
Straits in 1729 till his death in 1800. *' He could enumerate ninety-nine battles 
and skirmishes in which he had taken part, and expressed in his later years regret 
that he could not have rounded the even century." He was the leader of a band 
of Indians from Mackinac to Fort Du Quesne, and bore a most important part in 
the defeat of Braddock, perhaps more important than that of Beaujeau, the 
French commanding officer. He commanded the post at Mackinac when it was 
surrendered to the British after Wolfe's victory, and under the British rule he held 
a commission in the army. 

Altogether, Mr. Brown, searching and recording with the zeal of fervent 
sympathy, has contributed to the study of our heroic age, both as a country and 
as a church, some pages of vivid interest. 

THOUGHTS AND COUNSELS FOR CATHOLIC YOUNG MEN. By Rev. P. A. 
Von Doss, S.J. Translated by Rev. Augustine Wirth, O.S.B. New York 
and Cincinnati : Fr. Pustet & Co. 

In calling the attention of our readers to this timely and wholesome book we 
wish to thank Father Wirth for this and other translations which he has given to 
English-speaking readers. The volume we are now considering is presented to 
us, owing to his prudent judgment, as if it were written for young men born on our 
own soil. 

So much that is good and edifying has been written for young women, and so 
much time and attention is devoted to their welfare, while so little is prepared and 
made suitable for our young men, that we read this book with eagerness as being 
something out of the ordinary line. We find it a serviceable book from beginning 
to end, filled from cover to cover with prudent counsels and good thoughts. And 



1889,] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 283 

yet we closed the book with a sad reflection : How few young men will read it ! 
And then the question we tried to solve was this : How can we get our young 
men to read this and books of a like character? True, the author declares that if 
but one soul be rescued from perdition, if but one youth be saved by his salutary 
counsels, all his efforts will be amply repaid. But that is not enough; if the book 
is worth the time and labor which he has evidently spent upon it, it should be 
made to reach and save many and not one young man. But how ? Few young 
men will read it, fewer still will buy it, because their interest is not awakened. 
One suggestion offered would be that every priest who has any immediate charge 
of young men should read it, and so fill his mind with those wholesome thoughts 
that he will be able to give them out now and then to his young friends ; and 
having read it himself, that he strongly recommend it to the young men. Again, 
young women should read it and talk about it to their young men acquaintances. 
No one should be more interested in the welfare of our young men than our young; 
women. It is to their interest that their brothers and the young men who visit 
them should be pure, upright, manly Christians. This book will help them to 
Tae such. If they can say that they read with pleasure a book of counsels written 
for young men, it is sure to beget in the young men a praiseworthy curiosity that will 
be fruitful in good. An experienced teacher, a man of ripe judgment, once told 
us that when all other methods failed with his young men, he was always able to- 
correct their faults and secure their affection through their sisters. 

Such books as this should be found in the rooms of every young men's so- 
riety. Not in the library good books usually get worm-eaten there but always 
on the reading table, where young men sitting down for five minutes may pick it 
up and, opening it at any place, may find some useful though some prudent 
counsel. He may close the book as soon as he chooses, but he is sure to carry 
away something good and serviceable. 

We wish we had more suitable books for young men, written in a plain, 
forcible, straightforward style books that would call a spade a spade. We have 
heard some Christian Brothers talk to young men, and have often wished the 
words they uttered co\ild reach thousands of young men, even if they were to 
reach them through cold type. A great deal more thought and time devoted to 
our Catholic young men is what is sadly needed just now. Will some one write 
for our young men, proving to them that it is to their interest to be pure, truthful, 
honest, sober young men ? 

THE VIRGIN MOTHER OF GOOD COUNSEL. Containing an authentic account of 
the Translation of the Miraculous Picture of Our Lady of Good Counsel, with 
full information about the "Pious Union." By the author of The Penitent 
Instructed, The Augustinian Manual, etc. Seventh edition. Boston : Cash- 
man, Keating & Co. 

Genazzano, an ancient town some twenty-four miles southeast from Rome, is 
famous for the shrine of Our Lady described in this little book. There the pious 
pilgrims gather about a picture which excellent historical and other evidence 
proves to have been miraculously borne from Scutari, in Albania, to its present 
location, and just as miraculously preserved. .The translation, as it is called, took 
place in the middle of the fifteenth century, and was caused, we are assured, by 
the impending destruction of Scutari by the Turkish armies. A summary of 
the entire history of the occurrence, an account of the devotion practised, and 
of the large number of miracles continually wrought at the shrine, together with 
the authentic approvals of pontifical authority, and finally a selection of prayers 
to be used by persons wishing to practise the devotion at a distance, make up the 
contents of this book. 



284 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Nov., 1889 

THE LITTLE BOOK OF SUPERIORS. By the author of Golden Sands. Trans- 
lated from the ninth French edition by Miss Ella McMahon. New York, 
Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

That this book is of approved usefulness for religious subjects is shown by the 
number of editions it has already run through. That it is wholesome reading for 
religious superiors is shown by the letters of approval not all of them simply 
imprimaturs of no less than eight French bishops and archbishops. That it is 
calculated to edify even the laity is evidenced by the striking fact that it has 
aroused the zeal of a well-known lady of literary experience and merit, but living 
in the world, to become its translator. As a matter of fact, the members of the 
spiritual households of religious communities will find this little book a kindly 
guide to the virtues of their state of life. 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 
Mention of books in this place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers. 

VOICES OF THE SPIRIT. By George Matheson, M.A., D.D., Minister of the Parish of St. 
Bernard's, Edinburgh. New York : A. C. Armstrong & Son. 

THE EPISTLES OF ST. JOHN. Twenty-one discourses, with Greek text, comparative ver- 
sions, and notes chiefly exegetical. By William Alexander, D.D., Brazenose College, Oxford, 
Lord Bishop of Derry and Raphoe. New York : A. C. Armstrong & Son. 

THE TRUE STORY OF THE CATHOLIC HIERARCHY DEPOSED BY QUEEN ELIZABETH; 
with fuller memoirs of its last two survivors. By the Rev. T. E. Bridgett, C.SS.R., and 
the late Rev. T. F. Knox, D.D., of the London Oratory. New York: Catholic Publication 
Society Co. ; London : Burns & Gates. 

ROPP'S COMMERCIAL CALCULATOR. A practical Arithmetic for practical purposes, con- 
taining a complete system of useful, accurate, and convenient tables; together with 
simple, short, and practical methods for rapid calculation. Bloomington, 111. : C. Ropp. 

A POPULAR MINERALOGY AND GEOLOGY. Prepared from the latest and best authorities in 
Europe and America. By Katherine E. Hogan, graduate of Columbia College Special 
Course. New York : A. Lovell & Co. 

AMERICAN STATESMEN. BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. By John T. Morse, Jr., author of Life 
of John Adams, Life of Thomas Jefferson, etc. Boston and New York : Houghton, 
Mifflin & Co. 

THE BOOK OF REVELATION. By William Milligan, D.D., Professor of Divinity and Biblical 
Criticism in the University of Aberdeen ; author of The Resurrection of Our Lord. etc. New 
York : A. C. Armstrong & Son. 

INTRODUCTION TO THE SACRED SCRIPTURES. In two parts. By Rev. John McDevitt, 
D.D., Professor of the Introduction to Scripture, 'Ecclesiastical History, etc., All-Hallows' 
Foreign Missionary College, Dublin. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

THE DARK AGES. Essays illustrating the State of Religion and Literature in the Ninth, 
Tenth, Eleventh, and Twelfth Centuries. By S. R. Maitland, D.D., F.R.S., F.S.A., some- 
time librarian and keeper of the MSS. at Lambeth. New Edition. With an introduction 
by Frederick Stokes, M. A. London: John Hodges ; New York: Benziger Bros. 

CALENDAR OF THE SOCIETY OF JESUS. For the Use of the Faithful. New York, Cincin- 
nati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

COLUMBIADS. Pearl Drops from the Fountain of Wisdom wrought out in Sober Settings in the 
Laboratoryof Thought. By Rev. W. F. Hayes. Columbus, O. : August Ruetty. 

PRAYER. By the author oi Golden Sands. Offered to novices and pious people of the 
world. Translated from the French by Miss Ella McMahon. New York, Cincinnati, and 
Chicago: Benziger Bros. 

CONTROVERSY ON THE CONSTITUTIONS OF THE JESUITS, between Dr. Littledale and 
Father Drummond. Winnipeg : The Manitoba Free Press Print. 

THE DISPOSAL OF THE DEAD. By John M. Peacocke, M.D., 274 Madison Street, Brooklyn, 
N. Y. New York: M. J. Rooney & Co., printers. 

DER FAMILIENFREUND. Katholischer Wegweiser fur das Jahr 1890. St. Louis, Mo. : Pramie 
des Herald des Glaubens. 

SACRED HEART HYMNS. A Choice Collection of Bright and Melodious Hymns to the Sacred 
Heart. Compiled and edited by F. Canter. Baltimore : George Willig & Co. 

THE KINGDOM OF THE UNSELFISH ; OR, THE EMPIRE OF THE WISE. By John Lord 
Peck. New York : Empire Book Bureau. 

PERCY WYNN; OR, MAKING A BOY OF HIM. By Neenah, author of Tom Playfair, Ada 
Merton, etc. Napoleon, O. : A. J. Schiml. 

RHODE ISLAND HISTORICAL TRACTS. Second Series. No. i. An Inquiry concerning the 
origin of the clause in the laws of Rhode Island (1719-1783) disfranchising Roman Catho- 
lics. By Sidney S. Rider. Providence: Sidney S. Rider. 

FLOWER FANCIES. By Alice Ward Bailey. Illustrated by Lucy J. Bailey, Eleanor Ecob 
Morse, Olive E. Whitney, Ellen T. Fisher, Fidelia Bridges, C. Ryan, and F. Schuyler 
Mathews. Boston : L. Prang & Co. 

A HISTORY OF THE SEVEN HOLY FOUNDERS OF THE ORDER OF THE SERVANTS OF MARY. 
By Father Sostene M. Ledoux, of the same Order. Translated from the French. London : 
Burns & Gates ; New York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. 



THE 



ATHOLIC WORLD. 



VOL. L. 



DECEMBER, 1889. 



ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. 



No. 297.. 



I. 

WE all know of the Roman emperor who addressed his flick- 
ering spirit as "animula, vagula." An animule might do for a 
>rotoplasm or for a pagan philosopher, but&a Christian should 
lave a full-sized soul. I am not speaking to atheists, who, ac- 
:ording to their accounts, have none ; nor to those moral corpses 
seem only fit to fill a little place in space and a little space 
in time, and then rot. But I address the great number of good 
>eople (and how many there are, after all !) who stand by, wish- 
ing well to every good cause, to every righteous effort, to every- 
ling of fair report, and yet stir no hand and speak no word in 
le great moral strife which is going on around them. The com- 
>atants cannot even hear their applause, for, like everything else 
ibout them, it is imvard. They remind us of the character in 
'ooper's tales who when he laughed made no noise ; but at least he 
shook. 

Yes, they are all right inside, but, unfortunately, we are not 
"urned that way here below, and it would take a post-mortem to find 
>ut in whose favor they really had been while living. When they 
leard of some great moral enterprise, some moral sore healed or 
cared for, some wrong abated, they liked it; "I likes it!" as 
>airy Gamp said but what did they do ? 

Here lies a fine fellow whose fervid imagination could make 
( a sand-bank fertile or a mud-hole picturesque." He passed his 
life dividing wild lands into city lots, or sinking holes in the 
ground which he called mines. Mayhap he made money at it, 
and enthusiastically exchanged the coins of his wondrous fancy 
for the meaner currency of other people. There lies a lawyer 

Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 1889 



286 ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. [Dec., 

whose glib tongue started as soon as it was " retained," and 
"e'en tho' vanquished, could argue still." Further, a " leader" who 
silently ruled men at the primaries or in the ward caucus. Each 
had his genius, whether at the counter, in the forum, or in the 
council chamber. And all expended (as do we not all do?) much 
strength, great effort, and the whole span of a human life in their 
respective avocations. Yet do you not think that to every one 
of them, to every one of us, there have come amid the occu- 
pations of material existence, at the zenith of its successes and 
enjoyments, in the hour of its misfortunes and sorrows nay, 
often during the humdrum of its daily routine aspirations of a 
nobler, purer, more generous kind than any mere selfish pursuits 
afford ? 

If we only knew the way ! If the occasion only prompted 
us as to the method and the means. But it is all out of our 
line, out of our habits, and we do not know what nor how. We 
give money, each in his measure, for that is an easy way and 
there it ends. We go home for a week or for ever, and the mo- 
ment's inspiration dibs. Money ? That is good so far as it goes, 
but no human treasury can ever stamp on metal the equivalent 
of a generous blood corpuscle fresh from the mint of the heart ; 
no coin ever equalled in value and effect in the moral world a 
good impulse stamped into act. Ah ! if we knew but how, if the 
act was ready to our hands ! You might see the coldest capital- 
ist, of whom men wondered if his interior anatomy was complete, 
transformed into a treasurer of a St. Vincent de Paul Conference, 
and willingly performing his proper share of personal visitation 
and charity. I have seen the busy tradesman converted into a 
zealous collector of pew-rents, sacrificing his time and his plea- 
sure of a Sunday to keep the parishioners to their financial duty. 
Another will cheerfully assume charge of a church library ; still 
another, who scarcely fulfils his religious duties, becomes enthusias- 
tic when actively helping to build a new church or canvassing for 
an intended hospital. And so they go when opportunity is foisted 
upon them. 

Now, what is the gist of this long preamble ? 

That in every man who attends church there is an element of 
moral good and of moral usefulness ; in every Catholic layman 
there lies dormant a force which it behooves to make profitable 
to the cause of truth, virtue, and religion. 

Every idle force is waste. The utilization of forces is one ot 
the intense pursuits of the age. We have learned to know better 
than ever before how immense a storehouse of them lies at our 



1889.] ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. 287 

feet, and we have also discovered new potencies in the united 
efforts and combinations of our fellowmen. 

The evolution of the modern world has developed two facts : 
Increase of knowledge, of personal liberty, and of individual initia- 
tive have intensified the power and the human value of the hum- 
blest amongst us. Each of us, we might almost say, now plans 
campaigns or sends argosies across the main ; each is a chieftain 
as well as a soldier in the struggles of daily life. It is no longer 
a few heads for a myriad arms, but each pair of arms owns a 
head. Secondly, from this very conflict of combatants, well- 
nigh equally equipped, has come a new law of association, new 
methods of combination and co-operation. Union of forces under 
various names has become the great feature of the age in all its 
material pursuits. 

Let the cry then be : ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN ! Let 
there be a meeting-place connected with every church, where lay- 
men can confer upon all things which come within their sphere 
of endeavor ; where they can make acquaintance and active al- 
liance with their priests and each other ; where those so inclined 
may more profitably resort than in the many haunts to which 
they otherwise might drift; where the library and the reading- 
room can attract. 

And, in the next place, let there be to every church an organ- 
ization of Catholic laymen as Catholics, without any special de- 
votional object which might deter this one or the other. It would 
soon come to pass that every church-goer would be inscribed upon 
its rolls. 

There the more zealous would subdivide into the special asso- 
ciations which piety and charity suggest. The St. Vincent de 
Paul Conference, the library, the reading circle, the zelators of 
congregational singing, good works of all kinds would find there 
not only their recruits but a common rallying point and a wider 
and more powerful support Let these church circles in turn be 
>und together by diocesan organization, where every parish and 

ry Catholic society should be represented, finally culminating 

the Catholic Congress ; let all the links be welded into a per- 
lanent and universal chain. 

And where is the subject of Catholic interest, of religious im- 
>rt, which would pass unheeded ? 

All this, I know, has been done here and there after a fashion, 
id the Catholic congresses, of which we hear so much this 

r, are adumbrations of it. There is no pretence to originality 

these suggestions, nor is it attempted in these brief lines to do 
TOL< L. -19 



288 ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. [Dec., 

more than indicate the subject for deeper thought and wiser elu- 
cidation. " Non nova sed nove" this is at most the legend in- 
scribed* upon anything connected with the Church of God. All 
that it is, desired to insist upon here is to substitute permanency, 
regularity, and universality in the place of sporadic, spasmodic, 
and incomplete efforts ; and perhaps to emphasize the principle 
which underlies them, apparently without sufficient consciousness : 
Laymen can and ought to be organized. 

Have you ever stood in a crowd where some feeling became 
manifestly general, and yet no one spoke until a bolder spirit 
broke out and freed his mind, upon which every one muttered to 
himself: " Just what I thought, just what I felt"? So it is in the 
larger crowd that makes the world. The uttered word on sub- 
jects of general interest is scarcely ever other than the unspoken 
sentiment of many, let out by that safety-valve of humanity the 
tongue of a common spokesman. 

The idea so briefly outlined is one which will no doubt be 
recognized as a familiar one by many ; and, indeed, the writer 
would scarcely have presumed to speak at all upon so serious a 
subject, in so sacred a cause, if it were not so, and if the high- 
est authority had. not seemingly prepared the way for its formu- 
lation. 

We believe, however, that a hundred reasons urge, that the 
circumstances of the age require, that the general guidance of the 
church permits and encourages, a distinct, clear, and direct utter- 
ance of the cry : Organize the laymen ! 



II. 

I have been urged to add to these lines. I cannot do so 
without a brief statement to prevent any possible misconception. 
The church, as every Catholic knows, is a divine institution. 
Any attempt to alter its constitutional lineaments is not only 
fatuous, it is heresy pure and simple. Pope, bishops, priests, and 
laymen are not divisions made by man. Their attributes, their 
functions, their authority are radically and fundamentally different. 
To put it in a general way, the theological distinction between 
ecclesia docens and ecclesia discern will state all that need be here 
recalled. It is not a mere diversity of calling, but of original in- 
stitution. One has a divinely appointed mission to teach, the 
other a divinely declared duty to hear. But who that has the 
blessing of faith requires to be reminded of facts of which the 






1889.] ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. 289 

excellence, the daily advantage, the notable and experienced re- 
ults, are alone testimonials of their origin ? It could, therefore, 
never be the audacious and monstrous purpose of a child of the 
urch to dream 'or to suggest any change in this divine consti- 
tution ; and I have been to the trouble of this statement only 
because the general distribution of a periodical may make it fall 
into hands not sufficiently familiar with doctrines and principles 
otherwise assumed and understood. 

This premised, it may now be permitted to emphasize the 
other aspect of the church which laymen are perhaps less apt 
adequately to appreciate. It is that they constitute an essential 
and active element of this living church ; that it is all one co- 
hesive body, in which they have functions and duties too ; one 
'cclesia militans of which they are full members, enlisted men, 
called to bear and do, to participate and sustain ; one body of 
which the breath is theirs, the blood is theirs, the combats are 
theirs, the hurts are theirs, the triumphs are theirs the life is 
theirs. 

We are too apt to forget this, and when the church is at- 
tacked, not only in its truths, but in their practical application 
and their concomitant human interests, to feel sympathy indeed 
in the matter, but not identity. We say or think : " Let the 
church defend itself," as if it were something other than ourselves. 
Perhaps we vaguely refer to the clergy, perhaps to some members 
of it. But our sentiments too often are those of mere onlookers 
at somebody else's fight, and as though it was somebody else's 
business, their loss or gain, not ours. 

Now, that is one thing to get over. It is our fight, our loss, 
our gain, more or less immediately. Whose ? Why, of nigh 
three hundred million people, mainly laymen, who profess the 
same doctrines, follow the same practices, reverence the same 
sacraments who are each living and integral parts of the one, 
holy, Catholic, and apostolic church. In older ages, as I read 
them, this feeling of identity was much more intense this real- 
ization of a personal interest and participation in the human form 
and fortunes of the church. To insist upon this note is therefore 
no new thing. The great social upheavals within the last century, 
the enormous increase of individual initiative to which it has led 
on the part of the masses, and their advent into a much greater 
activity in political life ; the rapidly growing numbers of mankind, 
the facility of displacement and the fascination of quickly trans- 
mitted and ever-varying news on worldly subjects these and 
other causes, perhaps, have tended to engross men's minds with 



290 ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. [Dec., 

novel vistas and increased duties at the expense of older and 
deeper concerns, and thus to weaken the intensity of their atten- 
tion and of their attachments to the latter. 

What is the remedy ? Everything which recalls and strengthens 
the bonds of their common interest in the affairs, earthly and 
heavenly, of their religion. 

Secondly, there come what may be called the derivatives of 
religion, its natural and terrestrially practical results, the human 
and temporal objects on which its broad truth and its wide 
charity overflow, or whereon the virtues and the energies of its 
members find active exercise and development. Here, too, the 
circumstances of the age have wrought changes and present new 
necessities. The destruction of the older monastic institutions of 
beneficence has left voids which in many ways we are striving to 
supply. Here the layman finds a splendid field of opportunity, if 
nothing else, in bringing together the foundation stones of new 
establishments, in securing their successful completion, their main- 
tenance and prosperity. May it not be said, however, that the 
corporal works of mercy are known to the immense majority of us 
only in their pecuniary aspect, and that we come in contact with the 
wpes and ills of our fellow-men mainly by the cold medium of a 
coin, passed through many hands to an unknown destination ? It 
is "long-distance" charity with a vengeance with most of us, in 
which the affections of the pocket are more involved than the 
affections of a heart brought touch-to-touch with suffering. 

Again, a new want, a new hunger has come to affect mankind 
along with the increase in general education. We want the 
"bread and circus" of the Romans, but in addition we have ac- 
quired a new necessity the necessity of print. With it have 
come the sores of b'ad reading and of false reading, ailments calling 
for help as piteously as any other ill that flesh and mind are heir 
to. Are the works of mercy, spiritual and temporal, a new thing? 
Are they confined to clerics ? Are they, as in modern corpora- 
tions, to be voted and carried on by proxy ? 

How shall we recall men at large to a livelier and more per- 
sonal interest, a sense of duty and of individual opportunity, not 
in one but in all these matters ? As in all things else in modern 
life where large numbers have to be affected and directed, by 
the power of organization ; as in all things else in modern life 
where the free and active concurrence of men is desired, by the 
sense of responsibility and participation. 

Last but not least : With all the good souls who keep their 
lamps burnished and their hearth-fires lit, it is felt that a wave of 






1889.] ORGANIZE THE LAYMEN. 291 

indifference, of tepidity, and of spiritual inertness has chilled many 
hearts and invaded many homes. It seems a direct consequence 
of all these new circumstances to which we have adverted. With 
decreased gazing at the village and the parish steeple the thoughts 
cease to rise so frequently to where the steeple points. How can 
we best reconstitute the church in largest measure the centre of 
attraction, not simply devotional but general ; its steeple the rest- 
ing place of many otherwise idle thoughts ; its roof the home of 
many interests otherwise unhoused, vagrant, fitful, and alienated ? 

The refrain to all these queries, comes down, as it seems to me, 
upon the steps of every line : Organize the laymen ! 

How many zealous souls there are who through vocation, taste, 
or circumstance are barred from the rolls of the clergy, but whose 
thoughts, whose voice, whose pen, whose arm are ready and ever 
anxious to subserve the great interests which religion covers and 
concerns; to assist, so far as they may, the great work which it 
performs on earth ! Here again no new thing ; but with human 
increase we find an increasing, scattered, and uncorrelated number 
of such ardent spirits. We have there ready to hand a splendid 
and willing army of non-commissioned officers, bred in the ranks 
and fraternizing with each file. What do they need to enlist, to 
drill, to inspirit the great and listless mass ? A word of encour- 
agement and direction, an order, a watchword. 

Behold each wave of time bringing its new millions upon the 
earthly sands ! Behold the surging and turbulent seas of new con- 
ditions which have irrupted upon the moral world ! God's hand 
alone can lay the tempest and say to the waters : Be still. God's 
church alone can save the shipwrecked and bring their souls to 
port. But every man must co-operate; human co-operation is 
the divine law and the divine condition. All must will, must 
work, must do. 

Behold the centenaries roll by as the rise of a new century 
looms in the distance ! May they swell to meet and greet it with 
large, fruitful, and potent resolves, and resound with the myriad- 
voiced echo of an organized, active, and co-operating laity ! 

ALBERT REYNAUD. 



292 BY CHARLES' HEAD. [Dec., 



BY CHARLES' HEAD. 

OH ! come with me from morn till noon, 
With me and also with my boon- 
Companion, Autumn. Come and see 
How fair a fading world may be ! 

A white frost silvers all the scene 

From where in gay, theatric pride 
The distant forests overlean 
The audient slopes and meads between 

This mound where Indian ghosts abide 
And where 'mid grass yet richly green 

Dear River Charles with scanty tide, 
Mourning for Spring with Lear-like mien, 

Seeks his " diminished head " to hide. 

There is no sound upon the breeze, 

Save some late locust ere he dies 

A feeble fiddling vainly tries. 
How different from the splendid ease 

With which beneath the August skies 
His whizzing, zizzing song he shot 
Against the heavy silence hot, 

Drowning with drouth the tender cries 
Of birds just graduate from the nest, 
Just learning life's imperious quest. 

There is no sound upon the breeze, 

For singing birds are fledged and flown, 
And the late locust, lonely grown, 
Sheathing his dulled and aimless tone, 

Conscious of age, doth cease to wheeze : 
There is no whisper save that slow 
To the brown earth some gay leaves go, 

As by their own susurrus blown. 

So seems this deep hush but a hollow 
And empty truce with the great Foe 
Whose victory is more sure than slow 



1889.] Y CHARLES' HEAD. 

A sob that Nature tries to swallow, 
As summer sighs a fond adieu, 

And on her parting breath doth follow 
A leafy host of hectic hue. 

Yet oh ! how softly down to earth 

Round the dear trees that gave them birth 

The wondrous-textured leaves go stealing, 
To warm again the latent roots, 

And then, perhaps, at Spring's appealing 
To reappear as flowers and fruits; 

So, though it stirs a kindred feeling 
To ponder o'er their sapless ^veins 
That Death so beautifully stains, 

There's something more in their revealing 
Than mimicry of human pains. 

For sure as there be hearts that hold 

Friendship with Nature's humblest forms, 
Despite the stress of wracking storms 

And the cold logic of the mould 

In whose unfilled embrace we fold 
Our treasures of long love away 
Shutting their faces from the day, 

But never from our souls who must, 

Through the humility of dust, 

Seek them again the same dark way. 

And sure as there be souls that see 
With faith the unleaving of a tree, 
Feeling it will put forth in spring 
As many a marvellous veined thing 
As now it suffers to descend, 
To fade and change but not to end. 

E'en so, most certainly for some 
No ponderous thunder-voice need come 
Swift out of midnight's starry void 
To tell us naught shall be destroyed ; 
For nothing can be more than changed 
In this fair world from which, howe'er 
Splendid were Heaven beyond compare, 
Who would desire to be estranged ? 



293 



294 BY CHARLES' HEAD. [Dec. 

Yea, in the falling of the leaves, 

The desolation of the trees, 
Although at first the spirit grieves, 

Tuned to the key of that sad breeze 
Which heralds winter; yet one sees 

At times, though dark as through a glass,, 

A loftier triumph come to pass, 
And in that coming thus believes. 
For look thou deeper than this earth 

And higher than the highest sun, 
Thou seest but perpetual birth 

And new life wooing to be won : 
So why not, with a comely mirth, 

Bury the summer that is done ? 

And see ! Upon the upland scene 

That white, funereal frost is fled, 

And meadows, now the noon's o'erhead, 

Seem trying tenderly to spread 
A coverlet of warmer green 
For Charles, yet royally serene, 

Though prisoned in a narrow bed. 

Then up, faint heart, and soul, take wings, 

Singing as only souls may dare ; 

Since far above the cloud, despair, 
The transient shade of human things, 
Thy friend, the Sun, that glorious fellow, 
With some strange wine hath waxed so mellow, 

And laughs through this October day 

In such a large, Homeric way 
That every leaf, though " sere and yellow," 

Flashes a triumph o'er decay. 

HENRY WILLARU AUSTIN. 

Medfield, Mass. 



1 889. 1 



THE LEGEND OF JHE TWIN TREES. 



295 



THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. 

THEY stood within the walls of an Irish work-house those twiri 
trees and lifted their bare arms against the sky. It was in the 
Infirm Men's yard, a square plot of green of about a rood in 
extent. The poor old men, as they walked up and down and to 
and fro, looked on the trees with reverence. It was no supersti- 
tious fear, no awe, but reverence, kindly reverence, and affection 
almost. I noticed that not one of them, while he snatched a 
clandestine " pull at the pipe " smoking is forbidden in Irish 
work-houses or chewed a " bit of weed " on the sly, ever came 
near them. They were not exactly holy in the poor men's esti- 
mation, but they were the next thing to it. And indeed the 
leafless boughs looked scared and ghastly, with their knotty 
barked arms lifted up to the sky, as if giving evidence of or 
protesting against some foul deed. As one looked at them one 
felt as if a skeleton with its fleshless trunk and empty eye-balls 
lad been suddenly (in some solitary or forbidding-looking place) 
thrown across one's path. And the surroundings were in keep- 
ing four rough, unplastered walls, bleak and tall as those of a 
>rison, the northern side of the work-house buildings, a gloom in 
the autumn day, and the complaining of the wind as if before 
rain. 

My first thought with regard to them was, Tear up these 
scare-crows ; why cumber they the ground ? they were so wasted, 
and so useless, not to say unsightly ; and heaven knows the poor 
men have sad things enough on their mind, sad memories of the 
past and sad circumstances of the present, without bringing (need- 
lessly, as I thought) such a picture of horror before them. My next 
was, How peculiarly appropriate ! Are they not types of many a 
poor man here, stripped of all that once was beautiful or happy, 
blighted, wasted, decayed, dead, but not buried ? 

As I was revolving these things in my mind an old man of 
fine physique and open countenance touched his hat to me in 
military fashion, and said : " Have you not heard, sir, the legend 
of these trees ? " 

I answered in the negative. 

" Some folks count it pretty, and I will relate it to you, sir, 
if you will." 



296 THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. [Dec., 

" I shall be very grateful to you," I replied. 

Without a moment's hesitation he began : 

" There lived many years ago, down by the verge of the 
Shannon, a widower who had one daughter. She was not tall 
she was small," he repeated, nodding his head, while he seemed to 
be limning before his mind the portrait of some one ; " she was 
pale and a little dark, but with hair oh ! with coal-black hair 
that fell down to her waist and below it. And, my oh ! but she 
was the winning little thing, was my sweet Kate Lee ! She got 
married to as good a boy, I be bound, as there was in the barony 
or the next to it poor Mike Lynch. 

" Well, sir, they worked late and airly, but 'twas no good. 
Somehow, I think, things aren't at all as they used to be. I 
remember the time, and there wasn't a blight in the whate, and 
there wasn't a failure in the praytees, and there wasn't a rot in the 
sheep, nor a murrain in the cattle. Glory be to God ! and them 
same were the good times." And the poor man reverently lifted 
his hat. " And often I seen Kate Lee's' father's barn full of corn 
and the loft full of apples, and the smell of 'em would do 
your heart good ; and 'tis often and often before daybreak we'd 
have our flails, and the bit of a candle, or a ' dip,' lighted and 
stuck on the side of the wall, and we having a good couple of 
assens of the corn out before breakfast. There are none of them 
times now, sir but sure that's not here nor there. I only men- 
tion it to let you know that ould Mick Lee (God rest his sowl !) 
saw good days wonst. 

" Times got hard, and though Mike Lynch could handle a 
spade, or folly a plough, or tackle a scythree as good as any 
man, I don't care where he came from ; and though Kate Lee 
was as good a little housekeeper as ever made a baureen or 
ironed a poor man's shirt ; and though they worked, as I have 
said, late and airly, from sunrise to dark, yet from one thing or 
another loss in their cattle or loss in their corn or loss in some- 
thing they were hardly able to keep their heads above wather. 

" It was settled between them though Mick Lee could never 
be got to give in to it that Mike, the poor fellow, was to cross 
the wathers while he was still young, and while Kate and her 
father would be able to manage the bit of land. By this time 
they had two little children, twins and both of them little girls. 
One was Annie and the other was Rose. 

" He went. There was a big storm soon after the vessel set- 
ting sail, but, whether he lived or died, there wasn't trace or 
tidings of him ever after. He must have died, I suppose," said 



1889.] THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. 297 

the old man solemnly, " or Mike 'ud have turned up sooner 
or later. 

" Worse and worse was it with them. The old man lost all 
heart and courage. He'd pass the neighbors on the road and 
would barely salute 'em. He'd even forget to put in his pocket 
the wildeens and the apples that the wind had shaken, for he 
used to give 'em to the childer that passed by the doore goin' 
to school. Poor Kate worked like a horse, but you wouldn't 
hear her sing a song any more as she sat under the little cow ; 
and though the neighbors were as welcome as ever to step in 
and set by the fire, she had hardly a word to throw at a dog. 
It was a cough instead of a laugh with the poor thing now. 
With her ould light heart she'd sometimes smile and pretend to 
laugh ; but such a cough as would then come on ! You'd think 
nothing else would come of her but burst with the dint of cough- 
ing coughing, coughing, coughing oh, such horrid coughing! 

" And the house itself was goin' to the dogs. Look now, sir, 
here was the house. Suppose that was the road," said the old 
man, drawing a line on the turf with his staff; "well, the house 
was this way by the roadside." And the old pensioner stood erect, 
as if under review, to indicate the position of the house. " Away 
down there, a stone's throw, was the river. Out there at the 
back was the orchard. The little parlor window looked into it ; 
and as you sat at your dinner in the little parlor the roses 
that were trained up along the wall peeped in their heads and 
watched you watched you, as if they were childer at play," 
added the old man. " And the ivy covered the gable. Oh ! 
how often in my young days did I not loop up the roses 
against the wall, and climb the ivy for the sparrows' nests. Oh, 
my ! oh, my ! but the sun doesn't seem to shine at all as it 
used to do in thim ould days. 

" Gale-day came round. They were unable to meet the gale 
)f rent then due. The cattle was distraint and sould. An elec- 
tion came on soon after. Mick Lee voted with the people." The old 
man here shook his head, as if I ought to know the conse- 
quences of voting that way. "They got notice to quit," he 
continued, "and that was the last nail in poor Kate Lee's 
:offin ! She took to her bed ; she lingered on for some time, 
sir, but from that bed she never ruz. 

" At last the day came oh, mavrone ! and they took her 
out from Lisadoon. And her eyes were never more to see 
the roses, and her feet were turned from the ould home, and 
they were never more to come back again. They laid her 



298 THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. [Dec., 

beside her mother in the clay, and the gray ould man and the 
two little childer heard the lonesome airth fall on the coffin-lid, and 
saw the little green mound heaped up over the poor dumb thing 
below. And then they turned to go back home, to the empty, 
lonely home that the light had left that day to go back to that 
desolate home, and lie down and rest 

" 'Twas sad to hear the pitiful moans of the ould man 
weeping for his daughter, but it was almost sadder still to 
hear the innocent prattlin' of the childer, who thought they would 
find their mother at home before 'em. They came home; but, 

God of mercy ! the sheriff and the bailiff and the peelers 
had been there while they were burying the dead, and every 
stick of furniture in that little house was flung out by the roadside, 
and the windows built up and the doore fastened and locked. And 
the queen's soldiers had been there. And that day, that very day," 
he went on in a tone of fierce but subdued passion " that day I was 
carrying the queen's colors on the other side of the globe. May 
my right hand wither and be blasted, if I had known it, but 

1 would have fired on the colors and desarted ! By h I 
would ! " The poor man (I had pity for him, his emotion seemed 
to be so great) stamped on the ground and left me. 

" Do not blame him, sir ; he was the old man's brother," 
said a kindly voice at my elbow ; " and if it were our own case, 
sir? He's provoked at present. He always is when he talks of 
thim things ; and I thinks myself he doesn't be right when he 
talks of 'em." 

I turned and saw an old man with iron-gray hair leaning on 
a staff. His figure was bent, and from time to time he was 
racked with a hard, rasping cough. 

" And the grandfather and the two little children," I said, 
" did you know them ? " 

" I did, sir, and well I ought," was the reply. " I've been in 
here now for the last twenty years." 

" What became of them when they were evicted ? " I asked. 

" The good neighbors came and offered them a shelter. They 
took it ; but when the middle of the night came the old man 
rose up (he had been dreaming that they were dragging his 
daughter away from the old home, and that she was calling to 
him for help), and hastily waking up the sleeping children, and 
putting one under each Map' of his coat, like a hen with her 
chickens, he rushed to the door of the old cottage that was never 
before closed against him. But it was saled now against him 
and his. From fatigue and sorrow he fell on the doorstep and 



1889.] THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. 299 

rested his head against the jamb ; and with the folds of his old 
riding-coat, and with a hand on each side, he nestled and pro- 
tected the two little orphans. It was a hard bed, but for all that 
they slept ; slept so soundly that they did not even feel the rain 
that fell, and that wetted them through and through. 

" There they remained sleeping away until the pathroul came 
round. All thim peelers are not bad, sir. I have known some 
of 'em," he said in his softest tone, "and I declare to you you'd 
find worse. Any road, Sergeant Kelleher took compassion on 
them. He asked them to go with him, and when the old man 
grew obstinate and would not stir he made pretence of ordering 
his men to arrest 'em. The only thing the ould man dreaded was 
for fear any harm would come to the children, and directly that the 
two children were taken on in front, he at once followed. He 
could not bear the children out of his sight. He seemed to 
care about nothing else, to forget everything but the children. 
When they were brought to the barrack and kindly put to the 
fire he should have the children with him all the while, one on 
each side of him. The sergeant didn't want to have them put 
to jai 1 , as they could be, you know, sir, for trespassers and 
vagabonds without a home. He sent for the doctor (Dr. Tom, 
God bless him !), who ordered them to the work-house hospital. 

"I recollect well seeing them coming in that gate below. There 
wasn't one that seen them that wasn't moved. John at the gate 
couldn't ax them what was their name or where they were going, 
as he is bound to do to them that passes in. The peelers them- 
selves that came with 'em kept a piece away, as if they were 
ashamed, as you might say. And up the front there, with a pair 
of little feet, mother-naked, pattering on each side of him in the 
puddles, tottered the old man. 

" ' Sure they won't take ye away from me ! Sure ye won't 
laive me, my darlin's,' he would cry; 'ye won't, Annie? ye won't, 
Rose ? ' 

" But when they came to the door of the hospital, and he was 
tould that the children couldn't be allowed with him, that there 
was classification, and resolutions, and ordhers, and that the rules 
should be carried out ; that males and females were kept asunder ; 
that there was one place for men, another for women ; and 
when they began taking away the children the ould man lifted up 
his aged hands oh ! may I never again see such a sight ! His 
hat fell from his gray head, and he dropped down on the ground 
as if dead. The poor children struggled away from the arms of 
those that held them, and rushed to him. Their cries would wring 



3oo THE Li-:c,i-:.\'D OF THE TWIN TREES. [Dec., 

tears from a stone ; but they had to be separated, you know, sir; 
that is the law ! 

" The ould man was taken to the hospital, and after some time 
he recovered ; but his senses were gone ! One morning, without 
knowing how he came there, we found him standing between these 
two trees. They weren't bare then, but green as a meadow and 
covered with leaves. The thought had come into his head that 
the two trees were his grandchildren this one was Annie, and that 
was Rose. And he'd put his hands around the trunks and 
kiss them, and call them his poor darlin's. And when in 
the summer-time their boughs 'ud meet he'd say : ' Look, 
now, they're joining hands, but I'm too ould for high-gates or 
thread-the-needle ayther.' And all the same he'd stoop down 
and run under the boughs and laugh. And then he'd pat the 
branches, and kiss the trunk of the trees, and call 'em his dar- 
lin's. 

"At times he'd ask them, Would they wish for a song? and in 
a low voice he'd crounaun 



" 'Oh ! the sun is shining in Lisadoon, 
And the flowers are smiling in Lisadoon, 
And I'd love to be in Lisadoon 
All the day long. ' 

"'Ye like that?' he'd say. 'Well, I'll sing ye another now: 

" ' Oh ! the bees are humming in Lisadoon, 
And the tide is coming in Lisadoon, 

And I wish I was in Lisadoon 
All the day long.' 

"And now, what was very singular," continued my informant 
after a hard struggle with his old enemy the cough, " that was 
almost the only thing he was astray in. He'd come into the 
chapel I'll show you the place if you step this way, sir." 
It was not ten paces off, and we went. " He'd kneel there be- 
hind the doore, and there wasn't a stir out of him; no matter who 
came in or who went out, he never minded. He knelt up 
straight, his gray hair came in curls on his neck, and his eyes, 
which were nearly blind, looked nowhere but at the altar. If 
there was a born image of that poor man that knelt far down in 
the temple, and struck his breast, and cried, Lord be merciful to 
me a sinner! it was him. 

" He lived some years ; but when he fell sick he broke down 
all at once, and died as you'd blow out a candle ; and thim 



1889.] THE LEGEND OF THE TWIN TREES. 301 

trees, thim two trees, as sure as he died, seemed to know it. 
They pined away as if they were Christians ; the leaves fell off 
one by one, and from that day to this, summer or winter, they 
are as you see 'em." 

This was the end of the old man's tale and the Legend of the 
Twin Trees. The fact of their becoming blighted exactly at the 
old man's death is undeniable. 

I looked for some moments with reverent interest on those 
striking memorials of a life blasted in its decline, and out of my 
meditations came the wish that God would send peace to my own 
dear land, and happy hearths and homes to her poor peasantry. 
And oh ! but her peasantry could be happy. Give them security 
in their homes, rid them of the tyranny of unjust laws, give them 
the right of governing themselves, and then leave them to Heaven 
and their own good loving hearts, and there will be no more 
blighted lives and no more blasted twin trees. 

I lingered yet a while, for there was sadness at my heart. 
While I stayed a gleam of sunshine fell upon the naked trunks, 
and a little robin perched first upon one, and then upon the 
other, and piped his peaceful song. Was it a good omen ? 

" And what of the children," I asked, as I turned to leave. 

" The good nuns, the Sisters of Mercy, took them up," the old 
man replied. " One of them, however, never recovered the wet- 
ting she got. She pined away and died. Any road, they say it 
is hard to rear twins ; that one of them almost always goes. The 
other got a good education from these holy ladies here, and now 
she's in a fine position, and giving every satisfaction as a certified 
nurse in one of our city hospitals." 

R. O'KENNEDY. 

Patrickswell, Co. Limerick. 



302 THE NEW CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY [Dec., 



THE NEW CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY AND THE 
EXISTING COLLEGES. 

BEFORE this paper comes under the notice of our readers the 
Divinity School of the Catholic University of America will have 
been ushered into active existence. We understand that it is in 
contemplation to open the School of Arts in about two years 
from now, and that the Schools of Law and Medicine and others 
will follow in due succession, as quickly as circumstances will 
permit. We shall thus have, please God, in the near future a 
University, a Studiilm Generate, in the full and liberal sense of 
the term. It will be not merely an Ecole des Hautes Etudes for 
the clergy; it will also embrace the laity, to whom it will afford 
the highest general culture, as well as the technical instruction 
they may require for their several walks in life. 

No one can question the immense good that such an in- 
stitution is calculated to do for the church in America. There 
is no one who has Catholic interests at heart but will wish it 
God-speed. It sets out on its career under the fairest auspices, 
accompanied by all the presages of success. The blessing of 
Christ's Vicar, the patronage of a great hierarchy, endow- 
ments sufficiently ample, suitable site and buildings, a staff of 
eminent professors, a goodly number of students all these belong 
already to the Divinity School, and will, it is hoped, belong in 
time to the other schools of the University. The purport of the 
present paper is to draw attention to one element of success, viz., 
the material on which the University will have to work, and 
which it will be expected to mould and fashion for the highest 
interests of the church in America no less than for that of the state. 
It is intended further to suggest some means whereby the Uni- 
versity can secure this material in sufficient quantity and quality 
for its purposes, and whereby, at the same time, it can render a 
vast service to the cause of Catholic college education. 

According to the report of the United States Commissioner 
of Education for the year iS86-'87, there are in the country 
some fifty Catholic educational establishments, which the commis- 
sioner tabulates under the heading, " Colleges of the Liberal 
Arts." 

Whatever career the future may have in store for these in- 
stitutions, they correspond now nearly all of them, certainly 



1889.] AND THE EXISTING COLLEGES. 303 

\vith the lycees and petits scminaires of France, the gymnasiums ol 
Germany, the public schools of England. The function of the 
new University will be to supplement and complete the work 
done in these establishments of secondary education. It is from 
them that it will derive its material. Even the Divinity School, 
whose work is supposed to begin where that of the grands semi- 
naires ends, cannot arTord to disregard the kind of liberal culture 
which has preceded the philosophy and theology of the seminary ; 
for, where this liberal training in the mother-tongue, in classics, 
and in science is wanting or deficient, the superstructure built by 
the seminary and University may be learned, may be beautiful, 
but it will be very inefficient on the battle-field of modern thought. 
It will be like grand artillery with no wheels to move it into 
position ; or like a mail-clad knight, with sword and spurs and 
battle-axe, but without a horse to take him into the fray. Hence, 
it is in the best interest of the University to keep in touch with 
and influence the source of all its material the Catholic colleges 
spread throughout the country. Such action on the part of the 
University will be " twice blessed," blessing " him that gives and 
him that takes." It will bless the University by supplying it with 
good material ; it will bless the colleges by supplying a standard 
for their work, and impressing a stamp of excellence where it is 
due. At present there is no uniform standard of studies for the 
institutions referred to ; there is no encouragement for such as 
desire to do serious work. There is no rightly formed public 
opinion brought to bear on the work done. Parents, in most 
ises, are not in a position to judge it aright, and the 
"atholic world in general is forced to form its opinion of 
given institution from its show-days, its theatricals, its com- 
icncements, its advertisements, or the notices which appear in 
le papers. The new University can supply correctives to all 
iis. It can mark out a standard of studies to be attained 
>y all who desire to enter its own portals. Further, and espe- 
:ially by a judicious system of examinations and a liberal award- 
ig of prizes, scholarships, or burses, it can draw out the best 
rength of the colleges and excite a healthy emulation amongst 
lem. Various methods might be proposed for effecting this, 
le writer would suggest one which he thinks would be found 
iasible, and which would attain the end in view. It is the sys- 
jm adopted by the universities of Oxford and Cambridge. These 
venerable universities established about thirty years ago, and 
lave since kept up, a system of " local examinations," as they are 
lied, which have been attended by the greatest success. The 

VOL. L.--20 



304 THE NEW CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY [Dec., 

writer prepared pupils for the Cambridge local examinations during 
several years, so that he is familiar with their working ; and he 
knows from other sources that those of Oxford are precisely 
similar. 

The system is as follows : The University appoints what Cam- 
bridge calls " syndics " and Oxford " delegates." It is the duty 
of these to trace out the programme of examinations, and to 
nominate the examiners. The latter set the examination papers, 
examine and classify the answers of candidates, and report thereon 
to the syndics. The University, moreover, appoints for each local 
centre or college a secretary, who forwards to the general secre- 
tary at the University the names, baptismal certificates, and fees of 
intending candidates. This office is usually filled by some one 
connected with the college. In addition, the University selects 
some entirely independent person to act as presiding or super- 
intending examiner at the local centre. It is he who receives 
the examination papers sealed from the University, unseals them 
in the presence of the candidates, presides over the several parts 
of the examination, and, at its close, transmits the candidates' 
answers sealed to the University. As a further guarantee of fair- 
ness in the examinations, candidates are known to the examiners 
only by numbers. In due time the results of the examinations 
are published in class or division lists, together with the reports of 
the several examiners. Therein each college finds the record of 
its success or failure ; and deserving students receive from the 
University or from other sources appropriate reward and encour- 
agement. 

The local examinations, as conducted by both the universities 
mentioned, are twofold senior and junior. The former is intended 
for students under eighteen years of age, the latter for those 
under sixteen. Oxford confers the title of Associate in Arts on 
those who pass with honors the senior examination, which em- 
braces the whole field of liberal culture as far as may be ex- 
pected from students about to enter a University. 

As regards the expense of these examinations, they appear to 
be self-supporting. A fee of one pound sterling is required from 
every candidate, and this amount covers all expenses. 

There seems to be no reason why this or some similar system 
could not be brought into operation by the new University. The 
examinations may, perhaps, in the beginning be confined to the 
senior classes of our colleges. The details of age, fees, relative 
importance of subjects, modes of procedure, etc., could be easily 
settled by calling a convention of the presidents of colleges, to be 



1889.] AND THE EXISTING COLLEGES. 305 

held at the University. The good results that would flow from 
such a system cannot be measured by words. The standard of 
studies would be raised all round ; healthy emulation would be 
excited among the colleges and students ; Catholic public opinion 
would be trained to a due appreciation of what is and what is 
not education, and abundance of material of the right sort would 
be prepared for University purposes. 

A twofold objection may be raised against this or any like 
scheme the one on the part of the University, the other on that 
of the colleges. 

On the side of the University it may be urged that it would 
be going outside its sphere to occupy itself directly or indirectly 
with the work of secondary education. Again, it would be too 
much to expect of University professors that they should under- 
take the drudgery of examination work. 

The first part of this objection would have much force in 
countries where, as in Germany, ,for instance, secondary education 
is directed and controlled on a fixed definite system by the state. 
But here in America the case is very different The state has 
nothing to say to our Catholic colleges except words of encour- 
agement; and even the church concerns herself about them only 
to the extent of satisfying herself that the religious instruction 
given by them is orthodox. In present circumstances the new 
University alone could effectively influence them ; and it owes it 
both to its own interests as well as to its function in the Cath- 
olic educational system of the country to do so. 

The second part of the objection, that arising from the con- 
leration of the drudgery and routine of examinations, has much 
be said in its favor ; but a little explanation will weaken its 
rce. It is not suggested that the senior professors of the Uni- 
irsity should be expected to turn aside from their lectures to ex- 
tine manuscripts by the hundred and thousand. The University, 
giving proper remuneration (this remuneration to be provided 
by the fees of the candidates), can easily get competent men, 
ther within its own walls or without, to set papers and correct 
le answers. It would be easy to give a list of eminent scholars 
do not hesitate to perform a like duty for the Oxford and 
Cambridge locals, and other similar examinations. Calculating fifty 
colleges, with an average of ten candidates from each college, and 
a fee of five dollars from each candidate, we have a sum of 
twenty-five hundred dollars, which would be amply sufficient to 
pay examiners and cover the other expenses of the examinations. 
It is hoped that the University would possess itself of a fund for 



306 THE NEW CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY. [Dec., 

the purpose of these examinations, to be devoted to the founda- 
tion of prizes and burses for the most deserving candidates. 

The other objection to the proposed scheme is' that which 
may be made on the part of the colleges. It may be said that in 
a free country like this, where the interests of colleges are so 
varied, it cannot be expected that they will submit to any " iron- 
clad " system of studies or examinations. 

To this it may be answered, in the first place, that the 
proposed scheme is not in any sense " iron-clad." The colleges 
would be as untrammelled, for all useful purposes, after adopting 
it as before. No hard-and-fast lines need be drawn about text- 
books or authors ; the examinations need take into account only 
the net results of the teaching supposed to be given in the col- 
leges, without entering into details about the ways and means 
whereby such results are obtained. 

In the next place, it is morally certain that the vast majority 
of the colleges will gladly co-operate with the University in car- 
rying out a project the object of which is to raise the standard 
of studies, to excite emulation, and to give encouragement and 
reward where they are deserved. It may be that some few will 
hold themselves aloof at the outset, either because they consider 
themselves above such a thing, or for some other reason. Such 
will be brought into line after a time by the force of public 
opinion and a sense of their own interests. If the scheme here 
proposed, or something similar to it, be carried out judiciously 
and liberally by the University, no college in the country worth 
counting with can afford to disregard it. Only give our Catholic 
people some safe standard by which they may discern the relative 
worth of colleges, and they will not be slow to appreciate it. 
To supply such a standard by a judicious system of examina- 
tions, to keep it always at a high level by the liberal awarding 
of prizes, burses, or scholarships, to bring into wholesome 
rivalry the various Catholic colleges of the country such we 
believe to be one of the most practically important functions 
that the new University is called upon to perform. We feel 
sure that the authorities of the University will readily realize the 
importance of the matter, and we trust that they will meet 
with hearty co-operation on the part of the colleges. 

JOHN T. MURPHY, C.S.Sp. 

Holy Ghost College, Pittsburgh. 



:889.] 



SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 



307 



SAINT CUTHBERT AND HIS TIMES. 



THE earliest glimpse we are able to gain of the great province 
>f Northumbria, some two thousand years ago, exhibits it as the 
inclement abode of the Brigantes, most powerful of the British 

ribes. They possibly had some slight intercourse with the neigh- 
>oring peoples of the continent, but were at best tattooed savages, 

:antily clothed in the hides of wild oxen, wolves, beavers, and 
>ther trophies of the chase, living precariously on the spoils of 

teir spears and nets, and shivering in northerly blasts and wintei 
mows. Their position was bettered when, after many a bloody 
struggle, the Roman legions finally dominated the land, protect- 
ing it from the inroads of the untamable Picts of the Scottish 
lighlands by the noble wall and chain of forts stretching from 

le Forth to the Clyde, and since called Graham's Dyke, raised 
>y the energy of Agricola, that lieutenant of Domitian who was 
the real conqueror of Britain, and whose deeds have been im- 

lortalized by his son-in-law Tacitus. Christianity early gained 
:onverts in Britain, and though the story of St. Joseph of Arima- 

tea bearing the Sangreal to Glastonbury and there constructing 

hermitage is, to say the least, uncertain, and St. P.aul's visit to 

the island equally dubious, there is little doubt that Christianity 

ras taught in Britain during his day. St. Alban, the first British 
irtyr, suffered in 303 A.D., and about the same time Helena, a lady 
>f Colchester, in Essex, married Constantius Chlorus, the Roman 
iperor, and subsequently, at Eboracum (York), the great north- 

'n capital, bore Constantine the Great, the first Christian em- 

>eror. This St. Helena, it will be remembered, was the discoverer 

>f the true cross, which now figures in the arms of her native city 

)f Colchester. Morgan, a Britain, better known as Pelagius, was 

notable heretic of those times. 

But when Rome, sore beset by barbarian inroads, withdrew 
ler legions from outlying provinces to defend the heart of the 
empire, Britain was left to shift for itself, in much the same posi- 
tion that India would now occupy were the British authority sud- 
lenly withdrawn. How the unwarlike and decadent Britains, har- 
med by the onset of ferocious Picts and Scots, and distracted 
>y internal dissension, invoked the aid of Hengist and his Jutish 
followers, and how the lamb found the wolf an ally of doubtful 



308 SAINT CUTHBERT AND His 7/j//;.s. [Dec., 

advantage, belongs not to our present subject, except thus, that 
in 454 Octa, a brother of Hengist, occupied Northumbria, osten- 
sibly for the purpose of defending Britain from the Picts. Then 
succeeds a long period of turmoil and carnage, in which Briton, 
Pict, Angle, Saxon, and Jute lay about them with catholic im- 
partiality, heeding little apparently whether they slay kinsman or 
stranger so that their larlces be duly fleshed. It were of scant 
interest to trace this purposeless battle of the crows and kites, 
even were it possible, but " the gestes of them before Ida are 
little known by croniques " ; and how should they be ? The ancient 
bard of the Briton had long since been displaced and Christianity 
with its monastic chroniclers had been nearly obliterated in the 
clash of steel. However, Ida the Saxon, with his twelve sons, 
landed at Flamborough in 547, drove off the Britons, and founded 
the kingdom of Bernicia ; a dozen years later he was slain by 
Owen, a British chieftain ; next year yElla, one of Ida's men, 
established the sister kingdom of Deira, and Ethelfrith later com- 
bined the two states, thus forming the realm of Northumbria. 
The British Christians could not bring themselves to proffer the 
blessings of religious brotherhood to their German tormentors, but 
they rather consoled themselves, as Tertullian before them, by anti- 
cipations of seeing the tables effectually turned on their enemies 
in a future state of being. Pope Gregory's indignation at this 
their vindictive temper is well known ; also his kindly pleasantries 
on the words Angli, ^Ella, Deira, when he saw the little British 
boys in the Roman slave-mart, and then resolved on the conversion 
of the land, his charitable purpose subsequently taking form in 
the mission of St. Augustine. A generation later Edwin the 
Bretwalda (leading monarch amidst the Anglo-Saxon princes), 
whose name survives in his city of Edinburgh, married Ethel- 
burga, the daughter of Ethelbert, the Christian king of Kent, and 
himself received baptism. Nor was this step merely a concession 
to the sentiments of his spouse; he convoked the National Assem- 
bly, and explained to his nobles his reasons for this momentous 
step. Very dignified and temperate was the deliberation which 
ensued, and the majestic utterances of one venerable graybeard 
which have been preserved, give a vivid picture of the manners 
of the day. He compared himself and his compeers, in their 
ignorance of all which precedes or follows the brief period of 
earth life, to the bird which, as the king on a winter evening with 
his attendants is seated at the fire, flies from the outer cold and 
darkness into the light and warmth of the hall, lingers but a brief 
space, and then through the further door passes forth into the 



1889.' 



SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 



309 



jloom again; wherefore, said the aged noble, if these new teachers 
can at all enlighten us on these obscure mysteries, let us hear 
rhat they have to say. So was it decided with unanimity, and 
ifi, the high-priest, mounted on his charger, rode into the 
temple and, in view of the apprehensive bystanders, hurled his 
ince into the image of Odin. It was a moment of dread sus- 
jnse, but as the insulted divinity failed to resent the affront, the 
Forthumbrians plucked up courage and followed their monarch to 
the font. Gods, however, are more accustomed to act through 
Luman instrumentality than by immediate interference, if we are 
credit those who, of whatever else they may be ignorant, are 
Iways able to expound the ways and intentions of Providence on 
;very occasion. Perhaps there were such in Britain twelve cen- 
iries ago, and they may have explained that the offended war- 
>d stirred up Penda, the king of Mercia, to avenge the impiety, 
lay Edwin, and overthrow the newly erected structure of North- 
imbrian Christianity. His triumph, however, was but short-lived, 
for seven years after Edwin's baptism, Oswald, a prince of the 
Forthumbrian blood royal, who as a refugee had learned and 
lopted Christianity in Scotland, drew together a handful of fol- 
>wers, and posting himself on the wall of Severus, at the place 
illed Heaven's field, defied the might of the redoubtable British 
lieftain Cedwell, or Cadwallon, who was wasting the country, 
"his was a work of great hardihood. Oswald was far outnum- 
jred and an untried man, whereas his veteran opponent had been 
rictor in forty engagements and sixty personal encounters. The 
mng aspirant to regal honors, however, marshalled his band on 
commanding eminence, and, in the spirit of Constantine, erected 
tere a wooden cross, his followers with their hands pressing 
irth around its base until it stood firm. Then Oswald invoked 
le aid of Heaven on his just cause. As his opponent was also a 
iristian and of the native stock of the land, he might appar- 
itly, with equal justice and possibly did have offered up sim- 
ir petitions on his own behalf. The battle was joined ; the 
trategy and, energy of Oswald proved too much for the " big 
ittalions " ; the grand old Briton lay dead on a heap of slain ; 
remnant of his force drew off beyond the Severn, and a new 
ly dawned on Northumbria. The young king now bestirred 
limself for the benefit of his distracted realm, and as a first step 
;nt to Donald, the Scottish monarch, for a Christian teacher, 
le result was the arrival from lona of a certain Corman, a morose 
lonk, and apparently a premature development of the old Scot- 
ch Presbyterian Calvinist of whom Buckle gives so dismal a 



3io SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. [Dec., 

portrayal. He soon returned to his monastery, complaining of 
the obstinacy and ill manners of the English, and declaring that 
the mission was hopeless. He was, however, temperately reproved 
by a young monk called Aidan, and so struck were all by his 
sweetness and capacity that he was forthwith elected to suc- 
ceed Gorman and despatched to the court of Oswald. This was 
in 635, and we find the bishop selecting as his headquarters 
the sombre flat islet of Lindisfarne, or Holy Island, possibly on 
account of its resemblance to his former home of lona, and there 
was situated the cathedral of the sixteen first bishops of North- 
umbria. Aidan soon drew to him many of his old associates, 
followers of the rule of St. Columba, and earnest men of simple 
lives. The Irish, who are unrivalled in tracing genealogies, assert 
that St. Aidan was of the same race as their St. Bridget, and St. 
Bede, who was born twenty years after Aidan's death, says of 
him that " he was a pontiff inspired with a passionate love of 
goodness, but full of surpassing gentleness and moderation." In 
his long missionary journeys he always travelled on foot, and in 
many fastnesses of Yorkshire wolds and Cumbrian fells no other 
mode of locomotion would have been feasible. The churches 
and monasteries which he founded were always schools, and he 
habitually had a dozen children under his own immediate care. 
He also devoted himself to the redemption of slaves, especially 
of those whose servitude was markedly deplorable, for Saxons and 
Celts, worse even than modern Georgians, sold their children and 
brethren like cattle. Nor were the efforts of Aidan barren of 
results, for we hear of 15,000 people being baptized within seven 
days. This is the less to be marvelled at when we remember 
that the bishop was in his teaching assisted by the king, who, 
as Aidan was at first ignorant of English, acted as his interpreter 
and added his own exhortations to those of the prelate. This 
charming idyllic picture illustrates the state of society in Anglo- 
Saxon days ; there was no talk of church and state as of distinct 
and possibly opposing institutions ; the church was the state and the 
state was the church, and earl and bishop sat together on the 
bench to try offenders, just as they united their deliberations in 
the Witan or Great Council for the benefit of the common-weal. 
Carlyle's dictum that kingship is the need of the present day 
was doubtless equally true of the times we are considering, even 
if it had not a universal application, for is not history a record 
of great men ? At any rate, Northumbria had now got a king, 
a conning or cunning man, one with brain to plan and hand to 
execute, and it soon responded to his touch. 



1889.] SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 311 

" Ah, God ! for a man with heart, head, hand, 
Like some of the simple great ones gone 

For ever and ever by. 
One still strong man in a blatant land, 
Whatever they call him, what care I ? 
Aristocrat, democrat, autocrat, one 
Who can rule and dare not lie." 

The difficulty is to discover the king by divine right. The 
Saxon method was for the Witan to select the most suitable man 
in the royal family ; thus Alfred the Great, on the death of his 
elder brother, succeeded him, setting aside his infant son, for a 
man, not a child, was a necessity. As this system led naturally 
to disputed successions and bloodshed, the law of direct descent 
was more rigidly adhered to as time advanced, the nation still 
conserving, and frequently exercising, the right of deposing un- 
suitable monarchs, as in the case of the second and fourth Stuart 
Thus the principle stated in the first commandment of the Deca- 
logue, that blood will tell " unto the third and fourth genera- 
tion," was co-ordinated with the right, of a free people to elect 
their own leader. 

But Oswald had sterner work on hand than the translation of 
sermons, for the sword must guard what the sword has won, and 
old Penda was determined on the undoing of Oswald as he had 
been on that of Edwin. Piling up a vast mass of timber and 
brushwood from the neighboring forest against the walls of Barn- 
borough Castle, the Mercian monarch strove to serve his North- 
umbrian brother as St. Arnaud did the luckless Arabs in the 

Igerine cave.* Aidan prayed for divine succor in this extremity; 

le wind veered round, driving dense masses of smoke into the 
faces of the assailants, and some of them perished scorched and 
suffocated. However, Penda at length prevailed, and eight years 
after his accession Oswald was slain in Shropshire and hung on 

* " Dr. Johnson relates in his Journey that when eating, on one occasion, his dinner in 
Skye to the music of the bagpipe, he was informed by a gentleman "that in some remote 
time the Macdonalds of Glengarry, having been injured or offended by the inhabitants of 
Culloden, and resolving to have justice, or vengeance, they came to Culloden on a Sunday, 
when, finding their enemies at worship, they shut them up in the church, which they set on fire ; 
and this, said he, is the tune that the piper played while they were burning." Culloden, how- 
ever, was not the scene of the atrocity ; it was the Mackenzies of Ord that their fellow- 
Christians and brother-churchmen, the Macdonalds of Glengarry, succeeded in converting into 
animal charcoal when the poor people were engaged, like good Catholics, in attending 
Mass. The Macdonalds, after setting fire to the building, held fast the doors until the last of 
the Mackenzies of Ord had perished in the flames." My Schools and Schoolmasters, by Hugh 
Miller, p. 176, 2oth edition. 

"... The resembling story of that Cave of Eigg, in which a body of the Macdonalds 
themselves, consisting of men, women, and children the entire population of the island had 
been suffocated wholesale by the Macleods of Skye." Ib. p. 180. 



312 SAINT CurniiEKT AND Pus TIMES. [Dec., 

a tree at the place now called from the event Oswestry (Oswald's 
tree). A year later Oswald's brother ventured to remove the 
remains ; the body was taken to Gloucester, the head to the Holy 
Island, and the right arm, in a silver casket, was carried to Barn- 
borough. The people on this recalled the words of Aidan, 
" Never may this arm perish ! " which he had spoken on seeing 
Oswald, when his almoner had distributed all the available money 
to the destitute, stretch forth his hand, grasp the silver drinking- 
cup on the table before him, and himself bestow it on a starving 
suppliant. The material arm has of course long since mouldered 
into dust, but the gallant young monarch's name will be held in 
honor as long as England is a nation. His name is commemo- 
rated in the calendar on the fifth of August. On his demise 
Oswald's dominions became divided, Oswine obtaining Deira and 
Oswy Bernicia. The former possessed the greater material re- 
sources, and might have maintained his position had he combined 
tht serpent's wisdom with his dove-like sweetness of disposition ; 
he was too gentle for this work-a-day world, and, abhorring strife 
and bloodshed, disbanded his forces, imagining that his guileless 
conduct would be imitated by his neighbors. What could the 
result be then or now ? Oswy fell on him and found an easy 
prey, and the loving Aidan, unable to survive the sweet kindred 
spirit, passed quietly away some ten days later, seated outside a 
church in a little shed which his disciples had constructed for 
him, and leaning against one of the buttresses. After this we 
find Oswy defeating and slaying the aggressive old Penda and 
subduing his territory. One cannot suppress a feeling of regret 
for the fate of the stanch old champion of the faith of his fore- 
fathers which all were forsaking, especially as his downfall sounded 
the knell of the old order. Mercia and East Anglia now em- 
braced Christianity, and, in point of faith at least, England was 
at one. Peada, the son of Penda, was brought to the new belief 
by Finan, the successor of Aidan. He appears to have been a 
Briton, and to have come from the same Scotch m6nastery from 
which his predecessor had issued. In Lindisfarne " Finanus 
Aidanus, his successor, built a cathedral of wood thatched with 
reeds, and Eadbert Saint Cuthbert, his successor, instead of this 
consecrated thatch apparelled over the whole church with a robe 
of lead." This building was afterwards dedicated to St. Peter by 
Archbishop Theodore. Bede says of Finan that he was a hasty 
man, and hot against the Roman time of observing Easter. 

The controversy as to the proper time for the Easter obser- 
vance and the right mode of monastic tonsure raged long and 






1889.] SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 313 



fiercely between the British and Anglo-Roman clergy, the former 
with national persistency refusing to budge from their traditionary 
practice, handed down, as they asserted, from the Evangelist St. 
John, whilst the followers of Augustine were unbending in their 
demand that the Roman ritual should be paramount. It had long 
been customary in the East, as it is now with Chinese, Hindoos, 
and others, to remove the hair from the head, a refreshing prac- 
tice under a tropical sun, and one not altogether unknown in 
Texas and other States of the sunny South. This custom the 
Christian monks and eremites inherited from Essenes, Egyptian 
priests, and other Eastern recluses. It would appear that the 
Roman monks did not make a clean sweep of the cranium, as 
did their British brethren, but preserved a circlet of hair round 
the head. The question, at any rate, appears trivial when viewed 
from the distance of twelve centuries, and English and American 
Jesuits are efficient enough without simulating ring-worm or bald- 
ness, but this dispute was grim earnest in its day. The historian 
would have a pleasanter task could he present the various bands 
of Christian teachers as working side by side in brotherly har- 
mony for the enlightenment of hordes of barbarians rather than 
as bickering over ceremonial details. But good work in this world 
is often done by commonplace agents ; powerful minds, like St. 
Gregory the Great, who, when despatching the missionaries, had 
charged them, whilst maintaining great principles, to be tolerant 
of local prejudices, being rarely found. The scene is a country 
town ; time, a bitter morning in early March ; occasion, a parlia- 
mentary election ; party feeling is at fever-heat, though not a 
dozen persons in the borough could set forth the tenets of the 
contending factions. Elys and chaises plastered with huge primrose- 
colored posters speed hither and thither ; these are for the con- 
veyance of Whig electors to the poll. Plethoric farmers, loud of 
voice and bespattered with country clay, are grouped around the 
tavern doors, their breasts decked out with rosettes of cerulean 
hue ; these are the supporters of the Tory candidate. Two small 
boys approach each other in the market square, exchanging 
glances of scorn and defiance. " Blew ! " says the one ; " yaller ! " 
retorts the other, and a hearty exchange of fisticuffs ensues. The 
novelist and the apostle were right. "Blue," " yellow"; "I am 
of Paul, and I of Apollos " such is human nature. Such were 
our early teachers. How striking by contrast the dignified aspect 
of the Master ! who, though well able to pulverize with words of 
burning scorn the hypocrite and sham who can have no quarter, 
yet cared little that some who had the gist of the matter in them 



3 14 SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. [Dec., 

*' followed not with us." But there were giants in the earth in 
the days we are considering, towering like Homeric heroes above 
their fellows, and such was a young Scottish gentleman who grew 
up in picturesque Lauderdale. Little is known of his early days; 
he was an orphan, but a worthy widow lavished on him a paren- 
tal affection, and in the busy after-days he always contrived to 
pay her an annual visit. 

The Kelts said that Cuthbert was the son of a captive Irish 
princess, and Bede describes him as pre-eminent in athletic sports. 
He had a rigorous though bracing schooling as a shepherd, graz- 
ing his flocks on the wild folcland, or common, like a Colorado 
ranchman. But he was early attracted .by the piety of the dis- 
ciples of St. Columba, whom St. Aidan had established at Mulros. 
Their monastery was but a rude congeries of mud-bedaubed hovels 
of wattle thatched with water-reeds, the majestic pile of Melrose, 
whose ruins Sir Walter Scott has immortalized, being of far later 
date ; but the living stones of the original foundation were not 
excelled in grace and beauty by those of any subsequent age. 
It was said that the immediate cause of Cuthbert's desire to be 
enrolled in their ranks was the vision of the soul of St. Aidan at 
the time of his death, " the soul of which bishop St. Cuthbert 
happened to see carried up with great melodic by a Quire of 
Angels into Heaven." So at fifteen years of age Cuthbert, 
mounted on his charger, with lance and attendant squire, rides up 
to the gate of Melrose Abbey, on the banks of the Tweed, of 
which Eata was then abbot, and seeking St. Boisil (or Boswell), 
the prior, of him craves admission into the fraternity. Cuthbert 
was placed in charge of the prior, who instructed him out of the 
manuscript of St. John's Gospel which afterwards, on his account, 
became so famous, " on which, after so many centuries of years, 
no moth ever durst presume to feed." When under Henry VIII. 
St. Cuthbert's shrine at Durham was plundered, this, with other 
memorials of the saint, was removed, and Alban Butler says that 
the Earl of Litchfield gave it to Mr. Thomas Philips, a canon of 
Tongres. Cuthbert proved himself so capable a person that when 
Eata took charge of the monastery of Ripon he took his young 
disciple with him as guest-master, and when subsequently St. Wil- 
frid assumed the direction of that house, Eata took Cuthbert back 
with him to the Tweed, and established him there as prior when 
Boswell, in 664, succumbed to the plague. Cuthbert was near 
falling a victim at the same time to this dread visitation ; his 
vigorous constitution, however, triumphed, and he might have re- 
gained his former vigor, but his impetuous character rendering 






1889.] SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 315 

inaction intolerable to him, he refused to submit to the repose 
necessary during convalescence, and suffered in impaired vitality 
during the remainder of his career. But he continued his mis- 
sionary journeys amongst the illiterate and semi-pagan inhabitants 
of Northumbria, who retained a lingering penchant for heathen 
charms and superstitions, his shepherd training here serving him 
well, as he was sometimes absent for months at a time travelling 
from sea to sea, for Theodore had not yet established the paro- 
chial system. It is more pleasing to contemplate the saint as 
patiently treading in the footsteps of his Master and St. Paul, and 
supporting the hardships incidental on missionary labors, than as 
emulating the feats of Hindoo fakirs and Moslem dervishes ; but 
the hero was not as yet perfected, and stone bathing-places are 
even now pointed out in which Cuthbert is said to have spent 
whole nights, standing up to his neck in the chilly water, and 
there is a story told in Northumberland of some otters licking his 
frozen feet as he prayed on the strand after such an ordeaL 
Elijah, in calm dignity at Carmel, contrasts favorably with his 
adversaries, gashing their bodies with knives to propitiate Baal, 
and we do not find the apostles or their early followers inflicting 
self-torture, for they had received the adoption not of slaves but 
of sons. But we may hope that these legends of our hero are 
the additions of popular fancy, as great part of his story most 
surely is ; they, however, are here introduced as showing the con- 
ception of him current in subsequent ages, when his reputation 
was at its highest. When St. Eata became abbot of Lindisfarne 
he took Cuthbert with him as prior, and here he remained for 
twelve years, in " such sanctity of life that the devil was much 
grieved at his vertues." Cuthbert far excelled his contemporaries 
in moderation and common sense. 

For instance, when at the Synod of Whitby Wilfrid suc- 
ceeded in establishing the observance of the Roman ritual, and 
poor Bishop Colman, rather than yield, packing up the bones of 
Aidan, retired to lona with some of his monks, Eata and Cuthbert, 
though agreeing with Colman, resolved for the sake of peace to 
accept the decrees of the council, and even condescended to argue 
temperately with the monks who, with true ecclesiastical conserva- 
tism, were wedded to the ancient order. The moderation of Cuthbert 
is sadly needed in these days, when factions and unpatriotic poli- 
ticians, because they are out of office, hamper the action of 
the executive and do their utmost to involve their country in 
disaster and dishonor. Cuthbert also persuaded the monks to dis- 
use the gaudy plaids in which their simple souls rejoiced, he 



316 SAINT C urn BERT AND His TIMES. [Dec., 

deeming robes of plain undyed wool more suited to the gravity of 
their profession. Stories are also told of how he stayed the rav- 
ages of the plague and healed the son of a woman when at the 
point of death. Preaching at the village of his foster-mother, the 
devil tried to withdraw his audience from the influence of his ex- 
hortations by setting fire to a cottage. Cuthbert, however, showed 
the people that it was merely fantastical fire, dissipated the 
illusion, and continued his harangue. But the saint had a re- 
markable delight in prayer, to which he sometimes devoted three 
or four consecutive nights ; and to enjoy this exercise without 
distraction, in the year 676 he withdrew from Lindisfarne to the 
small island of Fern, nine miles distant, a dreary basaltic spot, ex- 
posed to the unbroken violence of the east wind, from which he 
screened his narrow dug-out as best he might with an ox-hide 
stretched over the entrance. This place was nearly opposite the 
royal castle of Bamborough, of which we have already heard. The 
devils who had monopolized the island now fled, the rocks poured out 
water, and the soil untilled bore rich crops, which possibly means 
that the saint dug a well and cultivated a patch of ground, and that 
the seals, with their habitual distrust of human intrusion, aban- 
doned their ancient haunts on the beach. However, Cuthbert 
appears to have possessed that extraordinary sympathy with, and 
consequent control over, the animal world of which there are 
occasional instances, the last we heard of being an inhabitant of 
one of the New England States, a man of French origin, whose 
name we have forgotten, but which will probably be known by 
many of our readers. " He ceased not to preach to the Birds 
that eat up his Corn, who so confuted them out of this text, non 
alicna concupisces, that they would never after eat his barley. He 
reclaimed two crows from stealing and rapine that pluckt off his 
thatch from his Anchorage to build their nest, and made them so 
penitent that they lay at his feet prostrate for absolution, 
and the next day brought him a piece of Pork for satisfaction," 
" stolen," we presume, from some one else. It is said that the sea- 
birds called " birds of St. Cuthbert " are still found at Feme (or 
House) Island, but nowhere else in England. The fishermen say 
that Cuthbert makes the shells entrochus at night. The saint 
spent eight or nine years in his hermitage, but this period was by no 
means one of inactivity ; so numerous were his visitors that he 
built a guest-house of stone for their accommodation, though he 
ordinarily remained in his cell and conversed with them through 
a window. Northumbria was at this time convulsed by the strug- 
gle between Wilfrid and King Egfrid ; in the presence of this 



1889.] SAIA T T CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 317 

prince at the Synod of Twiford, over which St. Theodore pre- 
sided, Cuthbert was chosen Bishop of Lindisfarne. This, however, 
as sorely against his will, and it was only on earnest solici- 
tation that he yielded, and was consecrated at York by Theodore 
and seven other bishops' on the i/th of April, 685, being Easter 
Day. About the same time he told those near him of the death of 
King Egfrid, though he was at a distance, and they learned 
later that he had bfeen slain by the Picts at the time Cuthbert 
had spoken of it. The bishop was most assiduous in preaching 
and in visiting the various portions of his extensive diocese, em- 
bracing as it did the Saxons of the east coast and central dis- 
tricts and the Britons of Cumberland. He was always patient 
d cheerful, and many marvels are attributed to him, as the heal- 
ing of a dying lady by means of blessed water. She was the 
wife of Count Henna, and was so thoroughly and speedily restored 
that she arose from her bed and handed the loving Jcup to her aston- 
ished kindred. Similar is the story of the wife of a certain ealdor- 
man whom Cuthbert healed of madness. So with Elfleda, niece 
of Sts. Oswald and Oswy, who was recovered from sickness by 
means of Cuthbert's linen girdle. This princess had succeeded St. 
Hilda as abbess of Whitby, and shortly before his death Cuthbert 
visited her to dedicate a neighboring church. Such was his re- 
ligious abstraction that at table his knife dropped from his hand 
and he remained lost in thought. During the dedication ceremony 
the young abbess rushed up to him requesting a memento for a 
monk of whose death she had just heard. Then we hear of the 

I queen and virgin St. Etheldreda working for him splendid vest- 
ments, and of his visits to Ebba, abbess of the double monas- 
tery of Coldingham, and to the Abbess Verca at the mouth of 
the Tyne. Here, being thirsty after dinner, Cuthbert refused both 
wine and beer, preferring water. The monks, however, averred that 
the rest of the cup was excellent wine. Seeing how ill he was, 
the abbess presented the saint with the fine linen shroud in which 
he was shortly after interred. The rule in Saxon times seems to 
have been general for princesses and ladies of birth to preside 
over convents, just as at present the highest distinction of prin- 
ces of the blood is to bear arms and risk life and limb for the 
Fatherland side by side with the humblest trooper or grenadier. After 
two years of episcopal toil Cuthbert, feeling his end approaching, re- 
tired to his old retreat of Feme to die. Here he lingered for 
two months, his illness being long and painful ; his age was not 
far over fifty years, yet he was quite worn out. But the phase of 
spiritual life at which self-torture is esteemed grateful to the Father 






318 SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. [Dec., 

of all flesh he had now outgrown ; no more icy baths and mid- 
night sufferings ; he bore patiently the inevitable, and might perhaps 
have said with Buckle : "We must not calumniate an all-wise and all- 
merciful Being by imputing to him those little passions which 
move ourselves, as if he were capable of rage, of jealousy, and 
of revenge, and as if he with outstretched arm were constantly 
employed in aggravating the sufferings of mankind and making 
the miseries of the human race more poignarit than they would 
otherwise have been. These are base and grovelling conceptions, 
the offspring of ignorance and darkness. Such gross and sordid 
notions are but one remove from actual idolatry. All the events 
which surround us, even to the furthest limits of the material 
creation, are but different parts of a single scheme, which is per- 
meated by one glorious principle of universal and undeviating 
regularity." 

The sufferings of the saint, now prematurely aged, are extreme, 
and he is tenderly assisted by his mourning followers, who with 
warm wine and woollen coverings seek to restore his waning forces. 
He heeds not, however, these shortlived pains, " which are but for 
a moment," and to him might have been applied the words of 
certain writers on Buddhism, describing an Arhat : " To him who 
has finished the path and passed beyond sorrow, who has freed 
himself on all sides, thrown away every fetter, there is no more 
fever or grief." "The disciple who has put off lust and desire, 
rich in wisdom, has here on earth attained deliverance from death, 
the rest, the Nirvana, the eternal state." And might he not have 
employed the words of a leading disciple of Gautama as a suit- 
able expression of his state of mind ? "I long not for death ; I 
long not for life ; I wait till mine hour come, like a servant who 
awaiteth his reward." We take the liberty of inserting these 
quotations at second-hand from a volume which lies before us, 
thinking that they admirably display the identity of true piety in 
every age and clime. Nor is this remarkable, for " the spirit of the 
Lord filleth the world," "and God fulfils himself in many ways." 
The hour of relief at length arrived, the saint received the Viati- 
cum and passed quietly away at the hour of Matins on the 2Oth 
of March, 687, in the thirty-ninth year of his religious life and 
the fifty-fourth of his age. A monk with a torch, standing on 
the slightly elevated spot which the lighthouse now occupies, gave 
the preconcerted signal to the house of Lindisfarne, and thither 
the body.] of the deceased prelate was borne, where, robed in 
the Abbess Verca's shroud, it was placed in a coffin of stone. 
On a small islet in Derwentwater dwelt a priest and anchorite 



SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. 319 

named Herbert, who was a close friend of Cuthbert, to whom 
he paid an annual visit, and, as the saint had predicted, they both 
died on the same day. In 1374 the Bishop of Carlisle appointed 
an annual Mass to be said in the island in memory of this pious 
friendship, with a forty days' indulgence for those who attended. 

St. Cuthbert's body being inspected after a lapse of eleven 
years was found to be perfect. This caused King Celwolphus to 
bestow many lands on the monastery and to take the " monk's 
coole " there himself. Later on the constant inroads of Danish 
pirates kept Northumbria in a chronic state of alarm, and the 
Saxons had an opportunity of appreciating the feelings with 
which their own invading ancestors must have inspired the 
Britons several centuries before. Neither age, sex, nor rank were 
considered when the grim followers of Odin shouldered the 
Danish battle-axe and took the field. With each recurring spring 
fresh fleets from the fiords of the northern mainland would arrive, 
scudding before the keen nor'easter. The invaders would repose 
in some hidden inlet, awaiting the return of their scouts ; a rapid 
raid of cavalry through the gloomy forests would then be made, and 
the fierce warriors with axe and brand would fall on some peace- 
ful slumbering town like a hurricane or a party of Arab slavers 
on an African village. Then would succeed a confused tumult of 
women's shrieks, old men's groans, blazing rafters and blinding 
smoke, and by morning the town would be represented only by 
smouldering heaps of ruins and blackened corpses. At an abbey 
of nuns, as a Danish column was approaching, the abbess hastily 
assembled her disciples in the chapter-house, told them briefly 
what they had to expect from the uncouth foe, and then taking 
a knife cut off her nose and lips ; she then handed the weapon to 
another, who imitated her example, and so with the rest of 
the sisterhood. When the Danes, filled with fury and lust, burst 
into the chamber they shrank back appalled at the gruesome 
spectacle. So in 893 we find Eardulphus, the bishop, with his 
monks, fleeing from Lindisfarne, bearing with them St. Cuthbert's 
body and other relics. However, a " sacrilegious storme " struck 

eir vessel in the Irish sea, and returning, they got into favor 
th Guthred, the Danish king, and gained lands from the Wear 
the Tees. Alfred the Great, also, in honor of St. Cuthbert 
granted exemption from military service and taxation to the in- 
habitants, and placed the saint's name with his own on his coins. 
The bishopric, however, was now fixed at Chester-le-street, near 
Durham, where Bishop Eardulphus died in 894. A century later 
the see was removed to Durham or Dunholme i.e., the hill on 

VOI. U 21 



320 5^AV7 C UTH BERT AND HlS TIMES. [Dec., 

the waters the beautiful situation of that magnificent cathedral, 
built in 1080, being well known. Whether the following descrip- 
tion by Mr. Hegge, of Corpus Christi College, Oxford, written in 
1663, will materially assist the reader is doubtful. " I may liken," 
says he, " the Bishoprick of Durham to the Letter //, and Durham 
to a crab, supposing the city for the body and the suburbs for 
the clawes. This countrey lyeth in the bosome of the Ocean and 
is embraced in the arms of two chrystal Rivers, Teese and Der- 
wen." Durham was fixed on as the resting-place of St. Cuth- 
bert's body because the monks could not get it away. For some 
reason they were driving the remains about in a cart, when it stuck 
fast in a bog or was detained by some unseen agency, a sign 
that they should remain where they were. This was in 996. 
Aldwinus was the last Bishop of Chester and the first of Dur- 
ham. Amongst the monks at that time was one Rigulphus, said 
to be two hundred and ten years old, by whose side poor Parr, 
of the life pills, with his paltry one hundred and sixty years, 
would have appeared a mere child. Also, " Elfride, a monk, had 
got one of St. Cuthbert's hairs which, laid upon the coals, would 
be red hot, and return again to its former color." 

The monks, alarmed at the approach of William the Norman, 
conveyed their saint's body to Lindisfarne for security, but he is 
held to have eventually frightened the victors of Senlac into sub- 
mission, and before the end of his reign the present glorious 
structure, the " seven altars " of the Middle Ages, was com- 
menced, Malcolm of Scotland and others aiding in the work, and 
for ages the Bishop Palatine was a little monarch of the northern 
marches. 

Cuthbert had been a regular woman-hater, or rather he had 
sedulously avoided the sex, and therefore from churches dedicated 
to him all women were excluded, as also from the portion of 
Durham Cathedral near his magnificent shrine, a mark determin- 
ing the Ultima Thule of female devotees being placed in the wall 
at some distance from the tomb. But what will not the gentle 
creatures do when placed on their mettle ? In the fifteenth cen- 
tury two women arrayed in male attire attempted to approach the 
forbidden spot, but being detected by some ungallant old monk 
or crusty sacristan, were tried for their misdeed and put to 
public penance. Cuthbert's mistrust of the fair sex and their 
wiles arose from the following circumstance : The shame of an 
unmarried daughter of the king being apparent, she, on being 
accused, said, " The fault is with that young man who lives 
alone ; I could not resist his beauty." On this the king and 






1889.] SAIA T T CUTHBERT AXD His TIMES. 321 

courtiers went to Cuthbert in his solitude, reproaching him with 
his hypocrisy and wickedness. Hereupon the saint with tears and 
lamentations betook himself to the protection of Heaven, praying 
that his innocence might be established, when lo! horresco referens, 
the earth gaped, swallowing up the brazen-faced huzzy, who, like 
Dathan and Abiron, of Hebrew story, descended alive into the 
realm of Pluto. The afflicted parent now craved the good offices 
of the outraged hermit, crying as another Lord Ullin : " My 
daughter, oh ! my daughter," and of course his prayer was granted 
and the princess reappeared from below in pantomimic style. 

Years ago, when visiting the museum of the United Service 
Institution, we came on the Franklin relics, and amongst others 
were some silver spoons and forks discolored by the exposure of 
years on an arctic beach, and a little girl of the party raised a 
laugh by suggesting that an application of plate-powder and 
chamois-leather would much improve them ; as table utensils the 
spoons would doubtless have benefited had this proposition been 
acted on, but as relics they would have been impaired. We have 
in this sketch of the life of St. Cuthbert abstained from employ- 
ing powder or leather. Those who wish to may, if they choose, 
remove the incrustations of legend and fable with which posterity 
has bedecked the memory of this great man, but we deem it 
hardly necessary ; he was one of the noble spirits who planted the 
first seeds of religion and civilization in this land and to whom 
ur indebtedness is incalculable. Sad it is that a powerful and 
learned English monarch should have deemed it consistent with 
his kingly dignity to rifle the shrine of such a man and outrage 
his remains. However, acting on the orders of Henry VIII., Dr. 
Lee, Dr. Henly, and Mr. Blithman defaced the shrine, taking the 
jewels and precious metal, which were of great value, for the 
king. The strong chest was burst open, in which were found, 
besides books, golden chalices, and other ornaments, the bones of 
Bede, Aidan, and others, and the head of St. Oswald ; these were 
thrown away, but according to Harpefeild, with the exception of 
the tip of the nose, the body of St. Cuthbert was entire, with 
beard as of a fortnight's growth, and the sapphire ring on the 
finger. Viscount Montague gave this to the Bishop of Chalcedon, 
who subsequently presented it to the house of English Canonesses 
at Paris. Pending the decision of the king as to the bestowal of 
the body it was taken charge of by the monks, and Bishop 
Tunstal is said to have subsequently buried it where the shrine 
had stood. This, however, is doubtful, for Dr. Whitehead, the head 
of the monastery, and others who were present at the ghoulish 



322 SAINT CUTHBERT AND His TIMES. [Dec., 

ceremony of ransacking the shrine at the behest of the royal body- 
snatcher, say that a leg was accidentally broken. Now, in May, 
1827, the cathedral and civic authorities caused the grave to be 
carefully opened, some neighboring Benedictines being present by 
invitation ; a body was found vested in what are undoubtedly 
the robes of the saint, and of which Mr. Raine wrote an account. 
But neither leg of this body was broken, a fact which lends coun- 
tenance to the story that the monks abstracted and concealed the 
body of St. Cuthbert, substituting another, and that only* three 
Benedictines are entrusted with the secret of the resting-place of 
the remains. And though this may be so and will commend 
itself to those who find pleasure in mystery, yet it seems hardly 
probable, for in the present age of toleration and enlightenment 
such concealment and caution is wholly unnecessary. We fear, 
therefore, that the remains of the Scottish shepherd and knight, 
monk, hermit, missionary, and bishop, have shared the fate of 
those of Aidan, Bede, and Oswald, which so long reposed with 
his, and that the words of Aytoun are in a measure applicable : 

" Oh ! never shall we know again 

A heart so stout and true : 
The olden times have passed away, 

And weary are the new. 
The fair white rose has faded 

From the garden where it grew, 
And no fond tears, save those of heaven, 

The glorious bed bedew 
Of the last old Scottish cavalier, 

All of the olden time ! " 

CHARLES E. HODSON. 






1889.] IJ9 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 323 



_A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 

CHAPTER X. 

A THOUGHTFUL RIDE. 

THIS last effort to capture Emilie Tourner had not appeared 
very hopeful to M. Tardiffe. He was, therefore, most happily 
surprised at receiving the madame's note. " The sweet bird," he 
inwardly congratulated himself, " that has eluded me so long is 
at last caged and shall now sing for me alone." He had really 
no expectation of being able to rescue M. Pascal. It was uni- 
versally believed that the prisoners had been put to death. The 
excessively cruel character of Dessalines, stimulated by the car- 
nival of massacre, emboldened by victory, and pressed towards 
revenge by the horrible tortures with which a number of blacks, 
without show of trial, had just been put to death at the Cape, 
gave ample warrant for such an opinion. It was felt, too, that 
Dessalines would be disposed towards violent measures, in order 
to make the breach between the whites and blacks irremediable. 
And in regard particularly to Henry Pascal, no one who had read 
the proclamation entertained a doubt that his recent arrival from 
Jamaica, should it come to the knowledge of the negro chief, 
would alone and at once decide his fate. 

M. Tardiffe's supposition was that he would not have to ad- 
vance far into the country before receiving intelligence in regard 
to the fate of the captives definite enough to warrant his return ; 
and, though he should not have rescued M. Pascal, yet he felt 
that Emilie Tourner would be virtually within his grasp. The 
taking-off of her lover would remove the main obstacle between 
them, and the attraction residing in his ample and secure wealth, 
joined to the powerful advocacy of Madame Tourner, would, he 
felt assured, finally win the prize. Well known though he was as 
an ami des noirs, he was sensible, in the present spirit existing 
among the blacks, of the danger he was encountering in advanc- 
ing even a few miles beyond the Cape, and took what precau- 
tions he could against them. One was to go entirely unarmed. 
Weapons, though unused, would show, he argued, latent resistance 
and tend to rouse aggression ; and where resistance is hopeless 
complete defencelessness is the safer state. His dress, too, was of 
the plainest style consistent with the air of a gentleman, and he 



324 1 79* A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO, [Dec., 

discarded every kind of ornament and valuable likely to tempt 
the cupidity of black marauders. He put aside, therefore, his 
rings and watch, and replaced a well-lined silken purse with a 
few loose coin. 

To avoid the heat as well as the rain, which at this season 
usually begins falling about noon, the gig had been ordered early, 
and an hour before sunrise M. Tardiffe was a league beyond the 
Cape. It was Saturday, the chief market-day, and within the 
first few miles numbers of colored women were passed, adroitly 
balancing on the head, with arms akimbo, great trays of fruit and 
vegetables, and bundles of Guinea-grass. A sudden and exorbi- 
tant rise in the price of such commodities, the demand being 
especially pressing from the shipping in port, hacf tempted the 
venders to venture forth. Beyond this limit evidences of the in- 
surrection grew distinctly visible, becoming more and more pro- 
nounced as M. Tardiffe advanced. But a few days before he had 
driven through this splendid plain, then teeming with a busy, 
prospering, and opulent population, and bearing on its fertile 
bosom in richest profusion every staple of tropical growth. How 
miserably had all changed ! Dessalines' plan of operations dis- 
played his sagacity. This, as mentioned elsewhere, was to deso- 
late the plains and rendezvous in the mountains, where the labors 
of the women, aided by the soil's natural bounty, would supply a 
commissariat. The results were now before M. Tardiffe's eyes. 
Broken hedges and fencing, utterly wasted fields, the cane being 
everywhere cut down or trodden under foot, the charred debris of 
tobacco and indigo houses, of mansion and sugar-mill, had con- 
verted a magnificent and exhilarating prospect into one broad 
scene of desolation. 

The accounts M. Tardiffe had received, though of the most 
vivid character, failed to convey fit impressions of this wide and 
wanton waste, and around him began deepening a sense of appre- 
hension which the perfect solitude tended to enhance. Where 
were the thousands and thousands of blacks who at this hour 
were wont to go forth to work and greet the rising sun with 
joyous song and sally, as in long lines they would hoe up the 
cane or cut down the straw-colored stalks ? The greater part had 
betaken themselves to the mountains, and for those remaining the 
hour was too early, for the negro is a drowsy creature, and had 
now ample opportunity to indulge his bent. The first blacks seen 
were a couple of women sitting near the roadside beneath a lime, 
not far from a massive stone bridge spanning a brawling brook. 
M. Tardiffe rode by without speaking. They were uncanny, ill- 



.] //p/ A TALI-: OF SA.V DOMINGO. 325 






looking objects, and he had little hope of obtaining from them 
the information he desired ; and had his expectations been higher, 
the impudent and malicious way in which they eyed him would 
have been sufficient cause for passing in silence. He had crossed 
the bridge, and was still musing upon their peculiar leers as 
boding no good, when the interpretation came in his being set 
upon by a gang of marauding blacks who had been sleeping off 
a carouse in the cabins attached to a ravaged plantation on 
his right 

M. Tardiffe was one of those nervous and apparently timid 
men we often see, whose impressionable nature conjures up and 
exaggerates the tokens of danger, but who, when the danger 
itself becomes manifest, at once stiffen themselves resolutely to 
oppose it ; and he was conscious, as the maudlin blacks ran 
towards him with wild cries of " Buckra ! Buckra ! " that it was a 
crisis calling for all his resources. The blacks seized his bridle 
and compelled him to dismount, and hustled him very roughly, 
paying no regard to his asseverations that he was Louis Tardiffe 
and a friend to their race, and were going through his pockets 
for valuables when the leader of the gang, recognized by the 
marauders as " Cap'n Cato," rode up on a mettlesome nag. 
" Cudjoe ! " spoke the captain in a loud, blustering tone of com- 
mand, addressing a young fellow of stout build and having the 
plump appearance characteristic of sugar-mill hands who have free 
access to the cane- juice, "hold dis here snaffle." 

Cudjoe at once sprang forward with great alacrity, for military 
obedience, he had already learned, must needs be swift. The 
veriest of masters, however, is he who has once been a slave, and 
Captain Cato, partly to emphasize his authority, partly to bully 
the white man, thought fit immediately to add : 

" D'ye hear, boy ? You Guinea nigger ! " 

" I hear, sah ! " answered Cudjoe, as he seized the bridle. 
Captain Cato dismounted, and eyeing his prisoner all over as he 
approached him, demanded in brow-beating style who he was, 
where he was going, and on what business. The latter replied 
that his name was Louis Tardiffe, that he was well known as a 
friend to the blacks, and that he was on his way to confer with 
General Dessalines on matters of importance. At this announce- 
ment, delivered in a manner at once cool and remarkably polite, 
the captain's features relaxed considerably, for he had frequently 
heard the name of M. Tardiffe mentioned in connection with the 
asserted rights of the lower races. But the negro is suspicious 
by nature, and the captain's features grew grim again as the 



326 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Dec., 

thought popped into his head that the prisoner might be de- 
ceiving him. He therefore said, looking sharply at his man : 

" Buckra, me sabe who M. Tardiffe be ; but how can me sabe 
ef you be him ? " 

Strange to tell, not until that moment had M. Tardiffe con- 
sidered the highly probable necessity he would be under to make 
good his identity, and to extricate himself his fertility of re- 
source seized upon a ruse de guerre, the success of which de- 
pended upon the negro's inordinate vanity. It was fraught with 
hazard, yet not enough in M. Tardiffe's judgment to balance the 
danger of being held by these maudlin marauders. The blacks, 
here and there, had picked up a little learning and were able 
to read. M. Tardiffe, however, had a conviction that Captain 
Cato's intellectual progress had not advanced so far ; yet he be- 
lieved the man's vanity, which he could see had been powerfully 
stimulated by his new-born authority, would not permit him 
to deny the accomplishment could its possession be so adroitly 
insinuated as to allow him to claim it without reasonable risk 
of his deceit being exposed. 

Drawing forth, therefore, a chance letter which proved to be 
a brief business one conveying his last London remittance and 
speaking in a suave, engaging manner, he said : 

" This, Monsieur le Capitaine, is my passport, secretly sent 
me by General Dessalines, and which I read : 

" ' HEADQUARTERS, NEAR PETITE ANCE. 

"'This permits Monsieur Louis Tardiffe to pass and repass my 
army lines. He who molests him shall answer before me. 

" ' [Signed] GENERAL DESSALINES.' 

" But you can see for yourself, Monsieur le Capitaine. I pre- 
sume you can read a passport." 

The captain took the proffered letter, and scrutinized it very 
carefully with his maudlin, stupid eyes ; but the examination was 
made, as M. Tardiffe observed, with the paper upside down, and 
the latter felt greatly relieved at seeing his surmise justified and 
the stratagem succeeding. Handing back the paper, he stepped 
aside with his men, and they whispered together for some 
moments, he informing them, with many gesticulations, that the 
man was not only M. Tardiffe, the "nigger's friend," but that he 
bore a passport from General Dessalines, and that no harm or 
hindrance must come to him. In truth, the wily negro had a 
thought though the smooth and confident way in which M. Tar- 
diffe had read the paper made a decided impression that the 









1889.] *79 * -A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 327 

alleged passport might be a deception. There was, however, he 
felt, at least a probability of its being genuine, in which event 
Dessalines' threat was one to tremble at. So Captain Cato made 
up his mind to allow M. Tardiffe to pass, to which conclusion 
he was materially assisted by knowing that the prisoner had about 
him nothing valuable. Returning, therefore, to where he had left 
M. Tardiffe standing, he grasped him by the hand, and told him 
he was glad all over to know him. In his rude style he apolo- 
gized for the roughness of his men, and said there would be no 
further trouble, as the way was clear to an outpost " better'n a 
league ahead," and that thence he would be safely escorted to 
the general's presence. 

M. Tardiffe returned thanks in suitable terms, and followed 
with searching inquiries as to the fate of the captives, yet could 
gain nothing definite. To a special question the captain replied 
that he had not heard of their having been shot. At parting the 
captain drew forth an ample flask of taffia and offered it to our 
traveller, who saluted the bottle with apparent good-will. Shaking 
hands with Captain Cato, and bowing politely to his men, now 
officiously friendly, M. Tardiffe remounted his gig and rode for- 
ward, with a salvo of yells from the blacks. His cogitations were 
serious, as he now saw himself compelled to go on to the negro 
camp. He had never for a moment contemplated meeting Des- 
salines. And what if Henry Pascal should be alive ? To inter- 
cede for him had been equally far from his thoughts. It became 
necessary, therefore, to devise some reason for the interview, and 
a plausible one quickly suggested itself in the desire to shield 
certain friends at Dondon, which town Dessalines, it was currently 
reported, was preparing to assault. He soon reached the outpost. 
The officer in command was a young mulatto lieutenant, who at 
once recognized and warmly greeted him. He had often seen 
him at the Cape, where the latter, particularly after his pro- 
nounced advocacy of enfranchisement, was a conspicuous object to 
the colored races. His recognition and the cordiality of the 
reception were most gratifying to M. Tardiffe, and he concluded 
to accept an invitation to take refreshments and rest himself and 
beast over the noon a step to which he was the more inclined 
as rain had just commenced falling. The inquiry as to the cap- 
tives was here renewed, and our traveller received the astounding 
information that not only had they not been shot, but that 
Dessalines, being in want of funds (the negro insurgents having 
secreted for themselves by far the larger part of the money found), 
was strongly inclined to hold them at a ransom. 



328 //p/ A TALE OF SAK DOMLVGO. [Dec., 



Prior to leaving he obtained a letter of introduction to the 
chief, and got some insights into his character useful in the com- 
ing interview. The lieutenant declared Dessalines would be de- 
lighted at seeing him, and would accord him a royal welcome ; 
that he needed at this juncture just such a friend to indicate to 
him the pulse of the colony, and take counsel with in regard to 
future plans. He said, too, that since the victory the lower order 
of negroes fairly worshipped him, that all regarded him as being 
invincible, and that he was really a man of superior military sa- 
gacity and indisputably brave. A squad of men were detailed to 
accompany M. Tardiffe through the lines, and the latter, again 
remounting the gig, proceeded on his way, protecting himself as 
well as he could against a steady fall of rain. 

" Well ! well ! " he inwardly ejaculated, " Henry Pascal alive, 
and possibly to be ransomed ! That does not suit me at all 
it does not" he added, with an emphatic blow in the air, as if 
he were hitting his rival. " Suppose I should succeed in rescuing 
him ; one sight of her lover would turn mademoiselle's head, and 
she would find some way to twist out of her promise. And even 
were she disposed to abide by it, would not an ugly settlement 
with Henry Pascal be inevitable ? " 

He knew the latter was a determined man and dangerous 
when roused, and that the attempt to wrest Emilie Tourner from 
him would render him furious. And though M. Tardiffe, as has 
been mentioned in these pages, was himself not wanting in cour- 
age, yet, under all the circumstances, he shrank from the thought 
of meeting the wrath of Henry Pascal. It was a subject of grave 
import, and he dwelt long upon it. Some conclusion, however, 
was at length reached, for a couple of miles, perhaps, had been 
made when his manner suddenly changed. He raised his head, 
cheered his horse, and began to inspect the surroundings. The 
black camp was evidently near, for the strategic points were all 
well guarded, and on every hand negro soldiers were multiply- 
ing, though the weather had driven great numbers to shelter. 
The rain increasing, the horses were urged, and the party soon 
reached a cross-roads occupied by a large negro force. Here M. 
Tardiffe deemed it advisable to remain till he could receive an 
answer to the letter of introduction. This was forthwith despatched 
to Dessalines' headquarters, at the residence of a wealthy mulatto 
a mile away. Within a half-hour the answer came, exceedingly 
polite and cordial, and M. Tardiffe, greatly raised in spirits, im- 
mediately sought the presence of the negro chief. 



:889-] 



1791 A TALE OF SAA T DOMINGO. 



329 



CHAPTER XL 



THE INTERVIEW. 

The anticipations of the lieutenant in regard to the manner 
in which M. Tardiffe would be received were fully realized. 
>essalines' language was excessively coarse and vulgar, and his 
lanner habitually bullying, and it was not his wont before any 
>ne to place restraint upon himself in respect either to speech or 
ision. But M. Tardiffe, whose keen eyes were wide open 
to indications, could see that the marked cordiality was genuine, 
tnd all fears for himself were dismissed. He at once proceeded 
business, and informed Dessalines of the object of his mission : 
iat he had dear relations in Dondon, and having heard of the 
:hief's intention to immediately assault the town, and not doubt- 
ig the success of the attempt, he had risked the dangers of the 
>ad in seeking him to intercede in their behalf, and he expressed 
ie hope that what he had done and suffered for the blacks 
rould win this favor. 

Dessalines promptly replied that M. Tardiffe's wish was a law, 
ind asked for the names of his friends and location of their resi- 
lences, declaring, with a great oath, that not a hair of any of 
lem should be touched. The memorandum was made out and 
>resented, when Dessalines observed, in his vernacular a very 
irious compound of profanity and coarseness, oddity of expres- 
lon, and affected smartness that M. Tardiffe's visit -was well- 
timed ; that he had upon his hands a number of prisoners, and 
;ing in need of shiners, for so he denominated the sinews of 
ir, he was half in mind to put them at a ransom, and hoped 
ie ' could obtain from ,M. Tardiffe information in respect to their 
ibility. 

" Blow me, monsieur," he remarked, giving expression to his 
inse of their marketable worth, " if they an't mostly officers 
rum lot, as Old Harry said 'bout the ten Commandments and 
want 'em to bring me ready money." 

M. Tardiffe replied, expressing regrets that his knowledge in 
this direction was so scant, that round sums could no doubt be 
lad for any officers from the arsenal or ships, that he was ac- 
[uainted with the circumstances of only one of the prisoners, M. 
tenry Pascal, and that he knew him now to be as poor as a 
barber's cat. To Dessalines' answer that no such name was upon 
his list he replied that Henry Pascal's capture was the talk of 



330 ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Dec., 



the Cape, whereupon Dessalines, producing the list, handed it to 
him with the remark that he could see for himself. 

He took the paper, and having rapidly glanced over it, stood 
for a moment abstracted and with a puzzled air. A second look 
was more carefully made, and reaching a certain name, he paused 
to scan it. The result was satisfactory, for almost immediately 
he exclaimed, as a smile played over his features : 

" I have it, Monsieur le General, though it's under disguise. 
It's given here as Henry Beattie, but it, must be Henry Pascal. 
Beattie was the name of his mother, an Englishwoman," he 
added. 

Madame Pascal was of English blood only in so far as she 
was an American. But M. Tardiffe had a purpose in making the 
false statement, and the expression of his eye deepened on Des- 
salines to note the effect of this last word. 

" English, is he, confound him ! " growled out the chief. 
be shot if that don't kinder rile me." * 

" I beg pardon, Monsieur le General, //#//"- English only," put 
in M. Tardiffe, to keep the English thought well before the 
mind of Dessalines and nurse his rising wrath. 

" That's nuf to git my hump up," said Dessalines. " What 
in the dickens, anyhow, has he gone and took his mammy's 
name for ? " 

" I can't imagine; but it must be he; he is just now on a 
visit from Jamaica, his present home," replied M. Tardiffe, 
cutting another significant glance at Dessalines. To depict the 
rage which upon this announcement shot from the eyes of the 
brigand and expressed itself on his swelling features would be 
impossible. Springing from his seat, with loud slaps on the thigh, 
as was his wont, when unusually aroused, he skipped about the 
room under intense excitement, crying out : " Kickeraboo ! kick- 
eraboo!"f Then stopping suddenly before his guest, he con- 
tinued, wildly gesticulating: 

" I'll cook the buster's goose. I'm jiggered if he sha'n't dance 
on air, and that in a jiffy." 

M. Tardiffe had often had accounts of Dessalines, and was 
prepared for outbursts of passion ; but the suddenness, the de- 
gree, and the eccentricity of his fury were astonishing, and in the 
" tiger " before him he recognized the justness of the title that 
fame had given this famous outlaw. He saw, too, his own pri- 

* Dessalines' peculiar speech, for the most part, cannot be literally rendered into our 
tongue. The author has endeavored to give the best possible English equivalent. 

t A term used by West India negroes and meaning " dead," being a corruption of " kick 
the bucket." 



1889.] IJ9 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 331 

vate scheme in the course of a perfect fulfilment Feigning sur- 
prise, however, at Dessalines' deadly purpose, he said : 

" Why, Monsieur le General, I thought you were meditating 



a ransom 



" Haven't you seed my proclamation ? I'll act on the square 
with the Frenchers ; but these English furriners from Jamaica, 
who come over to stick a finger in the pie and help the French- 
ers put bracelets on us niggers, I'll not let up, I tell ye, on nary 
one I catch. Is the chap," asked the chief, as a turn of thought 
struck him, " kin to the old one at San Souci ? " 

" Yes, they are the San Souci Pascals," replied M. TardirTe, 
mentioning some circumstances in regard to the family. 

" He's a gone goner. I'll court-martial Henry Beattie slap- 
dash," said the chief, significantly emphasizing "Beattie." "We'll 
receive the codger in full rig, and you be there to see how I'll 
bamboozle him and slip into him. I'll flummux him as clean as 
a whistle," continued Dessalines, as a twinkle in his eyes at the 
trick he was concocting replaced their angry fire. 

This precipitated a grave dilemma. Should anything befall 
Henry Pascal, M. Tardiffe realized it would never do to have a 
suspicion exist that at the time he was in the camp ; and on the 
other hand, Dessalines had been drinking freely, and was in a 
state in which it was sound policy not to cross his wishes in the 
most trivial particular. He therefore, in his insinuating way, rep- 
resented that as he was well known to Henry Pascal and to his 
family, he hoped, if the chief found cause to take any step 
against the prisoner, that the latter should neither see him nor 
lear of his presence, nor any one learn that he had given in- 
irmation concerning him. 

" N. C. nuf ced," responded Dessalines in his remarkable 
lingo. " Come, I'll give yer a pig's whisper." * And suiting the 
:tion to the word, he added, speaking close to M. Tardiffe's ear, 
" I'll not let on, but you are bound to see the fun. We'll scrouge 
in a corner where your peepers can git him but his'n can't 
it you." 

M. Tardiffe saw the necessity of yielding to the wish of Des- 
dines, who, having conceived a plan for entrapping Henry 
'ascal, was delighted with an opening for at once gratifying his 
>rutal cunning and displaying his acuteness before his distinguished 
^uest. He therefore made a virtue of the inevitable, and readily 
[uiesced in the proposed arrangement as to his presence. At 
le same time he took the precaution to ask that his name should 
lot be known in the camp, and pointedly solicited Dessalines to 



332 ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO, [Dec., 



be sure ol so placing him as to be invisible to the prisoner, re- 
questing besides an opportunity to make some necessary personal 
preparations, the ride and the rain having in no slight degree 
disordered his dress. 

" Right you are," replied Dessalines ; " and after yer drive I'll 
bet you're needing inside lining, and something damp wouldn't be 
away. I've got golopshus articles, to be sure ; bang up stuft, 
monsieur, bang up, I tell ye; first class, letter A, No. I. Here, 
you Sampson, you," he continued, calling out vigorously to an 
attendant, a squat, dapper-looking fellow in gray fearnought suit, 
with his wool combed up before in queer fashion, who stood in 
waiting outside the doorway, " git some belly-timber for monsieur, 
and a swig of ' O-be-joyful ' " the latter being Dessalines' 'ex- 
pression for his favorite rum. Sampson, who had but lately en- 
tered the special service of the chief and was unfamiliar with all 
of his gastronomical allusions, stood perplexed as to what was 
signified by " O-be-joyful," when Dessalines broke out : 

" Why don't you leg it, you lazy cuss ? Blame me, if you 
wouldn't lay down yer musket for to sneeze." 

Sampson explained his hesitation by saying, with the pro- 
foundest servility, that he did not quite understand the order. 

" Od drot a chucklehead ! Meat and drink, then, for monsieur, 
and the best we've got, and plenty of it, and in a crack, or I'll 
sock into you," rattled off Dessalines, menacingly shaking his 
brawny arm. Sampson vanished before the redoubtable fist, of 
whose vigor the chief's subordinates had not unfrequent expe- 
rience; and another attendant having been called, and instructions 
given to provide apartments for " monsieur," and assist in his 
toilet, Dessalines hastened out to arrange for the court-martial. 



CHAPTER XII. 

THE COURT-MARTIAL. 

The house occupied as headquarters for the black army was 
a stone structure, with ample piazzas fronting north and south, 
and latticed in, as usual, on their east and west sides. At a table 
in its best and largest room, and an hour subsequent to the 
events recorded at the close of the last chapter, sat Dessalines, 
with his secretary and four of his chief officers, being the military 
board for the trial of Henry Pascal, who had just been brought 
in under a guard of soldiers. 



: 



1889.] ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 333 






Dessalines alone wore his military hat. As a token of dis- 
tinction it was unnecessary, for this celebrated negro possessed an 
individuality amply sufficient to distinguish him without adventi- 
tious aids. The first impression he produced was perhaps that 
of physical power. Somewhat below the medium height, he yet 
showed great breadth and depth of chest, his whole aspect being 
suggestive of the personal strength for which he was remarkable. 
His features presented some unexpected contrasts. The lower 
portion of his face was good, singularly so for an African. There 
was none of that disproportionate and peculiar development of 
the inferior jaw often observed in the negro, in which the angle 
protrudes backwards and the mouth is thrust forward, giving the 
lower face a retreating chin and an apish aspect. The chin, on 
the contrary, was relatively small and symmetrical in all its lines, 
the direction and curve of what anatomists call its symphysis 
being perfect the chin rather of refinement, and delicacy. 

These favorable impressions, however, were entirely overborne 
by the truculent and repulsive features that formed the residue ot 
the face. The forehead was low, round, and bulging; anger 
gleamed in the eyes, ill-nature sat upon the mouth. The nose, 
of true African type, was small and flat, and supported what lim- 
ners call the "lines of malignity," which, making out from the 
base of the spreading nasal wings, terminated at the commissure 
of the mouth, and curved the right upper lip in such a way that 
the teeth on that side were just visible. The brows were heavy 
and contracted, the eyeballs prominent, standing out in fatness 
and lust, with obtrusive whites, and a slight obliquity in the 
visual axes. A life of perpetual danger and the necessity of 
being always on guard accounted for the sudden starts of the 
eyes, which looked blood-shot and angry from these abrupt and 
incessant strainings ; and over the entire face a habit of deep 
drinking gave unmistakable manifestations. The temple veins 
were turgid, the muscles uniformly swollen and puffed up, and it 
was solely for the lack of a white skin that grog-blossoms were 
not more conspicuous. His uniform, a matter upon which the 
inordinate vanity of this brigand laid special stress, was a kind of 
blue jacket with eight rows of lace on the sleeves, a full red cape 
falling over the shoulders, red cuffs and brilliant epaulettes, scarlet 
waistcoat and pantaloons, with half-boots, round hat with red 
feather, and a cutlass of unusual size and weight. 

Over against the chief stood the prisoner, Henry Pascal. To 
follow up his fortunes subsequent to the battle : The night suc- 
ceeding that disaster to the French arms a copy of Dessalines' 



334 ijqiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Dec., 



proclamation, by some means, no one could tell how, found its way 
into the prisoners' room. Next morning it was eagerly read, by 
none so eagerly as by Henry Pascal, who saw in it features 
having a special interest for himself. It was not simply the clos- 
ing paragraph, wherein Dessalines expressed his bloody purpose in 
reference to any English from Jamaica falling into his hands, but 
that these words were underscored. The lines had not been very 
clearly made, but at once caught his eye. He was in no sense 
an Englishman, except that he spoke the language fluently. As 
for Jamaica, however, he had but recently returned from an ex- 
tended visit to that island, and it was currently believed, he 'knew, 
that he had removed thither. These circumstances, the rather re- 
mote personal relation of which to the proclamation he might 
otherwise have overlooked, the underscoring brought home to 
him, and their significance grew as he dwelt on them and on 
the capricious character of Dessalines. 

While musing thus, with his eye still upon the passage, he 
suddenly perceived with great astonishment what he thought must 
be a personal allusion in the underscoring itself; for it stood in 
a succession of short dashes, made by skips of the pencil point, 
and these were eleven in number, answering to the letters of his 
name. And he even fancied he saw a wider space between the 
dashes separating the two parts of the name. Of this he could 
not be certain, since the pencil, where it jumped the surface, 
shaded off the lines, and the paper at this point had become 
rubbed by being folded, and the tracings partly worn. Still, 
there was enough to amaze and greatly interest him. Could 
it be a mere coincidence ? It is true his full name was 
Henry Beattie Pascal, but he was commonly known as Henry 
Pascal simply. Besides, of all the prisoners he alone could be 
considered as coming in any degree within the scope of Des- 
salines' threat, and altogether he could not resist the conviction 
that the proclamation was meant for himself as a warning from 
some friendly hand. 

Strange as it may seem, this circumstance, though it revealed 
new and exceptional peril, was a source of real comfort. It was 
a token of sympathy all unlooked for a rift, however slight, in 
the black, angry cloud that hung over him. From the short and 
fitful sleep to which exhausted nature had at last yielded the 
prisoners awoke that Friday morning with renewal of the most 
dreadful forebodings. What mercy could be hoped for from these 
cruel, red-handed, infuriate blacks, in the hour, too, of triumph, 
and frantic over freedom to settle with the whites for the treasured- 



1889.] ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 335 

up wrongs of years ? The prospect was utterly despairing, and 
the prisoners expected momentarily to be ordered out to execu- 
tion. It was very gratifying, therefore, to Henry Pascal's feelings, 
even for humanity's sake, to note a sign of sympathy emerging 
from this frenzied, malevolent mass ; to feel that among these 
blacks one heart at least was solicitous for him, that one hand 
had been raised, at least to this degree, in his behalf. After 
reading Dessalines' bloody proclamation the thought came over 
him like a warm message of love and peace, and round it a 
shadowy hope began to play the reflection, perhaps, that pos- 
sibly the same hand might be raised again in some more 
effectual way. 

As to what course to pursue in order to avoid this new dan- 
ger he was uncertain. Perhaps it was meant (so his thoughts 
ran) that he should be ready with explanations against any ques- 
tions which might arise regarding his rumored residence in 
Jamaica, or perhaps it might be better to assume another name. 
His business as a fruit-buyer often carried him to the plantations, 
and he must be known personally, he thought, to many in the 
black army ; nevertheless, to disguise his name would lessen the 
chances of discovery. He was unable to reach a satisfactory 
decision, and deeming it best to. await the issue of events and 
shape his conduct accordingly, he turned to the consideration of 
who this friendly hand might be. Instinctively his thoughts were 
directed towards Jacque Beattie. That the latter was in Dessa- 
lines' army he considered highly probable ; and whose image, 
under all the circumstances, would a thought of succor from the 
>lacks so naturally call up as that of this faithful slave ? Against 
[acque's identity, however, with the "friendly hand "'lay, upon the 
e, a large balance of probability. So argued Henry Pascal, 
'or, supposing it altogether certain he was in the black army, 
icre was the merest chance he should know that his young 
laster was among the captives. 

But Jacque was not the only one, he reflected, from whom 
mch a warning might have come. Throughout the province his 
ither was well known as a just and humane master a character 
ill the more conspicuous for the excessively severe and capricious 
xmduct which the planters often exhibited towards their slaves, 
[enry Pascal, too, was himself a generous soul, with a gracious, 
ittractive bearing, and had won the general favor of the blacks, 
dth whom (particularly with the leaders among them) his business 
rips to the plantations had brought him into not unfrequent in- 
^rcourse. Towards his family, therefore, and himself especially, 

VOL. L. 22 



336 ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Dec., 

he felt that there must be those in the black army who were 
well disposed, and from whom, in return for some of his many 
little kindnesses, this hint may have emanated. 

Such were his thoughts that Friday morning when, at an 
early hour, Chantalle, Dessalines' private secretary, entered the 
prisoners' apartment to obtain a list of the names. A decision as 
to his own at once became necessary, and he gave his name as 
Henry Beattie. It was the thing to be done so he~ thought at 
the time. These personal reflections, which shot through the 
prisoner's mind upon the discovery of the underscorings, inter- 
rupted but for a few brief moments the course of thoughts that 
had been torturing him ever since his capture. Loss of sleep, a 
wounded temple, and the vitiated air of an overcrowded apart- 
ment had brought on a raging headache ; physical discomfort, 
however, was scarcely regarded under a dreadful pressure of 
thoughts from without. Having no hope for himself, with what 
agony did he think of his father, old and feeble, and utterly stripped 
of the fortune to whose ease and delicate delights his life had 
been habituated ! Why had they not gone to Jamaica as they 
had had thoughts of doing before all this ? Oh ! that he had 
taken his father thither when the first muttering of the storm 
was heard ! His filial heart sank within him, borne down as by 
an awful weight. And Emilie Tourner, dear Emilie Tourner, be- 
reft too of fortune, and still prostrate within the shadow of the 
ghastly dangers she had just escaped, what new trials must she 
bear ! These harrowing thoughts, the dark impressions of which 
his bodily discomfort tended strongly to deepen, became too much 
even for the resolute spirit of Henry Pascal. His firmness gave 
way to the pressure, and for a moment he bowed his head and 
wept. 

Blessed gift of tears, for saint and sinner blest ! On the be- 
liever's soul, when in its arid moods and spiritual motion forced 
and dull, they fall like Hermon's dew and arouse the tenderest 
and sweetest intercourse with God. And for the natural man 
these tears avail. They signify some lessening of the strain, some 
lifting of the cloud, and turn to view the brighter side of things, 
as through the humid eye a bow of hope is thrown upon the 
visual nerve. Henry Pascal experienced the relief which natur- 
ally follows a flow of tears, and began to take a little courage, 
thinking that possibly his fortunes might not be altogether desper- 
ate. In the thick darkness this warning he had received was the 
solitary ray round which hope would now and then rally. The 
proclamation, which he had himself retained, he drew forth for 



3 



in 

; 

XVI 



1889.] /7p/ ^ 7^z.e OF SAX DOMINGO. 337 

the oft-repeated time, and scrutinized again the underscorings. 
Imagination is a potent factor in practical affairs, and under its 
influence uncertainties are prone to beget magnitudes. Possibly 
this friend, he would say to himself, may be some one near Des- 
salines and able to do a good turn. And he would dwell on 
this thought, recalling the prominent blacks whom He knew and 
could remember having befriended, and budding hope would color 
his imaginings, and a prospect of deliverance suddenly sweep his 
spirit like a breath of fresh air. From such fancyings he would 
rouse himself and treat them as extravagances. The train of 
thought, however, would return upon him again and again, and 
in one of these reveries he was absorbed when a summons came 
to appear before Dessalines. 

A great sensation among the prisoners followed. Henry Pas- 
cal himself was apparently the least affected. He could not un- 
derstand the summons, yet the frame of mind in which it found 
him inclined him to regard it rather favorably than otherwise. 
He very well apprehended the character of Dessalines ; but the 
monster, he also knew, had on some rare occasions been gener- 
ous, and hope whispered at his ear that this exceptional summons 
might in some way be connected with this unknown friend. 
With such an impression on his mind he was hurried by the 
guard into the presence of Dessalines and his officers. His face 
bore the effect of physical and mental suffering. He was pale 
and heavy-eyed, the paleness being deepened by a dark band 
across the wounded temple, caused by extravasated blood ; yet 
there was withal a certain air of collectedness such as a brave 
pirit, animated by some secret hopes, might manifest under 'such 
rcumstances. 

M. Tardiffe had entered the apartment previous to the pris- 
oner's arrival, and seeing no means of concealment and that rec- 
ognition would be inevitable, insisted upon a position on the 
piazza.. This was a spacious appendage to the building, latticed 
in at the ends, and showing on the open side a partial view of 
e estate, with the windmill standing among palms on an emi- 
nence. Here M. Tardiffe was seated by a window connected 
with the room. The sash was raised, but the shifting Venetian 
blinds were down, and he had full command of the apartment 
without risk of being observed. As he took in the situation on 
the prisoner's entrance, his eyes sparkled and he rubbed his 
hands in glee over the way things were going. Dessalines, who 
was in that state of incipient intoxication signified by the word 
" primed " a state precisely suited for the display of his person- 



338 if 9 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Dec., 

ality and who keenly relished such an opportunity for exhibiting 
his brutal cunning, began the interrogatories with artful dissimulation. 

" What's yer name ? " he asked the prisoner, in as kindly a 
manner as he was capable of assuming. 

"Henry Beattie." 

" Chantalle," said the chief, turning towards his secretary and 
attempting the high-sounding language for which negroes, even 
as naturally shrewd as Dessalines, have an irresistible penchant, 
" set down his deposition." 

"Where d'ye live ?" 

"At the Cape." 

" What's yer business ? " 

" A fruit-buyer." 

" I thought you was somebody else," said the chief. " I thought 
yer name was Henry Pascal. They've been telling me about him. 
They tell me Henry Pascal's a prisoner, and I thought you was 
him." 

He paused and fixed his red, roving eyes full upon the pri- 
soner, as if expecting some answer. The latter, however, though 
profoundly startled, controlled his emotions and remained silent, 
wondering what the end would be, and Dessalines continued : 

"You're here, buckra, and I'll tell ye why. They call me a 
devil, don't they ? And them priests say a devil can't do good ; 
but blest if I an't one that can. Look a-here : I'm on top now, 
but you sabe I was once on a time a poor runaway. He couldn't 
catch me; I mean him I had to call master curse that name!" 
Dessalines added parenthetically and in a low gnashing tone, 
and .then immediately broke out, almost in a shout, " Vive la 
Revolution ! fa ira ! fa ira ! no he couldn't catch me ; but, 
I tell you what, he took it out on my old woman, Tamoen. I 
used to creep in of nights to the cabin, and I knowed how she 
was tormented. She got the cow-skin, got it heavy, and they 
drove her to the field starved and naked ; that's what made me 
a devil, buckra," lifting his great brows and shaking the forefinger 
as he spoke. 

" Well, one moony night I meet in the road Monsieur Pascal. 
I'd heard 'em say he was a good master and had feelings for 
niggers. I tell him my story, and I ask for money to git things 
for Tamoen, and I got it, and I'm a devil that an't a-going to 
disremember. Well, buckra, they've been telling me you is his 
son, and I was going to say to his son, You is free; and if his 
dad's got to the Cape, I 'was going to send him to him safe and 
sound as' a remember from Dessalines." 



.] i-jyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 339 



Henry Pascal followed Dessalines' words with great and in- 
creasing agitation of mind, and was entirely misled by the as- 
sumed manner and apparent sincerity of the speaker, as well as 
by the circumstances interwoven in the address. Monster though 
he was, Dessalines had done, as young Pascal knew, some eccen- 
tric acts of generosity ; the conduct attributed to his father was 
altogether in keeping with his character, and paralleled by many 
marked instances of kindness to blacks which Henry Pascal could 
himself recall ; and the allusions Dessalines more than once made 
to those who knew Henry Pascal and had been talking to the 3 
chief about him agreed with impressions already made by the 
underscoring. Completely deceived, therefore, and with a sen- 
timent of gratitude towards Dessalines as profound as the occa- 
sion for it was unexpected, he eagerly availed himself of the pause 
to speak out, in a husky voice, and almost overborne by emotion : 

" Sire, I am the son of the man of whom you speak ; my 
name is Henry Beattie Pascal. Let me " 

But he was not permitted to express his eager thanks, for, 
bursting into a roar of laughter so wild and so loud as to re- 
sound through the chamber, Dessalines at that instant sprang from 
his seat and cried out : 

"Yes, you Jamaica slubberdegullion yes, I've heard 'bout 
you, for true. I .'llowed I'd git you. Come to fight niggers, eh ? 
And now the Lord has delivered you into a nigger's hand. Out 
with him, guard, out with him, and make daylight through him 
in a kick." 

As Henry Pascal saw the trap into which he had fallen, a 
ush shot athwart his countenance and as rapidly ebbed, leaving 
in its track a death-like pallor. Yet he was himself in all the 
whirl of thoughts vengeful, spiritual, filial which rushed on his 
mind and pressed for solution within the compass of an instant. 
Against Dessalines, whom a moment before he was regarding 
th the liveliest sentiments of gratitude, the revulsion of feeling 
is intense, and the impulse to curse the brute to his face in- 
stinctive and all but resistless. The result, however, he foresaw 
would be his death on the spot, and why sacrifice the moments 
of. life now remaining and yield his soul in a tumult of passion ? 
Explanations flashed on him but would he be heard ? If heard, 
would he be believed ? At least he would make the effort for 
truth's sake, if no more. 

It was all in vain. He was in the clutch of a fiend to whom 
in such moods justice and mercy were utterly unknown, and who, 
as Henry Pascal attempted to speak, broke out upon him : 




wil 
wa 






340 AT Low TIDE. [Dec., 

" Come, come, none o 1 yer lip, or I'll settle your hash right 
here myself." 

By this time the guard, who knew the necessity of despatch 
in executing the orders of this negro, had hustled the prisoner to 
the door, when Dessalines stopped them : 

" Chain him down in the cage to-night. It's where they've 
teached dogs to go for niggers, and I want the buster to lay 
there a while and think. But hark ye," lifting a finger as he 
spoke, " he's to be cold meat by sun-up !" 

E. W. GILLIAM, M.D. 

[TO BE CONCLUDED.] 



AT LOW TIDE. 

SHINING and even packed to north and to south stretch the sands, 
Tenderly, daintily smoothed by the touch of the outgoing tide ; 

Soft as a babe's soft hair set in place by a mother's hands 
Each tress of the late-left sea- weed is straightened and spread 
out wide. 

Further, far off are the breakers, a sudden emerald wall 
Lifted against the sky, and topped with a flame-like foam ; 

Joyous the white crest gleams, then crashing down to its fall, 
Creamy and spent, it sobs itself back to its ocean home. 

Wide are the pale blue skies that melt in the infinite cloud 
Where sea and sky are one on the far horizon's verge ; 

But the light-house down at the Point stands starkly, solid and 

proud, 
Its feet in a baffling mist of breakers and sands and surge. 

On the wide, vague sea of thought are sudden gleams of light 
Lifted high up to heaven, bright with a new hope's sun ; 

As we watch they waver and fall, and nothing is left in sight 
But the baffling mist of doubt where faith and unfaith are one. 

Yet steadfast in whirl and wave, a tower of riftless rock 

Stands with its feet on a stone, crowned with a quenchless 

light; 
Despite the doubts that darken and the force of the tempest's 

shock, 

It stands a pillar of strength by day and a pillar of fire by night. 

M. B. M. 





889.] SCANDERBEG. 34! 



SCANDERBEG. 

CLIO is the most shamelessly unreliable of the Muses. She 
selects her favorites with the autocratic partiality of the Russian 

Catherine, decorates them with questionable honors, enriches them 
other people's spoils, admires them to her heart's content, 

ind thrusts them serenely to the front to receive the approbation 
of the world. Occasionally she wearies of one or the other, and 
flings him lightly down from the pedestal he has adorned so 
bravely. Occasionally, having a fine feminine sense of humor, she 
is pleased to play with our credulity, and, dressing up a man of 
straw, she assures us smilingly that he is real flesh and blood, 
and worthy of our sincerest admiration. And all this while her 
best and noblest meet with stiffly measured praise, and her strong 
sons are passed indifferently by. It is at least amusing to think 
of the relative positions occupied by the true mountaineer Scan- 
derbeg and the mythical mountaineer William Tell. The one sleeps 
unremembered with scanty, hard-won fame ; the other carries such 
a weight of laurels that poets, wearied with singing his praises, 
have been driven in despair to sing the praises of those who 
praise him, as Coleridge piped to the Duchess of Devonshire, 

" Splendor's fondly fostered child," 

because, in a moment of mild enthusiasm, she addressed some well- 
eant but highly inefficient verses to the platform from which 
ell did not shoot the tyrant Gessler. 

Now, if the heroic struggle for a national life is at all times 
e most engrossing picture the world's history has to show us, 
here shall we look for a more vivid illustration of the theme 
than in the long and bitter contest between cross and crescent, 
etween the steady, relentless encroachment of the Turkoman 
wer and the vain and dauntless courage which opposed it? The 
tory of the early Ottomans is one of wasteful and inexorable 
nquest, unrelieved by any touches of humanity or any impulses 
towards a higher civilization. To the ferocious and impetuous 
pride of the barbarian they added an almost inconceivable wari- 
ess and patience ; they knew when to wait and when to strike; 
ey were never unduly elated by victory, and never demoralized 
y defeat. That strange dream of their founder Othman which 
won for him his Cilician wife, the mysterious vision of the full 






342 SCANDERBEG. [Dec., 

moon resting in his bosom, and of the stately tree that sprang 
therefrom, must have dimly hinted to the savage chief of the 
glory that was to be. When in his sleep he placed Constan- 
tinople as a jswel upon his swarthy finger he felt mysteriously 
the rush of strange events, and, believing the prophecy would be 
fulfilled in his descendant, he saluted his bride as the mother of 
a mighty race of kings. It was this firm conviction of future 
greatness which made him seek for his son Orchan a fairer and 
nobler wife than could be found in the black tents of his followers ; 
and, true to the instincts of his race, he despoiled an enemy to 
enrich his own hearth. A Greek captain in command of the 
castle of Belecoma was betrothed to the beautiful daughter 
of a neighboring Christian chief. On their marriage night Oth- 
man surprised the wedding party as they rode through the dark 
mountain passes. The short and desperate conflict which ensued 
could have but one bitter ending. " The bridegroom was slain, 
and his Greek bride, the Lotus-flower of Brusa, was swept off by 
the Turkoman robbers to their lair, to become the spouse of their 
leader's son." * 

Orchan was a mere boy when he received this ravished prize, 
the fair booty of a barbarous strife. Fifty years later, when hair 
and beard were white with age, he married again; and this time 
his bride was the daughter of a Christian emperor, not stolen 
away from friends and kindred, but given to him publicly with 
superb ceremonies and a ghastly mockery of rejoicing. In fifty 
years the Ottoman power had grown into such fierce and sinister 
lustihood that Theodora, daughter of the Emperor Cantacuzene, 
was assigned as a precious hostage and seal of friendship between 
her father and his dreaded Turkish ally. The church refused her 
blessing to this unholy sacrifice, and amid the pomp and majesty 
of imperial nuptials there was lacking even the outward form of 
Christian marriage. From that date the tide of Turkish conquest 
spread with devastating rapidity. The impetuous encroachments of 
Orchan, the steady and irresistible advances of Amurath, became 
under Bajazet a struggle for life and death, not with the enfeebled 
powers of Greece, but with a rival conqueror who had swept from 
the broad Tartar steppes to subdue and lay waste the Eastern 
world. Eight dynasties had already been destroyed, eight crowned 
heads had been laid low, when Timour, grimly ready for a ninth 
victim, encountered the hitherto invincible sultan. They met, and 
Bajazet, who had seen the flower of French and German chivalry 
perish at his command, who had sat at his tent-door to witness the 

* The Early Ottomans, by Dean Church. 



1 889.] 



SCANDERBEG. 



343 



ay-long massacre of Christian prisoners, and who had shadowed 
e very walls of Constantinople Bajazet was crushed like a 
orm by the lame, white-haired old Tartar, and eating out his 
eart with dull fury, died in shameful captivity. But his race 
survived, vigorous, elastic, defiant, and renewed its strength with 
amazing swiftness under Mahommed the Restorer and Amurath 
the Second, whose reign was one long conflict with the Greek 
mperor Manuel, with Sigismund of Hungary, and, hardest of all 
to subdue, with those warlike Sclavonic tribes who, often defeated 
but never conquered, maintained with superb courage the freedom 
f their mountain fastnesses. It was an unknown Servian- soldier 
ho slew Amurath the First in the very moment of his triumph ; 
t was the Albanian chief Scanderbeg who repulsed Amurath the 
cond, and hurled him back to die, shamed and heart-broken, at 
Adrianople. 

Pride of race, love for his native land, a chivalrous devotion 
to the cause of Christ, shame at prolonged captivity, and fury 
at heaped-up wrongs all these conflicting passions united them- 
selves in the breast of this implacable warrior, and urged him 
relentlessly along his appointed path. He was the outcome of 
that ruthless policy by which the Turks turned the children of 
the cross into defenders of the crescent, a policy pursued with 
almost undeviating success since Black Halil, a century and a 
alf before, had urged the training of Christian boys into a 
hool of Moslem soldiers. What gives to the history of Scan- 
derbeg its peculiar significance and its peculiar ethical and artistic 
alue is the fact that he avenged not only his own injuries but 
he injuries of countless children who, for over a hundred and 
fty years, had been snatched from their homes, families, and 
aith to swell the ranks of an infidel foe. Wherever the tide of 
Ottoman battle raged most fiercely, there, savage, dark, invin- 
ible, stood the Janissaries, men suckled on Christian breasts and 
igned with Christian baptism, now flinging away their lives for 
an alien cause and an alien creed, fighting with the irresistible 
ourage of fanaticism against their birthright and their kindred. 
Never before or since, in the history of all the nations, has a sys- 
:em of proselytizing been attended with such tremendous results, 
he life-blood of Christendom was drained to supply fresh tri- 
mphs for its enemies, and the rigorous discipline of a monastic 
ining moulded these innocent young captives into a soldiery 
hose every thought and every action was subordinate to one 
overpowering influence, an austere, unquestioning obedience to the 
cause of Islam. 






344 SCANDERBEG. [Dec., 

With the example of this extraordinary success always before 
their eyes, it is little wonder that the Turks regarded the children 
of the vanquished as so many docile instruments to be fashioned 
by rigid tutelage into faithful followers of the Prophet, and the 
first step towards this desired goal lay in their early adoption of 
the Mohammedan faith. No pang of pity, no sentiment of honor 
interfered with this relentless purpose. When John Castriota, 
the hereditary lord of Croia, yielded up his four sons as hostages 
to Amurath the Second he relied on the abundant promises made 
him by that sovereign, who had, on the whole, a fair reputation 
for keeping his royal word. The lads were carried to Adrianople 
and reared in the sultan's palace, where one at least of the little 
prisoners attracted dangerous notice by his vivacity and grace 
inheritances, it is said, from his beautiful mother, Voisava. The 
fair-haired boy, then only eight years old, became first the play- 
thing of the seraglio, and afterwards the jealously guarded favo- 
rite of Amurath himself. He was carefully instructed, and was 
forced to conform to the ceremonial rites of the Ottomans, and to 
make an open profession of his new creed, receiving on this occa- 
sion the name of Scanderbeg, a name destined to carry with it a 
just retribution in the universal terror it excited. How much 
of Christian belief still lingered in the child's soul, or how much 
he gained afterwards from the Albanian soldiers who had access 
to him, it is impossible to say. Young as he was, he had learned 
amid the unutterable treachery and corruption of an Eastern 
court to hide his real emotions under an impenetrable mask, so 
that even Amurath, cruel, wily, and suspicious, found himself 
baffled by this Greek boy, whose handsome face betrayed to none 
the impetuous anger that consumed him. At nineteen he had 
command of five thousand horsemen, and enjoyed the title of 
pasha, a barren honor for one soon to be robbed of his birth- 
right. After the close of the Hungarian war John Castriota 
died, and Amurath, ignoring his plighted faith, seized Croia in 
the name of the captive princes, ruthlessly extinguished its civil 
and religious liberties, turned the churches into mosques, and 
treated the whole country as a defeated and dependent province. 
Scanderbeg's three brothers were conveniently removed by poison ; 
he himself, the object of a curious affection on the sultan's part, 
was watched with jealous and exacting eyes, and for a while it 
seemed as though the free-born mountain chief would add one 
more to the long list of Turkish proselytes and favorites, silenced 
with doubtful titles, bought with dishonorable wealth. 

But it was a time of waiting, a time ominous with delay. 



1 889.] SCANDERBEG. 345 

The heir of Croia, mute, patient, and resolved, bided with steady 
self-control the hour when he could strike a single blow for faith 
and freedom. It came with the breaking out of fresh Hungarian 
troubles ; with the defiance sent by John Hunyadi and his forces 
drawn up on the banks of the Moravia. While the Ottoman 
armies were engaged in this most disastrous conflict, Scanderbeg 
threw off his long-endured disguise, possessed himself by an un- 
scrupulous device of his native city, and put all who opposed him 
to the sword. From that day until his death, forty years later, 
the record of his life is one perpetual heroic struggle to preserve 
the hard-won liberty of Epeiros, a struggle without intermission 
or relief, without rest for the victor or pity for the vanquished. 
His scornful indifference to pressing dangers was in itself the best 
of tonics to a people naturally brave, but taught by bitter ex- 
perience to fear the inexorable Turkish yoke. Scanderbeg feared 
nothing ; with him, indeed, fear was swallowed up in hatred. 
He understood perfectly the nature of the warfare in which he 
was engaged ; he knew that with adroitness and vigilance every 
dark pass and every rocky crag became his friend and ally. 
He knew, too, the slender resources of the country, and never 
committed the mistake of taking more men into the field than he 
could manage and support. When Amurath sent an army of 
forty thousand soldiers to punish Croia and bring back the rebel 
chief "alive or dead " to Adrianople, Scanderbeg limited his own 
forces to seven thousand foot and eight thousand horse, when he 
might, had he chosen, have trebled that amount. With this com- 
pact body of picked and hardy warriors he lay in wait for the 
memy, entrapped them by a feigned retreat into a narrow defile, 
ind, hemming them in on either side, filled up the valley with 
leir slain. Over twenty thousand Turks perished in that dread- 
il snare, many of them being' trampled down by their helpless 
id panic-stricken countrymen. It was Scanderbeg's first decisive 
dctory, and a grim warning to Amurath of the possibilities 
it awaited him in the future. It gave to Croia a breathing- 
ill, and to its victorious army the rich spoils of an Ottoman 
camp, so that those who had gone forth meagrely on foot re- 
turned well armed and bravely mounted to their rock-built 
citadel. 

Had this sudden and bewildering success been followed up by 
a vigorous aggressive warfare on the part of Servia, Hungary, and 
Poland, then all in arms against their common foe ; had the allied 
powers listened to the mountain chiefs or to the burning remon- 
strances of Cardinal Julian, the pope's legate, the Turks might 



346 SCANDERBEG. [Dec., 

have been driven forcibly back from Europe, and long centuries 
of suffering and dishonor spared to Christendom. But the lord 
of Servia, George Brankovich, yearned for his children whom 
Amurath held as hostages ; Ladislaw, king of Hungary and Poland, 
was weary of the perpetual strife ; even Hunyadi's fiery voice was 
silenced ; and a treaty of peace was signed with an enemy who 
might then, and then only, have been crushed. This treaty, 
shameful in itself, was still more shamefully broken in the fol- 
lowing year, when the Christian hosts again took the field, only 
to be utterly routed in the terrible battle of St. Martin's Eve. 
Never was disaster more complete : Ladislaw's severed head, borne 
on a pike over the Ottoman ranks, struck terror and despair into 
the hearts of his followers ; Hunyadi, after a vain, furious effort to 
redeem this ghastly symbol of defeat, fled from a field red with 
his countrymen's blood ; the papal legate and two Hungarian 
bishops perished in the thickest of the fray. It was the beginning 
of the end, and four years later the cause of Christendom received 
its death-blow at Kossova, when Hunyadi, beaten finally back 
from Servia, was taught by the bitterness of defeat that his name 
no longer sounded ominously as of old in the ears of his Moslem 
foe. Only Scanderbeg remained unsubdued amid his mountain- 
peaks, and Amurath, flushed with conquest, now turned his whole 
attention to the final punishment of this audacious rebel. 

The scale on which the invasion of Croia was planned shows 
in itself how deep-seated was the sultan's anger and how relent- 
less his purpose. One hundred and sixty thousand men were 
assembled in Adrianople, the ablest generals were united in com- 
mand, and Mohammed, his savage son and successor, accompanied 
the expedition, filled with fierce hopes of vengeance. Resistance 
seemed almost vain, but Scanderbeg, in no way disturbed by the 
coming storm, prepared with characteristic coolness to meet it at 
every point. He ordered all who dwelt in the open country or 
in unprotected villages to destroy their harvests and to quit their 
homes, so that the enemy might find no resources in the scorched 
and deserted fields. The women and children, the aged and 
infirm, were sent either to the sea-coast or out of the kingdom, 
many of them as far away as Venice. The fortifications of Croia 
were repaired ; the garrison was strengthened and put under 
command of a brave and able governor, and Scanderbeg him- 
self, with only ten thousand men, took the 'field, ready to way- 
lay and harass Amurath at every step of his difficult and dan- 
gerous march. The first severe fighting was done before the walls 
of Setigrade, a strongly guarded town which made a gallant re- 



1889.] SCANDERBEG. 347 

sistance, repulsing the Turks again and again, and only yielding 
when a traitor, bought by the sultan's gold, poisoned the foun- 
ins which supplied the city with water. From this point the 
invading army marched on to Croia, covered the surrounding 
plains, planted their cannon then an imposing novelty in war- 
fare before its massive gates, and summoned the 'garrison to sur- 
render. A defiant refusal was returned ; the Ottomans stormed 
the walls, and were repulsed with such fury that over eight 
thousand Janissaries perished in the combat, while Scanderbeg, 
poised like an eagle on the cliffs, waited until the battle was at 
its height, and then sweeping down on the unconscious foe, forced 
their trenches, fired the camp, and drove all before him with ter- 
rible havoc and slaughter. By the time Mohammed could rally 

is scattered forces the Epeirots were off and away, with little 
scathe or damage to themselves; and this exasperating method 
of attack was the weapon with which the mountain chief finally 
wore out the courage and endurance of the invaders. Every inch 
of ground was familiar to him and a snare to his enemies. Did 
Mohammed, burning with rage, scale the hills in pursuit, a hand- 
ful of men held him 'at bay ; while Scanderbeg, appearing as if by 
agic on the other side of the camp, chose this propitious mo- 
ent for an attack. By day or night he gave the enemy no truce, 
no respite, no quarter. Two hours out of the twenty-four he slept, 

nd all the rest he spent in unceasing, unwearying, unpitying war- 
fare ; until the Turks, harassed by a danger ever present but never 
visible, lost heart and trembled before the breathless energy of their 
foe. They were beginning also to suffer from a scarcity of provi- 
sions, and Scanderbeg took excellent care that this trouble should 
not be too speedily relieved. The supplies brought at an immense 
cost from Desia were intercepted and carried off triumphantly to 
the hills, and the unhappy Ottomans, starved in camp and 

laughtered out of it, realized with ever-increasing dismay the 
unenviable nature of their position. 

It must be admitted, in justice to the Epeirots, that the suc- 
ss of Scanderbeg's manoeuvres rested exclusively on their abso- 

ute and unquestioned fidelity. Swift and sure information was 
brought him of every movement on the enemy's part, and vigilant 
eyes kept watch over every rocky pass that gave access to his 
haunts. For once .Amurath's gold was powerless to buy a single 
traitor, and the systematic perfidy by which the Turks were ac- 
customed to steal what they could not grasp failed for once of its 
prey. After a fruitless effort to undermine the rock on which 
Croia was founded, the sultan sought to corrupt first the governor 



348 SCANDERBEG. [Dec., 

and then the garrison with dazzling offers of advancement, but 
these men who held their lives so lightly held their honor very 
dear, and all the wealth in Adrianople could not purchase 
one poor Christian soldier. Baffled and heart-sick with repeated 
failure, Amurath at last offered to raise the siege and depart on 
payment of a small yearly sum, a mere nominal tribute to salve 
his wounded pride. But even this trifling concession was sternly 
refused by Scanderbeg, who would yield nothing to his hated foe. 
Then for the first time the sultan understood the relentless na- 
ture of this man whom he had petted as a child and wronged 
as a boy, whom he had held a helpless hostage in his hands, 
and who now defied him with unutterable aversion and scorn. 
Abandoning himself to grief, fury, and despair, he tore his white 
beard, and recalled his countless triumphs in the past, only to 
compare them with this shameful overthrow. He who had seen 
the allied powers of Christendom suing at his feet to be humbled 
in his old age by an insignificant Illyrian chieftain ! The blow 
broke his proud heart, and on his death-bed he conjured his son 
to avenge his name and honor. Gladly Mohammed undertook 
the task, but the present was no time for its fulfilment. The siege 
of Croia was raised, the dejected Moslem army straggled home- 
wards, cruelly harassed at every step by their unwearied foe, and 
Scanderbeg once more entered his native city amid the acclama- 
tions of a brave people, born again to freedom, and wild to wel- 
come their deliverer. 

It is pleasant to think that, before being called a third time 
into the field, even this indomitable fighter found a little leisure 
in which to marry a wife and to cultivate the arts of peace. 
Domestic tranquillity ran but a slender chance of palling on its 
possessor in those stirring days ; but Scanderbeg made the most 
of his limited opportunities. He carried his bride in triumph to 
every corner of his little kingdom, he labored hard to restore those 
habits of thrift and industry which perpetual warfare roots out of 
every nation, and he wisely refrained from overtaxing the narrow 
resources of his people. When his purse was empty he looked 
to his enemies and not to his friends for its replenishment; and 
that stout old adage, "The Turk's dominions are Scanderbeg's 
revenues," is a sufficient witness to his admirable financiering. 
He realized fully that the legacy of hate bequeathed by Amu- 
rath to Mohammed would bear bitter fruits in the hands of that 
fierce and able monarch, and so employed every interval of peace 
in strengthening himself for the struggle that was to follow. 
Twice again during his lifetime was Epeiros invaded by the Otto- 



1889.] MINE ENEMY. 349 

mans ; and Scanderbeg, driven from his lair, was hunted like a 
deer from hill to hill, now lying in covert, now fiercely resisting, 
but unconquered always. Wily offers of friendship from the sultan 
were received with a not unnatural suspicion and courteously de- 
clined ; hired assassins were detected and delivered up to a prompt 
and pitiless justice. For forty years this Albanian soldier defended 
his mountain eyrie from a power vast enough to destroy two 
empires, and cruel enough to make the whole Eastern world 
tremble. Constantinople fell, while Croia stood unharmed. The 
last news brought to Scanderbeg, as he lay dying at Lyssa, was 
that the Turks had invaded the Venetian dominions. The feeble 
warrior raised himself in bed, and called for his sword and armor. 
"Tell them," he gasped, "that I will be with them to-morrow," 
and fell back fainting on his pillows. On the morrow he was 
dead. 

AGNES REPPLIER. 



MINE ENEMY. 

I. 

HE dwells 'twixt the near gray hills and me, 
And he whom I hate is fair to see. 
His beauty fills me with angry pain, 
I look on him with a fierce disdain ; 
I shun the paths that his feet have trod, 
Nor deign to touch the unhallowed sod ; 
And oh ! that my wrath might rise and strike, 
And mark with the brand of my dislike, 
Mine enemy! 



II. 



I build a hearth-fire and build it well, 
And sit me down that its holy spell 
May wrap me about, and peace and calm 
Descend on my troubled heart like balm ; 



. . 
v . 

350 MINE ENEMY. [Dec. 

Th&T k 'fain those vague, sweet dreams would know 
TtlWt are born of dusk and the fire's glow ; 
But the fire dies with a fitful gleam, 
The room is chill, and my only dream 
Mine enemy ! 

III. 

The eyes are tender that look in mine 
Across the cup of the festal wine ; 
And yet, O friend ! between you and me 
Another loathed face do I see. 
A spectre grim is hovering near, 
A thing to scorn and a thing to fear; 
A ghastly smile on its lips is set, 
It mocks me that I would fain forget 
Mine enemy ! 

IV. 

Haply with suppliant voice of pray'r 
I speak to God ; when, half unaware, 
The weak words tremble and die away ; 
What falsities do my vain lips say ? 
Deep in my heart and deep in my brain 
Are words I shall never forget again : 
a And thou lov'st not him, thou lov'st not Me, 
No heavy cross, but a crown should be 
* Thine enemy ! " 

V. 

Of my cup of hate is left but this 
(The dreg which will bring me peace, I wis): 
To cast me at mine enemy's feet ; 
To kiss the dust in my woe complete ; 
To fill his ears with my bitter cry: 
" Give me thy friendship, or I must die ! 
Yea, fold me one instant to thy heart, 
And say but once that no more thou art 
Mine enemy ! " 

J. GERTRUDE MENARD. 

Woburn, Mass. 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRtf'^ % 351 







A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 

A FRIEND tells me he thinks that the presentation of the doc- 
trines of Catholic theology concerning the true spiritual position 
of non-Catholics in good faith lately made in these pages, follow- 
ing upon a controversial discussion of the subject which appeared 
last autumn in the columns of the New York Freeman's Journal, 
will likely be widely noticed in other magazines and newspapers, 
both Protestant and Catholic ; and thus much good will be done 
in inducing preachers, instructors, and essayists to change their 
method of discussing the subject of religious differences among 
professing Christians. He thinks ilso that the plain, unvarnished 
truth offers a new basis upon which to found better hopes, 
brighter prospects, and a more practical plan of bringing about 
that true unity of Christian faith and practice which most assur- 
edly all sincere believers, on both sides earnestly desire and no 
less devoutly pray for ; that our Lord's prayer may be answered, 
" That they may be all one " ; and his promise fulfilled all the 
ther sheep which are his being brought back into the One Fold 
nder One Shepherd. 

But while my friend's words echo the fervent wishes of my 
n heart, I bid him not be too sanguine of so happy a result, 
or it would argue the breaking down of one of the strongest 
alls within which human pride entrenches itself and bars the 
ay against either advance towards unity from the one side, or a 
haritable invitation to its consummation on the other ; a wall 
at has been long a-building the wall of prejudice. So far as 
he discussion in a fair and fearless manner is concerned, it has 
een done over and over again by Catholic theologians. In our 
heological treatises the Catholic doctrine is not only plainly and 
ully taught, but every conceivable objection is urged, discussed, 
and refuted. Protestant theology has but little of this intellectual 
courage to show. The reason of the difference is easy of explana- 
tion. All that Protestantism or any non-Catholic religion possesses 
that is true and good we can fully allow, and give a wide margin 
besides. Grant it all it can claim, and it is at best only an incom- 
plete Christianity, a conglomeration of doctrines frequently incon- 
sequent and illogical, which, despite the truth of very many of 
them taken separately, it is quite evident the different denomina- 
tions are wholly unable to reduce to a common system of faith or 

VOL. I..- -23 



352 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN'. [Dec., 

practice, although we hear not a little of their hopefully expressed 
but always abortive efforts to establish some such an unity, were 
it no better than a sort of religious confederation for common 
defence against that ofttimes serviceable but amusing bogie, "papal 
domination." 

Protestant theologians cannot, therefore, afford to present the 
Catholic side as it is stated by ourselves, and fairly notice or at- 
tempt to refute the Catholic objector, without exhibiting them- 
selves in sorry contrast. 

So I tell my friend that probably little or no notice will be 
taken of the arguments made even in their favor by Protestant 
journals. We all know how largely many of their periodicals de- 
pend for matter, if not for existence, upon keeping up the old 
prejudices against the Catholic religion ; distorting our doctrinal 
definitions, rehashing the many times refuted historical lies, and 
shamefully eager in catching up and repeating exaggerated state- 
ments of real Catholic scandals, from which they are accustomed 
to draw the most unwarrantable conclusions against our holy faith, 
and use as padding to bolster up weak arguments in favor of 
their own. 

I venture also to tell my friend that I do not think our Cath- 
olic journals will take much notice, either, of the arguments pre- 
sented. If there is Protestant prejudice, there is Catholic prejudice 
too, not needing to be fomented, it is true, by our religious pub- 
lications as a price of continued favor with their patrons and 
readers, nor persistently upheld by Catholics generally as a shield 
of protection for our own opinions ; but which, it must be owned, 
many persons do not feel themselves called upon precisely to go 
out of their way to make special and unusual efforts to dissipate. 
There is a well-founded feeling that Protestantism, as a system, 
richly deserves all the knocks it gets, and if Protestants do not 
like the blows, they had better' get out of the system. 

Again, some simple souls might possibly take scandal', and 
imagine that defending the case of individual Protestants, honestly 
acknowledging the evidences of the working of the Holy Spirit 
among them, and the possibility of their receiving divine graces 
from a pious adherence to and practice of their peculiar forms 
of worship, would be tantamount to a defence of the false doc- 
trines some of them hold and of the erroneous and spiritually 
dangerous position of their sectarian isms. Moreover, the expe- 
rience of the past has not given much encouragement to be fair 
and kindly just to Protestants. A people whose intelligence it is 
harder to reach in religious questions by knock-down and thrust- 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 353 

out logical conclusions was perhaps never found on the face of 
the earth. Has not argument upon argument, proof upon proof, 
been wasted upon them ever since they came into existence ? 
" Ephraim is joined to his idols. Let him alone!" 

I think the majority of us have been accustomed to fall back 
upon the comforting consciousness we have of the irrefragable 
truth and divine right of the Catholic Church, the certainty of 
which we hold to be itself of a higher order than the certainties 
of human science. Magna est veritas, et prcevalebit ! Truth is 
mighty and must prevail. Whether Protestantism prospers and 
holds its own among certain nations under favorable protection by 
the state (the only way it ever has kept its head above water), 
or whether, lacking this human support, it is elsewhere losing its 
hold upon the masses, and unable to defend its own flock against 
the attacks of the wolves of infidelity on the one hand, and deci- 
mation from the contagious rot of fanaticism on the other, of 
one fact we have no doubt: ultimately the Catholic truth will 
prevail. Why should we trouble ourselves ? Would not that 
show a sign of distrust in the invincibility, per se, of truth ? Of 
course we are very sorry for all who are trying to wage their 
own little battle of inevitable defeat upon the plains of their own 
choosing, instead of from the impregnable entrenchments of that 
citadel against which the gates of hell ever lays an unavailing siege. 
Too many of them, it is true, are with us and of us ; too closely 
united with us, in the nearest and dearest relations of life, not to 
have our keenest sympathies aroused, and for us not to compas- 
sionate their spiritual condition, half-clad and half-fed souls as 
know them to be; but, loving truth, as we do, better than 
ir own lives, what more can be expected of us than to say to 
lem : We are right and you are wrong ; our religion is true 
id yours is false. We are of Christ and his apostles; you are 
Luther and Calvin and others too numerous to mention. We 
re of the 'whole world, everywhere alike and always the same, 
as truth should be ; you are of this place and that, everywhere 
different and never the same, as error must be. Thus we sum 
up the evidences in favor of our own position and against theirs, 
and walk out of court, quite self-satisfied that the Divine Judge 
will issue a writ of judgment and execution against them, for- 
getting that the mission of Christ, as it ought to be of thos 
whom he sent in his name, is a mission of reconciliation and 
redemption and not one of condemnation and punishment. The 
triumph of Christ is to win, not to defeat, those who know him 
not, or know him only to hate him and his doctrine. 



354 A PLEA FOR RRRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

Of what spirit is he who comforts himself with a full meal 
and a cheering fireside if his brother be starving and freezing 
upon his doorstep ? How much less defensible is he who, thus 
enriched and happy, has received all those comforts precisely on 
the condition that he should share them with those who have 
them not ? We seem to forget that all men are called to the 
same salvation as ourselves, have the same divine right in Christ 
to know the truth, and that the Holy Spirit invites each and 
every one to enter both the church militant, the church suffering, 
and the church triumphant on an equal footing with ourselves. 

Nevertheless, there are plenty of good reasons for the exis- 
tence of the prejudices of Catholics, enough to make it wholly 
excusable. Protestantism has ever made itself so offensively hos- 
tile to the church whenever it has attempted to defend its own 
position ; and when or wheresoever it has drawn comparisons be- 
tween its own systems and the claims of divine jurisdiction made 
by Catholic authority it has exhibited such an unmistakable ani- 
mus of heresy, that, after all, one can hardly blame Catholics 
generally for the impressions they have received concerning Pro- 
testants taken as individuals. They see little or nothing of the 
actual interior life of so many of them as there are who, even 
by the strictest judgment of the church, cannot possibly be more 
than material heretics, their error being without sin on account 
of their surroundings of life, the moral impossibility of their know- 
ing the church, and their actual sincerity and good faith. From 
the very fact that the heretical position they assume prevents us 
from conscientiously holding communion with them in religious 
worship we are unable to form a just estimate of the value of 
their spiritual life, estimated, as it should be, on its intrinsic 
merits. 

What we read in Protestant books and journals, the petty and 
mean persecutions which in social life many of us are obliged to 
suffer on account of our faith from some ignorant ' bigots, the 
regular appearance upon the public stage of some foul-mouthed 
slanderer of priests and nuns, often introduced and sanctioned by 
their preachers all these things, and much more to the same 
effect, combine to make such a prominent and apparently uni- 
versal show of an heretical spirit that it is small wonder to find 
Catholics so generally convinced that all Protestants are rightly 
defined as " heretics " in the worst sense of the word. That is the 
old definition of the Protestant religious field all cockle and 
briers. Nothing to gather for God there. Put a torch to it, and 
let the flames save us the trouble of well, of worrying our minds 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 355 

or burdening our consciences about it, any way. To even sup- 
pose that aught else but cockle and briers, sown by the . enemy 
and fit only for burning here and hereafter, is to be found in the 
Protestant field, and may be reaped therefrom, is something which 
might seem to some so venturesome, if not so dangerous, an asser- 
tion that they would be fain to cry out : Vade retro, Satanas ! 
Get thee behind me, Satan ! 

It has been the earnest desire of the present writer to do 
what lay in his power, with God's help, to dissipate this (mainly 
through Protestants' own fault) honestly-founded prejudice. It in- 
duced him to write a certain article for a newspaper, entitled 
" Have Protestants divine faith ? " and the almost universal appro- 
bation of its doctrine and sentiments which has come to him from 
all parts of the country, both from the clergy and laity, not only 
fills him with unspeakable consolation by proving how quickly 
the Catholic heart takes fire at the least spark of charity, but it 
has emboldened him to make this further effort to fan the kin- 
dled flame into a brighter and more ardent blaze, to arouse a 

lore general interest in the subject, and stimulate others to en- 
courage any lawful practical effort that may be made to gain 

lese erring souls. 

Catholics hear too much of the value of the soul to be 
indifferent to the fate of any one, however abandoned, however 
apparently hopeless, even if such persons have proved them- 
selves to be their bitter enemies and persecutors. If you can 
mly succeed in bringing them face to face with the threaten- 
ing peril, and say : Behold ! here are souls in danger. Look 
ipon the crucifix, and tell me if anything in this wide world 
;an hinder you from helping their rescue ? Is there any sac- 
rifice short of the betrayal of your faith or the violation of 

ic moral law that you would not gladly make if their salva- 
:ion demanded it of you ? no one can doubt what would be 

ic reply. I wish it were possible to give our erring Protes- 

int friends one glance into the bosoms of Catholics to whom 
>uch an appeal would be made, that they might observe the 
emotions of divine charity it would stir up in the hearts of 
those who owe nothing to Protestantism but harassing insult 

tnd life-long suffering. The spectacle would give them an ex- 
ample of a practical Catholic interpretation of the fundamental 

loctrine of Christianity, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God 
with thy whole heart, and with thy whole soul, and with all 
thy strength, and with all thy mind, and thy neighbor as thy- 

-lf." It would give them striking proof that to Catholics the 



356 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

Cross is a standard of Christ-like self-oblation for the salvation 
of souls, around which they will generously rally at the first 
call to follow, if need be, the leading of a forlorn hope at all cost. 

Can any one deny that the Catholic Church has just as much 
of a mission to convert Protestants as it has to convert the 
heathen ? Can any one deny that a grave responsibility lies upon 
us to labor for the conversion of both ? " Foreign Missions 
to the Heathen " is a title of a long and glorious record of 
supernatural success in which all possible sacrifice, even to mar- 
tyrdom, has ever been looked upon by the devoted Catholic 
missionary as a small price to pay for the privilege of winning 
(mark the word) some of these abandoned souls to Christ. " Home 
missions to Protestants " have been indeed undertaken with no less 
marvellous success by single-handed giants like a St Francis of 
Sales and a few others ; but do you know of any concerted 
movement being set on foot in any part of the church, or by 
special bands of missionaries mainly, if not solely, devoted to 
such work ? There is surely no " lion in the way without " 
whose roarings would appal the stoutest heart and discourage 
the hopes of even the most sanguine of such heroes. 

To speak of terrors to life or limb in the hearing of a Cath- 
olic missionary would be only to add fuel to the flames of his 
burning zeal. The trouble does not lie there. Let the church 
but once extend its hand of blessing upon a work to be done 
for the glory of God or for the salvation or comfort of mankind, 
and more than enough will come offering all they have and all 
they are with an eagerness which might mark a crowd of beggars 
coming to receive royal dignities and wealth to be had for the 
asking. 

No ; there will come enough when the church calls ; but 
and here the present writer is forced to speak with a boldness 
which he must fain take the risk of being received by some 
of his readers as presumption, bordering very closely upon self- 
conceit I dare to say that until we take our popular dictionary 
and change the definition of " Protestant, et id omne gemts" and 
are willing to understand it to mean (at least for very many of 
them) something quite different, if not in conspectu Domini some- 
thing quite opposite, to what has hitherto been understood by it, 
at once suggesting and inaugurating as a necessary consequence 
quite an apostolic plan of missionary enterprise which takes the 
good Shepherd to the very places where the lost sheep are to be 
found, making it an enterprise for the rescue of friends and not 
for the defeat of enemies, little or no hope can be held out of 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 357 

ever reconciling Protestants in any great numbers. Instituting a 
opular movement of return to unity with the church by all law- 
1 methods offers, in the writer's humble judgment, the only pos- 
ible assurance of achieving that happy result. We may go as 
we are, armed with our old-fashioned reaping-hook, spying around 
the borders of the Protestant harvest, and may glean a few 
handfuls here and there ; but he who would cut a wide swath 
a-field must go equipped with a sickle of a fashion to suit the 
grain as it is and as it now stands, and not as controversial 
painters have pictured it. 

We must first of all not content ourselves with sitting down 
and examining it as it is described in books, but kneel down 
and scrutinize its actual condition as the eye of the Lord seeth 
it. The harvest to be reaped is his, and he who goeth forth to 
the work armed only for reaping cockle and briers will have 
little else to show for his labors ; and to my thinking no one 
will be more astonished than the reaper himself at the small 
amount of the same he will have been able to gather for the 
brush-heap. But the wheat, the good grain ? Why has he not 
gathered that? For the very good reason that he never saw 
any. Why was he blind to that ? Simply because he either 
never went into it or near enough to it to see any, or he saw 
nly with his own eyes, blurred with prejudice, and refused to 
see with the eyes of the Lord, which regardeth with mercy 
and charity, and, above all, with the clear vision of truth. 

But we were talking about definitions. My learned friend, 
ather Lambert, who wrote those two trenchant and unanswer- 
able little books, Notes on Ingersoll and Tactics of Infidels, in 
which he crushes all the swelling pretensions of that illogical 
swaggerer and his bottle-holder, lawyer Lacey, of Philadelphia, 
as one crushes an empty egg-shell in his grasp ; and who has 
earned thereby the laurels of honor and tribute of gratitude not 
only from us Catholics, but from thousands of just such Protes- 
tants as I am endeavoring to introduce to my readers' acquain- 
tance, attested by bushel-basketfuls of letters received by him 
from their clergy and laity, not a few of whom expressed their 
debt of eternal gratitude to him for having thus successfully 
defended their faith in God, in Jesus Christ, and the Holy 
Scriptures in one of those books very pithily remarks : " The 
demand for a definition, like a motion to adjourn, is always in 
order." 

KNow, it will not be very difficult in this case to arrive at 
i true definition of those under consideration, viz. : Protestants 



358 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

of every sect, who are in perfectly good faith, sincerely seeking 
the truths of religion, and honestly striving, just as Catholics 
do, to conform their lives to their belief. All we have to do 
is to get at their true spiritual condition in the sight of God, 
tested, of course, by the light of Catholic doctrine ; no matter 
what they call themselves, nor what they are termed in the 
eye of the law, nor what opinions about them are held by this 
or that particular, and probably ignorant, adversary. 

Those of our readers who have perused the controversy al- 
ready alluded to, and the articles which so fairly and with pro- 
found theological accuracy discussed the question in late issues of 
this magazine, need no further arguments to show that all such 
persons (the reader's attention is again called to the definition as 
above, strictly taken) are fully able to make acts of divine faith, 
hope, and charity ; some knowing more, some knowing less of 
the whole body of truths contained in the Christian revelation as 
taught and defined by the Catholic Church. Proofs which could 
not be called in question, from the most learned theologians, were 
quoted in the course of the controversy alluded to more than 
enough to satisfy any one on this fundamental point. It was 
clearly shown that many non-Catholics were quite indistinguish- 
able (spiritually) from ourselves, so far as to deserve the name 
of " true Catholics," being certainly implicitly, and therefore in 
God's sight, actually and really so. 

Now, their religion or religions, so called, are, as sects, here- 
sies. No one may deny that nor wish to. But it does not by 
any means follow that all persons brought up in these sects are 
heretics, or that their personal religion is damnable or hateful 
in the sight of God. Believing what they do on a divine mo- 
tive, the veracity of God revealing it, and living up to their be- 
lief in good faith as they do, it must be allowed that what 
religion they have is Christian, and what acts of faith, hope, 
and charity they make (for in those consist all divine religion) 
are essentially acts of Catholic, Christian religion. 

Being in error, and in our day so many of them being in 
inculpable error, they continue in the practice of erroneous ex- 
ternal ceremonials of religious worship. Erroneous, I say, but not 
evil in themselves nor damnable in results, though depriving them 
of the spiritual benefits of the divinely ordained practices and 
ceremonies of the church. For example, they lack the priest- 
hood and all it gives us, and therefore fail to make many special 
acts of true religion, all dependent upon a living communion 
with that priesthood, and which conduce so much to the perfec- 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 359 

tion of the soul, and so powerfully aid us in the work of sal- 
vation ; to say nothing of . the marvellous comfort which we 
derive from them in all the struggles of our temporal life. But 
there are numberless acts of divine religion not dependent upon 
that relation. These acts many do make, and make from the 
highest and purest motives. Suppose we were ourselves to be 
cut off from the possibility of receiving any sacrament, what 
would be our condition ? Simply that we would be deprived of 
a certain means of the more easily attaining a definite end. 
Sacraments are only means to an end. Sacramento, propter 
unifies. But who does not see that we could still make acts of 
faith, hope, and chanty, and enough of them, if we would, to 
make ourselves saints ? 

Not only, therefore, do I say that Protestants can, and many 
lo, make such acts, but I go further. Those spiritual acts of 
religion which are associated with a mistaken object they hon- 
>tly supposing it to be the true object of God's revealed will 
re not devoid of merit, even though they may fail of obtaining 
irticular graces which God by his divine decree has made de- 
>endent upon the actual use of divinely appointed ways and 
leans. Take their so called "Holy Communion," for instance. 
r ho can doubt that they obtain much merit from all their devout 
>rayers, and acts of spiritual communion made with Jesus Christ 
the Son of God and Redeemer, made by them in that service, 
erroneous in form and false in doctrine though it be ? That they 
lo not get the inestimable sacramental grace obtained by a real 
'ommunion with the true Eucharistic Body and Blood of Jesus 
'hrist is undisputed. If they but knew ! Si scirent donum Dei ! 
,et the extraordinary faith in and burning love of the Blessed 
icrament seen in so many of those who once knew not and now 
:now answer, and prove the devout, the divine sincerity of their 
icarts during the days of their Babylonish captivity of ignorance 
md unwitting error. 

Think a moment upon the religious acts which make up the 
substance of their public and private devotions. They listen with 
ie utmost reverence and respect to the reading of the Holy 
>criptures (the question of differences between their and our 
ersion is nothing to the present point) ; they pray either liturgi- 
dly or extempore, and every prayer is offered and ended as 
'atholic prayers are per Domimim nostrum Jesum Christum. 

They sing psalms and hymns of praise, of devout medita- 
tion upon the Passion and death of Christ, of penitence and 
contrition for sin, of faith in Christ as the Saviour of the world, 



360 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

of aspiration and longing for union with God in heaven. Is 
there anything wrong, evil, hateful, damnable in all this ? On 
the contrary, is it not all holy, edifying, instructive, sanctifying ? 
In a word, are not all their services of public and private wor- 
ship just so many occasions which, by their very nature and the 
spirit in which they are conducted, conduce most powerfully to 
inspire the worshipper to make numberless acts of divine faith, 
hope, and charity ? 

Eliminate the few actually false doctrines which are now 
held more by force of tradition than from intellectual conviction ; 
abolish their heretical ministry heretical in the self-assumed right 
of preaching and expounding the word of God and it is not 
saying more than can be substantiated that all the rest is at least 
conformable to Catholic doctrine, if not with Catholic usage, and 
its matter and form (saving what pertains to their sacraments), if 
it were judged to be advisable by competent authority, could be 
sanctioned by the church as fitting devotional worship for Catho- 
lics true and blue. Some folks imagine that a Catholic pastor is 
doing something questionable, and to which his bishop is obliged 
to shut his eyes, if he conducts a service of public worship in 
which he is not clothed with either a chasuble or a cope. Any 
religious service other than Mass or Vespers, especially if it be 
entirely in the vernacular, has to them an odor of heresy (for 
which they appear to possess a keen scent), even when conducted 
in a Catholic Church for Catholics only. Their definition of a 
Catholic would probably be the one once given by a Protestant : 
" A Catholic is one who worships God through a priest in sacred 
vestments standing at an altar." To be consistent, they should 
define a Protestant to be " one who cannot worship God at all, 
because he never hears Mass or Vespers." 

It is not because there is anything intrinsically wrong or un- 
Catholic in the mere matter or form of Protestant religious servi- 
ces, saving some heretical expressions said or sung, that prevents 
us from attending or taking part in them. It is because they are 
unauthorized by the only power which has the divine right to 
sanction any such religious worship, and are conducted by men 
who, if they were even saints in God's sight, have no divine ap- 
pointment from Jesus Christ either directly or through his church 
to preach the Gospel. But because for such good reasons asso- 
ciation with their worship is properly forbidden to us, we must 
bear in mind that they being in good faith and ignorance, such 
worship is obligatory upon their consciences, full of good to 
them, lifting up their hearts to God, inspiring them with divine 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 361 

love, leading them to contrition for sin, and serving in many 
ways to help them attain their salvation. 

It is reported on good authority that the saintly Bishop of 
Boston, afterwards the Cardinal Cheverus, read the whole Epis- 
copalian service of " Morning Prayer " to one of their congrega-, 
tions and preached to them, all to their great satisfaction and 
edification. No doubt the occasion was a peculiar and excep- 
tional one where he judged it could be done without scandalizing 
Catholics or likely to be looked upon by the Protestant congre- 
gation as sanctioning the lawful independence of their church. It 
simply goes to show that my observation upon the nature of their 
services in themselves is just. In point of fact, the Episcopalian 
service is nothing but a medley of prayers and offices selected 
from our own Catholic missal and breviary translated into 
English. 

The day is past for the repetition of such an example, but 
not for preaching to Protestants anywhere, even in their own pul- 
pits. Several of our bishops, among whom notably was Bishop 
England, have preached to them in their churches, and more than 
one bishop has told me that they would be only too happy (as 
who would not be?) to accept such invitations, and would cordially 
approve of their priests doing the same. I have myself received 
two such invitations, which were extended to me by both ministers 
and church officials, and on both occasions my acceptance was 
heartily sanctioned by the. Catholic bishops of their respective towns. 
If in the considerations already presented I apparently mag- 
nify the virtues of Protestants, God forbid that I should min- 
lize the danger, certainly to the salvation of some, which 
lecessarily arise's from the comparative spiritual poverty of re- 
mrces which marks Protestant religious life, to say nothing of 
te strong temptation to spiritual pride, self-conceit, self-will, and 
;lf-love which their system has an indisputable tendency to 
lourish. God knows well this poverty and those temptations, the 
id visitation upon them, unto the third and fourth generation, 
>r the sins of their fathers of the so-called Reformation; but his 
ice is given to all men, his divine, yearning mercy knows no 
>ounds ; and who shall think to do him service by attempting to 
bind his loving hands and say to him : " Touch them not ; they 
accursed " ? Who shall have the temerity to imagine he can put 
forth his hand and shut the ever-open door of the Sacred Heart 
of the Redeemer, whose blood was not poured out for any of his 
brethren in vain, and say to them: "Stop, you cannot enter 
here " ? Rather do I hear that divine Voice, in tones of awful 



362 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

warning to many of us half-hearted, unfilial, scandalous-living, 
worldly-minded, sacrament-neglecting, and grace-despising Catho- 
lics who bask in the very sunshine of the truth and grace of 
God : " Woe to thee, Corozain, woe to thee, Bethsaida. For if 
in Tyre and Sidon had been wrought the miracles that have been 
wrought in you, they would long ago have done penance in sack- 
cloth and ashes." 

If the dangers and temptations of their state be great, if they 
be indeed alarming, where, then, is our own love of God and of our 
neighbor as ourself, that we are not all on fire with zeal for the 
divine honor and glory and for the spread of the kingdom of 
Christ? Why are we not besieging heaven -with prayers for their 
conversion, glad in heart to know that they are doing at least 
what they can, and sincerely rejoiced to see them striving for 
their salvation the best they know how ? Not envious of, nor 
carping at, their virtues, which, despite their unhappy state of ig- 
norance, they still possess in no small degree, but rather glorifying 
God for all his gracious gifts. Why are we not seeking them in 
love, doing everything possible to smooth the way to reconciliation, 
making every possible concession which the ingenuity of a large- 
hearted love might suggest as useful, instead of driving them away 
from the blessed light and truth and beatitude of the church's 
communion by denunciations and revilings of all they have and 
hold as true and sacred ? 

What fruit have we to show from our labors, or no labors, 
.hitherto undertaken to bring them to unity? Here and there 
converts come and are received, many and worthy ones, I allow, 
but still it must be owned singular instances, their appearance at 
our doors being often as astonishing to ourselves as if they had 
suddenly sprung up out of the earth ; instances of conversion in- 
dicating no general return, as a mass, of these thousands upon 
thousands of our erring brethren in Christ and homeless children 
of the church. Even these converts have not come from fear of 
our threats, but in great part have been led by secret and, for all 
that we have done, little-merited inspirations of the Holy Ghost. 
Thus far we may be said to have gathered in only those full- 
ripened ears ripened in the Protestant field, by the way, and 
there brought to perfection too by the vivifying influences of di- 
vine grace which happen to be found bending over the church's 
enclosure. Let us comfort ourselves as we may upon the intel- 
lectual triumph we have achieved all along the line over their il- 
logical and morally weak systems ; one thing is plain : we have 
failed to win them as a mass from their errors. And what is the 



.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 363 

consequence ? Infidelity is sweeping them by thousands into its 
whirlpool of intellectual shipwreck and moral death. 

Now, I dare to call upon all of good will, and appeal to all 
who love God and estee.n the inestimable privileges we enjoy, to 
take up the sickle which the Divine Reaper has placed in our 
hands, and following his example, and that of his big-hearted 
Apostle St. Paul, who made himself all things to all men that he 
might gain all, let us go out and harvest upon a wider field and 
cut as wide a swath as God shall give us grace. 

I have written it, and I repeat the words, if we could be 
fearless enough to acknowledge that the common, actual faith of 
Protestants zvho are in good faith is identical with ours in its 
essential quality, and saving their great and pitiable ignorance, I 
am convinced that it would open the way to the conversion of 
many of them. It is because they have the very thing we deny 
them to have that they are prevented from conversion, for it 
leaves them under the impression that they must give up that 
divine faith and take some other kind, one which seems to 
them can be none other than a blind, unreasoning plunge into 
intellectual darkness. 

He who has strong faith can afford to be fearless in telling 
the truth, the whole truth. He who cramps his faith with 
hide-bound- externals and limits its spiritual range to ceremonial 
observances makes the church a sect. He lends his influence to 
the encroachments of that spirit of worldliness from which in past 
times the church suffered so* much dishonor, and which provoked a 
resistance ending in wide-spread heresy and schism ; a spirit which 
sets a higher value upon the external clothing, comfort, and 
human liberty of the body of the church than it does upon 
the divine perfections, enlargement and liberty of the soul of it, 
and which concerns itself more about the means of securing and 
enhancing the former than it does with inspiring the Christ-like 
sacrifices necessary to foster and realize the latter. Such a one 
has no true idea of the all-comprehensive character of the Catholic 
religion, so perfect in its universality that not one soul on the 
face of the earth to-day but is able, hie et nunc, by fidelity to 
grace to enter heaven by its door. The church is the spiritual 
mother of all made alive in Christ, and therefore her maternity 
is as universal as the grace of her divine spouse. 

Am I asked if one may believe that Protestants as a body 
love truth, reverence divine things, and generally esteem holiness 
of living, and that a goodly number of them aspire to realize 
it; that they suffer compunction for sin and pray for forgiveness? 



364 A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. [Dec., 

Yes ; one may so believe and unhesitatingly assert it. One may 
say of many of them that there is absolutely nothing but exter- 
nal separation which distinguishes them from us in the sight ot 
God; ''implicitly and before God," as a learned theologian 
(Bonal) puts it, "they are truly Catholics." To the eye of the 
body it cannot be denied that even the very best of them seem 
to be anything but Catholics, so unlike us, indeed, that it is not 
difficult to distinguish one, be he of any class or walk in life, 
after a few minutes' conversation even on only temporal affairs. 
Catholics live and breathe in an atmosphere of supernatural 
light, and are warmed by the ardent rays of a supernatural love, 
and nourished with a supernatural food, and all this so abun- 
dantly as to give a certain singular tone to even their exterior 
behavior and conversation, which is felt, but not easily described. 
Who has not experienced the force of this instinct when ming- 
ling respectively with Catholic and Protestant acquaintances ? 
But despite all this difference, observed externally, and not, I al- 
low, without some corresponding interior difference, at least in 
degree if not in the nature of their spiritual life, they neverthe- 
less enjoy divine light and love in a not unprofitable measure, not 
as Protestants, if you will, but as what such as I am pleading 
for are in God's sight, and often in the church's sight- as well 
Catholics in exile and bondage. 

One may also say of many of them that they shirk the know- 
ledge of the truth ; are mere worldlings who seek their own lusts ; 
to whom the doctrine of Christ is a constant reproach ; who hate 
the purity and self-sacrifice of Catholics ; who very seldom or 
ever pray ; who because of their actual gross sins are not only 
lost to the church but to God, and therefore are in all the 
more desperate need of our pity, our prayers, and our greater 
heroic sacrifices. To be in earnest and to labor, after the exam- 
ple of the saints, for these lost souls will put our own divine 
charity to a worthy test. 

''They are none of ours." But who will deny that they all, good 
and bad, true and false, lovely for their virtues or repulsive for their 
sins, are of God's own creation and his Son's redemption ? What 
would we more, if called even to die for them, that we should 
refuse to offer gladly that which for the best of us were of little 
worth to keep at the price of what God, by our rejection of so 
divine and Christ-like a sacrifice, would lose ? And if with the 
grace of God we would not shrink from doing all, far be it from 
us to find excuses for not doing less. The law does not bind 
us, I know, but "the charity of Christ constraineth us." 



1889.] A PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN. 365 

It must be evident to my readers that I look upon the spir- 
itual state of Protestants generally as a peculiar one, almost en- 
tirely out of reach of judgment upon technical points of law. 
The problem of their reconciliation with the visible church (alas ! 
that it has to be called a problem at this late day) is to my 
mind a practical rather than a theoretical one. To deal with 
the question in this light presents, I think, the only possible 
hope of solution, and is unquestionably in accordance with the 
true spirit of the Church, whose spirit is the spirit of her divine 
Founder. The mission of Jesus Christ to the world is a mission 
of reconciliation of the erring and the lost. He is the Good 
Shepherd of the lost sheep, who -not <3nly can afford to but does 
leave the ninety-and-nine faithful in the fold to seek the one 
sinful wanderer. He has always " other sheep, not of this fold," 
whom he said he must bring into the unity of One Fold under 
One Shepherd, and does not the burden of its accomplishment 
for Protestants lay upon our shoulders ? 

We who shrink from defiling the hems of our garments with 
the touch of " heretics and all unbelievers " would do well to 
ponder upon St. Peter's vision and the answer he got when he 
called what God offered him to eat " common and unclean," 
and to lay to heart his own interpretation of God's reply: "In 
very deed I perceive that God is not a respecter of persons. 
But in every nation he that feareth him and worketh justice 
is acceptable to him." 

The strong natural tendencies of the human mind and heart 
to assume the reins of self-sovereignty and protest against divine 
authority, to resist the infallibility of true order, to fret under 
the necessary restraints of the true good, and despise the simple 
chastity of the true beauty, are evident ever since the human 
race had a history. Mankind tends to go astray in a word, 
to become protestant ; sometimes wickedly, oftener foolishly and 
pitiably. He who created man " knows what is in man," and 
he knows what is to be gotten out of man ; and what by suffer- 
ing and error and even sin, following upon the exercise of his 
free will, is to be ultimately the means of his greater happiness 
and higher perfection in the divine life to which he is called 
through Jesus Christ. 

Protestants are legally heretics under condemnation for their 
outward adhesion to religious bodies which unite under a stan- 
dard of protest. That would seem to imply that they are all 
conscious of being under protest against something or some one, 
but I insist that practically all that is a myth, and gives little 



366 A PLEA FOR ERRIXG BRETHREN. [Dec., 

or no foundation for judgment of sin on account of obstinate 
resistance to known, rightful, divine authority. In approaching 
them and laboring for their reconciliation, we must take them 
as they are, not in the sight of human law, but as we are con- 
vinced, from well-proven facts, that they are in the sight of 
God, and deal with them accordingly. 

What language would our Lord use to them and concerning 
them if he were here to deal personally with them ? What 
plan would St. Paul lay out to reach them ? What would he 
" make himself to be," if he found himself here thrown into the 
work of being, not an apostle to heathen Gentiles, but an apostle 
to erring Christians ? 

Between the church and many such Protestants whose religious 
state I have described there is a barrier of separation which to 
the carnal eye appears as an impenetrable wall of granite, but 
by the spiritual eye is easily discerned as being little more than 
a sheet of painted paper, and one which, when approached by 
them sincerely seeking the truth, being led by the grace of God 
and encouraged to come by our words of loving invitation and 
instruction, proves to be no thicker or stronger than blotting- 
paper, and to their great amazement yielding to the first touch 
and passed as quickly, often without a scratch to show that the 
transit has been at the cost of perceptible effort or conscious- 
ness even of the existence of an obstacle overcome. 

This is the case with numbers of intelligent, pious converts 
who, now realizing the logical and moral conclusions which their 
own faith arjjd principles necessarily implied, cannot understand 
how they could have remained so long in Protestantism, saying, 
and most truly : " I see now clearly that I never was anything 
but a Catholic all my life." 

That tells the story and confirms the whole argument of this 
essay. This same state of many of his friends, still Protestant, 
appears to his mind so self-evident that he is eager to tell them 
of it, and is not a little disgusted and disheartened (forgetting his 
own experience) to find that both his Protestant friends, and his 
Catholic ones, too, believe most firmly in the reality and impene- 
trability of the painted granite wall, for by Catholic law on the 
one side, and Protestant law on the other, it must be granite, 
"just as any man, too," they add, "with half an eye ought to 
see." And so they both go on in the same old Judaizing spirit, 
in spite of St. Paul's words, ringing trumpet-toned down through 
eighteen centuries : " Whosoever are led by the spirit of God, 
they are the sons of God." ALFRED YOUNG. 



1889.] FREDERICKSBURG. 367 



FREDERICKSBURG AND THE ASSAULT ON MARYE'S 

HEIGHTS. 

THE bombardment of Fredericksburg, December 11, 1862, the 
laying of the pontoon bridges, and the entrance of the Union 
army into that city, and the assault that followed, have often been 
described from the point of view of newspaper correspondents, 
commanding generals, and staff-officers. To obtain a broad view 
of a subject, it is true, one must remain at some distance; but in 
this way interesting details are apt to be overlooked. The writer, 
as a line officer of one of the fighting brigades of the fighting 
Second Corps, undertakes to describe only that which came with- 
in his own narrow field of observation. 

By the morning of December 12, 1862, all of the Second 
Corps had crossed the pontoon bridges into Fredericksburg. 
The .white inhabitants had fled, but the negroes thronged the 
streets, nearly all of them busy moving all sorts of material, beds, 
and articles of furniture, ornaments, clothing, trunks, provisions 
of various sorts ; some of them were rolling barrels of flour in 
front of them. The soldiers paid little heed to their doings, 
except to chaff them. " Where is that ham going with you, 
uncle ? " an old negro was asked. " I declah, cap'n " this to 
the private who had asked " I done fine a little niggah stealin' 
dat po'k, an' I reckon to tote it back w'ar he done fotch it fom." 

In the olden time the capture of a stronghold* was usually 
lowed by its sack. Indeed, it is not so many years since 
the French and English looted Pekin. The right to plunder 
the conquered was of old one of the least cruel of the rights 
against which even the soundest public sentiment saw no reason 
to protest. To a certain extent the United States still recognize 
such a right, only that they limit its exercise to the sea. Yet 
prize-money for captured ships is as much the plunder of the 
conquered as would be the sack of a captured city. Was Fre- 
dericksburg sacked ? It was ; but the plunder was not carried 
away. The men of thievish propensities who rifled the houses 
of that city were but few in proportion to the great masses of 
troops that filled the streets and slept in the houses during four 
days. When the retreat from the city finally took place the 
provost-guard seized most of the booty from the plunderers and 
left it piled up to be reclaimed by the citizens on their return. 
The only plunder that was indulged in by all was that of the 

VOL. L. -24 



368 FREDERICKSBURG AND THE [Dec., 

tobacco factories, and not even the severest martinet could with 
any justice complain of this against soldiers who had for weeks 
been nearly destitute of the comforting weed. The Army of the 
Potomac as it was at that time, in its palmy days, before it had 
been recruited with substitutes and bounty-men, was not fond of 
plundering, and from the point of view of humanity no less than 
discipline can fairly be said to have reflected credit on the cause 
it had been enlisted to defend in spite of the momentary forget- 
fulness of a comparatively few. 

The night of December 12 was, however, a night of revel- 
ry in Fredericksburg. Probably few small cities of the United 
States have been better stocked with every variety of intoxicating 
drinks wines of all sorts, ales and porters in bottles, gin and 
rum, and, above all, whiskey in abundance. Many of the pri- 
vate houses seemed to have enough in their cellars to fuddle the 
strong heads of the entire companies that occupied them. It 
was not until near midnight that the men fell asleep. The par- 
lors and bed-rooms of all the houses, the passages, the stair- 
ways, every space on the floors, were full of sleeping soldiers. 
Along the sidewalks other thousands slept on mattresses that 
they had brought out of the houses, or in their own blankets. 
By one o'clock on the morning of the I3th, when the writer, 
being on duty as an officer of the guard, stood in the middle 
of King Street, there was scarcely a sound to be heard except 
the snoring of the tired troops whose dark forms lay in rows 
on either hand. The Confederate artillery on Marye's Heights 
had thrown a.n occasional shell into the town during the day, 
sending bricks and coping-stones flying about and shattering 
window-glass by their explosion ; but partly, no doubt, from an 
unwillingness to injure the place, and partly in order to save 
their ammunition for more important uses, the Confederate fire 
had slackened in the afternoon and had ceased at dark. 

At daylight of Saturday, the I3th, the streets re-echoed the 
bugle calls for reveille, a hasty breakfast was cooked on the 
, sidewalks and gulped down, and by six o'clock the ranks were 
formed and the horses were hitched in the batteries. The 
weather was extremely mild ; it was towards the end of that 
balmy season called the Indian Summer. The gray frost that 
had lain upon everything disappeared, and a thick fog filled 
the air. The lofty Marye's Heights, fortified by Confederate 
field-works, and surrounding the city on the south at a dis- 
tance of about three-quarters of a mile, were entirely invisible 
through the fog. Standing in front of the Presbyterian church, 
one could barely discern the base of its tall spire, which had 



1889.] A SSA UL T ON MA RYE'S HEIGHTS. 3 69 

been a chosen mark for some of the Union batteries during the 
bombardment two days before. 

What was the feeling of the Army of the Potomac while 
preparing for the memorable assault ? The Army of the Poto- 
mac was a representative American army, well disciplined, but 
fond of understanding what it was about. It was a body of 
highly intelligent men ; many of them always carried a pocket- 
map of Virginia, and nearly all were accustomed to study their 
own movements and the reported movements of the other armies 
with an almost scientific interest. Among the privates of every 
company there was always at least one amateur strategist, who, on 
account of his searching analyses and criticisms of the military 
operations, was nicknamed " the General," " the Engineer," or 
the like. For several weeks this army had been in winter- 
quarters across the river, not more than two or three miles from 
Fredericksburg, and twice or thrice a week during that time 
thousands of these men had taken their turns at picket along the 
river bank, where they had a close and unobstructed view of 
Fredericksburg and the surrounding country. From day to day 
they had observed Marye's Heights and had carefully scanned its 
lines of earthworks with the naked eye and with the field-glass. 
By means of generally recognized military principles and of an 
experience gained in former campaigns they had been enabled to 
form a just opinion of the possibilities and probabilities involved 
in the situation. The universal opinion thus maturely and 
leisurely formed was, that Marye's Heights could not be carried 
by a direct assault. There was also a species of argumentum ad 
hominem. Looking at the Confederate position' they reasoned 
thus : " Give us such a position, and the whole Southern Con- 
federacy could not take it from us by a direct assault. 
But the Confederates are excellent soldiers, as we know from a 
long acquaintance with them. Therefore, they cannot be driven 
from the position." Some one may think that the prevalence of 
such an opinion would of itself have rendered success impossible. 
With new or inferior troops that is likely. But Fredericksburg 
was precisely one of those battles which proved the magnificent 
character of the Army of the Potomac ; for, although knowing the 
futility of the assault, never, it is confessed by witnesses, Con- 
federates and Federals alike, did soldiers march into the face of 
defeat and death with greater steadiness and with firmer deter- 
mination to go as far as men could go than was shown by the 
Army of the Potomac hour after hour that day, until night and 
darkness closed in and stopped the slaughter. 

Late in the forenoon the sunlight broke through the fog, 



3/0 FREDERICK S&URG AND THE [Dec., 

then the/og lifted, an 1 there again lay open to the view the plain 
dotted with .old-fashioned homesteads, off to the right front a 
white block of marble marking Martha Washington's tomb, and, 
beyond, the heights where the Confederate army was quietly and 
grimly waiting for events. The battle opened two miles below, 
where Franklin with the left wing was advancing to carry out 
a part of the plan, and now we who form the right wing, un- 
der Sumner, are to move. Kimball's Brigade afterwards Car- 
roll'sof French's Division of the Second Corps was to open 
the attack of the right. It had been a chief brigade of Shields' 
Division in the Shenandoah Valley, and in all its many cam- 
paigns had been particularly remarked for its dash, endurance, 
and intelligence on the skirmish line. Hence the choice of it 
for this serious work. The four regiments, each in a column 
by itself, moved out along four parallel streets, under orders 
to deploy in one continuous skirmish line as soon as they should 
have got beyond the houses of the city. But before the de- 
ployment had begun, just as the heads of the parallel columns 
had reached the .edge of the city, little puffs of smoke rose 
from the ground at the foot of the decline down which we 
were descending to the plain. It was Barksdale's Mississippi 
Brigade, which had held the town when the pontoon bridge 
was laid, and which, on being driven from the streets, had halted 
and remained just outside in a skirmish line. As their bullets 
sang through our columns our bugles sounded the " Forward ! " 
and onward we went headlong down the hill at the double-quick, 
the brigade so promptly and skilfully obeying the next bugle- 
call, " Deploy as skirmishers ! " that by the time we had passed 
all the city houses and their garden-fences we extended in a sin- 
gle rank, with intervals between the men, across the two roads 
that led south from the city, and far out on either hand, the colors 
of the four regiments pointed towards Marye's Heights and wav- 
ing in gallant style. 

Barksdale's line gave way slowly, and now we scrambled on 
over fences and through ditches, and as, with considerable diffi- 
culty and some tactical movements unnecessary to detail, we 
made our way across a canal and ascended a slight rise of 
ground, we could see through the embrasures of the Confederate 
earthworks on Marye's Heights the cannoneers standing to their 
guns. The next second those works from one end to the other 
sent forth puffs of smoke, and a line of shells was bursting above 
our heads. Again our bugles rang out : " Charge bayonets ! " 
" Forward ! " " Double-quick ! " Click, click, the bayonets were 
fixed, and the skirmishers of French's Division sent up a cheer 



1889.] ASSAULT ON MARYE s HEIGHTS. 371 

that, it was afterwards said, was heard a mile beyond Marye's 
Heights. Barksdale's skirmishers fell back and we saw no more of 
them so far as we knew. Our dead and wounded were already 
considerable in number, but our advance continued until we reached 
the point where the " Telegraph " road forked, the right prong 
going to Orange Court-House, the left to Richmond. Here 
was a cluster of houses ; the triangular space between the two 
roads was occupied by a little brick grocery-store ; on the left 
of the forks was a stone blacksmith's shop, with open ground 
beyond in that direction ; on the right almost a village of frame 
dwelling-houses. Across this fork our skirmish line halted, and fur- 
ther than this no Union line passed that day but one, and that 
one was the Irish Brigade. 

We looked back towards the city across the plain over 
which we had advanced ; there were no troops of ours in sight, 
but from a knoll here and there at the edge of the city bat- 
teries were firing over our heads at the Confederate works on 
the heights in front of us. Our brigade seemed for the moment 
to be without support. The grocery-store was a triangular 
building, with the sharp angle at our side cut off, and in that 
narrow face was a heavy door that was shut. A few blows 
from musket-butts opened it, however, and our wounded were 
carried in and laid wherever . there was room, on the floor be- 
tween the boxes and barrels, and on the long counter. The 
groans of pain, the lamentations and the prayers to Heaven of 
the wounded and dying that came to the .ears of us who were 

mtside were pitiful. " Lord Jesus, have mercy ! " " Oh, mother, 

lother ! " the writer heard repeated over and over in plain- 
tive wails, and, amid all, more subdued murmurings of prayer, 

ind, sad truth ! oaths and curses from men whose anguish of 
lin was greater than their patience could bear. 
The atmosphere is now clear and the sky bright. We are 

iring from every angle and window and fence-corner at the can- 

loneers up on the hill in front of us. Near the foot of the hill, 
id scarcely a stone's throw, as it seems to us, is a common 

tone wall, and occasional puffs of smoke show that a Confederate 
line is behind it. All of a sudden every gun of the Confederate 

>atteries opens once more, and the air above our heads is cut by 
the hissing flight of their shot and shell. From every street of 
Fredericksburg a column of blue is descending to the plain, and 
there a beautiful line is forming, the stars and stripes fluttering 
gayly at intervals above it. The sixty Confederate cannon salute 
it with accurate effect, but the blue line cheers, and forward it 
comes with steady tread. From our advanced and isolated posi- 



37 2 FREDERICKSBURG AND THE [Dec.,. 

tion we can, from time to time, when the smoke clears away for 
a few moments, see the faces both of the Union line and the Con- 
federate cannoneers from the moment the line emerges from the 
city until, essaying a charge, it moves gallantly on under the 
galling and deadly fire and reaches our ground, or ground in ex- 
tension of ours, and then halts, incapable of doing more. Many 
striking incidents we witnessed. One will illustrate the splendid 
spirit and discipline of the Army of the Potomac in battle. A 
New York regiment, through some mistake or stupidity, was 
brought up the Telegraph road in column of fours, and was 
halted in that formation between the grocery-store and the frame 
dwelling-houses. For this reason the Confederate bullets were 
raking it from front to rear through its whole length, yet every 
man of it who was not shot stood erect ; nor did a head stoop 
unless hit when the Confederate battery just in front of us, seeing 
the advantage, sent solid shot into the column. It seemed fully 
five minutes before some one having authority changed the for- 
mation and thus saved the regiment from being annihilated. A 
hen and her brood waddled and strutted across the Richmond 
road, and as the bullets whizzed past the mother-fowl snapped 
actively about in the air, probably supposing that the flying mis- 
siles were insects worth catching for the little ones. A horse, 
with empty but blood-stained saddle, galloped down from the 
Confederate lines, and, as he reached us, tumbled in the dust, 
dead, alongside of a dead Union soldier from whose waist-belt 
hung a gaudy dress-pattern of plaid silk, plundered in the town. 

Line after line moved out from Fredericksburg in fine array, 
and the plain was already thickly strewn with the Union 
wounded and dead in blue overcoats. Hours had passed, and still 
the right wing of the army was coming forward in successive 
lines to lay its useless offering upon that holocaust. Nearly one- 
half of the Second Corps who had so far become engaged were 
wounded or dead, and that continued to be about the average 
proportion to the end. A corporal of the writer's company was 
the sole survivor of eleven who had crawled out past the grocery- 
store to a fence-corner beyond to sharp-shoot the Confederate can- 
noneers. When we looked back we could see the smoke-clouds 
of the artillery at the edge of the city, and, still further back, 
that of the heavy guns which were ranged along the Stafford 
Heights north of the river, all of whose projectiles were coursing 
through the air over our heads, while far up above the Stafford 
Heights was Prof. Lowe's captive balloon, Confederate shells burst- 
ing dangerously near it. 

The t hills reverberated the thunder of cannon and Marye's 






1889.] ASSAULT ON MARYE' s HEIGHTS. 373 

Heights were almost hid in smoke, which was pierced by the glare 
of Confederate cannon and of bursting Federal shells, and by the 
long flashes of infantry fire that marked the direction of the Con- 
federate lines. 

The afternoon was well on when other columns issued from 
the city streets and deployed in line of battle, two stands of 
colors to each regiment, the one the beautiful stars and stripes, 
the other the banner of everlasting green. It was the Irish Bri- 
gade, and every officer and man bore a sprig of green box in 
his cap. Were they successful ? Only in leaving their dead 
closest of all to the Confederate lines. They passed the high- 
water mark which Kimball's skirmishers had set at noon, and 
which no other brigade than the Irish Brigade had passed or 
was to pass that day. Onward they swept, the four regiments in 
a single line of battle. By the time they had reached the level 
tract of ground just to the left of the clump of houses at the 
forks of the road from which we were observing them, they 
seemed to have attracted most of the fire of the Confederate bat- 
teries. But though the shells were bursting above their heads in 
almost as good an alignment as their own, and the canister was 
rattling into their ranks, no sign of wavering could be perceived 
in their splendid advance. 

Could it be possible, we thought, that they would succeed ? 
For a moment it seemed as if they could not be resisted. Cer- 
tainly, if any men that bloody day gave hope that Burnside's 
movement was not after all a very badly advised one, these men, 
with the flag of the Union supported by the symbolic green of 
ever-hopeful Erin, were foremost among them. 

We had plenty, however, to occupy us in our own front. 
With every advance and by whatever command, we at the clump 
of houses had made efforts at support and co-operation; conse- 
quently, we came in at these times for a heavy fire of the Con- 
federate infantry, intended to check any possible advance on our 
own part. Shortly afterwards the writer looked off to the left 
and front, and there, within not more, as it appeared, than thirty 
or forty yards, lay a line of men in blue overcoats. Was it the 
Irish Brigade ? No ; it was the Irish dead. Their brigade had been . 
withdrawn at last by whatever officer was then in command of it. 

I Dusk came on, and the right wing retired from the field 
into the city. The hopeless struggle was then continued by the 
:entre, under Hooker, until night put an end to the . Battle of 
Fredericksburg, leaving the Confederate, army victorious without 
serious loss and the Army of the Potomac vanquished without 
disgrace. THOMAS F. GALWEY. 



374 THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. [Dec., 



THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. 

THE discovery of the key to the ancient hieroglyphic writ- 
ings of Egypt is ranked among the greatest scientific achieve- 
ments of the century. Not until a little more than sixty years 
ago, after three hundred years of indefatigable seeking on the 
part of the leading scholarship of Europe, was the key to the 
mysterious alphabet found, and the literature of an extinct civil- 
ization, antedating the Mosaic records by centuries, opened for 
our reading. We have no reason to believe that the Greeks or 
the Romans ever attempted to decipher the ancient inscriptions. 
If their authors wrote about them at all, it was as if dealing 
with mysteries whose explanation had been irrecoverably lost. We 
first hear of their study in Horapollo, an Egyptian scribe who 
lived in the beginning of the fifth century of the Christian era. 
He gathered up the traditions about them and such interpreta- 
tions of their meaning as he could find. A translation of Hor- 
apollo into Greek, made a century or two after, when every ves- 
tige of certain knowledge was lost, is " the only ancient volume 
entirely devoted to the task of unravelling the mystery in which 
Egyptian learning has been involved ; and, ... in many instances, 
unquestionably contains the correct interpretation." 

In the sixteenth century of the Christian era the work of 
deciphering the Egyptian writings was fairly begun, a work that 
the early church in Egypt might have prosecuted with far less 
difficulty ; but primitive Christianity, it is possible, looked upon 
the ancient inscriptions as relics of an idolatrous past which 
it were better to wipe out for ever. The idol-hating monks of 
St. Anthony did their best at mutilating the long lines of pic- 
tured story remaining on the temple walls. And considering what 
Egypt's invaders had done, from Shepherd King to Persian, and 
what Turk and scientist and tourist have done in our day, the 
wonder is that anything is left on the soil of Egypt in the way 
of antiquities. It is but recently that a check was placed upon 
the wholesale pillage of Egyptian remains. The Egyptian gov- 
ernment at last has taken steps to preserve what is left of its 
monuments, and a law has lately gone into effect obliging visi- 
tors to the temples and tombs to carry a ticket costing five dol- 
lars. Every lover of art and history will be glad to hear that 
the sum realized from this tax some ten thousand dollars yearly, 



1889.] THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. 375 

it is anticipated will be expended in protecting what has been 
unprotected for ages. The tourist and his Arab accessory will 
need close watching all the same. The typical tourist thinks 
little of destroying a whole tablet if so he can get possession of 
a single perfect hieroglyph. Lepsius enriched German museums 
by chiselling out royal cartouches ; and so the Egyptian peasant 
chips off a bit of sculpture for the farthing the tourist will give 
for it. Within the last year or two English travellers have been 
found chopping away at the obelisk of On with an axe. The 
obelisk of On is the most venerable obelisk on the face of the 
earth, and has been called the " tombstone of the ages." It 
was one hundred years old at least when Abram was born. The 
maiden Asenath, no doubt, looked up at its hieroglyphics on the 
day she became the bride of Joseph the Hebrew. 

The search for the key to the ancient writings at the begin- 
ning of the nineteenth century had resulted in little but contro- 
versy and theories. The old inscriptions were as meaningless as 
ever, and the hope of reading them was on the wane. The key 
to their mystery had disappeared with the Egyptian priesthood. 
That priesthood, with its mystic key to the mysteries, had first 
been suppressed, then annihilated, by Christianity. Constantine 
and Theodosius had Been mighty instruments in overthrowing 
Egyptian paganism, and the last roots had been exterminated 
in the sixth century. " Where the resurrected Osiris had been 
worshipped the resurrected Christ was adored with the simple 
rites of the early Coptic Church." As early as A.D. 200 the 
icient system of writing had been laid aside in Egypt by the , 
lurch because of its connection with idolatry. Translations of 
the Old and the New Testament, and of other religious books, 
lad been given to the people in Coptic, and in those translations 
ic Coptic tongue, long a dead language, had been preserved a 
ict that had much to do in discovering the lost key to the 
mcient writings. According to Herodotus, who wrote B.C. 447, 
all educated persons in Egypt understood or could read the hiero- 
glyphics. The hieroglyphics were classified at that time under 
three heads: 1st. The Most Ancient; 2d. The Hieratic; 3d. The 
Demotic. 

Each was written from right to left. The difference as well 
as the similarity of the writing is to be found described in He- 
rodotus. The Ancient hieroglyphic was the sacred writing of the 
priesthood. It is the most ancient writing, and is found upon the 
oldest monuments. The Hieratic is a debasement of the ancient 
hieroglyphic. It came in about B.C. 3000, with the Ninth Dynasty. 



376 THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. [Dec., 

It fell into disuse when the Demotic was introduced. The De- 
motic was the ordinary script of the people, a debasemeut of the 
Hieratic. It is rare upon the monuments, as it was in no way 
suited for cutting upon stone. It came in about the seventh 
century before Christ. It was the writing of the court. Public 
annals, deeds, and documents were written in Demotic, which in 
time gave way to Coptic Greek. 

Coptic Greek gave an important clue to the mystery of the 
ancient writings. The Copts were the lineal descendants of the 
true Egyptian stock. The Copt of to-day speaks a form of the 
common language of modern Egypt, an Egyptian dialect of Ara- 
bic. His native tongue fell into disuse more than a century ago, 
but is well known to science. The Copts exchanged the worship 
of the gods for Christianity before the third century. From the 
time of the Ptolemies, some B.C. 300, the Coptic tongue had been 
mixed with the Greek ; its roots are identical with those of the 
language written in the sacred characters upon the walls and the 
papyri of ancient Egypt. 

The key to the Ancient writings was lost through the estab- 
lishment of Christianity in Egypt and the conversion of the Copts. 
In the relation between the Coptic tongue of the early Christian 
priesthood and the ancient hieroglyphics it was preserved, a 
significant fact to be borne in mind in the study of this subject. 
Coptic and the Egyptian of the Pharaohs are no more unlike 
than Latin and Modern Italian. 

The early seekers for the lost key were speedily convinced 
that nothing could be gained without a sound basis for investi- 
gation. Of guess-work there was no lack. Three hundred years 
and more of theorizing brought forth enormous folios, volumes 
of mystical rubbish, and vaporings of theorizers. One savant 
would assert he had found proofs of the truths of Christianity 
where another would show an exposition of astrology ; one 
seeker would read a description of the mariner's compass and the 
magnet where another found the Lost Word. A famous theory 
was that of the Chevalier Pulius, according to which it was only 
necessary to translate the Psalms of David into Chinese, and to 
write the translation in the ancient Egyptian characters, to trans- 
late certain rolls of papyri which he declared to be books of the 
Jewish Scriptures. Everything relating to the subject had seem- 
ingly been brought to bear upon its solution, and not a single 
satisfactory clue had been reached, when the discovery of the 
Rosetta Stone (1799) gave something like a promise of ultimate 
success. 






1889.] THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. 377- 

t 

More than one hundred men of letters had been invited by 
Napoleon Bonaparte to accompany the French army to Egypt 
(1798). Napoleon had another ambition than the establishing of 
a French colony in the valley of the Nile, and every advantage 
for study and research was extended to the members of the sci- 
entific corps of the French army. He was thoroughly interested 
in their discoveries of antiquities, their copies and casts. The 
writings were undecipherable to them, nor did they make special: 
effort to read them. They classified the monuments, however, 
ranking the most ancient among the most modern, as other 
Egyptologists had done before them. One day, when a squad of 
soldiers were repairing the earthworks of Fort Saint Julien, a little 
to the north of the village of Rosetta, some fourteen miles from 
Alexandria, they brought to light an old tablet, which but for the 
vigilant oversight of the scientific corps might have remained un- 
noticed. Fort Saint Julien was built upon the site of an ancient 
temple, where four monuments of Rameses II. had once stood. 
The tablet was covered with inscriptions. It was of black granite, 
much mutilated, about three feet in height and two in breadth. 
Large pieces had been broken from the top and the bottom. Its 
inscriptions were in the three kinds of writing: Hieratic, 14 lines; 
Demotic, 32 lines; Greek, 52 lines. The scientific corps realized 
its value at once. If the Greek inscription should prove to be 
a literal translation of the one in the ancient hieroglyphics, the 
long-sought basis for deciphering the writings had at last been 
found. 

Three indispensable prerequisites for the t study had been lack- 
ig : First t a certain knowledge of the language of the inscrip- 
ions ; second, a number of inscriptions or fac-similes with the 
ime meaning for comparison ; third, an authentic translation of 
ancient inscription into some known language. 
At the time of the discovery of the Rosetta Stone, Quatre- 
lere had published his work, Sur la langue et littcrature de 
I' Egypte, in which he proved, to the satisfaction of some at least, 
lat the language of the ancient writings was Coptic.* So much 
for the first prerequisite. The second was being supplied by the 
:ientific corps of the expedition. The third possibly the old 
iblet would furnish the third. With the surrender of Alexandria 
le stone fell into the possession of the English, and George the 
lird finally had the honor of presenting it to the British Mu- 

*In 1636 Father Kircher, in his study of hieroglyphics, called attention to the Coptic tongue, 
[chad many successors, adopters of his views. Clues for the final victory, which is awarded 
Champollion, were furnished by many, among whom is Zoega (1797), who took the ground 
it the ancient characters were a real written language, representing sounds and letters. 



3/8 THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. [Dec., 

i 

seum, where it may be seen to-day, the priceless treasure of the 
Egyptian gallery. Fac-similes of the stone were at once circu- 
lated among the seekers for the key. Reading the Greek inscrip- 
tion was comparatively easy, and that conveyed the information 
that it was a translation of the other two inscriptions, one of 
which was in hieratic, the other in demotic, writing. Perhaps for 
the general reader no better account of the study of the stone 
can be found than is given in Egypt and its Monuments, by Dr. 
Hawks. Person, of England, according to Dr. Hawks, and Heyne, 
of Germany, together with members of the French Institute, 
applied themselves to a correct reading of the Greek text. De 
Sacy and Akerbad devoted themselves to the demotic ; Cham- 
pollion and Dr. Young were the pioneers in the field of the hie- 
ratic interpretation, and their advance was long retarded owing 
to their holding to false notions, particularly that the hieroglyphic 
characters were purely symbolic. Fierce has been the controversy 
over who may rightfully be called the discoverer of the long-lost, 
long-sought-for key. Says Dr. Hawks : 

" It would be most unjust to undervalue the services of Dr. Young. If he 
did not discover the whole art of deciphering the mysterious characters, let it be 
remembered that the merit of complete discovery belongs to no one individual, 
. . . and that up to the time of Dr. Young ... no one had accomplished 
so much as he. . . . But he never contemplated the possibility of an entire 
phonetic alphabet as existing in the hieroglyphics. The honor of discovering 
that alphabet belongs to Jean Francois Champollion, . . . discoverer, master, 
guide in the intricate mysteries of hieroglyphic interpretation." 

Long before the discovery of the Rosetta Stone Egyptologists 
had accepted the hypothesis that a certain sign, very common on 
all the monuments, /( ) stood for the name of a 

king. Dr. Young called Champollion's attention to the conjecture 
and the recurrence of the sign on the Rosetta Stone.* Now, in 
the Greek text of the Rosetta Stone the name most frequently 
repeated was Ptolemais (Ptolemy). In the ancient text the car- 
touche most frequently repeated was one believed to stand for 
Ptolemais. 

The characters in the cartouche of the ancient text corre- 
sponding to the name of Ptolemais in the Greek were compared 
with those of another believed to stand for Cleopatra. The first 
character of the Ptolemais cartouche would, of course, stand for P, 
and the fifth in Cleopatra would stand for P. The signs were the 

* It was afterwards established that the sign denotes that the name enclosed by it is of the 
race of Menes, the first king of Egypt. Menes means maker of cattle-pens, or hurdle-pens. 
Champollion named the sign cartouche from, its resemblance to a cartridge. 



1889.] THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. 379 

-same, a square. The third character in Ptolemais would be O, 
as the fourth in Cleopatra would be O. The signs were the 
same, a knotted cord. The fourth character in Ptolemais would 
stand for L, as would the second in Cleopatra. The signs were 
found to be identical, a lion. Letter by letter, sign by sign, 
Champollion went on studying the cartouches and comparing them 
with the Greek text, and he soon had the beginnings of an al- 
phabet by which, in time, he could read the names not only of 
the Pharaohs, but the Persian, Greek, and Roman sovereigns of 
the country. In his letter to M. Dacier, published September, 
1822, the complete key to the decipherment of the ancient writ- 
ings of Egypt was given to the world. In 1824 he published 
his magnificent Precis du Systeme Hieroglyphique, which was 
soon followed by his hieroglyphical dictionary and Egyptian 
grammar. Admitting that he unjustly withheld due credit to Dr. 
Young, it must be allowed by every student of the subject (and 
there are volumes upon it) that but for the exceptional industry 
of Champollion, his unflagging persistence in following up the 
many clues to the mystery disappointment and failure but hav- 
ing the effect of spurring him on the great victory had been 
greatly postponed if ever gained at all. When but a young man 
he began the study of Egyptology, mastering the Coptic language, 
and projecting a Coptic dictionary before he was twenty-five. 
He died at the age of forty-four, his name written for all time 
upon the ancient monuments of Egypt. 

The science of hieroglyphics may not be briefly explained, 
certainly not by a tyro. Those interested in the subject will find 

exhaustively treated in Osburn's Monumental History, the 
forks of Bunsen, Wilson, Rawlinson, etc., etc. Characters once 
ipposed to represent only ideas Champollion proved to express 
leas and sounds. Hieroglyphics were classified as picture, syl- 
)ic, and alphabetical. About eight hundred signs were dis- 
>vered, and the distinction indicated between writings and sym- 
>lical representations. 

Ancient Egyptian is now read as easily as ancient Greek, and 
le cartouches of the Pharaohs are as familiar as the autographs 

George Washington. 

And what was written upon the Rosetta Stone ? One hun- 
dred and ninety-six years before Christ it was decreed by the 
priesthood of Egypt that the Ptolemy who was then upon the 
throne, Ptolemy Epiphanes, should be elevated to a place among 
the immortal gods. He was but a lad of fourteen, and a fair 
specimen of his disreputable race, but he was to be deified all 



380 THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. [Dec., 

the same, and that in his life-time, something a king of Egypt 
had not enjoyed since Rameses II. was proclaimed "The Ever 
Living," "a god born of a god," and all the rest. The decree 
ordered that an inscription to the honor of this Ptolemy Epipha- 
nes should be written in the Ancient, the Demotic, and the Greek 
characters, and set up in all the leading temples of the land. 
Another copy of it was found, not long after the discovery of 
the Rosetta Stone, being a tablet upon which the Greek text was 
lacking, .but evidently a space had been left for it. This tablet 
supplied words and characters missing from the Rosetta Stone. 

Unswathed at last from its cerements, the long entombed lan- 
guage has found resurrection, and is one of the living forces of 
modern civilization. "The study of the monuments of Egypt," 
says Dr. Osgood in the preface to his recent translation into 
English of the French translation of the Papyrus Prisse, the oldest 
book in the world, "is now an indispensable requisite to those 
who would instruct others about the development of religious 
thought and morality among men. . . . The views of Ptah-hotep " 
(contained in the Papyrus Prisse) "set before us a far purer sys- 
tem of religious belief and a nobler conception of the Supreme 
Being than heathen Greece and Rome, many centuries later, ever 
possessed, . . . and much nearer to the teachings of the Bible 
as to God and morality." The Papyrus Prisse was discovered 
some forty-five years ago in the Necropolis of Thebes. It is be- 
lieved to have been written many centuries before the epoch of 
the Exodus, and it gives us an idea of what society, ethics, and 
religion were in Egypt more than three thousand years before 
Christ. It contains the maxims of Ptah-hotep, and dates from 
the Fourth Dynasty. Under the Fourth and Fifth Dynasties there 
was in Egypt a powerful and elaborately organized monarchy, en- 
joying a material civilization not inferior in many respects to that 
of Europe in the last century. Ptah-hotep had arrived at the age 
of one hundred and ten when, in obedience to the commands of 
Osiris, he wrote the maxims containing the wisdom of the Ancients 
as it had come down to his time, that wisdom which they had 
learned from the gods, and which it was well for modern Egypt 
some five thousand years ago to heed and understand. Let us 
read from this most venerable treasury of wisdom, and see if 
there is anything new under the sun : 

" He who is master of his own spirit is superior to him whom 
God hath loaded with gifts." 

" May the love that thou dost feel pass into the hearts of them 
that love thee." 






1889.] THE EGYPTIAN WRITINGS. 381 



" If thou art great after having been low, do not harden thy 
heart on account t of thy elevation; thou hast become only the 
steward of the goods belonging to God. Do not put behind 
thee the neighbor who is thine equal ; be to him as a com- 
panion." 

" If thou art a wise man sitting in the council, set thy thoughts 
towards that which is wise. Keep silence rather than pour out 
thy words. When thou speakest know that objections will be 
made to thee. To speak hi council is an art, and speech is 
criticised more than all other work ; it is contradiction which 
puts it to the proof." 

" Love for the work they do brings men nearer to God." 

Long before the Prophets of Israel declared that Egypt 
should be a desolation, the Prophets of Egypt had written in 
the Book of the Dead : 

" O Egypt, Egypt ! a time shall come when, in place of a 
pure religion, thou wilt possess naught but ridiculous fables, in- 
credible to posterity ; and nothing will remain of them but 
words engraven on stones, the only monuments that will attest 
thy piety." 

"The Rosetta Stone," says Bunsen, "made monuments and 
accords accessible to investigation ; it gave the clue to the mys- 
teries of the Egyptian language and writings, and enabled science 
to penetrate the darkness of thousands of years. ... It has 
opened the primeval secrets of the human race." 

But for the discoveries made through the Rosetta Stone, our 
knowledge of Ancient Egypt would not greatly exceed that of 
Kingsley's boy-monk Phillammon in Hypatia, as he stood awe- 
truck and questioning before the long lines of pictured story 
n the walls of a sand-buried temple, wondering what the strange 
writings were about. Marvellous has been the light let in upon 
the world's ignorance of pre-historic times through the decipher- 
ing of the ancient Egyptian writings. The Mosaic record has 
been illuminated and confirmed. We have been made far better 
acquainted with the court of the Pharaohs than we can ever 
be with that of the Plantagenets. The portfolios of the copies 
of the ancient inscriptions and rolls of papyri would fill a build- 
ing nearly as large as the British Museum. 

The Sphinx has spoken at last; it has a secret no longer. 

JANE MARSH PARKER. 

Rochester, N. Y. 



382 THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 



THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK.* 

FORTY years ago the region bounded by Houston and Mul- 
berry Streets presented a very different appearance from what 
it does to-day. Now that the time-honored old convent has 
become only a sacred memory, it is almost impossible to realize 
what it was in 1848, when the Sisters of Mercy first took 
possession, having removed from their temporary home in West 
Washington Place, where from the time of their arrival in New 
York they had tasted to the full the anxieties and privations 
attendant on the beginning of a new foundation in a strange land. 
That their poverty often led to actual privation is shown by 
a fragment of verse, in which a pressing necessity is comically 
set forth : 

"Of sisters we've seven, of chairs we have six, 
So one's always left in a very odd fix." 

The chief desire of the sisters was to establish a House of 
Mercy, principally for the reception and protection of the immi- 
grant Irish girls who, in consequence of the disastrous faminS 
years, were at this period drifting in crowds to the great 
metropolis, and being totally unprovided for, were exposed to the 
worst dangers. The convent in West Washington Place barely 
sufficed for the needs of the sisters, and it was with great delight 
that they took possession of the large double house at the corner 
of Houston and Mulberry Streets, which was to be for well-nigh 
forty years (1848-1885) the scene of their zealous labors. It 
may be of interest here to remark that this building had quite 
a little history attached to it prior to its coming into the hands 
of the sisters. It was erected many years before by the well- 
known Madame Chegary, who here conducted the most bril- 
liantly fashionable academy for young ladies then existing in this 
country. From her it passed into the hands of the Ladies of the 
Sacred . Heart, by whom it was also used for educational pur- 
poses. When these religious moved to a more secluded retreat at 
Astoria, Long Island, some years previous to their settlement at 
Manhattanville, the property was purchased by a Mr. Abbott, and 
received the name of "Young Ladies' Seminary." When, many 
years after, the sisters decided to move further up-town the chcr- 

* The reminiscences contained in this article are supplementary to the third volume of 
Leaves from the Annals of the Sisters of Mercy. 



1889.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK'. 383 

ished convent was torn down, and on its site a large publishing 
house was erected. 

On the ist of May, 1848, Bishop Hughes solemnly blessed 
the new convent, dedicating it to Saint Catherine of Sienna. 
Always the kindest and best of fathers, he was rejoiced at 
having the sisters established so near his own residence, with 
abundant opportunities to assist the poor and the sick, to whom 
their lives were to be specially devoted. Released from the close 
quarters they had occupied for nearly two years, this entrance to 
dear Saint Catherine's seemed to the sisters like a glimpse of the 
promised land. The house was surrounded by a beautiful garden; 
many noble trees adorned its pathways, notably a patriarchal 
mulberry. The street took its name from the number of trees of 
this species in which it abounded. Oak and maple, elm and lo- 
cust one superb specimen of the latter, with its fragrant, creamy- 
white blossoms gladdened the heart in this beautiful spot and 
invited the religious to prayer or recreation beneath their com- 
forting shade. But the charitable heart of the beloved superioress, 
Mother Agnes, and the longing desires of the sisters with regard 
to the House of Mercy, decreed the sacrifice of a considerable 
portion of this fair garden, and when, on June 15, 1849, the 
Feast of the Sacred Heart, the first stone was laid of the new 

mvent, many of the beautiful trees were unavoidably cut down. 

ilas ! for earth's instability. The dear old mulberry was the 
irst doomed to destruction, as it stood on the very spot where 
the building was begun. The work progressed rapidly, and on 
the /th of November of the same year the dormitories were 
fitted up for the reception of their inmates. Now at last 
were the hopes of Mother Agnes to be realized ; now the poor 
jxiles, driven from home and country by oppression and distress, 
were to be hospitably sheltered and comfortably provided for 
intil situations could be obtained for them. Very often, indeed, 
were the necessary funds wanting, but Mother Agnes reposed her 
xmfidence in God, and he never failed to come to her assistance. 
Work-rooms were established where plain sewing and the most 
exquisite needle- work, knitting, embroidery, etc., were taught to 
such girls as desired to become seamstresses, while in the laun- 
dry and kitchen many excellent servants were trained before be- 
ing sent " out in the world," as they quaintly expressed it, to 
toil for their daily bread and help the beloved ones in Ireland. 
Many a peasant girl, fresh from driving the cows through 
pastures rich with clover blossoms and hedged with hawthorn, 
presented herself at the convent in her coarse linsey-woolsey 

VOL. L. 25 



384 THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 

and heavy brogues, and for long months cheerfully worked at 
the washboard, and the still more wonderful stationary tub, for 
the one sole purpose of fitting herself to earn what would ena- 
ble her father in Ireland "to keep the roof over his head." 

During the first year of its existence (1849-1850) the num- 
ber of situations provided from the " servants' office " in the 
House of Mercy was 1,217, an< ^ trie number of inmates shel- 
tered and fed and clothed seldom fell below 200. Though the 
doors were open to all poor girls of good character, by far the 
greater proportion of those taken care of in the house were immi- 
grant Irish girls. It must be remembered that at the period of 
which we write there was no expectation of the noble enter- 
prise at Castle Garden so ably inaugurated and carried on by 
the lamented Father Riordan and his zealous successors, and 
the Convent of Mercy was the only safe refuge in New York 
for these homeless exiles. The good work grew apace, and its 
interests were zealously promoted by Archbishop Hughes and 
his priests. The records for the first five years (18491854) 
show that 2,323 girls were cared for in the House of Mercy, 
and the number of situations provided was 4,852. 

One poor girl who could neither read nor write was con- 
stantly coming to the circulating library (which had been estab- 
lished by the sisters) asking for books of a controversial nature. 
After a while she was questioned regarding the use she made of 
them and whether she got some one to read for her. " Ah ! no, 
sister dear," she answered ; " sure I know they are good, and I 
just leave them in the way of the mistress, hoping that God may 
convert her ! " That " mistress " eventually became a fervent 
Catholic under the sisters' instruction, thanks to the zeal of her 
humble friend. Not the least interesting feature of the old House 
of Mercy was the Instruction Room. Though, strictly speaking, 
its name implies the use to which it was consecrated, it was here 
that all the business of the outside poor was carried on, and 
here the heartrending and the ludicrous were often strangely in- 
termingled. Here, for many years, Mother Catherine Seton held 
potent sway, and received the number of afflicted ones who came 
to have St. Edward's relic applied, and to hear a word of conso- 
lation or advice. Many permanent cures were granted to their 
unshaken faith and sterling piety. Here substantial aid in the 
shape of food and clothing was given the needy applicant, but* oc- 
casionally a poor delinquent would not be satisfied with such re- 
lief, and one good woman, to whom Mother Catherine feared to 
give the few pennies asked for lest they should prove a source 



1889.] THF SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW Y.ORK. 385 

of temptation too strong to be resisted, made the following 
remarkable "prayer": "Oh! then, sister dear,, that you may 
be winkin' and blinkin' for time and eternity ! " Mother Cathe- 
rine suffered from a peculiar weakness of the eyelids, and created no 
little merriment by relating this incident when the sisters assem- 
bled for recreation. For long years, on Christmas Day, a dinner 
was given in this special room to a number of poor old men, 
whom it was the sisters' delight to serve ; the old were invited 
on this occasion in honor of Saint Joseph. 

But the distinctive work of instruction accomplished in this 
well-remembered room was simply marvellous. Apart from the 
evening classes, formed for those who were unable to attend dur- 
ing the day, individual instruction was given at any and every 
hour at which those soliciting it could find time to come. In- 
struction, however, was an old specialty of the Sisters of Mercy; 
the first year of their residence in New York (1846-1847) up- 
wards of three hundred adults were prepared for the worthy re- 
ception of the Sacraments, many approaching for the first time, 
but the majority being 'reconciled to God after years of neglect. 
It is no unusual thing to find in the early records notes of per- 
sons instructed for confession after an absence of ten, fifteen, 
twenty, and even thirty years. No allusion to the early days of 
Saint Catherine's would be complete without mention of the so- 
dalities, which were the first to be established in the city, and 
were productive of an incalculable amount of good. Besides the 
Immaculate Conception Sodality for young girls, there were also 
the Confraternity of the Sacred Heart of Jesus, and Saint Jos- 
eph's Society for married women. All three received the appro- 
bation of the Holy Father and the sanction of the archbishop. 
Later on a Sodality of the Precious Blood, for colored people, 
was added to the list and counted many members. The average 
attendance at Saint Joseph's Society, on Wednesday evenings, was 
six hundred. The old members can never forget dear Mother 
Joseph's fervent petitions to her great patron, or the instructions 
they so delighted in, when, failing to secure the services of a 
priest, she was obliged to act as the preacher herself. How often 
they assured her that " it's -yourself knows how to preach ; sure 
we'd rather be listenin' to you than to any priest this blessed 
night ! " 

The sisters were not more than ten months in the city when 
the Commissioners of Charity offered them free access to the 
prisons and hospitals. .The invitation was joyfully accepted, and 
a visitation of these abodes of suffering and wretchedness was then 



386 77/ SssrA>s OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 

commenced (1847), which has been carried on without interruption 
up to the present time. Mother Austin Horan, of beloved mem- 
ory, also inaugurated the visitation of the sick in their own homes, 
and the visits were not confined exclusively to the sick poor. 
Her large charity easily divined that the sufferer on- a bed of 
down, as well as the stricken one on a straw pallet, may find it 
a hard trial to break the ties that bind to life. She knew well 
that the fervent prayer, the whispered aspiration, the silent appeal 
to the uplifted crucifix might be often more necessary to the rich 
than to the poor, for in proportion as the .chains that rivet the 
soul to earth are strong and numerous is its disinclination to pass 
through the "dark valley." 

The following little incident of Mother Austin's manner of 
dealing with the sick, whether of mind or body, will convey to 
the reader some idea of her beautiful soul. The sisters had been 
entreated to visit a gentleman of superior education and fine in- 
tellect, though a professed infidel. His wife was a Catholic, and 
as he was very seriously ill, her anxiety was extreme. Mother 
Austin undertook the case and was soon' at the invalid's bedside. 
His first salutation on seeing the figure of .a religious was : 
"Woman, what brings you here ? I want none like you about me ! " 
With the utmost composure Mother Austin seated herself near him, 
and said softly: "The blessing of God be upon you and all in 
this house." "Madam," urged the sick man, "I don't want you 
and your talk ; understand me." But the good mother persisted 
in speaking of his immortal soul, and of the judgment of God, 
apparently so near at hand for him. Trembling with rage, the 
man exclaimed : " Madam, if I could, I would dash you out of 
that window!" Still undismayed, the zealous mother answered: 
" You poor, foolish, ignorant man ! And you are not much of a 
gentleman, after all." The man's eyes fairly flashed as he said: 
"Never before have I been called ignorant; I am not an igno- 
rant man." "Yes, my friend, you are," insisted the quiet voice; 
" many a dirty little boy or girl in the street can answer ques- 
tions you know nothing at all about." And the patient instructor 
began a brief explanation of the truths of our holy faith. The 
wife now approached the bed, saying to the invalid that she 
feared he was fatigued, the truth being that she did not wish the 
sisters to be subjected to further insult, adding : " Mother Austin 
will come again to see you, my dear"; when he vociferated: "I 
had rather be walled up and die of starvation than listen to that 
,'v-omatt again." 

But Mother Austin was not to be cheated out of this soul, so 



.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. 387 

kneeling down, she and her companion (the saintly Mother 
Joseph Devereux) recited aloud the Litany of Our Lady and five 
decades of the Rosary. The sick man was visibly subdued during 
the recital of these simple prayers, and after taking a little refresh- 
ment, began to give some of his reasons for his infidel opinions, 
when all at once he stopped, amazed at the look of horror and 
disgust on Mother Austin's face. " Little man," said she, " stop 
this foolishness, and if you talk, talk sensibly. What is your 
boasted knowledge in comparison with that of the great theolo- 
gians, philosophers, and others who have enlightened the world. 
All these grand intellects believed in God, and you, little man, in 
your ignorance, pretend to know more than they ! " As Mother 
Austin went on she seemed to be inspired, and gained the sick 
man's close attention for more than half an hour ; the visit had 

>ted almost five hours, and as she was leaving she knelt and 

jked him to repeat a short prayer after her. This request was 
refused ; again and again was the entreaty made in vain. At 
last Mother Austin stood up and said: " I will write it and you 
shall take it as a pill, so as to have something good and holy 

iside of you ! " Needless to relate that this proposition was met 
scorn. Then Mother Austin declared that she would not go 
iway until he had repeated some short, ejaculatory prayer, and 
she and her companion again recited the Litany and the beads, 

id, as they were finishing the latter for the third time, the man 
mrst into a flood of tears, and exclaimed : " I am a proud man, 

id I know it, l^ut you have conquered me ! " 
This was a great triumph of grace, and the sisters soon took 

leir departure. Mother Austin called on him again in a day or 
two, and repeatedly afterward, and the victory was won ; but it 
a long, hard struggle between nature and grace. The invalid 

^covered, and in a few months came to the convent chapel to be 

iptized, having gone through a regular course of instruction from 

ic woman he had wished "never to listen to again." He became 
most fervent Catholic, and when, a few years later, a return of 
his malady brought his final summons, Mother Austin, in her 

mtle charity, ministered to him during his trying illness, and 
actually with him at the moment of his death. She was the 

leans of converting more than one such infidel, and generally 
startled them into the resistance that at length yielded to her 
sway by seeking to convince them of their "ignorance," follow- 
ing up this line of conduct by making them learn the catechism 
like little children. 

The arduous labor of the sisters in the City Prison is too well 



388 THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. fDec., 

known to need more than a passing word. Thoroughly organ- 
ized in 1847, tne work has been carried on ever since with un- 
flagging energy. The " Tombs " is visited three times a week 
regularly ; the State Prison at Sing Sing once every three months ; 
the Penitentiary on Blackwell's Island every month ; and for 
weeks previous to the execution of a criminal he is daily en- 
couraged by the kindly ministrations of the Sisters of Mercy. 
They have solaced and prepared every Catholic who has incurred 
the dread penalty in New York for the past forty-two years, 
and when solicited have cheerfully aided those who were not of 
our faith. 

But the sisters have sometimes had the consolation of assist- 
ing some poor prisoner to meet death less painfully. On one of 
the usual visits to Sing Sing a young man was found in the 
hospital of the prison, apparently dying of consumption. His 
story uas lamentable, but, alas! only too common. Though of a 
respectable family, he had been led away by bad companions, 
older in years and inured to wickedness. In some petty theft 
expedition which they had induced him to join he was detected, 
and on the trial was sentenced to three years in the State Prison. 
Naturally a good boy, he was heart-broken, and the labor and 
confinement soon told on a constitution never robust. Now the 
sisters saw that the end was not far away. His shrinking from 
death in a prison, his longing to see the " blue sky " and to 
breathe the fresh air once again, all so pathetically told, so 
touched the sister to whom he poured out his confidence that she 
determined to appeal to the governor of New York (then Governor 
Hoffman) in his behalf. She did so immediately, begging a par- 
don for the poor young offender, meanwhile arranging for his re- 
ception with the good Sisters of Saint Francis (Fifth Street) if 
her application were to be successful. Governor Hoffman most 
promptly and graciously granted the request, and as speedily as 
possible the poor fellow was transferred to the sisters' hospital. 
He had been left an orphan in early childhood, and had no re- 
straining influence in his poor, blighted life. Three weeks after 
obtaining his pardon on earth he was summoned to receive that 
of his Father in heaven. 

Death has reaped a heavy harvest in Saint Catherine's com- 
munity, and of the pioneer members but two are still spared. 
Among the band of earnest laborers who came to swell the ranks 
of the foundation sisters before their first decade of years had 
elapsed was Mother M. Alphonsus Smythe, so long and genial- 
ly remembered as superioress of Saint Joseph's Industrial Home 



1889.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. 389 

i 

(65 East Eighty-first Street), where her toiling among the chil- 
dren bore such generous fruit. Of an extremely bright, joyous 
temperament, her choice of a religious life was strangely deter- 
mined amidst the gayeties of a ball-room. Though full of the en- 
joyment of the hour, she seemed to see written in characters of 
fire everywhere she turned this passage from Holy Scripture : 
"They that instruct many unto justice shall shine like stars for all 
eternity " ; and from that night she resolved to relinquish the 
pleasures of the world and devote herself to the task of endeav- 
oring to lead many into the paths of justice. Her death in March, 
1884, left a great void in the community, and her exquisite voice 
was sadly missed from the convent choir, where for thirty years 
she had sung the praises of Him whom she had served with such 
a cheerful heart from the days of her youth. As bursar of the 
community for many years her practical abilities were well known 
in the business circles of New York. 

One of the stanchest friends of Saint Catherine's in the 
olden, golden days " was the universally revered and deeply 
;gretted Very Rev. Isaac T. Hecker, so recently passed from 
imongst us. Father Hecker's acquaintance with the Sisters of 
[ercy began in 1851, when he presided at the retreat, which is 
tade in all convents of the order, for the last three days of the 
'ear. He was appointed spiritual director of the community on 
ic I3th of December, 1852, which office he lovingly and faithful- 
ly fulfilled until December, 1860, when other pressing cares de- 
Landed his time and attention. During these years he conducted 
10 less than seven retreats, five of which were the lengthened 
iight days' retreat, usually taking place in August. His strong, 
r ivid style left life-long impress on those privileged to listen to 
dm, and he left nothing undone on his part to promote the 
)iritual welfare of the community. In a conference on the ob- 
ligations of the religious state he once exclaimed : " Fidelity, 
idelity, fidelity ! I would like to write this word everywhere, in 
jvery place, for God does not confine his grace to the chapel, to 
ie Blessed Sacrament, to prayer and meditation; no, it is always 
iing offered to us, and great graces are received from God even 
least expected. Had we only been faithful, we have re- 
iived graces enough in one day to sanctify ten souls. I ask of 
'ou to turn to God with courage, confidence, and generosity, re- 
lecting on past unfaithfulness without trouble, and merely as a 
racer does who pauses in order to gain strength for an immense 
leap ; reflect on the past as a starter, and then take the leap into 
mctity ! " 



390 THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 


Another time, speaking of the gifts of the Holy Ghost, Father 

Hecker insisted strongly on the necessity of the acquirement of 
the gift of fortitude for those so actively engaged in the works 
of mercy, saying: "The saints afford us beautiful examples of 
this gift of fortitude. Take Saint Peter, for instance ; he was a 
poor fisherman ; he had little learning ; I am not sure that he 
could read ; I never found it stated anywhere, and I shouldn't 
wonder if he could not; the schoolmaster .was not abroad then ! 
Yet he undertook to conquer the great metropolis of the world, 
and he did conquer it, for though it was not until the time of his 
successors that Rome became wholly Christian, still the victory 
was in the heart of Saint Peter. And what led the great apostle 
to undertake such an enterprise ? The gift of fortitude. I have 
never yet met with a religious who was ambitious enough ! Our 
hearts are all so little, so miserable; there is no 'one who would 
think of converting a city ; and America oh ! perhaps that might 
come to pass in two or three centuries. Do you pray for the 
heretics in the ^country where you are living? Oh! for a heart 
as large as that of Christ, that we might embrace all within it, 
and pray for all for whom he died." 

Again, speaking of that recollectedness which he called " soli- 
tude of the heart," how beautifully is the idea developed : " Many 
voices come to us daily, but we do not hear them ! Yes, our 
angel guardian thinks many things to our advantage, which he 
would tell us, but he cannot be heard. At times God wishes you 
to be silent and listen to him. God is all in all, you are noth- 
ing at all. We suffer because we cannot learn this truth; we 
give up if we can-not be the actor in all our affairs. When God 
requires you to be active, be so use your oars ; but when a 
breath comes from God lay aside the oars and put up your sails ; 
they will carry you on while you hardly know it. There is no 
one who listens to him to whom God will not speak, not only 
to those who are saints, but to those who are wishing to be 
saints. It is the delight of God to be with us ! This is a mys- 
tery of love beyond our comprehension, but let it excite our 
adoration. Listen to his voice and not to that of a creature. I 
would be happy if my tongue were paralyzed, and I could not 
speak one word to you, if this would make you listen more at- 
tentively to God. It seems as if he himself were saying this 
to me : You are impertinent to speak now ; let my spouses lis- 
ten to my voice! One word from God is worth more than all 
I could say to you in a thousand years. I remember that when 
I was a student and in retreat, and they would call me to the 



1889.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. 391 

conferences, I used to say : Let me be, let me be, let me be ! 
When God is heard a person feels that everything else but him 
is impertinent ; God speaks to his people, to his saints, and to 
those who turn to him." 

His words of encouragement to those timidly inclined were 
like a clarion call. " Be generous ! " " Break loose give up all 
to God ! " " Keep your feet free ! I imagine there are persons 
whose feet are entangled with little yarns ; every now and then 
they try to walk and cannot on account of them ; they only 
wind around them more and more. These are the little scruples, 
this trifle and that trifle, from which to get disentangled one 
must make an act of generous confidence and then throw one's 
self on God." 

And thus he spoke of our Blessed Lady : " Look at your ex- 
ample, the Blessed Virgin Mary ; who ever undertook more than 
she did ? She is the ' strong woman ' of the Scripture from the 
infancy of Jesus to the foot of the Cross. Follow in her path ; 
it will be following her humility, confidence, and courage. Call 
on her in every want, or doubt, or difficulty even in your hopes. 
Let the name of Mary be always on your lips ; it is a word of 
predestination ; she is a ' tower of strength.' With the saints 
we find that their devotion to Mary increased in proportion to 
their sanctity. This Mother can carry all our burdens. If we want 
to do something and cannot do it, if we have not strength, ask 
her and it is done ! Tis so with the little child ; if there is 
anything he cannot do, he goes to his mother ; if he is tired, he 
is carried in her arms. Mary's arms are full of graces which she 
is more anxious to give than we are to receive ; she delights to 
ind hearts prepared for them. You will advance rapidly and un- 
msciously if you are borne in her arms. Beg of her, then, to 
ive you some of her humility and courage, and call on her in 
things." 

What a sublime closing of a Christmas retreat is the follow- 
ing : " I leave you now in the hands of the lovely Infant Jesus ! 
[ow can we keep our eyes from gazing continually on his 
>eauty ! Ask at the manger for the spirit of those vows that 
r ou are about to renew. What an example he is there of these 
id of every Christian virtue ! What a model of religious obe- 
dience, of perfect poverty, of mortification ! Tell the Divine 
Infant to put his little hands into your hearts and to take out 
everything that is displeasing to him there. Ask of his sweet 
Mother, Mary, perseverance in your holy resolutions ; ask her to 
bless you with the holy Infant, as the church says : ' Nos cum 



392 THE. SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 

prole pia, benedicat Virgo Maria ' May the Virgin Mary with 
her loving Child bless us ! The Blessed Virgin Mary is an inven- 
tion, so to say, of God's mercy to deceive himself. He pleads 
for justice in the cause of God; she for mercy in the cause of 
humanity. No wonder the church calls her 'our life, our hope.' 
She is our life ; our lives are sheltered from the justice of God 
beneath the mantle of Our Lady of Mercy." 

Father Hecker was the means of introducing to Mother Agnes 
O'Connor one who was destined to become a shining light in St. 
Catherine's, and for whom his friendship lasted until the very 
end, Mother M. Augustine MacKenna. While engaged in mis- 
sionary duty in a quaint little village on the banks of the Mo- 
hawk (since a thriving city) he formed the acquaintance of this 
heroic soul, to whom his voice was that of " one crying in the 
wilderness." For long years circumstances had prevented Miss 
MacKenna from devoting herself to God in religion, though she 
led a life of no ordinary sanctity in the world. Now, under 
Father Hecker's guidance, both she and her younger sister, Julia, 
entered the community of which he was so fond. Father Hecker 
and Mother Augustine had a strong foundation for their mutual 
attraction ; they had many traits in common apart from the no- 
ble, absorbing spirit of self-sacrifice that dominated in each. 

When they first met Father Hecker had not yet become the 
founder of the Paulist congregation, and his generous heart was 
filled with the greatest desire of laboring for the conversion of his 
own American people. Mother Augustine's heart, too, was bleed- 
ing at the woes of her native race, and all the energies of her 
strong character, even before she became a religious, were put 
forth to aid and protect those whom poverty and distress were daily 
banishing from the shores of green Erin. Her yearning was es- 
pecially for the friendless young girls. How unceasingly she 
struggled in their behalf, in the face of all obstacles, as a Sister 
of Mercy for nearly thirty years, the eloquent voices of the mul- 
titude thus befriended, of those saved in their early childhood 
and grown to womanhood beneath her maternal care, have borne 
fullest testimony. When in 1868 the burden of the office of su- 
perior was laid upon her, Father Hecker, in his congratulatory 
visit, said : " Now I am going to give you a maxim as a little 
guide ; will you remember it ? " " Gladly, father, and practise 
it if it is in rry power," was the ready response. " Monstra te esse 
Matrem" repeated Father Hecker most impressively, and giving 
her his blessing, he withdrew. 

Never was maxim more deeply taken to heart ; never in all the 



1889.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY. IN NEW YORK. 393 

annals of the community was there a mother more truly beloved, 
a superior more really a mother in the widest acceptation of the 
endearing appellation. None ever came to her and went away 
uncomforted ; no work of zeal, or charity, or mercy that did not 
bear the signet of her magnanimity. For nine years she filled 
the onerous post of mother-superior, but when the last triennial 
had expired failing health precluded the possibility of her con- 
tinuing in the office, and she was appointed to the charge of Saint 
Joseph's Home, East Eighty-first Street. Here Father Hecker 
visited her as often as time and his own precarious health would 
permit. Among her papers is found the following allusion to one 
of his visits : 

" To-day Father Hecker began almost at once to speak of 
faith." He said " that we are ready enough to believe in the 
Power of God, that he is able to do all things, able to help us 
both in natural and supernatural things ; in his Wisdom, that he 
knows what is best for us, and why and when it is best; but 
that we have not sufficient faith in his love, in his will to help 
us. We do not believe, as we ought, that no human father ever 
desired the welfare of his child as God desires it ; that no human 
father ever longed for the love and confidence of his child as our 
Heavenly Father desires our love and confidence. No one but 
a Christian can call God his Father. He may be called Creator, 
Preserver, but not Father. It is through Christ that we can say 
' Abba Father!' Was not such a visit worthy of these two 
great souls ? It reads like a passage from the life of the gentle 
Saint of Geneva and that of his holy daughter. At another time 
r ather Hecker caused a great sensation in Saint Joseph's. To 
ic question of the smart little girl acting as portress : " Who shall 
tell Mother Augustine ? " he laughingly answered, " Oh ! telt her 
holy father wants her for a few moments." The child, in her 
ccitement and admiration at his imposing appearance, thought he 
id said " The Holy Father," and straightway through the house 
lashes the wonderful news, " The Pope has come to see Mother 
.ugustine ! " Father Hecker enjoyed the report immensely. 

In the hospital conducted by the Houston Street sisters at 
Beaufort, North Carolina, during the war (1862-1863) Mother 
Augustine was the ruling spirit. No task too heavy, no duty 
too lowly for her willing hands. Cleansing the most repulsive 
/ounds ; writing home to the friends of the poor "boys"; soft- 
ening many a prejudice which had its origin in total ignorance 
of the faith and charity that could dictate such heroism, she and 
her fellow-laborers in this corner of the Master's vineyard must 



394 THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. [Dec., 

have reaped golden store for the eternal harvest. Their first 
converts were a poor old colored woman and a soldier who 
had never professed any religious belief whatever. The poor 
negress was dying, and could only be taught the essentials, but 
she seemed consumed with love of our Lord. As the sisters' 
chaplain, a dear old foreigner who had not much command of 
English, administered the last Sacraments he exclaimed, " I would 
like to give her indulgence plenaire, but she know not, she know 
not ! " And surely she knew nothing about it, but there was every 
reason to hope that her soul was pleasing in the sight of its 
Creator. More remarkable still was the good old father's admo- 
nition to the soldier, whom he baptized with great ceremony in 
the sister's pretty little chapel : " Now, you are one holy Roman 
Catholic Church, and you must live in good example." The 
poor fellow recovered from his wounds and really led an exem- 
plary life. 

Mother Augustine always undertaking the most arduous work 
that was to be found, pleasantly reminding the sisters, "I am 
the daughter of an Irish giant " contracted a painful disease 
during her hospital duty that gradually undermined her great 
strength, and for twenty years afterward she knew no day 
without intense physical suffering. Still her life was one of labor 
until 1880, when a sharp attack of pneumonia so weakened her 
constitution that although she- recovered she was never again 
able for active duty. The last three years of her life were 
spent at the Convent of Our Lady of Mercy, Balmville (New- 
burg, N. Y.), which house was the last she had established 
during her office as mother-superior. Through the kindness of 
one of the Paulist Fathers she heard often from and of Father 
Hecker all this time. His last letter, dated Saint Mary's of the 
Lake, June 28, 1883, was a source of intense satisfaction to 
the suffering mother, but her profound humility would not let 
her see how she could possibly have been " a consolation to 
him." He writes : 

" MY DEAR SlSTER : I fear you will slip away unless I write 
a word to you by return mail. Though we Catholics have a 
telephone between this and the other world, still, while we are 
here let us use the present gifts Uncle Sam's mail. You have 
always been a consolation to me by your fidelity to the grace 
of God. Be of good courage, and thank God for the grace of 
perseverance in his service. You do not miscount on my pray- 
ing for you. The priests and students who are here for the 
summer remember you in their Masses and prayers. Next 



1889.] THE SISTERS OF MERCY IN NEW YORK. 395 

Sunday my Mass shall be offered up especially for you. I am 
only able to say Mass on Sundays and days of obligation, but 
you have my constant prayers. Your good sister who went be- 
fore you will rejoice at your coming. I know you will not forget 
me and all that concerns the glory of God wherever you can 
be of aid. I thank you in advance. As for me, ten years ago 
I died. My present life is only a special prolongation. Let us 
live, what time is yet given us, in the light of God's presence. 
Then it is all the same whether we be here o,r there. God 
bless you and keep you always in his holy Presence. 

" Yours faithfully and affectionately, 

"I. T. HECKER." 

There was only the slight difference of six days in the ages 
of Father Hecker and Mother Augustine. He was born De- 
cember 19, 1819, and she on Christmas Eve of the same year, 
but his life on earth exceeded hers by five years, she having 
been called to her eternal reward on the 2d of August, 1883, 
the great day of the Portiuncula. In her last illness Mother 
Augustine's old love for the land of her birth and for every 
Irish memory increased each hour. " My ruling passion," she 
used to say ; and when in the prayers recited aloud constantly 
at her bedside the aspiration, " Jesus, Mary, and Joseph," was 
repeated, she would quickly add, " and Patrick and Bridget" 
" assist me in my last agony ! " Being questioned by dear Mother 
Catherine as to what she was whispering 1 , she replied : "Just a 
little prayer of my own, darling." When asked to pray earnestly 
in heaven for the community she answered, " Why, of course, 
and for every one in it ; but Ireland, Ireland ! ah ! won't I pray 
for Ireland ! " 

And so they pass the great and the good leaving us to 
tread the Via Crucis without the help of their inspiring counsel. 
Let us hope that in the Eternal Presence their loving supplica- 
tions follow us in our painful exile through this valley of tears. 

S. M. D. 



396 NATIONALITY AND RELIGION. [Dec., 



NATIONALITY AND RELIGION. 

The Question of Nationality and Religion in its Relations to the Catholic 
Church in the United States. By Rev. A. H. Walburg, Rector of St. Augus- 
tine's Church, Cincinnati, Ohio. St. Louis, Mo. : B. Herder. 

THIS is a well-written and well-intentioned brochure on the 
vexed question of nationality and religion, and as we believe it 
not only reflects the sentiment but expresses the conviction of a 
not inconsiderable number of our Catholic brethren in the West, 
we deem it worthy of an extended notice. 

The general contention f the reverend author is that the 
national sentiment of a people is the best safeguard of their 
religious sentiment, and his particular conclusion that the German 
language and German customs should be preserved as long as 
possible in the German Catholic churches and schools of this 
country. The premises, it is true, would hardly seem to contain 
the conclusion, and the argument is neither very definite nor very 
direct, but it is none the less the conclusion drawn. He insists that 
to Americanize the German Catholics is to jeopardize their faith, 
and to make the English language the language of their churches 
and schools is to Americanize them. 

Very few will be disposed to cavil at his general thesis. It 
would be little short of a paradox to deny that the national and 
religious sentiment are closely interwoven, and that the one helps 
to vivify and sustain the other. Every person of ordinary in- 
telligence fully understands this ; and no Catholic who has the 
interests of religion at heart could be so stupid as to seek an 
absolute divorce between them. No such foolish proposition has, 
we trust, been yet advanced in this country by any member of 
the Catholic body worthy of notice, and we have little fear that 
it ever will be. Now, it is just here, and here chiefly, that the 
reverend father is greatly at fault in his view of the subject. He is 
charging on a wind-mill, imagining it to be a frowning castle. 
He seems to think that there is a party in the American Church 
that is plotting to eradicate every feeling of foreign nationality 
from the Catholic body ; he even speaks of the Know-nothing 
party in the church itself, and he quotes the late Dr. Brownson and 
others still prominent in Catholic affairs as representatives of this 
radical spirit. 

The profoundest admirer of Dr. Brownson would hardly un- 



1889.] NATIONALITY AND RELIGION. 397 

dertake to defend all that he said on any subject. Yet we fail to 
see how any Catholic, having the welfare of the church in this 
country at heart, would disapprove of the sentiments contained in 
the following statement of his position as given in this pamphlet : 
" Our line of policy should be to live in conformity to American 
life, manners, and institutions in all respects in which they are not 
directly incompatible with Catholic faith and morals. Our best 
safeguard will be found, not in building up a wall of separation 
between the American and Catholic communities, but in making 
our children feel that the American nationality is their national- 
ity, that Catholics are really and truly an integral portion of the 
American people, and that we can be good Catholics and at 
the same time loyal Americans, and earnest defenders of politi- 
cal, civil, and religious liberty." 

The noble old philosopher never advocated an absolute divorce 
between the national and religious sentiments of his brethren in 
the faith. He, in common with other leading Catholic minds, 
wanted the church and her children in this country to put off 
foreign customs and peculiarities that are local and non-essential, 
and to assume a tone more in harmony with present surround- 
ings ; and this was progress in the right direction, for the law 
of all normal growth is harmony with environment. And when, 
long years ago, the same great thinker insisted that there was no 
incompatibility between Catholicity and an honest sentiment of 
American nationality he. asserted a truth which every year and 
every day of our national and religious life reiterates and em- 
>hasizes. 

There is no purpose, there can be no purpose on the part of 
ly of our leaders to exorcise the patriotic feelings of any peo- 
)le or race in order to make them Catholics on the American 
)lan. But there must be a desire, nay, a downright sense of duty, 
m the part of those who guide the destinies of the church in 
lis country to exorcise all idiosyncrasies, eccentricities, and ex- 
rgerations, whether of foreign or native growth ; and if this be 
Americanize the church, by all means let the process proceed 
rapidly as may be. 

The church enters upon one of the greatest enterprises of her 
livine mission in this land, and nothing should be suffered to ham- 
>er her progress. The faith of Peter, the faith of Rome, that 
has conquered the Old World and founded its civilization, is the 
faith that is destined to prevail in the New World and crown its 
greatness, finding here the best conditions for its ideal develop- 
ment. Old- World customs and peculiarities have no place in this 



398 NATIONALITY AND RELIGION. [Dec., 

work ; they but retard it and mar its purpose. The bark of 
Peter, in her long voyage down the centuries, has necessarily 
picked up excrescences on the waves of time and in the harbors 
of Christendom, and the constant care and effort of the great 
pontiffs who guided her course have been to remove these. 
Why not, then, scrape off all such when the grand old bark en- 
ters on a new and propitious voyage freighted with the hopes and 
destinies of a whole hemisphere ? The faith, the absolute faith 
and practice, of Rome we must have ; let not one jot or tittle 
be changed ; but don't impose upon us the national peculiari- 
ties or religious eccentricities of any race or people under the 
sun. 

The intelligent author of the pamphlet under review is, we are 
happy to say, in accord with us in all this, and takes much the same 
ground. But, nevertheless, there is the insistance running all 
through his work, indirectly of course, that the German Catholics 
in this country should be allowed to manage their own religious 
affairs in their own way and after the German fashion, and any 
attempt to hasten their adoption of American methods is to en- 
danger their faith. He takes a rose-colored view of the strength 
and vigor of German Catholic organizations and their power for 
good, which is probably warranted by his immediate horizon, but 
certainly is not sustained by a general survey of the religious con- 
dition of German Catholics throughout the country; and his state- 
ments on this head, though no doubt justified by his own obser- 
vations, must seem not a little exaggerated to many of his readers. 
Now, we frankly confess that we fail to see the need of keeping 
up strictly national organizations within the church in this country, 
and while we freely admit that some good may be accomplished 
by them, we are quite convinced that the harm done the general 
cause of Catholic unity is far too high a price to pay for the 
particular good that may be accomplished. 

As to the advantages or disadvantages that may come to re- 
ligion from prolonging the use of the German language in the 
churches and schools of that nationality, it is altogether too grave 
a matter to be decided by a stroke of the pen. The policy and 
the practice of our most able and zealous churchmen has always 
been, and still is, to promote the establishment of German churches 
and schools whenever and wherever necessary, and to discounten- 
ance their exclusively national character only when the necessity 
for it ceased to exist. Whether the change should come about 
after one generation, or two or three generations, is a question 
largely conditional on place and prudence. And most assuredly 



1889.] NATIONALITY AND RELIGION. 399 

no one can accuse our American bishops of overhaste in this 
matter. Our own conviction is that the sooner the change can 
with safety take place the better, not only for the good of reli- 
gion in general, but also for the good of the individual souls con- 
cerned. The examples adduced by the writer in support of this 
part of his thesis do not seem to us to affect the case in the 
least. The non est similis ratio of St. Thomas may be applied 
to each and all of them. 

To encourage every little nationality amongst us and they are 
legion to have each its own ecclesiastical establishment would be, 
in our opinion, to postpone the progress of our faith in this 
country for half a century, and lose much of the vantage-ground 
we have already gained. Narrowness begotten of national and 
sectional feeling would take the place of that broad and fraternal 
Catholic spirit which we would all insist upon as characteristic of 
our religion, whose motto is unity of spirit in the bond of faith. 

No better witness to the evils that flow from exaggerated na- 
tional feeling and the confusion it produces in the fold can be 
quoted than the late saintly Bishop Neumann, of Philadelphia. 
Few men had a wider experience as a missionary among different 
nationalities than he, and fewer still had a wider charity for the 
failings of human nature. On page 184 of his life, written in 
German by Rev. John A. Berger, C.SS.R., and translated into 
English by Rev. Eugene Grimm, C.SS.R., we find the following 
[uotation from a letter written by Father Neumann, then a young 
missionary in Western New York, to Rev. Father Dichtl : 

f< Our Germans all live this way in the woods. . . . Here all are expected to 
contribute towards the maintenance of pastors and teachers, and no matter how 
trifling the contribution, there are some who think themselves entitled to a voice 
in parochial affairs. Others wish to see the non-essential customs of their own 
country, their own diocese yes, even of their own parish introduced and followed 
here in their new home. The consequences likely to flow from such a state of 
lings may be readily imagined. Party spirit becomes the order of the day a 
;pirit to be counteracted only by patience and prudence on the part of the 
)astor." 

What would be the character of our Catholicity if this petty 
spirit of nationality were to assert itself throughout the whole 
American Church ? if Poles, Bohemians, Italians, French, Ger- 
tan, Irish, and their sub-divisions were to insist on perpetuating 
indefinitely their native customs, languages, and religious pecu- 
liarities ? Would there be any future for American Catholicity ? 
We very much regret that the reverend author of this pamphlet 
should mar the customary moderation of his language by placing, 

VOL. L. 26 



400 TALK ABOUT NEW ROOKS. [Dec., 

as he unfortunately does, prohibition on a par with Mormonism, 
free-lovism, etc. Though born in this country, he proves him- 
self intensely German in sentiment by this ridiculous classifica- 
tion. Nor do we think his strictures on American nationality in 
good taste. No doubt he aims to do full justice to the positive 
side of American character, but his portraiture of the negative 
side is certainly rather prismatic. 

That the author is actuated by only the very best intentions 
in the publication of this brochure we have not the slightest doubt, 
but we have very serious doubt as to the prudence and propriety 
of scattering such views as he advocates broadcast ; it only adds 
to the difficulties of the situation, and seeks to retard the work 
of unification which is as inevitable as the march of time. 

LEWIS R. HUBBARD. 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

LIKE his previous ventures into the debatable land of his- 
torical fiction, Ernst Eckstein's latest novel, Nero (New York : W. 
S. Gottsberger & Co.), must be accounted a success. It has that 
first and most essential requisite in a novel, sustained interest, a 
thing we take to be more difficult to achieve in a tale purport- 
ing to find its basis in history than in almost any other case. 
How nearly the present novel adheres to actual fact in its delin- 
eation of its hero is another question. Certainly, Eckstein's 
Nero is not the Nero of Tacitus. He is not a tiger-cub, harm- 
less so long as he is caged, or until his fangs and claws are 
fully grown, but with every ferocious instinct latent in the very 
germ. He is merely a specimen of the domestic cat, felis do- 
mestica, an extraordinarily robust one if you will, which has 
been caught away by violence from the hearth where he would 
have purred in peace, thrown ruthlessly into the jungle, and 
trained there to savagery against his gentle inclinations. He 
is, in short, the victim of circumstances, " more sinned against 
than sinning " while yet malleable, and in his rehabilitated and 
restored condition he makes a fit companion-piece to Froude's 
Eighth Henry. There is an uncommon likeness between the two, 
one must admit, in whatever guise or by whatever artist they 
are limned, whether Tacitus and Nicolas Sander lay in the fresh 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 401 

colors, or Froude and Eckstein apply the whitewash brush by 
way of toning down the too vivid effects of the first por- 
traits. 

The pivot on which the present novel turns, and by means 
of which old scenes and incidents are brought into relations 
accordant with modern notions and reasonably explicable 
according to modern motives, is Eckstein's conception of the 
freedwoman Acte, who appears in every account of Nero's ca- 
reer. The chroniclers of the time agree in awarding her, either 
explicitly or by implication, the praise of having entertained a 
sincere, unambitious, and persistent love for him, from those days 
of his early youth when the passion was both mutual and sole on 
either side, until his disgraced remains owed their sepulchre to 
her faithful hands. Suetonius says that Nero, wishing to make 
her his wife, suborned witnesses to swear that in her native Asia 
she was of royal birth. She has been identified, how truly we 
cannot say, with that concubine of Caesar's, mentioned in a pseu- 
do-Clementine epistle, whose conversion by St. Paul was said 
to be the direct cause of the apostle's martyrdom. Eckstein 
does not follow this version of her story. In his tale she is a 
Christian from the start, and one whose persuasive eloquence and 
winning grace have made her a most efficient proselyter to the 
faith she learned from the lips of St. Paul at Corinth. The 
apostle, mentioned more than once, does not appear as a character 
in the tale. Acte, the freedwoman of a zealous but not scrupu- 
lous convert called Nicodemus, a friend of Seneca, is purposely 
thrown by him in Nero's way. The motive of Nicodemus is the 
conversion of Nero, or, if that be unattainable, at least the se- 
curing of his leniency towards his Christian subjects for the 
sake of the love which he believes Acte will be certain to in- 
spire toward herself. For the sake of the great good which he 
hopes for, he stifles the inward voice which warns him not to 
do evil that good may come. What he has foreseen .happens 
so soon as they are brought together. But Acte, presaging her 
danger, refuses the task of persuasion which Nicodemus imposes 
on her, and, flying from Rome, hides herself at once from 
Nero's love and the harshness of Nicodemus. All search for 
her proves unavailing, and Nero, having abandoned in despair 
his hope of union with her, yields to his mother's persuasions 
and marries Octavia. His impulses, which, thanks both to nature 
and to the training of Seneca, had always tended toward good, 
still persevere in that tendency, although robbed of their elastici- 
ty by this loveless marriage and his continuous grief. Their 



4O2 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Dec., 

spring of hope is broken. Immortality, which had been taught 
him by Seneca, as a state in which personal identity would be 
lost in God, though apparently comprehensible, created no en- 
thusiasm, but it had become " another thing when thought of as 
consciously shared with one beloved. Could Acte have been his 
wife instead of the unloved Octavia, 

' ' with what mighty deeds would not love and happiness have inspired him 
deeds which, as it was, he could only strive to accomplish in weariness and grief 
by the aid of Seneca's cold precepts and Nicodemus' fantastic theories. Yes, 
he might have triumphed ! He might have been the immortal creator of a glo- 
rious era of human freedom and fraternity. The Heaven of the Nazarene, with 
its peaceful and beautiful pardon, had seemed a reality in fair Acte's eyes." 

Presently Acte reappears, and, having found her, Nero suc- 
ceeds, though with difficulty, in stifling her scruples. As she 
will not permit him to divorce Octavia for her sake, he hides her 
in a suburban villa, and there, regaining happiness, regains also 
the hearty will to reign with justice and hold supreme power as 
an instrument for the welfare of all his people. He listens to 
the doctrines of a faith whose law she has broken but whose truth 
she clings to from the lips of Acte, and finds it plausible if 
not convincing. It is, at all events, her faith, and for her sake 
it shall be sacred in others. Apparently the scheme of Nico- 
demus has succeeded. 

From this point on the story follows with more or less 
fidelity the historical record. Agrippina, though not painted in 
such lurid colors as in the annals of Tacitus, appears as the 
direct cause of her son's crimes as well as their most hideous 
result. Discovering Octavia's unhappiness and the secret cause 
of Nero's new joy, she espouses the side of the wife, abducts 
Acte, and plans, for her a death so like that afterwards con- 
trived for herself by Anicetus that Acte is saved in almost the 
same manner. She is rescued from drowning by Abyssus, that 
freedman of Octavia whom Nero afterwards put to torture and 
death when he divorced his wife at the instigation of Pop- 
paea, and is taken to Octavia's villa. The empress recognizes 
her, but pities and forgives her. Acte herself becomes peni- 
tent for her fall and seeks to expiate it by hiding herself once 
more, and this time finally, from the lover whose rage and 
despair at his deprivation are now greater than when he lost 
her first. 

She does not reappear until the closing scene. Nero, mean- 
while, follows his downward route through a category of crimes 



.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 403 

lessened by Eckstein from the classic number by the expedient 
of throwing the murder of Britannicus on Agrippina, and suffer- 
ing Poppaea to die from a fall instead of being kicked to death 
by her spouse. Rome is burned, but not by Nero, who works 
heroically to save it. But he burns the Christians, wrapped in 
flaming tow, in the Vatican Gardens, and the scene is laid be- 
fore the reader and made impressive. The book is translated by 
Clara Bell and Mary J. Safford into correct and fluent Eng- 
lish. 

Miss Lucia True Ames' novel, Memoirs of a Millionaire 
(Boston and New York : Houghton, Mifflin & Co.), belongs to 
the panacea class of light literature. It is, says the author in 
her dedication, " written for all men and women to whom the 
privilege of American citizenship has been vouchsafed, and to 
whom the stewardship of wealth has been entrusted." Miss Ames 
has suggestions to make concerning the wise employment of money, 
some of which, that, for example, which indicates the ' use to which 
the roofs of tenement-houses might be put as playgrounds, are good 
and seem feasible ; others, like her plan for establishing public libra- 
ries in small towns and villages, which are worth considering by 
people who have brains and consciences as well as heavy pur- 
ses ; others, again, like her foreign missionary schemes, which are 
nothing if not funny. 

The novel professes to give the history of rather more than 
one year in the life of Mildred Brewster, a New England girl, a 
graduate of Smith College, capable, " viewy," wholly emancipated 
from the orthodox Protestantism in which she was reared, and 
rith pronounced opinions concerning " the American idea " and 
roman suffrage. In early youth she had felt an urgent long- 
ig to go to the heathen as a missionary, but, thanks to " Kant, 
[egel and Fichte, Carlyle and Emerson, Robertson, Stanley, 
fillips Brooks, and, more than all, the unprejudiced study of 
le Bible itself," she has been brought to the cheerful persuasion 
rhich* she puts thus before a still believing friend: " Whether 
le resurrection of Jesus Christ be literal fact or not, it in 
rise affects my immortality. My faith rests on something surer 
tan the accuracy of any historic fact." 

To this airily confident and serenely beautiful young sceptic, 
rhom the authors she names appear to have helped to an un- 
shaken security that not one of themselves ever attained, comes, 
one fine day, a windfall of something like twenty-five millions of 
dollars, a bequest from a rejected lover. With it she sets to work 
instanter to regenerate society, or as much of society as twenty- 



404 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Dec., 

five millions can be conveniently made to cover. It may do for 
a Russian fanatic like Tolstoi' to preach and practise voluntary 
poverty as a means to social reorganization, but Boston has its 
weather eye open to the fact that "money makes the mare 
go." Mildred's naive belief in the power of money, and the 
whole-hearted worship given to it in this story, have certain qual- 
ities we do not remember to have seen equalled elsewhere. 
However they may strike the unprejudiced observer, there is noth- 
ing cynical in them so far as the author's intention goes. Nothing 
but pure infantile simplicity, relying in trustful confidence on the 
inability of " Christian and Protestant " human nature to resist 
any hook very thoroughly baited with ready cash, could have dic- 
tated the scheme for foreign missions which Miss Brewster lays 
before " five people of different religious faiths, the broadest-minded 
and most public-spirited persons known to " her, with such sug- 
gestive initials as " Revs. P B , A McK , E. E. H , P 
M , and Mrs. A F. P ." Into the complete details of it we 
have not space to enter. It is to be called " The Christian Mis- 
sionary Fund," and its work, so far as it concerns the five trus- 
tees, one of whom is always to be a woman, is to be " entirely 
unsectarian, though always distinctly Christian and Protestant." 
The fund, amounting to two hundred thousand dollars yearly, is 
to be applied, first, " towards promoting the spiritual and mental, 
and thus indirectly the material, welfare of the most helpless and 
degraded people on the globe " ; second, to promoting Christian- 
ity and education in lands like Japan ; and thirdly, to endeavors 
to diminish the slave-trade wherever it exists, and for preventing 
the liquor-traffic between civilized and barbarous nations. These 
most laudable ends having been duly laid by Miss Brewster be- 
fore her silent, attentive, and reverend committeemen and woman, 
she further explains to them that in the sending out of mission- 
aries no acceptation of creeds shall be required of any applicant. 
Every woman employed shall receive the same salary as a man 
would for doing the same work. No distinction with regard to 
sex shall be made in sending out preachers and pastors, and all 
women who desire to preach and to administer the sacraments 
shall be " authorized to do so if possessed of proper qualifica- 
tions." 

" I told the trustees," goes on the large-minded Mildred, "that although 
their work as trustees was to be entirely undenominational, and that they were to 
discourage any sectarian work in whatever schools and churches might be estab- 
lished, this was not to be interpreted to mean a refusal to send good men and 
women, even if they held narrow sectarian views. / hold myself too liberal to re- 



1 889-] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 405 

fuse to send any one who can do any good, even though he hold medieval views 
on eschatology. If a man can persuade a savage to wash his face and stop beat- 
ing his wife, / am willing to allow him his cassock and crucifix, and all the joys 
of a celibate High-Churchism, so long, at least, as he holds himself responsible to 
no other body than the committee of my choosing. I have observed that a fair 
amount of civilization, intelligence, and real Christianity can co-exist with a very 
crude theology." 

If not so brutally vehement as the good Queen Bess's ad- 
dress to one of her refractory bishops, " I made you, sir, and by 
God I will unmake you ! " this is quite as savagely simple in 
its estimate of the weight of will and money when put in the 
scale against private judgment in matters of religion. Aside 
from the points we have mentioned the book does not call for 
notice. 

Although he has by no means written a complete biography 
of his illustrious father, Mr. Wilfrid Ward has produced a most 
interesting and valuable book about him : William George Ward 
and the Oxford Movement. (London and New York : Macmillan 
& Co.) Possibly he intends to supplement it with some fuller 
account of Dr. Ward's Catholic life, the present volume bring- 
ing his career just within the threshold of it. To the general 
reading public that portion must be, without doubt, the most 
attractive, perhaps, also, the most useful. 

Viewed in the light here thrown on him from his very ear- 
liest years, Dr. Ward seems to have offered in his entire inte- 
rior make-up ideal material for conversion to Catholicity. There 
was in him (to put the intellectual side where he would himself, 
have put it, in the first and lowest place) a remorselessly clear 
mental vision, which apprehended almost instantaneously what- 
ever lay within its scope, which followed unerringly every ray 
of light, and tracked it to its source by a sort of unconscious 
instinct which made him careless of the surrounding darkness. 
With this clear vision went what does not invariably accompany 
it, an equally clear and uncompromising speech, a candor of ut- 
terance which made his word a nearly transparent medium for his 
impressions and his convictions. That trait marked him through- 
out, making him as thoroughly an enfant terrible in the nursery 
and the school-room as he was later on, when propounding 
the natural results of " free inquiry " in religious matters with 
such fatal effect in the case of Arthur Hugh Clough, or when 
making the famous speech in the Sheldonian Theatre, which pre- 
ceded his condemnation by Convocation and the deprivation 
of his Oxford degree. As a boy it appeared to him a com- 



406 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Dec., 

monplace and inevitable matter to reply to a tutor who found 
fault with his answer to a mathematical problem: "I don't 
know why it is, but when I see that my answer to a sum is 
right, I don't care if all the world says it's wrong. I know it's 
right " as, indeed, it proved to be. As a man, arraigned for pub- 
lishing that remarkable book, The Ideal of a Christian Church, 
which, appealing to thinking men in all camps, yet commended it- 
self entirely to very few, any attempt at conciliation, or at explana- 
tion which should minimize differences or represent him as in any 
manner open to conviction, was as foreign to him as one might 
suppose it to an unsophisticated savage. Accused of saying 
that at his ordination he had signed the Thirty-nine Articles in 
a " non-natural sense," his only defence was to reply that in the 
first place the Oxford Convocation had. no claim to represent the 
Church of England, and in the second, that, conceding for the 
sake of getting a hearing that its members did hold the place of 
his judges, yet they were so blinded by pre-judgment of ques- 
tions which had nothing to do with his special case that it would 
be almost impossible for them to decide it justly. 

" All the wishes in the world cannot alter facts," he said to them. " Your 
belief that certain doctrines are pernicious can have nothing to do with the ques- 
tion whether they are allowed by the symbolical documents of the English 
Church ; and yet I cannot but fear that vast numbers of you mix up in your 
minds these absolutely distinct matters, and spare yourselves the trouble of ex- 
amining this question that is before you, because of your intense conviction on a 
question you have nothing to do with. And this difficulty of procuring a fair 
hearing is greatly increased by the necessary nature of my defence. I subscribed 
certain formularies in what I have called a non-natural sense. Granted. But is 
it the intention of the Church of England that they necessarily be subscribed in 
a natural sense ? If it be, then it is the intention of the Church of England that 
there shall be no subscribers to them at all." 

It was the tu quoque argument the readiest and the heaviest 
bludgeon ineffectual chiefly because the heads before him, even 
if naturally wooden and not incapable of being broken, were 
protected by that impenetrable covering of prejudice which the 
white wig worn by English judges not inaptly symbolizes. " If 
I signed them, as I confess, in a non-natural sense," was the 
burden of Ward's reply, " which one of you who are my accu- 
sers signed them in the natural sense ? What special gloss each 
put upon them he alone may know, but we all know that there 
was a gloss in every case." That was William George Ward's 
intellectual equipment, singleness of vision and transparent 
speech. 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 407 

Alongside of it lay something more not so much more pre- 
ious in itself as indispensable to the full use and final attain- 
icnt of all that was implied in his intellectual endowment. " I 
is once wondering," says St. Teresa, '' why God values humil- 
ty so greatly ; and as I wondered, I saw it was because humility 
truth." If it seem paradoxical to speak of so blunt, so un- 
>mpromising, so aggressive a personality as yet most essentially 
id thoroughly humble in mind as well as in heart, it is so only 
the sense which makes of a paradox simply an unrecognized 
tth. His only sovereign was Truth, and he was so loyal a subject 
tat this submission freed him entirely from what the spiritual writers 
ill human respect. He knew that he saw with almost unerring 
Decision what came within his intellectual range, but he accounted 
lat faculty as little meritorious, as little capable of supporting a 
structure of personal pride as would be its counterpart of un- 
clouded bodily vision. It was useful, certainly, but what more 
could be truthfully said about it ? There was in him no manner 
of affectation. He was able to look at his own mind just as he 
would at another's, or, to put it on another plane where the fact 
can be aptly illustrated, as he did at his own minor peculiarities. He 
seems to have been as destitute of personal vanity as he was 
guiltless of intellectual pride. During his school days at Win- 
chester, while prefect, it was his habit to go to the large school- 
room early, in order to get the full benefit of a custom called 
" pealing," in which the juniors gave vent to their sentiments by 
shouting out some characteristic criticism of their personal pecu- 
liarities to each prefect as he entered. Most of them shunned 
lis ordeal by coming in only at the latest moment. But Ward 
ijoyed it. He could enter with perfect heartiness into any laugh 
gainst him. The fact was that he rated purely intellectual gifts 
so inferior to the ethical qualities which belonged to the ideal 
had always entertained as highest, and consciously striven 
>ward, that he could scarcely understand intellectual vanity. 
Intellect is a wretched gift, my dear Henry," he said to his 
iend Wilberforce, . " absolutely worthless. Now my intellect is 
some respects almost infinite, and yet I don't value it a bit." 
balance that, he would speak of his moral shortcomings in 
irms as unaffected and, we believe, as really exaggerated. Since 
we believe in the existence of the devil, we must believe that an 
almost pure intellectuality may co-exist with moral depravity. 
But moral excellence has also the nature of vision. It cannot be 
so divorced from true intelligence that it can ever be true to say 
that " intellect is a wretched gift." For it is the gift which cor- 



408 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Dec., 

responds to faith ; it is the solid foundation of the natural rational 
order on which is built the supernatural which completes, not 
annuls that order. There is a true sense in which we may speak 
of Satan, almost pure intelligence that he is, as extremely stupid. 
The rational creature is not a Cyclops. His vision of truth is 
impaired if he loses either the intellectual or the moral eye with 
which he was made to contemplate it. It was because the reli- 
gious side of him was developed in a degree so exactly propor- 
tional to the intellectual that Ward not only saw the whole round 
of speculative truth, but acknowledged so ingenuously and wore so 
faithfully the yoke of Him who, proclaiming Himself the light of 
the world, yet imposed but one essential preliminary on those 
who would be enlightened by Him. " Learn of Me," He says, 
" not to penetrate all secrets of wisdom, but first and before all, 
to be meek and lowly of heart. He that will do the will of My 
Father shall know of the doctrine, whether it be true." 

It is interesting to find Ward preaching on that text, bear- 
ing hard upon it, making it the true philosophical groundwork 
of his whole system of religious thought while yet, by outward 
position at least, an Anglican. Truly speaking, we suppose him 
never to have been other than essentially Catholic. For what 
does it mean to be that, except to have both the heart and the 
intelligence candid, unbiased by pride, filled with true desire for their 
only satisfaction, God, adapting Himself to the capacity of human 
nature? What differenced Ward, what differences almost any 
sincere Christian of clear intelligence from agnostics of the Hux- 
ley type, is not their failure to see the difficulties which lie in 
the way of acceptance of Christian doctrine and history on 
the merely intellectual side meaning here by intellect the power 
which draws conclusions from the purely external premises pre 
sented to the senses and intrinsically capable of reproduction 
and re-presentation to the senses of other men. Those difficulties 
are patent enough it is supremely easy to stumble over them. 
What makes a Christian of the special type which our times are 
more and more demanding, is not his blindness on the side of 
the discursive reason, but his^ equally clear perception of the 
reality of that interior life on which all morality depends save 
that which can be effectually safeguarded by the police. That 
objectivity which practical reason demands, and which is the strong- 
hold of the scientific man for all purposes, both constructive and 
offensive, the Christian knows to be as essential to all those inter- 
nal operations which make him aspire toward holiness toward 
union, that is, with the God and Father of his spirit. The impulse 






1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 409 



which makes him seek bodily food is not stronger nay, as the his- 
tory of all the martyrs proves, it is often not so strong as that which 
draws him to the source of that life which transcends the senses. 
The Christian is a whole man ; both his eyes are open. He has 
grasped the fact that Christianity is not a mere set of doctri'nes, 
but a matter of experience ; a life above nature, into which 
a man must be re-born, and in which he breathes a new air 
and exercises new faculties. He apprehends by his senses and 
assimilates by his natural reason that knowledge which makes it 
possible for him to li/e with other men in a world which is 
ringing on all sides with the despairing cry of those who do 
not flinch from tracking their sense of duty as remorselessly 
home to a purely natural source as they have done those ex- 
ternal and forensic evidences on which Christianity, considered 
as a simply human and historical system, rests. He sees and 
feels the thorns that beset that path as keenly as any agnostic 
or pessimist or profligate of the lot. But he sees, too, that the 
moral and spiritual ideal remains as fixed and permanent as 
the sun in the material firmament, witnessed to as certainly by 
the anguish and the falls of the morally or spiritually blind 
as by the security and peace of those whose vision of it is un- 
clouded. Not all who are Christian see explicitly the dilemma 
which confronted Ward, but each in his own measure, when 
confronted with the cavil of the atheist or agnostic, finds his own 
justification in a process which is implicitly the same. We can 
hardly do better than quote the summary of that process which 
his son has given in this volume. More and more as contro- 
versy grows hotter, and the merely natural seeks to aflirm itself 
to the utter denial and exclusion of its complement in the su- 
pernatural, that side of the case will need reaffirmation : 



" His original tendency had been, feeling the difficulty attending on all proof 
in matters of doctrine on the one hand, and on the other the absolute and unde- 
niable reality of the conscience and the moral law, to minimize the former, and 
to insist on the latter. But when as time went on he came to feel that that very 
minimum of doctrine which was necessary as a support and sanction of the moral law 
must fade away before the consistent application of the latitudinarian intellectual 
principles, the question presented itself: May there not be after all some indissolu- 
ble connection between the plenitude of" (Christian) " doctrine and the highest 
morality ? Those dogmas which I have looked upon as burdens, may they not be 
after all as helpful to the full development of the moral life as belief in God's ex- 
istence is indispensable to its first rudiments ? Then following on this came the 
conception of church authority as the external embodiment of conscience, com- 
pleting and defining both in religious knowledge and moral precept what con- 
science traced faintly and imperfectly : recognized by men of good-will as the 



410 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Dec., 

vicegerent of God in the world : confirming with a directly divine sanction thos 
reasonings from Scripture which by themselves had seemed so imperfect, just as the 
arguments for God's existence' seemed imperfect without the clear, confirming 
voice of conscience to seal and secure them " (p. 74) ; 

and giving, we may add, precisely, and in a thoroughly ap- 
prehensible and authoritative manner, that explication of man's 
persistent desire for the supernatural and the permanent which 
the " scientist " essays to do for the natural and passing phe- 
nomena of the visible world. 

We are sorry to find the Worthington Company, which has 
put out so many good books as well as so many comparatively 
unobjectionable ones, beginning its new "Banner Library " with 
a tale of adultery, not merely vicious but vulgar in spite of its 
veneer. It is rather too bad to couple John Halifax and Jane 
Eyre and Adam Bede with Adolphe Belot's My Good Friend. 

Marion J. Brunowe ought, one of these days, to give us 
some excellent short stories for young folks, if we may judge of 
her possible achievement from her present success. A Lucky 
Family (New York : A. Riffarth) has some obvious faults in the 
way of style we point out the repeated use of " 'neath " for be- 
neath in descriptive passages, and such expressions as " I will 
never know this lesson " as examples of what we mean but in 
sprightliness, ease, good intention, and lightness of execution they 
are very promising. But the volume stands badly in need of 
more careful proof-reading, and in order to attain justly to its 
probable destiny as a premium book, it will have to undergo a 
thorough revision on both the points we have named. Even the 
highest morality and the most convincing scientific truth gain 
something from a correct and pleasing literary presentation, while 
stories which are to be put into the hands of children and young 
people in their formative stage, fail utterly of one of their final 
ends when they do not measurably succeed in this one. 

The Struggle for Immortality (Boston and New York : 
Houghton, Mifflin & Co.) is a characteristic volume of essays by 
Elizabeth Stuart Phelps. They are all readable, though a flip- 
pancy of expression, which their author seems to regard as a 
kindly condescension to moods and ways of thinking which differ 
from her own, makes them jar now and then on the sensibilities 
of those who agree with her in the main. The paper which 
gives its title to the series seeks to be a development on 
Christian lines of the Darwinian doctrines of evolution and the 
" survival of the fittest." Miss Phelps thinks it probable that 
" immortality is only for the immortal," as we heard a witty 



1889.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 411 

sceptic sum up the result of her speculations the 'Other day. 
And she thinks, moreover, that if the attainment of immortality 
should be represented not merely as a victory of faith and a re- 
ward of virtue, but as a prize which resolution alor;e may win, 
though winning on prescribed lines, it will appeal "to self-re- 
spect " and gain combatants where other motives fail. Lest we 
should be thought to misrepresent her, we quote a characteristic 
statement of her point : 

"It is perhaps true that many a person objects to troubling himself with 
immortality, either as an advantage or a disadvantage, when his attention is con- 
centrated exclusively upon the fact that eternal life involves definite moral con- 
ditions. That it should imply, also, certain conditions of a very different sort is 
quite another matter ; that it should touch the intellect, the force, the good sense, 
or even the simple pluck of a man this is to be regarded. We may be conquered 
through our pride, when we cannot be won through our conscience. He who does 
not find it any longer exciting to be told that he is not good enough to live for 
ever, will scarcely hear 'without interest that he is not strong enough. Many 
of us would rather be called bad than weak. It is an arrest to the thoughtful- 
ness of any man but an inferior one to show him reason why he may be in the 
way of losing an obvious gain through inferiority. Precisely that, such a view of 
the struggle for immortality as we have suggested would undertake to show." 

How is that for a Yankee version of the future life, its mo- 
tives, its punishments, and its rewards, as opposed to what that 
other New England doctress in social reforms and moral issues, 
Miss Ames, pleasantly refers to as "mediaeval eschatology " ? 



412 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Dec., 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 



"OUR SCHOOLS." 

IT is not necessary to force a decision from the Supreme Court of the United 
States in order to ascertain positively whether any portion of the American 
people can claim an exclusive ownership of the schools supported by public taxa- 
tion. We know that such a claim is nflt recognized by the law of any State in 
the Union. The tax-payers as a body are the real owners of the schools built 
and sustained by their money. Whatever declarations may proceed from those 
who want absolute dominion for their vague religious and agnostic theories, the 
fundamental law requires that every honest expression of opinion from tax-payers 
shall be respected. No apology is needed when we as Catholics venture to assert 
our legal privilege by refusing to approve a defective educational system. Being 
citizens, our protests should be attentively considered. We speak as well-wishers 
of our country ; it is foul play to make us appear as enemies of the public good. 
This seems to be the determined policy of the bigots selected from various places 
to keep up the cry of alarm at the meetings in Tremont Temple, Boston. Every 
statement on the school question from a Catholic source is there exhibited in a 
lurid light as coming from the enemies of the Republic. 

There is much to commend in an address on this subject delivered by Mr. T. 
C. O'Sullivan to the delegates of the Catholic Young Men's National Union, in 
Providence, R. I. The passages which we quote have the force of true eloquence 
combined with legal precision of statement : 

" From time to time, by right reverend and reverend gentlemen" (Bishop 
Coxe and others), " it is resolved that ' we guard our public schools from their 
Catholic enemies the enemies of our country that we may transmit our public 
schools unimpaired to posterity.' Now and at all times we solemnly declare, in 
answer to this, that we are not enemies of the public schools, and were a hostile 
hand raised against them we would go at least an equal distance with our de- 
famers in defence of them. But as human establishments are liable to imperfec- 
tions, we believe that our public-school system is not free from them, and while be- 
lieving this, if concerning them we advance a proposition which we conscientiously 
hold to be for the welfare of our national existence, are we to be treated as social 
mutineers, scowled at and howled at and branded as public enemies ? There 
is an American institution quite as sacred as the public-school system the Con- 
stitution of the United States, the charter of our liberties. It was at first consi- 
dered to be as perfect a production as wise and patriotic statesmen could formu- 
late. Yet from time to time other statesmen have suggested amendments to 
the Constitution. Do they live in history as the enemies of the United States ? 

" Along with being somewhat uncharitable, these gentlemen seem to have 
rather cross-grained notions concerning the subject of ' mine and thine ' in this 
matter. Their excessive eagerness to twist the school system into the service of 
their own crooked purposes has made them forgetful of the fact that they are not 
the sole proprietors of the public schools. In their multifarious and sonorous re- 
solutions they modify the subject schools by the use of a pronoun in the first per- 
son, plural number, possessive case, ' our schools.' But, gentlemen, we respect- 
fully submit that you have not as yet purchased our interest in the public schools, 
and until you have received a quit-claim of that interest we protest against your 
taking possession to the exclusion of all other owners. Has it never dawned upon 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 413 

you, gentlemen, that we are associates in this enterprise ? It is about time that 
you opened the window of your soul to the light of the fact that we are copartners 
with you in the ownership of the public schools, and as long as we are, so long 
will we have a voice in their management. We are glad to agree with the gentle- 
men when they give us the opportunity, and we are happy to inform them of our 
hearty sympathy with that clause of their resolution which declares that we shall 
transmit our public schools unimpaired to posterity. But in their anxiety to 
teach only physics and the multiplication table they are in danger of neglecting 
the Decalogue and their own duty to the human multiplication table. Therefore, 
we warn them that while they may succeed in transmitting the public schools 
unimpaired to posterity, they may fail in transmitting posterity unimpaired to 
the public schools. 

" Until we have clothed our national wards, the red Indians, with the powers 
of American citizenship, and have yielded up the reins of government to them, 
we cannot have a government of simon-pure Americans. Strictly speaking, of 
course we are all of alien extraction, and who has the better claim to that kind 
of Americanism as between Bishop Coxe and myself is only a question as to 
whether his grandmother came over in the Mayflower or mine in the Shamrock. 
But for all governmental purposes the alien is a myth. In American law ' an 
alien is a person born out of the United States and not naturalized.' According 
to the fourteenth amendment, ' all persons born or naturalized in the United 
States, and subject to the jurisdiction thereof, are citizens of the United States.' 
Once a citizen an alien no more. None but citizens can have a voice in our gov- 
ernment. Therefore, we cannot have a ' government by aliens,' and when the 
writer in the Forum asserts that we have such a government he must submit to 
the charge either of ignorance or falsehood. 

" As religion and love of country are the safeguards of the state, it is fortu- 
nate for the perpetuity of our institutions that there is a religious trait in the 
American character, and that we have a country which we can love. I take it to 
be the object of our Catholic young men in this Union to cultivate and strength- 
en this love of country, and assist in the preservation of that religious trait in the 
American character. Nor is there anything in our duties as v Roman Catholics 
inconsistent with our loyalty as American citizens. Those who profess to believe 
ic contrary will find, if they take the trouble to inform themselves, that our re- 
igious and our civil obligations are in perfect accord. 

"There is nothing in the practice of religion inconsonant with the stern activ- 
ties of life. The history of our country is replete with beautiful illustrations of 
lis. Columbus the navigator, standing triumphant upon the deck of his ves- 
;1, surrounded by his repentant companions, and gazing with joyful eyes upon 
le land, is not a more inspiring picture than Columbus the Christ-bearer, bow- 
ig in humble adoration before the cross on the shore of the New World. 

" Victorious Washington receiving the sword of conquered Cornwallis at 
r orktown is not a more thrilling sight than Washington suppliant and on 
bended knees in the snows of Valley Forge, beseeching the God of battles for 
strength and fortitude in that hour of tribulation." THO MAS MCMILLAN. 



NOTE TO ARTICLE ON THE CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY. 

The writer of this instructive article is no doubt aware that the rector of 
the University has intimated his intention to accept the diploma of a regularly 
constituted Catholic college in lieu of examination for admittance to matriculation. 
He therefore has reference to examinations not only for entrance but also for 



4 14 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Dec., 

place in class or for prizes. We take pleasure in printing herewith the following 
sentences from a recent address of Father Richards, S.J., President of George- 
town College, as they refer to matters treated of in the present article : 

" There is, indeed, one other agency which, as I foresee, will be of decided 
benefit in aiding us to overcome the failings I have noted. When the Catholic 
University of America opens its doors to all comers and subjects them to a rigid 
matriculation examen we shall have a test to which we can appeal. Then the 
colleges which have been working through good and ill report to maintain a high 
and ever-increasing standard will be known, and those which have traded on the 
name without the substance of Catholic college must sink to their places of high- 
school or academy. In this I see the shadow of good to come. I know not what 
others may feel, but I for one am impatient for the day when the Catholic Uni- 
versity will open its literary courses." 



THE "PLEA FOR ERRING BRETHREN." 

Those of our readers who may wish to peruse the original paper written by 
the author of the above-named article in the present number, and entitled " Have 
Protestants Divine Faith ? " which is referred to on page 355, will find it reprinted 
with justificatory remarks in the New York Freeman 's Journal of dates Novem- 
ber 10 and 17, 1888. 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS OF BOOKS, ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WEST FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY. 

The Catholic papers of the United States have kindly given much of their 
valuable space to notices of the Columbian Reading Union. A favor- 
able comment in the Ave Maria, published at Notre Dame, Ind., has brought us 
many letters asking for further information. For several prominent editorials we 
are indebted to the Catholic Review and the Pilot. We extend thanks to the 
editors whose words of approval are here quoted to show the general interest 
awakened in places widely separated : 

From the Catholic Columbian. 

11 In order to do away with the reproach that Catholics are not acquainted 
wiih Catholic literature and to direct readers in search of the best books in every 
department of knowledge, especially of history, science, fiction, and biography, 
THE CATHOLIC WORLD has undertaken to form and guide and advise the Co- 
lumbian Reading Union, which is an aggregation of Reading Circles and of 
individuals animated with the high purpose of cultivating the acquaintance of the 
leading Catholic authors. 

" The work is worthy of the best efforts of the scholars who conduct that 
brilliant magazine. 

" For the managers of the project .to be successful, however, it must be ap- 
preciated. Reading Circles must be formed. Individuals must seize the oppor- 
tunity for trustworthy direction in their search for information and intellec- 
tual recreation. The condition of membership is only one dollar a year, and in 
return for this sum members will receive the circulars, guide-lists, catalogues, and 
other publications of the Union ; have books they want bought for them at a dis- 
count, and obtain all the benefits of association with and suggestions from other 
students of literature in the organization." 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 415 

From the Dakota Catholic, 

" It is not to the credit of Catholics in the United States that Catholic litera- 
ture notoriously receives too little encouragement at their hands. Their indiffer- 
ence to the proper support of the Catholic press is a constant topic of complaint, 
but it extends to Catholic works generally. So marked is the fact that, while 
secular works of all kinds 'find ready publishers and abundant sales, he who 
would give a new Catholic work to the public must go down into his own pocket 
for the expenses of publication, but few publishers being found willing to assume 
the risks involved. Yet we have an abundance of excellent Catholic reading 
matter which is unknown to the generality of Catholics. Any effort to bring 
these works more largely before the people is a commendable one, bound to pro- 
duce excellent results. For some time THE CATHOLIC WORLD, of New York, 
has been maturing'plans for a general movement, which has now taken shape by 
the organization of the ' Columbian Reading Union.' The object of the society 
is the diffusion of good literature. It will consist of a central organization, and 
membership to include those in charge of parochial and public libraries, Reading 
Circles, and other literary organizations in the church, as well as individuals who 
desire to cultivate a better acquaintance with Catholic authors and standard 
writers of the best general literature. As soon as practicable, suitable lists of 
books for different classes of readers, juvenile and adult, will be prepared and 
generally circulated. Every one who has had experience with libraries knows that 
each class has its own tastes, and that the same works are not suitable to the 
educated and the partially educated, the male and the female, the working class, 
the professional class, and those of leisure. The best selections can only be made 
by persons of experience, who, by exchanging opinions and working together in 
such an organization, can accomplish the best results. The organization will be 
supported by membership fees and donations from those who desire to be its 
patrons. Books can be donated and circulated through the membership of the 
Union. Any organization or individual can obtain membership by sending one 
dollar in postage stamps or postal note. Persons ordering books in quantities 
will have the advantage of the most liberal discounts. We hope and expect 
it advantages to result from this movement, and ask the hearty co-operation 
our readers in making it successful, and of advantage to themselves and to 
e Catholic people of the United States." 

The Pittsburgh Catholic makes a good argument against unjust competition 
in literature as follows : 

" In complaining about the lack of support given to Catholic literature, our 
esteemed contemporaries overlook the fact that general American literature 
suffers in the same way. There are exceptional works which achieve great suc- 
cess ; but we have not lacked them also, as, for instance, Cardinal Gibbons' 
Faith of Our Fathers, whose circulation has probably reached two hundred 
thousand. But these will always be exceptional. We know of two successful 
novels, as they are called, from which the authors received the magnificent royal- 
js, respectively, of sixty-five dollars and thirty-five dollars ; nor wjre they Cath- 
lic novels, nor written by Catholics. Our whole literature suffers from the 
unjust competition of limitless piracy, rendered possible through lack of an inter- 
national copyright law. So long as we are flooded with these cheap reprints, so 
long will the growth of true American literature be impossible. Indeed, the 
question is one beyond dollars and cents, and we would be glad to see Congress 
pass such a law without waiting to tinker up a treaty with other nations. Then 

VOL. L, -27 



4i 6 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Dec., 

we should see a vital growth of Catholic literature, along with a healthier tone in 
the general productions of the country." 

From the Church, News, of Washington, D. C. 

" We must hail with the greatest satisfaction any plan which will lead our 
people to devote more time to mental improvement, for one of the greatest evils 
of the present is the indifference of so many regarding healthy literature. The 
daily papers are widely read by young and old ; so are the popular novels, whose 
sickly sentimentality destroys in the hearts of hundreds the noble sentiments im- 
planted therein by parents and teachers. In fact, every kind of literature which 
appeals to the coarsest tastes and satisfies inordinate curiosity finds a welcome, 
and not unfrequently from those who have been educated in our best schools. 
Hence, any plan which will create a desire for good reading-matter and a hatred 
for the vile trash now so popular must necessarily receive the encouragement of 
all whose approval is worthy of consideration. 

" Whilst the Reading Circles may not be able to accomplish all that is claimed 
for them by their immediate friends, still there is no good reason why they 
should not be tried. We know that men are greatly moved by circumstances 
without being aware that they are influenced by other than their own minds ; so 
that we find at almost every step what is vulgarly called a ' craze ' that is, the 
popular mind is directed toward one object so decidedly that everything else is 
made to stand aside in its pursuit. This being one of the customs of society, it 
is well to make use of it for good rather than evil. We all know that there is no 
difficulty in directing the minds of the majority of the people toward those things 
which please the lower tastes, but it is not so easy to turn the tide of public 
opinion in the direction of the pure, the noble, and the exalted. 

" If Reading Circles should not be the great success expected, still there is no 
reason why they should not be permitted to do all the good possible. By their 
aid every man will be enabled to accomplish something of value to his neighbor. 

" There is among all classes a desire to imitate what others are doing suc- 
cessfully. If a Reading Circle be well conducted it will not prove advantageous 
for its own members only, but it will cause others to be founded in the immediate 
neighborhood. By this means the good work will spread, and every man who 
aids in organizing a Reading Circle may be sowing the seed which shall bear rich 
fruit where he little expects it. Unfortunately, quite a number of young men 
when they graduate imagine that for them there is no need for further study, and 
yet the most brilliant school-days are but the foundation on which to build. 

" Let Reading Circles be at once organized, whether they are to be permanent 
or short-lived, for they must result in great good to all brought within their 

influences." 

From the Catholic Home, of Chicago, Ills. 

" THE CATHOLIC WORLD contains the working details of the Reading 
Circles, from which much solid good is reasonably expected. To make Catholics 
acquainted with the works of their own writers, and to guide them in the selec- 
tion of books in the various departments of literature, history, and science, and to 
stimulate and form in them a taste for the best literature, are the objects of these 
Reading Circles. In places where the Catholic community is small and the whole 
tone of society is hostile to the church these Reading Circles will be of great ser- 
vice. Even in larger communities, where there are church libraries or sodality 
reading-rooms, the list published by this nevv Reading Union will be very useful. 
They will, we hope, have the effect of teaching the young Catholic not to talk of 
Catholic literature, English, American, Irish, French, and German, as if it were 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 417 

beneath contempt. Of the millions of Catholics able to read in this country 
there are multitudes who know as little about Catholic literature as they do about 
Hebrew. It is the purpose of the Reading Circles to make Catholics take an in- 
terest in their own magnificent literature ; to make them acquainted with Wise- 
man and Manning, with Newman and Faber, with Lacordaire and Montalembert 
and Dupanloup, with Brownson and Spalding and Hecker, with Kenrick and 
MacHale and O'Hagan, with Lingard, Darras. and Shea, and hundreds of others 
whom we cannot enumerate. To make readers and authors acquainted, and to 
form the taste of young Catholics on sound principles, will be the chief good ef- 
fected by the Reading Circles." 

We have received information from England of a meeting recently held at 
the residence of the Earl of Aberdeen to inaugurate the Home Reading Circles 
Union, the work of which will be associated with the university extension 
movement. The plan proposed is to arrange courses of reading for different 
classes of readers, especially for young people and artisans ; to establish local 
circles for discussion of specified subjects, and to organize summer assemblies 
at which lectures will be delivered, prizes and certificates given, and social 
gatherings fostered. Distinguished names appear among the vice-presidents, 
such as the Archbishop of Canterbury, the Duke of Argyle, Professor Bryce, 
M.P., Sir W. Hart Dyke, M.P., Mr. Robert Browning, and Archdeacon Farrar. 

One of our correspondents sends us a lengthy report, from which we shall 
quote some passages, indicating the success which has attended the efforts of 
a popular writer, Mr. George W. Cable, in directing 

THE HO>ME CULTURE CLUBS. 

The report says : " It is not our plan to work mainly through public, but 
private relations. Our efforts are to individuals, not classes. We seek to help 
one another as personal friends in one another's homes rather than to supply 

>mething else instead of home. Ours is a scheme to know personally those who 
can make use of our friendship, and to give them that friendship in such ex- 
:hange of mutual benefits as may be mutually chosen. 

" The Home Culture Clubs are an attempt to give the fullest practical rec- 
)gnition to the fact that what the homes of the people are so the people will be ; 

lat mere legislation, and especially compulsory legislation, cannot alone elevate 
and purify public society ; that no multitude of organized benevolent efforts, ad- 
dressed to men and women in mere classes and masses, and which leave the pros- 
perous and unprosperous individual strangers to each other, can ever establish 
that personal friendly confidence between them which is essential to the largest 
and best results in character and conduct. On the other hand, our plan keeps 
in view that it is human nature that makes the dividing lines of private society, 
and that any sentimental effort to ignore those lines which offers sudden violence 
to them must fail, whether they be the outcome of ambitions or of condescen- 
sions. 

" We seek now as we have not sought before to extend those clubs far and 

ade. What is good and practicable for one town is good and practicable for 
one thousand other goodly towns. There are thousands of good people, young 

id old, male and female, who want to give some effort of their own to the bet- 
terment of others less fortunate than they, yet have no fortunes to bequeath nor 
any consciousness of large executive capacities calling them to the prosecution of 
large benevolent schemes. Fprm a Home Culture Club. Let it be made up of 
from three to seven or eight members. Never let it meet for mere play, never 



4i 8 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Dec., 

give it what will either waste the time or overtask the feeblest member. Do 
not let it interfere with a full share of out-door enjoyments. Do not force 
gratuitous social promotions. Let the club choose its own pursuit, only see that 
it is some pleasant profit, and first, last, and always bear in mind that the ulti- 
mate purpose is not to see how many pages of good books a group of persons can 
read or how much French or German or biology it can study, or how much good 
music it can hear, but that it is to open a field in which, without those social 
confessions which those in humble life abhor as cordially as any do, we can with 
the. least possible condescension or embarrassment bestow a practical and bene- 
ficent friendship on those that need it most. 

" This scheme is beginning to cost money. Its expense is almost nothing in 
proportion to its operations, but it is enough to make it very desirable that each 
club should establish a penny treasury. One or two clubs did this last year. A 
contribution of two pennies for each member at each weekly meeting will pay the 
secretary and his or her expenses. The reading-rooms are a much larger pecu- 
niary item. The expense of furnishing and keeping them open has been met 
by generous citizens." 

In previous numbers of THE CATHOLIC WORLD we have published many 
interesting letters supporting our Reading Union, which is now attracting wide- 
spread attention. Some of the most thoughtful and suggestive letters came from 
Boston and other places within range of its influence. With much pleasure, 
therefore, we record this month the good news that 

" Boston's first Catholic Reading Circle, according to the plan of the Colum- 
bian Reading Union, effected a permanent organization on the evening of Tues- 
day, October 8, in the Temperance Hall of St. .Joseph's Church, Roxbury, Mass. 
Over sixty ladies were present. The Rev. J. B. Troy, of St. Joseph's, addressed 
the meeting, explaining for the benefit of new-comers the object of the Catholic 
Reading Circles, and the necessity of combating by the diffusion of good Catho- 
lic literature the immorality and infidelity which menaces youth in so much of 
the light literature of the day. Miss E. A. McMahon, of South Boston, tem- 
porary chairman, then presided at the election of officers. These were chosen : 
President, Miss Katherine E. Conway, of the Pilot ; Vice-President, Miss E. A. 
McMahon, of South Boston ; Secretary, Miss Mary Shay, of Roxbury ; Treasurer 
and Librarian, Miss K. Moore, of South Boston. It was decided that meetings 
should be held at eight P.M. on the second and fourth Tuesdays of every month, 
in the Temperance Hall of St. Joseph's. Miss McMahon reported the donation 
of some books for a start towards a reference library. After some discussion on 
ways and means the meeting adjourned." 

The Boston Catholic Union opened the season of 1889-90 with the largest 
attendance ever seen on any occasion since its formation. By invitation of the 
Union, Miss Katherine E. Conway read a paper on " The Ideals of Christian 
Womanhood," which was exceedingly well received. It was announced that the 
Union had decided to call a special meeting of the members and their lady friends 
to organize Reading Circles for the study of our best Catholic literature. These 
circles are intended for both ladies and gentlemen. On behalf of the Columbian 
Reading Union we extend cordial greeting to the new Reading Circles of Boston, 
and cherish the hope that they will let their light shine brightly for the benefit of 
all engaged in the same good work. 

We give two letters from prominent educational institutions : 

" The Reading Union was a pet idea of our school, long wished for, talked 



1889.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 419 

of, and when accomplished under such able direction we may no longer withhold 
the approval given as soon as the Union was mentioned. Our graduates have 
often expressed a desire for just such a circle and wanted one formed from their 
Alma Mater as a centre. That was impracticable, and we even suggested the 
advantages of ' Chautauqua ' and the * Boston Society for Study at Home.' 

" We are delighted that Catholic literature is to be given to our girls, and 
assure you we will do all we can to promote interest in the 'Union.' I have 
spoken to some of the ladies of the congregation, and they will soon form a 
Reading Circle. Our graduates are charmed with the idea of self-improvement 
after school-days, and we will have our present senior class begin the course so 
that they will continue the good work when they leave. 

" Please find enclosed one dollar, our contribution to the Columbian Reading 
Union, to which we desire to be affiliated. We have quite an extensive school 
library, to which our pupils have access at stated times, so that we shall be able 
to supply many of the Catholic works indicated in the courses, ordering others 
as they are required. To the class pursuing the course of English literature the 
direction of the Union will doubtless prove highly advantageous. Being sub- 
scribers to THE CATHOLIC WORLD, we take note of the suggestive remarks in 
the Reading Circle department. * * * " 

The writer of the following letter is entitled to our thanks for his generous 
offering. We would like to see many others imitate his example : 

" I heartily endorse the Reading Union, which will be of great value to 
American Catholics. Could it not be brought before the American Catholic 
Congress to be held in the near future ? I think it is sufficiently important. All 
Catholic papers in the country should also take it up. They don't seem to be 
alive to its importance as they should be. I have not seen a word concerning 
in our local paper as yet, although 1 have watched for it. I enclose five dollars 
help on the good work. Use it the best way you can. J. F. C." 

We recommend J. F. C. to write a letter to his local paper with a request for 
notice. Editors are always willing to accept good suggestions. 

From the office of the Columbian Reading Union a request has been sent 
to the Catholic publishers for a list of the best juvenile books among their publi- 
cations. This list will be published for the guidance of our members in pur- 
chasing Christmas presents. Some judicious friends give books in preference to 
anything else that may be got for the little folks. Many parents have found it 
no easy task to obtain a sufficient variety of books suitable to Catholic children. 
r e hope that our forthcoming list will be of service to them in this matter, 
'rom a large city in the West comes the suggestion that as Catholic book-stores 
re so scarce, an effort be made to induce the managers of stationery stores who 
ceep a book-counter during the holidays to establish a department containing 
Catholic literature. Further suggestions on this plan of extending the influence 
)f our Reading Union will be very acceptable. M. C. M. 



42O NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Dec., 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

BOOKS AND READING : An Essay. By Brother Azarias. New York : Cathe- 
dral Library, 460 Madison Avenue. 

This unpretentious volume will supply a long and keenly-felt want among 
Catholics. Its object is to show intelligent people with a taste for reading how 
to read with the best profit, and as the author is a man of large experience and 
extensive reading, he is well fitted to direct others in the pleasant paths of litera- 
ture. The need of Catholic readers for the last twenty years has been the 
guidance of such minds as his ; the reading habit has become so universal in 
America, and the number of publications so large, and so often of a doubtful 
character, that ordinary readers need to be guarded against vicious trash, and 
also against the fault of reading much and aimlessly. Unfortunately, the rarest 
publications have been essays of this character. In half a century Catholic 
American publishers have been able to bring out but one or two really valuable 
books of this nature. They were sadly defective, yet comparatively useful. But 
in spite of their utility, publishers allowed them to go out of print, and for years 
Catholic readers, the good and bad alike, have been sailing about without pilot 
or compass, some fed on the husks of swine, others devouring with equal relish 
whatever was printed, all more or less tainted, consciously or unconsciously, with 
the errors of the time, which have tinged all literature from the novels of the 
" Duchess " to the essays of Spencer. 

It is curious to note, and instructive to our slow-going publishers, that the 
initiative in providing readers with a safe guide in their reading has been taken 
by a private association, with no experience, no capital, and outside the ordinary- 
channels of trade. Moreover, their intention is to make it Pay. The quality 
of the book is, of course, exceptionally good, and will appeal to the general as 
well as to the Catholic public. It has three distinctive merits, which will securely 
place it in the affections of readers. It has perfect literary form ; it is so thoroughly 
practical that it will fit every temper ; it not only tells how to read and what to 
read, but it abounds in keen and delightful criticism of our leading modern 
authors. Perfect literary form is, we might say, the vice of this age. For its 
sake the world swallows every abomination put forth by the licentious, the crazy 
theorist, the half-cooked atheist. The meanest illustration, the weakest logic, 
the most open falsehood are accepted as clean, strong, and genuine because the 
style is elegant ; and some have come to maintain that the expression alone is 
worth considering. Hence, genuine writers, whose matter is more to them than 
their manner, are apt to receive scant consideration if they are plain, precise, and 
lacking in elegance. The style of this essay is plain, precise, and elegant ; it is 
nervous and concentrated ; every sentence provokes ideas, and each paragraph 
is rich in illustration and allusion. 

Naturally, the eager young reader will think more highly of its practical 
directions than of its style at first, as he ought. The purpose of the essay is 
never lost in fine writing. The rules which show a reader How to Read, and the 
chapters devoted to describing What to Read cover fifty out of the seventy pages 
in the book. In the first part the reader is told to read with attention, to take 
notes, to consult the dictionary, to read with a purpose, to learn the art of forget- 
ting, to be honest in reading and research, to read perseveringly, to master each 



] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 421 

book, and to remember that the best reading is that which tends to growth of 
character as well as to intellectual development. In the second part the entire 
field of literature is spread like a map before the reader, and its characteristics 
plainly marked. History, poetry, biography, and fiction are gracefully treated, 
and the great names that worked in each department held up in the light of 
honest criticism. This criticism and the simple, pure style will make the book 
delightful to those who may not need its advice. The essay is small, but it con- 
tains a great deal. To test the capacity of its author one has but to travel over 
each page at a leisurely pace and note the names, the books, the facts that are 
mentioned, and the intimate acquaintance which the author enjoys with them. 
The essay is a notable contribution to Catholic American literature, and it should 
receive wide-spread recognition from Catholic readers and libraries. 

THE CHURCH IN MODERN SOCIETY. By Julius H. Ward. Boston and New 
York : Houghton, Mifflin & Co. ' 

The author of this book has the highest kind of an ideal. He would have 
the Christian Church exert that organic influence in the social which the state 
exerts in the political life of the people. It might seem at first glance as if this 
were a wholly un-American idea, but one who carefully follows the arguments 
of Mr. Ward will find that he is not an advocate of the union of church and 
state, but of harmony between church and state. This principle makes him 
rather the truest kind of an American. It was never the intention of our fore- 
fathers to establish a government which would antagonize the church. Far 
from it ; they wished to favor the church by giving its influence the widest scope. 
According to their view, the more harmony there is between the laws of the 
state and the church the better. Such schemes as the national secularization 
of education, the exclusive state supervision and control of private institutions, 
the weakening of the marriage tie by divorce legislation, are encroachments 
upon liberty which they never would have sanctioned. These destructive ten- 
dencies have recently developed to such an alarming extent that we are in 
danger of becoming politically an anti-Christian people. We shall, it is to be 
feared, have an agnostic state while only a few of our people are really agnostics. 
If our Protestant brethren were all like the writer of this book, the case would 
be different. But, as it is, hatred of the Catholic religion makes most of the 
sects willing to do anything for its overthrow. They prefer to see the state 
positively anti-Christian, and opposed to themselves, rather than to have the old 
liberties remain if Catholicism will be benefited by them. How true are the 
words of our Lord, " He that is not with me is against me." The Protestant 
religious papers in this country, almost without exception, approve of the war 
which the governments of Europe are making against the church. 

We have the greatest admiration for the few who, like Mr. Ward, dare to 
follow principle without regard to popularity. 

We think, however, his " collective church " is a pure figment of the 
imagination. Only divine, organic unity of the church can make such a state 
of things as he would wish to see possible. Until all Christians are united, and 
all the people are Christian, we cannot hope for a complete influence of the 
Christian religion over all the relations of life. 

LIFE OF ST. BONAVENTURE. Translated by L. C. Skey. London : Burns & 
Gates ; New York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

This book is translated into English, and not into the idiom of the language 



422 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Dec., 

from which it came, with English words. This is more than we can say for some 
of the translations of the lives of the saints into " English." 

As a life of St. Bonaventure it is too short, and not enough is told about his 
life, while too much is said of his works in the field of literature. It is one of 
those books which, being quite satisfactory so far as it goes, yet does not go half 
far enough. 

The work which the saint did for the Council of Lyons would alone fill a 
volume, and it is merely alluded to in a sentence. Our readers want to know 
more about the lives of the saints than their writings. The book is well worth 
careful reading, and we hope that the translator, having shown himself (or her- 
self) so fully competent, will give us the privilege of praising more such work in 
the future. 

THE OSCOTIAN: A Literary Gazette of St. Mary's College, Oscott. The 
Jubilee of Oscott. Oscott : St. Mary's College ; Birmingham : Hall & 
English. 

This book is the literary product of the jubilee celebrations of one of England's 
most notable Catholic colleges. In 1838 Oscott, as at present constituted, began its 
career, though before the end of the last century it had been established in a 
locality, afterwards changed to the present one, in more humble circumstances, 
and some of its most distinguished pupils had studied there. We should cor- 
rect the above expression, " as at present constituted," for recent diocesan ar- 
rangements have put an end to Oscott's career as a college for secular training, 
leaving it, however, the chief seminary for ecclesiastical studies of the diocese of 
Birmingham. We know not how far sincere and deep regret may have place for 
an event which could not have been permitted to happen otherwise than from dire 
necessity. The discontinuance of secular studies will certainly be felt as a misfor- 
tune by all Oscotians, and it will tax their virtue to suffer it with equanimity. 
Oscott lives no longer, except in that shadowy existence called memory, all the 
brighter and more lovely in this case because consecrated to the innocence and 
happiness of youth. 

One of Cardinal Newman's most famous and most finished orations, "The 
Second Spring," was preached at Oscott at the opening of the First Provincial 
Synod of the restored hierarchy of England, and in it he gives a charming bit 
of description of the college buildings, seen through the vista of his noble 
thoughts, upon the restoration of the old religion to the English realm. The 
words are appropriately printed on the reverse of the title-page. Then follow 
jubilee poems in English, Latin, German, French, and Italian, and essays histor- 
ical and biographical. There are thirteen portraits of distinguished Oscotians and 
seven views of buildings, grounds, and other places of interest. A jubilee hymn, 
with music composed for the occasion, completes the volume, to which is added 
an appendix. This last is in some sense the most striking testimonial to the suc- 
cess of the old college's mission, for it is a complete list of the superiors, pro- 
fessors, cardinals, bishops, priests, noblemen, gentlemen, and students of every 
kind who entered Oscott. Among these occur the names of Wiseman, Howard, 
Milner, Ullathorne, and many others distinguished in the cause of religion, and 
very many laymen of mark. We think that any one who knows England would 
say that these one hundred and twenty pages are something like the Roll of 
Honor of the Catholic people of that kingdom. 

The historical and biographical sketches mentioned above are extremely val- 
uable, especially as they are the contributions of that affection which is strong 
enough to afford to be frank. Taken together, they are equivalent to an inner 



1889.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 423 

history of English Catholicity during the last seventy or eighty years, meaning 
that of the pure Anglo-Saxon element. They exhibit in high relief the sin- 
gular fulness of manly virtue and the very notorious excess of love of country of 
the native English Catholic gentry; the former trait in the great and common 
course of the li'/esof the pupils, and the latter in the strange attempt to Anglicize 
the Catholic Church and yet not to de-Romanize it which was defeated mainly 
through the courage and judgment of Bishop Milner. The sketch of that great 
man, signed S. H. S. (Rev. Samuel H. Sole?), is a valuable contribution to the 
study of that very instructive era. 

We have noticed this book at so great length hoping to call the attention of 
our more discerning readers to it as of much permanent value to the student of 
Catholic educational methods, and as of permanent interest to those who would 
fully learn what English Catholicity has been and what it has become. 

LEAVES FROM THE ANNALS OF THE SISTERS OF MERCY. Vol. III. : America. 
By the Author of the Life of Mother McAuley, etc. New York: The Cath- 
olic Publication Society Co. 

The writer of this volume is herself a Sister of Mercy, known as Mother 
Teresa Austin. For many years she has been a zealous worker in several con- 
vents located in the Southern States. The task of gathering the data for these 
Annals has been done chiefly by representatives of the different convents estab- 
lished by the Sisters of Mercy. Among the personal reminiscences thus ob- 
tained from the most reliable sources we find many tributes of affection to the 
memory of the valiant women who spent their lives in the heroic performance of 
corporal and spiritual works of mercy. On the battle-fields of the late war, in 
the prisons and hospitals of our large cities, their words and deeds have exerted a 
potent influence in favor of religion, while at the same time they used all means 
within their power to advance the interests of Catholic education. 

The first volume of these Annals was devoted to Ireland ; the second to Eng- 
land and its colonies ; and the third, which is now published, gives an interest- 
ing account of the Sisters of Mercy in Newfoundland and many parts of the 
United States. A fourth volume is promised to complete the history of their 
foundations on this side of the Atlantic. 

For those who have a desire to know what religious women can accomplish 
for the good of the commonwealth we commend these volumes. No salaried 
officials can be compared with them for unselfish fidelity to the poor. Philan- 
thropists, no matter what may be their religious belief, must admire the gener- 
ous sacrifices made by these good sisters to advance the cause of Christian civili- 
zation by their works of mercy. 

THE ILLUSTRATED CATHOLIC FAMILY ANNUAL for 1890. New York: The 
Catholic Publication Society Co. 

THE CATHOLIC HOME ALMANAC. 1890. New York, Cincinnati, Chicago : 
Benziger Bros. 

EINSIEDLEN KALENDER. 1890. 5o-Jahrgang. New York, Cincinnati, Chicago : 
Benziger Bros. 

ST. OTTILIEN'S MISSIONS-KALENDER FUR DAS JAHR DES HERRN 1890. 
Herausgegeben im Missionshaus St. Ottilien zum Besten der St. Benedictus- 
Missions-Genossenschaft und ihrer ersten Missionen in Deutsch-Ostafrika. 
III. Jahrgang. Dritte Auflage. Commissions- Verlag : Lit. Institut von Dr. 
M. Huttler, Augsburg. 

This batch of calendars reminds us of the coming of the New Year. It is 
sufficient praise of them to say that they surpass even their wonted excellence in 



424 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Dec., 

good reading matter with appropriate and well-executed illustrations. We wel- 
come the Catholic Family Annual as an old friend, and the Home Almanac as a 
worthy competitor for popular favor. For those who read German the other 
calendars are also full of interest. 

FLOWER FANCIES. By Alice Ward Bailey. .Illustrated by Lucy J. Bailey, 
Eleanor Ecob Morse, Olive E. Whitney, Ellen T. Fisher, Fidelia Bridges, 
C. Ryan, and F. Schuyler Mathews. Boston : L. Prang & Co. 

In this exquisite volume we do not know which to admire the more, the 
verses or the illustrations, both charming alike to the eye and to the mind. 
Prang & Co. have given us some excellent art-work, but we know of nothing 
better than this. We can almost perceive the odor of the flowers as we scan 
these pages, and there is a delicate flavor about the poetry which blends har- 
moniously with the richness of the coloring. If even 

" . . . the meanest flower that blows can give 
Thoughts that do often lie too deep for tears," 

this choice selection from the garden should be rich in suggestiveness. And so, 
in truth, has the author found them. The niost pleasing and quaintest of these 
" fancies " is the pansy as Puck's pallet, which must be read with its illustration 
to be appreciated ; while the tenderness and depth of feeling in the poems on 
the lily and the lilac carry them beyond the range of mere fancy. The author 
is the A. B. Ward who wrote " Hospital Life" and "The Invalid's World" 
for Scribner's Magazine of June, 1888, and January, 1889, and " Invalidism 
as a Fine Art" for Harper's Monthly (November, 1888), which articles were 
extensively noticed and copied by the newspapers at the time of their ap- 
pearance. We recommend this book as an appropriate Christmas present to 
an appreciative friend ; in fact, it is gotten up especially with that end in view. 
The beauty of the binding gives us a foretaste of what lies within. 

SOCIETY GYMNASTICS AND VOICE CULTURE. Adapted from the Delsarte. By 
Genevieve Stebbins (Mrs. J. A. Thompson). New York: Edgar S. Werner. 

This little book meets a want long felt by many teachers of the system given to 
the world by Frangois Delsarte. It is, as its title indicates, a compend giving 
the exercises founded on Delsarte's principles that are useful in moulding the 
form, improving the bearing, and giving ease and grace to the movements of 
the body. 

Theories and principles are hardly more than referred to ; but as these do not 
fall within the intention of the adapter, and as there are several extended treat- 
ises on Delsarte's principles, we are grateful for so useful a primer. It is just the 
book to put into the hands of a class of girls or young women eager for self- 
improvement, if they have as its exponent an experienced teacher, one who 
believes thoroughly in Delsarte's fundamental principle, viz. : that the body is to 
be developed, trained, and perfected in carriage and action not for its own sake, 
but that it may more truly and beautifully express the indwelling soul. Delsarte 
himself was a great teacher, one of the comparatively few who teach with the fire 
and genius of inspiration and the loving patience and helpfulness of grace. His 
definition of art as "at once the knowledge, the possession, and the free direc- 
tion of the agents by which are revealed the life, soul, and mind, . . . the relation 
of beauties scattered through nature to a superior type, and therefore not the 
mere imitation of nature," implies the nobility of his conception of his own pro- 
fession as a teacher of art. 



1889.] NE w PUB Lie A TIONS. 42 5 

Chapters xviii. to xxii. inclusive are devoted to voice culture, and are less 
satisfactory than those concerned with general physical culture. A good feature 
is the simple music given at the end to accompany the lessons on " Swaying for 
Poise," " Step and Arm Movements," and " Walking Exercises." 

The book is attractively bound, and is printed from large, clear type on 
poor paper. 

LIFE AND WORKS OF SAINT BERNARD, ABBOT OF CLAIRVAUX. Edited 
by Dom John Mabillon, Presbyter and Monk of the Benedictine Congrega- 
tion of St. Maur. Translated and Edited with Additional Notes, by Samuel 
J. Eales, M.A., D.C.L., sometime Principal of St. Boniface College, War- 
minster. Vols. I. and II. London : John Hodges. (For sale by Ben- 
ziger Bros., New York.) 

The value and the merits of the writings of St. Bernard are well known. For 
a whole generation his influence was the greatest of any in Christendom. A 
perfect monk, the founder of the strictest of the wide-spread religious orders, he 
was at the same time the most active apostle of his time. His life is a practical 
refutation of the assertion that monastic seclusion and contemplation are incom- 
patible with the external duties of the sacred ministry. It is, indeed, a wonder- 
ful thing that this holy man, suffering from such weak health and distracted by 
so many cares, could pray, study, speak, act, teach, and write as he did. God 
seems to have given him all spiritual gifts in their fulness. In his writings great 
natural powers also shine forth resplendently an intellect more acute than that 
of the subtle Abelard, an eloquence that was irresistible, an imagination like a 
poet, and a simplicity that wins the admiration of all. 

The writings of this father and doctor of the church have been extensively read, 
as is shown by the number of editions in other languages through which they have 
passed. But never before have they appeared in English. The translator, Mr. 
Eales, has labored to put before his readers a faithful rendering of the text, and 
has avoided intruding his own opinions of the saint. We desire, therefore, to 
co-operate with him to the full extent of our power in increasing the knowledge 
of this great light of the church among English-speaking peoples, and we hope 
that the work will have a large sale among Catholics. Priests will find it a most 
valuable book for spiritual reading and sermons, and it is chiefly for them that 
the translator has labored. 

The printing and binding of the work before us are superb. 

A HAND-BOOK FOR CATHOLIC CHOIRS. Containing the Vesper Service for 
every day in the year ; arranged specially for the wants of Catholic churches 
and schools. By G. Freytag. Detroit Music Co., Detroit. 

This is another well-meaning attempt to translate Gregorian notation into 
modern. The melody alone is given for the Psalms, Antiphons, and Hymns of 
Vespers. As we have already said in noticing works of this kind, the change of 
notation is not a gain in order to obtain good chanting. Used to indicate chant 
notes, semibreves, minims, and crotchets are notes of false lengths and must in- 
fallibly mislead the singer. Prof. Freytag and other organists accustomed to the 
true chant movement might be able to guide their singers using this book, but 
we are quite sure they would guide them better using the square notation. Yet, 
as we. would rather have chanting in any style than no chanting at all, we recom- 
mend this volume to the examination and trial of all choir directors. We must 
beg leave to dissent from the opinion of the author, " that almost anybody who 
has taken a reasonable amount of piano lessons can learn to play the organ for 
Vespers" with this book, containing only the melody, placed before him. 



426 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Dec., 1889. 

COLUMBIADS. Pearl Drops from the Fountain of Wisdom. By a Random 
Thinker. Columbus, O. : August Reutty. 

We had occasion last month to notice in these pages a book similar in 
character to the above, and written by Mr. Spurgeon, and we only mention the 
Salt-Cellars to note the fact that none of the faults we found in that book have 
a place in this little work of Father Hayes. Indeed, Columbiads deserves far 
more than such negative praise. Though writing of this character is very 
difficult, and too often is labored and heavy, the author writes with brightness, 
ease, and force. Throughout his pages one can find many a sentence " strong 
enough to hang a hat upon," while not among the least of the excellences of 
the book is its thoroughly Christian and Catholic spirit. 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 
Mention of books in thts place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers. 

THE PERFECTION OF MAN BY CHARITY. A Spiritual Treatise. By Fr. H. Reginald Buckler, 
O.P. London: Burns & Gates; New York: The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

SECTARIAN SCHOOL-BOOKS. A Series of Letters. By the Rev. Robert J. Johnson and the 
Rev. George W. Cooke. Boston : Alfred Mudge & Son, Printers. 

SIXTH ANNUAL REPORT OF THE BUREAU OF STATISTICS OF LABOR OF THE STATE OF 
NEW YORK, FOR THE YEAR 1888. Transmitted to the Legislature January 15, 1889. 
Advance pages. Albany : The Argus Company, Printers. 

A CHAPLET OF VERSE BY CALIFORNIA CATHOLIC WRITERS. Edited by Rev. D. O. 
Crowley and Charles Anthony Doyle. Published for the benefit of the Youths' Directory. 
San Francisco : Diepenbrock & Co. 

THE PENITENT CHRISTIAN ; or, Sermons on the Virtue and Sacrament of Penance, and on 
everything required for Christian Repentance and Amendment of Life, etc. In seventy-six 
sermons, with copious marginal notes. By Rev. Father Francis Hunolt, Priest of the 
Society of Jesus and Preacher in the Cathedral of Treves. Translated from the original 
German edition of Cologne, 1740, by Rev. J. Allen, D.D. In two vols. New York, Cin- 
cinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

ANNUAL REPORT OF THE CARROLL INSTITUTE, Washington, D. C., for the year ending 
October 10, 1889. 

FOURTEENTH ANNUAL REPORT OF THE PRESIDENT OF THE JOHNS-HOPKINS UNIVER- 
SITY, Baltimore, Md., 1889. Advance sheets. 

Two SPIRITUAL RETREATS FOR SISTERS. By the Rev. Ev. Zollner. Translated and 
adapted, with the permission of the author, by Rev. Augustine Wirth, O.S.B. Second 
revised edition. New York and Cincinnati : Fr. Pustet & Co. 

THE HYMN-BOOK OF THE NEW SUNDAY-SCHOOL COMPANION. Being the melodies and 
accompaniments of the Mass, Vespers, and Hymns contained in the Sunday-School Com- 
panion. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

THE JESUITS: A Eulogy of the Society of Jesus, against Rev. Dr. Bennett, Pastor of Wesley 
Chapel, Columbus, Ohio. By Rev. John B. Eis, Rector of Sacred Heart Church, Colum- 
bus. 42 South Grant Avenue, Columbus, O. : L. W. Reilly. 

ANCIENT HISTORY, FOR COLLEGES AND HIGH SCHOOLS. By Wm. F. Allen and P. V. N. 
Myers. Part I. The Eastern Nations and Greece. By P. V. N. Myers, President of Bel- 
mont College, Ohio, author of Mediceval and Modern History. Boston: Ginn & Co. 

VEN. P. LUDOVICI DE PONTE, S.J. Meditationes de praacipuis fidei nostrae mysteriis. De 
Hispanico in Latinum translatas a Melchiore Trevinnio, S.J., de novo editas cura Augus- 
tini Lehmkuhl, S.J., cum approbatione Revmi. Archiep. Frib. et Super. Ordinis. In 
duob. part. Friburgi Brisgoviaa et S. Ludovici : Sumptibus Herder. 

NOTES OF LESSONS FOR YOUNG TEACHERS. With models from actual .examination papers- 
By John Taylor, author of How to Compose and Write Letters, etc. Boston : Boston School 
Supply Co. 

A COMMENTARY ON THE HOLY GOSPELS. By John Maldonatus. Translated and edited 
from the original Latin. By George J. Davie, M.A. Exeter College, Oxford, one of the 
translators of the Library of the Fathers, etc. Vol. II., St. Matthew, chap. xv. to the 
end. London : John Hodges. (For sale by Benziger Bros., New York.) 

BEFORE OUR LORD CAME. An Old Testament History for Young Children. By Lady 
Amabel Kerr. London : Burns & Oates ; New York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

REPORT OF THE GENERAL CONFERENCE OF THE YOUNG MEN'S SOCIETIES OF GREAT 
BRITAIN, held at Hull, England, August 4 and 5, 1889. Liverpool : Printed for the Cen- 
tral Council at the Catholic Publishing Depot, 30 and 32 Manchester Street. [This pam- 
phlet contains a number of valuable and well-written essays on practical topics.] 



THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD 



VOL. L. JANUARY, 1890. No. 298. 



MADONNA. 

OUR Lady of the gracious brow and tender eyes, 
Madonna of our hearts, whate'er thy guise, 
Thy power has never faded, Mother mild, 
The world is on thy breast, a little child. 
Vainly it masquerades with purpose bold, 
Feigning to be embittered, hard and cold ; 
Let but thy veil fall, Star of Christmas Night, 
And tired feet climb the old ways into light 
And comfort, and a blessed, peaceful rest. 
The world is yet a little child upon thy breast. 

ALICE WARD BAILEY. 



Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 



428 CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. [Jan., 



CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. 

THE recent religious celebrations mark an epoch in our his- 
tory, and may well continue to arrest our attention. The cen- 
tenary of the founding of the American Episcopate is an event 
calculated to excite prolonged interest in every Catholic heart, 
and the meeting of the Catholic Congress and the opening of 
the Catholic University awaken hopes and feelings which should 
find expression in every organ of Catholic opinion. To exhaust 
these topics or exaggerate their importance were difficult indeed. 

The remarkable progress our holy religion has made in this 
country during the last hundred years is the fact that has been 
most noted, emphasized, and commented upon in the sermons, 
addresses, and newspaper reports which the great occasion in- 
spired. That the little mustard-seed which Archbishop Carroll 
nurtured a century ago should have grown into such a lofty tree, 
on whose spreading branches so vast a multitude of souls find 
rest, is the wonder of the hour. And while the great fact of our 
Catholic progress is being echoed and re-echoed from sea to sea 
it will be well for us to pause and try to solve the secret of our 
success, and thus find guidance and hope for the future. That a 
scattered flock of less than 40,000 souls, tended by a single 
bishop, should in one short century have increased into a mighty 
church organization of over 9,000,000 members, with eighty-four 
bishops, more than 7,000 priests, and a large equipment of re- 
ligious, charitable, and educational institutions, is in truth amply 
sufficient to excite surprise. For although the growth of the 
country itself in the last hundred years has been phenomenal, 
it presents no parallel to this in the matter of religious devel- 
opment. 

When the little Catholic colony planted on the shores of the 
Chesapeake was struggling to maintain its very existence, flour- 
ishing commonwealths, instinct with religious convictions, were 
springing into vigorous life on the New England coast, and there 
the progress of religion and commerce and wealth and edu- 
cation and population went hand-in-hand, so that the religious 
as well as the industrial energy of New England seemed destined 
to absorb the land. But the religious outlook of a century ago 
has completely changed. The faith of New England has failed, 
and no one will now say that it has any future before it. It 



1890.] CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. 429 

soon spent its force because its foundations were insecure, and it 
is already numbered amid the dead enthusiasms of the past. But 
the calumniated creed of the Maryland colony, which a century 
ago seemed so likely to perish, is to-day the triumphant creed 
of the country, because its foundations were fixed in the Rock 
of Peter, and it received new vitality from the generous fountain 
of Ireland's living faith and from the faith of continental Europe. 
Thus the religious history of this Republic furnishes a new proof 
of the power of Catholic faith to perpetuate itself where other 
forms of Christian belief wither and decay, and here, as elsewhere 
in the wonderful story of Christian progress, we can draw the 
same conclusion, that our faith is successful because it is divine. 
Yes, the secret of our success is the dfivine character of our faith ! 
Other denominations had a far better start in this free and gen- 
erous soil ; they had greater wealth, more assured positions, 
superior education, every natural advantage was on their side, but 
we have outstripped them in the race ; they are receding, we are 
advancing, and simply because of our faith. 

The faith that built up the American Church, though a sim- 
ple, implicit faith, was not a passive faith. It was an active, en- 
ergetic faith, a courageous faith, a faith full of the spirit of 
sacrifice. The evidences of its patient energy are illustrated in a 
thousand ways, from the rude log chapels built up by willing 
hands in the backwoods to the grand cathedrals erected by the 
free and frequent offerings of the toiling masses in the great cen- 
tres of population. The hundreds of Catholic institutions that dot 
the land tell the same tale of constant effort, constant sacrifice in 

ic cause of God and humanity that to-day excite the admiration 
)f all men. Nor were we suffered to pursue our course and es- 

iblish our religion unopposed. From the very beginning sec- 
tarian intolerance assailed us on every side. The same generation 
>f Catholic colonists that first proclaimed the great principle of 

jligious liberty on the soil of Maryland were themselves perse- 
cuted for conscience' sake by those whose liberty of conscience 
they had defended. All through colonial days our religion was 
barely tolerated, and was constantly subjected to local outbursts 
of persecution. Notwithstanding the patriotic part taken by Catho- 
lics in the war of the Revolution, a part which the generous spirit 
of Washington fully appreciated and proclaimed to the country j 
notwithstanding the invaluable services which the great patriot, 
Archbishop Carroll, rendered to the national cause, our co- 
religionists were still regarded with ill-concealed distrust and sus- 
picion by their Protestant fellow-citizens. Nor did the additional 

VOL L. 28 



430 CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. [Jan., 

proof of loyalty unto death to the country and its institutions 
which the Catholics gave in the war of 1812 allay their unjust 
suspicions. Long years before the "Know-Nothing" movement 
broke out into open hostility our forefathers in the faith felt the 
bitter pang of religious hate. But they bore up manfully through 
it all and were never wanting in fidelity to their country and 
their God. Forgetful alike of the wrongs they had suffered and 
the absurd prejudices against them, they never for one moment 
faltered in their absolute allegiance to the Republic. During the 
great war of the Rebellion Catholics were not slow in com- 
ing to the defence of the nation, and they were found conspicuous 
on every battle-field until the final blow was struck for the preser- 
vation of the Union. 

The gallant part enacted by our Catholic soldiers and sailors 
in the late war undoubtedly did much to remove prejudice and 
to prove to our fellow-citizens that the institutions of our com- 
mon country had no more brave and faithful defenders than the 
children of the Catholic Church, and it is largely owing to their 
valor and devotion in their country's cause that the church 
enters on the second century of her organized existence with an 
atmosphere comparatively cleared of prejudice and misconception. 
Sentiments of bigotry and feelings of enmity unfortunately still 
linger here and there, but among the masses of our fellow-citizens 
there is no longer any question of our loyalty or any positive 
opposition to our creed. The battle against religious hate and 
intolerance has been fought and won, and the courage and con- 
stancy of our brethren in the past has secured for us a peaceful 
and a promising future. All honor, then, to the faithful souls 
who .professed their belief manfully in the days of trial that are 
for ever past! All honor to the true and simple Catholic hearts 
who in the long years of distrust and hostility fought the good fight 
and kept the faith ! And all honor to the great leaders of our cause 
who stemmed the rising tide of party spirit and guided our 
course into the tranquil waters of the present ! In contemplating 
our success, it were unpardonable not to remember the sacrifices 
that secured them, and to feel a pang of deepest sorrow at the 
fearful losses we have sustained in the conflict. 

The fortitude of our fathers in the faith is in truth worthy to 
take its place in the great records of Christian achievement that 
illumine the march of Catholic progress for eighteen hundred 
years. We cannot, it is true, point to a long array of martyrs, 
but we can point to heroic sacrifices without number, sacrifices 
which in a multitude of cases amounted to life-long martyrdom. 



1890.] CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW, 431 

In days not so remote from our own to profess the Catholic 
religion and to practise it entailed social sacrifices, pecuniary 
sacrifices, political sacrifices, and personal sacrifices of every kind 
which we in our present assured position can scarcely estimate, 
although the ghost of the dead intolerance still on occasion rises 
up before us. And besides the past trials of the faithful at large, 
what splendid examples of sacrifice for conscience' sake have not 
the noble band of American converts furnished to the world ! 
men and women who renounced everything that life holds dear 
to follow their convictions ; earnest souls who severed the 
tenderest family ties, broke the strongest links of friendship, cast 
aside wealth and position to embrace the truth. Yes, every page 
of our history for the last hundred years is replete with sacri- 
fice, and we have triumphed with Christ because we have borne 
his cross. 

Our faith has in very truth moved mountains in the past ; to 
its depth and energy we are wholly indebted for our present 
position, and to the same divine source must we look for our 
future progress. But the conditions of its exercise are altered. 
Hitherto we have been on the defensive. We have had to con- 
stantly receive and resist attack, and make progress withal. 
The time is now at hand to assume a different attitude. It is 
beyond all question that the future of the Christian religion in 
this country is in the hands of the Catholic Church. This is 
admitted openly or tacitly on every side.. If Christianity is to 
continue a factor in the growth of our institutions and in the 
development of our civilization, it must be Catholic Christianity. 

,very other form of Christian belief has lost its vitality, and com- 
pete disintegration is only a matter of years. 

The religious conflict is no longer with bitter sectarianism 
but with blatant infidelity. The foundations of all supernatural 
faith and of all social order are assailed. The cause of Christi- 
anity is betrayed by the pulpit itself. There is no other bul- 
wark to oppose the rising tide of infidelity that is setting in upon 
us save the one immovable, unconquerable Catholic faith. It is 
the only possible barrier. And that it is all-sufficient to meet 

le shock the events of eighteen centuries bear us full witness. 

>ut while we know that our foundations are secure as the ever- 
>ting hills, we must not fold our arms and calmly enjoy our 

xurity. We have a work to accomplish for religion and 

lumanity in this age and country, and woe betide us if we 

ire faithless to the divine trust. 

The principles that lie at the root of all religion and morality 



432 CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. [Jan., 

are at stake, and millions of our fellow-citizens are in danger of 
losing' their hold upon them. The treasured institutions of our 
country are threatened, for it is the testimony of all time that 
whenever and wherever the institutions of God are swept away 
the institutions of man soon follow. The law of God is the only 
enduring basis of human law and order and civilization. We 
are not ignorant of the instability of infidel states. The essen- 
tial character of Christian principles is manifest to us, and we 
must resolutely and aggressively take up their advocacy. An 
aggressive attitude towards the infidelity of the day is a civil as 
well as a religious necessity. 

And the conflict, unlike the religious controversies of the past, 
must not be left to the clergy ; the laity must enter the arena 
and bear a prominent part in the combat. The proceedings of the 
great Lay Congress give assurance that bur representative Catholic 
laymen realize this and are girding themselves for the fight. 
The stand taken by this truly representative Catholic body on all 
the great questions of the hour was the most significant and hope- 
ful feature of the recent celebrations. It was the first time in 
our history that the laity had the opportunity of expressing their 
views collectively on Catholic subjects, and they gave forth no un- 
certain sound. Their noble eloquence, their thorough earnestness, 
and their perfect unanimity have taken the country by surprise. 
Heretofore it was supposed that the clergy were alone in agitat- 
ing certain religious issues, but the action of the Lay Congress 
has dispelled this delusion for ever. The College of Cardinals 
could not assume a more thoroughly Catholic attitude on all the 
subjects discussed, and the Senate of the United States could not 
adopt a loftier tone of patriotism. Both the church and the Re- 
public have reason to be proud of that assembly, and to pray that 
the spirit that animated it may live on to perpetuate our faith 
and maintain our free institutions. The Congress has produced 
fruit already. Its resolution on the question of popular education 
has inspired the best article that has yet appeared on the sub- 
ject from a Protestant standpoint. We refer to the editorial that 
appeared in the New York Journal of Commerce of November 15. 
The writer begins by saying that " the Congress of Catholic Lay- 
men, recently held in Baltimore, has attracted much attention 
from all thoughtful people outside of that communion. Its dis- 
cussions have been marked in the main with much good sense, 
and the ' platform ' adopted at the close of the session, as ex- 
pressing the views of the Catholic laity concerning their duties 
and obligations, contains many admirable statements and sug- 



1890.] CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. 433 

gestions." It quotes the full text of the resolution on education, 
and expresses its opinion of it in the following words : " We re- 
gard it as a noble utterance, containing truths that cannot be too 
attentively considered." It then goes on to discuss the vexed 
question of religious education with a depth and penetration and 
fairness that are unique in the controversy. If the first meeting 
of the Congress has called forth such expressions of public 
opinion, what may we not look for from its future deliberations ? 

This is the age and this is the country of the people, and 
they must make their action felt in religious as well as in sec- 
ular affairs. The laity have undoubtedly kept too much aloof in 
the past ; perhaps the condition of things did not afford them 
the opportunity for more active co-operation in church work, but 
it must not be so in the future. We do not ask them to enter 
within the sanctuary rails, or to assume the role of exhorters, but 
we do insist that they take their full share in the public action 
of the church, and assert their convictions in season and out of 
season. The power of the pulpit to reach the masses is dimin- 
ishing, and the contest for the supremacy of Christian principles 
has to be fought out in the highways and by-ways of life in 
the mills and shops and factories and stores and counting-houses, 
nay, in the very streets and thoroughfares. The day has surely 
come when every Christian man is called upon to give a reason 
for the faith that is in him, and to give that reason at all times 
and in all places. The deluded sons of unbelief are active and 
aggressive ; and are the children of truth to be less so ? Agnos- 
tics, men who have nothing to teach, are zealous in their propa- 
ganda. And are Christian men, who have everything to teach, 
to remain listless and indifferent? This were a paradox indeed. 

Every intelligent believer amongst us should realize that, like St. 
Paul in the old pagan world, he is a witness to Jesus Christ in the 
lew paganism that is upon us. And to bear our testimony intelli- 
gently we must have a reasonable knowledge of the truth as it 
is in Christ and his church. Hence the necessity that exists to- 
day of cultivating a closer acquaintance with Catholic doctrine. 
Ignorance of the ground-work of our faith can no longer be toler- 
ited ; it is a betrayal of our cause. Simple, earnest faith may 
have sufficed for the past, but it can hardly be depended upon 

secure our progress in the future. Nor need we be alarmed 
or disheartened at the prospect of years of profound study and 
investigation. The knowledge we want can be easily obtained. 
Were our intelligent laity to give half the time to the read- 



434 CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEU: [Jan., 

ing of Catholic literature that they give to reading the secular 
press, they would find no difficulty in defending and advocating 
our doctrines. And were they to enter into the discussion of 
Christian principles with half the eagerness they display in the 
discussion of political subjects, they would soon make their 
convictions known and felt throughout the land, and impress 
them on thousands of their fellow-citizens. This lack of know- 
ledge and purpose to propagate our convictions is the great 
want that we must labor with all our might to remedy in the 
near future. 

Catholic literature languishes for want of Catholic support. 
Our best writers find little to encourage them in their work. 
Our people read a good deal, but their taste for sound literature 
has never been cultivated, and runs wild over the wide waste of 
fiction and falsehood with which the teeming press of the day- 
floods the world. We can look for no general advance on the 
part of the laity in propagating Catholic principles until they 
take more interest in reading Catholic books. Whatever men 
read about they are pretty sure to talk about, while subjects that 
do not occupy our minds have seldom any share in our conver- 
sation. Nor let us forget that the taste for religious knowledge, 
like every other intellectual appetite, must be cultivated. 

It is encouraging to know that successful efforts are now being 
made to spread sound literature among the laity and secure its 
perusal. The movement is, of course, only in its infancy, but it 
is full of promise; and we confidently hope that the day is fast 
approaching when want of intellectuality can no more be charged 
against us as a religious body. 

The intellectual side of our church organization is now hap- 
pily crowned by a university where the deepest problems of 
philosophy and science will receive the highest order of treat- 
ment. The need of such an institution has hitherto been keenly 
felt, and the faith that led the intellect of the world for so many 
centuries was placed in an anomalous position amongst us. Our 
institutions of learning, though many and excellent of their kind, 
were not up to the highest standard, and this naturally enough- 
reflected on our intellectual status. But this reflection is in a 
fair way to be removed. The church that founded the great 
universities of the past, which are the great universities of the 
present also, can build up in this genial clime an institution of 
learning that will outstrip all her past foundations and be a focus 
of light in the western world. We have a prescriptive right to 



1890.] CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. 435 

intellectual leadership, and it shall be ours in the future as it 
was in the past. We welcome every advance of real knowledge; 
we are not afraid of the light, we invoke it above all things. 
No greater calumny could be uttered than to say, as has been 
often said of late, that the Catholic Church is opposed to the 
progress of science. Truth of every order finds a ready recep- 
tion in the all-embracing arms of the mistress of truth. We 
have nothing to fear but everything to gain from the growth of 
knowledge ; and the efforts we are making in the cause of 
enlightenment ought to be a sufficient proof of our intellectual 
attitude. Ignorance is one of the great obstacles in the way, 
ignorance from without and ignorance from within, and as a chief 
means of making progress we insist on intelligent study and 
investigation of the doctrines of our faith and the free discussion 
of Catholic principles in their bearing on all the problems of the 
time. 

But over and above all must we prove the sincerity of our 
convictions in the practical conduct of life, if we would continue 
our progress. The mere profession of our faith will count for 
little in the future if not illustrated by the practice of virtue. 
The age is eminently practical and judges the value of principles 
in the concrete, not in the abstract. If we do not prove the 
superiority of our religion in every-day affairs, our arguments, be 
they ever so logical and cogent, will fail to produce conviction. 
The early Christians converted their pagan neighbors by their 
deeds, not by their words only ; and the manilest superiority of 
Christian virtue is still the best argument in favor of Christianity. 
It were vain, of course, to hope that all Catholics would lead con- 
sistent lives. Corrupt, unprincipled, scandalous members there will 
ilways be in the fold, but the morals of the majority must be 
far better than those around them, and a goodly number of noble 
jouls must walk in higher paths of Christian perfection if heaven will 

>ntinue to bless our course and give us increase. Perhaps there 
is more reason for apprehension on this ground than on any other, 

>r the age is growing more and more corrupt, and we are not 
free from its influences ; indeed, our temptations are greater than 
common. The means of moral reformation, however, are abun- 
dant with us, and the steady growth of religious education gives 
rood reason to hope that our moral tone will be raised rather 

lan lowered, and that many more will aim at the highest stand- 
ird of Christian virtue. Then, too, we are quite hopeful that 
the terrible scourge of intemperance, which at present works such 



436 CATHOLIC PROGRESS, OLD AND NEW. [Jan., 

havoc in our ranks and is so great a scandal before men, will 
gradually disappear with all its attendant evils and give place to 
sobriety and industry, the best safeguards of virtue. The social 
surroundings of the working classes will, without doubt, undergo 
considerable change for the better, and this also will be favorable 
to their moral and religious improvement. 

Thus, although there is much that is ominous for the cause of 
religion in the future, there is also much that is bright and hope- 
ful, and, clad as we are in the armor of divine faith and welded 
together in the imperishable bond of Catholic unity, we have 
nothing to fear. On the contrary, we have everything to hope 
for. We have a strong and perfect church organization, we have 
a hierarchy whose zeal and capacity are unsurpassed, we have a 
priesthood able and devoted, we have a laity loyal and intelli- 
gent, we are in complete harmony with our environment. Why, 
then, should we not continue to make progress ? If a simple faith 
that knew no compromise achieved such glorious results in the 
last century, what results may not the same faith, supplemented 
by a higher order of intelligence and direction, achieve in the 
century of promise that is now before us ? May we not even 
hope that the religion which now embraces only a fraction of 
the population of this Republic will, ere another century dawns, 
reign supreme in the hearts of the mightiest, the freest, the most 
prosperous, the most Christian people the world has known ? 

EDWARD B. BRADY. 



1890.] WA SUING TON' s CA THOLIC A IDE-DE- CA MP. 437 



WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. 

THE state church of the colony of Virginia was, as required 
by law, carried on " as near as may be according to the Church 
of England." It used the Book of Common Prayer, but if it did 
not hate bishops with the malevolence of the New England 
churches, it quietly but effectually prevented any bishopric from 
being " planted " in the Old Dominion ; and although there was 
in Virginia a " commissary," a sort of vicar-general of the Bishop 
of London, yet the vestries managed the parson, and the rich 
planters managed the vestries. The rich planters wanted neither 
Catholics nor dissenters in the colony, and .when Lord Baltimore 
came to Jamestown he was insulted and tendered the oath against 
transubstantiation. Religious liberty was, however, established in 
Maryland, on the confines -of the churchman's colony. Baptists, 
Presbyterians, and other " new lights " broke into the colonial 
pastures, and like sheep and goats capered or browsed among 'the 
lordly oxen of the state church, and as they cduld not be driven 
out, they were tolerated, under conditions, until the Revolution 
of 1776 came and carried to Virginia the religious freedom 
founded in Maryland by Lord Baltimore. Meanwhile the Poto- 
mac could not impede, nor the penal laws deter, the busy Jesuit 
searching for souls, and there were Catholics as well upon the 
Virginia bank as on the Maryland bank of the river. There 
were probably hidden Masses sometimes at Alexandria, on the 
river, and the services of the church were open at Rock Creek 
chapel, within twenty miles of the town. 

Among the Catholics whom the tide of immigration bore to 
the Virginia town in the first days of the Revolution John Fitz- 
gerald ranked of all the chief. A young Irishman, active, of fine 
appearance and genial, hearty ways, warm-hearted and outspoken, 
he was a man of the people. Never a suspicion of Toryism 
touched him when days came that tried men's souls and all 
patriots were Whigs. He had married Miss Jane Digges, the 
daughter of a leading family in Maryland, and was at the time 
when Alexandria resolved " If Boston submits we will not," a 
rising business man of the town. He was introduced to Washing- 
ton in April, 1774. On the 24th of that month, when the hos- 
pitable master of Mount Vernon returned, in the afternoon, from 
the direction of his fishing-shore, he found at his mansion " Mr. 



438 WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. [Jan., 

Tilghman, Mr. Fitzgerald, and Dr. Digges, who dined and stayed 
all night," says Washington in his diary. Frequently visiting- 
Mount Vernon after that, he grew in favor with Washington, 
and was always welcome. On the o'ccasion of a visit made in 
August he carried with him another young Irishman, soon to 
achieve distinction in the Continental Army, for it was then that 
Colonel Moylan was introduced to Washington, and, with Dr. 
Craik, of Alexandria, made his company at the generous board. 
Early the next April, after Washington had returned from the 
Richmond Convention, at which Patrick Henry declared, " We 
must fight ; I repeat it, sir, we must fight," a few weeks before 
Concord " fired the shot heard round the world," Fitzgerald, who 
visited Washington with Daniel Carroll, Mr. Tilghman, and Mr. 
Buchanan, of Maryland, and Mr. Herbert, of Alexandria, offered 
his services to the great commander, and was accepted. Fitzger- 
ald had begun business in the town, but leaving business behind 
him, he followed General Washington to the war, and was made 
one of his aides-de-camp. He was especially attached to the 
person of the great chief. It is a tradition that Washington's 
life-guard was his creation. This guard was recruited first at 
Alexandria, and its flag hung in the Alexandria Museum until 
it was burned with the museum in May, 1871. The Alexandria 
life-guard led, however, to jealousies, and at a later period 
Washington's guard was recruited by four Americans chosen from 
each regiment, no one of the recruits being less than five feet 
nine inches nor more than five feet ten inches in stature. 

The most graphic incident of Fitzgerald's connection with the 
great commander occurred at the battle of Princeton, of which 
George Washington Parke Custis, the adopted son of Washington, 
writes in his memoirs : " We have often enjoyed a touching remi- 
niscence of that ever-memorable event from the late Colonel Fitz- 
gerald, who was aide to the chief, and who never related the story 
of his general's danger without adding to his story the homage of 
a tear." Between Trenton and Princeton, Col. Mawhood, with a 
force of British troops, had put to flight a body of Americans and 
mortally wounded their commander, General Mercer. 

' "Mawhood," writes Irving, "pursued the broken and retreating troops 
to the brow of the rising ground, when he beheld a large force emerging 
from a wood and advancing to the rescue. It was a body of Pennsylvania 
militia, which Washington, on hearing the firing, had detached to the sup- 
port of Mercer. Mawhood instantly ceased pursuit, drew up his artillery, and 
by a heavy discharge brought the militia to a stand. At this moment Wash- 
ington himself arrived at the scene of action, having galloped from the by- 
road in advance of his troops. From a rising ground he beheld Mercer's troops 



1890.] WASHINGTON' s CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. 439 

retreating in confusion, and the detachment of militia checked by Mawhood's 
artillery. Everything was in peril. Putting spurs to his horse, he dashed past 
the hesitating militia, waving his hat and cheering them on. His commanding 
figure and white horse made him a conspicuous object for the enemy's marks- 
men, but he heeded it not. Galloping forward under the fire of Mawhood's 
battery, he called upon Mercer's broken brigade. The Pennsylvanians rallied at 
the sound of his voice and caught fire from his example. At the same time the 
Seventh Virginia Regiment emerged ;'rom the wood and moved forward with 
loud cheers, while a fire of grapeshot was opened by Captain Moulder, of the 
American artillery, from the brow of a ridge to the South." 

Mr. Custis thus depicts Fitzgerald in that momentous scene : 

" The aide had been ordered to bring up the troops from the rear of the 
column when the band under General Mercer became engaged. Upon return- 
ing to the spot where he had left the commander-in-chief, he was no longer 
there, and, upon looking around, the aide discovered him endeavoring to rally 
the line which had been thrown into disorder by the onset of the foe. Washing- 
ton, after several ineffectual attempts to restore the fortune of the fight, is seen 
to rein up his horse with his head to the enemy, and in that position to become 
immovable. It was the last appeal to his soldiers, and seemed to say, ' Will you 
leave your general to the foe?' The appeal was not made in vain. The dis- 
comfited Americans rallied on the instant, formed into line, and the enemy 
halted and dressed their lines ; the American chief is between the adverse hosts, 
as though he had been a target for both. The arms of both lines are levelled. 
Can escape be possible ? Fitzgerald, horror-struck at the danger of his beloved 
commander, dropped the reins on his horse's neck, drew his hat over his face, 
that he might not see him die. A roar of musketry succeeds, and then a shout. 
The aide-de-camp ventures to raise his eyes. O glorious sight! The enemy are 
broken and flying, while dimly, amidst the glimpses of smoke, is seen the chief, 
alive, unharmed, and without a wound, waving his hat and cheering his com- 
rades to the pursuit. Colonel Fitzgerald, celebrated as the finest horseman of 
the American army, now dashed the rowels into his charger's flanks, and heed- 
less of dead and dying in his way, flew to the side of the chief, exclaiming, 
' Thank God, your Excellency is safe !' The favorite aide, a gallant and warm- 
hearted son of Erin, a man of thews and sinews, 'albeit unused to the melting 
mood,' now gave loose rein to his feelings, and wept like a child for joy. Wash- 
ington, ever calm amid scenes of the greatest excitement, affectionately grasp- 
ed the hand of his aide, and then ordered, ' Away, dear colonel; bring up the 
troops; the day is our own.'" 

Fitzgerald brought to Mrs. Washington at Mount Vernon, 
and to his fellow-citizens of Alexandria, the news and details 
of the battles of Trenton and of Princeton, and remained at 
home a while, engaged in forwarding recruits and supplies. While 
he was at Alexandria an event occurred which illustrates his 
character. It is thus told in Jansen's Stranger in America : 

"Three small British armed ships sailed up the Potomac as far as Alexan- 
dria, and consequently passed Mount Vernon. They did considerable damage 
in their progress, but the commanders gave strict orders not to molest Mount 
Vernon, and, to their honor, it was not molested. Their arrival at Alexandria 
threw the people in a dreadful state of alarm, the seat of war being far removed 



440 WA SUING TON' s CA THOLIC A IDE-DE- CA MP. [Jan., 

from that place. They mustered in haste to the market-place, under command 
of Colonel John Fitzgerald, one of Washington's aides-de-camp, who happened 
to be there on leave of absence, with his family residing there. These ships dis- 
played an intention of landing, and Fitzgerald, leaving the command to a 
militia colonel, proceeded at the head of several of the citizens to Jones Point 
(now the extreme 'south point of the Federal District) to repel the invaders. 
Soon after the departure of this party the ships fired a few shots at the town, 
upon which the commander of the militia ordered the colors to be struck, but for 
his pusillanimity was chastised upon the spot." 

' ' Colonel Fitzgerald, " says another author, " gave him a 
sound drubbing." The ships' crews never meditated a landing, 
and had merely fired random shots to create an alarm on their 
departure. During the progress of the war Colonel Fitzgerald, 
in order that his business in Alexandria might not remain with- 
out attention, had formed a copartnership with Major Valentine 
Peers, a young Scotchman, who had been aide to General 
Weedon at the battle of Brandy wine, but who "from the nature 
of his private affairs had been obliged to quit the service " in 
1777. They bought the river-front lots on the south side of 
King Street, in Alexandria, and as the cove in front was shallow, 
Major Peers proceeded to fill up or " bank-out," as it was 
called, towards the river-channel some hundreds of yards away. 
While he was so employed Colonel Fitzgerald continued with 
the army, but came home quite often, being the intermediary 
by whom General Washington communicated with Lund Wash- 
ington, the agent in charge of Mount Vernon. 

It was on one of these visits, Alexandria and Mount Vernon 
being made stopping-places en route to Yorktown, that Colonel 
Fitzgerald learned of the Cabal formed to supersede Washington 
in the chief command by the appointment of General Gates to 
that office, and that Mr. Roberdeau, a merchant of Alexandria, 
was suspected of being in the plot. On arriving at Yorktown 
he called on Mr. Laurens, President of Congress, and was in- 
formed by him that General Gates, then in command, had re- 
ceived from General Conway, a leader in the plot, but who was 
attached to the army under the immediate command of Wash- 
ington, a letter which contained the words: "What a pity 
there is but one Gates ! The more I see of this army the less 
I think it fit for general action under its actual chief and its 
actual discipline." Instantly his soul was on fire, and he hur- 
ried to make inquiries, which he afterwards communicated to 
Washington in the following letter : 

" YORKTOWN, February 16, 1778. 

" DEAR SIR : I make no doubt but you will be surprised to have a letter 
of this date from me at this place. I was detained nine days on the other side 



1890.] WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. 441 

of the Susquehanna for an opportunity of crossing it, and when I did it was not 
without great difficulty and some danger. Upon my arrival here, on Saturday 
afternoon, I waited upon Mr. Laurens, who then being much engaged asked me 
to breakfast next morning, giving me to understand that he had something 
of consequence 'to say to me. In the morning he asked me if you had ever 
seen the much-talked-of letter from General Conway to General Gates. I 
answered I was certain that you never had, unless since my departure from 
camp. He then said it was now in the hands of Mr. Roberdeau, who to his 
knowledge showed it to some, and, he had reason to believe, to a great many, 
and that though the paragraph quoted by Colonel Wilkenson was not set down 
verbatim, yet in substance it contained that and ten times more. Upon this I 
determined to demand it from Mr. Roberdeau, in order to let you have a copy 
of it. I waited on him this morning, when, after a short introduction, I let him 
into the intention of my visit. He assured me he had shown the letter only to 
the President and no other, and gave me his honor that he had delivered it to a 
French gentleman by an order from General Conway, which was sent back after 
he had crossed the Susquehanna. He was lull of his assurances that the letter 
did not contain the paragraph alluded to, which gave him infinite satisfaction, as 
he entertained the highest respect both for you and for General Gates. He 
added, however, that had the letter remained in his possession he should not 
have thought himself at liberty to let a copy be taken without the consent of the 
gentleman who entrusted him with it. I told him as he had pledged his honor 
about the delivery of it, I thought it unnecessary to say any more upon the sub- 
ject, but that I should have thought it my duty to take the most effectual meas- 
ures of procuring a copy had the original remained in his hands. I then 
returned to Mr. Laurens, who gave me an extract he had taken from it, which 
I take the liberty of enclosing to you. The whole of that letter, I understand, was 
couched in terms of the most bitter invective, of which this is a small sample. I 
enclose you this extract rather for your information than with expectation of its 
answering any other purpose at this time. I am of opinion that the gentlemen 
who have been most active in this business are by this time heartily sick of it, 
and plainly perceive that the fabric which they were endeavoring to rear was likely 
to fall upon their own heads. Mr. Laurens' sentiments upon the whole of this 
matter were exceedingly just, and delivered with the greatest candor. 

' I am, &c., 

"JOHN FITZGERALD." 

The result of that Cabal, which left Washington untouched and 
untarnished, is matter of general history. The part that Fitz- 
gerald took endeared him more than ever to his great com- 
mander. 

At the close of the war Colonel Fitzgerald entered again 
briskly into his business at Alexandria. The " banking-out " 
upon the shallows of the river beyond his river-side lots was con- 
tinued, and the town carried the tenth of a mile into the river. 
At the pier foot of King Street, long known as " Fitzgerald's 
Wharf," the Mount Vernon steamers now land on their way from 
Washington City to Washington's tomb. While this " banking- 
out" was in progress occurred a laughable incident at which it is 



442 WASHINGTON b CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. [Jan., 

said Washington, despite his habitual gravity, laughed immod- 
erately. 

While Fitzgerald's wharf was in progress a number of " young 
bloods," heated with wine, conceived one night the project of sur- 
prising the town, and they succeeded. While the streets were 
being reduced from a higher to a lower level, and the earth 
carted out and banked into the river, many houses stood on the 
hill-top, and their doors were reached by ladders from the newly- 
cut streetway below. The pumps had been removed and the 
wells were uncovered. After the day's work had been done the 
drivers of the carts had left their vehicles at the river- side to be 
ready for work in 'the morning. The late roisterers silently took 
the steps from the doors and threw them into the wells, and then 
ran the carts over into the river. The town was crazed next 
morning. The early riser fell, by the dim light of dawn, from 
the doors into the clay streetways. No water could be drawn 
from the wells to make coffee for breakfast, and, to add to the 
trouble, the tide rose at daylight and covered the carts, so that 
not one of them could be seen. It was high noon before the 
difficulties were removed', the carts recovered, and the business 
of the town resumed. The mayor was busy a few days after- 
wards in imposing heavy fines on the practical jokers, but Wash- 
ington is on record as having laughed, for all that, and with a 
fair imagination one may hear Fitzgerald's hearty laughter ringing 
down the aisles of time in that old town. Fitzgerald was not 
mayor then, so he could laugh; but he was made mayor in 1786, 
and served a term as chief officer of the municipality and pre- 
siding justice of the Court of Hustings, as the old records attest. 

At this time Colonel Fitzgerald carried on the business of 
an importer and wholesale merchant at Alexandria. His adver- 
tisement in the Virginia Journal and Alexandria Advertiser 
announces : 

"JOHN FITZGERALD 

" Hath just imported in the Ship Potomac, Cap. Bradstreet, from London, 
and to be Sold by Wholesale only, 

" A GENERAL ASSORTMENT OF EUROPEAN GOODS SUITABLE FOR THE 
SEASON. 

" He has also for Sale Malaga and Catalonia Wines by the Quarter Cask, 
Pepper by the Bag, Olives by the Jar, Sweet Oil in Hampers of one Dozen each, 
Wnite Wine Vinegar by the Hogshead, Red and Yellow Ochre, and a few Pieces 
of brown Irish Linens. 

"ALEXANDRIA, May 17, 1784." 

In 1787 Colonel Fitzgerald was selected by Rev. John Car- 



1890.] WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. 443 

roll as one of the promoters of his project for establishing an 
Academy at Georgetown, Potomac River, Maryland, and so 
laying the foundations of Georgetown College. The agents ap- 
pointed were, " in Virginia, Colonel Fitzgerald and George 
Brent, Esq." 

During all these days his relations with General Washington 
continued to be as intimate as that of any other man in America 
outside of the immediate family of the general. He was en- 
gaged with Washington in the Potomac Company, designed to 
use the Potomac River as the basis of a water-line to connect 
the Atlantic with the great West. In January, 1788, Washington 
notes in his diary : " Received a letter from Colonel Fitzgerald, 
that the meeting of the Potomac Company at the Falls of the 
Shenandoah would not be held." 

St. Patrick's Day, 1788, was a red-letter day, not only in the 
church calendar, but in the hospitable home of Colonel Fitz- 
gerald, for on that day he entertained the great chief at a 
dinner-party. An election took place the same day, which 
brought most of the leading gentlemen of the neighborhood to 
town, and at Colonel Fitzgerald's board they met many Catholics 
from Maryland. General Washington's diary of the time says : 
"March I7th, 1788. Went up to the election of delegates to the 
convention of this State for the purpose of considering the new 
form of government which has been recommended to the United 
States, when Dr. Stuart and Colonel Simons were chosen without 
opposition. Dined at Colonel Fitzgerald's ;. returned in the even- 
ing." It was at this time that the suggestion of the erection ol 
a Catholic church in Alexandria was first made, and Colonel 
Hooe, a large land-owner and an intimate friend of Fitzgerald, 
offered to donate land as the site of a church and graveyard. 
Within a few years the lot was deeded and the church built 
upon Washington and Church Streets, the latter designation being 
adopted by the municipality in honor of the new church. Of 
this church Miss Fanny Fitzgerald, daughter of Washington's 
aide, was organist. The old church is long fallen and demol- 
ished, but there is one " who builds stronger than a mason, a 
shipwright, or a carpenter," and the graveyard remains. 

On the 4th of July, 1798, General Washington went to 
Alexandria, and took dinner at the Spring Gardens, where 
there was a public celebration. He invited a number of Alex- 
andria gentlemen to dine with him on the I2th of that month, 
and Washington's own hand records the following as the guests 
at the Mount Vernon board : " Colonels Fitzgerald and Simons, 



WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. [Tan., 

Mr. Herbert and son, Mr. L. Lee, Colonel Ramsay, Captain 
Young, and Lieutenant Jones ; Mr. Potts, Mr. Wilson, Mr. Porter, 
Dr. Cook, Mr. Riddle, Mr. Lear, Mr. Tracy, and six ladies and 
a gentleman from Mr. Rogers's." Mr. McHenry, the Secretary 
ot War, was also at Mount Vernon, having been a guest for 
several days. 

A few days previous General Washington had entertained, 
as he writes in his diary : " Dr. Craik, wife, and son, and Mr. 
Hunter of Baltimore, Mr. and Mrs. Herbert, Mr. De Bourg [Rev. 
William V. Du Bourg, afterwards Bishop of New Orleans], president 
of the College at Georgetown, another of the professors, and two 
of the students,- viz. : a son of Mr. Laws and a neighbor of 
Barry's." 

The last dinner at which Fitzgerald was a guest at Mount 
Vernon took place about six months before Washington's death. 
Political excitement ran high. The Alien and Sedition laws 
passed by the Federal majority during the administration of the 
elder Adams had called forth resolutions, both of Kentucky and 
of Virginia, suggesting State resistance to Federal authority. 
Mr. Jefferson had drawn the Kentucky resolutions, while the 
Virginia "resolutions of '98" were from the pen of Mr. Madison. 
In them the General Assembly of Virginia " doth expressly de- 
clare that it views the powers of the Federal government, as 
resulting from the compact to which the States are parties, as 
limited by the plain sense and intention of the instrument con- 
stituting that compact; as no further valid than they are au- 
thorized by the grants enumerated in that compact ; and that in 
case of a deliberate, palpable, and dangerous exercise 0*" other 
powers, not granted by said compact, the States, who are parties 
thereto, have the right, and are in duty bound, to interpose for 
arresting the progress of the evil, and for maintaining within 
their respective limits the authorities, rights, and liberties apper- 
taining to them." 

The late Edmund I. Lee, of Alexandria, was, with Colonel 
Fitzgerald, a guest on the occasion, and he gives the following 
account of the " table-talk " of Washington and Fitzgerald when 
the ladies had retired and the nuts and wine came on the 
board : 

" Among the guests was Colonel John Fitzgerald, a native of Ireland and an 
aide-de-camp of Washington in the Revolution. In 1799 he was a merchant of 
Alexandria and a Federalist of the first water. During the dinner Colonel 
Fitzgerald repeatedly attempted to give the conversation a political turn, with 
a view of expressing his detestation of Mr. Jefferson, Bache and Duane, Giles 



1890.] WASHINGTON'S CATHOLIC AIDE-DE-CAMP. 445 

of Virginia, and other members of the anti-Federal party. But he received no 
encouragement from the general, who led the conversation to the subject of the 
wonderful prosperity of the country, and remarked toward the close of the din- 
ner how gratifying it must be to all the survivors of the Revolutionary army to 
know that their efforts to establish American independence had been crowned 
with a success so signal. 'Ah!' exclaimed Fitzgerald, 'and to be assured that 
all this glorious prosperity, and the very existence of the Republic itself, are 
imperilled by the vile arts of an unprincipled demagogue.' At this juncture, 
General Washington, bowing to his guests, remarked, ' Now, gentlemen, we 
will take one more glass of wine, and then join the ladies ! ' and turning to Fitz- 
gerald, said: ' I know very well to whom you allude, Colonel Fitzgerald ; but I 
would willingly forgive him all his heresy if he had not seduced from his alle- 
giance to the Constitution one of the best, purest, and ablest men of the country 
James Madison, of Virginia.'" 

Colonel Fitzgerald's Catholicity is shown here and there by 
olden publications and by oral tradition ; but the continued and 
convincing evidence of his loyalty to the church is the fact that 
he withstood all temptations to Masonry. The Masonic lodge in 
Alexandria stands alone among lodges, for Washington, though 
seldom attending its sessions, was long its titular master. All of 
Fitzgerald's intimate friends were among its members, and it was, 
in fact, a club of genial good-livers, Masons like Burns rather 
than like Weishaupt 

In the lax discipline of the times, some Alexandrians, whose 
names arc now on the tombs in the Catholic cemetery, were 
members of Alexandria- Washington Lodge, but Fitzgerald 
withstood all temptations, and while the names of almost every 
leading Alexandrian of that day are on the lodge rolls, his 
name does not appear. 

His later days were clouded by financial troubles. He opened 
a distillery, which was not successful. His river-side property 
proved unremunerative, and age came without quiet and ease. 
President Adams made him Collector of the Customs of the port 
of Alexandria, and he was still popular with his townsmen. His 
last appearance with Washington was, as Mr. Custis relates, in " the 
November of last days," when the great chief reviewed the Alex- 
andria volunteer companies from the steps of the City Hotel, op- 
posite the market. Colonels Fitzgerald, Ramsay, and Custis were 
his honorary aides at the review. It was the setting of the sun, 
for in six weeks Washington was dead. Mercury lingers in the 
glory of sunset a short space after the day-god has departed, 
scarcely visible in the halo, and is gone before the night falls. 
Washington died in the early winter, and in the early summer 
Fitzgerald followed him. WM. F. CARNE. 

VOL. L. -29 



446 A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. LJ an -> 



A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. 

To dream once in a life-time to some purpose is an experi- 
ence which by no means comes in every one's way': Non cuivis 
contingit adire Corinthum. With me going to Corinth was some- 
thing negative, not marrying the man of my choice, but being 
delivered from the man that I did not choose. 

I was not my father's only daughter. I was the youngest 
of three, with one brother and one sister, and at the time of 
which I write I was two-and-twenty. My dear Uncle Dick, on 
whom my memory ever rests with mingled pleasure and pain, 
was a great favorite of mine, and I of his. He was a " mer- 
chant" vague term, as I know, which often covers a multitude of 
delinquencies; but every one knew that Uncle Dick's merchan- 
dise had been tea, and I am afraid every one also knew that 
in those distant tea-gardens of his he had contracted a failing 
which neither time nor his age tended to mend. He was far 
from being a hopeless drunkard. He was still at the stage when 
drink is rather a pleasure than a craving. He only " enjoyed a 
glass of wine " a great deal too often, and never neglected a 
pretext for taking it. My dear old home is in Gloucestershire, 
a -country house big enough for entertaining on a large scale, 
yet not sufficiently imposing for a show place. We have no family 
portraits, no church lands, consequently no ghosts, and we were 
a merry party as the Christmas of which I am writing drew 
near. My Uncle Dick Richard Effingham, to give him his due 
name was my father's brother. When he had made his fortune 
at tea, being a younger brother, he bought a small place in our 
vicinity, and established himself there in comfortable bachelor- 
hood. When I say comfortable, I should perhaps mean disquiet- 
ing, bachelorhood. His propensity gained strength from his lone- 
liness, but it was of no use to wish that a man of confirmed life 
and habits would take to himself a wife. My doing so used to 
aggravate Lionel Cardwell, who wanted to marry me ^cvit/i my 
prospects of inheriting Uncle Dick's fortune, for I suspected he 
did not love me for myself. For months before the Christmas 
in question that same Lionel had been the cause to me of much 
misery and affliction of spirit. He was the youngest of Sir 
Paul Cardwell's three sons, and was rich only in cleverness and 
a striking person. .My father enjoyed his rather cynical conver- 



1890.] A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. 447 

sation. He never stopped at anything likely to cause effect, and 
my mother thought him "such a gentleman," for her standard 
of a gentleman was measured by external acts of courtesy, of 
which Lionel acquitted himself perfectly well. They were se- 
cretly annoyed at me for discouraging his attentions. Only my 
Uncle Dick bore me out, and told me often that he did not trust 
Lionel and his fine ways. " Belongs to the whited-sepulchre 
class, my dear," was his favorite expression, and this put my 
own feeling into words, though it was nothing more than an 
instinct with me. In fact, I tried to reason myself out of it, for 
I wished to please my father and mother and to like Lionel 
Cardwell for their sakes, as I saw he was acceptable to them. 

It was the 23d of December, and we were expecting the 
usual " family party " which is supposed to form an ingredient 
of Christmas. At breakfast-time my mother looked up from 
her letters and said to me : " Lionel thinks he can come, my 
dear, and will be at Longhorsley at 4:30, unless he telegraphs 
to the contrary, which I am sure I hope he won't." 

He was not yet an accepted lover, so his communications 
were made to my father or mother. My spirits did not rise 
at the prospect. Still I had determined that this was to be 
the test visit, when things would come to a crisis. Perhaps I 
might bring myself to have him out of that old-fashioned vir- 
tue, a filial regard for my father and mother ; or perhaps my 
own instincts would receive confirmation. The light of Christ- 
mas has revealed many a man and woman to each other. At 
this darkest period of the year we are all most thrown upon 
our own resources. The sunniest temper feels the influence of 
rainy skies and foggy atmosphere ; we have not, as in summer, 
outside brightness, so we have to kindle within us fires of double 
intensity which may protect us from nature's rigors and human 
rubs. 

Lionel came. I knew he would, and that I could not put 
off the hour of decision, which is painful to most of us. He 
established himself as my mother's man of the party, and fetch- 
ed and carried for her to the delight of her heart. It was his 
line to appear most discreet, and to show me his attentions 
only when, so to say, I would have them. My sister Ella 
liked him better than I did, and would willingly have ac- 
cepted him and them ; but then did I not know of a very 
good reason why this should not be ? At any rate, I believed 
so, yet determined to try and watch Lionel with thoroughly 
unprejudiced eyes 



. 



448 A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. [Jan., 

Christmas day came. We had got through half of the pon- 
derously dull merriment which is supposed to be necessary on 
this occasion, and were sitting at our festive luncheon. Uncle 
Dick was with us, and we were discussing the long-talked-of 
dance which he was to give on the following day for his nieces. 

" I should have liked it for the last hours of the old year," 
he was saying, " only Nellie told me that would be too late 
for the gentlemen of the party." Lionel looked pleased. " By- 
the-bye, my bachelor establishment will need the support of 
some male arms and heads during the feast, and afterwards I 
shall be very pleased to give my supporters a bed." 

This speech of my uncle's was rather unguarded, for as my 
brother Charlie was with his regiment in India, Lionel very 
naturally offered his services, which were, I will admit, not very 
graciously accepted, and it was settled that my father and 
Lionel Cardwell should sleep at my uncle's house after the ball, 
whilst my mother was to do the honors as hostess and return 
with me and my sister. This small incident rather spoiled my 
pleasures of anticipation. I felt out of sorts, as people do when 
an uncongenial element is forced into their daily life, but I 
scolded myself for being prejudiced. Lionel was doing his ut- 
most to appear agreeable, and I fancied my mother's manner 
often said to me : " What an unreasonable child you are not to 
be satisfied with this man." We ate our Christmas dinner and 
were, I believe, secretly relieved that the king of social days had 
ended his reign for the year. 

Lionel called himself one of the stewards of the ball, and 
really shirked no exertion. I was rather glad he was so busy, 
as I thought I should perchance evade the impending tete-a 
tete. I was intent on examining the effect of our home-planned 
decorations when I saw him hurrying up to me. 

" Are you disengaged for the next dance, Miss Effingham ?" 
he said. " I am indeed fortunate to find you in leisurely contem- 
plation instead of in the commonplace crowd." And he looked in 
the direction of the dancers. 

" I am sure I feel commonplace enough," I said. 

" Then your feelings mislead you. I " He stopped. (I think 
he was going to add, " I could not like commonplaceness," but 
checked himself in time.) " I hope you think the tout ensemble 
rather out of the way." 

"Yes, it is pretty." 

When we had danced he, of course, led me away from the 
crowd. 



1890.] A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. 449 

." There is something satisfactory in organizing a dance," he 
said. " Things fall so naturally into their places. It is a pity we 
cannot so order our lives." 

" Do you think so ?" I said carelessly. 

" Indeed I do. Our happiness ought to be given into our own 
hands, and I am sure we should take care of it. Now, my hap- 
piness is in your hands " 

At this critical moment my uncle came up to me, saying : 
"Oh! Nellie, here you are at last. Your mother says she wants 
you most particularly and I promised to find you." He looked 
at Lionel as he spoke, and their eyes met. There was in Uncle 
Dick's expression so much dislike and distrust that I wondered 
whether he had invented a message to nip the incipient love- 
making in the bud. Lionel's eyes flashed back revengeful hatred, 
but only for a moment. Controlling himself, he merely said, " I 
hope Miss Effingham will give me the pleasure of* another dance 
later on," and walked away. 

I was hurrying to my mother when Uncle Dick checked me. 
" Stop a bit, Nellie; it is I who want you. I saw what that 
fellow was after. Let us come down to supper, my dear. I sup- 
pose this gayety of yours makes me more thirsty than usual." 
And my uncle chuckled, but I felt more like weeping. 



The lights had all gone out in the ball-room ; silence and 
fatigue were creeping over us. I was in bed, but that was only 
a name for repose. I could not sleep ; my brain was torn by 
fancies which burst in upon it with the force of armed men and 
would not be quieted. My mind was rehearsing every incident 
of the day, whether I would or no. I saw the brilliant ball- 
room which I had helped to decorate; my fingers convulsively 
grasped the holly wreaths, and my ears listened to Uncle Dick's 
words, "Stop a bit, Nellie; it is I who want you." Surely it was 
no delusion, for I was now in a quiet bed-room. My uncle was 
lying in a deep sleep ; the fire-light even showed me his face. 
Ah ! I thought, he said he was thirsty. At the bed-side there 
was an empty glass, but no bottle. Every detail engraved 
itself upon my gaze. I saw, but could not be seen; I heard every 
sound, but could utter none. Presently my strained ear fancied 
there was a light footstep in the passage, and that the door 
creaked. The curious thing was that I knew not where I was, 
only I seemed to be a creature made up of ears and eyes. These 



450 A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. |"J an - 

two faculties were intensified beyond their natural sphere. The 
door surely did open, and some one peered into the room. At 
first I saw a crouching figure ; it was that of a man, whose face 
was hidden from me. He crept stealthily up to the bed and 
looked intently at my uncle. This movement revealed him to 
me. It was Lionel. He held something in his hand. Could it 
be a knife ? I thought with a shudder. No, it was a bottle. Was 
it ether, chloroform, or an anaesthetic of some kind ? None of 
these could be administered without any apparatus, as I knew. 
Lionel set it down by the bed, and looked around as if he feared 
the silence of the night would speak. Alas ! I could utter no 
protest. My voice died away as I tried to raise it. Then he 
went noiselessly from the room, leaving the door ajar. I seemed 
to breathe more freely, yet I felt he had more work to do. I 
longed to rouse my uncle from his sleep. Now was my time. 
I uttered a faint sound, but I could not reach the sleeper's ears, 
and again I heard the stealthy footsteps outside. Lionel came in 
with more assurance this time. He held a match-box. The 
fire's now flickering light fell upon the little table at the bed's 
head. On it were candles, Lionel's bottle (a whiskey-flask), and a 
book. Quickly he pulled forward the bed-curtain and lighted 
both candles. The curtain took fire ; Lionel waited for the re- 
sult of his labors ; he watched deliberately to see his work set going, 
then dashed from the room. How long I looked at the flames 
making their way with increasing fury I cannot say. I heard 
the crackle of the wooden bedstead and watched the flames 
spreading, as if spell-bound. 

They would soon surround my uncle as in a bed of fire. 
" O Uncle Dick ! save yourself," I tried to exclaim, but my 
voice died in my throat and my limbs refused to carry me. I 
thought the sight would be burned into my brain as I watched 
the flames curling round him, and yet could not put out a hand 
to avert that terrible fate. My uncle at last gave a faint groan, 
and I a piercing scream which awoke me. After all, I was 
lying on my own bed, and the vivid scene had been a terrible 
nightmare. But it had burned itself into my fevered brain. I 
raised my head with difficulty from my pillow and dressed as 
one still under the influence of a dream. I felt, I dare say, as 
morphia-eaters do when they come back to their senses after 
their unnatural food has ceased to buoy them up. I had truly 
been feeding on horrors. 

I still so fully realized my dream that it was no surprise to me 



1890.] A DREAM AT CHRISTMAS. 451 

to find everything in confusion down-stairs. My father had been 
sent for to Horsmondean, my uncle's house, which was still 
burning. 

"What of my uncle?" I asked my mother breathlessly. 

" My dear child " she began. 

" I know it all," I said ; " he has been burned to death, and " 

" Well, you must never say another word against Lionel Card- 
well. If he had not given the alarm the whole place would have 
been burned down." 

" I don't care about that, now that my dear uncle is gone. 
And Lionel was his murderer." 

" Nellie, you should forget your foolish prejudices in this trou- 
ble, and think how nobly Lionel has behaved." 

" I will never speak to him again," I exclaimed, almost 
shouted, I am afraid. " How do you suppose it happened that 
my uncle alone was burned ?" 

" You know your poor dear [why will people always " poor 
dear" the dead?] uncle's failing. It is supposed that he drank 
more than usual last night and set fire to the bed." 

I turned away sick at heart The Hebrew prophet spoke of 
the time when " old men shall dream dreams, and young men 
shall see visions." I have dreamt only one dream, but it has 
served me well, and was, I believe, heaven-sent At the inquest 
the jury returned a verdict of "accidental death by fire," but 
I thought I knew better. I did not marry Lionel Cardwell. 

A. 



45 2 WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. [Jan., 



WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 

" Certum est quia impossibile." 

IN studying the nervous system we call to mind these words 
of an ancient author ; and it is indeed almost impossible for one 
who has not made it a special study to believe all that science 
teaches in regard to this most wonderful part of man's structure. 
The study of the nervous system seems to a beginner to border 
on the supernatural. Yet this is purely owing to his ignorance, 
for chemistry, assisted by the scalpel and the microscope, proves 
that it has no more to do with the supernatural than the study 
of any dther part of the human body. The nervous system, we 
are told by l^ater discoveries, is not divided into a brain and 
spinal cord, but forms one united cerebro-spinal system, with, 
however, different distributions. The aggregation of nerve-cells 
is connected by nerve-fibres. In the nerve-cells (the smallest 
of which is T^FIT of an inch in diameter) are concentrated the 
actual powers of the nervous system, while the nerve-fibres serve 
as conductors of the influence which is to be outwardly mani- 
fested. Each nerve-fibre consists of a membraneous tube, lined 
by a material composed of fat and albumen, and this tube en- 
closes what is called an axis-cylinder, formed of a protoplasmic 
substance, which is apparently the essential constituent of the 
nerve. The fat and albumen lining, around the tube serve the 
purpose of an insulator, whereby the contiguous nerves are kept 
separated one from the other. There are two kinds of nerve- 
fibres, the sensory and the motor. The sensory fibres convey 
from the different parts of the body to the groups of nerve-cells 
the impressions which there excite sensations ; the motor fibres 
carry back from the groups of nerve- cells to the muscles the 
impressions which cause the muscles to contract or expand. 

When a stimulus acts upon a nerve-fibre there is an appre- 
ciable period of time before the nerve-cell responds to it, and 
this is known as the "excitatory stage." The period is longer 
wh'en the temperature of the nerve is lowered. Hence we find 
in the higher cerebral nerve-centres that cold benumbs thought. 
The nature of the nerve force excited in each nerve-fibre is the 
same ; and as an electric telegraph wire may convey a current 
in either direction, so might the same nerve-fibre if its terminals 



1890.] WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 453 

enabled it to do so. But in the nervous system the two sets of 
nerves are essentially distinct. And we may add, for the analogy 
is interesting, that as a chemical reaction must take place between 
the exciting fluid and the galvanic combination of metals in order 
to originate the electric current, so for the production of the 
nerve-current a reaction must take place between the blood and 
the central nerve-cells, although we do not yet know what the 
precise nature of this reaction is. The dependence of nervous 
activity upon the physical changes kept up by the flow of oxy- 
genated blood through the brain can, however, be shown experi - 
mentally. 

But as the cerebro-spinal system participates in all that goes 
to make up conscious life, so it performs nobler work than sim- 
ply to give orders to the muscles. The brain, we know, is com- 
posed of sensory and motor substrata, and as the brain is the organ 
immediately serving ideation, this organic action is, therefore, 
the functioning of centres whose objective functions are motor 
and sensory. We have not yet discovered what constitutes the 
physical ground-work of life, but science is working towards its 
discovery. Progress in physiological chemistry and more power- 
ful microscopes may in time solve all the problems of the cerebro- 
spinal system. 

Already we know that with every display of brain-power 
there is a correlative change or waste of nervous element ; a sti- 
mulus to a nerve of sense is necessary to thought, and every 
thought has its reflecting centre, perhaps in one hemisphere of the 
brain, perhaps in the opposite hemisphere, which reflection of it 
is the condition of consciousness. 

The brain, eighty per cent, of which is composed of water, 
and which is the seat of numberless multitudes of molecular 
tremors, is found by experiment to be insensible to pain, while 
every nerve of the spinal cord is keenly alive to the slightest 
touch. Whether this least solid portion of the body, which is 
notably double in structure, is really a double organ, and 
whether we have two brains, as we have two eyes and two lungs, 
certain it is that both hemispheres are necessary to the fullest 
function of the organism. Yet it is an interesting fact that one 
hemisphere is able to do the work of both hemispheres in think- 
ing although in a somewhat halting way when the other hemi- 
sphere has been partially destroyed. But it is demonstrated that 

le the partial ruin of one hemisphere leaves mental function 
unimpaired, this partial ruin of one destroys sensation unilaterally. 
Therefore, the brain as regards sensation and motion is a single 



454 WONDERS OF THE NEXYOUS SYSTEM. Dan., 

organ, but a double organ as it relates to intellect. The right 
hemisphere governs the movements of the left limbs, and the left 
hemisphere governs the movements of the right limbs. Which- 
ever hand, for instance, is in motion our thoughts being fixed 
on what this hand is doing the hemisphere of the opposite side 
is meanwhile at rest. The speech centre being in the third left 
frontal convolution, it entails long labor to teach the right hemi- 
sphere speech when the other half of the brain has been de- 
stroyed. And we know that although many of their functions are 
in common, yet the hemispheres have not entirely equivalent 
functions, and we know that -the left hemisphere is the more 
richly endowed. It is also a curious fact that while the two 
hemispheres can act together simultaneously at different kinds of 
work, they cannot think together simultaneously of the two kinds 
of work. This we readily discover if, when our hands are each 
busily employed at different work, we try to think at the same 
moment of what each hand is doing. We find it impossible, and 
we are obliged to pass in thought from one hand to the other, 
and there is a distinct pause in the transfer of thought. The 
truth is, both halves of the brain have to be trained from the 
beginning to close association in order that they may work 
together as one centre. They have to be slowly educated from 
childhood to conjoint action, just as our two hands and legs have 
to be. But there is doubtless an innate predisposition of the 
hemispheres to work in harmony ; and as we grasp best with our 
two hands and see best with our two eyes, so we need the two 
halves of our brain in order to apprehend best intellectually. 

The double brain (at present attracting much attention) helps 
to throw light on the disease called melancholia. There is a high 
probability that in unsymmetric hemispheres lies the secret cause 
of extravagant delusions, which are often in company with sanest 
reason on many subjects. For a brief period at the beginning of 
melancholia the sound hemisphere may be able to hold its own, 
and to smother the suggestions of the unsound hemisphere. But 
after a struggle the latter obtains the mastery, and reduces the 
other to slavery. The words once uttered by a melancholic 
patient are very significant : " My brain seems divided into two 
parts, thinking independently, one side putting questions which 
the other side answers." Here we see the effect of want of har- 
mony between the hemispheres ; the partnership is dissolved ; self 
is divided against self, resulting in confused suggestions, disor- 
dered imaginations, and a disintegration of will. A person, the 
two halves of whose brain are not working together owing to 









1890.] . WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 455 

the morbid condition of one of them, will perceive a real object 
with one hemisphere and an unreal object with the other, and 
he will not only think double, but act double. And this state 
of doubleness and discord may result in an irresistible impulse 
to do some desperate act suggested by the diseased hemisphere. 
It is, in fact, the pathological parallel on the sensory side of 
what a convulsion is on the motor side. 

But if in what has been aptly termed the commonwealth of 
the nervous system the brain is the leading member, the other 
member of the physiological union the spinal cord is hardly less 
important. In the constitution of the spinal cord are implanted 
innate energies which bear the semblance of consciousness. It 
would seem, like the brain, to have its memory ; and its facul- 
ties at least in man are gradually developed by experience. 
Indeed, without this God-given power of development, by which 
many muscular actions originating in the spinal cord grow at 
length to be automatic, it would require a whole lifetime to learn 
how to do one or two things. If an act became no easier after 
having been performed several times, if the direction of con- 
sciousness were needed on every occasion, we should find it tire- 
some work even to dress and undress ourselves. Here let us 
observe that all muscular movements which are classed as pri- 
marily automatic that is, movements on which life depends have 
been wisely placed by the Creator beyond the control of our 
will such movements, for instance, as the beating of the heart, 
respiration. And it is interesting to know that as the gangli- 
onic cells of the spinal cord have a periodic function, so when 
these cells are in a morbid state the functional derangement is 
often intermittent. Thus in epilepsy, the reacting nerve-centres 
must be charged by degrees until they reach a certain tension, 
when they violently discharge themselves in a fit. What has been 
termed the consciousness of the spinal cord is shown by. its reflex 
acts, which take place quite independently of the brain. Some 
of the manifestations of this consciousness are marvellous. If we 
pinch the hind foot of a frog whose head has been cut off, the 
foot is immediately withdrawn ; the stimulus to the sensory nerves 
has set free a force which excites to action the corresponding 
motor nerves. Now, if we pinch the foot still harder, there is a 
wider irradiation of the nerve force, and lo ! all four feet begin 
to move, and the headless frog hops away. Again, if the thigh 
of this decapitated frog be touched with acetic acid over the in- 
ternal condyle, the creature will rub it off with the upper part 
of the foot of the same side. Cut off this foot and again apply 



456 WONDEKS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. [Jan., 

the acid to the same spot, and it tries again to rub it off, but, 
having lost its foot, it cannot. The frog now pauses a moment, 
as if it were reflecting, then presently it makes use of the foot 
of the other leg, and succeeds in rubbing off the acid. But 
these movements of the headless frog do not prove that the 
spinal cord is really endowed with volition. They merely prove 
that actions for a definite end may be automatic and entirely un- 
conscious. In the lower animals the spinal cord has implanted in 
it the powers needed to produce movements for self-preservation. 
In man's spinal cord designed actions are automatic also, but they 
are not inborn at least, only in a slight degree ; and they have 
to be made automatic by education. Man's spinal cord must be 
taught just as his brain must be taught. But we do not perceive 
the powers of the spinal cord in man as plainly as we do in 
the lower animals, because it is much more under the rule of 
the more highly endowed brain. Whoever wishes to obtain a 
knowledge of the functions of the higher cerebral nerve-centres 
in man must not neglect the study of the spinal cord. 

And experiments seem to prove that some of the habitual 
functions of the higher cerebral nerve-centres are not less auto- 
matic than those of the other member of the physiological union. 
In man the sensori-motor nerves, like the nerves of the spinal 
cord, must be taught by experience ; while in the lower animals 
these functions are automatic. A pigeon, the upper portion ot 
whose brain (cerebrum) has been removed, seems to lose all 
power of spontaneous action ; it is plunged in profound stupor. 
Yet if it be tossed into the air it will expand its wings and fly. 
Place a light before its eyes, and the pupils contract ; ruffle its 
feathers, and it will dress them ; pass a candle to and fro before 
it, and it will follow with its head the movements of the candle. 
Here the sensory centres, affected by the impressions of sense, 
excite the proper movements, but these movements are all auto- 
matic. Let this pigeon be ever so hungry, and it will die of 
hunger before a plateful of food. But push the food far enough 
into its mouth to excite the reflex act of swallowing, and the 
food will be greedily swallowed. 

Few of us realize how automatically our brain works when 
once it has been taught to work. This shows how important it 
is to begin early to develop a child's character in the proper 
direction, for every nerve-cell is capable of receiving an impres- 
sion, and from our birth we begin to receive impressions which 
remain through life as so many memories. 

Memory, according to the best authorities, is the revival in 



1890.] WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 457 

consciousness of the different memory-pictures acquired through 
the senses, each through its own particular nerve of sensation 
and each organically registered and stored up in its own particu- 
lar part of the brain. And cerebral localization has made such 
advances in the past few years that we can now locate a set 
of memories a vast gain to surgery, for if through disease these 
particular memories are lost, the surgeon is able to find the spot 
diseased ; and being thus guided, fifty successful operations have 
been already performed on the brain which a generation ago 
wouk 1 not have been attempted. 

In a child learning to read we see the process of the organic 
registration of memories. The child has to remember the mean- 
ing of each word ; his brain must tediously register the different 
impressions. But these impressions being once registered, he is 
able to read swiftly by unconscious memory. Nor are these 
organic registrations ever actually forgotten, except when a brain 
is disorganized by disease. A memory endures while life lasts. 
Consciousness may not be able to recall it ; but a fever, a blow 
on the head, a dream, the agony of death will sometimes draw 
aside the veil which conceals the inscriptions and show vividly 
a face or a scene which appeared to have vanished for ever and 
ever. 

It is indeed strange that when in health words and acts may 
escape us, may seem not to be registered in the brain at all, 
and yet when out of health they appear to us. This unconscious 
cerebral action is well illustrated in the case of the servant girl 
mentioned by Coleridge, who in the delirium of a fever quoted 
>sages of Hebrew, not one word of which she could repeat 
when well, but which, when serving in a clergyman's family, she 
had heard the clergyman read aloud. The organized registration 
)f the results of impressions upon our nervous centres is what 
renders memory possible ; and almost the first indication of a 
degeneration of nervous element is some flaw in the memory. 
We forget because new impressions, new memory-pictures are 
continually pressing in upon the old ones, which little by little 
become concealed. Memory may be called the retention of brain- 
pictures ; recollections, the reproduction of them. And this 
power of reproduction shows the persistence of the nerve-currents 
excited by the original stimulus whereby the original impressions 
were registered. * A common example of the automatic action of 
the brain in revealing what it may keep hidden for a time is 
when we sometimes do our best to remember a name or a num- 
ber and yet cannot remember it with all our efforts. We then 



458 WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. [Jan., 

give up the attempt, and lo ! presently the thing we wished to 
recall flashes upon us. Here, according to the best authorities, 
the idea, the brain-picture which we wanted, was held back just 
in proportion to the degree of persistent tension of the nerve- 
cells' energy. 

But if the nerve-cells of the brain may be viewed as the 
storehouse in which the great majority of impressions are pre- 
served, yet the whole nervous system is a contributor to mem- 
ory, whose impressions are countless in number and which are 
always represented by certain physical changes in the nerve-cells. 
The contrast of the automatic action of memory with its voli- 
tional exercise is seen in dreaming, in delirium, in insanity. Here 
the memory may be active while the directing power of the 
will is in abeyance. 

As the proper registration of memory-pictures depends on a 
healthy state of the nerve-cells, we are by this blessed fact pre- 
vented from remembering pain. Of course we can remember 
that we did at a certain time suffer a particular pain, but we 
are not able vividly to recall the pain. Pain is not an organ- 
ized product which abides ; the very disorganization of nervous 
element which pain implies is temporary, and disappears with the 
return of health to the nervous centres. 

The manifold disorders to which memory is liable show how 
widely and firmly it is embraced within the cerebro-spinal sys- 
tem, and how keenly it is affected for good or ill by the con- 
dition of the nerve-cells. 

The lasting effects of the poison of a certain nameless dis- 
ease prove that the organic element remembers for a whole life- 
time the modifications it has suffered ; and as there is memory 
in every nerve-cell, the power of registering impressions is often 
much diminished by this poison. 

Imagination, which is the power of assimilating material from 
the numberless images stored in the brain, is dependent on mem- 
ory. When imagination brings anything before our mind's eye, 
if we analyze it we discover that it is merely a new form 
patched together from various parts of an old one. It is not 
possible to imagine a scene or an animal of which we have had 
no experience through memory. 

The action of the imagination upon the sensory ganglia and 
central nuclei of the optic nerve can become so intense that we 
may firmly believe we see persons and things which have no 
objective existence, the presence of the retina of the eye not be- 
ing necessary for the production of such phenomena, although 






1890.] WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 459 

in diseases of the retina spectral illusions may also occur. And as 
a sensation is as truly a sensation whether the sensorium be 
reached from within or from without, the person who declares he 
sees an object when no object is present to excite the optic 
nerve should be. told that he is right in declaring he is conscious 
of seeing something, but that he is not right in supposing 
what he sees is caused by an impression on the peripheral ter- 
mination of the nerve by an external stimulus. 

So intimately are the different parts of the body con- 
nected through the nervous system that sometimes, when a per- 
son has dreamed he was wounded, marks of inflammation have 
been found on that part of the body on awaking, caused by 
the action of the vaso-motor nerve-centres on the capillary cir- 
culation ; the blood is always most strongly directed to the 
spot which imagination points to. Here let us observe that in 
dreams an internal organ out of good condition may often be 
felt much more plainly than when we are awake ; the ground 
tone of a dream is affected by the state of some internal organ, 
and by studying the physiological sympathies revealed during 
sleep not a little may be learned in regard to the hidden parts 
of the body. 

As we have already remarked, the different portions of the 
human frame, from the highest to the lowest, have a close sym- 
pathy for one another through the nervous system. An increase 
or diminution of the sensibility of the skin, for instance, may 
cause extravagant delusions. The brain is keenly sensitive to 
the habit of the feelings. Were a sane person to wake up some 
morning with his cutaneous sensibility gone (and it has hap- 
pened), he would find it very hard to keep in his senses. Not 
being able to feel himself, he would not know what had become 
of himself. A soldier, wounded at Austerlitz, lost the sensibility 
of his skin, and from that moment he thought himself dead. Hav- 
ing no sense of feeling, he did not believe he was alive, and he 
called himself a machine. 

The change or waste of nerve element through the exercise 
of the brain is proved by the chemical analysis of the extrac- 
tives of nerve. There are found lactic acid, creatine, and uric 
acid, which products strongly resemble those found in muscle 
after its functional activity. The display of brain energy is at 
the cost of the highly organized nerve matter (which is, how- 
ever, soon replaced through the blood), and after severe brain- 
work we recognize an increase of phosphates in the urine. The 
intangible energy of the higher cerebral centres is revealed in 



460 WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. [Jan., 

these excretions from the body. But, unless pushed too far, 
an active brain is favorable to longevity, provided the brain- 
work is not of an emotional kind. Hence, a mathematician 
has more chances for a long life than a poet. It is interest- 
ing to know that the .nervous energy expended in the acquisi- 
tion of riches however little it may affect the business man 
himself seems to predispose to nervous degeneration in the 
offspring. The child of a successful business man is apt to be 
the very reverse of its parent in brain force. Contrary to the 
old-time views, we are able to do more experimentally with 
the brain than with any other organ of the body. Alcohol and 
drugs enable us to perform all kinds of experiments on it. 
Chloral and chloroform can temporarily suspend its action ; 
opium and alcohol can exalt its functions, and artificial madness 
may be produced by Indian hemp and belladonna. Alcohol, in 
perverting the condition of the blood, is a potent cause of nerv- 
ous disorder ; and it is interesting to trace its effects. In the 
first generation the alcoholic poison shows itself by brutal degrada- 
tion ; in the second, by hereditary drunkenness ; in the third, by 
sobriety, accompanied by hypochondria, with homicidal tenden- 
cies ; in the fourth, by feeble intelligence and probable extinction 
of the family. 

The reason why it is so difficult to overcome the habit of 
drink is that the nervous system, when repeatedly exposed to 
the poison of alcohol, acquires a disposition to morbid action 
even when alcohol is not present ; the perverted state of the 
blood from previous excess has worked an effect on the supreme 
cerebral cells. That delicate co-ordination of function which 
will implies has been shattered ; the will is necessarily weakened, 
until at length it disappears altogether in the dipsomaniac. 

The brain lesions due to chronic alcoholism are capable of 
microscopic demonstration, and when we see these lesions we 
realize how vitally important it is not to let the habit of drink 
fasten itself upon us. So beautifully interlaced are the different 
parts of the cerebro-spinal system that when a special sense 
fails the general sensibility may do much to replace it. Per- 
sons stone-deaf have been known to have a peculiar suscepti- 
bility to certain sounds, depending, no doubt, on an impression 
communicated to their organs of touch. They could tell when 
a carriage was approaching when a person with all his senses 
could not tell it. It is recorded that a man perfectly deaf 
had a bodily feeling of music, and different instruments affected 
him differently. Musical tones seemed to his perception to 






1890,] WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. 461 

have a great likeness to colors ; the sound of a trumpet was 
yellow to him ; that of a drum was red ; that of an organ was 
green. It is now a recognized fact that the brain in deep 
sleep does not always remain active, for brain power exists in 
statical equilibrium as well as in manifested energy. Neverthe- 
less, the brain during sleep may sometimes do good work, and 
this unconscious work is seen when we discover how much a 
sound night's rest has improved our knowledge of a lesson or 
a problem studied before going to bed. But if during sleep 
the higher cerebral centres may at times be perfectly inactive, 
two organs of the body are ceaselessly active, viz. : the heart and 
the lungs; they never tire when acting naturally, and the rea- 
son is that their rhythmical organic movements are owing to a 
rhythmical nutrition, a method of nutrition with time-regulated 
progress, accompanied by an intermittent discharge of nerve 
force. 

The need for sleep arises out of the condition ol the nerve- 
centres, and the best way to bring on sleep is by the absence 
of sensorial impressions, and this W T C usually find in silence and 
darkness. But it may happen that instead of silence the con- 
tinuance of a certain sound may be necessary for sleep. In such 
a case the nerve-centres, having grown used to a particular set 
of impressions constantly recurring, are as much affected by the 
want of them as the nerves of another person would be by 
their presence ; and it is said that an old lady in New York, 
who brought a suit against the Elevated Railroad on the ground 
that it was a nuisance and prevented her from sleeping, got so 
accustomed to the noise that she could not sleep without it, and 
accordingly she dropped the suit on the very day it was to have 
been argued. 

The awakening power of sensory impressions largely depends 
on the habitual state of the brain in regard to them. Thus a 
sleeper may often be roused by the sound of his own name 
uttered in a whisper, when a much louder sound of another kind 
would have failed to do it. A telegraph operator will fall into 
a deep sleep from which the faintest tick of {he signaling needle 
will waken him. In all such cases the nerve-centres have acquired 
a peculiar physical receptivity for certain impressions. Some 
persons have the power of fixing their attention, before going to 
bed, on rising at a certain hour in the morning, and at this pre- 
cise hour .they will open their eyes. Here unconscious cerebra- 
tion plays the part of a time-keeper. 

Years ago the influence of expectant imagination on the sen- 

VOL. L.--30 



462 WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. [Jan., 

sorium was recognized by the celebrated Dr. John Hunter. In 
lecturing on it he said : "I am confident that I can fix my 
attention to any part until I have a sensation in that part." 
And Mr. Braid, in his work on Hypnotism, tells us that he 
requested four gentlemen, in good health, to place their hands 
on a table with the palms upward, and each was to gaze on the 
palm of his hand in perfect silence. Within five minutes one of 
the gentlemen a member of the Royal Academy felt his hand 
turn icy cold ; another felt a pricking sensation on his palm ; a 
third experienced a great feeling of heat come over his hand ; 
while one gentleman's hand had become rigidly cataleptic and 
he could not move it from the table. Here we see the wonder- 
ful power of expectant imagination. But it sinks into insignifi- 
cance compared with the phenomena of artificial somnambulism 
or hypnotism, the serious study of which began only thirteen 
years ago. But its germs may be traced far back. Everything 
in mesmerism was not quackery; it contained some grains of 
truth. Deslon, Mesmer's first disciple, wrote in 1780: "If Mes- 
mer had no other secret than that of making use of the ima- 
gination as an influence for good over the health, would it not 
still be a wonderful secret ? For if the medicine of the imagi- 
nation be the best, why not make use of it ? " 

To-day mesmerism is dead, just as alchemy is dead. But 
from mesmerism has sprung the hypnotic suggestion, even as 
chemistry sprang from alchemy. But the phenomena of hypnot- 
ism have nothing whatever to do with a magnetic fluid or an 
emanation passing from one organism into another organism. In 
hypnotism everything seems due to suggestion to the dominat- 
ing influence of an idea suggested and accepted by the brain 
during the trance and while the will is seemingly in abeyance. 

We express no opinion of our own in regard to this new 
science, which is apparently working a revolution in psychology. 
We will readily accept whatever the church may at any time 
declare on the subject. But it is only true to say that many of 
the ablest physicians in Europe are devoting themselves to the 
study of hypnotism and that they have discovered nothing in 
it which does not admit of a scientific explanation. The standard 
work on the subject is that of Dr. Hippolyte Bernheim, professor 
of medicine at Nancy. In hypnotism we are dumfounded at the 
passive receptivity of the nervous system to anything suggested 
during the hypnotic trance : the flow of milk, the pulsations of 
the heart, the movements of the lungs, may all be changed at 
the suggestion of the hypnotizer. 






1890.] WONDERS OF THE NERVOUS SYSTEM, 463 

Nor could anything be more strange than the awakening 
from the trance. Dr. Bernheim sometimes tells the sleeper, 
" Count up to ten. When you will say in a loud voice, Ten, 
you will be awake." The moment the word " ten " is uttered 
the sleeper opens his eyes. But he has no recollection of hav- 
ing counted. At another time Dr. Bernheim will say, " You 
shall count as far as ten ; when you get to six you will be 
awake, but you shall keep on counting to ten." Having counted 
as far as " six," the sleeper awakens, but he continues to count. 
" When he has finished I ask him : ' Why do you count ? ' He 
does not recollect that he has counted. And this experiment I 
have performed a number of times on very intelligent persons." 
In the trance the idea suggested would seem to be transformed 
into an act with such marvellous rapidity, by the intensely excited 
automatic action of the cerebro -spinal system, that the intellect, 
the Ego, has not time to rouse itself and to exert its authority. 

The cerebro-spinal system, apparently endowed with a con- 
sciousness of its own, and having escaped from the rule of the Ego, 
is able for a while to have its own way. At least this is Dr. 
Bernheim's theory. And this intense excitement, this overpowering 
activity of the automatic action of the cerebro-spinal system may 
be prolonged beyond the trance, so that we continue even after 
we have awakened from it to execute the orders given to us 
while we were in it. And herein lies grave danger, for a crime 
might be committed. The person who has been hypnotized does 
not remember that he has been ordered to do anything; yet 
the impulse to do a certain thing is irresistible. Happily, an in- 
genious method has lately been found through hypnotism itself of 
discovering the hypnotizer who may have suggested an evil deed. 

The beneficial effects of the hypnotic treatment in heart dis- 
eases and in Bright's disease are unmistakable. But its good 
effects are most marked in nervous maladies. According to Dr. 
Bernheim, there is at bottom no difference between natural sleep 
and this artificial sleep. Only the natural sleeper is in touch 
with nobody except himself, and it is from his own last waking 
thoughts, and the condition of his own body, before his eyes 
close, that his dreams arise. But in the hypnotic sleep the idea, 
the personality of the hypnotizer remains ever present and up- 
permost in the brain of the sleeper ; and it is this dominating 
personality that gives the hypnotizer the power to call into action 
the sleeper's imagination, to suggest to him dreams, and to in- 
spire him to do things while the will of the person hypnotized 
seems for the time being unable to say yea or nay. 



464 BE THLEHEM. [Jan., 

In conclusion, let us say that the evidence points to vastly 
greater potentialities in the automatism of the cerebro-spinal sys- 
tem than we ever imagined. But why need this surprise us 
when we know that an Omnipotent Being is our Creator ? 
For ages ' past we have little by little been discovering a very 
few of the wonders and glories of his work. Let us continue 
our discoveries. And as our mortal body contains within it an 
immortal spirit, is it not worthy of deeper study than we com- 
monly bestow upon it ? If we understood it better, if we real- 
ized how keenly sensitive the body is to the way we treat it, we 
might live more soberly, more chastely, and we should find in 
virtue the surest means to elevate the human race. 

WILLIAM SETON. 



BETHLEHEM. 

A THREEFOLD Bethlehem I sing 
Of God the Word, of Christ the King, 
Of Him this day the Priest and Guest 
In Bethlehems of every breast. 

L 

* 

" In principle erat Verbum,"- John i, i, 

In the eternal solitude, 
Or ere the Spirit yet did brood 
Upon the waters, or the throng 

Of angel forms 

Leaped into sudden life and song 
To fill the emptiness with thrills 
Of life and motion, and with storms 
Of strenuous Hosannas break 
The awful silences, and shake 
The bases of the everlasting hills 

The God of Might, 
Throned high in inaccessible light, 
Utters, before the ages had begun, 

His word of equal Deity : 
THOU ART MY SON, 

THIS DAY HAVE I BEGOTTEN THEE, 
And lo ! the Co-eternal Son doth rest 
In the first Bethlehem of the Father's breast. 



1890.] BETHLEHEM. 465 

II. 

" Et Verbum caro factum est." John i. 14. 

A lowlier Bethlehem I sing 
For Christ, the King. 

Not in the inaccessible light, 
Whose faintest ray the ages doth illume, 
Of His, the Eternal Father's face, 
The splendent fount of life and grace ; 

But in a night 
Heavy with sullen shades of earthly gloom, 

Not in the Father's breast 

The Babe doth rest 
But in a manger low he lies, 
Whose feet should scale the farther skies ; 
No lightning splendors glorify his head; 

No courtly trains around him pass, 

And show a reverend knee 

To hidden Majesty; 

But ox and ass 
Bend an unconscious neck above his bed ! 

Spirits of God ! whose vision clear 

Doth compass every sphere; 

Whose songs can aye rehearse 
The utmost secrets of the universe, 

Find ye not in the Godhead here 
Secrets of love beyond angelic ken ? 

But oh ! children of men, 

Now that your King has come 
Vision of Prophets, and the long Desire 

Why are ye dumb ? 
Where is the streaming eye ? the heart with love afire ? 

Whose dwelling is the universe, 

On whom the Seraphim attend, 

For whom the highest heavens bend, 
He hath no need of worshippers ! 

But oh ! his heart is sore, 

Yea, runneth o'er, 

Not for the silent hour, the gloom, 
The squalor of the royal room, 



466 BETHLEHEM. [Jan., 

The swaddling clothes, the humble straw, 
Nor the brute beasts that near him draw, 

Nor mockery of the palace shed 

That bends above his manger-bed, 
Nor the rude blasts of winter-wind 

These, these were kind ! 

The cave of Bethlehem 
Were sure meet place for them ! 

Ah, no ! his loving heart 

Hath yet a sadder smart ; 

He came to seek, . to save ; 
But the rude bleakness blown from every hill 

Were yet less chill 
Than the cold hearts of men grown colder than the cave. 



III. 

" . . . Et habitavit in nobis." John i. 14. 

The lowliest Bethlehem, the least, 
For Christ, the Priest! 

O Bethlehem of Christ the King, 
The snowy portals open wide 
For simple-hearted worshipping. 

No earthly lore, 
No strife of schools, no tongue of books, 

No torch of war, 
The stubborn hearts of men shall guide 

Unto thy royal seat. 
Peaceful the folded flocks abide 

While shepherd-crooks 
Marshal the way unto thy Holy Place, 

Thou new Jerusalem! 

Yea, Bethlehem, 

From cunning Prudence, swelling Pride, 
Thou showest us 'tis good to hide 

The secret of the King ! 

But oh ! for Christ the Priest, 

What sinless doors unfold ? 

What frankincense, and myrrh, and gold, 
Bespeak the royal feast ? 



1890.] BETHLEHEM. 467 

See, humble Love and haughty Pride 

Walk side by side ; 
And Innocence, and horrid Sin, 
And flaming heart, and sluggish clod, 

All, all may enter in 
Unto the holy things of God ! 
Nay, rather, Christ doth make of them 

His unresisting Bethlehem ! 
Oh ! then, what tongues of Seraphim may tell 
Thy love, my God, that will not utter " nay " ? 

Nor yet again rehearse 

The tragedy of Egypt's curse 
Against thy handiwork of clay ? 

With blood the Lamb hath sprinkled all the posts 

Of Egypt and of Israel ! 
And so the weak, the halt, the blind, 
The palsied feet, the faded mind, 
The fainting heart, the dulled eye, 
The leper, slinking fearful by, 
The sick, the dead, the deaf, the dumb 

These, these are now become 
The tabernacles of the Lord of Hosts! 



IV. 

" Amen. Come, Lord Jesus." Apoc. xxii. 20. 

God, and King, and Priest, and Guest, 
Be not vain thy loving quest: 

Saviour, who hast sighed for us, 

Bled for us, and died for us, 

In the Host dost hide for us, 

In the Bread abide for us, 

All, all, to be born again 

In the hearts and souls of men, 

Enter there, and make of them 

Thine eternal Bethlehem! 

HUGH T. HENRY. 

Philadelphia. 



468 A PROTESTANT PROPAGANDA. [Jan., 



A PROTESTANT PROPAGANDA. 

THE foreign missionary operations of the orthodox Congrega- 
tional churches of the United States have been carried on during 
the past eighty years by the society known as " The American 
Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions." This associa- 
tion originated with a new and, among Protestants, hitherto 
unheard-of movement for the conversion of the heathen, which 
was started by a few devoted members of the Congregational 
churches early in the present century. . They were men deeply in 
earnest, who offered to go out as missionaries themselves, provided 
the churches would support them in the work. Their proposal . 
was accepted, and so great was the enthusiasm which their zeal 
enkindled that soon the conversion of the heathen became a rec- 
ognized work in which all the churches were bound to engage. 
As a means for carrying it out the society of the American 
Board was formed. There is something unique in this organiza- 
tion which displays the natural genius of the Yankee for practical 
efficiency. It is an independent corporation, elects its own mem- 
bers, has its own theological standard, its own rules, and enforces 
these rules after its own fashion. It is characteristic of this race 
to be for organization; we see this exemplified in politics, busi- 
ness, and, in fact, in everything except the one thing where it is 
most needed church government. Had they the Catholic faith 
they would be invincible. 

Foreign as the constitution of the American Board is to the 
principles of Congregational polity, it always worked harmoniously 
with it until the board* refused to sanction Progressive Orthodoxy. 
Back to this issue must be traced the fundamental differences which 
have disturbed its peace and prosperity during the past few years, 
and which threaten to cripple its efficiency in the future. This 
vagary of probation after death is one of those revolutionary ideas 
which upset the whole system of revelation. According to this 
theory, faith and repentance, instead of being limited to man's 
proper militant sphere, the present life, are vainly looked for in 
a world where he is no longer perfect man but only disembodied 
spirit. The actual followers of this theory are probably few if 
the whole denomination be considered, but there is a large mino- 
rity who sympathize with them or are tolerant of their views. 
Furthermore, they have found no difficulty in obtaining a foothold 
in the churches, which are powerless through lack of organiza- 



1890.] A PROTESTANT PROPAGANDA. 469 

tion. " The Congregational body," says the Christian Intelli- 
gencer, " has scarcely a consensus of doctrine, and in one council 
may demand the strictest orthodoxy and in another allow the 
widest latitudinarianism in the candidates for the ministry. The 
ordination of a Congregational minister decides little or nothing 
as respects doctrinal position." 

But how to get along with the intolerant American Board is the 
problem which the new school are trying hard to solve. At the 
Cleveland session of the Missionary Society last year they were 
somewhat pacified by the action of the board in choosing a Pru- 
dential Committee of fifteen to . consider possible plans for bring- 
ing the board and churches closer together. But when this com- 
mittee reported at the recent New York meeting that they were 
" unprepared to recommend any change at present in the 
methods of election to corporate membership " the feeling of dis- 
satisfaction became stronger than ever. It then immediately be- 
came clear to every one that the board is simply an arbitrary 
doctrinal and disciplinary propaganda which may snap its fin- 
gers at the churches and ecclesiastical councils according to its 
own pleasure. Dr. Patten, one of its members, in a vigorous 
speech before the whole assembly, describes exactly how the 
board deals with its candidates for service. I will quote his 
words .as reported in the Independent of October 24, 1889: 

" When, sir, a y9ung man, having studied in one of our Con- 
gregational theological seminaries also represented by a delegate 
in our National Council sets his heart upon going to the mission- 
ary field, he perhaps applies to a Congregational local associ- 
ation to be examined and to be approved as a probationer for 
the ministry. He is so examined and approved, after a careful 
inquiry into his doctrinal soundness. Perhaps he even goes fur- 
ther, as has been done in one or more cases that might be 
named. Perhaps he goes before a Congregational Council and 
asks to be ordained as a Congregational minister. They subject 
him to a careful theological examination ; they approve him and 
the council is not a picked one, it is a council of the vicinage; 
not a small council, but a large one ; not feeble in intellect, but 
composed of men of ability known through the land such a 
council approves the man theologically, and even goes so far as 
to specifically declare that in that and other respects he is an 
excellent man to send to the foreign field. And when he is or- 
dained, in behalf of that council a brother steps forward and 
gives him the right hand of fellowship. What does that mean ? 
His individual fellowship? No, sir. It means the fellowship of 
that council, and through that council the fellowship of the de- 



4/0 A PROTESTANT PROPAGANDA. [Jan., 

nomination. Having thus received the fellowship of the denom- 
ination as a doctrinally sound man, and, so far forth as that is 
concerned, worthy to be sent to the missionary field (he having 
expressed his wish to go thither), he makes application to the 
Prudential Committee of this Board, and they, setting up a test 
not recognized by our councils, a test that is not warranted 
by the creed that was formed by a commission from the Nation- 
al Council, a test which our denomination, as such, knows nothing 
of, which it refuses to apply in case t after case of men who 
come before its councils this committee rejects the man, and 
thereby flings defiance in the face of the organized ecclesiastical 
fellowship of the Congregational churches. Now, sir, the case is 
a very simple one ecclesiastically. I am not discussing a point 
on which there may be division ; I am not saying he is right or 
wrong theologically. It is the fact that a man pronounced in 
fellowship with our churches ecclesiastically is then rejected on 
the very ground on which he has been approved rejected by 
this body through its Prudential Committee. And yet it calls 
itself our agency and represents itself by a delegate in our Na- 
tional Council. These things cannot be reconciled, sir, and our 
churches will never be satisfied until some steps are taken either 
by an alteration of the provision of this board in that respect, or 
an alteration of its constitution, by which it shall come more 
under the action of the churches, and there shall be an end to 
this discordant and contradictory matter. I have spoken plainly 
because this is a great question and the committee must give it 
consideration. If this committee can find no mode of extrica- 
tion for the board, others will find a mode of extrication for 
the churches. " 

The American Board claims to be only an agency of the Con- 
gregational churches. What right, therefore, say the minority, 
has it to independent action ? It certainly has no right, if it is a 
Congregational society. Moreover, Dr. Patten has a just griev- 
ance against it, as every one can see. No one ventured to deny 
his charges ; the only refuge for the defence was evasion ; reply 
was plainly impossible. 

Dr. Griffis, another member, also arraigned the board at the 
last meeting on account of its opposition to the churches. He 
speaks of three scandals which have arisen from its method of 
action. One is the notorious fact that nearly all the Congrega- 
tional ministers in the principal part of Boston, besides many 
others outside, would not be permitted by the board to preach 
the Gospel to the heathen ; the second is that no Congregation- 
al minister, unless he comes in the character of a member, can 



1890.] A PROTESTANT PROPAGANDA. 471 

have a voice in the proceedings of the board ; thirdly, it is shame- 
ful that every candidate for the missions has to go before a secret 
tribunal to be judged, where he cannot take the position given 
him by a Congregational council. And these accusations were 
simply ignored ; they could not be denied. As long as the board 
professes to be Congregational, it is certainly bound to abide by 
the decisions of the churches and ecclesiastical councils. Its pres- 
ent position is, therefore, manifestly absurd and ridiculous. If it 
wishes to remain orthodox in spite of the denomination, its only 
consistent cdurse is to sever its connection with these unorthodox 
churches, expel its own liberal members, and become the agency 
of the strictly orthodox churches. But to do this would be dif- 
ficult, because the churches everywhere are more or less infected 
with the new doctrines. 

Now, it must become evident to every unbiased observer that 
the evil which these men are seeking to remove lies deeper than 
either party is willing to admit. It is inherent in the congrega- 
tional polity, which has been very appropriately compared to " a 
rope of sand." It is the misfortune of our non-Catholic brethren 
that they never see their inconsistencies except singly, one by 
one, and only when it is too late to avoid a crash. What they 
all need is authority. Without it there can never be unanim- 
ity. Even the vote of a majority counts for nothing if the 
principle of authority be wanting ; an unauthoritative religious 
body by its very nature can never require obedience. It can 
never make laws or rules without unmaking itself. From such 
bodies there must always be the legitimate refuge of secession, 
and this, if actually carried out, would destroy the organization. 
Nothing is more fallacious than the analogy which is sometimes 
made between independent states and churches. For it to hold 
there would have to be various authoritative churches, as there 
are different sovereign states. It must be conceded that all 
legitimate civil power is from God, and that the just laws of 
states bind in conscience; a president of our own Republic, for 
example, when duly elected, rules as validly as ever divinely- 
chosen king governed Israel. 

Let us now apply these principles to spiritual government. 
All admit that there is such a thing as divine law through reve- 
lation, but if opposing churches and individuals are at liberty to 
interpret it in different ways, it becomes of no effect. A law by 
its very definition means a rule which emanates from authority 
and is of universal application ; it presupposes authority and 
would be impossible without it. Hence we conclude that inas- 



472 "AND PEACE ON EARTH!' [Jan., 

much as law is a part of revelation and depends upon author- 
ity, revelation is inseparably linked with authority. 

The Catholic Church is the only perfect religious society in 
the world, because she alone embodies those principles which 
unite men with God and with each other; and there are indi- 
cations, thank God ! that many of our separated brethren, who 
think and are conscientious, are beginning to see that the unity 
which she alone possesses must be divine. Her unity and per- 
petuity are the most prominent facts in the history of Christian- 
ity, and the promises of Christ are so manifestly the foundation 
of her authority that the latter could never have existed without 
the former. " Facts are never misinterpretations of God's prom- 
ises. God never misinterprets himself in history." 

H. H. WYMAX. 



" AND PEACE ON EARTH." 

"WELL, good-night and a Merry Christmas to you!" said the 
senior partner, shaking Ellis Whitcomb's hand. " And, dear me, 
man, why do you stultify yourself any longer over those papers ? 
Christmas eve, of all nights, when the wife and bairns must be 
expecting you home!" 

" I get on faster when the others have gone and it's quiet," 
said Whitcomb. But when Mr. Gurney had left he seeme'd to 
forget all about his work, and leaned back in his chair with a 
look of abstraction, despairingly noted through the glass door by the 
office-boy, waiting to close up, and longing to be out on the street 
with the rest of the surging holiday throng. In truth, the young 
lawyer had been retarded in his writing, and could hardly see it 
now, by reason of a vision which interposed itself between his 
eyes and the closely written pages, and would not down for all 
his habit of concentration. It was of a man's head, younger than 
his own, and of a more joyous type than were his clear-cut, 
grave, intellectual features. The hair, of a much brighter brown 
than Ellis Whitcomb's, waved gracefully over the boyish head, 
and the curves of the smiling mouth and glance of the bright 
eyes showed an ardent love of pleasure, and perhaps a touch of 
recklessness. The last time he had seen it the face had 
worn a look of angry defiance, and the recklessness had 
degenerated into insolence. Yet still to another might have 
been visible the subtle family likeness so curiously assim- 



1890.] " AND PEACE ON EARTH" 473 

ilating faces otherwise different. For these two heads had lain 
on one pillow in care-free, dreamless nights long gone, and had 
.bent together in brotherly amity over the same school-books. 
And the elder could hear across the years an echo of the moth- 
erly voice, silent now, which said : " And when I leave you two 
alone together, you must bear with him, Ellis, for he is younger 
and much more impetuous than you." 

He rose and commenced pacing up and down the floor, 
unknowing of the office-boy's pantomime without, which simulated 
the tearing out of handfuls of hair at the further delay. Had it 
been but a year ago that in this very room his indignation at 
the younger brother's misconduct betting on horses and gam- 
bling at cards, wild associates and reckless courses, euphemistically 
called " follies " by the w r orld had provoked a sharp reprimand, 
which, met with defiance, had ended in a merited dismissal from 
the firm's employ ? In that he could feel that he was right. The 
stern sense of justice which dealt equally with himself and others 
fully approved. Any further condonation of negligence absolute 
and entire, a little more indulgence, and chaos in the establish- 
ment must have come again. Already the eye-brows of the senior 
partner something of a martinet took a significant curve at 
mention of Walter Whitcomb's name, though he forbore greatly 
for his valued junior's sake. Already among the clerks had crept 
in a general laxity and breaches of discipline, tacitly assumed to 
be justified by the younger Whitcomb's example. Had not Ellis 
tried in the years during which he had been mounting in fortune 
and reputation in his profession to draw his brother with ' him 
and infuse into the really brilliant though undisciplined mind his 
own steady ambition and habits of work and self-control? Then, 
at the last, after so much forbearance and indulgence, to have 
Walter take his hat with a careless smile and say : " So I am 
free at last ! No pent-up Utica of a law-office with unending 
briefs and cast-iron rules need contain me longer. You see, 
Ellis, having only blood and not ichor in my veins, I cannot sit 
superior among the gods, like you, or like my grandsire carved 
in alabaster ! " 

Thus far the elder's conscience had gone with him in retro- 
spect ; but now he felt a pang, remembering the incisive, freez- 
ing words of cold contempt with which he met this outburst, 
angered at the assumption that he who was but a man had had 
no temptations to overcome, no hours of self-combat. Then his 
brother, with debonnaire smile changed to a sudden white look, 
had said : 



474 "AND PEACE ON EARTH" [Jan., 

" I presume I may see Christine when I call ? " 

"As she shall decide," sternly. After this Walter had 
left without another word, to reappear at his brother's house 
that night in company for the first time for intemperance was 
not his habit with an enemy who had stolen his brains. His 
careless demeanor, his wild sallies, his reckless laughter had 
shocked the two women who had been his constant advocates, 
his betrothed and her sister, Ellis's wife. And next day, with- 
out a word exchanged between the sisters on this subject, the 
girl sent her lover a note of dismissal for what seemed to 
her spirited though gentle nature a deliberate insult as well 
as an ill omen for the future. Since then his name had not 
been mentioned among them, though her indifference to other 
suitors and a recent severe illness had made Mr. and Mrs. 
Whitcomb suspect that her grieved longing for the absent was 
greater than pride would have allowed. 

The brother frowned now, then sighed heavily, and going 
to the desk began gathering the scattered papers. The office- 
boy, hope springing eternally in his human breast, stood on his 
hands in the deep shadow outside the radius of electric light 
at this favorable sign, but resumed his usual perpendicular hastily 
and confusedly at sight of a form which came in through the 
outer door, while a visitor's voice asked : 

" Mr. Whitcomb still here ? Ah ! yes, I see him. You need 
not show me in; I know the way." 

The glass door closed again, and the boy gave himself up 
once more to utter depression. 

" Ah ! Mr. Whitcomb," said the caller, a young man and 
very carefully attired, " I hardly hoped to find you here so 
late on Christmas eve. I am afraid you work too closely. 
You should be more careful of your health." 

" Thank you, I am very well," replied Whitcomb with the 
impassive look and manner he habitually wore with all but 
intimates. "What can I do for you, Mr. Hammond? Sit 
down." 

" As I have chanced to find you here I will detain you 
for a moment, though most likely my call, as a matter of 
business" smiling "is absurdly unnecessary. Our paying tel- 
ler's frequent spasms of distrust often make us laugh at the 
bank. However, in this case" feeling in an inner pocket " he 
having raised the ghost of a doubt, it was best to have it 
laid at once." 

He opened his note-book, and took out a slip of paper. 



1890.] "AND PEACE ON EARTH." 475 

" A check of yours was presented at bank to-day and cashed. 
On after-scrutiny the teller fancied there was something queer 
about the signature. It looks all right to me, but he per- 
sisted in finding some unfamiliar touches about it ; and to satisfy 
his tardy caution I undertook to show it to you on my way 
home this evening. The child is well known at the bank." 

" The child ? " Whitcomb said inquiringly, taking the paper 
from his hand. 

" A little girl, name Green ; mother keeps house on Thirty- 
fourth Street," with a swift but intent look at Whitcomb's face. 
"She has often" slowly "been to the bank before." 

The lawyer's expression changed not at all under scrutiny. 
" To present my checks, usually ? " he asked. 

The visitor hesitated perceptibly. " When your brother was 
with you, you know. He sent her occasionally to draw money 
for him when convenient." 

Whitcomb drew nearer the great green shade over his light 
to look more closely at the check. Who was it that had the 
faculty of copying hand-writing so exactly? Whose playful imi- 
tation of his signature had often caused a smile and the point- 
ing out of minute differences, one or two of which were visible 
here ? With whom had Walter lodged since he had wilfully 
abandoned the restraints of his brother's roof? A sort of spasm 
constricted for a moment the regular features, which were as 
calm as ever when he turned to the cashier and said quietly, 
after glancing at his check-book : " You may tell Mr. Ander- 
son that it is all right, and the bank is quite safe." 

Hammond arose, buttoning a loosened glove, and cheerfully 
rejoined : " Well, it will be quite a relief to the old fellow. 
And you will excuse my detaining you. A lawyer must know, 
even better than a bank officer, that the habit of distrust in a 
business man is unfortunately well founded." He received a bow 
of assent to this pessimistic view of human nature, and paused 
at the door to say ceremoniously : " Will you kindly present my 
compliments to Mrs. Whitcomb and Miss Selby. I am going 
out of town for the holidays, or would have the pleasure of call- 
ing on them" a pleasure which he knew Miss Selby, at least, 
hardly counted on his having, in view of a recent interview, dis- 
appointing in nature to him ; but he trusted to her delicate reti- 
cence, and was a man, moreover, tenacious of purpose. Out in 
the street he smiled, lighting a cigarette, and muttered between 
his teeth : 

" It's all the same to me. If he chooses to acknowledge the 



476 "AND PEACE ON EARTH" [Jan., 

signature, it still answers my purpose of keeping that fellow from 
the house where she is; and time and I against any two." And 
was presently lost in the hurrying multitude. 

Up-stairs, the lawyer finished securing his papers, and gave 
the office-boy, now almost past emotion, a handsome Christmas- 
box, together with the welcome dismissal. The boy's grin of de- 
light faded in a measure when he looked up at his employer, 
whom he admired beyond all sons of men. 

" I guess you're as tired as me, Mr. Whitcomb," he ventured. 

" As tired as you ! Well, I have kept you late, Tom, for 
Christmas eve. Enjoy yourself all you can and be a good boy." 

He had to stand in the " L " car all the way home, and was 
jostled and pushed and prodded with Noah's arks and dolls' 
legs and tin swords and other very much considered trifles irregularly 
outlining the bundles carried homeward by happy, tired shoppers. 
Ordinarily the humors of this good-natured Christmas mob 
would have diverted him ; and the glimpses afforded, through all 
the noise and laughter of the swaying jam of people, into the 
common, kindly, human affections would have appealed to the 
deep tenderness underlying his rather cold appearance. But to- 
night he hardly knew he was uncomfortably crowded, and only 
noted, unconsciously, a sign somewhere, a flaming advertisement 
of Angostura Bitters, which he must have repeated scores of 
times mentally without once apprehending its meaning. When 
he got out finally at his station, near the Park, he ran down 
the steps, nor observed in the least the beauty of the night, with 
the " white moon shepherding her stars of gold," as on another 
Christmas eve long ago, under far Syrian skies. At the corner 
of his street the clear, chill air struck coldly on his cheek, and 
he realized the necessity of pulling himself together before going 
in. He walked the length of the snow-banked pavement, which 
a late frost had left crisp and firm, three, four, many times 
before he had well under control the tumult of shocked feelings, 
of miserable disappointment, of wretched suspicion amounting to 
mental conviction; keenest of all, perhaps secretly, of mortally 
wounded pride, that the family standard held aloft by him should 
be dragged in the mire by another, and that other Walter ! Did 
Hammond suspect? He thought he had detected a curious ex- 
pression of his once or twice. He might be intimate with Wal- 
ter belonged to the same clubs, perhaps ; how could he tell who, 
through the strange chances of a great city, had not seen his 
brother's face for a year ? He forcibly ceased thinking of the 
matter for the time, and let himself in at his door. 



1890.] "AND PEACE ON EARTH:' 477 

"Papa, papa!" cried his two chubby boys, tumbling over each 
other to get at him. 

"They are only waiting to see you before going to bed," 
said the dainty little woman on his arm. " Boys who want to 
go to five o'clock Mass should be asleep by this time. Are you 
not very late, dear ? " 

" I was getting ravenous myself," the tall, graceful girl under 
the portiere calmly remarked. " A Barmacide's feast is all very 
well up to nine o'clock, but I was just preparing to dine off 
Hugh or Selby when you came in." 

" We an't been killed yet ! " said darkly, with a small war- 
whoop, Hugh, who addressed his aunt, and whose grammar, his 
mother declared, made cold chills run up and down her spine. 

" You have spent the time of waiting profitably, at least," said 
Whitcomb, glancing about the pretty rooms, gay with Christmas 
boughs and flowers. " What delicious fragrance! Ah! the violets." 

He bent over the flat basket filled with violets of all shades 
and fringed with maiden's-hair fern, and with simply an address 
affixed. 

" They are Christine's prettiest gift," said his wife, " and came 
without card or message. She cannot guess the sender." 

The faintest accession of color in the girl's fair cheek might 
have seemed to contradict this. 

" Mr. Hammond, perhaps," continued his wife. " He sends 
flowers frequently." 

" They do not look like Mr. Hammond's," said the girl. " He 
thinks more showy blooms and of gayer tints better become 
young womanhood's time o' day. His taste is not, I fancy, for 
' violets dim, but sweeter than the lids of Juno's eyes or Cytherea's 
breath ' " this with a caress in her voice ; then, somewhat jeal- 
ously drawing her basket away from the others' eyes : " You will 
not mind if I am a little selfish with these, and take them to my 
oratory? The parlors are so filled with flowers." 

As she carried them carefully away a sudden thought struck 
her sister, and she glanced quickly and apprehensively at her 
husband. But he was playing with the little sons, and she did 
not see the slight, contraction of his brow which followed her 
suggestive look. 

Christmas day dawned clear, cold, and bright, as the night 
had promised. Joy-bells rang early from the steeples, merry lit- 
tle knots of people came trooping through the streets from the 
first Masses. The cheery voices of his own family group return- 
ing awaked Whitcomb from an oppressive dream to remember 
VOL. L. 31 



478 "AND PEACE ON EARTH." [Jan., 

that a sullen cloud lowered over his day. Every trace of regret- 
ful tenderness was now eliminated from his mood, which had set- 
tled into bitter indignation and cold contempt for the sinner. 
With all so ill about his heart, there were Christmas gifts and 
greetings to exchange, his wife and sister's pretty attentions to 
acknowledge, the boys 1 clamorous, overwhelming, swarming, but 
fortunately short-lived, gratitude to endure. He had a half-thought, 
so unfit his frame of mind, of omitting attendance at the late 
Mass ; but the habit of religious observance prevailed. 

" O papa ! " cried Hugh, hopping about the party ready to 
start, " don't mamma and Auntie Chris look beautiful in their 
new coats ? " 

" Forgive the ungallant omission of which Hugh reminds me, 
ladies," said Whitcomb. " I should have told you before that no 
nymphs of Venus, in new seal-skin coats and turbans, could ever 
look half so fair as you do ! " In fact, the soft fur brought out 
to charming advantage the tints of Christine's cheeks and soft 
blond curls about brow and neck. Why did his wife sigh as 
the girl stepped in front with a little escort on each side ? Was 
it of the violets she thought ? 

" If you will both permit me one criticism," said Whitcomb 
hastily, in a jesting tone, " I am responsible for the seal-skin, but 
not for those dead birds I see in the hats." 

"They were quite dead when they came to us," said Christine 
over her shoulder, with pretended ingenuousness. 

" As dead as the seals were," supplemented his wife. 

" The seals give warmth at least with their skins, but you 
cannot pretend the poor little slain birds are useful." 

"What became of the quantities of fish you used to catch last 
summer in the Adirondacks ? " inquired his wife with apparent 
irrelevance. A discussion, half-jest, half-earnest, lasted until they 
were at the church-door. But when the girl stopped in the porch 
to draw her gloved hand from the muff and touch his, whis- 
pering with a smile : 

" You are quite right, Ellis, and all such cruelty is wrong. I 
will celebrate His birthday by abjuring it," why should the 
trifling episode have made his hurt throb painfully ? Good God ! 
how sweet were the best of women, and how unworthy often 
those to whom they gave their pure affections ! He knelt and 
rose, and knelt and rose, and hardly knew where he was until 
the choristers' clear, sweet, thrilling tones swelled high in the 
"Gloria in Excel sis." " Et in terra pax" they sang, and a 
surging wave of anger went through him, hotly. "Peace," 



1890.] "AND PEACE ON EARTH" 479 

"peace," where there was none. The Prince of Peace had come, 
and what then? Was there any less selfish wickedness or 
triumphant sin in the world ? " Bonce voluntatis " chanted the 
boyish voices. He caught at the thought ; it was only to men 
of gentle will this peace was promised. But why, then, was he 
so tormented who had tried to keep himself from ill-doing ? 
Did any sinner suffer alone ? or did he not rather go on his way 
careless, leaving the suffering to others ? " If I refrain from pun- 
ishing him, I hope God will not," he had nearly hardened him- 
self into thinking. 

The Mass went on with chiming bells and mists of incense 
and solemn intoning, and at last the preacher mounted into the 
pulpit, a spare, worn-looking man, in the dress of his order, with 
a singularly sweet expression. He read the epistle and gospel 
appointed for this -Mass, and Whitcomb took a hard satisfaction 
in such phrases as : " Making purgation of sins," " His ministers 
a flame of fire," " Who hast loved justice and hated iniquity !" 
But the father, after some timely affectionate Christmas greetings 
to his flock, passed on to discourse otherwise. 

" To-day is born to us a Saviour," he said in substance, 
" who, his rulership and eternal justice in abeyance, stretches 
out his hands with yearning ardor, pleading always, ' My Son, 
give me your heart ; I come for it ! Behold, I stand at your door 
and wait.' Oh! dearly beloved, think of it ! He waits! He waits ! 
Is there one of us would keep him without? The source and per- 
fection of truth, beauty, light, sweetness, of all we desire and adore, 
stands at our door, lovingly calling. And wide open we throw 
the portals and fall at his feet, and pray him to enter because 
of the love we bear him." 

" But what if he, Life of our life, comes not in ? What if he 
turns away with sorrowful eyes and tender voice, complaining : 
'Nay, this dwelling is not for me. There is no love within!' 
'Oh! Master, who could fail to love you?' And he answers in 
words that himself inspired: 'If any man say, I love God, and 
hateth his brother, he is a liar.' " 

"Come, let us see if this it is which keeps the Lord from 
our unprepared souls. Have we built around ourselves a wall 
of pride and angry resentment and contempt for the little ones 
and the weaker brethren ? Do we wrap our garments in phari- 
saical scorn about us and withdraw them from the clinging 
hands of those who might with such help arise ? Have we 
that charity without which he knows we love not him ? the 
charity which is patient, is kind, is not provoked to anger ; 



480 "AND PEACE ON EARTH:' [Jan., 

which beareth, hopeth, endureth all things, and which never 
falleth away; the charity we so sorely need, each one from 
others, for who can say: 'My heart is clean; I am pure from 
sin ' ? And in his eyes there is no man upon earth who doth 
good and sinneth not! But to our proud and unforgiving souls 
shall we lay the flattering unction that it is the wrong we 
scorn and not the offender? God is not thus mocked. His 
clear eyes see the pride, the spiritual arrogance, which make 
us walk far on the other side, though he has bidden us help 
our brother rise not seven or seventy times, but always, as 
He does. * He that loveth not knoweth not God, for God is 
love.' On this gracious Christmas day he came to be a pro- 
pitiation for the sins of each of us." 

" My dearest, if God hath so loved us, we also ought to 
love one another. Let ' us love one another, dearly beloved, 
for love is of God. And this commandment we have from 
God, that he who loveth God love also his brother. So, 
dearly beloved, may the divine Guest enter the open portals of 
our souls, and finding there that ardent, helpful, humble broth- 
erly love, leave with us his peace which is eternal and passeth 
understanding." 

A few more words, and the father left the pulpit. To Ellis 
Whitcomb every word was as though addressed to him directly, 
so earnest was the preacher's manner, so entirely was he pos- 
sessed with the feeling of his words. " To men of good-will," 
a voice seemed whispering, and suddenly a touch of sad humility 
came to soften him, and his anger was more like grief. After 
the last gospel, and when the white-robed procession of priests 
and choristers went winding out, their voices fading gradually 
away in the " Adeste fideles," he was able to sink on his knees 
and say for his first prayer that day : " Oh ! give me, a sinner, 
grace to forgive ! " His secret burden was still with him, yet 
his heart was certainly lighter to take part in the cheery saluta- 
tions and greetings outside, where the sparkling snow and sun- 
shine combined to make all bright. 

" By the way," said a recent acquaintance, " I must congra- 
tulate you if your namesake on the Era is a relative. To mount 
from a reportership to writing brilliant leaders that every one is 
talking about within one year is a rapid flight." 

" My brother writes for that paper," said Whitcomb quietly ; 
which, indeed, was all he knew now of Walter's life, save one 
other damning fact. 

High carnival reigned in the nursery, where a flock of visit- 



1890.] "AND PEACE ON EARTH" 481 

ing children aided Hugh and Selby to act some little Christmas 
play under the able management of Aunt Christine. 

" A gentleman to see you in the liberry, Mr. Whitcomb," 
announced the new butler. " Didn't give no card, sir." The 
fleeting smile at the children's antics had left his lips before he 
entered the library. And there stood he whose face had come 
between him and work last night. " Walter ! " The surprise made 
him stand mute and apparently cold. The other's eager advance 
was checked. 

" It is Christmas day, Ellis ; and though I acted like a brute, 
and you were a little harsh, perhaps, though just, the last time I 
was here, I have returned, you see. I thought after after all the 
kindness I seemed to slight you might still be interested in hear- 
ing of my success. I have worked hard since then at business 
more congenial to me than law papers" with a most winning 
smile " and have kept steady for my own sake, not to speak of 
yours, and and well, to end the tedious, brief tale, I am pro- 
moted to a desk in the editorial room now, with a fair prospect 
for the future." 

''I am very glad. I congratulate you," said Ellis, but so me- 
chanically that his brother was chilled and repulsed. 

" You may be more interested," said he in an altered tone, 
" in the second matter which brought me here. I was told that 
Gurney & Whitcomb had invested largely in Nirvana Mine stock. 
As a journalist I happen to know that it is unsound, and to be 
got rid of as soon as possible." 

" We were only thinking of investing, and thank you for your 
very useful information "; but still with such constraint that Walter 
cried : 

" As you are so ill-pleased to see me, Ellis, I will not stay ; 
but surely we may shake hands first." He held his out, but his 
brother made no movement towards it, and, wounded to the heart, 
he turned to go. 

"Stop !" said Ellis abruptly. " I was thinking of something 
else. Are you still lodging with Mrs. Green, in Thirty-fourth 
Street?" 

"Yes/' with some wonder, "as she inclines to spoil me, I con- 
tinue to give her the chance." 

" Do you generally pay her several months at a time, and with 
a check ?" 

" Certainly not," with increasing surprise. " You are thinking 
of the careless fellow I used to be. After after receiving a certain 
letter which was as torturing and salutary as the surgeon's knife, 



482 "AND PEACE ON EARTH" LJ an -> 

I laid down strict rules of life for myself, and one is to pay as I 
go or not to go." 

" Then if her little girl presented one of my checks at 
bank" 

*' Can't see what her little girl would be doing with checks 
signed by you. I used to send her sometimes long ago, but not 
for the last year, certainly, for more than one reason." 

" It was a check with my signature," hoarsely and drawing 
nearer, " but not signed by me." 'The brothers looked into 
each other's faces, and Walter's flushed darkly-red up to the sunny 
locks on his temples, then grew white. 

" And could you think because I used in jest to imitate 
Gracious God ! could you think such a thing of me ? I would not 
have believed the world against you." 

" Our different lives your temptations your difficulties I 
knew nothing," Ellis said brokenly. 

" If I must prove my innocence to you," Walter said hotly, 
" it shall be done. But now I will go. I cannot breathe here a 
moment longer, and it is I who would not touch your hand 
now." 

He moved towards the door. " Stay, stay !" cried the elder, 
stepping between. Without further proof than the frank glance of 
those wide, blue eyes, and ringing, indignant tones of the familiar 
voice, the dense cloud of misery which had enveloped him since 
last night seemed to roll away in a moment, and all was clear as 
the day. 

" My dear, dearest boy, forgive me ! Now that I see you 
again, I know it was impossible." Who had seen before this new 
expression of humility mixed with love on the lawyer's grave, 
proud face ? He held out his arms unconsciously. " O Walter ! 
how I have loved and missed 'you all these days!" The eager 
blood rushed once more into the younger's face, and in another 
instant the two men held each other in close embrace, a hard- 
wrung sob from Ellis testifying to the tense strain of the past 
hours. 

" You will see now," said Walter cheerfully, later on, " how 
quickly we two together can clear up this matter. Tell me the 
circumstances." 

" Hammond ! Hammond ! " he cried, when he had heard the 
account. " I know a thing or two about Mr. Hammond which 
it might be well for the bank to know. He is also a bitter en- 
emy of mine since I opposed his admission to a certain club, 
where it would not have been safe for the younger members to 



1890.] "AND PEACE ON EARTH" 483 

play cards with him. I had meant to warn you when I heard 
that he visited here often. Is he a favorite with with Ada ? " 

"With neither of the ladies," with commendable gravity ; then 
fiercely : " If he is the rascal, he shall pay me for what I have 
endured ! We will follow Mr. Hammond's windings until they 
land him in prison or in Canada." 

" But not to-day ! " said Walter, with a wistful note. " To- 
morrow will be soon enough for justice. It is Christmas. This 
morning I went to church, and I hope to see an angel before 
night " with questioning. 

" As she shall decide," said Ellis, in words used before, but 
how different a tone ! " Will you stay now ? " 

" I cannot. I am late for an appointment." 

" Come back to dinner. We expect some people ; but if you 
came an hour early ; and I asked Christine just then to arrange 
the flowers on the table " 

As Walter took off his overcoat in the hall that night he 
could hear the children's voices where they sang overhead with 
their mother in the nursery, before going to bed, the old carol : 

"And all the choirs of heaven shall sing 
On Christmas day, on Christmas day ! " 

And while he stood there, the fat butler being gone, down 
the wide stair-case carpeted with dull red came, in slow un- 
consciousness, a vision he had dreamed of. Slender and spirituel, 
in a soft, white gown bordered with a narrow broidery of gold 
about neck and hem, a knot of violets at her belt, the light 
shining on the blond curls, cut short during her illness and clus- 
tering about her graceful head, Christine looked now like an 
angel of Fra Angelico's. At the landing she stood transfixed, 
suddenly meeting his upturned, ardent gaze. In a few rapid steps 
he had mounted to her feet, and knelt there. " Oh ! love, can 
you find -some little forgiveness in your heart for me ? I saw 
you at Communion this morning, when you wore my violets, and 
you wear them now. Did you guess they came from me ? 
Remember over whom there is most joy in heaven, and speak to 
me, sweetest ! " He raised the hem of her robe to his lips, 
while with a lovely smile she laid her two hands on his should- 
ers, and overhead the childish voices sang : 

" And the joy-bells of earth shall ring 
On Christmas day, on Christmas day !" 

JEANIE DRAKE. 



484 A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 



A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 

IT has become the fashion to publish letters, diaries, whatso- 
ever personal fragments may remain of those who have in any 
way gained prominence among their fellows. It is a time which 
delights in analysis of one's self or of others. By means of such 
personal fragments access is had in some degree to the inner life 
of men of whom the outward life is, or was, matter of comment. 
The letters of Thomas D'Arcy McGee, or, rather, such extracts as 
have been selected from amongst many, offer no exception to the 
rule. They are a true index to his character. Their testimony is 
the more valuable that it was Mr. McGee's lot, as it is too often 
the lot of genius, to be misunderstood. Yet when the history of 
the period in which he lived comes to be written, in so far as the 
history of Ireland and the history of Canada are concerned, the 
name of Thomas D'Arcy McGee will stand out in bold relief. And 
not alone because he was the poet, the orator, the historian, but on 
account of those statesman-like qualities which aided so powerfully 
the moulding of a new empire in North America, and forecast 
schemes so enlightened, so wise, and so far-seeing for Ireland. In 
this latter respect he was in advance of his times. He foresaw 
much that has since come to pass. 

Mr. McGee has been compared to Edmund Burke, and with 
justice. But it must be observed that at an age when Edmund 
Burke was scarcely entering upon his career of greatness Thomas 
D'Arcy McGee's earthly course came to a sudden and awful stop. 
The hand of a wretched fellow-creature deprived him of life at 
the very time when his powers were attaining their full maturity. 
It is said that he made the most brilliant speech of his life in 
the hours preceding his assassination. The discourse was on the 
union of the provinces, and for more than two hours he held 
friend and foe spellbound by his marvellous eloquence. It was a 
cherished scheme of Mr. McGee to publish biographies of the Irish 
orators. Any such catalogue would have been incomplete without 
his own name. The charm of finished oratory has been univer- 
sally accorded him, with a personal magnetism proceeding from 
fine and warm sympathy, with ready enthusiasm, with high aspira- 
tion, with lofty conceptions, with the soul of a poet, the brain of 
a statesman, and the heart of a patriot. What a life, how valu- 
able to the cause of Ireland, how serviceable to his adopted 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 485 

country, was cut short by that fatal bullet ! It was the saddest 
irony of destiny that Mr. McGee's love for the Irish people should 
have been, by a certain portion of them, so cruelly misunderstood. 
Love of Ireland and the Irish was a species of infatuation with 
him. He never wearied devising plans for the elevation and the 
welfare of his countrymen at home and abroad. An insult offered 
to his race galled him more than an affront to himself. It wounded 
him most of all that Irishmen should ever seem wanting in self- 
respect, or should by their conduct expose themselves to reproach. 
This excessive solicitude for their good name betrayed him occasion- 
ally into a warmth of language which was made a weapon against 
him. However, it is neither the object of the present sketch to 
enter into any of these questions, nor yet to attempt a detailed 
account of the life of Thomas D'Arcy McGee, the main facts of 
which are tolerably familiar to the public. Besides, it will be best 
to allow the letters to speak for themselves. Only, a word may 
not be out of place on the most honorable fact of an honorable 
career, and yet one which was most severely criticised. Mr. 
McGee was reproached with inconsistency because he had gone 
over from the party of violence and revolution to that of consti- 
tutional agitation for Irish grievances. This he did simply because 
he had grown wiser. At the risk of alienating some who had 
been his friends and losing the confidence of others, he ceased 
to declaim when declamation meant nothing, or, if anything, mis- 
chief. He ceased to incite to violence when his maturity of 
thought convinced him of the futility of such a course, as well as its 
attendant dangers. When youth had ceased to throw its false 
light over ground that was unsteady the traveller gained the safe 
road. His eyes had risen from the will-o'-the-wisp to the tran- 
quil security of the fixed star. 

His reasons are clearly and admirably given in an open letter 
addressed to Meagher, and published in the American Celt many 
years ago. The same letter was reproduced in an introduction 
to the collected Poems of Mr. McGee. Having reflected upon the 
" very superficial views of political science " taught by- modern 
books, Mr. McGee goes on to sum up all his arguments against 
revolution and its partisans in the following propositions : " That 
there is a Christendom ; that this Christendom exists for and by 
the Catholic Church ; that there is in our own age one of the 
most dangerous and general conspiracies against Christendom that 
the world has yet seen ; that this conspiracy is aided, abetted, 
and tolerated by many because of its stolen watchword, Liberty; 
that it is the highest duty of a Catholic man to go over cheer- 



486 A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

fully, heartily, and at once to the side of Christendom, to the 
Catholic side, and to resist with all his might the conspirators 
who, under the stolen name of Liberty, make war upon all Chris- 
tian institutions." 

The boyish advocate of revolution had become a Christian 
thinker. But to the hour of his death Mr. McGee believed in 
the efficacy of constitutional reform for Irish wrongs, and was 
ready to promote it whenever opportunity offered. In the Par- 
liament of Canada, in public and private utterances, in his corre- 
spondence as, for instance, his celebrated letter to Lord Mayo he 
reiterates the necessity of reform and the means most likely to 
accomplish it. His desire was to see Ireland as free as Canada. 

Somewhere about 1856 Mr. McGee was invited by a number 
of his fellow-countrymen in Canada to settle among them. His 
years of toil and struggle in the United States had proved 
unremunerative, and the prospect seemed a tempting one, though 
his ambition at first only pointed to the foundation of a Catholic 
newspaper there. He announces finally his determination to go to 
Montreal, remarking that the step would be a turning-point in 
his life. It was more. It was the beginning of a brief but 
exceptionally brilliant public career. It was the working out of 
that dispensation of Providence which made the Irish exile so 
powerful a factor in the political life of Canada. 

The journal, the New Era, which Mr. McGee founded in 
Montreal in the summer of 1856 met with no great success. 
But before its founder had been a year in Canada he was unan- 
imously nominated by the Irish in Montreal to represent them 
in parliament. Acting upon the advice of friends, he accepted 
the offer, and entered into public life beset with unusual diffi- 
culcies. The English, Scotch, and Irish Protestant element opposed 
him as they would have any one of his race and religion. The 
French-Canadians were indifferent. The new-comer was a stran- 
ger, comparatively poor and unknown. The time came when 
religious differences and national animosities melted away under 
the magic of this illustrious Irishman's genius, under the spell 
of his genial warmth of heart. He was an uncompromising Ca- 
tholic to the last; but English and Scotch Protestants became 
his most devoted friends, and so favorably had he impressed the 
very Orangemen that it was one of the electioneering calumnies 
circulated in the months preceding his death that Mr. McGee 
was a member of an Orange lodge. The truth was that, per- 
haps, no public man in Canada ever did so much to smooth 
away religious animosities and to unite the various nationalities 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 487 

which go to make up the Dominion. And this without the 
slightest sacrifice of principle. Thomas D'Arcy McGee was no 
liberal Catholic, as the phrase is absurdly used. In his public as 
in his private relations, in the House of Commons as in the free- 
dom of social intercourse, no man ever forgot that this noble- 
hearted Irishman was devoted to the Catholic faith. In this he 
was an example for all public men. 

Some of Mr. McGee's letters date back to the almost pre- 
historic time, when, to use his own expression, " the Grand 
Trunk had not yet unified Canada." But I shall begin with 
one written from Montreal on the 6th of August, 1860: 

" MY DEAR S. : You know we are on the eve of a great 
event here, and I believe I am to be the orator of the occasion. 
The Hon. John Young asked me on Saturday if I would con- 
sent to make the speech about the bridge, before His Royal 
Highness." [His Royal Highness was the Prince of Wales, and 
the bridge was the celebrated Victoria Railway Bridge, spanning 
the St. Lawrence, and which had just been erected by the Grand 
Trunk.] " Imagine Sir E. K. [then governor] forced to listen to 
me for an hour on such a theme as Canada's future." 

At Christmas of 1 860 comes the following letter : 

" These are strange times and events in the United States. I 
still cannot believe that the other cotton States will follow 
South Carolina's lead but there is no reasoning a priori on what 
men will do in a revolution. A settlement by mutual conces- 
sions would be the natural end of such a quarrel, but if we are 
not wholly misled by the New York papers, neither party seems 
in a temper for conciliation. New York will suffer most financially, 
but she will be the first to recover. She has shot too far ahead 
of any rival to be overtaken, and, after all, trade and credit de- 
pend more on natural than on conventional laws." 

Somewhere about this time there is a question in his letters of 
some political contingency likely to affect the Irish. " If the 
Irish people," he says, " do not rise en masse, they are politically 
lost. For myself I care* little, as, unless the aspect of affairs 
changes, I shall not again be a candidate for Montreal. I have 
upheld my principles, and, perhaps, added to my reputation in 
Canada. But I would not for any reward renew the same ser- 
vitude on the same terms for four years. As an Irish citizen of 
Montreal, however, I am deeply interested in maintaining the 
social strength of my countrymen." 

In one of his letters, later on, he makes the following re- 
mark : " How horrible the news from Virginia ! Every one here, 



488 A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

except the plated-over Tories, feel deeply with and for the North. 
God grant it all well over and soon ! " It will be as well, per- 
haps, to group any farther extracts relating to the subject of the 
war irrespective of chronological order. " What a war, and what 
slaughter!" he exclaims; "how fervently now can I echo the 
prayer: 'Lord, send us peace in our days!'' "War," he says 
again, " is a horrible business, and is only relieved by individual 
heroism from being a beastly one." " I do not know," he writes 
again, " what report you have seen of our war meeting. 
I moved a resolution desiring peace above all, but rested my 
foot upon the ground of defence of our homes, but not one step 
towards aggression. . . . Canada we must uphold, but beyond 
that we go not." 

" Although the affair of the Trent has blown over," he says, 
in a letter of January 2, 1862, " I really fear we are on the 
verge of war still that is, unless the United States are prepared 
to see the South introduced among nations and recognized as one. 
Both England and France seem determined to break the block- 
ade. Against both united what can you do ? Harry us in 
Canada ? Well, that will be a poor and shabby revenge at best. 
My patriotism for Canada is a future nationality, neither British 
nor Yankee, and a war might contribute to that result. Peace 
and settlement, however, would be certain to bring it about in 
another half-century, and I should prefer to trust those slow 
but sure agencies rather than the doubtful issue of arms. 
However, if it must come it must, and so you and I and many 
more of us will be enemies against the grain. . . . Montreal 
never was gayer than yesterday. The very muttering of the dis- 
tant storm seemed to give an intensity to the public enjoyment. 
I can now understand how it was that the lava caught so many 
of the Pompeians in theatre or banqueting-hall. Many happy 
returns of the day to you and yours, and the Lord send us peace 
in '62." Of course, it will be seen wider issues are touched 
upon in the foregoing extract than the mere probability of 
war. Mr. McGee plainly forecasts what he believes to be the 
future political destiny of Canada distinct nationality. He de- 
clares distinctly : " No provocation of abuse, how undeserved you 
know, shall make me contribute one chip to fan the flame against 
the United States." In April, 1865, the news of the assassination 
of President Lincoln having reached him, he writes : " What awful 
news from Washington ! We have just heard the first fact, and 
such a fact! Like a pomegranate, its seeds are countless. What 
is to be the consequence of such a dreadful cause ? But all 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 489 

speculation is vain and idle." In connection with the same sub- 
ject he made use of the forcible expression, " that the bullet or 
dagger of the assassin never yet reached the heart of a great 
cause." In that same month of April, precisely three years after- 
wards, ' Thomas D'Arcy McGee was to share the fate of 
Abraham Lincoln. As the loss of the latter was in that crisis of 
American history an incalculable, one, so were Ireland and Canada 
by the later political crime deprived of an infinitely valuable life. 
Ireland had scarcely a greater, as she never had a more devoted 
son. Canada in her whole history can boast of few such states- 
men. 

Occasionally he touches upon public affairs, as : 

" My winter leisure has so far been spent mostly in Upper 
Canada, in the service of myself and the opposition. I think I 
am putting a new national basis under this party; at least, I 
hope so. You can hardly imagine the interest I now take in 
this country and all that belongs to it. But it does not and never 
can supply the field for mental labor and affectionate inspiration 
which Ireland would have done. However, God disposes." 

How strange it seems to find him writing of an event so long 
an accomplished fact, and a mighty one, as still a future contin- 
gency. He is touching upon the union of the provinces, which 
Canada owes to himself with those two illustrious statesmen, Sir 
John A. Macdonald and Sir George E. Cartier. " The Confed- 
eration will, I think, succeed, though not without local agitations 
against it. It will be conducted almost in the inverse ratio of 
the American ; the general government will be sovereign, the Pro- 
vincial subordinate to the general. The rights of religious mi- 
norities in each section will be guaranteed in the constitution. 
This I regard as my greatest gain; for I may say (confidentially) 
that this clause is wholly mine ; of course, with consent of the 
others." 

On his return from a transatlantic trip he writes : " News 
of electioneering and cabinet-making intrigues from Canada in- 
duced me to hasten my return by three or four weeks, and will 
start me off to Ottawa to-morrow morning. As you may sup- 
pose, passing out of one state of national existence into another, 
there is no end of compromise and rearrangement. About my 
own position I have no anxiety. . . . The new cabinet is 
to be called the Privy Council ;' the members, as in England, are 
to bs called Right Honorable; the income attached to office (I 
suppose) increased. The new Dominion will date from the 1st 
day of July, which probably will become our national anniver- 



49Q A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

sary. The first elections will probably take place in August." It 
was a melancholy fact that he never lived to see even one anni- 
versary of the consolidation of the Provinces. 

" Our first Federal elections," he writes, " will take place 
shortly, probably late in July, and, the New YorkHeratd's informant 
to the contrary, I only wish I was as sure of heaven as of Mon- 
treal West. I am also offered local representation of Prescott 
County, in the Ontario (U. C.) Parliament, and unless there is a 
rule made against dual representation, I shall accept it, if only 
for a session or two, in order to protect the Catholic minority in 
the West, who have few constituencies open to them, and fewer 
candidates." 

On a subject which Mr. McGee held to be of scarcely less 
vital importance than public concerns, the evil of secret societies, 
he now touches. Frequently in the course of his official career, 
and often in his private correspondence, he condemns them as " the 
source and root of all evil." It was his great grief that they 
should have taken any hold upon some " Irishmen, and, I am 
told, women too," he somewhat sadly adds in one letter. " A 
new clause," he writes, " has been inserted unanimously in the 
Declaration of the St. Patrick Society, that all members, old and new, 
are now obliged to sign, namely, ' that they are not members of 
any secret society.' . . . The skirts of the national society 
must be kept clear of the suspicion even of secrecy." " I have 
just been reading the article in the Tablet," he says, " on Brown- 
son and secret societies, and I need hardly say how thoroughly 
I go with both." He goes on to speak of " the old Reviewer " 
in the same letter as " a man so brave, so gifted, and so 
nobly earnest. Brownson," he adds, " was too big for New 
England. He should have travelled in early life and seen coun- 
tries, Europe certainly, Asia if possible." He more than once 
alludes to the great American with the generous admiration for 
the talents of others so characteristic of him. 

To quote almost at random a few extracts from his letters 
which refer in one way or another to people belonging to the 
world of literature : " Sam Ferguson has sent his Lays of the 
Western Gael, published by Bell & Daldy, of London, one vol- 
ume about the size of Miss Procter's Poems, not so large, quite. 
I shall frank it to you from Quebec. They are, in my judg- 
ment, the noblest and most Irish poems ever published in Eng- 
lish. Since Moore no such bard has arisen. Last night I felt 
poetical myself. I was at Monklands " (the Congregation Con- 
vent of Villa Maria), "where Fasa " (his eldest daughter) "and 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 491 

most of the girls went to Holy Communion. I was deeply 
moved by the whole scene, and came home full to absolute 
silence." 

"This young Sullivan," he says in a postscript to one of his 
letters, " writes the reviews and literary articles in the Nation and 
deserves all I have said of him." I am uncertain whether the 
Sullivan here referred to is A. M. or T. D. Sullivan. 

" I knew Samuel Ferguson's letter would give you pleasure," 
he writes again, " and therefore sent it. What a fine, hearty 
letter it is, from a man whom I have not seen for nearly twenty 
years, who was hailed as a true poet by old Kit North so early 
as 1832, in the immortal Noctes, and, above all, who is so genuinely 
young-hearted in his attachment to native themes and native 
honor. I have sent for his Christmas book, and you shall have 
the second reading of it." 

" So the poor archbishop" (Hughes) " is dead. I heard the 
news suddenly at Brockville, the other day, and felt it most 
sincerely. God rest his soul ! A gifted man and a great worker, 
I had almost concluded to write some tribute to his character 
not in verse, for it has not to me the song-yielding qualities, 
but in good oratorical prose. However, at the St. Patrick's 
Society festival, on the i/th inst, in Montreal, I may probably 
contribute my quoit to his cairn. A hearty, honest, though 
modulated testimony would, perhaps, from me be not only fit 
and proper now, but a debt due to the proprieties of the past. 
I am anxious to read your tribute to the mitred tribune." The 
allusion to "the proprieties of the past" related to some news- 
paper controversy in which the archbishop and Mr. McGee had 
once been opponents. The next extract is singularly character- 
istic of the warm heart, the generous and, withal, the delicate 
spirit. As all concerned are, I believe, dead, there can be no 
indiscretion in making what follows public : 

" I ask you to read the enclosed sad story of poor Henry 
Giles. It is written by his wife, to whom I have not yet dared 
to reply. I have done, however, this moment on a first impulse, 
pray God it be a good omen ! what I did not think I should ever 

have done ; I have written to a friendly letter, asking for 

help. I suggested that perhaps a few friends in New York, 
Boston, and Montreal could quietly do something. I have 
promised at the same time to write to you, my dear S., and to 
stir Montreal (still without publicity) whenever I hear from both. 
. I propose myself out of my munificence to give $IOO. 
Here is a work for . Put this letter into his hands. Let 



492 A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

him see D , Father K , and any other true Irishman who 

ever heard Giles. But let the sacred poverty of genius be scru- 
pulously respected. Oh ! if we could raise even a couple of 
thousand dollars, how rejoiced I should be, not less for the givers 
than the receivers. I can write on nothing else now." 

In a postscript to another letter he thus expresses some 
thoughts upon some with whom he had once been associated : 
" Poor Doheny's death, which I read in Quebec, came on me by 
surprise, and I need hardly say to you, gave me a pang of real 
regret. I felt sorry that he should have died in enmity to me, 
and having done injustice unatoned for. But I felt, and have 
long felt, not one particle of bitterness towards the poor fellow. 
If he could have recovered himself; if he could have made himself 
respected and powerful, I should have sincerely rejoiced for the 
common cause's sake. But there is some infatuation over one 
class of the '48 men. They have shown no growth, they have 
originated nothing, they have tried to live on the memory of a 
failure, and thereby, of course, have failed." He makes some 
exceptions, Duffy and some other Australians, " O'Brien and 
Dillon, whose fame was, however, laid before '48 "; Meagher and 
O'Gorman. 

"Your account of O'Gorman's letter much gratified me," he 
writes. " It is well there is one such evidence left standing in 
New York that Young Ireland oratory and politics might have 
risen to real greatness." 

Once when he had occasion to speak of Mitchell he said: 
" I know of no one who in some respects is better fitted to 
complete McGeoghegan's History of Ireland than Mitchell. Only 
you must watch him about the Wolfe Tone and O'Connell periods, 
or from the peculiar turn of his own mind he will make the sui- 
cide a hero and the Emancipator a poltroon. The house of 

cannot put its name to such a philosophy of Irish /history as 
that." 

" I send you a review of the most wonderful Catholic book 
that has appeared in print in my recollection, McCarthy's 
translation of some of Calderon's poems. I would send the 
book itself, but the only copy belongs to the parliamentary 
library. If Mrs. S. comes to Lacouna in the dog-days she shall 
have it there, and really it is worth coming that far to read 
and enjoy." 

" How ets on Florence McCarthy More ? In Desmond you 
have the sea always near you, and your own sea-side thoughts 
will often surge into the subject." Again, " I see you are going on 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 493 

with Florence McCarthy More, with all its difficulties. The great- 
est to you, I should anticipate, would be the absence of the moral 
sublime from his wonderfully clever and variously endowed mind. 
You will have the same difficulty Aytoun had with " Bothwell" to 
make a hero out of one you cannot reverence and hardly admire. 
James Fitzmaurice and Hugh O'Neil (though no saint) had some 
moral inspiration; but this Munster Macchiavelli, I fear, was quite 
beggared of that sort of estate." His friend, Mrs. Sadlier, was still 
engaged upon the work in question at the time of Mr. McGee's 
death. 

" I have just sent to Dublin some contributions to Duffy's Maga- 
zine and the Nation. Among the latter a monody on O'Donovan. 
It is in the measure of certain coplas of the Spaniard Manrique 
on the death of his father, which are translated by Longfellow. . . . 
Nothing ever makes me feel my poverty more than when I am 
unable to testify by some more substantial tribute my veneration 
for such a man as this lost scholar was." 

Mr. McGee was truly the poet-souled. He had every quality 
which belongs pre-eminently to the genuine poet. The following ex- 
tract shows that he felt within himself the poetic fire. It is writ- 
ten from Lacouna, a Canadian sea-side resort : " I venture to send 
you," he writes, " a reverie in which I have indulged during the 
last two or three days. They are thoughts put to paper as clearly 
and truly as my difficulties of expression permit me. If they seem 
unusual or overstrained, blame the Atlantic, which always stirs up 
my mind to a restless and agitated image of itself. I only wish I 
dare I only wish I could mould into shape half the thousand-and- 
one ideas which float through my brain under the magnetic spell of 
the ancestral sea. If I blame Bulwer and Tennyson for missing 
the mark, it is because I feel within me that which, without pride, 
I venture to say to you might have made me the poet of the 
Celts ; but fate or Providence ordained other tasks and other 
duties. I would not have the hardihood to say so much to 
another ; but you, I am sure, will not misunderstand me. We are 
fellow-laborers for a fallen but not all-ruined race, and therefore I 
dedicate this sea-side reverie to you." The lines are published 
in McGee's poems under the heading of "The Count Arnaldos " 

A very beautiful letter is dated one Easter eve. It will be 
impossible to give more than a brief extract : " No art, no 
science, no discovery ever will be a substitute for the visible pre- 
sence of a friend. Death would not be terrible otherwise, for 
death is only distance unmeasured." On the occasion of the death 
of his father, who he says lived for nearly half a century th? life 

VOL. L. 12 



494 ^ TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

of a saint, and the account of whose death, written by his daughter, 
he thus characterizes : " There is something uncommonly pathetic, 
Irish, and Catholic in the little sketch ; at least I think so," he 
writes : " I had hoped to visit Ireland again, but I care little 
whether I go or not. If it were not for the graves that are there 
what could the heart hold by ? God bless you and yours, and pre- 
serve you all long from the touch of death paralyzing your circle." 
On another occasion he says : " So long as death does not come 
under the roof, there is no other trial, my friend, which man ought 
not to be able to bear cheerfully." 

A few fragments of letters touching on Mr. McGee himself and 
his own pursuits may be of interest. His life was one of 
multifarious occupations and ceaseless labor. At one time pre- 
vious to the Union he was President of the Executive Council and 
Acting Provincial Secretary, while at the same time he was labor- 
ing at his admirable popular History of Ireland " working," as he 
tells us himself, " far into the night, rising early and working late," 
to keep his engagements with his publishers. It was at this time he 
was made, by unanimous vote, corresponding member of the New 
York Historical Society. He did various other literary work 
under pressure of these same difficulties. In one of his letters he 
announces the completion of the history, for which, " with the old 
monkish chroniclers," he says heartily, " Deo gratias." But he 
also took up the practice of law. " As to the law," he writes, " let 
me tell you I have two or three cases on hand already, and hope 
to make out of one of them a most villainous good case some 
noise in the legal world. Talking to a jury will be an entirely 
new experience to me, and I am (I confess it) painfully anxious 
as to how it may take. But never despair. I knew you and 

would be pleased with my debut in the law, acquitting a 

poor wretch for nothing at all only killing his wife. But he 
really was daft or I should have had some scruples about arguing 
him off. The professional triumph was certainly a decided one, 
and the whole court, to do them justice, seemed glad that it had 
fallen upon me." 

The next letters relate to his journeys abroad, made in 1865 
and 1867. 

" OFF DONEGAL AND DERRY, 
Wednesday, May 3, 1865. 

" This mor.ning, at 4:30 o'clock, standing on what in steam- 
boat phrase is called the bridge, opera-glass in hand, I discerned 
Torry Island. Except the first officer, then in command, I was 
the only one at the moment who perceived that blue, blue hil- 



1890.] A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. 495 

lock in the direction of where the sun was to rise. There was a 
pale, pearl-like auroral tint already in the sky just over Torry Island. 
We were, perhaps, twenty mile* off, and at first were doubtful 
whether it was the Aran of this coast, near the Bloody Fore- 
land, or the lone isle first named. By our reckoning it ought 
to be Torry, and Torry, sure enough, it was. Need I tell you 
what a thrill that touch of land sent from the eye to the heart? 
For the third time, favored beyond hope or expectation, I 
return to revisit my native soil. Shall I more than ever feel as 
a ' foreigner ' ? Shall I enjoy or suffer most by what I may 
see ? God knows ! / cannot even guess yet. I called the 

vicar-general and D to share my happiness. We made 

little demonstration of it, but I am sure our fellow-passengers 
at breakfast must have noticed a certain lighting up of the eye 
and an added emphasis in the voices of all of us Irish. Sev- 
eral Irish Protestants on board, Dr. A." (a Protestant clergy- 
man) "and his good old wife, a Mr. and Mrs. S , and 

others felt the patriotic glow in all its fervor." 

" I write this as we steam along parallel to the Irinishowen 
mountains, the strongholds of northern memories. This is the 
land of Sir Cahir, of Hugh Roe, and that other Hugh (of 
the deep dissembling heart, as Camden thought), the only 
modern Celt, except Roy O'Moore and O'Connell, who knew 
how to play the high game of imperial policy with the sages 
of Albion. God be with them all ! I shall see before Sunday 
the grave of the last at Glasnevin, and if other arrangements 
permitted, perhaps I might even be able to visit the tomb of 
the first, ' high upon the mount whereon the martyred saint 
was crucified.' But r homme propose. Let us not anticipate. 
But really I cannot stay longer between decks, with the Done- 
gal highlands drawing nearer. ' God bless the green moun- 
tains of dark Donegal.' This was my friend Duffy's prayer 
twenty golden years ago. I wonder if he is as little changed 
as the hills. But I really must go on deck. Adieu, my dear 
friend, till Dublin." The Duffy here mentioned was, of course, 
the distinguished Irish-Australian, Sir Charles Gavan Duffy. 
On the same day, May 3, he wrote a second note, enclosing 
some verses. " I thought I would announce to you, thus offi- 
cially, my dear Mrs. S., our making land. It may touch the 
hidden spring of some Irish men and women's heart. Yours 
I can fancy feeling 'what at this moment I feel. We expect 
to land at Derry by noon, and to sleep in Dublin to-night" 
In July he writes of his return, having reached Quebec, and 



496 A TYPICAL IRISHMAN. [Jan., 

announces at the same time that the Provincial delegation to 
England was successful. Much, however, he says, " remains to 
be done if we are to be a northern nation, as I have always 
contemplated." 

On St. Patrick's day, 1867, he wrote from Rome : 

" I have had a great day. I got here yesterday, very tired, 
but was up at 7 this morning; took two hours to St. Peter's; 
a cup of coffee; heard Grand Mass at the Irish College; dined 
there with Cardinals Barnabo and Reisack and a number of 
Monsignori ; the heads of the Greek, English, Scotch, American, 
and some other foreign colleges ; Rev. G. M., of New York ; 

Bishop R , of Chatham, N. B. ; Rev. M. O. D., of St. 

Hyacinthe ; Hon. Thomas Ryan " (the lately deceased senator 

for Victoria), " D , of Newfoundland, and the students. Last 

evening on the Corso, the Central Park of Rome, I penned these 
lines." Mr. McGee was at this time acting as commissioner to 
the Paris Exhibition. 

After his return he writes : " I send you another Roman 
scrap. I shall never be able to get that city out of my memory 
and imagination. . . . C. dines with us to-day. I am asking 
him to take charge of a pair of beads, blessed especially by the 
Pope at my interview with his Holiness, on the 22d of March 
last. They have not been out of my possession since I carried 
them away from that venerable presence on that memorable day." 

The following scraps of letters, as they close the consideration 
of a life now nearing its end, will be of interest. " Know, O most 
sage lady," he writes, " that since the Ides of January last I 
sang and still sing with Francesco Redi, poet and physician (see 
Leigh Hunt's translation thereof), that cold water is my element. 
It has floated me finely through these late excitements." 

In another letter, which, though undated, belongs to the last 
year of this great Irishman's life, 1868, he speaks of his hope of 
" getting out of the legislative harness, and so be enabled to return 
to literature, which was my first and at all times my favorite 
line of exertion." 

On March 4 he writes : 

" I am quite well again, except a little lameness, and still 
adhere (as I intend to do) to cold water." 

March 31, eight days before the fatal 7th of April, he writes 
a mere note, calling attention to what he calls 

" Mr. Bright's able and manly speech, delivered at London 
eighteen days ago. I continue to gain in strength, though slowly. 
Always yours, T. D. McGEE." 



1890.] THE HOSPITABLE MAN. 497 

Early in April he wrote from his desk at the House of Com- 
mons, mentioning that he was engaged upon an article for THE 
CATHOLIC WORLD on Oliver Plunkett. Full of new plans for the 
future, full of literary promise, busied with weighty cares, 
astounding both government and opposition with his brilliant 
eloquence, suddenly there fell upon Thomas D'Arcy McGee the 
great silence. 

ANNA T. SADLIER. 



THE HOSPITABLE MAN. 

HE hath a gate, a door, a hand, a heart ; 
All wearing look of welcome to the world ; 
All open to receive thee, happy guest ! 
The gate swings inward with a loose slip-latch ; 
The wide-leaved door invites thee to approach ; 
His large-palmed hand doth give at once defence 
And draw thee to his broad, joy-heaving breast : 
The color mantling to his smiling face 
Fleet-footed herald from his love-full heart 
Proclaims thy coming as a yearned-for boon. 

And yet, wouldst thou depart ? Thou'lt find the gate 

Wearing a look forbidding towards the road. 

Without his door are storms, chill-blowing winds, 

And spectres of some possible mishap. 

Unwilling now that free and open hand 

To touch thine own and help thee say, farewell ! 

E'en if thou yet canst fly these friendly bonds 

His faithful heart will surely hold thee fast. 

Or if thou goest or abidest, still 

Thou knowest it is thine, thyself its own. 

ALFRED YOUNG. 



498 I79 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan. 



A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 



CHAPTER XIII. 
THE CAGE. 

THE " cage " referred to by Dessalines had been brought into 
the camp from the plantation of M. Latour, the brutal master 
spoken of in a preceding chapter. It was a cube in shape, 
measuring six feet each way, and made out-and-out of iron. The 
sides were finished in with strong bars crossing each other at 
right angles, and an extension of this lattice-work formed the 
frame of the roof, upon which boards were laid. It had been 
used by M. Latour at times as a prison for slaves under disci- 
pline, but more generally as a kennel for his blood-hounds when 
in training to catch runaways. In training these dogs the usual 
method was as follows: They were early parted from the dam, 
and, in order to develop fully their natural ferocity, were 
reared as far as possible upon warm blood taken from various 
animals. At a suitable age the belly of a negro dummy, filled with 
blood and entrails, was opened before them, and the hounds encour- 
aged to feed from it ; and this was repeated day after day until the 
savage creatures associated the negro form with the satisfaction of 
hunger. They were then shut up in a strong kennel or cage, 
such as this from M. Latour's, and kept there without food, water 
only being supplied to them, till symptoms of starvation began 
to become manifest. When thus maddened by hunger the keeper 
would bring a negro dummy, stuffed with their favorite food, and 
place it upright before them, and the hounds, furious at the sight, 
would howl dreadfully, and make frantic efforts to break through 
the bars. To excite them the more the keeper presently would 
slowly advance the dummy nearer and nearer, motioning all the 
while towards its breast and encouraging the dogs, whose howls 
would now be exchanged for low, intense whines and murmurs of 
delight. Then he would suddenly remove the dummy back, at 
which the wildest cries of fury would burst from the brutes, and 
not unfrequently, in the rage of disappointed desire, they would fall 
upon and destroy each other. At last, when they had been roused 
.to the utmost, the door would be opened, and they would rush 
upon the dummy and instantly rend it into pieces. 



1890.] rjyiA TALE OF SAA T DOMINGO. 499 

While at the horrid meal they were carefully caressed by the 
keeper, and so taught to distinguish between white and black, as 
between friend and foe; and this was the keeper's protection when 
the hounds were out upon their human hunts. So accustomed 
were they to regard the negro as their lawful prey that it was 
necessary to keep them securely chained. At times they would 
break loose, and the most dreadful things are told of how on such 
occasions they would rend innocent blacks, and especially children, 
that they met by chance. With the greatest accuracy these crea- 
tures learned to discriminate the African scent, and, once on the 
trail of a runaway, followed it up with deadly sagacity. Escape 
was well-nigh impossible, unless the' black took to a tree and 
awaited the keepers, whose mercies, by the way, were often 
scarcely more tender than those of the hounds. As may be sup- 
posed, the negroes regarded them with mortal terror. Naught 
else human conveyed to their minds such ideas of horror. 

The morning after the battle a party of negroes, headed by 
Welcome, had brought over the " cage" in triumph from the 
Latour plantation, but a few leagues away, and it now stood be- 
neath a lime in a rear enclosure connected with the headquarters, 
where it was regarded by the blacks with great curiosity as being 
intimately associated with the cruelties of a notoriously brutal 
master. In this kennel Henry Pascal was locked up for the night. 
Save a sawn section of a tree that had been rolled in for the 
occasion, it was void of furniture. On this block the prisoner was 
seated, and to it his fetters were secured by chain and staple, 
while a plate of coarse dry fish that had been sent in for his 
supper remained untasted beside him. 

Negroes are great gossips, and " news" goes from mouth to 
mouth with astonishing speed. It was almost immediately known 
throughout the camp that a prisoner was on trial, and many 
loitered about headquarters to hear the issue. When, therefore, 
they saw the prisoner thrust into the " cage," and learned from 
the guard that he was to be shot next morning, the report passed 
through the camp like a flash, and the blacks began flocking to 
the spectacle. Presently it was noised about that the prisoner 
was no other than M. Latour himself, and this greatly increased 
both the numbers and the excitement. A peering, scowling, 
cursing throng became rapidly massed . about the "cage," and the 
guard had difficulty in keeping hands off. In the press were many 
women, great numbers of whom thronged the camp, drawn thither 
either by the curiosity natural to the sex, or as connected with 
the commissariat (the black army at the time received its supplies 



500 . ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

almost exclusively through this channel), and the hags far outdid 
the men in their hideous grimacing and vituperation, and most 
foul and horrible imprecations. Woman ! woman ! 

"In every age, race, and degree, 
The main of tenderness and sweet charity 
Abides with thee, abides with thee ; 
Yet if thou shouldst a demon be, 
A good one thou, a good one verily." 

Suddenly above the tumult came a sharp bark. The allusion 
was instantly perceived, and every note of the dog broke from 
the angered and imitative blacks whines, yelps, bays, barks, 
snarls, growls, and howls, in a most strange and a most frightful 
chorus. The effect was maddening, recalling, as the cries did, 
every blocd-hound horror ; and the passions of the crowd, acting 
and reacting on each other, rose into a frenzy, and it looked as 
if they would drag the prisoner from the "cage" and tear him 
piecemeal. The guard, however, succeeded in convincing those 
nearest them that the prisoner was not M. Latour, and the rain, 
which now began to fall heavily, drove many away and had a 
cooling effect on the rest, to whom, moreover, the guard more 
fully explained the circumstances of the trial ; and in the face of 
approaching darkness these, too, began to depart, till the vicinity 
of the "cage" was deserted save by a solitary black. He was a 
negro of striking aspect, and his manner and actions altogether 
peculiar. 

CHAPTER XIV. 

JACQUE. 

When the key turned in the lock of the prison-door Henry 
Pascal closed his eyes on earthly things. Towards his father and 
towards Emilie Tourner his thoughts would now and then go 
out, but it was torturing and disturbing, and he forced them back 
and bent them upon himself. To prepare for death was now the 
work before him ; and it pressed, as he had but a span to live. 
Solemn is that closing hour far more so if faith has enlightened 
the soul when all related things must be forgotten and we 
really get face to face with ourselves. In current life such con- 
verse is rarely held. These related things continually engross us 
and shut the "ego" from view. What am I? Whither am I 
going ? are moving questions when their eternal possibilities are 
at the point of solution. 

In a glance Henry Pascal took in his past life. The retro < 



1890.] 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 501 

spect was one of light and shadow, yet far above the average of 
his class. He had been upright and honorable before the world, 
his filial duties had been discharged with singular devotedness, 
and, compared with the young men of his day, who had very 
generally become infected with the rank infidelity of France, and 
whose morals were notoriously corrupt, he was religious. At an 
era of aggressive, defiant, fashionable unbelief he had not been 
ashamed to avow his faith, and his connection with the church, 
made in early life, had never been formally broken. But the age, 
as we have said, was eminently a scoffing one ; the planters, 
many of them enormously rich, were steeped in licentiousness, a 
race of sybarites ; every tendency towards vice and license had 
been prodigiously stimulated by the spirit caught from the 
mother country ; and these adverse influences were concentrated 
at the Cape, where Henry Pascal had been residing for some 
years, apart from his family. Besides all this, the distractions of 
the colony exerted an irreligious bias, and in his mother's death 
he had lost a spiritual friend. It is not surprising, therefore, 
that in spite of himself, as it were, he should have yielded more 
or less to such environments, and religious duties, of late years, 
fallen into neglect. At heart, however, he was religious. There 
remained a root of faith, strong in early culture. Weeds had 
sprung up round it, but had not choked it. 

As he now seated himself upon the prison block, he drew 
from his pocket a small silver crucifix. It was doubly dear, for 
it had been a gift from his mother years before, and ever since 
he had very carefully kept it about his person. Even of nights 
he would hang it round his neck or fasten it to a button-hole, 
and it came to be a point with him never to have it parted from 
him. Nor, had he been less enlightened, could he have regarded 
so suggestive an object as a charm. As it was, he had a sence 
of being uncomfortable when the crucifix now and then chanced 
to become misplaced, as if some protective influence had de- 
parted. His crucifix, which in other times he had so often and 
so fervently pressed, and which even in the latter days of care- 
lessness he had sacredly kept near him, he now drew forth. It 
was fragrant with a mother's memories, and he dwelt upon her 
and all she had taught him. Upon her he dwelt, for she was 
among the dead, and he was soon to be numbered with her. 
Of his father he would not permit himself to think. 

Scarcely had these communings begun when they were 
broken in upon by the tumult that almost immediately arose 
around the " cage." At first it was distracting, and Henry Pas- 



502 ijqiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO, [Jan., 



cal prayed for night and quietude. But the intensity of his 
emotions was preoccupying, and he soon ceased to regard the 
uproar,* save as it fell in with his own mental workings. As he 
pressed the crucifix and thought of the Man of Sorrows, stretched 
on a cross innocent and unheard, his naked body blistering 
under Syria's noonday sun, and every eye that turned upon 
him a dagger, he saw in his own circumstances, with this deaf- 
ening storm of passion raging round him, some sort of a paral- 
lel, and it gave to his supplications a vivid realism. 

"Jesu ! Jesu!" he would cry within himself, "through how 
much pain and how little pleasure didst thou press on to a 
bitter death ! Oh ! be a friend to me. Holy Mary ! pray for 
me. And thou, my guardian angel, help me at this hour." 

As the numbers and rage of the crowd began to lessen rap- 
idly under the influence of the elements and the explanations of 
the guard, Henry Pascal welcomed the approach of peace. He 
now withdrew more entirely within himself, and failed to notice 
a black who had passed several times to and fro just in front of 
the "cage," and each time, as he reached the rear of the soli- 
tary guard (for his comrade had gone to supper), raised his 
forefinger across his lips, as if soliciting recognition. This negro 
had been a looker-on upon the outside of the throng, taking no 
part in the demonstrations. He was a tall, powerful-looking 
man, apparently in the prime of life, erect as an Indian, head 
small but symmetrical and firmly set on massive shoulders. As 
he passed for the third time Henry Pascal, who had lifted his 
eyes and was looking out with a far-away expression into the 
gathering darkness, caught the gesture, and bending his gaze 
through the gloom, with a thrill recognized the form. Jacque 
(for it was no other than he) saw the recognition, and repeating 
the sign, passed on. Upon the return he again raised the finger 
to the lips, and receiving the sign from his young master, im- 
mediately withdrew. 

It is no reflection upon the sincerity of Henry Pascal's spirit- 
ual preparations that another train of thought now rushed into 
prominence. He stood upon the threshold of life, full of 
health and strength, and bound to the world by tender ties. 
Naturally, he desired to live, and the hopes and conjectures 
originated by Jacque's appearance on the scene rilled and agi- 
tated his mind. From his knowledge of Jacque's fearless char- 
acter and devotion to his family he felt perfectly certain an 
attempt at rescue would be made should the slightest oppor- 
tunity ' offer. But could the faithful negro succeed ? Jacque 



1890.] 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 503 

must be single-handed, he reflected, and could he possibly res- 
cue him^ imprisoned and under guard, from the centre of a 
military camp ? The night was stormy, and, so far, favorable, 
he thought ; the vigilance of the raw blacks, too, must be at a 
minimum in such weather ; and Jacque was sagacious as well as 
brave. There was a chance, and he clung to it, and kissed the 
crucifix again and again for it. 

The night was, in truth, a stormy one. The day had opened 
bright and breezy. The sky wore a brilliant blue, and not a cloud 
could be seen save a few white strata lying low along the eastern 
horizon. Towards noon some mare's-tails appeared in the north, 
and by-and-by there was an overcast, the sun occasionally break- 
ing through; but the clouds, which moved slowly from the south- 
west, seemed too high for rain. They grew more dense, how- 
ever, and an hour later the rain began, at first in a drizzle, 
gradually increasing, with now and then, as darkness drew on, 
heavy, quiet pours. From this time a tempest developed, the 
wind rising and the lightning displaying itself over the heavens 
in broad areas, followed by high rolling thunder. It was one of 
those growing storms sometimes seen in the tropics, the rain- 
falls ordinarily being sudden and furious, with terrific descending 
peals, and succeeded often by brilliant sunsets. 

The prisoner being chained within an iron " cage " under lock 
and key, the captain of the watch deemed two guards sufficient ; 
and as the night advanced, and all save the elements had become 
quiet in the camp, these arranged between themselves to take 
shelter by turns in a neighboring out-house. Toward midnight 
the weather was tempestuous. It rained, blew hard, and was 
very dark. The man on duty was squatting against the lime that 
stood at the southwest corner of the " cage," resting the muzzle 
of the musket on the ground, and clasping the lock in the arm- 
pit in the endeavor to protect it from the damp. His cap was 
drawn down close over the eyes, and he was dwelling upon the 
execution to take place in the morning, wondering how many 
would be detailed to shoot, whether he himself would be among 
them, whether his shot would take effect, etc., when his ear 
negroes are remarkably quick to hear caught the sound of a 
foot-fall to the rear. Supposing it was his comrade, yet sur- 
prised, as he felt sure his time was not out by half, he started 
up and turned in the direction of the sound. As he did so, a 
deadly blow stretched him on the sod. He fell without a groan, 
as dead as if the heart had been pierced. 

Jacque and his companion (for the former was accom- 



504 i?9 T A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

panied) at once fell to work. They dreaded the lightning, which 
' in a storm of this character shone in wide sheets of mild blue 
light, making objects as distinct as day. Not a word was spoken. 
The door of the " cage " yielded easily to a prizing-bar, Henry 
Pascal's fetters were quickly broken, and silently and rapidly the 
three moved on, under Jacque's guidance, till a point in the 
wood was reached outside the limits of the camp. Here Jacque 
stopped and hurriedly said that he must go back, that he held 
a position of prominence, and, to avoid suspicion, should be in 
his place before the return of the other guard to his post and 
the escape became known ; that he (Henry Pascal) could fully 
trust his companion, who would explain everything; that pur- 
suit, he thought, would be out of the question, as the rain would 
destroy all trace of footsteps. He further told him that it was 
he who had saved him in the battle and who had gotten in the 
proclamation, and also that M. Tardirfe was on a visit to Dessa- 
lines. All this was said in the most hurried manner possible. 
Time was precious to each. Jacque held out to his young mas- 
ter the hand of adieu, at which the latter fell upon his neck, 
and having embraced him with the utmost ardor, struck out 
with his guide. Two miles away a musket report, borne upon 
the stormy wind, told the tale of the escape ; but they considered 
themselves secure from pursuit, and felt assured Jacque had had 
time to make good his return. 

CHAPTER XV. 
THE FLIGHT. 

Of the insurrectionary negroes some were guided by lofty 
motives and took no hand in the ghastly excesses that charac- 
terized by far the larger part. Among these was Jacque Beattie. 
He had been identified with the movement from its inception, 
and his high character and intelligence at once secured position. 
The officers for the black army Dessalines selected almost wholly 
from his own trained men. Outside of this body Jacque was 
one of the very few who received a responsible place. He was 
known in the army as Colonel Beattie, his command consisting 
of some five hundred men, at the head of whom he had shown 
conspicuous gallantry in the late battle. Though not within that 
limited circle around Dessalines where military measures were 
authoritatively discussed, yet he was in a position to learn at 
once conclusions reached. He knew of Dessalines' disposition to 
ransom the prisoners almost as soon as formed, and, to warn 



1890.] I79 1 A TALE OF SAW DOMINGO. 505 

Henry Pascal against Jamaica reports, contrived through the 
guard to have a copy of the proclamation, with the pencillings 
that had been correctly read, dropped into their room. He was 
aware, too, of M. Tardiffe's presence in camp. He knew well 
this man's real character, and shared his young master's opinion 
of him, fami des noirs though they called him. As a trusted 
body-servant in the Pascal family, he was fully cognizant of the 
rivalry between him and his young master. When the latter was 
suddenly summoned before Dessalines a suspicion at once arose 
that M. Tardiffe might be at the bottom of it, and the impres- 
sion deepened on his learning the nature of the false charges for 
which Henry Pascal had been ordered to execution. What other 
source for these charges so likely, he thought, under all the cir- 
cumstances ? Upon the accusation or its origin, however, he did 
not dwell. His sole thought now was the rescue of his young 
master, and this he resolved to attempt if a possible chance of 
success offered. 

In the person of another negro, with the sobriquet of King- 
fisher, Jacque had a confederate. His real name was Francis, 
and in early life he % had been the property of Colonel Tourner. 
His wife, however, belonged to another proprietor, whose estate 
lay in the northeastern corner of the province, not far from the 
town of Limonade ; and as the colonel's efforts to buy the woman 
had proven fruitless, he had disposed of Francis, upon his own 
entreaty, to this proprietor, that man and wife might not be 
parted. In felling timber Francis had sustained an injury that 
permanently disabled one of his legs, and a crab-yaw afterwards 
attacked the foot. Rendered unfit for active plantation work, 
his master, a kind-hearted man, had settled him, in requital for 
faithful services, upon a few acres near the mouth of the Yaqui 
or St. lago, a river that empties into the sea, by a broad and 
deep channel, some fifty miles eastward from Cape Fra^ois. 
Here Francis lived practically free. Bella, his wife, looked 
after the patch. He himself devoted his time to fishing, for 
which the Yaqui and its tributaries afforded an excellent field ; 
and in this occupation he became so expert that he was com- 
monly known as Kingfisher. After supplying his master and 
himself from the products of his nets and traps enough 
remained to enable him to turn many an honest penny, and 
altogether he was a well-to-do, happy "nigger." 

Kingfisher had brought in fish and vegetables for the army, 
ascending in his canoe a western branch of the Yaqui to 
within a few miles of the camp, and soon came across Jacque 



506 /// A 7^ ALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 



Beattie. Jacque and he were close friends, though Jacque 
was much the younger. In earlier life (the Pascals and 
Tourners being intimate and the estates near each other) 
they had been a great deal together, and after the lat- 
ter's removal they were not so far apart as not to meet at 
least occasionally the slaves, of nights, being notorious go- 
abouts, and often making astonishing journeys. The moment 
Jacque (who was intensely on the watch) learned the result of the 
court-martial he sought out Kingfisher. He had influence with 
him, and knew him to be good grit, and that he cherished a warm 
regard for the Pascal family. So he sounded him, and finding 
him to his mind, made known the facts in regard to Henry Pas- 
cal, dwelling particularly on his belief that his young master's 
hapless fate was due to the machinations of M. Tardiffe, enven- 
omed against him as the successful suitor for the hand of Emilie 
Tourner. All this touched old Kingfisher, under whose black skin 
beat a big, tender heart. He remembered very gratefully his 
good old master, nor had he forgotten the many little kindnesses 
of Madame Tourner, nor the sweet face of " Ma'm'selle." He 
had not seen her since she was a child, she having been abroad 
at school. But her beauty and winsomeness were fresh 
before him. He knew, too, Jacque's young master, especially as 
the playmate of " Ma'm'selle," when he belonged to the old plan- 
tation. To help him was like helping the " old folks " ; and 
all this, aided by Jacque's strong personal influence, readily won 
him into an ally. Jacque and Kingfisher conferred together, but 
nothing definite at the moment could be settled upon. The 
stormy night was favorable. The point of difficulty related to 
the guard. Should a strong one be posted, an attempt to rescue 
would be futile. So it was arranged that Kingfisher, when dark- 
ness set in, should leave the camp with his baskets, as if home- 
ward bound, and having secreted them by the wayside, meet 
Jacque at a designated place some hours later for instructions. 
Meanwhile the latter was on the lookout, and soon informed 
himself as to the number and disposition of the guard that two 
only were detailed, and they on duty, turn about, at intervals of 
a couple of hours. His plan, therefore, was to slay the guard as 
soon after reaching his post as he thought his comrade would be 
asleep, pilot Henry Pascal from the camp, and, placing him in 
charge of Kingfisher, return to his own quarters before the dis- 
covery of the rescue. How far the execution was successful has 
been already mentioned. 

To return to Henry Pascal and Kingfisher. Little con- 



1890.] 1791 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 507 

versation occurred as they hurried on as fast as circumstances 
would allow. The latter informed his companion that their 
immediate destination was his own home near the mouth of the 
Yaqui, where Henry Pascal might strike a brig or schooner ; 
and that, in default of such good luck, he would try to get him 
to the Cape by night through the country. Beyond this nothing 
was said, save a necessary word now and then, Kingfisher's atten- 
tion being absorbed by the difficulties of the way. Between the 
camp and the country there was a vast amount of passing, and 
parties might be met even at such hours on such a night. King- 
fisher, therefore, whenever he could, chose turn-outs and blind 
paths and obscure roads, and though he was thoroughly familiar 
with every foot of the country, the darkness and the storm and 
his lame leg withal made progress necessarily slow. Full three 
hours were consumed in going the six miles to the point on the 
Riviere du Massacre, where had been left the canoe or dugout, 
as it was commonly called, being hewn and hollowed from a sec- 
tion of a tree. It was well that Kingfisher had taken the pre- 
caution to draw the light craft some distance ashore, otherwise 
it would have been lost or destroyed in the swollen waters. The 
canoe was found safe in its place of concealment, but to pro- 
ceed for the present was out of the question. The Massacre, at 
all times a rapid stream in this piedmont country, the heavy 
rain-fall had now made a torrent. It became necessary to wait 
for day, by which time Kingfisher hoped the waters would so far 
have run down as to enable him, in the light, to manage the 
boat. 

It was a wild, unfrequented, densely wooded spot, and several 
hours of delay being before them, Kingfisher urged on his com- 
panion the necessity for all the sleep he could get, as the next 
three leagues would be trying. They reascended, therefore, the 
precipitous bank to its summit, and in an open space beneath a 
pimento- tree sought repose, Henry Pascal resting against the 
trunk, and the old negro stretched out upon the wet leaves. 
Henry Pascal had thought that sleep was impossible, but no 
sooner had he settled himself and exertion ceased than over- 
wrought nature responded, to the invitation. The great and pro- 
longed tension suddenly relaxed, and before he knew it he was 
sleeping soundly. He awoke within an hour. Sleep had been 
short, yet intense and refreshing. How changed was all ! The 
morning was fair, with a few flying scuds. The stars were out, 
shining beautifully bright through the cleared-up atmosphere, while 
the moon, in her last quarter, hung in the western sky. Henry 



77^7 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

Pascal felt buoyant and strong. How sharp the turns in life, he 
thought; how quickly our levels rise and fall, and show the 
slowly changing world in new aspects ! The occurrences of a few 
hours before were a dreadful dream, resembling those storm-driven 
clouds that had been drenching the earth and sending forth light- 
nings and thunderings, but had now all passed away and given 
place to the peaceful stars. He reproached himself for not hav- 
ing expressed the fulness of his gratitude to brave, noble-hearted 
Jacque Beattie. But the time was so short, all were so hurried, 
Jacque would understand it, and Jacque should yet know the 
depths of his heart towards him. His thoughts then turned upon 
the loved ones at the Cape. How joyfully would they meet ? 
The crucifix was in his hands. He knelt and poured forth thanks. 
When he rose the gray dawn was just peeping over the eastern 
mountains. Kingfisher still slept heedless of the mountain gnats, 
though the bite is like a spark of fire and he was allowed to 
sleep on, for down towards the shaded river it was yet densely 
dark. 

The deep forest silence, enhanced rather by the waters' mo- 
notonous flow, the stir of life coincident with incoming day 
now began to break. From a neighboring tree a potoo gave 
one of its loud, hoarse ho-koos, followed by a lower note from 
the depths of the throat. The mate answered; then all was 
still again. Suddenly came a rushing, whizzing, startling sound. 
It was a piramidig, or night-hawk, swooping on its insect 
prey. The swoop apparently was a signal, for immediately 
these birds, deprived by the storm of the evening's meal, were 
out in great numbers, winnowing the crisp morning air with 
their long, narrow, arcuate wings now flying low, now career- 
ing on, now beating up and up, to get space to swoop in per- 
pendicular descent ; now following each other in close and per- 
sistent pursuit, "eager for the nuptial rite upon the wing"; now 
darting on prey, with their broad, viscid mouths wide opened ; 
wheeling and doubling, with sudden zigzag dodgings, and sta- 
tionary flutterings when a choice catch happened to be made. 
As Henry Pascal sat musing and observant the while of these 
birds, watching their movements and listening to their singular 
cries, the day had rapidly advanced. In the glowing east, be- 
neath some purple strata that hung motionless in their resplen- 
dent settings, a fiery rim shot above the horizon, and anon the 
glorious tropical sun, full orbed, was sending forth his level rays. 

Henry Pascal roused Kingfisher, whose first care was to 
hasten down the bank to learn the state of the waters. He re- 



1890.] ijyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 509 



ported, to the surprise of his companion, that he thought they 
could proceed. These island streams run off as suddenly as they 
rise, and though the Massacre was still swollen and dangerous, 
Kingfisher was an expert boatman, and good reasons existed for 
making the start at the earliest practicable moment. He then 
explained to Henry Pascal the circumstances of the journey be- 
fore them that the course of the Massacre for the next three 
leagues was through a wild, broken section, and the stream so 
rapid and rough, especially in its present state, that daylight 
was necessary for managing the boat ; and that as the river was 
now more or less a highway for the coast negroes bearing sup- 
plies to the camp, his safety required that he should covertly 
follow the canoe along the bank; that he hoped these difficulties 
would be surmounted early in the afternoon, and the point 
reached where the river approaches the savannas of the lower 
lands, and its waters grow calmer ; that here they would remain 
in hiding till night-fall, and then, under cover of darkness, con- 
tinue their journey together in the canoe. 

They broke their fast, from Kingfisher's wallet, on cassada 
cakes and roasted yams and plantains. Henry Pascal aided to 
launch the boat, and the journey began. It was a toilsome one 
to both, their efforts, by the way, being in precisely opposite di- 
rections Kingfisher's endeavors were to hold back, those of 
his companion to press forward. The former was greatly hin- 
dered by the fish-box in tow. He thought several times of cut- 
ting it adrift, but it was a good one, and had been long in 
use, and he decided it was worth extra trouble. In the turns 
and eddies of the swift current, with this box swinging from side 
to side and varying the canoe's course, his best skill as a boat- 
man was called into exercise. Henry Pascal's progress was by 
far the more difficult, and at very many points it became neces- 
sary for Kingfisher to pole ashore and await him. To thread a 
virgin tropical forest, even when one may vary his course along 
the line of least resistance, is a feat. The difficulty vastly in- 
creases when the course is prescribed, and that along a river's 
margin. The dense vines and undergrowth, many of them, like 
the sensitive plant, armed with the sharpest needles, would .have 
been impenetrable but for the hatchet which Kingfisher had sup- 
plied from the canoe's outfit. Great prostrate trunks, so soft 
with decay as to be scarcely able to sustain their own weight, were 
often in the way. Not unfrequently considerable detours became 
absolutely necessary, at which times communication with King- 
fisher was maintained through whistles and halloos. Here and 
VOL. L. 33 



5io IJ9 1 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

there tributaries interrupted progress, when our fugitive would 
either take to the water or be carried over in the boat. Besides 
all this, it was necessary to be constantly on guard against 
venomous insects and creeping things. In the nine miles but 
one public road was passed, where a bridge spanned the Mas- 
sacre, and here Kingfisher took the lead and carefully recon- 
noitered. At noon a halt was made, though half a league only 
of the journey remained. A delightful north wind, moderating 
the weather, had followed in the wake of the storm, but down 
by the river the heat was stifling, and Henry Pascal felt com- 
pletely worn out. A short repose renewed his strength, and the 
fugitives struck out again, anxious to finish this part of their 
course as soon as possible, in order to get rest against the night 
journey ; and two hours later they reached the point of which 
Kingfisher had spoken, where the Massacre becomes broader and 
smoother and approaches the cultivated lands. 

They had suffered no interruption save from natural obstacles. 
Throughout this wild, sparsely-settled section, close upon the 
Spanish line, not a living soul had been seen or heard, and the 
swollen waters of the Massacre had forbidden ascending boats. 
Here the light cotton-wood canoe was drawn ashore, and ar- 
rangements made for substantial rest. Henry Pascal had, indeed, 
a battered look. He was excessively fatigued, and his garments 
all soiled and rent and in the utmost disorder ; but his heart 
was light, bubbling over with emotions of gratitude and joyous 
anticipations. High upon the bank a spot was chosen, and the 
contents of the provision-wallet having been well explored, he 
stretched himself out, with the trusty negro by him, for the rest 
and sleep his jaded frame needed, and to which all the surround- 
ings lent their aid, for on this elevation, where the forest was 
less dense and the open country in the near distance, the cool 
north wind blew, the light of the effulgent sun came down to 
him softened and subdued through the myriads of green leaves 
.that rustled above, fragrant sweetwoods and logwoods and many 
kindred growths loaded the air with "Sabean odors," and the 
forest birds sang a lullaby. Beautiful little todies the robin red- 
breast of the West Indies in grass-green coat and crimson 
gorget, gave forth low, sibilant cries as they sought from twig to 
twig their insect prey ; from the thickets, where they were dart- 
ing to and fro, came the full, clear whistle of keen-eyed, fidgety 
hopping-dicks, while overhead in the tree-tops, or circling above 
them in their strong but short flights, were screaming macaws 
and paroquets. 



890.] i?piA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 511 



CHAPTER XVI. 
ON THE MASSACRE. 

The negro is peculiarly sensitive to cold. He gets chilly 
with the going down of the sun, and through the night sleeps 
well covered, even in tropical latitudes. As the shades of even- 
ing fell and the atmosphere became charged with dewy freshness, 
the lowered temperature roused Kingfisher. It was time to 
renew the journey. He awoke his companion ; the canoe was 
launched, and the fugitives were borne along on the bosom of 
the Massacre. It was one of those beautiful tropical evenings 
which once seen are never forgotten. The stars, admirable for 
size and radiance, shone out from the depths of a perfectly 
clear sky, " a firmament of living sapphires." Westward the 
distant lightning incessant at this season played fantastically 
in the low banks of clouds skirting the horizon. The night 
breeze blew deliciously ; and the canoe, for whose steerage an 
occasional stroke of the paddle sufficed, glided forward on the 
swift, smooth current of the river. Refreshed by his nap, 
exhilarated by the surroundings, and no longer preoccupied by 
the difficulties and dangers of the way, Kingfisher was talk- 
ative. He knew, too, how to adapt himself to his audience, 
for he dwelt almost exclusively upon incidents in the child- 
life of his companion, when he himself belonged to the old 
plantation, and the former was a constant visitor at Belle Vue 
as the playmate of " Ma'm'selle " to all of which Henry lent 
an attentive ear. 

Kingfisher's sense of deference induced him frequently to 
pause, and the conversation on his part was only renewed under 
some soliciting remark from his companion. One of these pauses 
proved extended. The old negro had just spoken incidentally 
of M. Tardiffe, and the mention of the name called up a train 
of thought which Henry Pascal wondered at himself for not 
having before considered. In the hurried information given by 
Jacque at the parting moment one of the few items was that 
M. Tardiffe was in the camp. What could he be doing there? 
Many were the surmises to which this question gave rise. W 7 as 
it in his own behalf (for he had properties at Dondon he 
might wish to save), or in that of his friends, or of the pris- 
oners, or the colony at large ? He finally settled down into 
the opinion that the colonial legislature, then in session at the 



512 ifyiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 



Cape, must have deputed him on some mission of conciliation 
or humanity. Could he be the person, it flashed across his 
mind, who had spoken against him to Dessalines ? No, no, he 
would not entertain the thought. Little as he admired the char- 
acter of the man, of so foul a plot he could not possibly be the 
author. In truth, it was a satisfaction to him not to know the 
author. He was so thankful for his deliverance (at least thus far 
wrought), so grateful for the friends that had been given him, so 
filled with happy anticipations, the frame of his mind was so joy- 
ful and loving, he was glad he knew no one to rouse counter 
emotions. Ruminations about M. Tardiffe, however, were far 
less pleasing than Kingfisher's reminiscences, and breaking from 
them with a remark in reference to the old plantation life, he 
gave the cue to his companion, who started off again with his 
charming anecdotes, taking care to have " Massa Henry " and 
" Ma'm'selle " always appear together, and relating, with great 
gusto, the prognostications the negroes were wont to indulge in 
with regard to them. His narrations had all the minuteness of 
detail with which age recalls early impressions, and if in his 
efforts to please fancy should to some extent have lent her aid, 
it was a tribute to the old negro's kindly heart, if not to his 
absolute veracity. 

A two-hours' run had been made, when it became necessary 
for Kingfisher to concentrate energy upon the paddle. The Mas- 
sacre by this time had fairly entered the savannas towards the 
coast, and the current slowed. A few sharp strokes, now on this 
side, now on that, and kept up with the endurance of a veteran 
boatman, sent the light craft forward. An hour later they passed 
into the broad, deep St. lago or Yaqui ; and within the ^iext 
hour, near midnight, made a final landing at the foot of the 
pathway that led to Kingfisher's home. A fourth of a mile off, 
in the midst of a small clearing, stood the cabin, which belonged 
to the better class of negro dwellings. The posts were bamboo, the 
sides wattles, with rafters of sweetwood, on which the ordinary 
thatch was laid. Interiorly it was plastered and white- washed. 
There were two rooms, one for sleeping, the other for cooking, 
and well furnished with ordinary negro household articles. Bella, 
Kingfisher's spouse, had long retired, and not expecting her " old 
man " at such an hour, and the times being so out of joint, 
she was startled on hearing approaching footsteps, which her 
ear, too, detected as belonging to more than one person, and 
in sharp tones demanded the cause of the intrusion. Reas- 
sured on recognizing the familiar voice, Bella delayed not 



1890.] ijgiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 513 

admittance, when, receiving a word from Kingfisher, she hastened 
back to frock herself, and returning almost instantly, struck a 
light, and, with every mark of alacrity, set about preparations 
for lodging her guest. The provision was simple enough, yet 
sufficient In a corner of the room, intended for a mattress, 
lay a pile of dried cocoa-nut leaves, and these, spread out and 
topped with a bamboo mat, constituted the bed into which 
Henry Pascal was fain to turn. 

Next morning all were up betimes, for the heartrending 
condition of Cape Fran9ois, menaced by foe and famine, was 
attracting succors from every quarter, and any hour they might 
signal a craft making for the Cape from some one of the 
Spanish towns or settlements up the river. Kingfisher started 
off for his fish-pots. Meanwhile, Bella, whose manner indicated 
to Henry Pascal not only that she knew all but that he had 
in her a good friend also, had gotten out her bread-stones and 
charcoal furnace, and having bruised the moistened corn into 
the finest flour, deftly kneaded it into cakes, and had the tor- 
tillas ready against Kingfisher's return with a string of snap- 
pers and yellow-tails. Breakfast followed, of fish, tortillas, yams, 
and plantains, each the best of its kind, with the strong coffee 
in use among the negroes. Henry Pascal, who had suffered 
on prison rations, lingered before the first tasty fare he had 
seen for some days, and Kingfisher, leaving him at the board, 
hastened out to prepare a station for signalling any incoming 
or outgoing vessel. He returned speedily, and the two at once 
started off, Bella, of course, receiving a warm adieu. 

The location chosen was a third of a league away, just at the 
river's embouchure, where the channel curved somewhat west- 
ward, and a species of small, fan-leaved palm, scarce fifteen feet 
high, densely covered the shore. Mingled among the palms 
were sea-side grape-trees, thick with crimson-veined leaves and 
bunches of red berries, and a clump of these growths, with the 
slightest aid from Kingfisher, formed at once both a shelter from 
the heat and a hiding-place from any chance hostile blacks, 
whilst affording the amplest outlook seaward. They had re- 
mained here perhaps an hour when a sail was seen making 
down the river. It was a three-masted craft, with jibs out and 
all her canvas set. As she stood two mi ] es off, abreast the 
point, Henry Pascal and Kingfisher came out upon an open 
space on the beach, and waved a token repeatedly, and even 
ventured halloos ; but she sailed past, not recognizing or un- 
heeding the signals. It was a bitter disappointment. Kingfisher 



514 I 79 I ^ TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

was sympathizing, his consolations running in this wise : that 
Monday was always a good day for ships ; that he knew another 
would be along after a while ; that he was sure it would come 
nearer in, with a variety of similar reflections very creditable to 
his kind-heartedness, after indulging in which he presently took 
a turn up the river for certain nets and fish-baskets that had 
now been without attention for several days, and in examining 
which he could also have an eye for passing sails. 

By this time the fierce tropical sun was well up, and Henry 
Pascal, seeking his shelter, had leisure to observe the surround- 
ings. The tide was low on a smooth, snowy beach, and the 
white breakers came rolling in, to expand, coalesce, and spread 
out in broad sheets upon the foamy shore. Below him, at the 
extremity of the curve making from the point of the embouch- 
ure, a group of pelicans were disporting, some sailing on flag- 
ging wing, some plunging for prey, while others preened their 
plumage, perched on the fibrous roots of the palms, which here 
and there formed stretches of vaulted open network along high- 
water mark. In imagination his eye followed up the beach, and 
with a sweep was fifty miles away at the Cape, and many and 
long were his musings. When he recalled himself to his sur- 
roundings, an hour, he thought, must have thus passed. The 
sun had perceptibly advanced. The tide, too, having turned, 
was now rushing in with a freshening breeze, and he was watch- 
ing the swift arrows of water shoot along the line of contact, 
where the advancing swell, about to break on the shore, met the 
reflow of its predecessor, when Kingfisher came running up as 
fast as his stiff leg would allow, with the intelligence that a sail 
was on the way down the river. In a moment she emerged 
within view, and when nearly against the point made a tack 
that brought her far towards the western side. The signals were 
observed, and Henry Pascal's heart bounded, for it was the final 
assurance of safety, and the cry of the ten thousand rose within 
him, " Thalassa ! thalassa / " on seeing the sails slacken and the 
anchor heaved. A boat put off, and Henry Pascal, after pouring 
out his gratitude to Kingfisher, and wringing the old negro's 
hand again and again, was presently aboard. It proved to be 
the brigantine Elizabeth, trading between the Cape and the 
Spanish settlements on the Yaqui. 



1890.] //p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO, 515 



CHAPTER XVII. 

CAPE FRANgOIS AGAIN. 

Storms and head-winds followed that afternoon and the next 
day, retarding progress, and it was not till the afternoon of 
Wednesday, the last day of August, that the Elizabeth anchored 
in the harbor of Cape Francois. The news of Henry Pascal's 
arrival spread with the greatest rapidity throughout the city, and 
excited the liveliest interest, for he was well known and popular, 
and his hapless capture had been a universal theme. He was 
on everybody's lips, and great numbers sought him personally, 
as well on his own account as to learn the first really authentic 
tidings from the negro camp. On reaching shore he hastened 
to the Hotel de Ville where, indeed, the news had preceded 
him to meet his father, who received him as though from the 
dead. While here a message comes from the governor- general, 
M. Blanchelande, and the next two hours are passed in reporting 
before him and the chief officers commanding in the city such 
information as he had been able to gather respecting the strength, 
efficiency, and temper of the black army, together with the imme- 
diate movements contemplated by Dessalines, and his purpose 
towards the prisoners. The circumstances of his escape he dwelt 
upon only in a general way, concealing, for obvious reasons, the 
names of his benefactors. But late that evening, after receiving 
a host of friends, he privately gave the full details to his father 
and Colonel Tourner, who were delighted beyond measure at the 
devotion shown by Jacque and Kingfisher, and, in truth, often 
fairly wept over the recital. 

Next morning he went aboard the Sappho, whose decks now 
wore the usual aspect, all the fugitives, save the Tourner family, 
having returned to the Cape on the subsidence of the panic. 
Madame Tourner, in expectation of the visit, was all ready to 
receive him. The colonel, the preceding afternoon, the moment 
he caught the report of Henry Pascal's return flying about the 
city, had despatched a messenger to his wife with the news. 
She communicated it to Captain Winslow, of the Sappho, who 
immediately went ashore. He was one of the officers before 
whom, at the governor-general's residence, Henry Pascal re- 
ported, and through him the latter conveyed word to Madame 
Tourner that he would call on the morrow. 

A great change had taken place in certain of her views. 
As her daughter lay in delirium, and life for hours trembled 



516 1791 A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

in the balance, bitterly did she reproach herself as the cause, 
in having been a party to M. Tardiffe's scheme and so urgent 
for his suit. In spite, also, of her partiality for the man, the 
more she reflected the more her generous nature was compelled 
to admit the utter meanness of this scheme, to which she had 
assented under a supreme sense of helplessness and despair. 
Her daughter's illness, too, had opened her eyes to values she 
had hitherto not fully weighed. It has been before observed 
that beneath Madame Tourner's worldliness, the accident rather 
of a sunny nature and tempting surroundings, beat a warm, 
womanly heart, and deep currents flowed out towards her hus- 
band and daughter. But these currents had been moving on 
undisturbed for years, and she knew not how vitally they bound 
her till a sudden fear of interruption revealed their strength. 
Never before had her daughter been so critically ill ; for the first 
time she saw herself menaced with the loss of her only child 
and all this because she had been seeking M. Tardiffe's gold. 
Sorely did she bewail and lament her folly. It was a grief that 
swallowed up every other. -What was gold she so often bitterly 
cried within herself, as those watching, anxious hours passed 
against her daughter's life and love? She all but cursed the gold, 
and, terribly stung with self-reproaches, vowed, if her child was 
spared, never more to cross her affections. 

For Henry Pascal's escape she was, indeed, overjoyed. All 
on a sudden it opened up new hopes, and, naturally enough, she 
took a more rational and better view of his prospects. The open- 
ing in Jamaica she now regarded as very good, and Henry Pascal 
fully able to improve it. She thought, too doubting not they 
would all go thither that the English ancestry of her husband 
would tend to help him to opportunities in this prosperous Eng- 
lish colony ; and altogether there was much, in her opinion, to 
be thankful for. For very plain reasons she earnestly hoped 
Henry Pascal's escape had been in no way connected with the 
efforts of M. Tardiffe. That the latter had not returned with 
him gave ground for such a hope, and the replies to the first 
questions addressed to her visitor put her mind at rest in this 
direction. His first question was of mademoiselle, whose danger- 
ous illness he had heard of through the colonel. A week had 
just elapsed since the beginning of the attack. It had been of 
great severity, but comparatively short, and it was a coincidence 
that the crisis had passed the very day of Henry Pascal's return. 
As the fever ebbed and the delirium went off her inquiries after 
Henry Pascal were anxiously repeated, and the ship's surgeon 



1890.] ijqiA TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. .517 



advised that the news of his return be at once, yet gently, com- 
municated. Madame Tourner had feared that complications con- 
nected with M. Tardiffe might prove a source of distress, and 
delayed the tidings till she had seen Henry Pascal himself and 
learnt particulars. Relieved on finding that " the news " was 
unencumbered, she replied in fine spirits to her visitor's question, 
saying her daughter was better, and might be able to see him 
presently, and asked to be allowed to retire a moment to aid in 
some preparations. 

The attack had left Emilie Tourner prostrated in body and in 
mind. The events which immediately preceded and led up to it 
seemed to her a ghastly dream, and when the reality broke upon 
her the effort to recall them was unsatisfactory. She remem- 
bered having interceded with M. Tardiffe, and his expression of 
willingness to oblige her, but what followed was all indistinct. 
Whether he had gone, or how he had gone, she could not tell. 
The circumstances were wholly confused, only that she retained 
an impression of something sinister connected with them ; and to 
the clearing up of the mystery her earliest inquiries were directed. 
Her mother, however, gave evasive replies, and endeavored, in 
her enfeebled state, to lead her mind in less disquieting direc- 
tions. As Madame Tourner now entered the apartment of her 
fever- worn daughter the latter, still engrossed with the one 
thought, turned towards her and said : 

"The servant tells me you've had a visitor." 

"Yes, Emilie." 

" Has he brought news ? " 

"Yes, my darling; some authentic tidings from Dessalines 
have just reached the Cape." 

" What of the prisoners ? " she cried with sudden energy, 
partly raising herself as she spoke, but immediately sinking back 
in the vain effort to sustain the position. 

" Be calm, my dear child. The news is not bad. We hear 
that Dessalines, being in need . of funds, is disposed to ransom 
the prisoners." 

A momentary flush of satisfaction which brightened her feat- 
ures and seemed to expand her frame passed away as she 
replied in slow, halting, drooping tones : 

" To hear of ransom is better than to hear of death, but 
where can the means be had ? and what must the end not be ? " 

" Possibly, Emilie, he may have escaped. Monsieur Pascal is 
known and liked by the negroes generally, and he must have 
friends in the black army." 



5i8 7/p/ A TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. [Jan., 

" O maman ! don't oppress me with vain hopes." 

"Well, Emilie, the news really is that he has escaped." 

" Escaped ! " replied the daughter, bending upon her mother 
a look of the deepest interest. 

" Yes, escaped through the aid of Jacque Beattie. Rumor has 
it that Monsieur Pascal descended the Riviere du Massacre by 
night, and he is supposed to be now at some point on the 
coast." 

"Heaven be praised!" exclaimed the daughter, with a beam- 
ing countenance. "Yet," she added thoughtfully, "dangers must 
still surround him." 

"Suppose, Emilie," said Madame Tourner, as an arch smile 
played over her features, " the point on the coast it is thought 
he Has reached should be Cape Franois ! " 

Regarding her mother with a half-frightened expression, as if 
she could not think she would trifle with her, yet afraid of 
trusting such perfect news, she asked solemnly : 

"Mamma, can you be jesting?" 

" Let us thank God, my child ; Monsieur Pascal is indeed 
safe at the Cape, arid all the city rejoices." 

To this announcement Emilie Tourner could only reply by 
burying her face in her handkerchief and weeping for joy. 

When the burst of feeling had presently passed she turned 
to her mother, and with eyes still filling with happy tears, said 
in a deprecating voice : 

"Surely, maman, you are not deceiving me?" 

"Well, my child," smilingly rejoined Madame Tourner, "if 
you can't believe me, I shall allow Monsieur Pascal to speak for 
himself. Our visitor is none other than he, and he awaits my 
return for permission to see you." 

Another application of the handkerchief now became un- 
avoidable, Madame Tourner the meanwhile giving hasty touches 
here and there to complete the order of the apartment. It is 
scarcely necessary to add that the effect of the interview was in 
every way salutary, and that Emilie Tourner's improvement ad- 
vanced with astonishing rapidity. 

CHAPTER XVIII. 
CONCLUSION. 

The day following Admiral Affleck, in response to the appeal 
for help, arrived from Jamaica with the frigates Blonde and 
Daphne. Seeing he could effect nothing against the insurgents, 



1890.] i79 T ^ TALE OF SAN DOMINGO. 519 

concentrated, as they were, in the interior, he resolved to return, 
after landing supplies and debarking a force to aid in securing 
the Cape's defence till troops should be sent from the mother 
country. He delayed departure a few days, to enable certain 
families who had determined upon leaving San Domingo at once 
to complete arrangements. Among these were the Pascals and 
Tourners. 

In the mail for Cape Fran9ois, brought by the Blonde, was a 
letter which Mr. Harrison had directed to Henry Pascal at 
Kingston, and which the latter's uncle had forwarded. It con- 
tained a formal offer, on advantageous terms, to open an agency 
at Kingston, to which offer Henry Pascal, resigning h* military 
office, promptly wrote an acceptance. Colonel Tourner, after full 
consultation with his family, also determined upon going thither. 
Nothing could now be done at the Cape. Opportunities of some 
sort, he considered, would present themselves in Jamaica, and 
it would be far better. to await there the issue of San Domingo 
affairs. He therefore relinquished his command, his military 
services being no longer necessary ; Emilie Tourner was care- 
fully removed to the Blonde, and the latter part of the week 
the good ship safely reached Kingston. Here Henry Pascal suc- 
ceeded far beyond his expectations, and in due time his nuptials 
with Emilie Tourner were celebrated. Within a few years he 
became the Jamaica partner of the Harrison house. Ulti- 
mately, upon Mr. Harrison's decease, the Kingston branch passed 
absolutely into his hands, and he rose to wealth and influence. 
As for Colonel Tourner, though his San Domingo possessions 
were irretrievably lost, he fairly prospered at Kingston, living 
happily near his daughter, and occasionally accompanying his 
son-in-law to London, where the latter had established business 
relations. 

M. Tardiffe became a victim to Dessalines' wrath, falling 
into the trap he had prepared for another. When the guard, 
in turn, came on duty the night of the escape and found his 
comrade dead and the prisoner gone, an alarm was sounded 
through the camp. Little, however, could be done before morn- 
ing, when every effort was made to obtain a clue, but in vain. 
Dessalines was in a tremendous fury. Naturally he suspected 
Jacque Beattie, as having been a favored servant in the Pascal 
family, and set afoot some secret investigations. But Jacque 
had cleverly concealed his tracks, and nothing was discovered. 
While brooding over the matter, his rage at being baffled 
growing with his potations, Dessalines remembered M. Tardiffe's 



520 //p/ A TALE OF SAA' DOMINGO. [Jan., 

saying he knew the Pascals well, and how very desirous he was 
that his presence in the camp should not be known to Henry 
Pascal ; and, altogether, his drunken suspicions being aroused, 
he did not stickle ordering him to be searched, when, to the 
astonishment of every one, including M. Tardiffe himself, who 
had not thought of the ensnaring document, the note from 
Madame Tourner was found. Dessalines was convinced of his 
complicity in the escape, would listen to nothing from him, threw 
him into prison, and a day or two after, on hearing of the tor- 
tures inflicted upon captured blacks at the Cape, in a gust of 
passion ordered all the prisoners to execution. 

Jacqu* Beattie bore an active part in the long and dreadful 
struggle that finally ended, twelve years later, in the complete 
triumph of the blacks, under Jean Dessalines. He had become 
full weary of war, and the peace that followed the proclama- 
tion of black independence proved a profound disappointment. 
Jean Dessalines was the counterpart of his twin-brother, Paul, 
and his horribly wicked and bloody rule so disgusted Jacque 
that he disposed of his possessions, which had now become con- 
siderable, and came to Kingston. He was at once manumitted 
by Henry Pascal, who with every member of his own and his 
wife's family held him in great honor, and never grew weary in 
manifestations of gratitude. He lived at Kingston many years, 
and as " Colonel Beattie " was a familiar and highly-respected 
character. It was through Jacque that Monsieur Tardiffe's perfidy 
and the circumstances of his fate first became known. 

Henry Pascal made repeated efforts, but in vain, to get tid- 
ings of Kingfisher. For the noble old fellow he always kept ' a 
fresh, warm place in his heart, and his memory as a grand hero 
was transmitted to his little children, whom he would often de- 
light with the story of his rescue and escape. His eldest child, 
by the way, was called Jacque, and for another he gravely sug- 
gested to his wife the name of "Kingfisher"; but she deemed 
it altogether too bizarre, and they agreed upon Francis, King- 
fisher's original praenomen. 

K W. GILLIAM, M.D. 



1890.] TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. 521 



TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. 

IT is curious that no book has been written on the origin and 
history of titles. Mr. Frederick Marshall, in his book on Inter- 
national Vanities, has written amusingly on the ceremonials of 
rank, but has kept titles more or less in the background. It is 
only by diving into odd sorts of dictionaries, especially French, Ger- 
man, and Italian, that we are able to pick up fragments of infor- 
mation on a subject which has a quaint kind of interest. 

Who could have been the first man who titled himself? 
Adam is said to have lived hundreds of years, so that even he 
possibly may have known the bearer of the first title. If we go 
back to B.C. 2000 (when Adam must have been dead one thou- 
sand years), we read of Menes, which signifies " the Conductor " ; 
and about B.C. 1200 there was one Tiglath Pileser, which may be 
taken to mean " illustrious chief." A little later we come to 
Xerxes, who styled himself " Xerxes the king, the great king, 
the king of kings, the king of the many-peopled countries, the 
supporter also of the great world," an assumption of superiority 
which excited the emulation of other and less turbulent monarchs, 
for we read that Tigranes, the Armenian, also proclaimed himself 
" king of kings," and was so sensitive as to his title that he refused 
to answer a letter because it was addressed only to ''The King." 
Evidently the love of titles springs naturally to the human mind 
when personal power has lifted a man above his fellows. 

Royal titles have been, of course, the most magnificent, the most 
pretentious of a sort of quasi-divine dignity. It has been sug- 
gested by a Frenchman that crowned heads like great titles as 
"a compensation for the riskiness of their business." This same 
Frenchman says that " a sovereign's business is the least lucky 
in the world, and that no insurance office ought to think of ac- 
cepting his life." He has made a calculation that up to the 
present time there have been 2,540 emperors and kings, ruling 
over about sixty-four nations; and that of this number of crowned 
heads 300 have been driven from their thrones, 64 have abdicated, 
24 have committed suicide, 12 have become insane, 100 have 
been killed in battle, 123 have been made prisoners, 25 have died 
as martyrs, 151 have been assassinated, and 108 legally con- 
demned and executed. Accepting this calculation as accurate, 
we should still be disposed to question whether the magnificence 



522 TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. [Jan., 

of royal titles afforded any solace under such sorrows. Be this 
as it may, the splendid title of Emperor (exceptionally unlucky in 
point of a " natural death ") disappeared in Western Europe from 
about A.D. 475 to about A.D. 805, though the title of King has 
never fallen into abeyance, but has only been modified linguisti- 
cally. Of semi-royal titles there have been a multitude, and not a 
few of them survive to the present day. A Reigning Grand Duke 
is still existent; and until lately there was a Reigning Serene 
Duchess. Elector is a title which, if extinct, is historic, sug- 
gesting the greater part of the history of central Europe for a 
period of certainly more than two centuries. It is true that 
Palatine, Margrave, and Landgrave, titles once implying a sover- 
eign lordship, have vanished out of modern royal blue books ; so, 
too, has Doge, with its memories of Venice, and Protector, with its 
memories of Cromwell ; but Viceroy is still significant to English 
minds and very painfully significant to Irish minds, though 
Lord-Lieutenant is its more customary interpretation. Such old- 
fashioned titles as Hospodar and Stadtholder convey no dis- 
tinct meaning to our young men. Yet there are other big titles 
which mean much Sultan, for example, which in Arabic is 
"mighty man," and Caliph, which implies a "royal substitute," 
being to this day significant and portentous. Bey once meant 
a bigger man than a Sultan, while Khedive is a modern growth 
out of Pasha. President is the most modern of (supreme) 
titles, and, to the thinking of many persons, the most respect- 
able. At least, it is the simple expression of a fact, and owes 
nothing to terminolggy for its power. 

That the vanity of royal rulers must not be taken as pro- 
portionate to the extent of their dominions or , their power is 
proved by the fact that many second-rate rulers have smothered 
themselves in volumes of titles. Thus, so late as the year 1826, 
the King of Portugal who was not even a "great man" de- 
scribed himself as " King of Portugal and Algarve within and 
beyond the seas ; in Africa, Seigneur of Guinea, and of the 
navigation and commerce of Ethiopia, Arabia, Persia, and the 
Indies." This must have been news to the Shah of Persia and 
to the English "Indian Office." The King of Sardinia had a 
habit of styling himself before he took a fancy to be King of 
Italy as King of Cyprus, Sicily, and Jerusalem, and seigneur of 
forty-seven other districts, which must have puzzled some old- 
fashioned geographists, who had impressions as to a different 
ownership of those countries, and which indeed made the King 
of Naples quite angry, as he also had a weakness for being King 



1890.] TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. 523 

of Jerusalem, and was a very considerable royal proprietor in 
Sicily. As to mighty eastern sovereigns, we will pass over such 
a magnate as Khorrum Shah, the fifth Mogul Emperor of Delhi, 
who contented himself with the title of " king of the world," a 
quite harmless if somewhat embracing affectation, and we will 
speak of a sovereign who, at 140 east, sits enthroned as the tip- 
top power of the universe. It is true that he has only one title, 
but it is a title which includes all other possible titles. More- 
over, his ancestors from the date of B.C. 600 have claimed and 
have been acclaimed by the same title. This more than human 
potentate, whom we call the Mikado, but who is not the Mi- 
kado in his own country, is known by his subjects as Ten-o, 
which, being interpreted if the English language is indeed com- 
petent means as nearly as possible, Heaven- Highest. This 
potentate must smile serenely on modern dynasties, with their 
mushroom titles of Majesty and Royal Highness, since in the 
time of Nebuchadnezzar his ancestors were Ten-o, and have 
always been so, and, of course, must be so to the end of time. 
Now, let us respectfully contemplate this "well-born" monarch. 
Not even in the British Museum is there any relic of periods 
which were anterior to "Nebuchadnezzar the king"; so that we 
look in vain for relics of the Japanese ancients who acknowl- 
edged Ten-o as the only personage in the world. Curious that 
this supremely " old-familied" monarch should have conde- 
scended to adopt modern modes of government, should have 
recently created a brand-new titular nobility, and should be 
known even in his own country as a too liberal constitutionalist 
and the patron of nineteenth century institutions! Ten-o is now 
the promoter of railways ; Ten-o has practically granted a con- 
stitution ; so that Nebuchadnezzar and the most modern of Chris- 
tian sovereigns B.C. 600 and A.D. 1889 may be said, speaking 
poetically, to have joined hands across the ages, and to have 
linked supreme autocracy with liberalism. 

Of the titles by which Christian kings have been addressed, 
Majesty seems to claim the most antiquity, though in early times 
many great men were addressed as Majesty, nor does it appear 
that till about the beginning of the fifteenth century kings claimed 
to be alone truly Majestic. Their older titles were Grace, 
Grandeur, Serenity ; with Highness, Celsitude, or Altitude thrown 
in as subsidiary compliments. The very superb title Imperial 
Majesty was first claimed by the proud Emperor Charles the 
Fifth ; while the title Royal Majesty seems to have first caught 
the fancy of a French king about A.D. 1554. Highness was an 



. 
5.24 ' TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. [Jan., 

invention of a Roman emperor, and continued popular with a 
variety of Christian kings ; but the title Royal Highness is quite 
a modern discovery, not earlier than the time of the French 
Louis XIII. Louis XIV. presented that title to his nephews ; 
while the title Prince (first, of course, the Roman Princeps) was 
much used, though in Latin, a thousand years ago. As to quite 
modern titles, Monseigneur was the title of only one personage, the 
French Dauphin, but soon came to be extended to the French 
prelates. And as to the three adjectives Excellent, Eminent, 
and August, the first once belonged to kings alone ; the second, 
originally reserved for royal personages, was bestowed by Urban 
VIII. upon cardinals; while August, with its fictional handmaid 
Perpetual, was an invention of some German notability. 

But now as to the Pope's title, Your Holiness ; was it origi- 
nally Catholic or only royal ? The answer is that Paternity, Be- 
atitude, Grandeur, and Apostolic Majesty were the Pope's titles 
down to the beginning of the fourteenth century ; but the title 
Holiness had been shared by many monarchs whose saintliness 
was not their primary characteristic. Not only was Louis le 
Debonnaire styled Your Holiness, but even the heretic Theodoric 
enjoyed the title ; and so also some of the Emperors of Constan- 
tinople, and at least one Frenchman, King Robert, were honored 
with the complimentary epithet. More curiously, perhaps, still, 
two at least of the Roman emperors were styled not only Holy, 
but Very Holy, which, after all, was but an approximation to 
their titular rank, Divine, conferred chiefly after they had gone 
to reside with Jupiter and Juno. As to the origin of the reser- 
vation of Your Holiness to the Supreme Pontiff of the Catholic 
Church, it came about simply in this way : The Pontiffs adopt- 
ing the title for themselves, the rest of the world respectfully 
gave it up, using the title henceforth not as a recognition of 
rank, but as a homage to the Pontiff's office and person. 

One big royal title we have not noticed, that of Czar, or, 
as perhaps it should be written, Tsar. The Great Lord Auto- 
crat, Grand Duke, etc., were the earlier Muscovite titles; .but 
Duke Wladimir, who died in 1125, was the first who, for some 
reason, was called Tsar. Imperial Tsar was an amplification of 
later times; it was first thought of about the beginning of the 
seventeenth century, and the then Emperor of Germany took of- 
fence at it, even protesting that he must forbid the assumption. 
But the monarch of Russia was self-willed, and his successors 
have always shown the same trait. In 1721, after the peace of 
Nystadt, the Russian senate and synod further conferred on their 



?, 



1890.] TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. t 

supreme head the title of Emperor of all the Russias. This 
was thought too bombastic to be recognized. Many sovereigns 
wrote angrily to the Big Man. For nearly half a century the 
title was contested, and some of the letters of the royal objectors 
are still extant. Yet one does not see why a monarch should 
not indulge in grandiloquence, if such an amusement is congenial 
to his subjects. "Ten-o" was never reviled for his sublimity, 
nor have other monarchs been considered as his inferiors because 
Heaven- Highest tops them all in self-assumption. Nonsense is 
inseparable from all arrogance, and should be regarded with a 
courteous contempt. 

From the titles of kings have come the titles of nobility, the 
nobility being, as the rays of the sovereign sun, benignly warm- 
ing and warmed, complementarily. It would be impossible in a 
.short space to trace the development of noble titles, and indeed 
it would be tedious to attempt it. History records battles which 
have been fought for " empty titles, " so that vanity can claim 
the honor of having shed as much blood as its foster-brothers, 
interest and love. Nor are we in these days less worshipful of 
syllables or, for that matter, of ribbons, stars, or orders than 
were our forefathers in less civilized periods. Distinctions call 
for titles ; all men like distinctions ; therefore all men like to 
be extra-syllabled. Moreover, differences of rank, in the modern 
order of governments, necessarily require some prefix or "handle" 
by which the political degree may be intimated. Even socially 
we must have our nomenclature. The Englishman, if he be re- 
spectable in position, is mightily offended if you do not address 
his letters to Esquire, while the graduate of a university is a 
decided stickler for his M.A. when his name has to appear in a 
public document It is human to love titles. Just as there is 
no dark chief in Africa, nor even any red Indian in the prairies 
who has become illustrious in the fine art of scalping, who does 
hot rejoice in some nickname of distinction, so is there no gentle- 
man in either hemisphere who would not rather be entitled as a 
somebody than herded with the profanum milgus as a nobody. 

So that there is obviously a real side as well as a comic side 
to the whole subject of royal and noble titles, and therefore of 
all etiquette in " styles." It is true that men are children, how- 
ever old they may become, and that they kneel to the mere 
symbols of superiority [most Englishmen feel a pulsation in the 
presence of a Duke and a slight ' disturbance on the approach of 
a Royal Highness], yet since the aspiration after personal superi- 
ority is the idea, if not the fact, of all name-worship, we must 

VOL. L. 34 



526 TITLES: THEIR SENSE AND THEIR NONSENSE. [Jan.,, 

allow that there would be good in titles did they guarantee the 
superiority of the holder. Thus, the original idea of a nobleman 
was a man who had done noble deeds ; so that the homage was 
paid only to title because it was first paid to merit. This idea has 
quite died out in England. A man may be now made a peer 
[of political "parity," that is, with the sovereign] because he 
has amassed a fortune as an underwriter or as a money-lender,, 
or as a bill-discounter of vast proportions, or as a brewer of 
stout ales for the thirsty multitude, or as a banker of much 
craft and greater success. Nobility has, therefore, come to mean 
prosperity. Titles are but the coroneting of good luck. Noble- 
ness and nobility have been divorced. And again, unfortunately, 
there is no obligation for an English nobleman to adopt 
the sacred principle, noblesse oblige, so that his title may be- 
come a watchword of reproach or of contempt, while he con- 
tinues to serenely " lord it " all his life. The court catechisms 
of vanity are as precise as they are complex in regard to the 
homage which is to be paid to syllabic rank, but they do not 
touch the questions of merit or of competency, of industry, of 
morality, or even of decency. Is such a nobility worth a cent 
to the public good ? This is a matter of opinion ; yet is there 
not some harm done in the creation of a vulgar flunkyism, 
in the cherishing of purely material standards of rank, just 
as the French aristocracy for a long time did the same thing, 
before the law of primogeniture was abolished ? At least we 
must say that there is little incentive to virtue ; the incentive is 
to greed and to vanity. 

Perhaps, however, this is to take too grave a view of an in- 
stitution which no one has ever supposed to be supernatural. 
Titles have been the sport of all philosophers who neverthe- 
less have rarely refused to accept a title. 

As the temptation is very strong to run on lengthily on this 
subject such a variety of topics being incidental let us con- 
clude with this one more observation : that Heraldry, most prob- 
ably, was the father of Nobility, or rather, the father of such 
nobility as was titled. And we will select but one out of a 
heap of old traditions which the lovers of heraldic lore are 
wont to cherish. That delightful enthusiast known as Morgan 
has assured us that heraldry is so very ancient that even Adam 
must be accounted to have been "armiger." Adam and Eve were 
lawful bearers of " cote-armure"! " After the Fall," says the en- 
thusiast [he might well put it after the Fall], " Adam was assigned 
a shield gules, and to Eve another, argent.''' This is historic, 



1890.] MUSING. 527 

and nothing more need be said. The same learned author has 
assured us that, " after the Fall, Adam bore a garland of fig- 
leaves, which Abel quartered with Argent, and an apple vert, in 
right of his mother." This seems likely. Moreover, in the book 
of St. Alban's, printed so late as 1486, we read, among other 
startling announcements (refreshing to the enthusiast in heraldry), 
that "of the offspringe of the gentilman Japeth came Habra- 
ham, Moyses, Aron, and the profettys, and also the great line of 
Mary" but here, for reverence' sake, we omit what follows 
all of whom were entitled to bear arms. Obviously, then, her- 
aldry and titles were in the position of father and son ; and 
since we must not be carried away with such romancing, we will 
end with acquiescing in the quaint view, that as even Adam was 
"armiger" though it does not] appear that he was a nobleman 
it seems likely that heraldry was the precursor of all titles, 
or, rather, suggested the nomenclature of rank. 

A. F. MARSHALL. 



MUSING. 



I. 

SELF-KNOW ! Can I know so ? I know I can, for I know that 

I do so know. 

What ? That I am, and as I am ; here wanting, wanting so 
Some all, though what I may hardly know, and yet yes, 'tis a 

great deal. 

That above all I know, for that, oh, that above all I feel ! 
Ay, and so feeling, I feel I feel all wants beyond and before 
The want not to want, be the want what it may : I want not to 

want any more. 

* Words over the entrance to the Temple at Delphi. " Descendit e ccelo Y^vwQi deaurby " 
says Juvenal, Sat. xi. 27. 



528 MUSING. [Jan., 

II. 

True, want is never of naught ; 'tis of somewhat there now to 

pursue. 
Still, is not this want I feel but to have, nor is it so much to 

do; 
Though what it is for, I know, would give me all I could get ; 

would, too, 
Make me do all I ought, and yet, for neither I long thus 

I see ! 

In that I want not to want, I want I want but to be let be. 
Be how ? Be being, always and wholly self-finding, so suffering 

no pain. 
Be what ? What I am ; for what I have got, or what I've been 

able to gain 
So as simply to have, may go, all go ; so that what I am I 

remain. 
Wert vain then, O vision of Beauty and Truth, and Goodness 

and Greatness, all o'er me 
But beckoning me up ? bright dream of my youth, there even 

now rising before me ! 
Wert thou also vain, manhood's last aim ? vain all I have tried 

and have done ! 
No, no, but 'twas always the same ; I longed, as I long, to 

become. 
That longing I know now cannot be wrong, for I see 'tis my 

being's feel ; 
What no world-fact, or act of my own, but my Maker's in me 

doth reveal : 
'Tis the self-word of Sense, this want to act forth what of worth 

is my life's potency, 
To become what for all I am made to become, to be what 'tis 

in me to be. 

III. 

Restless heart ! What wouldst thou now ? Doth Sense the 

Right not say ? 

Thou sighest so, I scarcely know whether for yea or nay 
Or only doubt. Still, sigh, my heart ! Why not ? But thus 

canst tell 
The secret of thy nature's way ; and that too must be well. 



1890.] MUSING. 529 

Sigh on yes, what if all I ought at last I came to be ? 

No, 'twould not do. Nay, longing most, thought turns self off 

from me 

To mine the others, father, mother, brothers O my own 
Gone for ever! Wrong? Aye, wrong were being left alone. 
No matter what one's lot may be hereafter to become, 
Not that may mean for what life cries while thus the heart sighs 

" Home ! " 
Sense shows not all the Right. There is what Sense from Self 

may move : 
Why, at its best, Sense is thy slave, thy willing slave, sweet 

Love ! 



I see, with mind's clearest self-seeing, each one 

Should act out as being what in him is done ; 

To my spirit still is it life's fullest way shown, 

Man as made is not One for his being alone . . . 

Must I say, then, 'twere vain to try thought's way to find 

The want that the word is of spirit and mind ; 

Law of head and of heart, of the One and the Kind ; 

Truth of sense and of sentiment, wisdom and love ; 

The Mean making Self e'en as resting to move ? 



Ah, yes, Lord, well Thy Word's word sings : 
"As the hart thirsteth for the water-springs, 
My soul is athirst unto Thee, O God ! " 
Ah, yes, here too Thy creature sings : 
" As the hart thirsteth for the water- springs, 
My soul is athirst unto Thee, O God!" 
I but tread the path Thy prophet trod, 
And, tired of becoming, long to be 
At rest at one, First One, with Thee, 
My more than self and mine to me, 

My Good and theirs, and the Good of all 

O Good Good God ! What can I call 
Thee more ? What can I do but rest 
In the thought of Thee, as for all for me, 
THE BEST ! 

T. J. O'M. 

All Hallows College, Dublin. 



530 CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. [Jan., 



CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. 

THE idea of complete separation of the state from religion 
is something worthy of careful consideration. Imagine a state 
appealing to its citizens upon grounds altogether unreligious ! 
The best thing in the way of motive the civil organism can pre- 
sent is "the general good." The general good is a purely nega- 
tive quantity ; namely, securing the conditions without which 
happiness would be out of the question. And if this be the sec- 
ular power's highest motive, its greatest sanction is on the side 
of reward, civil protection, worldly prosperity; and on the side 
of punishment, reformatories, jails, and scaffolds. Imagine a so- 
ciety made up of men into whose lives, as citizens, no other 
motive nor sanction but these entered ! It is not easy to form 
the concept of, in Mallock's word, a thoroughly dereligionized 
state. Such, however, would be one entirely separated from re- 
ligion. The fact is that the motives and sanctions of religion are 
those which most move men in the right-minded fulfilment of 
civic duties. " Man's primary duty is towards God ; his second- 
ary duty is towards his brother-men ; and it is only from the 
filial relation that the fraternal springs." On this fraternity the 
Christian state is based. The union between church and state 
which the Catholic Church reaches out for, and the separation of 
them which she condemns, were well summarized by Dr. Brown- 
son in this magazine, May, 1870: 

" For ourselves, we are partial to our American system, which, unless we are 
blinded by our national prejudices, comes nearer to the realization of the true 
union as well as distinction of church and state than has hitherto or elsewhere 
been effected ; and we own we should like to see it, if practicable there, intro- 
duced, by lawful means only, into the nations of Europe. The American system 
may not be practicable in Europe ; but, if so, we think it would be an improve- 
ment. Foreigners do not generally, nor even do all Americans themselves, fully 
understand the relation of church and state as it really subsists in the funda- 
mental constitution of American society. Abroad and at home there is a strong 
disposition to interpret it by the theory of European liberalism, and both they 
who defend and they who oppose the union of church and state regard it as 
based on their total separation. But the reverse of this, as we understand it, is 
the fact. American society is based on the principle of their union ; and union, 
while it implies distinction, denies separation. Modern infidelity, or secularism, 
is, no doubt, at work here as elsewhere to effect their separation ; but as yet the 
two orders are distinct, each with its distinct organization, sphere of action, repre- 
sentatives, functions, but not separate. Here the rights of neither are held to be 
grants from the other. The rights of the church are not franchises or conces- 



1890.] CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. 531 

:sions from the state, but are recognized by the state as held under a higher law 
than its own, and therefore rights prior to and above itself, which it is bound by 
the law constituting it to respect, obey, and, whenever necessary, to use its 
physical force to protect and vindicate." . . . "We note here that this 
view condemns alike the absorption of the state in the church, and the absorption 
of the church in the state, and requires each to remain distinct from the other, 
each with its own organization, organs, faculties, and sphere of action. It favors, 
therefore, neither what is called theocracy, or clerocracy, rather, to which Calvin- 
istic Protestantism is strongly inclined, nor the supremacy of the state, to which 
the age tends, and which was assumed in all the states of gentile antiquity, 
whence came the persecutions of Christians by pagan emperors. We note fur- 
ther that the church does not make the law ; she only promulgates, declares, 
and applies it, and is herself as much bound by it as the state itself. The law 
itself is prescribed for the government of all men and nations by God himself as 
Supreme Lawgiver, or the end or final cause of creation, and binds equally states 
.and individuals, churchmen and statesmen, sovereigns and subjects. Such, as 
we have learnt it, is the Catholic doctrine of the relation of church and state, and 
such is the relation that in the divine order really exists between the two orders, 
and which the church has always and everywhere labored with all her zeal and 
energy to introduce and maintain in society." 

Many well-meaning non- Catholics think that an establishment, 
or concordat, or agreement by which church authorities should 
hold secular power,, constitutes the ideal union which Catholics 
have longed for. On the contrary, Catholics know that the 
church was never more wronged than when dealt with as an es- 
tablishment or tied up by a concordat. In every such case the 
tendency has been towards the assumption of church control by the 
civil power. Whatever advantages the church seemed to acquire 
from these alliances, her deprivation was generally, if not always, 
far in excess of her gain. Through the middle ages, when it is 
commonly supposed she possessed greatest civil authority, "she 
enjoyed not a moment's peace, hardly a truce, and was obliged 
to maintain an unceasing struggle with the civil authority against 
its encroachments on the spiritual order, and for her own inde- 
pendence and freedom of action as the Church of God." 

These considerations are apt to throw some light on the 
Catholic aspect of the problem, which, briefly, is that both insti- 
tutions were intended to act in harmony, each within its distinct 
province ; one looking to man's temporal welfare, the other to 
his spiritual. Withal, though the province of each be distinct, 
the proximate earthly prosperity must not antagonize the ulti- 
mate end of man, happiness hereafter. 

The history of civilization tells us the value of religion to 
society considered apart from its governmental functions. Indus- 
try, the arts, the sciences, sanitation, commerce, discovery have 
received their strongest impulse from her. If there be any ad- 



S3 2 CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. [Jan., 

vance which man has made in which positive dogmatic religion 
has had no hand, then that advance is not yet catalogued. 

It is, moreover, entirely to the church that society owes the 
Home, where man finds his purest and completest earthly bliss. 

But it is in the moral sphere that the church has rendered 
society untold benefits. It is popular to speak of religion in one 
breath and morality in another. Separate them, and what have 
you on the moral side ? At best utilitarianism. This could no 
more produce the high standard of actions religious motives put 
before men than the cracked, kernelless acorn-shell could grow 
the oak- tree. Sun would shine, rain fall in vain, the germ of life 
would be wanting. A moral code without inwardness, with a 
temporary value and without absoluteness, so that it would be 
within " the competence of any man or all men to alter or 
abolish it," would certainly be a sorry standard of social virtue,, 
a veritable dummy togged out in " the clothes of religion." To 
such a standard, to this kind of a god alone, has society a right 
if it be separated from religion. 

Still, it has been objected that the union of religion and so- 
ciety tends either to corrupt the former "by debasing the spiritual 
to the love of luxurious ease, as in the case of the monastic 
orders," or to disorganize the latter "by proclaiming beggary 
[voluntary poverty ?], the symbol of its ruin, more honored than 
productive industry." To confuse beggary with voluntary poverty,, 
the proximate cause of the greatest philanthropic industries the 
world has seen, is to outrage language ; as well call property 
theft. 

Could such results as those objected come to pass, they would 
be the effect of pure accident, and could be quoted no more 
fairly as reason why the church and society should be entirely 
cut asunder than a child's destructive carelessness in handling 
matches could be urged as ground sufficient for the prohibition 
of their manufacture. It is true that " each institution has its 
essential place and function," but this does not disprove their 
mutual usefulness. As religion makes of the individual more than 
a worm of earth, and of his life more than " an idiot's dream," 
so does it, and must it, lift society up out of the slough of natural 
satisfactions on to the highlands of spiritual endeavor. If in 
performing this duty the church would stoop to functions un- 
worthy of itself, or run a risk of debasement, then would it be 
inherently unfit for the work it was set to do ; namely, to make 
the natural a path to that which is above nature and rounds out 
man's happiness, the divine. 






1890.] CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. 533 

So much by way of introduction to what we have to say of 
religion and education. 

" The ultimate end of education," says Professor Huxley, "is to 
promote morality and refinement, by teaching men to discipline 
themselves, and by leading them to see that the highest, as it is 
the only content, is to be attained not by grovelling in the rank 
and steaming valleys of sense, but by continually striving towards 
those high peaks where, resting in eternal calm, reason discerns 
the undefined but bright ideal of the highest good ' a cloud by 
day, a pillar of fire by night.' ' The quotation is pertinent, be- 
cause it defines the position of the " advanced " scientific school 
of the day as -to the work education should do. This school, 
of course, regards religion as a detected superstition of no future 
influence. The work it did is, under the new regime, the prov- 
ince of education. The inference is an easy one : granting reli- 
gion, it and education should go hand-in-hand, since their ultimate 
end is the same, raising men up out of " the rank and steam- 
ing valleys of sense." 

In other words, the object of education is the formation of 
character ; character is a matter of principle, of motive ; these 
are subjects of the spiritual order ; consequently, they belong to* 
this order's authoritative representative, organized religion. It 
is begging the question to claim for the state absolute control 
of education because its own protection and the public good 
require educated citizens. It has already been shown that for 
the same reasons the state needs religious citizens. Should it,, 
therefore, usurp a spiritual function? 

The core of the matter is, secular society is unable to dis- 
charge its proper functions without the co-operation and aid of 
the spiritual society. Civic virtues no more than personal are 
the proper effects of purely secular training; uprightness, hon- 
esty (except as advantageous policy), fidelity, loyalty, respect for 
authority are not direct consequences of reading, 'riting, and 
'rithmetic. Secular studies are undeniably valuable auxiliaries to 
spiritual progress, for religion, being a revelation of God, requires 
an intellectual worshipper. Of all religions the Catholic most 
thoroughly realized this truth ; else why is her history the his- 
tory of universities ? The bearing of knowledge on religious 
truth is the subject of Dr. Newman's " Eighth Discourse on Uni- 
versity Teaching," of which the following extracts are too pertinent 
to this article's purpose to be omitted : 

" It is obvious," he says, " that the first step pastors of the church have to 
effect in the conversion^ of man and the renovation of his nature is his rescue 



534 CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. LJ an - 

from that fearful subjection to sense which is his ordinary state. To be able to 
break through the meshes of that thraldom, and to disentangle and disengage its 
ten thousand holds upon the heart, is to bring it, I might almost say, half-way 
to heaven. Here even divine grace, to speak of things according to their ap- 
pearances, is ordinarily baffled, and retires, without expedient or resource, before 
this giant fascination. Religion seems too high and unearthly to be able to exert 
a continued influence upon us ; its effort to arouse the soul and the soul's effort 
to co-operate are too violent to last. . . . What we then need is some expe- 
dient or instrument which at least will obstruct and stave off the approach of our 
spiritual enemy, and which is sufficiently congenial and level with our nature to 
maintain as firm a hold upon us as the inducements of sensual gratification. It 
will be our wisdom to employ nature against itself. . . . Here, then, I think, 
is the important aid which intellectual cultivation furnishes to us in rescuing the 
victims of passion and self-will. It does not supply religious .motives ; it is not 
the cause or proper antecedent of anything supernatural ; it is not meritorious of 
heavenly aid or reward ; but it does a work at least materially good (as theologi- 
ans speak), whatever be 'its real and formal character. It expels the excitements 
of sense by the introduction of those of the intellect. . . . Nor is this all. 
Knowledge, the discipline by which it is gained, and the tastes which it forms, 
have a natural tendency to refine the mind and to give it an indisposition, 
simply natural, yet real ; nay, more than this, a disgust and abhorrence to- 
wards excesses." 

If the church neglected education, she would deprive herself 
of the surest means of self-development; for her progress, nay, 
her existence, if you will, depends on her members -having a 
secular education deficient in not an iota to that which others 
would possess. Fostering of ignorance by the church would be 
suicidal. There need be no apprehension that the church will 
pi ly into the enemies' hands by doing herself what they have 
been struggling in vain to accomplish time out of mind. 

However, to hold that secular schools in which religion is ne- 
glected or tabooed are not godless, in the sense Catholics use the 
term, because secular knowledge prepares the way for religious, 
or because therein truths of nature are taught, and all truth is 
God's, is quibbling unworthy serious minds. " The truth of math- 
ematics," writes a present-day sophist, " the truth of history, the 
truth of science, truth anywhere round the globe, is just a word of 
God ; and just in so far as children are taught that truth they 
are taught religion. . . . At any rate, by taking away from 
the schools all formal teaching concerning religion, suppose they 
are godless, they are at least harmless as far as they go." The 
assertion anent "the truth of mathematics," etc., proves alto- 
gether too much ; namely, the utter impossibility of an atheistical 
school of science. Unfortunately for the proposition's defender, 
there have been such schools. 

And the trend of " advanced " scientific teaching at present, 
is it for or against God ? Is the whole truth or a half-truth 



1890.] CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. 535 

taught when the fundamental principle of things is left as a mat- 
ter of conjecture, of opinion ? If the visible things of the world 
reveal the invisible, can the explanation of the one be given 
without any reference to the other ? And will such reference be 
either theistic or atheistic ? Such reference must be made, or the 
existence of God treated as an unnecessary fact. And is not 
that just how it is treated ? Then how can schools of this com- 
plexion be harmless ? Can there be a harmless neutral stand in 
regard to God, or materialism, or positivism ? 

Moreover, truth as expressed in things or principles, objective 
truth, apart from its concept by the human mind, is certainly 
God's truth ; nobody questions the declaration that facts are 
facts. It is with the attempted statement and explanation of 
phenomena and principles, though with truth as a subjective ele- 
ment ; truth modified or corrupted by opinion, and by theory, 
and by natural bent of disposition, and by one-sided mental de- 
velopment, and by dyspepsia, by all the ingredients that go to 
make up human fallibility with truth in this sense it is the 
schools have to do. Consequently, the teaching of truth depends 
altogether on the view the teachers take of it. Maybe now the 
adjective godless as applied by Catholics to schools distinctively 
secular may be understood, and the quibble as to its use esti- 
mated at its proper worth. 

What would be the strongest ground on which the separation 
of secular and religious studies could be pressed would be that 
of their inborn incompatibility. Professor Harris, in the Andover 
Review, states the proposition as follows : 

"The methods of religious instruction are of necessity different from the 
methods in secular education. In the secular branches the good method of in- 
struction trains the intellect to keep all its powers awake and alert. The thought 
must be trained to be critical. The pupil must not take the words of his text- 
book on faith merely. He must question and verify, demanding proofs and in- 
vestigating their validity. ... In religion, on the other hand, faith is the 
chief organ. . . . Religious truth is revealed in allegoric and symbolic form, 
having both a literal sense and a spiritual sense. The analytical understanding 
is necessarily hostile and sceptical in its attitude towards religious truth. But 
such attitude is entirely appropriate to the study of science and history. It is 
obvious that the mind must not be changed abruptly from secular studies to re- 
ligious contemplation. A lesson on religious dogmas just after a lesson in math- 
ematics or physical science has the disadvantage that the mind brings with it the 
bent or proclivity of the latter study to the serious detriment of the former." 

This view of religion and this method of religious criticism 
and investigation may satisfy a Protestant, but the Catholic 
church demands thorough rationalness in all religious inquiries. 
That reason proves the existence of God is with her a dogma ; 



536 CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. LJ an -- 

and she lays it down as incontrovertible that the reasoning fac- 
ulty rightly exercised leads to the Catholic faith. John Henry 
Newman, on the day of his reception into her fold, wrote to his 
friend, T. W. Allies : " May I have only one-tenth as much 
faith as I have intellectual conviction where the truth lies ! " 

Catholic theology is a development of reasoning on the high- 
est subjects. The acceptation of truths on the properly-tested 
authority of others (the fundamental principle of revealed re- 
ligion) is a problem of pure reason. If reason has already de- 
monstrated the existence of God, the fact that he is the authority 
on which truths are taken as such does not lift the problem out 
of reason's sphere, when the fact of the revelation can be proved 
by the same criterion as other facts accepted on authority that 
is, by the testimony of witnesses qualified to give testimony as 
to the actual happening itself, no matter what be their qualifica- 
tions for a right conception or explanation of the happening's- 
meaning. 

The man of strong eye-sight is best fitted for fine work at the 
telescope. Burnham, who by naked eye distinguished double 
stars which to others seemed a single point of light, with a small 
telescope discovered hundreds of them that blinked in vain for 
recognition by lenses twice the size of his. The illustration fits 
the Catholic Church's position as to the relationship of Reason 
and Revelation. Reason is the mental eyesight ; the clearer, 
stronger, more critical it is the better use can it make of Revela- 
tion, the God-given telescope, by which it looks beyond the 
stars far into infinity. 

While religion is held unable to bear the sharpest scrutiny 
from legitimate metaphysical inquiry it is belittled, turned into 
the lawful butt of infidel sarcasm. Hence the self-same methods 
are fitted for the introduction and guidance of youth in the 
spiritual as in the natural world of thought and fact. In one, as 
in the other, the method of imparting knowledge is progressive, 
proportioned to the age and abilities of the learner. Take the 
child in the primaries : it learns as it eats, on the authority of 
an older person declaring what is and what isn't good for it. 
How absurd to hold that a beginner must assimilate the Rule of 
Three through an acquaintance with the abstractions of calculus ! 
Why, then, is religion to be taught backwards ? A child sees a 
picture of Bucephalus and Alexander ; another of Christ blessing 
children. For the teacher to state one fact in a method differing 
from a statement of the other would be an outrage on common 
sense. There is just as much need in the one case of a critical 



1890.] CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. 537 

-explanation as to why Alexander and his horse are of more in- 
terest than John Smith and his donkey as there is in the other 
case of a philosophical inquiry into the mode of union between 
the two natures in Christ The facts come first ; the realization 
of their full meaning grows in direct ratio with the development 
of mental capacity and the acquirement of knowledge. Religion 
alone, therefore, must not be made for the child a darkened 
chamber in which mystery and indistinctness overwhelm with 
awe, and which is sure to be treated as a hobgoblin room of the 
imagination when reason develops and memory recalls its terrors. 
On the contrary, the principle that religion is "the light that 
enlightens every man that cometh into the world " should be 
.acted on. It should be made not the Mystifier, but the Illumi- 
natrix of Reason, which bends the more reverently in worship of 
God and abasement of itself the more clearly it perceives his 
unspeakable perfections. 

As a corollary to what has been written, it follows that the 
lesson in the catechism is not what differentiates the Catholic 
from the secular school. A half-hour daily in Catholic schools 
of the grammar grade, an hour or two weekly in higher schools, 
is given to this study. Though this brief time were turned to 
other use, the Catholic would yet differ in toto from the public 
school. Catechism, as a recitation, is as the other studies, sim- 
ply an intellectual exercise. The Catholic school, however, has 
to do with more than the child's intelligence. The public school 
cannot pretend to train the conscience or will : its province is 
the intellect and memory, and even here it has to stop short 
within fixed limits. Beyond this province it may not go without 
positivizing as to religious truths, and positivize it cannot : it 
must suit equally infidel, pagan, Jew, Buddhist, Unitarian, Trini- 
tarian, and the rest. 

In the Catholic school, on the other hand, all the achieve- 
ments of the intellect and memory are grouped about a common 
centre, inasmuch as all have their relations to the interests of 
Revealed Truth ; besides this, a set of principles for the guidance 
of' will-action, as authoritative in their department as the rules of 
the syllogism in theirs, is acted upon, not merely understood, by 
teachers and pupils. Hence the different results of the systems. 

It remains to ask, Would this " sectarian " teaching bring 
about a condition of things similar to that of the middle ages, 
so that the majority might proclaim the profession of other 
beliefs than its own an overt act of treason ? Comparing the 
nineteenth century with those days, the question bears its ab- 



538 CHURCH, STATE, AND SCHOOL. [Jan., 

surdity on its face. Anyway, for Catholics Dr. Brownson an- 
swered it years ago : 

" This union of church and state [see the first part of this article] supposes 
nothing like a competency on the part of the state [he is speaking of the Amer- 
ican state] to authoritatively declare which church represents the spiritual 
order. The responsibility of that decision it does and must leave to its citizens, 
who must decide for themselves and answer to God for the rectitude of their de- 
cision. Their decision is law for the state, and it must respect and obey it in the 
case alike of majorities and minorities ; for it recognizes the equal rights of all its 
citizens and cannot discriminate between them. The church that represents for 
the state the spiritual order is the church adopted by its citizens ; and as they 
adopt different churches, it can realize and enforce, through the civil courts, the 
canons and decrees of each only on its own members, and on them only so far as 
they do not infringe on the equal rights of others." 

But if not from a political stand-point, from that of private 
life would not separate schools beget separation and distrust of 
fellow-citizens ? Since within one's own church are the elect, the 
loved' of God, how can I, his friend, but hate those without, who 
are his enemies ? 

In answer to this we have to say that the contact the chil- 
dren in the common schools have with one another is so slight 
and superficial and short-lived as to be unworthy the exag- 
gerated emphasis now put upon it. Up to the present this con- 
tact has rather strengthened than lessened social and religious 
distinctions, and it has done so in not the pleasantest of ways 
for both parties concerned. It is to the ties of neighborhood, 
labor, recreation, business, social equality, literary associations, 
politics, patriotism, that the spirit of kinship in us all owes its 
constant sustenance and consequent growth. 

Furthermore, why is it to be taken for granted that in pa- 
rochial schools children are not to be taught patriotically ? What 
an insulting insinuation to Catholic Americans the objection 
cloaks ! 

For the Catholic school explicitly or implicitly to inculcate 
distrust or hatred of neighbors because of religious differences 
would be for it to contradict every applicable principle of Cath- 
olic theology. The Catholic Church was founded for the pur- 
pose of benefiting those whom the objector would wish us to 
style "the enemies of God." No man is God's enemy; it is the 
sin within a man that comes between himself and his Maker. 
Its destruction is the objective point of Christian endeavor. The 
church has ever distinguished between the sinner and the sin. 
Hence her asylums, hospitals, missions, good works of all sorts 
for the avail of sinners, heretics, and pagans. 



1890.] THE CHURCH AND THE TOILERS. 539 

The phases of the discussion touched upon in this article, 
with others of still more practical import, await the future devel- 
opment which from the force of circumstances they must receive. 
Much as has been written on the school question, the . case is 
as yet but well opened. As the controversy advances Catholics 
will appreciate more and more the logicalness of the position 
their church has assumed. It is simply a matter of time and 
active controversy until the best Protestant opinion swings into 
line with the church, for right must win, at least in America. 

The school movement just now is in .a state of being analo- 
gous to that of the Home Rule movement in England a few 
years since. Wait for half a decade, until the mists of prejudice 
and sophism have been scattered, and through a clear atmos- 
phere American Christians with their own eyes see the masked 
spectre of infidelity, which, all unknown, has been making them 
dance to his music wait, and see how thoroughly the demon 
will be " laid " ! 

JOSEPH V. TRACY. 

Hyde Park, Mass. 



THE CHURCH AND THE TOILERS. 

AN English paper is our authority for the following about 
Cardinal Manning : 

" To those who have not ceased to believe in Christianity it will be not the 
least of his claims on the gratitude of the world that he has shown a sceptical 
generation that orthodoxy is no enemy of Radical progress. A young friend 
was speaking to him recently of the new London movements, and chanced 
to say they might roughly be described as 'practical Socialism.' 'I prefer to 
call it Christianity.' said the Cardinal." 

Some Protestant historians, notably Lecky, have pronounced 
the Catholic Church the protector and defender of the poor of the 
past. We omit quotations from them. We omit proofs that the 
first labor organizations known in history were founded by " the 
lazy monks." We also omit the past events of history, which 
show that when the church spiritualized the business relations of 
the poor to the rich there was more peace and less poverty, 
and confine ourselves to narrating a few of her recent actions 
which prove her to be the protector and defender of the poor of 
the present day : 

First, in Belgium : 

Witness the effects of the triumph of the Belgian Catholic 




-540 THE CHURCH AND THE TOILERS. [Jan., 

Party, to whom the Belgian workmen owe: (i) A government 
inquiry into the condition of the workingmen ; (2) the organiza- 
tion of the Liege congresses on social questions, which has led 
to a special movement for the reform of the factory laws ; (3) as 
.a result of its report, an elaborate labor law, with special refer- 
ence to the protection of women and children in the factories. 

Second, in Germany : 

When its financial interests and public peace were endangered 
last spring by the great strike at Bochum, who formulated the 
grievances and demands of the poor miners ? The answer is, the 
Catholic priests of the place. Indeed, we know of no other men 
who have been such heroes of the democracy there, or who 
have better fulfilled the high ideal as set forth by the Eternal 
Priest. They mingled fraternally with the miners of Westphalia, 
and, as a consequence, all was tranquillity, intelligence, self- 
sacrifice ; for they recognized in their priests pastors who thor- 
oughly sympathized with them in their misery and discontent. 
Moreover, the German Congress of a few weeks ago made labor 
and capital the most important and prominent subject of its pro- 
gramme. Dr. Windthorst, one of the many Catholic leaders who 
have promoted the labor cause in Germany, said : " We have 
come to Bochum to prove that Catholicism has the courage to 
plant its flag in the mining region. The interests of employers 
and employed are not opposed ; they complete one another ; the 
workman can do nothing if work be not given to him, and the 
capitalist can do nothing if the workman be not given to him. 
To the one we would teach Christian humility and obedience ; 
to the other Christian justice and benevolence." 

Third, in France : 

Ten thousand ' of the Catholic working classes answered the 
Pope's request to visit Rome. Four trains each week, with 
five to six hundred passengers, ran from the I4th of October 
until the i8th of November. Every part of France sent its 
representative workingmen, and many wealthy Catholics con- 
tributed in aiding the poorer of these laborers to visit the 
Eternal City. What a splendid sight for the Italian Freemason ! 
the French laborer, farmer, and mechanic embracing and re- 
ceiving the especial blessing of the Vicar of Christ. But more 
than this, it was a new phase in the present religious life of 
France. It told us that there are still multitudes of loyal Catho- 
lics among the French working classes. For this we thank God, 
since we have had reason to fear that it is through their grief- 
. stricken hearts that the canker-worm of atheism is eating. The 



1890.] THE CHURCH AND THE TOILERS. 541 

French anti-religious laborer is fierce and irrational in his hatred 
of the church and her priests ; and this pilgrimage of Catholic 
workingmen was no doubt especially beneficial and encouraging 
to that class of Frenchmen. 

Fourth, in Russia : 

We find the more thoughtful among her people saying that 
the poor are sinking into atheism and vice, and that their 
amelioration can only be effected by a reunion with the Church 
of Rome. 

Fifth t in Ireland : 

Witness Archbishop Walsh during the strike of the brick- 
layers in Dublin ; and the efforts of the whole Irish clergy, 
whether in prison or in church, fighting unto death to emanci- 
pate their suffering countrymen. 

Sixth, in England : 

Consider the London strike, one of the most serious conflicts 
of modern times between employer and employed a bloodless 
war which endangered the social prosperity of the largest city 
in the world. We need not say that the happy ending of the 
battle was due to the moral grandeur and persevering energy of 
.a leader in the Catholic Church. 

" When the Cardinal," says the editor of the Pall Mall Gazette, " went to 
.and fro between the dockers and the directors, refusing to despair when his Es- 
tablished brother of London had shaken off the dust of his feet against the 
.strike and disappeared into space, combating with the utmost patience the diffi- 
culties interposed by prejudice and passion, interposing a constant element of 
cool common-sense in the midst of hot-blooded counsels, he must have felt sus- 
tained and inspired by the best traditions of his church. The occasion, no 
doubt, was less imposing than on that great historic day when St. Leo stood up 
as mediator and deliverer between Attila and the Eternal City, but the spirit of 
devotion and the sanctified sagacity of the cardinal were no less admirable than 
those of the great pontiff." 

In Africa consider Cardinal Lavigerie's action towards the 
African slaves. In our own country look at Cardinal Gibbons in 
his relation to the Knights of Labor. 

Thus in this century the church manifests herself as the 
Mother of the Poor. Modern heterodoxy, liberalism, infidelity 
have done nothing and cannot do anything for poverty. The 
leaders of the London strike name Dr. Parker, the leading Non- 
conformist minister of the city, as one fearing to soil his hands 
with the poor. The liberal Mr. Spurgeon they call " an old 
autocrat " ; and as for the Non-conformists, who are supposed to 
be democrats if God ever made a democrat, these, they tell us, 
VOL. L. 35 



542 THE CHURCH AND THE TOILERS. [Jan., 

kept as far aloof as the Queen herself. Robert G. Ingersoll 
talks of "tears and kisses, kisses and tears," of flowers, birds, 
and butterflies, and other golden slobber, to ragged women and 
starving children. Huxley, Spencer, and Harrison are tearing- 
down everything and building up nothing. Felix Adler is giv 
ing us, as a cure for evil and poverty, "ethical culture"; while 
Henry George seems to think that the poor will be no longer 
with us if we adopt the single tax. 

No ; the Christianity of Christ alone holds the key to the 
mystery of woe and want. She tells the rich that they shall be 
poor indeed if they have no treasures in heaven. She reminds 
the lazy, wealthy " man about town " that the kingdom of 
Christ is not made up of his kind. She informs the capitalist 
whose luxury is the poor man's robbery' that he shall suffer by 
the decree of a just God and an honest tribunal. She points 
out the lurid gleam of an everlasting hell to the fiend who has 
stolen a maiden's honor or robbed a mother's love. " Verily 
there is a reward for the righteous ; doubtless there is a Gocl 
who judgeth the earth." She condemns, in the Plenary Council 
of Baltimore, the liquor-saloon, warning the laborers from its fatal 
door. 

Christ knew the bitterness of tears and the privations of 
poverty; not only that, but he shed his blood for each and every 
one of us regardless of race or class, for the negro as well as 
the white, for the tramp as well as the aristocrat. The poverty 
of his life has sanctified the poverty of our life. Moreover, joys 
untold has he promised the poor. He has placed most of them 
in a church where " the afflicted find solace, the oppressed relief 
from their burdens," and where " the poor have the Gospel 
preached to them" a church which has ever been the apostle of 
popular rights and the champion of rational liberty and equality 
from the day that Christ established her. At her communion- 
rail the king kneels at the side of the pauper. 

HENRY O'KEEFFE. 






890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 543 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

IT would not be easy to point out any useful purpose which 
has been served by the publication of The Letters of the Duke 
of Wellington to- Miss J. They have just been issued by Dodd, 
Mead & Co., New York, with an introduction and a running fire 
of editorial comment by Christine Terhune Herrick. They are 
accompanied by extracts from Miss J.'s own letters to the duke 
and passages from her diary. All the documents of which the 
present volume is an abridgment " have lain for years," says Mrs. 
Herrick, " in the attic of a country house within thirty miles of 
New York City. Their publication is permitted through the 
kindness of a friend with whose family Miss J. was remotely 
connected." So superfluous a disinterment has surely seldom 
been undertaken. Considered as a study of human nature under 
conditions slightly abnormal, Miss J.'s contributions to this cor- 
respondence afford some material to the psychologist, but as his- 
tory neither the duke's letters nor her own have any conceiva- 
ble value. In fact, the editor's only shadow of excuse for pillory- 
ing poor, thick-skinned Miss J. in this fashion must be found, if 
anywhere, in Miss J.'s evident anticipation that her record of the 
curious relation subsisting between herself and Wellington would 
some day or other be laid before the public. 

In 1834, when this correspondence began, Miss J. was " a 
very beautiful woman about twenty years of age," belonging to 
the " smaller English gentry," well educated according to the 
standard of the times, and almost fanatically devout on narrowly 
Evangelical lines. She was an earnest student of the Bible and 
a firm believer in the doctrine of an overruling Providence which 
directs even the most trivial events of life. When in doubt on 
any subject, it was her custom to practise sortilege by opening 
the Bible at random and shaping her course according to the 
direction she fancied she found in the first passage on which her 
eyes fell. 

About six months before writing her first letter to the Duke 
of Wellington Miss J. and another young girl had been instru- 
mental in bringing to repentance and to public confession a mur- 
derer with whom both Catholic priests and Protestant parsons 
had labored in vain. The fact got into the public papers, and 
was made the theme of a small religious book. One effect ot 



544 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan., 

this notoriety on Miss J. was to inspire her with the notion that 
she had been specially elected as an instrument, in the hands of 
God for the advancement of what she understood to be " the 
cause of Christ." Looking around for a suitable object for her 
zeal, her attention was drawn to the Duke of Wellington. He 
was extremely prominent in public affairs at the time, and that 
fact appears to be all that she knew about him ; she expressly states 
that " when she first wrote to him she was not aware that he was 
the conqueror of Bonaparte, and did not even know when the 
battle of Waterloo took place." Her motive, and the theme of 
her letters, are given in the following passage from her diary. 
The " poor Cook " alluded to was the criminal with whom she 
had previously " labored." Her capitalization is at all times pe- 
culiar : 

" Seeing that I have adverted in the former part of this book to the feelings 
experienced on our return from poor Cook, which induced me to look up to the 
Lord, inquiring what next HE would have me to do, receiving this precious reply : 
' Greater things than these, that they may marvel ' ; and considering such words 
must have had a reference to his condescending dealings a few months after- 
wards in influencing me to write to the Duke upon the necessity of a new birth 
to righteousness, I am solicitous to devote a portion of this book to his letters, 
remarking thereon as the list thereof proceeds." 

In 1834 the duke was a hale, hearty man of sixty-five, who 
had been a widower for three years. It was his well-known 
habit to read and answer all his own letters as soon as possible 
alter they were received. Miss J.'s epistle, sent from Devon- 
shire on January 15, 1834, was courteously responded to on the 
1 8th of the same month. Encouraged by this, Miss J. ventured 
to present him with a Bible when she returned to London the 
following April. Her account of this eminently supererogatory 
work is characteristic : 

' After earnest prayer the Bible was taken by me, with a fluttering, agitated 
feeling, to the Duke's gates and delivered into the porter's hands, after asking 
him if the Duke were at home. He replied, ' Yes, ma'am.' I then asked, ' Is 
he engaged ?' He told me Lord I forget his name and Sir Thomas Somebody 
were with him. I then inquired, 'Who delivers parcels into His Grace's hands?' 
He respectfully said, ' I do, ma'am.' I rejoined, ' Then you will deliver that' 
returning home, marvelling wherefore such things were permitted and what the 
end thereof would be. Of course, a suitable note accompanied The Bible." 

The duke made no reply until late in August, and even 
then his letter was delayed by his having addressed it to Mrs. 
instead of Miss J. She writes that she presumes he was in doubt 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 545 

as to whether she were married or single. In this note he 
seems to have asked whether he might not have the pleasure of 
meeting her, and in her reply Miss J. not only told him her age 
and condition, but expressed her own desire to know him, 
" Considering it may be The Lord's will to permit personal in- 
terviews, proposing under such circumstances to use my in- 
fluence with him ; accordingly craving the Divine blessing there- 
on." The duke's reply is dated from Walmer Castle, October 
24, 1834: 

" The Duke of Wellington presents his compliments to Miss J. The Duke 
has received her Letter, in which she expresses a desire to see the Duke, and that 
he should call upon her. 

" The Duke has certainly received one, if not more, letters from Miss J., all 
written upon the same important subject and with the same beneficent object in 
view, although the desire to see the Duke was not expressed in them ; and the 
Duke lately acknowledged the receipt of one, and of the book, etc., accompany- 
ing it. 

" Although the Duke is not in the habit of visiting young unmarried ladies, 
he will not decline to attend Miss J.," etc. 

He presented himself accordingly at the London lodgings, 
which she shared with her friend Mrs. L., on the I2th of the 
following month. As no account of the curious interview which 
followed could be so graphic as her own, and as it seems to 
throw the only glimmer of light on the patience with which 
the duke continued to support his part in the correspondence, 
wfiich lasted with few breaks for the next seventeen years, and 
terminated on his part only a few months before his death, it 
is worth quoting : 

" I will proceed to describe this visit, which took place through a declaration 
on his part in a former letter that the desire to see me sprang from the con- 
sideration evinced by me concerning his everlasting welfare. This induced me to 
receive him accordingly, praying to God to be with me every moment of the 
time, directing even my dress. This He did, letting me be dressed on the occa- 
sion as HE pleased, which, as my Diary relates, was in my old turned dark green 
merino gown, daily worn not permitting me to be decorated in any way likely 
to attract notice, which, as the employment in view was of so sacred a nature, 
was neither required nor obtained. 

" Having committed myself on my knees into his gracious hand, ' whose I 
am and whom I serve,' to do with me whatever seemed agreeable to his 
unerring will, I descended the stairs after the Duke was announced, with these 
words from dear Mrs. L. following me : ' Now if the Lord should send his arrow 
into his soul ! ' (She had fancied from the commencement that God intended to 
exalt me for the purpose of showing forth his praise, so that this impression 
must necessarily have been powerfully strengthened by what followed.) 

" I entered the Parlour, where, standing before the fire, I beheld anythingbut 



546 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan., 

the kind of individual personally imagined. I had not had the slightest idea 
that the Duke has such a beautiful, silver head, such as I always from my 
childhood admired, inducing me as I approached to offer my hand with addi- 
tional pleasure, saying, 'This is very kind of Your Grace.' He received my 
hand graciously and respectfully, but spoke not a word. I then requested him 
to be seated, two chairs having been placed for that purpose each side of the 
fire, and occupied one of them myself; when, recollecting the purport of his 
visit, I immediately rose, saying, ' I will show you my Treasure ! ' He also 
rose, standing until I re-seated myself with this large, beautiful Bible in my arms. 
I placed it upon the table between us, opening it at the Third Chapter of St. 
John's Gospel, announcing the same. On arriving at the seventh verse thereof, 
containing this MOMENTOUS passage, flowing from the divine lips of Him who 
spoke as never man spake, ' Ye MUST be born again,' 1 I, as is usual with me, 
raised my hand, pointing my finger emphatically, with the solemnity so im- 
portant an occasion demanded, being desirous to impress the same on his mind, 
when, to my astonishment, he eagerly seized my hand, exclaiming, as before de- 
scribed: ' Oh, how I love you ! ' This was his first utterance ! . . . Should 
any one consider strange the expression of agonizing applied to the Duke's feel- 
ings at the time he seized my hand and exclaimed as written, I can only say that 
such an expression seems hardly doing justice thereto in my Estimation. Nor 
can I find any language adequate to display the same, for God appeared to have 
struck the Duke dumb on beholding me, giving him no. power of speech, until he 
betrayed the effect such had on him. He seemed determined from first to last 
to overcome or conceal these feelings ; yet on one occasion, with great solemnity 
of voice and manner, on my questioning him concerning who caused him to feel 
thus towards me, he replied, ' GOD ALMIGHTY.'" 

Considering Miss J.'s youth and innocence, as well as the un- 
doubted good faith with which she had accepted herself as a 
special envoy from above, it is hardly to be wondered at that 
she interpreted these avowals as an offer of marriage, especially 
as they were not only repeated on the occasion of the duke's 
next visit, but followed by the question whether "she felt suffi- 
cient for him to be with him a whole life, to which I replied: 
' If it be the will of God' ' Miss J.'s mental attitude, however, 
is not an easy one to label. It was made up of contradictories. 
While her words and actions flowed inevitably from her convic- 
tions, and so deserve to be esteemed true, yet as she affords an 
excellent specimen of the most glaring self-deception she can- 
not be called sincere. Both she and Mrs. L., who being older 
might have known better, but who seems to have neglected her 
opportunities in that line, had evidently entertained glowing ex- 
pectations for Miss J.'s future from the time when the duke an- 
swered her first letter. Though they did not know that he was 
the conqueror of Napoleon, they probably remembered the an- 
nouncements made in the daily journals when the Duchess of 
Wellington departed this life. Miss J. certainly never deserved 
the epithet worldly in its ordinary acceptation, but it is fair to 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 547 

credit her with a certain unworldly worldliness even less pleasant 
to contemplate than its more frankly mundane counterpart. When 
she came away from the duke's gates after leaving her Bible 
for him, " marvelling wherefore such things were permitted, and 
what the end thereof would be," her pretty little head was per- 
haps already adjusting itself to an imaginary coronet. Long 
afterward she writes : " I was impressed throughout my cor- 
respondence with and knowledge of the Duke with a feeling that 
the end God had in view was my exaltation for His Glory, or in 
other words to show forth His power." Her wrath and indig- 
nation when she discovered her mistake are so natural in them- 
selves that one chiefly regrets the gloss of supernaturalism with 
which she succeeded in veiling their true character from herself. 
"I should not be surprised (although rest assured I do not de- 
sire it)," she wrote the duke as soon as she had comprehended 
his meaning, " at any vengeance God saw fit to shower down 
for such a dreadful intention upon Your Grace's head." In 
another letter to him belonging to the same period she speaks 
of herself as " a Being who feels herself entitled even in the 
sight of God, not only to the appellation of virtuous, in the 
strictest acceptation of the word, but RIGHTEOUS. This appellation 
as far exceeds the former in value as the heavens do the earth, 
as the one is to be found, I trust, frequently in the unregenerate, 
whilst the latter springs SOLELY from above." 

To these letters the duke replied, first, that he " entirely 
concurred " in her intention to see him no more ; and again, 
on receiving a still more scathing rebuke for his presumption, by 
a quietly worded but sincere apology, with which the whole 
affair might have fitly ended. That it did not do so was owing 
to the young woman's obtuseness, aided by a woful lack of hu- 
mility, which seems never once to have permitted her to regard 
any word or act of her own as having any source but the ex- 
press will of God. That she was one day or other to become 
the Duchess of Wellington, and in that capacity to be a shin- 
ing example of His power to " honor those who honor Him," 
became a fixed idea in her mind, which was never shaken until 
the duke's death. In one of the letters just quoted she tells 
him that even had his offer been what she supposed, she would 
have hesitated to accept it " until I perceived in you that change 
of heart so necessary to salvation, without which ' no man can 
see the Lord,' fearing I ought not to consent even under the 
most flattering circumstances to partake in any outward honors 
likely to bring the disapprobation of God." Doubtless she be- 



548 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan., 

lieved herself to be speaking the exact truth, but one suspects 
that had the land lain in that direction she and Mrs. L. together 
would have piloted her bark safely round such an obstruction into 
the desired harbor. As things actually stood, Miss J. relieved 
her mind by two or three tart letters, and then, instead of re- 
lapsing into the natural silence of a justly offended woman, took 
what she esteemed higher ground. The insult had been offered 
not to her but to her Master. It was a source of trial and 
confusion of face to her, but it by no means relieved her from her 
divinely imposed task to labor with the duke for his eternal 
welfare, " concerning which," as she confides to the diary which 
she expected one day to see the light, " I was firm and faith- 
ful throughout, believing God would convert him eventually,, 
causing him to shine forth gloriously in His adorable service. 
As in that case the erroneous impression in my mind would in 
all probability have been verified, I looked forward to becoming 
as ' a city set on a hill which cannot be hid,' conceiving such 
exaltation would admit of showing His praises openly before 
men." In this last sentence we have the key to all that follows. 
That " all " meant more to the Duke of Wellington than it can 
to the most untired reader of this volume of letters. Mrs. Her- 
rick has given no more of Miss J.'s pietistic rhapsodies than 
serves to bind together the three hundred and ninety replies 
made to them by the long-suffering duke. These range in tone 
from paternal kindness to curt sarcasm or dignified remonstrance. 
They are always brief, almost always monotonous, and, except as 
being undoubtedly authentic, they have no value either literary or 
historic. Miss J.'s comments on them are now and then amusing,, 
but one grows tired of smiling at self-delusion, even when it 
takes such a form as this entry, made so late as 1850: "It is 
evident that from this period Satan was permitted to work in 
the Duke's mind, weakening consequently the power I had been 
permitted to exercise, by rendering my communications tedious." 
One can fancy Satan squirming under so needless an insinua- 
tion against his perspicacity. Miss J.'s efforts to convert the 
" nobility and gentry " were not entirely confined to the Great 
Duke. Sir Robert Peel received and answered some of her ad- 
monitions, and the Queen Dowager Adelaide was only saved by 
the duke's foresight from a lecture on her failure to pay her 
rates and taxes and her further lapse from duty in permitting 
the Duke of Wellington to leave " Your Majesty at Hastings for 
Dover on The Lord's Day." " She could not help lamenting the 
Queen's omission to hint that Sunday was not a day for travel- 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 549 

ling," wrote Miss J. to that lady, " feeling so desirous to see 
Your Majesty a shining vessel in The Lord's Hands to show forth 
His praise by knowing His Commands ; also that the Duke should 
be restrained from doing that which on a dying bed would pain. 
him to remember." 

After the duke's death in 1852 had finally crushed her hopes 
of worldly exaltation, Miss J. came to this country to spend the 
rest of her days with a married sister. But she had become so 
cranky that living with her proved too difficult, and they soon 
separated. Miss J. died in New York in 1862, having appar- 
ently lived to little other purpose than to afford a melancholy 
spectacle of ill-judged devotion and misdirected zeal. 

Life's Long Battle Won (New York : Dodd, Mead & Co.) we 
take to be the work of a woman, notwithstanding the masculine 
name which appears on its title-page and cover. " Edward 
Garrett's " previous stories Occupations of a Retired Life, 
Doing and Dreaming, etc. have, not fallen in our way, but 
the present one would naturally incline most intelligent and sym- 
pathetic readers to go a little out of their way to look them up. 
It is in every sense good reading. With quite sufficient plot, in- 
cident, and story to keep up interest, its strength lies, as we think 
it should, chiefly in its characters. Not the least attractive of 
these is that one which, standing behind the scenes, and busy 
only in bringing the personages of the little drama before the 
audience, has been unable to prevent its own shadow from loom- 
ing up behind them all. Life-like and interesting as they are, the 
gossipping Gibson w r omen, gentle Lesley Baird, common-sense, 
shrewd, practical, and yet unworldly Clementina Kerr, the two 
old Scotchwomen, Alison Brown and Jean Haldane, patient 
and loving-hearted Mrs. Crawford, and the womanly, aspiring 
Mary Olrig, yet the personality of " Edward Garrett " is, on the 
whole, the predominant attraction of the book. A woman, one 
would say, who has known how to love and how to suffer, and 
who has won to wisdom through both experiences. Shrewd,, 
too, and observant, with as quick an eye for a foible or a fault 
as for a natural virtue or a supernatural grace. Add to this a 
sincere Christian faith, which, incomplete though it be, yet rises- 
from the true root ; a pleasant, unaffected, entertaining style and 
a competent mastery of her material, and you will have the sum 
of Edward Garrett's stock-in-trade as a novelist. 

A most charming book of essays is A Rambler s Lease, by 
Mr. Bradford Torrey (Boston and New York : Houghton, Mifflin 
& Co.) It will not pay to skip a word between its covers. Mr., 



550 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan., 

Torrey has achieved successfully that end which, as he says in 
his paper on "New England Winter," all scribblers would be 
glad to reach : " To treat a meagre and commonplace theme in 
such a manner that whoever begins to read has no alternative 
but to finish." His work seems to us preferable to that of Mr. 
John Burroughs, with whom he has so much in common as to 
choice of topics and love of out-door life. Mr. Torrey's style, 
however, is agreeably free from Emersonianisms and those other 
minor affectations which disturb one's enjoyment in the case of 
Mr. Burroughs. A good deal of his charm arises, we suspect, 
from what he describes in the paper on " Butterfly Psychology " 
as that " strong anthropomorphic turn of mind which impels me 
to assume the presence of a soul in all animals, even in these 
airy nothings, and, having assumed its existence, to speculate as 
to what goes on within it" To him all nature is alive. Bee, 
bird, flower, tree, and river enter into cordial relations with 
him, and these essays are but the simple and delightful record 
of their friendship. Doubtless there is no other road so short as 
this for him who wishes to surprise the secrets of " our poor re- 
lations." Like their betters, they yield willingly and in its in- 
tegrity to the sympathetic touch what the dissecting-knife or the 
keen scrutiny of mere curiosity banish at the very moment of 
contact. It is long since a volume treating of external nature in 
its lower forms only has given us so unmixed a pleasure as 
the Rambler s Lease has done. Reading it, we were reminded 
from time to time of a page in The New Antigone, wherein 
Ivor Mardol explains that the final cause of fly-fishing is " not 
to catch trout for supper, but to get back the lost sense of 
Paradise and be one again with the spirit of the watery realms 
from which, some forgotten morning millions of years ago, the 
first amphibian crept daringly on land. He said now and then 
to his scientific friends that while he agreed with them in going 
forward, he thought it would be fatal to man's happiness if he 
did not go backward too. . . . 'Man will rule over nature,' 
said Ivor, ' only when he is at home in every part of it and 
knows it from within!'" It is that sense of being "within" by 
sympathy and affection which Mr. Torrey gives his readers, and 
gives, to our sense, more fully than most of those who write on 
kindred themes. 

Roberts Brothers' " Famous Women Series " has been en- 
larged, but not, as we think, enriched, by Mrs. Bradley Oilman's 
monograph on Saint Theresa of Avila. It is a pity that the 
subject should not have been treated by more competent hands. 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 551 

Judging from the result alone, it is difficult to believe that it 
could well have been entrusted to any less competent. St. 
Teresa is assuredly a very famous woman, and will continue to 
be so. What made her famous was not so much the fact that 
she reformed the Order of Our Lady of Mount Carmel as the 
manner of her prayer and the intimate union of her soul with 
God. Not the number of convents which she founded, but the 
books she wrote have made her name a familiar word among 
those who are of the household of faith. Those books, however, 
and the experiences to which they testify, are written in what 
Mrs. Oilman has evidently found an inscrutable cipher. Speak- 
ing of the account of her prayer which Teresa gave to St. 
Peter of Alcantara, Mrs. Oilman says : 

" This work, although one of the curiosities of religious literature to the 
student, is not of enough general interest to give much time to here. It was 
undoubtedly sincere in purpose, and occasionally its language rises into pure 
and beautiful rhetoric ; but in all probability it was written under intense and 
morbid spiritual excitement, so that to attempt to fathom or explain its 
mysteries to-day would not be feasible." 

Again, in the chapter called " Theresa's Perfect Conversion," 
she attempts to analyze the saint's natural endowments in such 
a manner as to eliminate the supernatural entirely. To this end 
she tells her readers that Teresa 

" had one of those restless, passionate natures whose ' reach ' exceeds their 
* grasp,' and often reminds us of George Eliot, who in Romola urges above all 
else faithfulness to the marriage-tie, but whose own wedded life was far from 
being above criticism. With ideals immeasurably superior and possibilities in- 
finitely greater than those with whom she lived, Theresa failed for twenty years 
to reach even the conventional " (sic) " standard of duty. Her sensitive, high- 
strung nature was capable of ascending loftier heights and of sinking into lower 
abysses than were more commonplace souls. She was, we find, easily moved by 
all the influences of the senses ; . . . the outward image was almost indis- 
pensable to her special kind of piety. Her mysticism was of a coarser kind 
than that of Madame Guyon. . . . Every deep spiritual experience was with 
her the direct outcome of some outward sensuous impression. . . . What 
she calls her ' perfect conversion ' arose from a strong sensuous impression." 

Then follows, in the saint's own words, the well-known pas- 
sage in which she records the effect produced upon her by the 
sight of a picture of the Crucifixion. " Her nature was one, as 
we know," goes on Mrs. Oilman, " which was always prone to 
extremes. . . . Her enthusiastic spirit and vivid fancy could not 
be cast into ordinary moulds ; they refused to grow symmetri- 



SS~ TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan.,. 

cally, and she took a sudden and extraordinary leap from world - 
liness into asceticism." Presently Mrs. Oilman, who has already 
told her readers that St. Teresa was upwards of forty before 
this conversion took place, sp.eaks of her as an " imaginative 
girl," who, in spite of the warnings of her confessors and spirit- 
ual guides, " continued to see and hear all sorts of extraordinary 
things." In this spirit, also, she quotes in full from the saint's 
autobiography the account of the transfixion of her heart, upon 
which she makes this comment : 

' What are we to say of this legend ? A nineteenth-century historian who 
is a Jesuit and a brother of Lord Chief-Justice Coleridge, of England not only 
vouches for its truth, but tells us that ' the wound was not imaginary, but real, 
and material ; and that the heart of the saint may still be seen in Avila, with an 
opening on each side, the rims of which are half burnt.' ' Credo quia non pos- 
sunf might well be the motto of the Roman Church. ... In the light of 
modern psychological investigations, what are we to think of these statements ? 
We must recollect all the conditions which surrounded our saint ; . .' . and 
then we must take into consideration Theresa's own imaginative mind and dis- 
eased bodily condition ; she was never a robust woman, and her nervous organ- 
ization was supersensitive. With these facts to direct our investigations, we may 
find that Theresa's famous visions appear less mysterious." 

Mrs. Oilman's conclusion seems to be that what is known as 
Christian Mysticism is one thing in fact and essence with the 
" Faith Cure " and the " Christian Science " of the present day. 
St. Teresa, to her mind, " lays herself open to the accusation of 
being called hysterical, if not insane. But among the famous women 
of the world she surely has a right to stand. . . . Of all the 
saints of the Roman calendar, St. Theresa has the most admirers 
among modern writers. . . . The romantic story of her life has 
drawn from George Eliot the exquisite prelude to Middlemarch. " 

We must be pardoned for believing that to writers of Mrs, 
Oilman's sort, and to the average readers of the " Famous 
Women Series," it is the latter fact which has done most to give 
the saint a place in the list. Her name looks odd enough in 
conjunction with those of Georges Sand, George Eliot, Madame 
de Stae'l, and the actress Rachel. But for Middlemarch we sus- 
pect that the saint's latest biographer would still be in the condition 
of that " intelligent friend " from whom she quotes the opening 
sentence of her preface : " ' Was St. Theresa a real character ? 
I always associated her with St. Margaret and the Dragon.' ' 
After studying her with such helps as are afforded by a dozen 
biographies, including that written by herself, she has produced 
a sketch which professes to follow the saint through a life be- 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 553 

.ginning with a passionate, frivolous, flirty girlhood, into whose 
real particulars Mrs. Oilman avows that she has been unable to 
penetrate : 

"What were the particular sins which Theresa reproaches herself for hav- 
ing committed about this time, a careful study of her own writings fails to reveal. 
Was her conscience like the conscience of many a religious devotee supersensi- 
tive ? Or did she at this period of her life commit some real sin for which she 
needed to reproach herself ? . . . It is certain that . . . she had yielded 
to many temptations, though what the nature of these temptations was we shall 
probably never know." 

Poor Mrs. Oilman, whose imagination has been forced to be the 
rsole handmaiden of her curiosity ! She has been trying to read 
the life of a saint and to explain her persistent hold upon 
remembrance, and yet eliminate from it the note of sanctity ! 
"" It is not as a saint in the superstitious meaning of that word 
that Theresa is worthy of being remembered," she tells us. 

" In studying this sixteenth century woman we find love to have been the 
great source of her power over her contemporaries ; she had a perfect genius for 
loving all who came in contact with her ; and there were few who could resist the 
natural outpouring of her impulsive, affectionate nature. In her own passionate 
yearning to be loved we see Theresa touch hands with George Eliot, Margaret 
Fuller, and all the great-hearted women of the world." 

And so on ad libitum, and, we must add, ad nauseam like- 
wise. And yet what a study might have been made of St. 
Teresa ! 

Mr. John Habberton publishes in Lippincott for December a 
novelette entitled All He Knew, to which the conductors of the 
magazine call special attention as likely to prove an antidote 
to Robert Elsmere. Perhaps it may have some salutary in- 
fluence in that way. It is not only interesting and brightly 
written, but it hits the right nail on the head. The question 
of documents is of serious importance, but it is not the only, nor, in 
all points of view, the essential, one in Christianity. The Chris- 
tian documents do not claim to be more than a partial record 
of the words and miracles of Jesus Christ. They are not now, 
and they never were, the court of last appeal when the ques- 
tions of his divine power, the truth of his doctrines, and his 
continual presence in the world come up. That court is to-day 
just where it was in the beginning. It consists in the two-fold 
action of Jesus Christ. That action, embodied visibly in the au- 
thority of the church he established, and invisibly in the soul 
united to him, forms one inseparable synthesis. The Holy Spirit 



554 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Jan., 

in the external authority of Christ's church acts as the infallible in- 
terpreter and criterion of divine revelation. The Holy Spirit, " the 
mind that was in Christ," acts as the divine Life-giver and Sanctifier 
of individual souls. The supposition that there can be any oppo- 
sition or contradiction between the action of Jesus Christ in the 
supreme decisions of the authority of the church and his inspir- 
ations in the individual soul can never enter the mind of an en- 
lightened and sincere Christian. The measure of our love for 
Jesus Christ is the measure of our obedience to his authority in 
the church, and the measure of our obedience to him in his 
church is the measure of our love for him in the interior of the 
soul. It is Christ, then, who is the court, in his duplex and in- 
separable relation to mankind in the outer life of the church and 
the inner life of the soul. " Do you seek a proof of Christ who 
speaketh in me?" writes St. Paul to the Corinthians. Then, 
having thus affirmed the external authority of his apostolic mis- 
sion, he proceeds to its complement in their own souls ; " who 
[Christ] towards you is not weak, but is mighty in you? . . . 
Try your oivnselves if you be in the faith ; prove ye yourselves. 
Know you not your ownselves, that Christ Jesus is in you unless 
ye be reprobates." The visible church developed naturally out of 
this two-fold life of the divine germ. The seed is the Word of 
God, and it needs both a chosen sower and a good soil. 

To return to Mr. Habberton : Abstracting from the divinely 
instituted external order of Christ in the world, Mr. Habberton has 
presented the interior life of the unintelligent believer blamelessly 
lacking sacramental aids. He proves conclusively the great weight 
of evidence there is in favor of the religious verities in the soul 
of any one who honestly undertakes to live out the maxims of 
the Gospel. Such work as his is of invaluable service to reli- 
gion. Nor do we wish to say aught against its circulation and 
use merely on the ground that it is a statement of but one side 
of integral Christianity. So far as it goes it is both charming 
and convincing. 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 555: 

WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 

THE DIVORCE QUESTION. 

BISHOP HENRY C. POTTER, who may be taken as a fair representative of 
the conservative and anti-divorce element in Protestantism, in his article in the 
North American Review for November, explains the attitude of his church on 
divorce as determined (i) by the law of the Episcopal Church ; (2) by the " pub- 
lic opinion of the clergy and laity " of that church. We cannot help complain- 
ing that his treatment of the matter is obscure and hazy ; but as far as we can 
discover from him, the only positive law of the Episcopal Church on the subject 
is the one prohibiting the remarriage of all divorced persons except the 
innocent party in the case of a divorce for adultery. No private judgment as to 
the meaning of the Word of God is allowed against this law, he affirms ; yet he de- 
clares almost in the same breath that the law of the church is "by no means 
identical with the opinion of either the clergy or laity," and as an instance of 
this diversity between a law against which no private interpretation of Scripture 
can hold and the public opinion of some of the clergy and laity, he instances 
the protest of a member of a committee of the General Convention as follows : 
" The undersigned finds himself unable to concur in so much of the [proposed] 
canon as forbids holy communion to a truly pious and godly woman who has 
been compelled by long years of suffering from a drunken and brutal husband 
to obtain a divorce, and has regularly married some suitable person according to 
the established laws of the land." 

A more pitiable exhibition of the weakness of the Protestant Episcopal 
Church and of its utter inability to cope with this monstrous evil of divorce can- 
not be found. What a spectacle is this for a religious body to make through its 
chief American representative ! What a comparison between this and the fol- 
lowing fearless, truthful utterances of Cardinal Gibbons in the same number of 
the magazine mentioned ! " To the question, then, Can divorce from the bond 
of marriage ever be allowed ? the Catholic can only answer, No. And for this 
No his first and last and best reason can be but this : ' Thus saith the Lord.' " 

Now, if it be impossible for the greatest and most orthodox (taken as 
a whole) of the Protestant churches to have a consensus of doctrine and prac- 
tice in regard to marriage, how can it be expected that the state will have right 
laws ? How futile, then, is it for Protestants to object to divorce laws. What 
opposition does the Episcopal Church practically make to them ? Bishop Potter 
says that divorce is rare among the members of this church. We should like 
to think so, but it is hard to believe that a law such as he describes that of his 
own church to be prevails in practice. How can those who think the law is op- 
posed to the liberty of the Gospel enforce it ? Would it not be wrong for them 
to do so ? 

I have no means of judging what proportion of adulterous marriages are per- 
formed by the clergy of the different Protestant churches or by magistrates who 
are members of these churches, but such marriages are actually often performed 
and without difficulty, and mostly by clergymen, and we fear some of the Episco- 
pal ministers are not above suspicion in this respect. Now, the churches could if 
they would make divorce laws practically a dead letter. If Protestant ministers, 
and magistrates who are members of their churches, would refuse to solemnize 
marriages of divorced persons, the evil of divorce would soon almost disappear ; 



556 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Jan., 

but we know that they do not thus act, and even some of those who speak most 
emphatically against divorce laws do not hesitate to perform the ceremony of 
marriage for divorced persons. Hence they are in reality extending the evil 
which they affect to lament. 

But it must not be supposed that Bishop Potter, though a staunch church- 
man and a strictly rubrical ecclesiastic, represents the best opinion among Pro- 
testants on this question. Mr. Gladstone, England's grandest statesman, and a lay- 
man of the Established Church from personal conviction, and withal a man of 
.the widest experience in the public life of his country, defends the position of the 
Catholic Church in regard to the indissolubility of the marriage bond. He says 
in his article in the December number of the North American : " Marriage is 
essentially a contract for life and only expires when life expires." " Christian 
marriage involves a vow before God." " No authority has been given to the 
Christian Church to cancel such avow." The American Episcopal legislation 
on this question he repudiates. In answer to the objection that adultery breaks 
the marriage-bond and gives the innocent party the right to remarry, he says : 
" This is a distinction unknown to Scripture and to history," and, furthermore, 
shows its unreasonableness from the incongruity of not granting divorce where 
both parties are guilty of adultery, and from the injustice which would result if the 
innocent party, though more guilty than the other, were allowed to remarry and 
the latter not. What noble words ! Whose influence is most potent for purity, 
that of the great layman, a champion of human rights, who upholds before the 
erring world the divine law of marriage in all its purity, or that of the bishop 
who cannot give the public a definite yes or no to this great question ? I 
would call attention to the following words of this representative ecclesiastic : 
" The question may be asked whether the absolute prohibition of divorce would 
contribute to the moral purity of society? It is difficult to answer such a ques- 
tion. . . . It is quite certain that the prohibition of divorce never prevents 
illicit sexual connections." 

Now, what says Mr. Gladstone? "The remedy [of divorce] is worse than 
the disease which it aims to cure. It marks degeneracy and the sway of pas- 
sion. . . . Unquestionably, since the time [of the English Divorce Act of 
1857] the standard of conjugal morality has perceptibly declined among the 
higher classes of this country and scandals in respect to it have become more 
frequent." Mr. Edward J. Phelps is another Protestant, who has written a power- 
ful article in the Forum for December last, in which he takes precisely the same 
ground on marriage as the Catholic Church. He says the evil of divorce "must 
be plucked up by the roots. There is no middle ground. . . . The advo- 
cates of the theory of divorce a vinculo for adultery alone base their views on 
what is claimed to be the precept of Christ as given in St. Matthew's gospel. 
* Whosoever shall put away his wife, save for fornication, and shall 
marry another shall be guilty of adultery.' But in the gospels of St. Mark and 
St. Luke the words here italicized are omitted, and the language as there given 
is a distinct condemnation of the putting away a wife for any cause whatever 
and marrying another. " 

It is one of the brightest signs of the times that a non-Catholic dares to thus 
publicly advocate the indissolubility of the marriage tie, and we trust that the 
day is not far distant when a reaction against divorce will set in strong enough to 
remove the foul blot of legalized polygamy from our nation. But the work must 
commence with the churches. Christian ministers must stop mocking the holy 
institution of wedlock by sacrilegious rites ; they must do what every Catholic- 
priest does, refuse to marry those who are divorced. 




1 890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 557 

THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS OF BOOKS, ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WEST FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY. 

The representative of the Columbian Reading Union met with a most cordial 
reception at the Catholic Congress, held in Baltimore November 1 1 and 12. 
He found delegates from remote places as well as from the large cities of the 
United States who had already formed decided opinions as to the beneficial re- 
sults to be expected from the general diffusion of good literature through the 
co-operation of a chain of Catholic Reading Circles extending across the conti- 
nent from the Atlantic to the Pacific. The decisions of the Congress itself were 
expressed officially in the report of the committee on resolutions. We are in- 
debted to this committee in a special manner for the prominent recognition given 
to questions which have been discussed at considerable length in the pages of 
THE CATHOLIC WORLD. For the members of our Reading Union it will be es- 
pecially gratifying to know that the first Catholic Congress of America made a 
strong declaration in support of the work to which they have devoted so much 
time and attention, not to mention their expenditure of money. It urged upon 
all the duty of supporting liberally the good Catholic journals and periodicals 
engaged in promoting the intellectual defence of the church, and directed atten- 
tion to the necessity of having a clear knowledge of the books which correctly in- 
terpret Catholic doctrine and opinion on the important questions constantly 
coming to the front. Substantial encouragement given to Catholic authors of 
the better type was specified as a powerful incentive to bring our literature to the 
desired standard of excellence. By extending the sale of the best Catholic books 
now in existence, the way will be prepared for more to be written. The practical 
suggestions on this subject, endorsed by the Congress, contain these significant 
words : 

" We recommend, therefore, the work of Catholic circulating libraries and 
Reading Circles, and also efforts to have the best Catholic books and periodicals 
introduced 'vnio public libraries." 

This positive sanction of the movement which led to the formation of the 
Columbian Reading Union should produce some visible results by stimulating 
those in charge of Reading Circles to greater activity. Naturally, we shall look to 
the delegates of the Catholic Congress for practical manifestations of zeal in for- 
warding the interests of libraries and Reading Circles in the vicinity of their own 

homes. 


* * 

For the sake of our young people we have been gathering hints and sugges- 
tions relating to mental improvement by means of literature. Without compe- 
tent guidance there is danger of wandering into barren fields, seeking for 
intellectual treasures where none can be found. We gladly publish a communi- 
cation bearing on this matter from one who holds a prominent rank as a powerful 
writer, and is a welcome contributor to THE CATHOLIC WORLD. 

"The Columbian Reading Union invites me to send an assurance of personal 
co-operation in its work. I know none more practical than one which circum- 
stances combine to make timely a suggestion concerning the use of indexes in 
pursuing a course of reading or in getting directly at the pith of a topic. Many 
young readers, animated with an earnest wish to find authentic information, 
especially upon questions involving historical, scientific, or moral doubt, are 
appalled by the catalogue of a great library. They do not know the intrinsic 
worth of many of the books mentioned under the head which represents the 
subject they are searching. They do not know how to select among authors 

YOL. L. 36 



558 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Jan., 

who have written upon it, leaving out of consideration the unimportant and 
concentrating attention upon the thorough and the accurate. Happily, there is 
now a mode of approach shorter, more convenient, and perfectly reliable. The 
periodical literature which has come into existence so plenteously in fifty years 
represents the advance of the world. Whether in science, in the fine arts, in 
fiction, in open historical matters (and there are few historical matters that are 
closed), in commentary upon exploration and experiment, in discussion of social 
and moral issues, the periodicals now precede the books. It is the aim of the 
editor of every first-class periodical to anticipate the public want on every 
popular or material inquiry; and the pens of the foremost thinkers in every 
division of intellectual labor are constantly at work for the monthlies and the 
serious weeklies as well as for the quarterlies. No periodical is a substitute for 
a good book. No literature can be produced in our time which will warrant 
reading to the exclusion of monumental literary works upon which the approval 
of mankind has been stamped. Young readers who begin books of traditional 
fame and feel compelled to lay them aside unfinished will later learn that the 
defect was in their immaturity, not in the judgment of the human race. But in 
the periodicals the young reader has this advantage ; the article deals, as a rule, 
with only a distinct and rounded aspect of a question ; and it is only by taking 
subjects apart in this manner, getting the analysis first of the parts, that judgment 
is able to combine the aspects afterward and make the synthesis. 

"Before the publication of Pool&slnde.r of Periodical Literature \t\vzs difficult 
to use the past volumes of the magazines thus to promote culture. Dr. Poole has 
included in its pages, in addition to the noteworthy secular periodicals, The Ameri- 
can Catholic Quarterly Review, THE CATHOLIC WORLD, The Dublin Review -, The 
Month (London), The Irish Monthly (Dublin). There is no subject of real 
importance, vital in our time, which will not be found ably and authentically 
discussed in the . pages of these publications. The Index is both nominal and 
topical ; if you want to read upon Galileo, you turn to the great student's name 
in the Index. Following it, incidents in his career or the proof bearing upon the 
dispute attaching to it, or the sources whence one can approach judicial consid- 
eration of the evidence, are all to be had, clearly indicated, with the name of the 
periodical and writer, volume and page. No Catholic family of cultivation is 
without the Catholic Quarterly Review and CATHOLIC WORLD. They are also, 
it must be assumed, in every Catholic general library. They are in every public 
library where other series of periodicals are kept. Poole's Index is also in every 
library, or ought to be. It is necessarily a bulky volume, not portable. THE 
CATHOLIC WORLD announces that it will shortly publish an index to its own 
pages at a nominal price. This will be portable. When, therefore, a student 
goes to a general library to consult its volumes, he can speed his labor by taking 
his index with him. I do not think there is yet a separate index for the Catholic 
Quarterly Review; perhaps there will be. Poole's will serve. No inquirer after 
sound foundations upon any topic need plead difficulty in getting them when 
Poole's Index and its companion make the task so easy. The estimate in which 
these two publications are held by the most competent, and ought to be held by 
all who read for profit as well as entertainment, is on record by the hands of 
distinguished non-Catholics. The quarterly deals more with erudite and recon- 
dite matters than the monthly. Of the refinement and acumen of the literary 
spirit of the latter, it is pleasant to cite a remarkable witness, whose words have 
come under my eye this week. William Michael Rossetti has just given out a 
volume on his brother, Dante Gabriel Rossetti. The latter, whose reputation is 
certain to gain with every generation, had a severe struggle in the beginning for 
fame for even a good name. When nearly twenty years ago he published his 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 559 

Poems they encountered unjust censure by dull reviewers. A few great critics 
perceived their beauty and truth, and stood manfully by him against a host of 
assailants. William Rossetti says that no review impressed him more than that 
by an unnamed writer THE CATHOLIC WORLD did not print writers' names 
then in THE CATHOLIC WORLD. ' He thought that its writer had shown 
remarkable power of penetrating into the essential and not wholly self-avowed per- 
sonality of the author.' The bound volumes of the two leading Catholic period- 
icals ought to be procured for every library which does not contain them. They 
constitute in themselves a library of reference, sound, well written, and by 
judicious editorship made continually available for meeting every new question 
and elucidating every old one. MARGARET F. SULLIVAN." 

It is hardly necessary to urge upon the attention of Catholic colleges and 
academies the utility of making Poole's Index available for their senior students. 
The modern Alma Mater must take cognizance of nineteenth century literature, 
and its monumental works of fiction which exert an influence over minds that no 
educational institution, however venerable and excellent in other respects, can 
entirely ignore. From reliable information, it may be mentioned with regret that 
there is one academy conducted on an antique model, which cannot be changed 
by any words here printed, because THE CATHOLIC WORLD is not allowed to 
circulate among its scholars lest they might read the stories. This same policy 
excludes all fiction. It is an alarming symptom of decrepitude. 

* 
* * 

The writer of the following letter can henceforth quote the Catholic Congress 
in defending the claims of her sex. She may silence objections to her plans of 
self-improvement by these words : 

" It is our duty to acquaint ourselves with Catholic doctrine and opinion on 
the important questions, demanding right answers and just, practical solutions." 

" The avidity with which Catholic women are taking hold of the advan- 
tages offered them through the Columbian Reading Union shows that there 
are some in our midst who are keenly alive to a long-felt want ; namely, an op- 
portunity to pursue some method of self-improvement under the proper guidance 
and encouragement. While considerable has been done for men by means of 
societies with libraries of more or less magnitude to encourage reading, but 
little has been done to induce women to take any steps toward intellectual ad- 
vancement. The reason of this seems to be a popular fallacy that women should 
be discouraged from making any attempt at intellectual growth. For a reason- 
able basis on which to defend such a conclusion I have long sought in vain. 
Gladstone says: ' A woman is most perfect when most womanly.' We find 
that womanliness needs also strength of character, and strength of character is 
adorned by intelligence. Yet we cannot mingle to any extent in social circles to- 
day without encountering evidence of this popular prejudice, and what seems 
most surprising is the fact that it is often advanced by men of seeming intelli- 
gence. I remember an incident which came, within my own notice not long 
since. A young lady of my acquaintance, who was accustomed to meet a great 
many Protestants, took a keen interest in investigating the charges made against 
the church in order that she might answer them intelligently. Among the sub- 
jects to which she had given thought and attention was that of the disputed 
ground between science and revealed religion. Meeting one evening at a social 
gathering some one whom she thought could aid her investigation, she pro- 
ceeded to discuss the subject of all-engrossing interest to her just then. A gentle- 
man who was present took it upon himself to inform her afterwards, with evident 
solicitude, that she was spoiling her chances for matrimony by such conversa- 
tions. Are we to conclude from this that a premium, in the form of a husband, 



560 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Jan., 

is offered for a woman's ignorance? If so, is it surprising that society to-day is 
composed largely of feather-brained women, whose conversational powers are 
confined to the prevailing fashion or the latest piece of gossip ? There are, how- 
ever, a few brave spirits who do not think that the title of Mrs. is the only thing 
that life has worth living for, and these are willing to face the social opprobrium 
that serious conversation entails, believing that an intelligent defence of the 
church and her doctrines is something that they ought to guard as jealously as 
their own good name. 

" We have all heard the objection that the church fosters and encourages ig- 
norance for her own sinister designs. Protestants seek to draw this inference 
when they attribute to the church the apathy which prevails among some of its 
members. Certainly we must admire the untiring energy and indefatigable zeal 
which many of their number manifest in everything that tends to intellectual 
advancement. In the words of Longfellow, * Let us, then, be up and doing,' and 
since the Columbian Reading Union has decided to place within our reach well- 
arranged lists, there is no longer any excuse for women to remain in ignorance 
of Catholic literature. Make the Reading Circle the fashion, and it will be sure to 
become popular, and we may then hope, at no distant day, to find our women 
substituting intelligent conversation for much that is at present far from edifying. 
If it becomes an established rule for women to talk sense instead of nonsense, 
men will no longer attempt to ridicule the change for the better. 

"ANNAM. MITCHELL." 
* 

* * 

" I cannot understand how any one who has a desire to witness the spread 
of Catholic literature could hesitate for a moment to approve of what seems to 
me a most efficient means of promoting a noble end. That there is a need of 
some way of directing the Catholic reading public cannot be doubted. Publish- 
ers whose efforts are devoted to a more secular end have employed this means 
of reaching the people with telling results, and there is to me no reason for 
supposing that a more elevated aim should not meet with equal success. 

"I will consider it not merely a pleasure, but rather a duty, to exert myself 
in behalf of the Union, and will be happy to become a member. 

"Detroit, Mich. T. M. O'BRIEN." 

* 

* * 

''No person of ordinary intelligence will fail to admit the necessity for such 
an undertaking as the work of the Columbian Reading Union. When one 
thinks of the vast stream of corrupting literature poured forth one cannot 
but wish there were some wholesome repressive influence interposed to save 
our youth from this moral malaria. It is, indeed, true that 'some books are 
to be tasted, others to be swallowed, and some few to be digested.' The ex- 
tent of the ruin caused among the young by the reading of pernicious literature 
cannot be estimated. It spreads its baleful influence in silence and secrecy, and 
thousands succumb to the vices fostered by a corrupt imagination. It is 
impossible, however, to ignore* good fiction as a powerful factor in modern 
life. It has, in fact, been very influential in all ages of the world. E. M." 

* 

* * 

To those who reflect upon the subject, or have it forced on their attention by 
daily observation, the need of guidance for young readers is very apparent. We 
wish that the friends of our movement would imitate Mrs. Leahy, whose letter 
we publish, in making a personal visit to some of the public libraries where 
juvenile literature is distributed indiscriminately. We would like to get reliable 
information as to the quality of the books given to the young in the numerous 
circulating libraries of New York. 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 561 

"Anyone who has ever had to train children can tell what patience and 
energy are required to aid and improve them in even the ordinary elementary 
studies. When this work is done day after day the result is, in many cases, 
attained only imperfectly. How, then, can we expect those very minds to under- 
stand religious and moral truths without a similar course of instruction? The 
education of children, especially from five to fifteen years of age, is not what it 
should be when there is a total absence of religious training. 

"A glance into any of our public libraries will show that many young folks 
desire to utilize their leisure hours. Unless the attraction were strong grown 
boys and girls would not voluntarily flock to these places. Do they ask for 
Catholic literature? A Catholic book is generally hard to find in such libraries, 
even when it is wanted. I have often looked over the books and papers in use 
among juvenile readers and the result has not impressed me favorably. 

" Public libraries are for the benefit of the public, but the good that our 
young Catholics derive from them is attended by many dangers to their pliable 
minds. A short time ago I read the catalogue in a public library and saw only 
a few well-known Catholic names in comparison with the writers of other denomi- 
nations. I asked two of the ladies in charge which Catholic books they had there. 
The reply given was that there were very few and unknown to them. It has 
become a crying necessity to establish a plan by which good reading can be 
placed under the eyes of children in libraries and in our homes. We need books 
pleasing, attractive, and useful. Plenty of this literature can be found for all 
ages and classes if enlightened Catholics would wake up to the desperate neces- 
sity there is for such work being done. Could we realize or measure the good 
that would be accomplished in five, ten, or fifteen years none of us would hesi- 
tate. We are capable of doing much more in this particular work than has been 
done. By earnest and persevering action on our part public libraries will in time 
recognize our demands, and prepare sections or shelves devoted to Catholic 
writings. We shall be respected by others not of our faith for our efforts to ex- 
tend an enlightening, refining influence, by aiding ourselves and others in a work 
that has been much neglected. JOSIE WILKINSON LEAHY." 

"Dorchester, Mass. ^% 

" Allow me to say that in my opinion the Columbian Reading Union is just 
what has long been needed by parents who daily perceive on the part of their 
children a growing and ever-increasing desire for reading-matter. Left to choose 
at random, the young reader will plunge into nonsensical and trashy books, while 
the parent is unable or too busy to look up something for an antidote until the 
mind of the young person is contaminated. The Union proposes to share with 
such parents the responsible duty of selecting readily and without loss of time to 
the parent the proper reading matter to place before children. Books should 
pleasantly entertain, at the same time most surely instruct, the young reader and 
assist in forming character. Then to all library associations, whether of young 
men or women, membership in the Union will prove an invaluable aid in se- 
lecting the best books to be placed upon their shelves and before their readers. 
Plant good seed if you would reap a good harvest. I hope that the Union may 
meet with the success it merits, and that a love for the reading of Catholic liter- 
ature may be widely disseminated. L. HENELY." 
" Chicago, III. *% 

" In trying to satisfy various tastes I have found it necessary to get books of 
every description, devotional and spiritual, lives of the saints, histories, tales, and 
novels. By having a good selection of stories by Catholic authors, a number have 
been diverted from the public library, where they choose their books in many 
cases by their titles or depend upon what the librarian may give them. I often 



562 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Jan., 

find myself wishing that I could supply boys and girls of twelve and upwards 
with attractive reading of which there is so much that is non-Catholic. If while 
preparing for first Communion and Confirmation they had for home-reading the 
books which are written on those subjects for the young, with many such stories 
as are written by Maurice F. Egan and E. L. Dorsey, full of life and American 
or Irish-American life, it seems to me it would do a vast deal of good. I have 
been asked by several young ladies for books which their brothers would find in- 
teresting ; but are there any historical or biographical books for the young to 
take the place of Dickens' Child's History of England, and Abbott's and Miss 
Yonge's histories, etc. ? 

" At the Sunday-school it was suggested lately that the teachers of certain 
boys' classes might unite to purchase a few good books to be passed around, but 
it remains only a suggestion. I believe that whenever there is some one to begin 
a library or Reading Circle and afterwards continue the labor for its success there 
will be many glad to avail themselves of such privileges. To furnish books for 
the poor and for prisoners in particular seems to me worthy of more attention. 
The latter class have so much time for thought that what they read will make 
more lasting impression than in other circumstances, and they will readily accept 
anything offered them if at all readable. * * * " 

* 
* * 

The first list of stories for children is now published by the Columbian 
Reading Union. It was prepared under the auspices of the Ozanam Reading 
Circle of New York City, and contains about four of the best books from the 
catalogue of every Catholic publisher whose name and address could be obtained. 
Any omissions will be supplied in the next list of the same series if notice is sent 
to the office of the Columbian Reading Union. The plan is to preserve impar- 
tial relations with all the publishers. 

Copies of the list of children's books will be mailed free to all those who have 
paid one dollar and are entitled to membership in the Columbian Reading 
Union. Others may obtain the list by sending ten cents in postage. 

M. C. M. 



FRENCH SCULPTURES AND PAINTINGS AT THE AMERICAN ART GALLERIES. 

The works of Antoine-Louis Barye, and of certain distinguished French 
painters, now on exhibition at these galleries are eminently worthy of careful and 
repeated study. Indeed they require it ; no single visit would enable even a 
trained observer to adjust his capacity to the demand made upon it. It is like 
hearing too much orchestral music at one time ; the ear grows dull and no longer 
distinguishes separate delights in what has become a great though not altogether 
disagreeable noise. Two or three fine pictures, such as Corot's " St. Sebastian"; 
T*royon's fine, silvery " Cattle Drinking," or his " Drove of Cattle and Sheep"; 
Rousseau's admirable " Forest of Fontainebleau," Daubigny's " Village au 
Bord de 1'Oise," Millet's " Sower," " Turkey-Keeper," his two peasants planting 
potatoes, in a canvas whose title we forget, or his famous " Angelus," are more 
than enough to fill the eye for one day. The latter picture it seems to be the 
latest critical fashion to belittle somewhat in comparison with other paintings by 
the same artist. The specimens of his work hung on these walls show an aston- 
ishing evenness of achievement. They are all interesting, although they are not 
all beautiful. But to our thinking " The Angelus" deserves the precedence it 
has certainly taken among them. The engravings from it have made the grace- 
ful lines of the two figures familiar to every one, but the lovely color and atmos- 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 563 

phere of the painting itself take one by surprise. It is what one expected, but it 
is so much more ! 

The Baryes are some of them very wonderful. The man who made them, 
one would say, must have had a fellow-feeling with the great beasts whom he has 
petrified in the very moment of their most characteristic actions. "Nature red 
in tooth and claw with ravin," bestial nature, rising to dignity only in the terrible 
warfare whereby it perpetuates its life, hooks at you on every side of the over- 
crowded space devoted to this artist. The works are of all sizes, from the colossal 
"Lion and Serpent" to that of paper-weights less than two inches square. 
Great or small, they all give the same impression of a very sympathetic power in 
the hand that modelled them. The man and the beast have been fused, and 
the expression is dual. Look at the immense fore-paw of the lion in the plaster 
just referred to the arm and hand, one would say, of some Titanic blacksmith; 
or at the lines in the bronze " Panther Seizing a Stag," where the first impres- 
sion is half-human. What pleased us best, on the whole, in the collection were 
the four bronzes placed on pedestals just in front of the portrait of Barye the 
"Elk Hunt," the "Bear Hunt," the "Bull Hunt," and the "Tiger Hunt." 
The ensemble in these seems perfect ; the grouping and massing of figures, the 
intensity of expression, the truth of action. The wounded elephant in the last- 
named of these groups has something grotesquely childish in its helpless fallen 
under lip, its stiffened trunk and tail, its relaxed limbs. One feels both pity and 
a trifle of contempt, as for some great booby blubbering over the inevitable. 



" Editor of THE CATHOLIC WORLD : 

' ' DEAR SIR : Your article in the current number, entitled ' A Plea for Erring 
Brethren,' brings forcibly to my mind a sermon preached by the late Most Rev. 
J. B. Purcell at the laying of the corner-stone of the Church of the Blessed 
Sacrament in our city many years ago. The saintly archbishop was reviewing 
the history of the church in Cincinnati, a retrospect of nearly fifty years, and in 
the most touching way mentioned the names of some of his old-time friends 
non-Catholics whose genuine Christian lives he referred to in these words : 
" They thought they were good Methodists, good Baptists, good Presbyterians, 
but they were all good Catholics, although they did not know it, for it is impos- 
sible to escape the atmosphere of the true church; it reaches from earth to 
heaven." In the same spirit I have read somewhere of late the tender words of 
Dr. Manning, in which he says that the good and pious Anglicans of all the 
dreary years since the Reformation, he trusts in God's mercy, have found their 
way to heaven. I thank THE WORLD for many, many spiritual comforts brought 
home to my mind in the doctrine of persuasion and love so beautifully taught for 
all those years. Fifty years ago I heard for the first time from the lips of Dr. 
Cantwcll, of Meath, who confirmed me, the loving side of our divine faith. I 
have not so often heard a repetition of it that my appreciation of the ethereal 
music of to-day loses a particle of its refreshing influence. 

" Your servant, 
"Cincinnati, O., November 20, 1889. JOSEPH P. CARBERY." 



NOTICE. The Life of Father Hecker, the first chapters of which were an- 
nounced for this issue, will begin in the April number. The April number has 
been chosen because it will mark the silver jubilee of THE CATHOLIC WORLD, 
whose establishment was one of Father Hecker's most notable works, and whose 
success was ever the object of his most earnest endeavor. 



5 64 NE w PUBLICA TIONS. [Jan., 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE. By James Cardinal Gibbons, Archbishop of Balti- 
more. Baltimore : John Murphy & Co. 

It is a fortunate thing sometimes that the majority of average readers are led 
to examine a book more by the sight of a distinguished name upon its title-page 
than by any interest in its contents. This is especially the case with regard to 
the volume before us, because a host of people will buy it, and read it, and profit 
by it, who otherwise would probably never see it at all; the very class of readers, 
in fact, who are likely to be most benefited by its perusal i.e., unbelievers, in- 
differentists, nothingarians will no doubt first open its pages to see what a car- 
dinal has to say. This, we repeat, is a fortunate thing ; for when a book is so 
excellent in itself, so reasonable, so persuasive, so logical, so convincing as this 
one, it deserves the largest circulation a book can have ; and if the exalted rank 
of the author helps to disseminate the good seed of his words, it is a matter for 
hearty congratulation. 

Our Christian Heritage is perhaps the most helpful work that has appeared 
in recent years. In the small space of five hundred pages are condensed, with 
singular clearness of method and conciseness of language, answers to some of the 
most profoundly important questions which can occupy the human mind the 
''whence," the " why," the " whither," which the restless intellect of mankind 
never tires of asking. Such topics as the Existence of God, His Attributes, the 
Origin and Destiny of Man, the Immortality of the Soul, the Freedom of the 
Will, the Divinity of Christ, the Claims of Christianity, are here treated in a 
way which must go far towards convincing a fair-minded reader, and which in 
any case cannot fail to deeply impress a prejudiced one. 

If this book has one characteristic more strongly defined than another, it is 
what we may call its " sweet reasonableness." It is not dogmatic ; it is not dicta- 
torial ; it is not abusive ; it is not " polemical " in any sense. It is a frank, hon- 
est, straightforward presentation by the author of the reasons for the hope that 
is in him, together with an affectionate urging of those reasons upon others. 
Throughout the volume we recognize the same gentle courtesy, the same strong 
yet simple diction, the same fervent piety, which distinguished that earlier work 
of the cardinal, written while Bishop of Richmond, The Faith of Our Fathers. 

We regret that the late reception of our copy of Our Christian Heritage 
makes a longer notice impossible in this issue. We shall give a more extended 
review of the book in a future number. 

SACRED HEART HYMNS. A choice collection of bright and melodious hymns 
to the Sacred Heart. Compiled and edited by F. Canter. Baltimore: George 
Willig & Co. 

With a very few changes in the words of these sentimental ballads, and with 
no change whatever in the music, these " Hymns" would be very suitable for 
the use of lovers with guitars as moonlight serenades, or to swell the repertory 
of the "minstrel" troupes whose usual "solo" and "chorus" the majority of 
them very much resemble. If the devotion of the Sacred Heart, which has done 
so much for religion, has been wrongly esteemed by many as chiefly appealing 
to sensuous women and effeminate men, we think the blame is to be justly 
ascribed to much of its popular artistic expression in painting, sculpture, and 
especially in such sensuous and effeminate language and melody as this volume 
contains. 



1 890. ] NE w PUB LIC A TIONS. 565 

PASTORAL LETTER OF RIGHT REV. O. ZARDETTI, D.D., Bishop of St. Cloud, 
Minn. Issued on the day of his Episcopal Consecration, October 20, 1889. 
Sioux Falls, S. D. : Brown & Saenger. 

Dr. Zardetti was long and favorably known in the Northwest as a learned 
theologian and as a zealous and enterprising priest before his elevation to the 
episcopate. By birth he is of that Teutonic race which has given the church in 
America so large a number of her prelates. He has fully assimilated the spirit 
of his adopted country, as the pages of this learned and devout pastoral eloquent- 
ly bear witness. He believes in the providential mission of the United States, 
and he well knows how it finds its counterpart in the spiritual life. His little 
treatise on devotion to the Holy Spirit is one of the most valuable contributions 
yet made to the religious literature of this country. We sincerely trust that the 
missionary labors of a pioneer bishop will not hinder his contributing more and 
more to the spiritual life of our people by theological and devotional writings. 
A simple statement of the truth from the lips or pen of a bishop carries great 
weight, for it is from a divinely authorized exponent ; how much rather shall a 
learned bishop get a hearing, especially one who is filled with the consciousness 
of the extraordinary designs of God with our generation! 

BABYLAND. By the editors of Wide Awake. Boston : D. Lothrop Co. 

We examined this volume of Baby land for 1889 from cover to cover, and 
found each page filled with beautiful pictures and interesting reading matter. 
For little children just learning to read it will be a most acceptable present. The 
numerous illustrations portray many amusing incidents of baby life. 

PERCY WYNN ; OR, MAKING A BOY OF HIM. By Neenah, author of Tom 
Playfair, etc. Napoleon, Ohio : A. J. Schiml, Catholic Companion Print. 

It is refreshing to find a new book for Catholic boys, neatly printed, with 
gilt edges and excellent binding. Percy Wynn is depicted as an active boy, fond 
of fishing, foot-ball, and other out-door sports. The author has succeeded admii- 
ably in sustaining the interest of the narrative, using a clear, vigorous style, and 
introducing many of the strong phrases invented by college boys. 

We hope that Neenah will find it profitable to write more stories of this 
kind, based on the actual realities of school-life in America. There are many 
fine characters in our Catholic schools to furnish ideals for fiction. The Catholic 
boy of the United States has decided characteristics which compare favorably 
with the highest types known in the Catholic countries of Europe. His photo- 
graph should be accurately reproduced in our native literature, which will be 
bought eagerly as soon as it is produced. We have been waiting and watching 
for some enterprising Catholic publisher to offer inducements to competent 
writers in this neglected department of heal thy juvenile fiction. 

ACCOMPAGNEMENT DU NOUVEAU MANUEL DE CHANTS LlTURGIQUES (de M. 
1'Abbe Bourduas), Messes, Proses, Cantiques, Psaumes, Hynmes et Motets 
des Dimanches et des fetes de 1'annee, harmonises pour 1'orgue d'apres la 
tonalite Gregorienne, par R. Octave Pelletier, Organiste du Cathedral de 
Montreal. Montreal : Eusebe Senecal et Fils. 

We have to congratulate church organists, and such other students of music 
as wish to know something about the legitimate harmonic treatment of Gregorian 
chant, upon the appearance of this scholarly production. So far as the matter of 
the work goes, it offers us an accompaniment to the selections from the Gradual 
and Antiphonarium (Edition of Montreal) contained in the excellent little con- 
gregational manual edited by M. 1'Abbe Bourduas indicated in the title, and which 
we commended to our readers in a former notice. 



5 66 NE w PUB Lie A TIONS. [ ] an . , 

Various harmonizations of chant have come under our notice, of which some 
ignore both its tonality and rhythm, such as the Repertoire de rOrganiste 
by J. B. Labelle, and the like erroneous attempts at chant harmony commonly 
found in our American church-music books, giving us as a result neither true 
chant nor good music. Other competent musicians, such as Niedermeyer, in his 
Accompagnement pour VOrgue, and M. Lagace, of Quebec, in his Chants de 
TEglise, although respecting the tonality and modality, have followed the system 
of equal notation, which has resulted in accentuating the worst feature of that 
system, by destroying not only all rhythmic movement and expression, but so 
veiling the tonal harmony 'of the chant melody as to practically render it unintel- 
ligible. 

M. Niedermeyer and others of his school, learned though they are, seem 
to have forgotten that the chant is not a mere aggregation of unrelated tones, but 
that it is a true melody, of varied modal construction and thematic form ; each 
mode possessing, audits formulas expressing, different aesthetic characteristics and 
endued with its own spiritual power to affect the morale both of singer and listener ; 
just as modern musical melodies are composed in either the major or the minor 
modes, and distinguished for their martial, amorous, saltatory, humorous, or 
mournful spirit. 

The attention of all students of chant has of late years been specially directed 
to the question of rhythm by the profound researches and writings of eminent 
musicologues such as the R. P. Dom Pothier and R. P. Dom Sauter, of the Benedic- 
tine Order, and the Abbe Raillard. To ignore the rhythm of chant is to deprive 
it of all soul and life, and render it quite as unmeaning as any modern song 
would be if all the notes were made of equal length and its measure and accents 
were suppressed. 

The system of harmonization of chant referred to, written in this lifeless form, 
devoid of all passing notes and other devices requisite to insure a flowing rendi- 
tion of the melody, such as the eminent musicians we allude to have given us, is 
therefore one which gives us indeed a succession of chords, but utterly fails to 
produce what chant is, and what its name implies, viz., Song. 

The celebrated and lamented Lemmens, who abandoned his brilliant career 
as a public musical artist to devote the remainder of his life to the study and 
teaching of chant, while being impressed with the necessity of preserving the 
tonality and of fully recognizing the element of rhythm as indispensable to the 
true intelligence of chant, yet believed that in the accompaniment of it the ele- 
ment of measure, at least to distinguish the relative value of notes, might be, and 
if we understand his theory, should be, introduced together with the employment 
of passing notes and intervening chord resolutions. 

We acknowledge that the general effect of such a treatment is not without 
certain attractive features. Yet we hold that to restrict the free, inspired move- 
ment of chant to the regular alternations of strong and weak accents, forced by 
measured divisions of the melody, is to rob it of its unique and most sublime 
character. 

The author of the work before us has, we think, chosen a happy medium in 
the style of notation adopted, which, though necessarily imperfect, as we have 
before said in noticing chant translations into modern notes, is on the whole 
about the best we have seen. The rhythm is thus tolerably well indicated, es- 
pecially for organists who already know something of it. M. Pelletier had no 
easy task before him in preserving the tonality and avoiding confusion of the dif- 
ferent modes without the use of modulation, and yet obtain an agreeable move- 
ment of the different parts of the accompanying harmony, but it is very gratifying 
to observe that, on the whole, he has accomplished these aims in a highly satis- 
factory manner. 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 567 

Whilst 'adhering to those true principles requiring the employment of har- 
mony strictly consonant for the melody, he has made most happy and effective 
use of passing notes, suspensions, and anticipations, by which means he has suc- 
ceeded in bringing out the rhythm into more intelligible relief, the lack of which 
devices are so regrettably felt in the works of Niedermeyer and his eminent dis- 
ciples. There are a few exceptions which we think deserve to be taken and no- 
ticed. 

The formulas for the psalm chants are not sufficiently elaborated to suit the 
needs of the ordinary organist. The third termination of the fourth mode is er- 
roneously given, following, as the writer has done, the evident misprint as given 
in the table of these chants in the antiphonarium. The phrasing of the Kyrie 
in the Missa de Angelis has thrown some of the accents upon wrong notes. 
We think it an error to attribute the Lauda Sion and Veni, Creator Spiritus to 
the 1 3th and i4th modes. These chants are unquestionably in the 8th 
mode ; for the dominant throughout is Do, and the final, Sol. He has been 
misled by a wish to avoid the apparent triton in the true formula for the conclu- 
sions. It is only apparent, for the Si is not an essential and accented tone but 
only one of those passing notes used in chant, like the nota liquescens. More- 
over, the dominant of the I4th mode is Mi. We cannot find that tone dominant 
in any part of the Lauda Sion. We are also a little surprised at the harmony 
of the Creator alme siderum. We do not find the dominant treated as a La in 
the harmony given. Hearing it as written, we would pronounce the hymn to be 
in the I3th mode, whose scale being identical with that, of our modern major 
mode, has given rise to the vulgar modern harmony commonly adopted by organ- 
ists in rendering that hymn. Accompanied with proper modal harmony, and 
the melody being taken at a much lower pitch, we obtain quite another and more 
appropriate expression of this solemn, yearning chant of the Advent season. 

If there should be, as we sincerely hope there may be, a demand for this 
volume and for the manual of M. 1'Abbe Bourduas in the United States, a 
brochure containing at least the Prefaces of both translated into English should 
be prepared and furnished by the publishers. 

With this volume before the organist and its harmonies well studied and 
thoroughly practised so as to insure a free, flowing rendition of the chant 
phrases, and the little corresponding manual of M. 1'Abbe Bourduas in the hands 
of the people, pastors who are desirous of introducing congregational singing of 
the church's own holy, edifying, and inspiring Song of Praise and Prayer may 
have some reasonable hope of realizing that " consummation" of the church- 
music question so " devoutly to be wished." 

SELECTIONS FROM THE SERMONS OF PADRE AGOSTINO DA MONTEFELTRO. 
Preached at the Church of San Carlo al Corso, Rome, Lent, 1889. Trans- 
lated by Catherine Mary Phillimore. Second Series. New York: James 
Pott & Co. 

The translator cautions the reader in her preface that these sermons are 
translated from versions never revised by the author himself, and that they do 
not pretend to be more than selections from the course of sermons delivered 
by Padre Agostino, and that the translations in this case are made, as they were 
in the volume previously published, from the reports printed in the newspapers 
and sold in the streets a few hours after the delivery of the sermons. This state- 
ment is not only due to the literary honesty of the translator but also to the 
preacher, for the Catholic reader can thereby explain the presence of inaccuracies 
in the statement of doctrine of which the Padre Agostino is quite incapable. 
But the sermons nevertheless bear internal evidence of being fairly enough re- 
produced. 



568 NE w PUBLICA riONS. [J an . , 1 8 90. 

This series is in some ways of hardly such value as was the first, yet-it con- 
tains a number of useful pieces of pulpit oratory. There are five sermons on our 
Lord, some of which carry the reader to a high state of sympathy with his passion 
and atonement, and others eloquently summarize the motives of credibility for his 
mission. The first sermon in the book, on the necessity of religion, is in some 
sense of the term a masterpiece, and might, with certain adaptations to our 
people, be used with much effect in our pulpits. The last sermon, " Our Native 
Land," is a high flight of oratory. It is probably the one which was misunder- 
stood by some portions of the preacher's audience, and which gave him occasion 
to publicly express his loyalty to the principles which guide the Holy See in the 
present difficulties with the Italian government. 

We recommend this volume to all classes of readers, especially to the clergy. 

S. ALPHONSI M. DE LIGUORI, EPISCOPI, CONFESSORIS ET ECCLESI^E DOCTORIS. 
Liber de Casremoniis Missae ex Italico Idiomate Latine Redditus opportunis 
Notis ac Novissimis S.R.C. Decretis Illustratus necnon Appendicibus 
auctus opera Georgii Schober, Congreg. SS. Redemptoris Sacerdotis. 
Editio altera emendata et aucta. Ratisbonae, Neo Eboraci et Cincinnatii : 
Sumptibus, Chartis et Typis Frederici Pustet, S. Sedis Apost. et S. Rit. 
Congr. Typogr. MDCCCLXXXVIII. 

This work of St. Alphonsus is so well known that it is scarcely necessary to 
say anything of it. The body of the work is devoted to the main subject of the 
book, the ceremonies of the Mass in general. The appendices take up and dis- 
cuss the various questions arising as to the obligation of celebrating and as to the 
things pertaining to votive Masses and the like. The book is a complete 
treatise. The editor has enlarged the original, and gives the later decisions of 
the Sacred Congregation bearing on the matter in hand. 

TEMPERANCE SONGS AND LYRICS. Second edition, greatly enlarged. By 
Rev. J. Casey. Dublin : James Duffy & Co. 

These homely and home-made songs and lyrics, as the zealous author terms 
them, have been already favorably noticed to our readers, and we have only to renew 
our hearty commendation of them, and trust they may find popular use in tem- 
perance societies, and thus render, as he hopes, a service to sobriety and song. 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Mention oj books in this place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers, 
THE DIVINE OFFICE. Explanation of the Psalms and Canticles. By St. Alphonsus de Li- 

guori, Doctor of the Church. Edited by Rev. Eugene Grimm, C.SS.R. New York, 

Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 
THE CONSTITUTIONAL AND POLITICAL HISTORY OF THE UNITED STATES. Dr. H.von 

Hoist, Professor at the University of Freiburg. Translated from the German by John J. 

Lalor. 1856-1859. Buchanan's Election-End of the 35th Congress. Chicago : Calla- 

ghan & Co. 
A LIFE OF JOHN DAVIS, THE NAVIGATOR, 1550-1605, Discoverer of Davis Straits. By Clements 

R. Markham, C.B., F.R.S. New York: Dodd, Mead & Co. 
SERMONS FOR THE SUNDAYS AND CHIEF FESTIVALS OF THE ECCLESIASTICALYEAR. With two 

Courses of Lenten Sermons and a Triduum for the Forty Hours. By Rev. Julius Pott- 

geisser, S.J. Rendered from the German by Rev. James Conway, S.J. In two volumes. 

New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 
GOOD THINGS FOR CATHOLIC READERS. A Miscellany of Catholic Biography, Travel, etc. 

Profusely illustrated. Second Series. New York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. ; 

London : Burns & Gates. 
THE GREAT TRUTHS. Short Meditations for the Season of Advent. By Richard F. Clarke, 

S.J. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 
THE ART OF PROFITING BY OUR FAULTS, according to St. Francis de Sales. By Rev. Joseph 

Fissott, Missionary of St. Francis de Sales. Translated from the French by Miss Ella 

McMahon New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago: Benziger Bros. 
THE DIARY OF PHILIP HONE, 1828-1851. Edited with an introduction by Bayard Tuckerman. 

In two volumes. New York: Dodd, Mead & Co. 



THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD 



VOL. L. FEBRUARY, 1890. No. 299. 

A NEW DEPARTURE IN CATHOLIC COLLEGE DIS- 
CIPLINE. 

CATHOLIC colleges in the United States find themselves con- 
fronted by conditions which seem to require a new adjustment 
of time-honored methods of discipline. The Declaration of Inde- 
pendence, as interpreted in our country, has come to mean that 
the son is equal to his father, and entitled to a voice in the 
manner and matter of his instruction and education. Whether 
this be right or wrong it is de facto, and it must be considered 
by the heads of educational institutions. Who believes that Yale's 
prestige in the annals of base-ball influences the father to send 
his son there ? But who does not know that the son's prefer- 
ence is often for the college which has made the best record 
in what the French call " le sport"? Of course there are 
studious young men who want to learn, but they are generally 
those whom circumstances oblige to take care of themselves. 
And it is the faculty and apparatus that draw them, not the 
fame of well-fought base-ball or boat-racing matches ; but the 
young man with a father capable of paying his bills is much in- 
fluenced by the scores of the year's competition in games. 

Similarly, the discipline of any college is considered by him 
from the point of view of his inclination and tastes. The com- 
mon dormitory system, by which no student has his own room, 
but all sleep in large dormitories like patients in the wards of a 
hospital a system which the French undergraduate accepts with- 
out a protest is viewed with disfavor by the American Catholic 
student, and he invariably cherishes the hope 'that the day will 
come when he can have a room of his own; and a college which 
does not offer him this hope cannot expect to have his suffrages 
after a limited time. Few fathers are unreasonable enough 

Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 1890. 

/ 



570 A NEW DEPARTURE IN [Feb., 

according to the modern definition of unreasonableness to send 
their sons of a certain age to a college some of whose arrange- 
ments do not meet with their approbation. The thoughtful 
father understands very well the advantages of the system of liv- 
ing which obtains in Catholic colleges. He knows very well 
perhaps too well the evils that result from the "boarding-out" 
system ; he knows that young men, free from parental restraints 
and the influence of public opinion, are not likely to remain 
without reproach. It is the fashion to hold, with the late school 
of "muscular Christianity," that young men generally "come out 
all right." But experience has dissipated that myth which the 
late Rev. Charles Kingsley did so much to make popular. 

It is certain that boys from the age of seventeen to twenty - 
one need restraint or, rather, restrictive influence ; for at that 
time there seems to be a special league of the world, the flesh, 
and the devil against them. The w r orld of the college town is 
too prone to look indulgently on the sins of students, and perhaps 
to play the part of Falstaff, not without a thought of profit, to 
their Prince Hal. If everybody concerned would be entirely frank, 
there is no doubt that residence of students outside college bounds 
would be condemned. 

If your son be serious-minded he will need none of the 
wisdom of Polohius, and you can trust him in a community of 
students where the opinions of " the fast set " govern speech, if 
not action. If not if he, because of his years and the plasticity 
of youth, be not proof against the laxity of youthful example 
you will find that he will have paid too much for that experi- 
ence which man is best without. 

Public sentiment has begun to swerve towards the conserv- 
ative system of the Catholic colleges. Even the prestige of Yale 
and Harvard does not now convince fathers that they are the 
safest places for boys ; and there is no doubt that the wise 
father is beginning to know his own son well enough to wish 
that some restraint could be applied to him during his collegiate 
years. A college ought to stand in loco parentis. If it seek to 
divest itself of all responsibility for the morals of its students, it 
fulfils the lesser part of its mission. 

It is time that the Catholic colleges of the country took ad- 
vantage of the trend of thoughtful opinion. But they cannot do 
this until they so 'modify the dormitory system that young men 
will not recoil from it. This has been declared to be impossible. 
If so, the Catholic college will continue to be handicapped ; it 
will continue to be filled with boys who leave its precincts at a 



1 890.] CA THOLIC COLLEGE DISCIPLINE. 5 7 1 

time when they should begin serious collegiate work ; it will 
continue to graduate classes small in proportion to the number 
of students entered on the rolls. 

The need of a modification of the dormitory system admir- 
able as it is for smaller boys has been forced on the trustees of 
the University of Notre Dame by the logic of events. It is 
entirely in place here to cite what they have done as an exam- 
ple of what may be done indeed, of what must be done if 
Catholic colleges are to be saved from becoming mere preparatory 
schools for junior students. Their work, when it began to take 
form, was looked on with forebodings by conservatives who feared 
that any recognition of modern prejudices against the dormitory 
system, even for students in senior grades, meant anarchy. 
Somehow or other, the Western atmosphere fights for the inno- 
vator as valiantly as the stars did in an elder time. And what 
seemed impossible was done in six months. A new building 
was planned to flank one side of the great lawn and to balance 
Science Hall. The plan completed, the new edifice began to 
arise. At the beginning of the school-year of 1888 it was al- 
most ready. A little later it received the name of Sorin Hall 
and the impossible had come to pass. It is a fixed fact now. 

Sorin Hall is an oblong building, built of the white brick of 
the adjacent country, planned, both for convenience and appear- 
ance, in the style of the French renaissance. It contains sixty 
rooms twelve feet by fourteen besides the apartments of the 
rector and his staff, a chapel, the lecture-room and chambers of 
the law department, bath-rooms, and a well-equipped reading- 
room. At present it is not half its proposed size, as seventy-five 
more rooms will be added, with, it is probable, the lecture-rooms 
of the English course. From present appearances, it seems as if 
the additional seventy-five rooms would be all too few, as there 
are many more deserving applicants for rooms than there are 
rooms in which to put them. 

I mean to emphasize the word deserving. Admission to 
Sorin Hall depends entirely on the merit of the applicant. It is 
not an assemblage of " parlor boarders " under a new name. 
No extra fee is demanded. The applicant for a room in Sorin 
Hall must be of the elite, and mere cleverness without cor- 
responding seriousness and good conduct will not gain the 
coveted honor for him. A desk, chairs, a book-case, a bed and 
other necessary articles, are provided by the college ; the rest 
of the garnishing of the room is left to the taste of the 
student. Some of the men in Sorin Hall go in for aesthetic 

VOL. L.37 



572 A NEW DEPARTURE IN [Feb., 

embellishments. Chacun a son metier. Here you find the base- 
ball gloves quartered, as it were, with a physiological chart, and 
a microscope nestling among back numbers of the Scientific Amer- 
ican, all shaded by Turcoman curtains s^nt by some loving 
mamma ; there a photograph of Cardinal Newman perched on 
a volume of Tennyson, and a synopsis of the Cronin case pasted 
over last month's foot-ball score, while the purest simplicity in 
the matter of other embellishments reigns. 

The rules of order and cleanliness are not more stringent or 
more scrupulously enforced at West Point than in Sorin Hall. 
It has a campus of its own and a government of its own, 
subject, of course, to the government of the University. It was 
anticipated that the formation of this new community would 
occasion a certain resentment among the less fortunate seniors, 
who naturally being thorough Americans would hate an aris- 
tocracy of which they were not members. But the exalted 
seniors disarmed enmity by a prudent affability of manner, 
and, as the " sweet hope " .of attaining to a room is so un- 
concealed among all the seniors, any attempt at the pro- 
verbial " sour-grapes" act would be conspicuously hollow. The 
rules that govern Sorin Hall are not many, but they are strictly 
enforced. As there is a commodious common room, visiting 
in rooms is not allowed; lights must be out at a fixed time; 
unseemly noises are prohibited ; in a word, every reasonable 
restriction that can conduce to decorous conduct and .the for- 
mation of an atmosphere inducing study is insisted on. 

Nearly two years have passed since this modification of the 
dormitory system was attempted. It has had a fair trial. The 
sixty rooms are filled by sixty gentlemen, whose work in the 
recitation rooms shows that they have made a distinct gain 
by their isolation from the more bustling air of the college 
proper. A man in Sorin Hall has too much respect for his 
standing to forfeit his privileges. A clandestine visit to town- 
were it possible would mean expulsion ; and there have been 
no expulsions. Any interference with the rights of others, if 
persisted in, would meet the same punishment. The fact that 
admission to this privilege of the University is dependent on 
conduct and standing accounts largely for the success of what 
is no longer an experiment. To have made admission dependent 
on an increased fee would have crippled it at once, and have 
put back an advance in the collegiate surroundings of higher 
students for many years. The elite, then, would have been a 
real aristocracy of money, not a picked group of men promoted 



1890.] CATHOLIC COLLEGE DISCIPLINE. 573 

for merit. And, if our Catholic colleges are to flourish, merit, 
not money, must be the ladder of preferment ; any snobbishness 
in this respect would have at once created all those difficulties 
among the students which the promoters of this new departure 
in discipline wished most to avoid. 

Notre Dame has shown how to draw older students to its 
lecture-rooms ; it has made an audacious experiment which, now 
that it is so thoroughly successful, seems to have been the only 
thing that could have been done. All of us who are interested 
in Catholic education desire, above all things, to see our colleges 
well filled with those older students who drift to what are called 
non-sectarian schools, but which are more dangerous to religion 
and morals than the professedly sectarian schools. In the latter 
belief in God and respect for the Commandments are at least 
part of public teaching. I confess that no question, social or 
political, seems to me more important than this : How shall we 
keep our own ? 

We cannot keep our own without higher education ; the 
highest is not too high. We cannot keep our own unless we 
analyze carefully the causes which keep promising youths from 
our colleges. These colleges have, as a rule, no endowments and 
no scholarships ; they must depend on the solidity of their 
teaching and the effectiveness of their discipline ; they must 
form characters as well as fill minds, and they cannot afford 
to neglect any chance of disarming prejudices against their meth- 
ods. The modification of the dormitory system is one of the 
most important steps that can be taken for the disarm- 
ing of existing prejudices. As an anxious observer of the 
progress of higher Catholic education as a student of the 
methods of Catholic colleges; as a man too well experi- 
enced in the objections which are made against them, as a 
teacher who puts a quiet environment above all things, except 
morality, in a student's life, I beg leave to call attention to 
this new departure in discipline at Notre Dame. The success 
of Sorin Hall marks an epoch and the beginning of a syn- 
thesis between traditions and the demands of the present time. 

MAURICE FRANCIS EGAN. 

Notre Dame, Ind* 



574 HYPNOTISM. [Feb., 



HYPNOTISM.* , 

IF the attention be directed repeatedly, by an individual in con- 
ditions of bodily weakness, to any part of his organism, sensations 
of different kinds, not existing previously, will be perceived in that 
part. This is a fact generally accepted by physicians, and fatal 
disease (hydrophobia in some cases) has, it is maintained, resulted 
simply from the influence of the imagination intensified in its power 
by fear at the time of reception of some slight or even fancied injury. 

As one of the highest mental faculties we must consider that of 
concentrating by an act of will the attention ; the converse of 
such power is inability to concentrate the attention by any effort of 
will, and consequently the individual's mind is here a prey to all 
sorts of distraction arising from sensorial (peripheral) impressions or 
from mental reproduction of previous states or ideas, these repro- 
ductions being due to hyper-excitability of the cortical brain-cells. 

If, now, by any process the power of inhibiting mental impres- 
sions arising from occurrences without the body or within it is put 
out of function, the power of concentrating the attention is lost for 
the time being and imagination may run riot. Now, let the imagina- 
tion be directed into a definite channel, so to say, and there being 
no inhibitory check upon it, whatever power it may have in affecting 
vital processes of the organism will be exercised to an unusual 
degree in the direction or channel to which its operations are thus 
limited. 

In such condition the individual may be made to sleep, or to 
enter abnormal states, such as catalepsy; to become anaesthetic in 
different parts of the body ; to experience hallucinations of sight or 
taste, etc.; to exhibit without any external real cause different 
trophic disorders, such as the appearance of a blister which goes 
through all the stages of change seen in an ordinary blister from a 
burn ; to be without memory of what occurs during the condition ; 

* To an inquiry in the October number of THE CATHOLIC WORLD concerning hypnotism 
there were answers in the next succeeding number of such nature that it seems desirable to set 
before the readers of this magazine a short sketch in which the present status of hypnotism, 
from a scientific point of view, is presented. Within the limitations of an article such as this 
a study of the subject cannot be expected, but it is believed by the writer that an unpartisan 
view has been preserved. Many points of greater or less importance to the psychologist and 
moralist have been barely touched upon, their bearing for such readers being, it is hoped, fairly 
inferable. The works cited, especially those of V. Schrenck-Notzing and Bernheim, teeming, 
as they are, with references to the literature of the subject published since 1860, may be con- 
sulted by those desirous of fuller information. JOSEPH T. O'CONNOR, M.D. 






1890.] HYPNOTISM. 575 

to become an automaton and follow the operator as a piece of soft 
iron follows a magnet ; and, finally, to be so imbued with a com- 
mand of the operator that at the hour directed by the latter (it may 
be many hours, or even some days, afterward) the subject, then in his 
ordinary condition, does precisely and at the exact time and without 
knowing why just what he had been ordered to do. More than this, 
diseases can be ordered away, normal secretions and discharges of 
the organism can (their absence being disease) be ordered to return, 
and even the normal pains in surgical operations and in childbirth 
can be commanded to not appear ; and in suitable subjects these 
commands have been obeyed. 

These are facts, many of them repeated over and over again, 
and the state or condition of body in which such phenomena are 
possible is called hypnosis, or, more commonly, hypnotism. 

Hypnotism is nothing new. Ancient peoples possessed it, its 
practice being mixed with different forms of idolatry ; it is said to 
have been employed during the middle ages combined with 
"spiritism," and in later times the remarkable results attained by 
its practicers, under claims that possibly were in some instances free 
from conscious fraud, have been recorded Thus, Valentine Great- 
rakes, stated to have been a prominent Irish officer, proclaimed, in 
1662,* that he was gifted by God with the power of curing disease. 
His renown became extraordinary, for cures really followed, but 
attacks of frightful spasms often attended his method, which was 
simply the laying on of hands. In 1700 Gessner, a Swabian and 
said to be an ex-monk, won celebrity through his cures, and, after 
journeying through Swabia, Switzerland, and the Tyrol, settled in 
Regensburg. So many had recourse to him, it is said, that at one 
time ten thousand persons were health-seekers at his hands, but 
there was no room for them in the town and they had to live in the 
fields. f The explanation of the cures, of which many must have 
been genuine, will appear later. 

The first systematic attempt to utilize the method apart from 
admixture with the mystical or supernatural was by Mesmer about 
1775. He had discovered, in 1772, that by stroking the human 
body with a magnet certain peculiar effects followed which he 
considered were due to an influence streaming forth from the 
magnet, the "magnetic fluid." Later, when he accidentally was 
without a magnet, he used a rod of unmagnetized iron, and the same 
results followed; and, further, he found that stroking with the naked 
hand was equally efficacious. Clinging to the emanation theory, he 

*G. Gessmann, Magnctismus rind Hypnotismus. A. Hartleben's Verlag. 1887. 
t Gessmann. 



576 H YPNO TISM. [Feb. . 

now ascribed his results to an influence or fluid drawn from or 
emitted by the operator, similar to that from the magnet. He 
called this "animal magnetism" to distinguish it from metallic mag- 
netism. His fame became great, but in 17843 commission appointed 
by the French . government reported unfavorably upon his claims 
and suppressed his method of cure. The term "mesmerism" 
was given to the method by his disciples. Before the out- 
break of the French Revolution the adherents of Mesmer among 
the medical profession were not inconsiderable in number or position, 
and after 18153 new society for the cultivation of mesmerism was 
founded. About this time the Abbe Faria appeared in Paris, and 
by his exhibitions aroused anew the interest of the public in 
"animal magnetism." It is worthy of remark that Faria (nothing 
is given of his clerical standing) should have been the first to see 
the explanation, widely prevalent to-day in scientific circles, of the 
phenomena under consideration. He maintained that the cause of 
the "somnambulic " phenomena resided 'solely in the magnetized 
subject. He was laughed at, made ridiculous, and abandoned his 
exhibitions. 

But little advance was made in discovery in this domain until 
the time of Braid, an English physician, who in 1840 made the 
discovery that by the subject's fixing his gaze steadily for some 
minutes upon a brilliant object held in a certain position he was put 
into a condition analogous to that produced by mesmerism. To this 
state Braid gave the name " hypnotism," and its production by 
Braid's method of fixing the gaze upon a brilliant object, usually a 
faceted glass ball or button, is frequently termed " braidism." All 
prominent writers upon our subject at the present time date the 
scientific foundation of hypnotism from Braid's investigations.* 
All the later, physiologically established, phenomena were already 
described by him and he was cognizant of the lighter degrees of 
hypnotism as used by the Nancy school (vide infra). He ascribes 
the inability to open the eyelids to exhaustion of volitional influence 
upon the muscle that raises the upper eyelid. He emphasized the 
subjective nature of the influence, as well as the power of dominant 
ideas in the waking state, and sought to account for the results 
observed in some alteration of the cerebral circulation. According 
to him, the occurrence of hypnosis is essentially dependent upon 
" expectation." " The livelier the fantasy, the more intense the 
attention, the stronger the belief of the patient that the expected 
results will occur, the surer and more evidently will the expected 

*V. Schrenck-Notzing, Bin Beitrag zur therapeutischen Vetwerthung des Hypnotismus. 
Leipzig, 1888. 



1890.] HYPNOTISM. 577 

phenomena appear even, in many individuals, in the waking state." 
He even pointed out the power of " suggestion " in sufficiently deep 
conditions of hypnosis. It is worthy of note that his methods have 
been followed almost exclusively by the school of Charcot, although 
he considered physical methods as merely aids. 

We see in Braid's works hypnotism divested of its wrappings of 
the supernatural, of spiritism, of fraud, of demonism, and even of 
Mesmer's magnetic influence. Braid's publications made but little 
impression upon his contemporaries ; indeed, they were scarcely 
known outside of England. The notion of some emanating force 
found expression in the terms bestowed by different observers and 
experimenters upon the cause of hypnotic phenomena. " Electro- 
biology " (Grimes, 1848), "Electric Psychology" (Dods, 1850), both 
of these from the United States; "Od" or the " odic force" 
(Reichenbach, 1852), this being a universally diffused force through- 
out space and concentrated by the operator ; and " force neurique 
rayonnante," are but a few of the titles, intended to be descriptive, 
invented about this time. Gradually, however, prominent members 
of the medical profession were brought to give a hearing to the 
claims of hypnosis, and Broca and Follin reported to the French 
Academy of Sciences in 1859 the opening of an abscess under the 
anaesthetic influence of hypnotism. Dr. Guerineau reported in the 
same year that he had amputated the thigh under hypnotic anaes- 
thesia. Similar reports had, however, been made in 1829, and 
several during the period 1845-47. 

Liebeault, who had been busy for several years in studying 
the phenomena of hypnosis, issued in 1866 his work, Du Som- 
mcil et des etats analogues considered surtout au point de vne de 
r action dn moral sur le physique. He adhered to the theory ot 
" suggestion," which he still further developed, and successfully 
employed it as a therapeutic measure. He explained the phe- 
nomena from a psycho-physiological point of view. The work of 
the Nancy physician made no deep impression, and hypnotism 
remained a scientific curiosity ; it was simply known that some 
individuals by fixing the gaze upon a brilliant object fell asleep 
and became anaesthetic, and that in others catalepsy was pro- 
duced. 

In 1873 Czermak published his observations on hypnotism in 
animals, but as far back as 1646 Athanasius Kirchner had shown 
that a chicken placed, with legs tied, before a chalk-mark on the 
floor became after a certain time motionless and reactionless to 
irritants, and remained in this position even after the thongs were 
removed and the animal irritated. Czermak got the same results, 



578 HYPNOTISM. [Feb., 

even without tying the animals, in birds, lizards, crabs, rabbits, 
etc. Other observers have had similar experiences. 

In 1875 Charles Richet, the Paris professor of physiology, in- 
vestigated the psychical phenomena of induced somnambulism, 
but the greatest impetus to the scientific study of the subject 
was from Charcot's experiments upon hysterical patients at La 
Salpetriere. His methods, as has been said above, are almost en- 
tirely physical, and he divides the phenomena of hypnotism in 
hysterical persons, upon whom alone his experiments were made, 
into three classes, catalepsy, lethargy, and somnambulism, with, 
however, stages of transition. 

Catalepsy is produced by sudden intensive sounds, the sudden 
flashing of a bright light, etc. In this condition the subject's 
eyes are open, staring and fixed, the limbs are in the state known 
as flexibilitas cerea and retain for some time any position in 
which they are placed, reflex movements are entirely lost or les- 
sened, respiration is slowed, there is anaesthesia of the skin and 
of certain organs, with contraction of the peripheral blood-ves- 
sels. Suggestion is possible, especially via the muscular sense. 

Lethargy is caused by " fixing " a not too brilliant object, 
after the method of Braid. In this state the eyes are closed, the 
reflexes heightened, respiration accelerated, muscular contractures 
are readily educed by mechanical irritation of the special muscles, 
their tendons, or the nerves supplied to them. There is hyper- 
aesthesia rather than the reverse, and the peripheral vessels are 
dilated. In exceptional cases only does " suggestion " act. 

Somnambulism is caused by long-lasting weak sensorial ex- 
citement, or by the mere idea of sleep. The symptoms in this 
stage are : normal tendon reflexes ; muscular tonicity, as in the 
waking condition ; slight irritation of the skin calls forth con- 
tractures of the underlying muscular groups, disappearing through 
continuance of the same irritation ; analgesia sometimes ; senses 
acute ; eyes half-open, lids tremulous. Consciousness and men- 
tal activity cloudy. Suggestion possible, but the power of resis- 
tance is present. Mental dulness, as a rule, complete. 

By closure of the eyes the cataleptic or somnambulic condi- 
tion passes into the lethargic, and by opening the eyes the leth- 
argic into the cataleptic. Rubbing the vertex during the cata- 
leptic or lethargic stage produces somnambulism. 

The school of Charcot hold that only hysterics are subject to 
hypnotic methods and that hypnosis itself is a disease, a neu- 
rosis. 

The final stage of development in the subject up to the pres- 



1890.] HYPNOTISM. 579 

ent writing culminates in the observations of Dr. H. Bernheim,* 
professor in the Medical School at Nancy. He has shown that 
the theory of Charcot has beclouded the whole subject, both from 
the purely experimental and the therapeutic points of view. 

All the facts which for years have been observed in the few 
" drilled " hysterical subjects in La Salpetriere can be explained 
by the action of " suggestion," and all the phenomena of hyp- 
notism are to be thus explained. f Suggestion may be verbal or 
by gesture, or by the unconscious play of the operator's features 
from surprise, or disappointment, or satisfaction, etc. The expec- 
tation that some special line of phenomena will appear acts, in 
cases such as Charcot's subjects, as a " suggestion." The " in- 
fluence " of different metals applied to different parts of the 
body is proven to have been from within the subject, but aroused 
by " suggestion " (auto-suggestion, as in the case of applied 
plates of gold), from the old notion that, e.g., the metal gold 
possesses a specially noble quality, for this metal refused to act 
when the subject was made to believe it was copper, and copper, 
when believed by the subject to be gold, brought out the same 
symptoms as gold did in the earlier experiments. So, in Luys's 
experiments with medicines in closed and sealed glass tubes held 
in the hand or applied to different parts of the subject's body, 
the possibility and even the likelihood of auto-suggestion cannot 
be excluded. 

Bernheim employs a slight " fixation " of the subject's eyes 
or a few passes simply as means to concentrate the patient's at- 
tention, and then he " suggests " sleep and finds it to occur in 
some degree in a very large proportion of cases observed by 
him. Liebeault's table (quoted by Bernheim) shows that of 1,011 
persons subjected to the hypnotic method only 27 were refrac- 
tory > 33 became slightly drowsy, 100 went into a light sleep, 
460 into deep sleep, 229 into very deep sleep, 31 into light 
somnambulism, and 131 into deep somnambulism. Bernheim adds 
that the people who came to Liebeault were from the masses, 
who were undoubtedly already persuaded of his 'magnetic" 
power, and consequently with brains ready to yield in some 
degree. Sex seemed to make no difference in the statistics. 

Bernheim makes nine grades in his classification of the hyp- 
notic states, these being in two groups, a, Grade I. -VI., in 

* De la suggestion dans I'etat hypnotique et dans I '/tat de veille. Paris. 1884. The 
references in this article from BernheLn are from the German translation by Dr. Sigm. 
Freud : Die Suggestion und ihre Heil-wirkung. Leipzig und Wien. 1888. 

t Forel, Der Hypnotismus : seine Bsdeutung und seine Handhabung. Stuttgart. 1889. 



580 HYPNOTISM. [Feb., 

which memory is retained after emerging from the state ; and 
b, Grade VII. -IX., in which there is amnesia after awaking, 
or somnambulism. 

Grade I. has " suggestibility " for distinct physiological acts, 
e.g., the arousing of a feeling of warmth in a definite part of the 
body, or cessation of pain both through suggestion ; there is 
no catalepsy, nor inability to open the eyes. The patients 
assert positively that they have not slept. Grade II., inability 
to spontaneously open the eyes ; otherwise the same negative 
symptoms. Grade III., suggestive catalepsy, yet with retained 
volitional power to overcome this, and the power can be exerted. 
Grade IV., suggestive catalepsy, with loss of volitional power to 
overcome it (except by suggestion). At times automatic motions, 
such as turning the arm for an indefinite length of time, can be 
produced. Grade V., suggestive contracture, not to be overcome 
by will. Grade VI., automatic obedience in greater or less 
degree. The subject is motionless if left to himself, but at com- 
mand gets up, or walks, or stands still, etc. Sensory deception 
or iUusions cannot be provoked in any of the foregoing stages, 
and memory of what has occurred is retained, sometimes with, 
sometimes without, consciousness of having slept. Grade VII., 
here belong those cases in which amnesia is present on awaking, 
but no hallucination can be produced. In almost all cases of this 
grade the phenomena of the previous stages can be called forth, 
such as catalepsy, contractures, automatic motions and automatic 
obedience. Yet it happens that one or another may be wanting. 
Grade VIII., condition is the same as the last, with the production 
of hallucinations during the sleep, but it is impossible to cause 
hallucinations (by suggestion during the state) occurring after the 
awaking. Grade IX., sensitiveness for hypnotic and post-hyp- 
notic hallucinations. 

More or less analgesia may be evident in all the stages, 
oftener in somnambulism. 

The views of the Nancy school as to the causation of the 
phenomena of hypnotism that is, by " suggestion" are accepted 
by the greater number of observers in this field, but, as has been 
already stated, the Paris school holds to a physical causation. 
There are some who maintain that both may be needed in 
explanation. Over-irritation, sensorially, as in Braid's method, is 
blamed for the appearance of convulsions, etc. 

Whatever be the correct position concerning this part of the 
question, it seems certain that the greatest therapeutic results 
have followed the teachings of the Nancy school, and we have 



1 890.] H VPNO TISM. 5 8 1 

now to consider just what has been achieved here. All kinds 
of hysterical diseases have been cured, many troubles of functional 
character, some of inflammatory nature, hemiplegias, etc., from 
apoplexy, migraine, hemorrhages, some insanities based upon hys- 
teria, the pains of cancer, menstrual anomalies, etc., etc. Many 
cases of bad habits, some of them of vile character, have been 
cured, and also many of the alcohol and some of the morphine 
habit. All of the foregoing makes 'a good showing in favor 
of hypnotism as a therapeutic measure. But the question will 
be, is it an unsafe measure, or more dangerous than is the use 
of many drugs commonly prescribed by physicians ? 

The writer believes with Dr. Friedenreich * that "an indi- 
vidual who has been frequently hypnotized is thereby rendered 
abnormal, and even if other abnormalities cannot be shown to 
exist, he is still easily hypnotizable and readily subjected to the 
influence of another person." At the same time it must be 
remembered that this is probably true only of frequency of the 
higher grades of hypnotism, and that Bernheim distinctly states 
that the higher grades are not necessary for therapeutic pur- 
poses. It is not strictly true that no one can be hypnotized 
against his will, but, as Bernheim puts it, no one can be hypno- 
tized who does not believe that he can be hypnotized. Thus a 
slight influence obtained at a first trial inevitably makes the 
second effort more successful. There is no domination of one 
mind by another, properly speaking, in hypnotism ; no " clair- 
voyance/' or seeing what occurs in a distant place ; no prophetic 
power or power of revealing the hidden past, nor any power of 
performing miracles. Suggestion accepted without resistance, and 
often unconsciously, by the subject accounts for all that hypno- 
tism really does; the mode of action within the body is unknown, 
but it is according to natural laws of the organism. I have yet 
to learn that a tumor has been removed by hypnotism or that 
the results of a destructive lesion in the nervous system have 
been undone, or that an ulcer has been healed suddenly. 
Various superstitious practices have been employed to cure warts 
(which are really small tumors), and I have been gravely in- 
formed by patients that rubbing a gold ring upon a stye will 
cause its disappearance; but if so, it is because of the inherent 
" suggestion " becoming assimilated, so to say, in some lower 
brain centre and so causing a change from the abnormal to the 
normal through it. But such changes take time ; they never occur 
suddenly. So, in the cases of hemiplegia, etc., reported as cured 

* Vide Neurolog-isckes Centralblatt, April, 1888, p. 211. 



582 HYPNOTISM. [Feb., 

by hypnotism, I would prefer to wait for the report of the post- 
mortem examination before admitting that the paralysis thus 
cured was anything more than what is termed an " indirect " 
symptom of the brain lesion. I think that any physician who 
understands the effect of destruction of part of the motor tract in 
either brain or spinal cord will admit that restoration of destroyed 
nerve-tubules is positively out of the question by any natural 
means. And I think it well established now that whether the 
phenomena of hypnosis are psychical or physical, or both, the 
processes involved are natural ones. 

The power of post-hypnotic suggestion to cause crime 
through an innocent agent carrying out at a time hours or days 
after emerging from the hypnotic state the action suggested 
while in that state has aroused the serious attention of phy- 
sicians and jurists alike, while the danger of producing a wide- 
spread condition of nervous disease as a result of public 
demonstrations of " mesmerism" is emphasized by all writers 
upon the subject. In different European countries medical and 
legal societies have petitioned the authorities to prohibit all 
public exhibitions of "mesmerism" by any person whatsoever, 
and to forbid the employment of hypnosis by any person not a 
physician with special knowledge of nervous diseases. The use 
of hypnosis by physicians should be limited to therapeutic pur- 
poses, or for the instruction of medical students, and as for these 
ends the lower grades of hypnotism are, according to Bernheim, 
sufficient, no injurious consequences need follow. For his own 
protection the physician should not use the method except in 
the presence of a third reputable person as a witness. 

JOSEPH T. O'CONNOR, M.D. 



1890.] 



THE NORTH WIND. 



583 



THE NORTH WIND. 

" Arise, O North Wind, and come, O South Wind, blow through my garden, and 
let the aromatical spices thereof flow." Canticle of Canticles. 

Go ! blighting North Wind, go ! 
And let the spice-trees blow. 

My garden's drear. 
Thy breath is chill alway, 
Thy touch is slow decay. 
I v/ould thou wert away, 

My garden's dear. 

I would my garden fair, 

The South Wind I would there 

With warmth ajid life. 
North Wind, thou doth not please ! 
Thy biting airs that freeze 
The moaning, sobbing trees 

Are all too rife. 



My garden is mine own, 

My hand the seed hath sown, 

For it I wrought. 
Its blooming is the prize 
I promised to mine eyes ; 
With blood and sweat and sighs 

'Twas dearly bought. 

Go, North Wind, go, I say ! 
For thou hast had thy day, 

This is mine hour. 
For all thy cold and frost, 
My work done at such cost 
I will not suffer lost, 

For I am Power. 



584 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 



THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI.* 

IN the Central Park Museum, New York, which the prudence, 
justice, and generosity of certain wealthy citizens have donated 
to the public, there hangs a picture that attracts in a special 
manner the attention of clerical visitors. It is called "1'At- 
tentat d'Anagni," and represents a pope, in complete pontifical 
attire, standing aloft on a dais and seeming to challenge the 
onset of certain bold, rough soldiers, led by a man who, sword 
in hand, rushes up the steps to assail him, while his ecclesias- 
tical associates fly in terror from the pontiff's side. This is the 
representation of one of the greatest scenes in history. The 
pope is Boniface VIII., who sat in the chair of Peter from 1295 
to 1303. His invaders are soldiers of France and the condotti 
(armed followers) of the Roman patrician family of the Colonna, 
under the leadership of the chancellor of that kingdom, William 
Nogaret, and of Sciarra, head of the Colonnas. 

What power there is in a picture ! Go look at this one 
and see. Cardinal Wiseman tells, in his essay on Boniface VIII., 
how it was through seeing his picture by Giotto in the Lateran 
cathedral that he was led to study up the history of this pontiff, 
and wonders that this scene had never been chosen as the 
subject of the artist's pencil. Indeed, as the cardinal goes on 
to say, " it exhibits, beyond almost any other in history, the 
triumph of moral over brute force, the power of mind, arrayed 
in true dignity oi outward bearing, over passion and injustice." 
One or two other events will suggest themselves as parallel to 
this. One is the sacking of Rome by the Gaub in the year 
363 of the republic, when the fierce barbarians found the priests, 
the consuls, and the senators calmly saat^d in their places, clothed 
in their official attire, and ready to meet death, as they did meet 
it, in majestic silence. Another is the sublime spectacle offered 
us in the Fourth Book of Kings, chapter i. : 

"And behold Elias sat on the top of a hill. And the captain of fifty spake 
unto him : Man of God, the king hath commanded that thou come down. 
And Elias answering, said to the captain of fifty : If I be a man of God, 

* Cardinal Wiseman's Essays. O'Shea, New York. 
Universal Church History : Alzog. Clarke, Cincinnati. 
Bishop England's Works. Vol. II. Murphy, Baltimore. 



1890.] THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNL 585 

let fire come down from heaven and consume thee and thy fifty. And 
there came down fire from heaven, and consumed him and the fifty that 
were with him." 

Nothing attracts men's interest so much as an exhibition 
of courage. Even the struggle between two brutes or the duel 
of gladiators entices us. The soldier is the general hero. But 
the man who in his own room coolly faces death in defence of 
his convictions is greater than the warrior engaged in mortal 
conflict. He has no rushing battle to hurry him on, no cheering 
comrades to support him, no martial trumpet to stir his blood 
and divert his thoughts from danger. To suffer is immensely 
greater than to do. Hence the unarmed Boniface is beyond 
comparison a more striking figure than the leader of his assail- 
ants ; hence the artist makes him the central figure of this 
painting, the technical merit of which is forgotten in the fasci- 
nating interest of its magnificent subject. Let us turn to the 
pages of history and learn something of the life of this splendid 
hero, and the circumstances in which he displayed the for- 
titude whose " counterfeit presentment" is so attractive and 
imposing. 

Boniface VIII. was the successor of Pope St. Celestine V. 
His name, before being raised to the papal throne, was Benedict 
Gaetani, and he had distinguished himself as a cardinal in many 
important and intricate affairs of state. 



"On him," says Alzog, "nature had lavished her choicest gifts. He 
was equally skilled in canon an I civil law; his talents and accomplish- 
ments fitted him to be no less a secular prince than the head of the 
church ; his strong sense and force of character enabled him to fully 
comprehend his mission and his office, and to go straight through with 
whatever business he had in hand, without turning to the right or the 
left ; he surpassed all his predecessors in talent for affairs, experience of 
practical life, and in his knowledge of the art of governing ; though far 
beyond three score and ten, he was still in the full tide and vigor ot 
manhood, and must, when looking back upon the lives and calling up the 
memories of Gregory VII. and Innocent III., have resolved to follow 
their example in pursuing a well-defined policy, and assuming a bold and 
determined attitude." 

This man was chosen to succeed the gentle, too gentle, 
Celestine, and with the design, doubtless, of correcting the abuses 
that had arisen in consequence of the last pope's mildness. In 
fact, Boniface comes between two saints, his immediate successor 
and attached friend being St. Benedict XL, who assumed this 
name on his assumption of the papal chair because it was the 



586 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 

baptismal one of the subject of our sketch. Protestant histo- 
rians generally reprobate Boniface VIII., and even Catholic 
writers have been carried away by the narrow provincial spirit 
which is the characteristic of heresy as distinguished from 
Catholicity. 

The wizard .of poetry in that age, Dante, hated the pope 
because the latter resisted the extension of the imperial power, 
Dante being an ardent Ghibelline. Hence he calls him most 
caustic names : " the prince of modern Pharisees " ; the " high- 
priest whom evil take " (a bitter imprecation) ; nay, makes St. 
Peter speak of him as a usurper and charge him with blood- 
shed and crime ; he even represents a place prepared for him in 
hell amongst those condemned for simony.* 

"Dost thou stand there already? 
Dost thou stand there already, Boniface ? 

Art thou so early satiate with that wealth 

For which thou didst not fear to take by fraud 

The beautiful Lady [the church] and then work her woe ? " 

St. Peter, speaking : 

" He who usurps upon the earth my place, 
My place, my place, which vacant has become, 
Now in the presence of the Son of God, 
Has of my cemetery made a sewer 
Of blood and fetor, whereat the Perverse 
Who fell from here, below there is appeased." 

Yet we think it can be shown in no long space that just 
as Gregory VII., Sylvester II., Innocent III., and Leo X. have 
each obtained a grand though late vindication from Protestant 
writers, so Boniface VIII. might also form the subject of a 
similar panegyric. 

The popes in the Middle Ages were accepted as feudal 
superiors by many of the kingdoms of Europe, who even paid 
tribute to the Holy See, and thus became secure from subjection 
to the emperor and could rely on aid in case of domestic or 
foreign trouble. The pope was, in fact, by international law and 
custom recognized to be the Head of Christendom, the father 
and the judge of nations, and much of the "pomp and circum 
stance " attaching to the pontifical court was and is owing to 
this state of things. Hence one need not be surprised that when 
Boniface was riding from the Vatican to the Lateran cathedral 

"Longfellow's Dante: Infer-no, xxvii. 70, 85; xix. 52, 



1890.] THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. 587 

to be enthroned Bishop of Rome two feudatory kings led his 
horse, as well as afterwards washed his hands at Mass, and served 
him at the banquet following, taking seats themselves lower down 
with the cardinals. Apart from temporal considerations, we can 
easily understand how Catholic gentlemen would consider it an 
honor to render this service to the successor of St. Peter, and, 
besides, the monarchical institutions of Europe render necessary 
certain, display which our democratic simplicity does not easily 
understand. The new pope at once began to act in accordance 
with his ideal of the lofty position he occupied. His first care 
was to pacify the ever-contending Italian republics, to make 
peace between Philip of France and Edward of England, to dis- 
suade the German emperor from invading the former country, to 
set about the reunion of the Greeks with the Holy See, and the 
recovery of the Holy Land, whence the Catholics had been driven 
in 1291. He gave Sicily to Charles II. of Naples, and Corsica 
and Sardinia to James of Aragon, requiring tribute of each of 
these kings ; he excommunicated Henry VIII., king of Denmark, 
and condemned him to pay a heavy fine for having imprisoned 
the guiltless Archbishop of Lunden ; he founded the famous 
University of Rome called the Sapienza, and canonized St. 
Louis IX., the crusading king of France. 

The temporal authority of the popes had, however, been 
gradually waning, and though the policy of Boniface, like that 
of his predecessors, had been to establish peace among the 
states of Europe, to defend oppressed princes and prelates, and 
adjust differences among contending parties and factions, it was 
not always his fortune to have .his labors crowned with success, 
and he was not unfrequently obliged to employ weapons, both 
temporal and spiritual, against those who resisted his authority. 
His first great difficulty arose from an effort to settle a family 
quarrel of the Colonnas, one of the great Roman families. 
Two of its members James Colonna and his nephew Peter 
were cardinals. The former was allowed by his three brothers 
to administer the family estate for the common good, but, not 
doing so to their satisfaction, they complained to their sovereign, 
the pope. The latter exerted himself to have justice done, 
but in vain. The offending cardinal and his nephew, with 
others of the family, not only refused to obey, but even 
became guilty of high treason by giving aid and comfort to 
Frederic of Aragon, then at war -with the pope. They fled 
from Rome, and though they themselves had voted for Boniface 
in the conclave, now issued a manifesto declaring his election 

VOL. L. 38 



588 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 

invalid, and, circulating it among the people, dared even to have 
a copy nailed to the great door of St. Peter's, and another laid 
upon the high altar! 

Decision shows the man. The grand old pope responded 
at once to the challenge. The crime and the criminals were so 
well known that no long trial was called for. That very night 
he excommunicated his rebellious subjects, with their clerical 
adherents, and declared war against them. He made one of the 
injured brothers of Cardinal James captain of his forces, and 
razed to the ground the family fortress, Palestrina (native place 
of the great embellisher of the Gregorian chant). But the ready 
and decisive pontiff nurtured no revenge. The Colonnas came 
of their own accord and sued for pardon, and though their 
lives were forfeit with their goods, he absolved them from the 
excommunication and let them go. How they requited his 
mercy the picture intimates, and we shall see later on. 

It was from France, however, that his greatest troubles came, 
and by the eldest daughter was the father's honor most cruelly 
outraged and his noble spirit tried. From France, did we say ? 
Rather, it should be said, from the tyrant who then ruled that 
noble nation a man who set at naught the international law of 
.all civilized countries, as well as violated the rights and customs 
of his own. He imprisoned Guy, Count of Flanders, and his 
.two sons, with several nobles, against the solemn engagement 
made by his own general and cousin, Charles of Valois 
: treachery that was amply revenged by the Flemings under -the 
.leadership of their renowned sovereign* the " Lion of Flanders," 
in the battle of the Golden Spurs. He interfered, as we shall 
see, with the most exalted prerogatives of church government 
being a man, according to Chamber s r s Encyclopedia (no friend 
of Boniface, as it calls his death a victory for civilization), who 
" converted royalty, which was formerly protecting, kind, and 
popular to the mass of the people, into a hard, avaricious, and 
pitiless task-master, under whom the taxes were greatly in- 
creased, the Jews persecuted, and their property confiscated ; and 
who, when these means were insufficient to satisfy his avarice, 
caused the coinage to be greatly debased." Such was the man 
whose opposition does immortal honor to Boniface VIII. What 
greater credit can be claimed for any one than that the unjust 
and the oppressor hate and oppose him, and that he fights and 
resists them to the end? "We love him, therefore, for the 
.enemies he made." 

The immediate cause of the outbreak between the pope and 









1 890.] THE UTRA GE AT ANA GNI. 5 89 

Philip was the latter's levying an extra impost on the clergy 
and extorting the same, without the consent of the Holy See 
and after its proper protest and warning. 

Wars in those days, as very often now, were frequently 
gotten up for mere personal motives, ambition, or family aggran- 
dizement. " Quidquid delirant reges, plectuntur Achivi" The 
pope often interfered in behalf of the oppressed people ; but at 
all events, he was the proper protector of ecclesiastics and of 
church property. When it is considered that Edward of England 
in this war required one-half the entire income of the ecclesi- 
astics in his realm, and that Philip demanded one-fifth of all 
their property, movable and immovable, the grounds for the 
papal bull of condemnation are plain enough. Still, not to 
exasperate the king, he explained that it was not intended to 
forbid the clergy giving what they liked, if only it were freely 
given and not extorted illegally that is, beyond the ordinary rate 
prescribed by law. The popes were obliged to be very cautious 
in censuring wilful monarchs, as they might do, and often did, 
immense harm to the church and to their people when pushed 
too far. Witness the conduct of Henry VIII. of England and 
his successors. 

Philip was not disposed to meet the pontiff half-way, but 
continued to resist his authority as supreme judge in interna- 
tional matters, to harass the clergy and seize their property in 
the various dioceses, and, ,as he had imprisoned the Count of 
Flanders and his sons in violation of an armistice, so he did 
the same with the bishop sent as ambassador by Boniface. He 
had this prelate (one of his own subjects) arraigned and convicted 
of high treason on silly and contradictory counts, and requested 
the pope to degrade him that he might be punished according 
to the law in similar cases.. 

The pope replied by suspending the tithes which he had 
allowed the clergy of France to pay for a two years' space, and 
issued a bull in which he reminded the monarch that, though a 
king, he was still a son of the church and a subject of her head ; 
and he proceeded to complain of the violations of popular and 
ecclesiastical rights, of which he had been guilty, by arbitrary 
appointments of individuals to church livings, by levying oppres- 
sive taxes on the clergy, and by seizing the revenues of vacant 
bishoprics, as well as by debasing the coin of the realm, and 
thus meanly robbing his own subjects and the neighboring 
peoples. The king got very angry and claimed that he had 
no superior on earth but God himself; called the pope an 



59 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 

aggressor, and invited the estates of the kingdom to assemble in 
congress and maintain the ancient liberties of the nation. 

While the nobles and the commoners appear to have sided 
with the king, the clergy assured him of their good-will, but 
begged permission to attend the synod at Rome, to which the 
pope had summoned them and him for the removal of difficulties 
and the establishment of peace. In fact, notwithstanding Philip's 
violent threats, four archbishops, thirty-five bishops, and six 
abbots are said to have gone to Rome in November, 1302, to 
be present at this council. The result of it was the issue of 
the famous bull Unam Sanctam, in v/hich the pope defines, 
as matter of faith, that all Christians, no matter what their 
station, are subject to the church and to her head on earth ; not 
inasmuch as the pope may claim the jurisdiction of another king, 
but that if any king's conduct in his government be against God's 
law, then it is the pope's right and duty to correct him, and his 
to obey the pope. Boniface now sent the Cardinal of Amiens to 
Philip with the object of conciliation, but, like his predecessor in 
a liks office, the eminent priest was cast into prison. Philip 
again assembled the three estates (clergy, nobles, and commoners), 
and once more protesting against the pope, not only rejected 
his acts, but, on the suggestion evidently of the exiled 
Colonnas, who had left the Roman states after the razing of 
Palestrina, drew up a long, bitter, and most heinous indictment 
against Boniface, whom he charged with heresy, witchcraft, idol- 
atry, disbelief, simony, and murder. 

The deputies pledged their fortunes and their lives in defence 
of the liberties of France against the .aggressions of Rome, and 
for the first time in history king and people, high and low, 
appealed from the pope to the general council, thus starting the 
famous " Gallican Liberties," and practically opening a schism. 
" Of all the prelates and ecclesiastics present at that Gallican 
assembly," says Alzog, "the Abbot of Citeaux alone had the 
courage and the manliness to stand up and protest against pro- 
ceedings so dishonest and violent." 

But those bishops who objected to obeying the pope found 
that they had to render double obedience, in spirituals as well as 
in temporals, to the king, whose little finger proved heavier than 
the loin of their spiritual superior, and discovered to their loss 
that their emancipation from the head of the church only left 
them bound hand and foot, and absolutely under control of an 
unprincipled layman. Jesus Christ provided for the freedom of 
Christians by establishing two distinct powers, one in the spirit- 



1890.] THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNL 591 

ual sphere, the other in the temporal; and thus the citizen 
was free from the power of the pope in so far as the civil 
allegiance was concerned, and safe from the power of the king 
in matters regarding the tribunal of conscience. The so-called 
" Gallican Liberties " destroyed this compensating arrangement of 
the Son of God, and the clergy of France became the creatures 
and slaves of tfhe " fool and oppressor " that chanced to be on 
the throne, very much as the Protestant sectarians who followed 
them two centuries later. Gallicanism, like heresy, always results 
in political tyranny. 

We need not say anything of the accusations brought against 
the character of Boniface, which not only he himself solemnly 
and on oath denied in a consistory of the cardinals held at Anagni, 
but from which a general council, held a couple of years after 
his death in that very France, and under a French pope, 
Clement V., completely vindicated his memory. But we come 
now to the last act in the tragedy, in which the Lion of the 
Fold was brought to bay by the hounds of his enemy, and the 
Vicar of Christ, exhibiting one of the grandest spectacles the 
world has ever witnessed, triumphed over the Prince of this 
world and his satellites. 

William de Nogaret, the keeper of the royal seals, who had 
taken an active part in getting up the charges against the pope, 
was sent into Italy, accompanied by Sciarra Colonna, the former 
ostensibly as ambassador, but really, as Rohrbacher says, with 
the intention and order to seize the pope and convey him prisoner 
to France (nay, even, perhaps the French Protestant historian 
Sismondi is correct when he declares, "evidently to kill him"!) 
an enterprise surely more worthy of the Old Man of the 
Mountain than of the Catholic king of chivalric Gaul. Nogaret 
had with him a band of three hundred horsemen, and being 
joined by adherents of the Colonnas and other malcontents and 
traitors, came secretly to the environs of Anagni, an old town in 
the ancient maritime province of Italy, and about forty miles south- 
east from Rom 3. Here Pope Boniface was staying with some of 
the cardinals. It was his native place, and he felt there more 
security and peace thai] in his episcopal city. 

The conspirators not only bribed some of the pontifical 
guard, as Moroni says (Dizionzrio : art " Bonif. VIII."), but 
even the chief men of the town sold the Vicar of Christ their 
king, their countryman, and their fellow-townsman for the debased 
coin of France. At midnight, September 7, 1303, the whole 



592 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNL [Feb., 

troop swarmed around the palace where the Holy Father was, 
and with cries of " Death to Pope Boniface ! Long live the 
King of France!" attacked it on different sides. We can imagine 
the feelings of the venerable old man, who in his eighty-seventh 
year found himself suddenly roused and informed of the cause of 
the tumult. Doubtless, however, whatever sadness may have 
invaded his aged breast gave way quickly to sentiments of con- 
fidence, of courage, mayhap even of joy, that he was made 
worthy to follow so closely in the footsteps of his Divine Chief. 
So vigorous, too, were the efforts made by the faithful members 
of his household, and so well did the great building lend itself 
to the purposes of defence, that it was full midday before the 
combined bands of Nogaret and Colonna succeeded in effecting an 
entrance. 

Meanwhile the pope vested himself in full pontificals, even to 
the tiara, to which he himself had added the second of the three 
crowns that encircle it, knelt awhile before the altar, then 
mounted his throne and ordered the doors of the audience 
chamber to be thrown open. " Since I am to be taken by 
treachery," he said, according 1 to Darras, "like my divine Master, 
and am in the face of death,.! wish at least to die as a pope." 
He then took his crucifix in one hand, and in the other held 
the symbolic keys. On account of the dreadful confusion* which 
now followed the bursting in of the infuriated soldiery, it is 
natural that accounts, even of eye-witnesses, should vary in regard 
to the details of what was said and done. Sciarra Colonna, with 
drawn sword, rushed in first, but stood awed and irresolute under 
the calm, intrepid eye of his spiritual and temporal superior. 
Perhaps he felt a silent reproach for this return to the amnesty 
granted him by his sovereign and conqueror four years before. 
The leader of the French now rushed forward, and seemed as if 
about to use for the first time that knightly sword wherewith 
he had been girded for his services as chancellor to Philip, on the 
defenceless body of an aged priest, but he also quailed before 
the majesty of the pontiff. Lawyer as he was, however, he 
began to use his tongue and to lash therewith the victim of his 
wiles and violence. " My lord the kingf gives you your life : 
lay down the tiara; resign the papacy." There was no reply. 
"You will not? Then I am going to take you to Lyons to be 
judged and deposed by a general council of all the bishops." 
The pope made answer different from that of Elias to the 
captain of fifty: "Behold my head, behold my neck! I am 



1890.] THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. 593 

ready to suffer for the faith of Christ and the liberty of his 
church. Pope as I am, and legitimate Vicar of Jesus Christ, I 
will patiently suffer condemnation and deposition at the hands of 
the Patareni." These words alluded not only to the heresies 
prevalent in certain districts of France, but cut Nogaret per- 
sonally, as his own progenitors had been condemned for attach- 
ment to the sect named. 

The pontiff was then left under a guard of soldiers while the 
sacrilegious invaders of his residence scattered themselves to riot 
and pillage. For two days and more the aged pope remained in 
durance too vile to be described, and deprived of rest, not only, 
but even of food. At last the people of Anagni, driven by shame 
and pity, and excited by the appeals of Cardinal Fieschi, took 
arms for the rescue of him who had come " unto his own," 
and had trusted in the hospitality of his native city. Crying 
out, "Long live the Pope ! Death to traitors!" they drove out 
the hostile bands, killed some of them and took others prisoners, 
amongst the latter Nogaret himself, whom the Vicar of Christ, 
however, set free without imposing penalty or requiring ran- 
som. 

A few days later Boniface set out for Rome, where he re- 
ceived a most extraordinary ovation from the people. But, alas 
for human nature! The cardinals of the Orsini family, another 
of those Roman patrician clans, indignant that they should have 
been suspected of complicity against him, would not allow him 
to enter the papal residence, but imprisoned him again in his 
own capital and detained him for a time. Then at length the 
pontiff felt the reaction setting in and his stout constitution giving 
way ; his last illness seized him. He died " like a pope," to use 
his own words. We have the authority of the " process " used 
in the posthumous inquiry into his conduct at the General Coun- 
cil of Vienne, A.D. 1311, eight years after his death, that he 
" made profession of all the articles of faith in the presence of 
eight cardinals, according to the usage of the Roman pontiffs," 
received the Sacraments, and gave up the ghost on the iith of 
October, 1303, one month after the "outrage at Anagni." 

Considering the disturbed condition of things in Italy at that 
time, and the positive, stern, and inflexible character of Boniface, 
it is no wonder that many stories should be current about him 
and the wildest rumors regarding his every action. Certain 
Ghibelline and Gallican writers, among them Chateaubriand, re- 
peat how he died in anger and despair at the unrevenged out- 



594 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 

rages of which he had been the victim. " Un Colonne lui 
frappa au visage," says the writer just named (quoted by Rohr- 
bacher), alluding to the assertion of some that Sciarra Colonna 
had struck the pope with his gauntlet at Anagni, " Boniface en 
meurt de rage et de douleur."* 

And here we may be allowed to remark, What a hard time 
the popes had and still have ! The predecessor of Boniface died 
in prison ; he himself suffered what we have related ; his suc- 
cessor, Saint Benedict XL, died of poison administered in a bou- 
quet by a youth in the habit of a nun (Moroni, Dizionario ad 
hunc loc.) What Chateaubriand refers to is the tale that Boni- 
face when dying bit his hands in impotent rage. But " history 
is death to atheism : she is God's witness," and so is time. On 
the nth of October, 1605, three centuries and two years after 
his death, it became necessary on account of certain repairs in 
St. Peter's to remove the sarcophagus of the pope, and a nat- 
ural and perhaps pious curiosity led them to raise the lid of the 
wooden coffin inside the marble tomb. This was done, however, 
in the presence of the cardinal vicar-general of Rome, of the 
whole body of canons of St. Peter, of several bishops then pres- 
ent in the city, and of the chief lay magistrate and certain phy- 
sicians; even the general public was admitted. What was the 
astonishment of the beholders to see the body as if in sleep, 
and in a wonderful state of preservation ! " Corpus integrum et 
incorruptum," says the chronicler, " manus habebat longas et 
pulchras cum unguibus, signis venarum et nervorum, adeo ut 
videntibus summam injiceret admirationem"f (v. Darras). A no- 
tary drew up a formal account of this disclosure of the body, of 
its marvellous condition, of the hands which calumny had made 
the dying pontiff rend with his remaining teeth, of the placid 
expression of the face, and of the gorgeous pontifical robes in 
which the corpse was attired. So God in time brought about the 
vindication of his vicar. 

Philip, the modern Pilate, \ as Dante calls him, died in 1314, 
and as if in punishment for his crimes, his three sons, who one 
after another succeeded him, left no legal heirs, and in 1328 the 
crown that had been handed down from father to son for over 

* " A Colonna struck him in the face, and Boniface died of rage and grief at the insult." 
t " The body, entire and incorrupt, had long and beautiful hands, with the finger-nails 
and marks of the veins and nerves so perfect as to fill the beholders with the greatest wonder." 
\ " I see the modern Pilate so relentless 

This^does not sate him " (the outrage at Anagni), " but without decretal 
He to the temple bears his sordid sails." 

Purgatorio, xx. 91, Longfellow's trans. 






1890.] THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. 595 

three hundred years passed away from the direct line of the 
Capets. 

And now that we are about to draw the veil over the picture 
that first drew us to look into the history of Boniface VIII., let 
us try and take in his remarkable character as a whole. He 
had enemies, but the man who has none, according to the Rou- 
manian proverb, "is not of much account." He was not con- 
spicuous by his mildness ; in fact, he erred perhaps on the side 
of severity, especially in his treatment, necessary though it un- 
doubtedly was, of his predecessor, the ex-pope Saint Peter Ce- 
lestine. "A spoonful of honey will catch more flies than a barrel 
of vinegar" it is true, but when rocks are to be blasted, then it 
is vinegar that is required. And this was the mission of Boni- 
face VIII. But he was not revengeful, and showed as much 
forbearance with the prince whom Johann von Miiller calls 
Philip the Insolent (Alzog, ii. 819) as Saint Francis of Sales 
might have exhibited. Not a word is said against his morals, 
no stain of avarice is ascribed to him. His literary ability is 
shown in the style of the bulls which he issued, his political in- 
terference was uniformly for peace, and for justice even at the 
cost of peace. 

" Catholics are too apt," says the learned annotator of Bishop England's 
works (vol. ii. p. 519, ed. 1849), "to cherish an excessive admiration for that 
gentle and. retiring virtue which appears in such men as Celestine V., and to im- 
agine that there is something foreign to the Christian temper in that bolder and 
sterner character which is seen in Gregory and Innocent and Urban and Boni- 
face. But we should remember that the Old Testament sets the example of such 
men as the last in a light equally advantageous with that of the former, and that 
God raises them up especially to guide his church in the periods of storm and 
tempest, inspiring by the ' same Spirit ' some with the holy purpose of abdicating 
the world and its honors like the humble Celestine, and others with the resolution 
so nobly expressed by Urban VI. when advised to take the same course : ' Stabo 
et debellabo diabolum.' " 

This writer might have added that even in the " Law of 
Love " Boniface could find precedent for his severity, and this 
not only in the examples of Saint Peter, his first predecessor, in 
the interview with Ananias and Saphira (Acts v.), and of Saint 
Paul with Elymas (Acts xiii.), but even of the Lamb of God 
himself in his dealings with the proud and unjust (Matt xxiii. 
14 ; John xviii. 6, etc.) 

We have already quoted some of Dante's very hard and par- 
tisan expressions regarding Boniface, but no word in that poet, 



596 THE OUTRAGE AT ANAGNI. [Feb., 

nor in any other writer, however hostile, says Cardinal Wiseman 
(Essays), " contains the slightest insinuation against his moral 
conduct or character, nor any imputation of avarice, and this is 
not a little thing in one who has been more bitterly assailed 
than almost any other pontiff." The poet-laureate of Italy, 
Dante's contemporary, Petrarch, calls Boniface " the marvel of the 
world," and the Protestant Plaick has written a vindication of 
him. There is in the history of the church, and especially in that 
of her chief bishops, a very great analogy to that of Jesus Christ 
himself. It is very hard to reflect how they seem to be set up, 
as he was, "as a sign which shall be spoken against," as King 
James' version has it, or " as a sign which shall be contra- 
dicted," as it is in the Douay (Luke ii. 34), without feeling 
convinced that the pope is indeed what he claims to be, really 
and indeed the undying vicar and representative of our Lord on 
earth. The Catholic heart of Dante melted at the parallel which 
the " outrage at Anagni " suggested ; he forgot the fierce in- 
vective with which he had assailed Boniface, and indignantly 
sang: 

'' I see the flower-de-luce Alagna enter, 
And Christ in his own Vicar captive made. 
I see him yet another time derided, 
I see renewed the vinegar and gall, 
And between living thieves I see him slain. 
I see the modern Pilate so relentless 
This does not sate him, but without decretal 
He to the temple bears his sordid sails ! 
When, O my Lord! shall I be joyful made 
By looking on the vengeance which, concealed, 
Makes sweet thine anger in thy secrecy? " * 

EDW. F. X. McSwEENY. 

* Longfellow's Purgatorio, xx. 86. 



1890.] DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. 



597 



DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT.* 

MR. WILFRID WARD'S book is a valuable contribution to the 
literature and history of the Tractarian movement, in which his 
father, Mr. W. G. Ward, played a conspicuous part. Indeed, 
after Cardinal Newman to whose genius and elevation of moral 
purpose the movement owes its chief attraction no name we 
could mention in connection with it stood more prominently 
forward from 1838 to 1845. These years were most eventful 
ones, both to the actors in the Oxford drama and also to the 
English Church Establishment^ whose religious character, it was 
hoped, might be changed by the views, the aims, and teaching 
of a few gifted and high-minded men. Their efforts to Catholi- 
cize England, and their failure to do more than save their own 
souls, is an oft-repeated story. Like Saul of old, they went 
forth on their errand, at first but a humble one, viz., to restore 
to the Establishment the teaching of the standard Anglican, but 
not Catholic, divines. But as they travelled onwards their vision 
grew wider and still wider, till their aim became the impossible 
one of merging error into, truth, and of uniting a sect with the 
church. This was not to be done as it well might have been 
done by the submission of the former and by the renouncement 
of its independence, but by what is styled " corporate reunion " 
in other words, by a system of concessions in which both Rome 
and England, meeting on equal terms, were mutually each to 
yield what the other refused to accept. Such a scheme, of course, 
was predestined to failure ; and as a corporate body the English 
Church has profited little or not at all by the Tractarian effort. 
Yet at the same time their work was not all labor lost, for the 
men themselves gained the Kingdom. Their aim had been so 
high, their trust had been so great, and their love for all that 
was Catholic had grown so strong that they could never again be 
as they had once been, mere Anglican Protestants. When, there- 
fore, their hope of Catholicizing England by means of the Estab- 
lishment failed them, one by one they entered the church; and on 
the whole, though of course there were exceptions, the Tracta- 
rian leaders became Catholics. Thus was their hope fulfilled and 
their fidelity to their principles rewarded ; and though the result 
came to pas; very differently from their first expectations, none 

* William George Ward ani the Oxford Movement. By Wilfrid Ward. London and 
New York : Macmillan & Co. 1889. 



598 DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. [Feb., 

in the end rejoiced more than the Oxford converts that their 
dream of the reunion of the churches was exchanged for the 
solid reality of a simple and child-like submission to the one true 
church, and the unconditional acceptance of the Catholic faith. 

As we said above, all this is well known. Yet as we read 
in turn of the part played by each individual Tractarian in the 
Oxford movement fresh matter of interest appears, and the old 
story is seen from a new point of view. The movers themselves, 
too, were men whose thoughts and words are well worth our 
noting. They were men by whose writings, \>y whose poetry, 
by whose philosophy England will ever be the richer. In each 
leader we see a special gift, and if Newman be the prophet, 
and Faber, Caswell, and Keble be considered the poets of the 
movement, we claim for Mr. W. G. Ward the not less important 
part of being its chief philosopher. 

There is no doubt that Ward was a great philosopher; but 
in his case the gravity associated with deep thought was greatly 
mitigated. He was a born logician, to whom insufficient or 
defective reasoning was positively painful, who could never rest 
satisfied with an answer that did not go straight to the root ot 
a question It was in the October term of 1830 that W. G. 
Ward went to Oxford and was entered as a commoner at 
Christ Church. At this date no form of religious thought was 
very active in the university, and he therefore threw his chiet 
interest into the political discussions of the Oxford Union, a 
debating society of which he was then described as the "Tory 
Chief." Of the characteristics of a genuine Tory we find, how- 
ever, but few signs in Ward. His keen power of speculative 
insight into every question brought before him, and the zest 
and enjoyment with which he used this power, were antagonistic 
to the tacit acquiescence in existing conditions which is encour- 
aged by the conservative spirit. " He always brought everything 
back to first principles," writes of him an old friend ; and first 
principles and Tory principles are not always at one. In the 
end the philosophical bias of his mind, joined to strong popular 
sympathies and a general and thoroughly Catholic appreciation 
of the true position of the poor in the Christian economy, 
proved stronger than the hereditary instinct which on first enter- 
ing the university induced him to join the party of which both 
his father and grandfather were then zealous supporters ; and 
though he does not appear later on in life to have been an 
active politician, the bent of his mind was liberal. At this we 
are in no way surprised ; for if Ward's speculative sense pre- 



1890.] DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. 599 

vented his being a Tory intellectually, it was in no way counter- 
balanced by any romantic or poetical love of the history or the 
sentiments of bygone times. Such a feeling enables some minds 
though they cannot intellectually admire much that is in the 
past to find therein a charm more potent than reason, which 
causes them to be unwilling to disturb or to part with much 
that is argumentatively indefensible. In Ward this sense seems to 
have been absent to an unusual degree. The poetry of the 
past did not appeal to him, and he looked on history as a 
mere dry record of facts in no way more attractive than the 
columns of his daily newspaper. Indeed, he would maintain that 
the acts of Julius Caesar, the romances of chivalry, or the stern 
zeal and fanatical devotion displayed in the English civil wars 
were intrinsically no more interesting than the doings of any in- 
significant Mr. Smith of to-day, and the story of his breakfast, of 
his journey to the city in an omnibus, and of his return home 
to dinner. 

We must remember, as Mr. Wilfrid Ward bids us, that the 
Oxford of to-day has little in common with the Oxford of fiftv 
years ago; and that though but slight outward change may be 
seen (for the old walls are so aged that a century more or less 
can hardly be noted on their stones), each decade of this last 
half-century has probably brought about more change of spirit 
and of thought than any full century in the years gone by ; 
and perhaps no years were more pregnant with new life than 
those from 1835 to I %45- These were the years when the Trac- 
tarian movement was at its height ; and when the movement 
collapsed it did not leave ecclesiastical things as they had been 
before. Its far-reaching effect has been curtly stated by Mr. 
James Anthony Froude ; and though Mr. Wilfrid Ward disputes 
his view, there is a certain amount of truth in it. " But for the 
Oxford movement, scepticism might have continued a harmless 
speculation of a few philosophers." In other words, it set men 
thinking, or, rather, it would have been more correct to say it 
set Anglican churchmen thinking. Thought throughout Europe 
had been busy enough for some years, and in England it had not 
been inactive. The semi- political philosophy of Bentham, of the 
two Mills, and of other so-called radicals was, in the beginning 
of this century, in possession of the most active and eager intel- 
ligences in this country. We believe we do the philosophy no 
injustice when we say that it was a system which claimed to be 
outside all divine revelation, and that it was content to dispense 
with the existence of a Supreme Being. At the same time, it 



6oo DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. [Feb., 

had the temporal welfare of mankind greatly at heart, and to the 
following of some of its maxims much of the material prosperity 
of England may be attributed. Had the triumph of the utili- 
tarian philosophy, however, been complete, England would prob- 
ably have lost her special characteristic of moderation in dealing 
with political and social evils, and her pride in being able to cure 
abuses whilst avoiding the danger of tearing up corn and weeds 
alike. In the place of sober reforms she might have fallen a 
victim to revolutionary chances ; for, as is well known, the 
school of which we speak were anxious to abolish the English 
aristocracy and to destroy the English Church Establishment. 
Both, no doubt, needed much reform, but at that time it is 
doubtful whether England could have spared the latter ; for 
though to-day it may be argued that the Catholic Church is 
well-nigh ready to take the place of the Establishment, sixty 
years ago this was hardly the case. 

The fear of being destroyed had, however, the effect of arous- 
ing Anglican churchmen. To fight a common foe, two schools 
of thought arose \fithin the Establishment almost contempora- 
neously the High and the Broad Church systems ; and these 
have since then remained the most active amongst the multi- 
tude of divers opinions permitted by law to exist within the 
Church of England. With the latter we are but slightly con- 
cerned, and were it not that for a while W. G. Ward was a zealous 
follower of its founder, Dr. Arnold, of Rugby School, we had 
hardly need to mention it. But no account of Ward would be 
complete without some notice, which space obliges us to make 
brief, of his early religious leanings leanings which, in the 
first years of his Oxford life, seem to have been in the very op- 
posite direction to those of his later years. We must also en- 
deavor to give a slight sketch of the working of an active and 
logical mind during the change which transformed the young 
Benthamite into a fervent Catholic. 

Ward came to Oxford an admirer of Bentham, if not a philo- 
sophic Radical. Here his first religious attraction was Whateley, 
the future Archbishop of Dublin, in whom he recognized a 
" breadth of sympathy and a dislike of unreality " which claimed 
his adherence, and whose logical distinctness of mind he also 
much appreciated. This influence, however, lasted but a short 
time, and to it succeeded that of Dr. Arnold, in whose teaching 
Ward's special attractions in the higher life, unworldliness, hatred 
of all shams and love of the poor, found full recognition. Here 
he was content for a while to abide. But, full of moral excel- 



1890.] 



DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. 



60 1 



lence as was Dr. Arnold's teaching, and sympathetic and large- 
hearted as was the master himself, Arnold's system rested on too 
insecure a basis ultimately to satisfy so clear and keen a mind as 
Ward possessed. Morally there was little fault to find, but 
after a while he discovered that intellectually Arnold had no firm 
ground to rest upon, and that the spirit of free inquiry on which 
his teaching was based would carry a logician like Ward to the 
denial of all revelation whatsoever. Through life Ward consis- 
tently maintained that the unaided intellect of man was ins'uffi- 
cient to furnish him with the most elementary articles of faith 
(even with the belief in the existence of a God), and Arnold's 
method of reaching truth namely, by the principle of free in- 
quiry applied to Scripture whilst it furnished sufficient doctrine 
for Arnold's moral teaching, was to Ward's deeper insight quite 
unequal to 'found a satisfactory basis for any religion at all. 

But though Arnold's religious teaching failed Ward, he was 
in no danger of losing all faith, as did so many of Arnold's dis- 
ciples. His strong religious sense, his deep realization of God's 
presence and power in the world, and his early resolution that 
his whole life should be devoted to the promotion of God's 
glory, saved him from a like fate. When he discovered that in- 
tellectually his creed was undermined, he decided that the main- 
spring of faith was not in the intellect at all, but in the con- 
science ; and he was thus uninjured by the weakness of Dr. 
Arnold's reasoning. The promptings of conscience, if carefully 
listened to and carefully followed, lead us forward ; and the con- 
nection between holy living and true teaching he discovered to 
be intimate and sufficient for our guidance. " Conscience was 
the primary informant, as being directly conversant with the 
moral nature of the individual, and with the first principles 
which that nature implied, and also as giving him intuitive trust 
in others whose moral perceptions were wider and truer than 
his own." Thus he gained the dogmatic principle, and this, 
joined to a craving for a visible and trustworthy guide which his 
nature had ever experienced, and which is supplied by the true 
church, made him intellectually a Catholic some years before his 
actual submission. In those far-off years it was, perhaps, not so 
easy as it is to-day to tear away from the Establishment and to 
enter the fold. It is true, no convert ever had fewer prejudices 
to overcome or less love for the religion of his birth to hold 
him back. Still, even Ward could not leap at one bound from 
the latitudinarianism of Dr. Arnold into the full plenitude of 
the Catholic faith and body. Like so many others, he was first 



602 DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. [Feb., 

a follower of Newman, and it was only -when the latter was 
ready to leave the Establishment that Ward agreed to follow. 

In his early Oxford days he seems to have entertained a 
prejudice against the great Tractarian leader. When asked to 
attend the sermons which the latter was then preaching in the 
University pul-pit of St. Mary's Church, and which were stirring 
the whole religious life of England, Ward's only answer was : 
" Why should I go and listen to such myths?" By the strategy 
of a friend, Ward found himself one Sunday afternoon at the 
church door just as the clock was striking five, the hour for the 
sermon. "'Now, Ward,' said he, 'Newman is at this moment 
going .up into his pulpit. Why should you not enter and hear 
him once ? It can do you no harm. If you don't like the 
preaching you need not go a second time ; but do hear and 
judge what the thing is like.' By the will of God, Ward was 
persuaded, and he entered the church. . . . That sermon changed 
his whole life." From this moment the personal influence which 
Newman exercised over Ward was the chief motor fh his life ; 
and as time went on it only increased. Many years after, when 
both were Catholics, and they differed on a matter of ecclesi- 
astical policy, Ward wrote plaintively to Newman : " Ever since 
I have been unable to act with you, I have felt myself a kind 
of intellectual orphan." 

Still, in those first days Ward's intellectual convictions were 
hardly with the Tractarians. It was his animus chiefly that 
changed. Up to this time the movement had repelled him ; 
now he felt for it a moral if not an intellectual attraction. 
These were the days when Newman still believed and hoped in 
and worked for the via media. This did not go far enough for 
Ward. He required that the principles of the Reformation, as 
well as its actual results, should be condamnsd; and for some 
years this was the point at which Newman stopped short. The 
appearance of Hurrell Fronde's Remains, a work in which the 
Reformation was condemned and its authors met with severe 
criticism, was the event which decided Ward on avowedly joining 
the Tractarians. The book simply delighted him. Thoroughness 
was its characteristic ; it never temporized, but put forth the 
author's not over-popular views in an uncompromising way that 
even Ward himself could hardly have exceeded. Hurrell Froude 
professed "openly his admiration for Rome and his hatred of the 
Reformers " ; and again, what greatly attracted Ward, " authority 
in religion was the avowed principle. A clear, explicit rule 01 
faith was substituted for perplexing and harassing speculation." 



1890.] DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. 603 

The book was edited by Newman and Keble, and was approved 
by them. At length, therefore, Ward was satisfied, and allowed 
his intellect to follow in harmony with the moral charm which 
Newman, as we have said, already exercised over him, and he 
formally joined the Tractarian party. As was generally the case 
with Ward, the extremest amongst the extreme, he was soon 
even ahead of it, and, regardless of all strategy, was delighting 
in arousing and shocking Protestant prejudice, and was never 
better pleased than when he was most paradoxical. 

Newman himself tells* us the movement at this point was 
joined by a new school of thought, consisting of " eager, acute, 
resolute minds, who had heard much of Rome. They cut into 
the movement at an angle, and then set about turning it in a 
new direction." Amongst these none was more active than 
Ward, nor did any other more completely scare and annoy the 
older and, if more sober, the less logical Tractarians than did 
he. These latter, though falsely claiming the proud name of 
Catholics, and really opposed to much of the popular Protes- 
tantism by which they were surrounded, were still more strongly 
opposed to the claims of Rome. Indeed, like their successors, 
the Ritualists of to-day, they may be termed merely fancy- 
religionists, for whilst they chose here and there a point of 
Catholic doctrine and insisted greatly on it, they were entirely 
without any due appreciation or knowledge of the true propor- 
tion of the faith, or of the key-note to all our belief, viz., 
church authority resting on a divine and guiding Spirit, which 
is as potent to-day as in the time of the Apostles, to lead us into 
all truth. No ; all they did was to appeal to antiquity for certain 
doctrines which, however much they might be ignored in the 
popular religion of the day, they believed to be taught by 
their Anglican Prayer-book. Content when they found such 
confirmation in the Fathers, they never troubled themselves as to 
their further teaching or stopped to consider that whilst antiquity, 
no doubt, teaches the doctrines of the Real Presence and the 
necessity for a valid priesthood, it is equally distinct in teaching 
the doctrines of Transubstantiation and of the Papal Supremacy. 
The younger Tractarians men like Ward, Oakeley, Morris, and 
Dalgairns mastered this truth early in the day, and joined the 
church ; the older men, such as Pusey, Isaac Williams the poet, 
Sir William Palmer, and Keble, never reached it, and they died 
Anglican Protestants. Between the two, and for some length of 
time, hovered Newman. He was torn asunder between the stern 
logic of his principles, which the uncompromising Ward would 
VOL. L. 39 



604 DK. WARD A.VD THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. [Feb., 

never allow him to lose sight of, and his love for his early 
friends, for his communion, and for Oxford. The history of the 
struggle of the two parties is the history of the later years of 
the Tractarian movement. 

When once Newman's doubts as to the truth of Anglicanism 
were fairly aroused he retired from the post of leader, left Ox- 
ford, and in the quiet village of Littlemore spent some years in 
earnest prayer and watching for light and guidance. The practical 
lead of the movement now devolved upon Mr. Ward, who, ad- 
vancing beyond the point at which he* and the extreme Tracta- 
rians had at first been content to aim the corporate reunion of 
Rome and England in the form of a reconciliation which was to 
be neither bitter nor humiliating to either advocated principles 
which could never hope to obtain permanent sanction in the 
Establishment. The most startling feature in Ward's new teach- 
ing was the exaltation of the church at the expense of the 
Establishment. In his own communion he can discover no good 
whatsoever ; whilst not only does he accept and glory in accept- 
ing all the formal doctrines- of the Catholic Church, but he goes 
further, and in the innocent but thoroughly un-English devotions 
and religious habits of perfervid and enthusiastic southern Catholics 
he npt only sees no harm, but he would wish his northern 
countrymen likewise to accept them. These views were first 
promulgated in a series of articles in the British Critic, a 
widely circulated periodical of that day ; and, we need hardly 
add, they caused a sensation bordering on consternation amongst 
old-fashioned churchmen, whose religion and whose patriotism 
were closely interwoven, and who felt equally aggrieved by 
Ward's exaltation of all that was foreign compared to what was 
English as with his preference for what was Roman compared to 
what was Anglican. The adverse criticism with which the articles 
in the British Critic were received, far from inducing Ward 
to soften their asperity or to tone down their supposed exaggera- 
tion, made him resolve to put forth his opinions in a collected 
and extreme form, and, so to say, to challenge the authorities to 
allow or to disallow distinct Roman teaching in a clergyman of 
the Establishment. This work, whfch Ward began as a pamphlet, 
but which fast grew into a big book, was the once famous but 
now little known Ideal of a Christian Church. 

The Ideal was attacked a few months after its publication 
by the authorities at Oxford, who proposed to summon a con- 
vocation of the governing body, and to deprive Ward of the 
degree which had been bestowed on him conditionally to his 






1890.] DR. WARD AND THE OXFORD MOTEMENT. 605 

subscribing to and holding the Thirty-nine Articles. The book, 
it was not untruly said, was inconsistent with such a subscrip- 
tion, and indeed Ward frankly owned that it was so. His defence 
was mainly based on the inconsistency of the Articles not only one 
with the other, but also with many different parts of the Prayer- 
book, to which his allegiance was equally pledged. The Articles, he 
pleaded, were inconsistent with the Prayer-book, and the Prayer- 
book with the ordinary belief of an average churchman. The 
whole thing was an imbroglio which no consistent man could ac- 
cept ; his own subscription was as honest as that of any other 
man at Oxford ; it was the whole illogical piece- meal system, 
not Ward himself, which was in fault. To Catholics who know 
aught of the Anglican formularies this is no news, and it is fully 
admitted by the more reasonable Anglicans themselves. But, 
although few are bold enough to claim a logical coherence for 
the English Establishment, there happens to be one point on 
which she speaks with an unfaltering voice. "The Church of 
Rome has erred," is her presumptuously worded judicial sentence. 
Now, it was the main contention of Ward's book that in this 
"erring" body he found his "Ideal." "Oh, most joyful! most 
wonderful! most unexpected sight! We find the whole cycle of 
Roman doctrine gradually possessing numbers of English church- 
men ! " was his proud boast ; and, as -those who heard his de- 
fence tell us, that if he said once he said twenty times in the 
course of his speech before Convocation, " I believe the whole 
cycle of Roman doctrine." Thus defied, Oxford could hardly do 
otherwise than condemn the book, and then deprive Ward of his 
degree. 

The university had done its worst; but there was one thing 
which no solemn don nor woolly-headed parson could achieve; 
They could not subdue Ward's lively spirits, nor take the fun out 
of him. A few hours after his degradation he was discussing the 
chance of his having in the future to wear an undergraduate's cap 
and gown, for his degree was now gone ; and was turning into 
ridicule the probable dilemma which his abnormal position might 
cause the pompous head of his own college. On the following 
morning, too; his friends, on coming to his rooms to discuss the 
state of affairs, were amused to find that whilst he had already 
written to more than one eminent lawyer as to the legal aspect 
of his degradation, he had also found time to compose an amus- 
ing parody on a then popular ballad, which he applied to his 
position, and sang to them with much gusto. 

Mr. Ward's condemnation preceded only by a few months his 



606 DR. WARD AXD THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. [Feb., 

reception into the Catholic Church. In the interim he married, 
an act on his part which gave great offence to his High-Church 
friends, for clerical celibacy was a favorite though a rarely ob- 
served point of discipline with the Tractarian party. Ward, 
in the Ideal, had written strongly in its favor; but as he 
had no belief in the validity of Anglican orders, he looked on 
himself as a simple layman, and felt at liberty to marry without 
being guilty of any inc6nsistency. His action was, however, dif- 
ferently viewed by others, and it may be said to have wrecked 
his influence with his party. The Tractarian movement itself was 
now nearing its end, and Ward's marriage was accused by many 
persons of hastening its collapse. His condemnation at Oxford 
was soon followed by that of his friend, Mr. Oakeley, in London, 
whose church in Margaret Street had for some time been the 
centre of what to-day would be called ritualistic services. To 
this blow may be added the fast-growing conviction that New- 
man's final step could not now be much longer delayed. To 
many whose only reason for remaining so long in the Establish- 
ment was unwillingness to move before their leader gave the 
word, his joining the church was only the long-expected sign 
that they too might follow. Amongst such disciples Ward ranks 
the foremost. Indeed, some years before, when taxed by a priest 
on his inconsistency in remaining an Anglican, believing as he 
did, his answer was : " You Catholics know what it is to have a 
pope. Well, Newman is my pope ; without his sanction I can- 
not move." 

And now at length to his "pope" light, and grace to follow 
the light, had been vouchsafed, and he had allowed it to be 
known that his faith in Anglicanism was at an end, and that he 
awaited only the opportunity to make his submission to the Cath- 
olic Church. This strongly affected Ward, and a final word from 
his wife, in which she announced that she could " stand Angli- 
canism no longer," decided him to delay no more. Together, 
therefore, they left Oxford for London, and a few days later 
were received into the church by the Jesuit Father Brownbill. 



1890.] THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 607 



THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 

THE world has a few places around which its dreams are 
gathered cities golden with glamor and gray with age, whose 
names, Florence, Venice, Rome, have a sound in our ears like 
the sound of exquisite music, and a fragrance like the fragrance 
of the world's dead roses. Oxford is a sharer in this lovely 
fame, the most sacred place in all England except, perhaps, 
that other place of Stratford-on-Avon, where Shakspere's house 
and Shakspere's grave draw, magnet-like, generations of loving 
pilgrims from many lands ; or that holy fane of Westminster 
Abbey, where the dust of the great dead lies amid the glories 
man's hand has raised to God. 

I wonder whether it is best to see or to leave unseen the 
places one has dreamed about ? Perhaps the reality is never so 
good as the vision, missing, perhaps, some enchantment of im- 
agination, some mist like that which to the vision of the short- 
sighted enfolds all things in a glory of vagueness. At least 
with such a thought the untravelled may console themselves, 
seeing with other eyes, hearing with other ears, and keeping 
each his dream. 

Like many another famous place, Oxford does not come forth 
to meet one with her treasures. From the train, as it glides 
in after its quick run from Paddington, one catches for a mo- 
ment a fleeting glimpse of towers, and then is lost in the usual 
grimness of a railway station. The train deposits one amid 
slums, out of sight of the things which make Oxford memorable, 
not profaning them with shriek and whistle. Unhappily, how- 
ever, the jingle of the tram-car is heard in "the High," and the 
sight of the long yellow cars is a discordant thing to one who 
will look back from that special point in " the most beautiful 
street in Europe," whence one sees winding away college front 
and cathedral tower in a vista incomparably stately and beau- 
tiful. 

It was warm June weather when I first made acquaintance 
with Oxford, to have my best dreams realized Oxford, lying 
low, all drowsy in golden heat, with the wide river flowing 
away from her down to London town, and the little Isis and 
the little Cherwell, all trembling with shoals of water-lilies, ringing 
her round, cold and pure. The country was at one's door in 



608 THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. [Feb., 

the enchanted town, the birds waking one before dawn with little 
exquisite trills breaking into one's sleep ; they were cutting the 
grass in the college gardens, and the scent of it, heavy and 
sweet, flooded one's dreams. Wolsey's elms, with their vener- 
able heads cropped, were all verdant in the streets, having broken 
out once more fnto youngling leaves ; the fritillaries were over 
in Christ Church meadow, the dusky-red academic flower which 
grows only here, but the cut hay was lying in luscious swaths ; 
it was just that perfect time of the year when all things have 
reached perfection and have not begun again the returning path. 

I was visiting at the house of a professor, itself wrapped in 
greenery and overlooking a college garden. I used to wake at 
dawn, because the air was oversweet, and watch the mists fold- 
ing themselves away and the new day arising, rose and gold, 
over the city whose towers and halls and quadrangles are always 
gray always gray, yet a background for much color. The 
greenery has mantled the loftiest tower, and the Virginia creeper 
hangs luxuriantly on wall and gate-way ; in autumn it will be 
blood-red, and the many-colored chrysanthemums will press 
thickly, a yard high, against the lower walls. June had another 
kind of garnishing. The English love flowers, and every window, 
arched and quaint, had its window box, flaming with scarlet 
geraniums contrasted vividly with the blue of lobelia or corn- 
flower. It was as though the old walls had broken out riotous 
with youth and bloom. 

The undergraduate there are three thousand of them at the 
university contributed also to the colors. He had blossomed 
into flannels, for it was approaching commemoration, and the 
proctors had relaxed their vigilance. In his striped " blazer " 
and cricketing cap young England is comely bronzed faced, blue- 
eyed, frank of countenance. It is not often your English youth 
gets the chance of donning colors ; let him escape from tweeds 
and neutral coloring into the brilliant neglige of flannels, and all 
the color-sense in him runs riot. So he fills the quads, and the 
gardens and the Broad Walk going down to the river with 
picturesque gleams, and is cool in the wide sunshine that floods 
all open spaces. He comes and he goes, this representative of 
young England ; the University gathers round her knees the sons 
of men, for ever young ; the same, yet not the same. One thinks 
the old buildings must take the human race to be one that does 
riot grow old. 

The most beautiful of all the colleges are Magdalen (pro- 
nounced "Maudlin "), founded in 1474 by Bishop Waynflete, and 



1890.] THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 609 

New College, founded by William of Wykeham in 1380. No 
Protestant foundation of later centuries can touch the beauty of 
these and. the other pre- Reformation colleges. One feels in face 
of them that when the Mass-bell and the Angelus ceased to 
be rung in England the poetry and the art went with them. 
Then, too, the beautiful, stately names departed ; for St. Mary 
the Virgin, St. Mary Magdalen, Corpus Christi, All Souls', we 
have Wadham, Hertford, Pembroke, and so on, with a Puritanic 
hardness and coldness. 

Coming down " the High," as the famous thoroughfare of the 
High Street is called in Oxford, one sees Magdalen Tower facing 
one, a beautiful, lofty, square structure, exquisitely proportioned. 
At its angles are statues of St. Mary Magdalen, St. John, Henry 
VII., in whose reign it was built, and the founder. These were 
out of reach, happily, of the Cromwellian iconoclasts who in 
1649 repaid the ill-chosen hospitality of Dr. Wilkinson, the then 
president, to the Protector and his generals by wrecking what- 
ever offended their unlovely religious formulae. The figure of 
bur Blessed Lady was torn down from over the gate-way, the 
precious stained glass in the windows broken and trodden under 
foot, the organ looted away, by Oliver's own orders, to Hampton 
Court, where it remained till the Restoration. Scarcely any 
traces show this devastation, unlike others of the grand English 
churches which Catholics built in an age of faith, and which 
now are ill-supplied by the cold Protestant worship. In the Lady 
Chapel at Ely, for example, only the exquisite tracery of stone 
in window and pillar and arch resisted' the destroyer; the cold, 
white glass is wintry where loving hands had set jewels for the 
sun to stream through, and in the interstices of the lovely stone- 
work one sees gleaming gems of gold and color remaining from 
the frescoes which were defaced. Sometimes they scraped away 
the faces of the saints and the Mother of God in their fanati- 
cism. 

On Magdalen Tower, of a May morning at sunrising, a pretty 
function takes place. Here, suspended in mid-air the tower is 
one hundred and forty-five feet high are the president, fellows, 
and choristers of Magdalen, all assembled to hail the rising sun 
on the first morning of summer. They sing a Latin hymn, 

" Te Deum Patrem colimus, 
Te laudibus prosequimur," 

in the dewy dawn, when the rose and gray are still in the sky 



6io THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. [Feb., 

and the sun has but just leaped above the horizon. The birds 
in the ivy for once have their songs outsung, for Magdalen 
choir is unrivalled ; I have been told it costs something like 
15,000 a year to keep up. Mr. Holman Hunt is making a 
picture of this impressive scene ; it will be in next year's Acad- 
emy, perhaps, "The origin of this custom has been much de- 
bated; some call it a remnant of sun-worship, others a Protestant 
substitute for the Requiem Mass for the soul of Henry VII., but 
no satisfactory conclusion has been arrived at. 

Every evening at six the Even-song is sung in Magdalen 
Chapel. If a Catholic wishes to be very stringent he can attend 
in the ante-chapel, and indeed, admittance to the chapel itself 
being had by ticket only, one need not be tempted to be less than 
stringent. Above one's head there will be a beautiful rose-win- 
dow in many shades of scarlet and purple ; the side windows are 
filled with glass in yellower shades ; dim and religious is the 
long choir, with its wonderfully carved stalls of oak rich with 
age, and beyond, a beautiful rood-screen and an altar-piece of 
Christ being taken from the cross. Then the choir comes filing 
in, all in white surplices, and presently one young man's voice, 
clear and ringing, will go leaping from height to height, soaring 
into the painted and carved roof, and drawing many hearts after 
its flight, truer and stronger and sweeter than the flight of any 
bird. Magdalen choir has many beautiful voices and one won- 
derful voice. When I was there there was a floriated iron 
screen between us and the inner chapel, but after the short 
Even-song was over we passed through and inspected at our 
will. It is a place where every day is gold and rose, a still 
place, full of richness and holiness. The men who raised this 
fane to God, in the name of Mary the Sinner, gave a glory to 
Him which no mutations of time or possession can take away. 
One's thoughts of it took shape in verse, which, like most verse, 
fell far short of what one would convey ; however, here it is : 

IN MAGDALEN CHAPEL. 
(June, 1889.) 

" Unto a sinner, Magdalen, 
This pile was given of godly men 
That she to Christ might give*again. 

"They raised it high, they raised it fair, 
A glory in the upper air, 
A glory for the world to wear. 



1890.] THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 6n 

" Lovely with color certainly, 
Gems and fine gold and tracery, 
And naught more fair by land or sea. 

" Lovely to make the senses faint, 
And set with many a haloed saint, 
And oaken carvings rich and quaint. 

" God blessed them in each rare device, 
A precious thing, a thing of price 
Mary the Sinner's edifice. 

" No gold that in the window high 
Trembles like any western sky 
Passes her hair's gold purity. 

" No jewels in the window set 
Shine like her tears, so salt and sweet, 
Wherewith she laved her Master's feet. 

" No incense, filling roof and nave, 
Could pass the precious nard she gave 
To make a sweetness in His grave. 

"No human song or song of bird 
Could dearer be to Christ the Lord 
Than the poor Sinner's trembling word. 

" Who loved so well, her place should be 
As high as righteous purity ; 
Magdalen Mary, pray for me ! 

" Unto a sinner, Magdalen, 
Lover of One without a stain, 
This pile was raised of godly men." 

From this feast of colors in the chapel one passes to the 
gray and green of the cloisters, where the reverence of old 
age in arch and wall goes side by side with the ever-springing 
youth of the velvety grasses. The cloisters run four sides of a 
grassy square, vaulted passages where the feet of generations now 
at rest have trodden. One looks out through a succession of 
arches on the grass and the flowers, and the tower standing clear 
against a blue sky, and the Founder's Tower, draped heavily 
with ivy and circled about by wheeling swallows. The quiet of 
the cloisters is unbroken, save for the chatter of birds. The oc- 
casional artist, with his or her easel settled at some point of 
advantage, is quite silent, and visitors, touched with the green 
peace of the place, walk quietly, as one does in a holy place. 

Outside the college are Magdalen Walks, with the little river 



612 THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. [Feb., 

flowing on under overhanging trees, and through great gates a 
vision of dappled deer, with their fawns, feeding in an atmosphere 
of green light. There is a little water-mill, with a miller's house, 
all red-tiled and gable-windowed, bridging the stream. The 
Walks run side by side with the Cherwell all round Magdalen 
meadows. There is Addison's Walk, where one may sit and see 
half a mile or so of a leafy avenue in ever-dwindling perspec- 
tive, the trees, undisturbed for centuries, meeting above one's 
head. It is this gathering of things held precious for centuries 
the Old World has and the New World has not. They say an 
American visiting Oxford asked a college man how they made 
the turf in the college gardens so green and velvety. " Well, 
you see," was the answer, " we lay it down, and then it is care- 
fully mown and looked after for a few centuries, till we get it 
perfect." For man is so much more a conservative creature than 
nature as he has more pain in producing. 

New College has cloisters like Magdalen, a little less beautiful 
perhaps, but holier because the dead lie there. There is a curi- 
ous tower with gargoyles of strange, fantastic heads, wry-mouthed 
and leering, looking as if they had many a tale to tell. The 
daisies were growing prettily when I was there last, and one or 
two American friends who were with me, poets and Catholics, 
plucked them to take over seas in memory of Oxford. We left 
the white roses which were tapping against the arches undis- 
turbed. We went out through a vaulted passage which was once 
a college room, till the unhappy occupant having killed himself, 
no one would follow his tenantcy, and so the room was utilized 
in this way. We saw the chapel, with Sir Joshua Reynolds' win- 
dow, his Virtues, quite unecclesiastical- looking, full of the airy 
grace and naturalness we know in his portraits. I will not de- 
scribe the chapel, for what I have said of Magdalen applies in 
more or less degree to all the old chapels. There are the chapel 
and ante-chapel, the oak stalls and stained windows, and an ex- 
ceptionally splendid roof, decorated with lavish colors. They 
keep the silver-gilt pastoral staff of William of Wykeham here. 

The gardens, which lie sunk a little, are surrounded by the old 
city walls, which Henrietta Maria held against the Parliament. 
They are kept in perfect preservation, the college being bound 
to keep them in 'good repair for ever by ^ the agreement of the 
founder. So they are there, bastions, loopholes for arrows, and all 
the rest, with the walk upon top within the parapets. One leaves 
the college by a quaint gateway, over which is the warden's 
house, and looking down upon you from the wall, a statue of our 



. 



1890.] THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 613 

Blessed Lady in a niche, with an angel kneeling, and the foun- 
der, his hands clasped in prayer, at the other side. New College 
had for its statelier title, " St. Mary's College of Winchester in 
Oxford " ; it came to be called the New College because it was 
the' second foundation, Merton having preceded it by a century 
or so. Our Blessed Lady's name is associated with many things 
in Oxford. The university church of St. Mary the Virgin, with 
which Newman's name is so closely associated, has never changed 
its patron, and then there is St. Mary Hall, a foundation of 
Oriel, the college most intimately connected with the Oxford 
movement, and which was itself founded by Edward II. and his 
almoner to the honor of the Blessed Virgin. 

Merton, as I have said, is the oldest college in Oxford, bear- 
ing date 1274. It has many beautiful things, old and new, its 
dower of chapel and hall and library, in common with the other 
colleges. There is a beautiful wheel-window in the chapel, the 
finest in Oxford, perhaps; and the dining-hall, with its tall win- 
dows filled in the upper parts with stained glass, its portraits of 
departed worthies who had been on the foundation of the col- 
lege, its heraldic shields, its painted ceiling, its carved mantel- 
piece and splendid doorway, with scrolled iron -work of the four- 
teenth century, is a fine specimen of the magnificent refectories 
in which Oxford dines. The library is a very beautiful apart- 
ment, shaped like the letter T, low and dim and rich, with 
diamond-paned windows against which green boughs were tap- 
ping, and a ceiling with square panels of painting or dead gold. 

Christ Church is the largest of colleges in Oxford. Its church 
is the cathedral church, and by its bell, Great Tom, Oxford sets 
its clocks. By the bye, Great Tom has a quaint way of ringing 
the hours through in their exactitude, till he comes to five min- 
utes past nine in the evening, when he registers a hundred and 
one of his great strokes. I have heard no explanation of this ; 
perhaps it was for the curfew. Christ Church was Wolsey's foun- 
dation, and is an example of the splendor and scope of the 
cardinal's far-reaching ideas. Tom Quad., in which is Tom 
Tower, measures 264 feet by 261. Cloisters to run round what 
is now a terraced walk were designed, the shafts of the arches 
still remaining visible, but the great cardinal fell while yet his 
foundation was unfinished, and the grasping king seized on it 
and its revenues. However, he finished it after a mutilated 
fashion some years later, changing its name from Cardinal's Col- 
lege to the College of King Henry the Eighth. Wolsey's statue, 
in its arch over Tom Gate, gazes away perpetually from his 



6 14 THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. [Feb., 

splendid foundation. They say he docked the cathedral of its 
proportions for the quad.'s sake, meaning, no doubt, to make it 
up some other way, but his gift was taken out of his hands. 

The cathedral is very old, dating from the twelfth century. 
It was part of the convent chapel of St. Frideswide, one of "the 
many small priories which were sacrificed for Wolsey's scheme. 
It is cruciform in shape, with roof and arches of great beauty. 
Modern days have given it stained glass by Mr. Burne-Jones, and 
a reredos of sandstone and red marble, a very exquisite specimen 
of ecclesiastical architecture. 

Christ Church Hall is the finest refectory in England, meas- 
uring 115 feet by 40, and 50 feet in height. The oak roof is 
carved profusely, with pendants of the cardinal's arms and those 
of Henry VIII., and with the date, 1529. There is a great bay 
window by the raised dais, with a wonderful roof of fan-tracery 
springing from fantastic heads, the upper lips of which foam over 
a royal crown. The oak wainscoting goes half the height of the 
hall, with luxuriant carving ending it, and below, the cardinal's 
arms and the king's, with some of later benefactors. 

There is a splendid collection of old masters, the gift of Gen- 
eral Guise, in the Christ Church library, Raphael, Da Vinci, Paul 
Veronese, Tintoretto, Andrea del Sarto, Vandyke, Salvator Rosa, 
Titian, being among those represented. 

I suppose Christ Church is the wealthiest of Oxford's twenty- 
two colleges, as it is the most aristocratic. To this foundation 
of the butcher's son comes the bluest blood of England for uni- 
versity training and education, passing here from Eton and 
Harrow and the other cradles of the lords of England, so that 
to be a Christ Church man gives one a social cachet without 
more to do. 

One goes out from the college to the Broad Walk, a lovely 
avenue of ancient trees, with Christ Church meadow to the south, 
and a continuous walk by which you will come to the little 
Cherwell, full of water-lilies and with overhanging trees, by which 
a boat will glide unexpectedly, startling one with the plash of 
oars. An off-shoot avenue of trees more lately planted goes 
down to the river and that wharf known to Oxford as Salter's, 
where boats can be procured for hire. Up and down the bank, 
in a gay line, are the college barges, brightly painted and deco- 
rated; and in the June sunshine, with groups of girls in sum- 
mer frocks and undergraduates in blazers, the scene is full of 
vivacity and color. How different from the Thames when it 
gets down to London, long before which Sabrina and her nymphs 



1890.] THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. 615 

shall have deserted it. Poor stream ! the water highway and the 
refuse receptacle of the biggest city in the world. 

I have said enough of the Oxford colleges to give the New 
World reader an idea of their splendor and scope perhaps. I 
have chosen to dwell on the older ones because the later 
foundations seem to me to grow less beautiful in proportion to 
their lateness, till we end with the glaring red brick, picked out 
with yellow, of Keble College, and the strange mosaics of its 
chapel. If its makers had been content to make it entirely red 
brick, it would have mellowed into a certain richness with time, 
and as it clad itself about with ivy and the other creeping 
plants which Oxford fosters, would have taken on a certain 
beauty ; now it will be always hot and ugly. Mansfield Col- 
lege, still unfinished, which is to be the college of the Noncon- 
formists, is better, and has a certain largeness and freedom in 
its open front, flanked by the chapel and the principal's house. 
The little Renaissance of the ninth century, a part of which goes 
by the name of the pre-Raphaelite movement, has done little for 
later Oxford buildings ; but the pre-Raphaelite spirit is essentially 
an un-Protestant one. It must infuse into its religious art 
warmth and color such as Protestantism abhors; it can work 
with stained glass, with statues, with music, with splendor of col- 
or and luxuriance of design, but Protestantism distrusts such 
things. 

One must not leave Oxford without speaking of the Bod- 
leian Library, that great, four-square house of learning, with its 
library proper, like a larger copy of the college libraries fretted 
roof and carved wood-work, with the light streaming in 
from diamond-paned windows on priceless illuminated manuscripts 
and many precious things. Above the. library is the picture- 
gallery, following its lines, with portraits of kings and queens and 
many noteworthy persons. I remember only a few, for Oxford 
is a place in which one feels, or at least I felt, an indifference 
to mere kings and queens, in face of the majesty of holiness and 
art and learning to which the place is a monument. I remem- 
ber a mournful-faced Charles the Martyr, a Mary Stuart with 
beautiful brown eyes and an oval face exceedingly beautiful 
despite the thick nose, with some index in the face to that fascina- 
tion wherewith the living woman was able to enchain hearts. I 
remember Abraham Cowley, all faint rose and white, with yellow 
ringlets, like a girl; and also a modern masterpiece, by that 
master of living masters, G. F. Watts, a portrait of a young 
marquis who died in his Oxford days a haunting picture, with 



616 THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD. [Feb., 

Venetian glory of color and a dreaminess which is poetry 
made visible. 

From the quadrangle of the Bodleian one gains admittance 
into the old Divinity School, to my thinking the most beautiful 
building in Oxford. What it was when its many windows were 
filled with stained glass dazzles one to imagine; now they are 
all cold white, except here and there where the trees and the 
ivy have joined to give them a gracious veil of living green. 
It was built about 1480, and has the most beautiful decorative 
work in stone. No words can describe the stone-work of the 
ceiling, fine as the frost-flowers on the pane, delicate and exqui- 
site as lace, and with a profusion that is unsurpassed. The pen- 
dants are chiselled figures of the Virgin and Child under a 
canopy, or statues of the saints, amid a wilderness of arches and 
tracery and foliage. Those were days when men working for 
God made their work an art. 

Beyond the Bodleian is the Radcliffe Library, a round build- 
ing, now used as reading-room to the Bodleian, from the top of 
which one may see all Oxford to advantage, provided one has 
breath and inclination for the climb. Close by is the Sheldonian 
Theatre, built by Sir Christopher Wren, a horseshoe-shaped 
building, wherein is held the Enccenia, or Commemoration of 
Founders, the annual ceremony at which honorary degrees are 
conferred, prize essays and orations and the Newdigate prize 
poem recited, and the like. It is finely proportioned, with a 
painted roof, and a gallery running round it, the windows above 
flooding the place with a glare of daylight, which recalls the 
same architect's St. Paul's. 

The Ashrrolean Museum and the Clarendon Press building 
are close at hand, all within this memorable square, which is 
bounded on three sides by St. Mary's Church and Brasenose and 
Hertford Colleges respectively. 

Life in the university city ought to be livelier than life 
in other places. It has its little sets, its little precedences, its 
little jealousies, like the life of every community, but doubtless 
it gains in dignity and loveliness from its lovely surroundings. 
Art has found a kindly foster-mother here from the days when 
Walter de Merton first began college-building down to the 
time when Rossetti and Burne-Jones painted their strange fres- 
coes on the walls of the Union frescoes which now, alas ! have 
well-nigh peeled themselves away, the rash artists having in no wise 
prepared the walls for their reception. Curiously enough, Cam- 
bridge, far less beautiful and romantic, has excelled her sister as 



1890.] SISTER V.ERONICA. 617 

the mother of poets. Religion, the mother of the arts, has a firm 
foothold in Oxford, though agnosticism has well-nigh driven the 
Low Church out-of-doors ; the religion which survives is some- 
thing warmer, something more generous, something many steps 
farther on the road that leads to the Spouse of Christ, under 
whose beneficence these glories of Oxford had birth, unto 
whose fold we trust all men shall turn at last 

KATHARINE TYNAN. 



SISTER VERONICA. 

HER life-path winds through shadowed ways, 

And many days 

Are hidden deep in grief and pain 
And drenched with sorrow's tears ; 
And many nights, with saintly grace 
Of heart and hand, she keeps her place 
Where life and death stand face to face. 
Whoe'er it needs, receives her care, 
Together with her earnest prayer. 
Unquestioning, serene, and still, 
She waits but for the Master's will. 

And so whene'er the angel calls, 

And twilight falls, 

And this sweet soul within the boat 
That sails the waveless sea 
Is faring home, her kindly deeds 
For others' woes, for others' needs, 
Shall spring to life like buried seeds 
Of lotus, and the darksome way 
Be whiter than the whitest day ; 
And clouds of perfume shall arise 
To waft her into paradise. 

MARGRET HOLMES, 



618 "Pur MONEY IN THY PURSE." [Feb., 



"PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE." 

IT is a fine thing to make money. It is glorious to be rich; 
and rather desirable to be honest, too. But the combination is 
somewhat rare. What with dishonest pools, trusts, corners, 
futures, syndicates, monopolies, combines, and all the rest of it, 
the feat of making money honestly does seem difficult 

Aad yet we ought to make money. It is a duty with many 
of us. Not merely to make a living that is the duty of all 
men; but to make more than a living, and, for some of us, to 
make a great deal more. God gives to all men (exceptions are 
very few) the ability to earn a livelihood, but to some he gives the 
power to make millions of money. Certainly the gift of money- 
making comes from God. There is no other source. But, like 
all gifts, it may be used either for good or for evil. Like all 
gifts, all talents, it should be used, not hidden in a napkin. I 
do not believe that God has given only to wicked men the 
ability to acquire wealth. I do not believe he withholds from 
good men the power to make money. I do not believe that 
financial ability makes men wicked, nor that wickedness gives 
men financial ability. And what excuse is there for any man 
to be poor in this country ? Certainly he is not poor by choice. 
No man would refuse wealth were it offered him. He is poor, 
therefore, because he can't help it, and that is a miserable thing 
for any man to acknowledge I mean, for any man living in our 
free country. 

The old sayings, "Poverty is no crime," "It is no disgrace 
to be poor," may be true in some regions, but not here. No; 
here poverty is a disgrace I feel like saying, "a crime." The 
poor man is a falsehood to the bounteous generosity of our 
land; he is a denial to our equitable and beneficent Constitution; 
he is an admission of his own inefficiency, intemperance, inertia. 
And the educated poor man is the most pitiable, not to say 
contemptible, of all. What good is his education ? He is too 
poor to enjoy himself or to benefit his fellow-man ; too poor to 
build churches, schools, or asylums. He cannot help the Catholic 
press, cannot encourage Catholic art, Catholic clubs, Catholic 
enterprise. And as for diocesan and other church debts, they'll 
never be paid if he is to pay them. 

There is too much talk about the evil power of money. We 



1890.] " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" 619 

ought to consider more often its power for good. Money is not 
necessarily an evil power. Were riches necessarily an evil, why 
did God bestow them as a reward for Solomon's choice of wisdom ? 
Why did God restore and largely increase Job's wealth ? Why 
did he order the Jewish temples to be adorned with gold and 
gems, and their services to be conducted with costly magnificence ? 
The very last service which was rendered to Christ's body by 
his followers was from a rich man, whose new sepulchre was 
honored by that divine Guest. The three persons whom our 
Saviour raised to life were persons of prominence and wealth. In 
our own day, is it not, at least sometimes, our wealthy Catholics 
who erect our grandest churches and charitable institutions ? 
Surely it were a hard thing to say that our expensive organs, 
rich windows, costly paintings are always from the scant, pinched 
earnings of the poor ! 

Columbus, with all his determination, courage, and wisdom, 
couldn't move an inch until Isabella had procured money for him. 
His long, long delay was all for want of money. And the long, 
long delay of many a great and much-needed enterprise is all 
for want of money. For instance, without money we cannot 
kill Protestant slanders, kill those majestic lies, so calm and cool 
and stately, which preside over the anti-Catholic press. We 
may " down " them all we can ; they come up smiling every 
time. We pound them with logic, scorch them with witticisms, 
annihilate them with facts, give them every sort of death and 
torture that literary weapons can inflict, yet here they rise again, 
good as new. Their readers never read our refutations, and all 
our paper battles go for naught. But there is one way we 
could rout them, had we only the funds libel suits ! How 
many Protestant papers would last under such treatment? How 
many infidel lecturers, sweet-mouthed Fultons, " Bishop " Coxes, 
or " escaped nuns " would prosper under it ? How could they 
make a living if they were hauled into a court of justice for 
each falsehood ? If our asylums and pther charitable institutions 
were not so much in need, I would like to start a subscription 
right now for a Catholic Libel-Suit Fund. Protestants don't feel 
the truths in Catholic papers, but they would feel pretty keenly the 
fines and other penalties of a libel suit. The " power of the press'' 
is pretty strong ; still, it isn't a circumstance to the " strong arm 
of the law"; but that strong arm won't move for us till, we 
oil it with money. 

Aye, money is a power, and there's no use denying it. And 

VOL. L. 40 



620 "Pur MONEY IN THY PURSE" [Feb., 

the moneyless man has cause to be ashamed at having no aid 
to give in the great Christian enterprises which cannot be suc- 
cessful without money. Would our Catholic University be the 
grand fact it now is were it not for the Caldwell money ? And 
the Catholic Mirror of August 10 says : 

"Generous contributions are still greatly needed, that the . . . work may 
advance as it ought. Funds are needed to endow other professorships. . . . 
Funds are needed to endow scholarships. . . . Funds are needed to estab- 
lish prizes for the reward of distinguished merit. . . . Funds are needed to 
enlarge the library. . . . Funds are needed to render the buildings adequate 
to the demand for accommodations. . . . What can the clergy do toward 
all this ? They can earn our gratitude by sending their names . . . to be 
added to the list of contributors. . . . They can spare us embarrassment by 
handing in the installments of their subscriptions. They can aid the under- 
taking very materially by speaking of it as a work in which Catholics of means 
ought to take part. ... They can organize concerted action for the endow- 
ment of scholarships." 

And is there not to-day many another Christian work sorely 
in need of money ? Is there not many a church deep in debt ? 
many a school and asylum in dire want ? Is not the entire 
Catholic press struggling for lack of money? It may be an- 
swered that all this is because we need more generosity among 
our Catholics. I question this. I think what we need is not 
more generous Catholics but more rich Catholics. We have too 
few rich Catholics. 

" Is it as easy for an honest man to make money as it is 
for a dishonest man ? " I asked a successful merchant the other 
day. 

"Just as easy," he replied, "just as easy." 

" Well, then, why is it that there are so few moneyed men 
among our practical Catholics ?" 

" Simply because they don't give their attention to it," he 
answered. " That is the whole trouble. They know the goods 
of heaven will last for ever, and the goods of this world will not, 
so they give but little attention to the latter." 

Now, I think it is just there they make the mistake. Earthly 
treasures can become a help towards the gaining of heavenly 
treasures. Why may not the gift of money-making be held as 
a high vocation, and devoted to the interests of heaven ? 

What abominations are music, poetry, sculpture, the drama 
when given over to the devil ! But what glories they are when 
devoted to the service of God ! How admirable are the great 



1890.] " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" 621 

artists who consecrated their genius to religion ! And why should 
not the genius of fortune be consecrated to holy ends also ? 
Art is a power, literature is a power, oratory is a power; but 
what is their power compared to the power of money? And it 
is a demonstrable pity that our practical Catholics hold and 
wield so little of that power. 

The Jew has reason to exult in his wealth and power. If 
Christians will not unite, if they will not actively and co-oper- 
atively oppose the Jew ; if they ^v^ll patronize him and let their 
own merchants go to the wall, if they will play into his hands all 
the time they deserve to see him chuckling over his gains and 
their losses. They deserve to be ground down under his heel ; 
they deserve to see the press, the government, and all great 
financial influences drawn into his firm clutches. Hurrah for the 
Jew ! Hurrah for every one who is smart enough to take ad- 
vantage of his neighbor's folly ! It's useless and ridiculous for us 
to sit down and weep and wail over the moneyed power of evil 
men, the venality of law, or the corruption of politics ; ridicu- 
lous to weep and wail over the onmarch of the Jews. My cry 
is, " Let the best man win," in whatever fight. When wicked 
men triumph it is not because of their wickedness, but because 
of the foolishness of their victims. Were good men always wise, 
bad men would never be their victors. 

Much breath is expended in denouncing "the almighty dol- 
lar," and in bemoaning this age as an age of money. It cer- 
tainly is an age of money; money is king; but why weep about 
it ? They who write grandiloquently about " the soulless money- 
making propensities of this grasping age " are usually the fel- 
lows who have lost all their money by unwise speculation, or 
else never had any to lose, and never will have any. Instead 
of blaming their neighbor for getting rich, they ought to be 
ashamed of themselves for staying poor. 

By a natural law of the eternal fitness of things money is 
always flowing out of the hands of the foolish into the hands 
of the shrewd. Who should complain ? Isn't it a good law ? 

>It assuredly is, if there be any truth and I think there is 
in the old saying, " One fool does more mischief than ten 
knaves." 

Think of the thousands of Catholics who throw away their 

money in lottery schemes. If all the good people in the 
United States who patronize lotteries were to cease so doing, 
could any lottery company exist another year ? Aye, it is the 



622 " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSED [Feb., 

folly of the many rather than the wickedness of any which 
causes money to accumulate in the hands of the few. 

There is one prayer which we ought to say oftener than 
we now do. We pray for an increase of faith, hope, and char- 
ity ; we pray for patience, for peace, for health. All very well ; 
but we too rarely say, " O Lord ! give me good sense. Give 
me hard, practical, every-day gumption. If I had a little of 
that, I shouldn't act as foolishly as I generally do; I shouldn't 
waste my time nor money; I shouldn't remain as now, unable 
to aid the church and religion ; I shouldn't allow anti-Catholics 
to get control of everything because of my weakness and pov- 
erty ; I shouldn't be idle, or indifferent, or foolish any more. 
Yes, dear Lord, please give me good sense." I wish there were 
a prayer to that effect in every prayer-book. 

Certainly it is the natural desire of every good Catholic 
not only to see his faith propagated but also to assist materi- 
ally in this propagation. Is the piety of that layman worth 
anything who can coolly look on and have no wish to help in 
the great work of the propagation of the faith ? Give me that 
man whose solid piety active piety makes him work hard six 
days and contribute generously from his earnings on the seventh. 
Zeal may be exercised through literature, or teaching, or preach- 
ing, or art; but we can't all be literati, or teachers, or preach- 
ers, or artists. And when you come right down to business, 
the truth is that a layman's zeal should flow chiefly through the 
contribution-box. Frequent and handsome donations indicate 
pretty surely that a man has the right sort of zeal. And how 
can his donations be frequent and handsome if his earnings 
be not abundant and reliable ? 

I really consider that the educated Catholic layman who in 
this country cannot munificently aid religion ought to be ashamed 
to hold up his head ; except, of course, such as are rendered 
incapable by unavoidable accident. 

" But there is too much dishonesty in money-making now- 
adays. It would not be right for Catholics to enter the contest. 
Catholics cannot, must not, become rich." This is exactly the 
idea I wish to combat. I cannot see why Catholics ought not 
to become rich. We all want to be rich. It is a natural pro- 
pensity, and the man who hasn't it is a natural freak. 

The youth who has anything of the man in him soon begins 
to say to himself: "I must make money; I will make money." 
And if his education has left him with scant idea of how to 



1890.] " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" 623 

make it honestly, is he the only one to blame if he follow Ches- 
terfield's advice, " Make money, my son, make money ; honestly 
if you can, but make money " ? 

The fifth commandment of the church is, " To contribute to 
the support of our pastors." It is therefore our duty to give 
money ; which implies a duty to have money ; whence, a duty 
to make money. Now, shouldn't it be the pastor's duty to see 
that we are taught how to be honest in our money-making ? It 
is easy enough to say, "Be honest." But the great question is, 
How ? And the great trouble with me is : Why this " How " is 
not taught and studied and written about more than it is. 
True, the present crookedness of business is something out- 
rageous ; there is immense power in the hands of the dishonestly 
rich ; and yet, is it impossible to make money honestly ? I 
claim that it is not. I claim that riches can be acquired by 
good men no less than by bad. I do not believe that God in- 
tends all the riches of our land to flow away from us into the 
hands of our enemies into the pockets of Masons, Jews, infidels, 
anti-Catholics. But even granting that, under present circum- 
stances, the legitimate acquisition of wealth is extremely difficult 
to Catholics, then I will urge that it is our duty to discover a way 
out of the difficulty, and also that one reason of the difficulty is the 
overcrowding of the professions and our neglect of financial training. 

There are in the United States ten millions of Catholics, 
most of whom are poor, many wretchedly poor. Is this not a 
burning shame? Is it not a crying shame that so many thou- 
sands are miserable in so fair a land as ours ? Isn't it some- 
body's fault ? It is a shame, a disgrace, and I contend that it is 
mainly the fault of those who are, or ought to be, the leaders 
and protectors of the poor. I contend that this burning shame 
rests largely upon unpractical education. Cardinal Manning says 
about the same, "The sin of our day is the worship of inutility." 
And my point is that that worship is participated in by too 
many of our schools, seminaries, and colleges. 

I think we should recognize the power and commend the ac- 
quisition of wealth. The graduate should leave school with the 
firm intention of making money honestly and spending it wisely 
making it plentifully and spending it generously. I shall be 
told that all this is heretical. 

Is it? Very well. The Scriptures counsel virginity. Its merit 
is taught us by the example of our Saviour himself, by that of 
his Blessed Mother, of his foster-father, his beloved disciple, and 



624 " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" [Feb., 

others. Direct counsels from our Saviour, the epistles of St. 
Paul, and the teachings of the church urge the beauty and wis- 
dom of perpetual virginity. Yes ; God commends the vow of 
virginity ; and yet he blesses by " a great sacrament " many who 
do not take that vow. Now, follow the same line with regard to 
wealth, and my heresy becomes orthodox. Our Lord teaches 
the excellence of holy poverty, but yet he blesses those who have 
(or acquire) wealth and use it beneficently. So, why not teach 
how to gain and how to use wealth ? Why not teach that it 
can be nobly directed towards spiritual ends ? Kathleen O'Meara 
said: "I am writing novels for the good of my soul." Why 
may not every educated Catholic layman say, "I am making 
money for the good of my soul, the benefit of my neighbor, and 
the glory of God"? 

Do I decry holy poverty ? No, no ; with all reverence I kneel 
in spirit to kiss the feet of those who choose voluntarily the hard 
and stony path of holy poverty, and thus walk close upon the 
footsteps of their Lord. No ; but what I am afraid of is that 
the many Catholics are poor not so much because of their love 
of holy poverty as because of their aversion to holy industry. I 
fear many of us are liable to the same arraignment which a witty 
speaker made against some young men : " D' you know what's 
the matter with you fellows ? Simply this : there's too much as- 
piration among you, and too little perspiration ! " 

A distinguished priest said, in one of the truest sermons I ever 
heard : " The greatest evil of our day is, according to some, 
drunkenness ; to others, greed ; to others, dishonesty ; to others, 
impiety. In fact, there is considerable divergence on this ques- 
tion. But my observations for many years, during a wide and 
varied experience, convince me that the evil of our day is idle- 
ness." And he went on to convince his hearers of the same 
fact. Ever since that Sunday I have wished that education were 
more directly occupied than it now is with the prevention of 
idleness and the promotion of practical industry. 

The Boston Pilot says it were better to study industrial facts 
than to spend " valuable months and years in memorizing the 
dates of worthless European kings and queens, or even in the 
abstract study of fractions, proportions, etc., which are usually 
rubbed out of the mind as easily as off the slate." Admirable 
advice. But who is going to follow it ? Is there a single one 
of our colleges or convents that will abridge the literary course 
and make room for industrial teaching? Certainly not. 



1890.] " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" 625 

So noticeable is the fact that wealthy men are not usually 
college bred that it seems as though education not only fails to 
develop practical usefulness, but actually kills the germ of it in 
those who possess it. It cannot be true that only inefficient boys 
are sent to college. Therefore, since so many inefficient men 
come out of college, it must be that their training is deficient 
and unprofitable from a financial point of view. 

I know a man who received three high-grade diplomas mili- 
tary, medical, and legal and yet he hardly earns his salt. I 
once knew a fine student, a splendid linguist and classical 
scholar ; a very pious man, too. He had the handling of vast 
amounts of money in his life- time, and yet he died leaving his 
family and many creditors in appalling destitution, all for want 
of knowing the simplest business rules. I knew an estimable 
lady who had a finished education. She spoke fluently several 
languages, had studied higher mathematics, and was for many 
years a teacher herself. She inherited from a relative a con- 
siderable sum of money, yet in a few years she was ut- 
terly penniless (victim of a swindler), and had to enter an 
asylum, all for want of a little financial sagacity. She had 
been taught physics, literature, sciences, everything except 
one thing, common sense. She herself said to me : "I don't 
know anything about money. I am as innocent as a baby 
about such things." That was a true word, "innocent as a 
baby." There are lots of highly-educated Gatholics such as 
she who are " innocent as babies " of the plainest, easiest 
business knowledge. What wonder they get fleeced by unscru- 
pulous rogues ! 

A letter now before me, from a scholar and a gentleman, 
and a true Christian, says incidentally : " You know I am a 
perfect dunderhead in money matters " (I quote verbatim], 
Unfortunately, many another cultivated and intelligent Catholic is 
"a perfect dunderhead in money matters." This gentleman is 
about seventy years of age, is exceptionally well educated, a 
staunch, earnest Catholic, has been a great traveller in his day, 
was professor of belles-lettres in one of our leading seminaries, 
and yet is "a perfect dunderhead in money matters." With all 
his learning and intellectual abilities, he is but a poor man, 
living on a small teacher's pension from the English government. 
He loves his religion truly, and is just such a man as would 
have been a great benefactor were he able. Too many, far too 
many of our Catholics are his counterparts : finely educated and 



626 " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE." [Feb., 

very poor. Truly, if anything (outside of religion) is worth 
teaching, it is how to make money. 

In our universities there are chairs for this science and for 
that a chair of philosophy, a chair of natural science, chair of 
belles-lettres, chair .of ancient history, etc. I wish there were a 
chair of financial science. It is a great pity that that branch 
has not been reduced to a science and well equipped with text- 
books, professors, and endowed chairs. I'd like to see a class 
listening to Professor Somebody on "How to make Money." I 
warrant that there'd be no dull eyes and yawning mouths 
while that subject was under discussion. When Professor This or 
That descants upon hieroglyphics, or botanical technology, or 
classic literature, there may be sleepy heads present, but I think 
they'd wake up surprisingly when Professor S. starts in with, 
" Now, young gentlemen, we will have a talk on how to get 
rich." He'd handle a rich subject, certainly ; one that would 
take in honesty, industry, tact, enterprise, economy, hygiene, so- 
briety, manual labor, mechanics, trades in general, agriculture, 
navigation; in fact, the fertility of his theme might lead to an 
embarrassment of riches. 

Our schools turn out more literary people than anything else. 
The time spent in spelling, reading/ writing, grammar (with its 
many phases), rhetoric, composition, biography, history, the classics, 
and heaven knows what else of literary pursuit, naturally bends 
the mind in that direction. Is it any wonder that newspapers 
are run to death with would-be writers ? and that magazines 
are harassed with literary aspirants, and have store-rooms full of 
accepted manuscripts, not to mention the cart-loads they reject? 
and that the swarms of literati are growing appalling ? and 
that real talent is almost smothered beneath those masses of me- 
diocrity ? Then, why, oh ! why is it better to teach boys Greek 
and Latin than to teach them the best principles of prosper- 
ity ? Why better to develop literary taste than business tact and 
financial acumen? Why better to encourage scientific nomen- 
clature than live ideas of commerce, enterprise, and money-mak- 
ing? 

Our churches, seminaries, schools, and asylums are always 
soliciting money. This is all right. But do these solicitors ever 
teach the people how to make money? It seems strange that 
their appeals for money should be so frequent and no one can 
deny that they are frequent while instructions for making money 
should be so rare. 



1890.] " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" 627 

There are not many of us whose temptations arise from our 
being overwealthy. I trow not. But the souls who suffer from 
the temptations and evils of poverty their name is legion. 

True, some Catholics do lose their faith because of newly 
acquired wealth. They must get a newly acquired fashionable- 
ness to go along with it. And so they join any convenient 
Protestant church which happens to have a stylish congregation. 
But who can number those who lose the faith because of pov- 
erty ? poor children who are sent to the public school ; poor 
orphans who are put into Protestant asylums. One of the strong- 
est sentences in Father Dougherty's annual letter to Archbishop 
Corrigan is, " And these [proselyting societies], strengthened by 
money and influence, are constantly doing all in their power to 
steal our Catholic children." . It is among the poor, not among 
the rich, that these swarms of anti- Catholic proselytizers, kid- 
nappers, soupers, blanket societies, etc., get in their work. 

We must fight money with money. We need money to 
rescue the bodies and souls of the poor from their oppressors 
and tempters. Catholics hold a lamentably small amount of this 
money power. And Catholic school,s lamentably fail to assist in 
the acquisition of this immense and needed power. Is it not 
high time that the missing element be supplied in our educa- 
tion ? 

Why do we see and read and^hear so much of dire and 
dreadful poverty if it be not the design of Providence that we 
do our part in its removal? But we cannot to any great ex- 
tent benefit the poor directly. The philanthropic notions about 
educating the poor, elevating them, making them wise, industrious, 
economical, cleanly, etc., are false because impracticable. "The 
poor ye have always with you " that is, the poor shall always 
be poor; in other words, ignorant, foolish, improvident, dependent. 
We must take them as they are. 

Now, since the poor cannot be benefited directly that is, 
through immediate education of them they must be benefited 
through the rich. The rich are, and always will be, masters of 
the poor. The poor are virtually the slaves of the rich. Where 
the rich are good, the poor are happy ; where the rich are bad, 
the poor are unhappy. This sequence is inevitable. Therefore 
the only way to render the poor happy is to make the rich 
virtuous. Since the present rich are not likely to become virtuous, 
our best hope is for the future. It seems impossible to make 
rich men good ; but mightn't we try to make some good men 



628 " PUT MONEY IN THY PURSE" [Feb., 

rich ? We sorely need good rich men. It is the duty of all 
leaders to consider that need and strive towards supplying it. 
Now, there are some men who will be rich. This native char- 
acteristic should be recognized in their education and their reli- 
gion. Their capacity to make money should be not opposed 
but directed. They are the natural masters of the poor ; and 
should not this relationship be considered even while the future 
rich man is yet a school-boy? He is destined to protect and 
succor the poor. 

The best way to aid the poor is to give them work, honest, 
well-paid work. This is indisputable. Therefore the best philan- 
thropist is he who owns factory, or mine, or railroad, or store, or 
dock, or ship, or farm, whereby he can give employment to thou- 
sands. Would that among our good, pious, practical Catholics there 
were more bankers, merchant princes, railroad kings, wealthy plan- 
ters, and ship, factory, dock, mine, and foundry owners ! Little 
fear then of labor troubles, little fear of trusts and monopolies. 

Would that more of our young men were throwing their 
energies into manly work, into the great fields of trade and me- 
chanical industry, instead of into professional or literary pursuits ! 
Would that our schools were turning out, not impecunious 
scribes and lawyers and teachers, but capable youths, determined 
to become prominent business men and manufacturers ! And 
would that Catholic education were henceforth to strongly aid 
in producing a rising generation resolved to make money not 
only honestly and honorably but abundantly ; and to spend it 
not only generously but wisely, nobly, piously, for their own 
good, the benefit of their neighbor, and the glory of God ! 

M. T. ELDER. 

New O> leans. 






1890.] MODERATE DRINKING AND INTEMPERANCE. 629 



THOUGHTS ON MODERATE DRINKING AND 
INTEMPERANCE. 

ON the moderate drinker who is not naturally predisposed to 
the desire for stimulant the habit of intemperance steals insidi- 
ously, if it does at all, and its power is of slow growth. But 
when the total-abstinence advocate brings him into his considera- 
tions of the effect of alcohol on man he is met by the theological 
arguments that religion and morality require only temperance, 
and that it is neither a sin to drink intoxicants nor to ask 
others to do so. Why go further than the church requires ? 
Here are arguments and inferences. The arguments are not dis- 
puted, because unanswerable ; but many who advance them and 
try to shield their explicit or tacit disapproval of total abstinence 
behind them are not always just in their inferences, any more 
than they are always temperate in their practice. Continually in- 
sisting that bare temperance is a virtue has not restrained men from 
becoming drunkards, and the limit of moderation has frequently 
been overstepped by many who glibly quote what the church 
requires, and in the same breath condemn honest reformers for 
extravagances of which they are blameless. Total abstainers 
study theology as well as moderate drinkers, and they know 
what the' church commands and condemns on the use and abuse 
of alcohol. Much that we hear from the selC-appointed champions 
of moderation indicates that their love of orthodoxy in morals 
has not an adequate complement of hatred of immorality. The 
principles of Catholic morality are in greater danger from 
the immoral lives of Catholics than from occasional tres- 
passes of zealots beyond the boundaries of enlightened reason. 
Men seem so very anxious that total abstainers may 
not become heretics that they argue as if there was no sin to be 
feared from drink except drunkenness, and that drunkenness is 
no very serious evil anyhow. There are men who do not get 
drunk, and yet who give grievous scandal by becoming tipsy. 
Apart from outright drunkenness, the frequent indulgence in in- 
toxicating liquors has prejudiced people very widely against the 
Catholic religion, prevented many conversions to the faith ; has 
caused multitudes of Catholics to neglect the practice of religion, 
and in many cases to entirely lose the faith. Are we too se- 
vere in saying that moderate drinking is responsible for all this ? 



630 THOUGHTS ON MODERATE [Feb., 

Would it harm these people to practise self-denial to win others 
to the truth, even though their fastidiousness may to a few 
appear too exacting ? Consideration for others and generosity 
in the way of self-denial will be rewarded. 

There are others who by the excessive use of drink, and yet 
without intoxication, give bad example and bring great grief to 
their families, and by their spendthrift habits deprive them of the 
support to which they are justly entitled ; and yet these heads 
of families can truthfully say that they were never drunk. Can 
they not range themselves under the banners of moderate drink- 
ing ? If moderate drinkers are and remain temperate, they are 
not bound to become total abstainers; but they must not expect 
to hide behind the term moderate all sorts of reckless and 
convivial drinking. In matters of this sort it is not talk that 
convinces men but conduct. Their arguments do not prove a 
theory applicable to their case, for their practice often denies 
their words. Because St. Paul urged St. Timothy to use a little 
wine for his stomach's sake and for his other infirmities, this does 
not justify a healthy man in using alcohol to the destruction of 
his stomach. Because it is not a sin to sell drink, this does not 
license men to keep saloons as they are generally kept in this 
country. The saloon-keepers in this country must laugh in their 
sleeves at their theological defenders, just as the slave-holders of 
the South and the landlords of Ireland have had reason to smile 
at those who defended and yet .defend their "rights." The 
slave-holders claimed that they had acquired property in men and 
that slavery could not be condemned as evil in se; but behind 
this screen they outraged humanity's right to justice and to free- 
dom, neglected what their duties as Christians and the dictates 
of humanity required, and did actions which neither religion nor 
humanity could justify or condone. So it is with saloon-keepers. 
Their business is admitted to be not unlawful in itself; but that 
means in the abstract, and may practically apply to parts of 
Europe. But here and now the business is bad, almost univer- 
sally acknowledged to be a proximate occasion of mortal sin, and 
is the enemy of the larger and sounder portion of every muni- 
cipal community in the land; "not unlawful in itself" to the 
contrary notwithstanding. As a practical problem for solution, 
the saloon question is no more affected by the fact that men keep 
harmless saloons in Germany or Italy than if they kept them in 
the moon. 

But it may be urged again that if moderation in the use of 
alcoholics is no sin, why refer to it at all in the temperance 



1890.] DRINKING AND INTEMPERANCE. 631 

controversy ? Because, though it be no sin to drink moderately, 
every one who has had experience of or has observed its work- 
ings on our weak nature knows that drinking moderately has 
led and is yet leading multitudes to the habit of intemperance. 
Nor in our warnings about moderate drinking do we go further 
than the church allows. We know that the church rejoices in the 
practice of what is more perfect. Now, " temperance is good, 
but total abstinence is better," says Cardinal Manning. Total 
abstainers know that the church encourages, blesses, and indul- 
gences their practice and their propaganda. The plain truth is 
that many moderate drinkers have become drunkards just because 
they did not quit drink totally. The best means for one who 
considers himself a temperance man to ascertain if he still has 
control of his appetite is to try the practice of total abstinence. 
If the moderate drinker can refrain from drinking he is still free ; 
if he cannot, appetite is gaining control, and there are many 
cases in which there will be valid reason to fear the approach 
of intemperate practices ; and then total abstinence will have be- 
come a necessity. May God give us all the grace to know our 
weakness in time and the strength to struggle and prevail against 
our moral foes ! 

The object of total abstinence is by the practice of a counsel of 
perfection to become better Christians, as well as to shun a dan- 
ger and to avoid an evil. So thoroughly are many good priests 
imbued with the conviction that the danger of contracting the 
habit of intemperance is everywhere around us that they go 
amongst the boys who are preparing for life by being instructed 
for first Communion and warn them against the danger of drink- 
ing intoxicating beverages, and endeavor to induce them to take 
the pledge. We who favor total abstinence are, therefore, unwill- 
ing to admit that it is simply a curative practice. It is also 
preventive, and its fruits as a preventive bless many a home with 
members of young cadet societies who frequently grow to man- 
hood without having known the taste of alcohol. What father 
or mother of a family would not prefer this state of things in 
their children to any form or grade of " moderate drinking " ? 

We have to deal with a special condition of things existing 
in our own country; we have to reckon with our own tenden- 
cies and to consider our own social life. Our custom of treat- 
ing, our idea of hospitality, the quality of the liquors used, and 
the high pressure of our temperaments all these are causes which 
have effects and must be considered by those who try to learn 
why intemperance is so prevalent ; and these are the causes 



632 THOUGHTS ON MODERATE [Feb., 

which make total abstinence so beneficial in this country. Ameri- 
can temperance men have no apostolate to the Old World and 
do not aspire to convert the nations to their views. Travellers 
tell us that in portions of Europe the practice of total absti- 
nence excites surprise, and its necessity or even benefit is not un- 
derstood ; and yet we observe that immigrants from some of 
these countries are the reverse of models of temperance after 
they have been a short time in this country. The natives of 
wine-producing countries become the patrons of strong drink 
in this country. The custom of treating, which we are told is 
an American practice, is carried on by these people in a whole- 
sale manner shortly after landing here. We shall be told that 
these immigrants whom we meet are not fair specimens of their 
fatherlands and are of the common and rude people. That ex- 
pression sounds familiar. We have been assured, in a patronizing 
manner, that total abstinence is a proper practice and beneficial 
for the common people of our own country. It is surprising how 
the common people are supposed to benefit by the practice of 
self-denial whilst the uncommon people do not need this extreme 
cure and drastic preventive. 

We, who have seen the common people elevated and misery 
driven from their homes by total abstinence, have no hesitation 
in rapping at the .doors of the wealthy and the great with our 
peace-giving remedies. We believe in the frailty of human na- 
ture, not in the aristocracy of virtue, nor in the power of wealth 
to generate morality, nor in the influence of refinement or edu- 
cation when they are pitted against pampered appetites. The 
demon alcohol which is to be exorcised is no respecter of per- 
sons, has no regard for rank or position, soon dulls intelligence 
and blunts refinement, and wealth but hastens the results which 
it is in the nature of alcohol to produce in its victims. It will 
humble human pride, destroy self-respect, weaken the will, harden 
the heart, destroy the health, befog the intellect, arouse the pas- 
sions, destroy happiness, bring misery to the home, and cause 
the eternal loss of the immortal soul all this of the rich and 
educated as well as of the clownish. The habit of intemperance 
will produce these effects on all who are unfortunate or selfish 
enough to contract it, and whilst it may not cause the vice of 
the educated and the refined to stalk abroad, because they gen- 
erally do not drink where brawls prevail, it will bring degradation 
to them and unhappiness and ruin to their families. 

The families of drunkards can never condone drunkenness 
nor get used to it; and it is from their stand-point that Chris- 



1890.] DRINKING AND INTEMPERANCE. 633 

tians must view the vice. The palliation of this crime is too 
common; we are sick of hearing these brutes' spoken of as 
having a "weakness" for drink "it is the poor fellow's only 
fault"; "he is just a little too convivial." The dire reality is 
that the vice of drunkenness, gross sin as it is against one's self, 
is a foul crime against one's family, and the plainer the words 
used to characterize it the better. It always hangs like a lower- 
ing cloud over the wretch's home, and his family cannot rid 
themselves of the misery that it always brings, nor of the dread 
of the terrible calamities which are too often its further results. 
The reason why drunkenness cannot be condoned is that the 
drunkard is always guilty, always responsible for his condition, 
always brutally selfish, always doing what is unworthy of himself 
and cruel to others. Excepting rare and extreme cases, there 
is no time when he cannot reform, and every motive of religion 
and manhood urges him to do so. All that is required of him 
is the practice of total abstinence. This is easy after the alcohol 
is out of his system, but, as a rule, he cannot taper off. The 
time with him for the practice of mere temperance is past. The 
basest form of callous selfishness is the only motive that can 
induce a man to gratify his appetite for drink when he knows 
that gratification is the bane of the ' existence of those who love 
him best, and the cause of unutterable misery to those who 
depend on him not only for their support but for their happi- 
ness also. The sacrifice of a gratification which, instead of being 
necessary or beneficial, has become destructive in the highest 
degree, is the least that such a man owes to his own, and a very 
insignificant atonement for the misery which his vicious selfishness 
has caused. There are cases where men can occasionally drink 
for a time after ha^ng been enslaved to intemperance, but such 
cases are extremely rare, and there is no time in their after- 
life when they are free from the danger of drinking to excess. 
Where, then, is the place of moderate drinking as a measure of 
reform? And if barred out in that sense, it has little to do with 
settling the problem of intemperance. 

The most abundant evidence is at hand that the alcohol 
habit once contracted can, even after reform, never be treated 
otherwise than as an enemy in chains ; the fetters must be strong 
and continually inspected. No position is too exalted, no pride 
too sensitive, no 'influence of all those which guide and prompt 
men to do right too potent to prevent such persons from yield- 
ing to over-indulgence if they awaken the insatiable thirst for 
stimulant by tasting alcohol. Would to God that this judgment, 



634 THE SECRET OF LIFE. [Feb., 

so humiliating to our dignity as men, could be gainsaid! It is 
because it is in the nature of alcohol to produce these results, 
and because a large number of those who drink moderately may 
become enslaved to the insatiable desire for the stimulant and 
thus become drunkards, and because we need the countenance 
and companionship of men whose self-control is above suspicion, 
that we advocate total abstinence as a general practice. Total 
abstinence elevates the drunkard, saves moderate drinkers from 
the danger of intoxication into which many of them are liable 
at any time to fall, and prevents those who have never indulged 
in liquor from acquiring that taste for stimulant which too often 
grows into an uncontrollable appetite. 

P. J. McMANUS. 

St. Paul's Church, Scranton, Pa. 



THE SECRET OF LIFE. 

O GOD ! all good inheres in Thee. 
We have our being but in Thine, 
As stars with borrowed glory shine, 

As streams flow downward to the sea. 

To live as factors of Thy plan, 

To know Thy thought for us, and so 
Conform our wills, in weal or woe, 

To Thine this is the life of man. 



JAMES BUCKHAM. 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 635 



A NEW YEAR'S PRAYER. 

ROBERT BROWNLY was a proud man as he gazed that first 
morning of the year on a scene as lovely as any that a New Year 
sun ever shone upon. His young wife, in her dainty morning 
gown, was bending over the cradle of her baby boy ; the child, 
who had just awakened, was extending one pretty dimpled hand 
towards its mother's face. 

That face alone was a study. The newly- awakened ten- 
derness, the soft flush of maternal pride, lent a beauty 
almost holy to the delicate and youthful features, Robert 
stood looking at the picture for some minutes in silence. 
Then, as the pretty mother picked up the laughing boy 
and turned towards him, he exclaimed : " I wonder if any 
fellow ever had before as genuinely happy a New Year as this. 
T can well afford to wish every man, woman, and child to-day 
'a Happy New Year' without the smallest grudge in the 
world. 

" And you, too, are happy, Lillian. Isn't it so ? " he said, 
seeking her blue eyes for confirmation of her perfect contentment. 
But Lillian* was bending over her boy and did not look up, 
though she said, with a little laugh : " I know I ought to be 
happy, Robert, if I were as good as you are, or baby. Who 
ever had such a darling boy, or such a good husband ? " 

"Ah!" said Robert, laughing in the abundance of his good 
humor, "I am afraid my wife is becoming very artful." 

Then, as she blushed a little, he laughed again, and said: "No, 
Lillian, that is the last accusation I would want to make against 
my wife, and the most unmerited. Do you know," he continued, 
walking towards the window and looking out, " I sometimes think 
it is very strange that I should be so exceptionally fortunate in 
everything. I am a crank on the subject of sincerity. If I find any 
one guilty of the smallest deceit I want to end my acquaintance 
with him then and there. Now suppose I had married a tricky 
woman. I might have done it. Men in love are blind, you 
know, and I might have had my eyes opened too late. Good 
heavens ! how I should have hated the deceitful creature ! I 
can't imagine a more miserable fate than to despise the woman 
one has married." And his usually genial face was drawn into a 
most withering scowl. 
VOL- L. 41 



636 A NEW YEAR'S PRAYER. [Feb., 

" Which reminds me," he said, as his features relaxed and he 
smiled at his imaginary difficulties, " that my wife is a strictly 
truthful creature as well." 

" Yes," to the servant who announced a gentleman in the 
library ; " I will see him in a moment. Eh ? He is in a hurry ? 
Well " And after kissing wife and baby he left the room. Just 
then nurse came in to take the baby, and Lillian was left alone. 

" O my God !" she cried, sinking on her knees and covering 
her face with her hands, " how shall I ever tell him now ? I could 
not bear it ! " 

The New Year had come to Lillian as it comes to us all, a 
stopping-place for reflection, a halt on the road, a fresh start- 
ing-point. All other days whirl over us and bear us on un- 
consciously ; but New Year's day pulls us up suddenly, as it were, 
and compels us, willing or unwilling, to consider how far we have 
gone and whither we are going. 

A few years previous to this time Lillian Nelson had been a 
bright, happy girl. Though an orphan, and so impoverished at 
her parents' death that she had been obliged to earn her daily 
bread as a telephone operator, her cheerfulness, frankness, and 
candor made her a universal favorite. Lillian's mother had been 
an Irish Catholic, her father a convert In spite of the loss of 
both parents at an early age, and though surrounded by Protes- 
tants, she continued firm in the practice of her religion. Sud- 
denly the girl's fortune changed. She was invited to visit her 
father's sister, Mrs. Carlton, a rich and influential lady, and upon 
that personage taking a fancy to her, she was practically 
adopted, and became the daughter of the house. The girl soon 
became warmly attached to her aunt, and the latter exerted an 
astonishing influence over her niece. Unfortunately, that power 
was soon used to break down the structure of the girl's piety 
and faith. Lillian's was essentially a clinging nature. She would 
have made the typical old-time heroine gentle, confiding, and 
submissive ; but pretty and lovable as such a nature may appear 
in romance, and often in reality, it lacks the element of strength, 
which is as necessary a part of a perfect woman's character as a 
certain elastic firmness is an essential quality of all plants that 
grow. It is fair to say, however, that Lillian would have re- 
sisted any open opposition to her religion. Mrs. Carlton never 
opposed her openly. 

"Ah! going to church so early this morning?" the latter 
would say as Lillian prepared for Mass. "I really hoped you 
would breakfast with me ; I wanted to have a little chat " ; or, 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 637 

" I don't feel well, and I should like to have you stay with me 
this morning." 

At first Lillian always had a polite but firm answer ready 
for any such excuse, but gradually she began to grow lax and 
to yield point after point. Again, Mrs. Carlton would remark 
quietly, as her niece was going to make a call or preparing for 
reception : 

" It is not necessary, my dear, to tell any one what church 
you go to. So-and-So and So-and-So are Protestants, and it 
is no one's business but yours what sect you belong to." 

" I am not ashamed of my religion, Aunt Caroline," Lillian 
once said proudly; but imperceptibly the impression took root in 
her mind that her religion was a subject to be kept in the back- 
ground. 

When Robert Brownly appeared upon the scene as a suitor 
for the young girl's hand Mrs. Carlton, who considered him a 
most eligible parti, cautioned Lillian more plainly and decidedly 
than she had ever done before to say nothing about her religion. 
For a moment the spark of faith still glimmering in the girl's 
breast flashed in her eyes : 

" No, aunt, I have kept silence too much already about my 
religion, and if Robert Brownly asks me to be his wife I will 
certainly tell him that I am a Catholic. He will have to con- 
sider whether that is a serious objection before he goes any 
further." 

" You silly little goose," said Mrs. Carlton. " All that is very 
fine, but it is nonsense. No one urges you to tell a lie. You 
have simply to say nothing on the subject. Nobody imagines 
that my niece is a Catholic, so there will be no questions asked. 
When you are married, no doubt, you can tell him all, and he 
will be perfectly satisfied. I understand men better than you 
do, little girl," she continued caressingly, " and I know that a 
trifle can crush a love affair in the beginning. It would be such 
a pity, for Robert Brownly is a splendid fellow and just suited 
for you, I think. Besides, I am sure that you love him al- 
ready." 

The girl could not deny that she loved him. Yet, although 
Mrs. Carlton urged that the Brownlys had always been the strict- 
est Protestants and had never been known to marry Catholics, 
Lillian did not promise to keep silence. It was only when her 
jealousy and pique were aroused that she yielded to the temp- 
tation and tried to make herself believe that she would make 
it right afterwards. 



638 A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. [Feb., 

So the Catholic girl was married by a Protestant minister. 
After marriage the stumbling-block her guilty silence had 
thrown across her path loomed up before her as a mountain. 
When she knew Robert better she did not fear so much that 
he would object to her religion, but she dreaded to reveal her 
hypocrisy. Her love and esteem for him, and consequently her 
desire to appear well in his eyes, had grown stronger each day. 
Robert was the soul of truth and honor. He detested anything 
like deceit. How, then, could she tell him that she, his wife, 
whom he loved and trusted, had concealed from him so im- 
portant a fact as her religion ? 

Though Lillian's spirits were buoyed up by her natural gay- 
ety, though she was pleased and interested in her home, her 
husband, and her baby, yet her conscience was still alive and 
gave her many uncomfortable hours. At last, on the New Year 
morning when Robert found her leaning over her baby's crib, 
looking in those innocent eyes, she had resolved, cost what it 
might, she would be a hypocrite no longer. She would confess 
all and repair her guilt. She might neglect her duties, lose her 
own soul, but how could she leave the little soul that God had 
entrusted to her care unbaptized? Her faith was still strong 
enough to make her feel that this was little short of a crime, 
and that if her child should die unbaptized the evil would be 
irreparable. Such a possibility seemed too terrible even to imagine. 
Ah ! in what a difficult position the young wife's concealment 
had placed her ! Those few words of Robert's sufficed to crush 
her resolution of the morning, and to leave her still farther from 
the difficult step that conscience, duty, every feeling of good 
within her urged her to take. 

When later Lillian came down to the quiet little lunch that 
was to precede the formal dinner Robert remarked that she 
looked tired and urged her to devote herself less to that 
"bouncing boy," who was, he said, almost strong enough to 
take care of his mother. After lunch she put on her furs 
and went out for a short walk. 

The exercise, the bracing air, and the subtle exhilaration ot 
the scenes through which she passed made her almost forget 
the painful thoughts that harassed her. She walked straight on 
up the stately Fifth Avenue, when suddenly the Catholic 
cathedral came in view, standing out in snowy contrast with the 
dark buildings around, like a pure soul amid the world's cor- 
ruption. This was the church where, not many years before, 
she had prayed, where she had received the Divine Sacrament, 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 639 

where ah ! the memory of those blessed moments that had 
been filled with peace rushed upon her, in bitter contrast to the 
tumult that an accusing conscience was now raising in her dis- 
tracted mind. Hitherto she had been too ashamed of her 
treachery to dare kneel before God's altar. Now she felt im- 
pelled to throw herself on her knees in the spot where she had 
prayed in her innocence. Hurriedly and eagerly she went up 
the broad stone steps and into the sacred edifice. 

She walked a few steps up the aisle, then turned into one 
of the lower pews. She longed to go on to the altar- rail, to 
throw herself before the Blessed Sacrament and renew her 
resolution of the morning. Yet, still shrinking from the sacrifice, 
she could only beg God to help her and give her strength. 
There were many people scattered here and there in the great 
church, but she did not notice them. Only as she walked 
down the aisle on her way out, one face attracted her 
strongly. 

The face was irregular, uncouth, pinched with hunger and 
want, the youthful features sharpened and twisted out of their 
natural roundness and smoothness by the cruelly-defacing hand of 
poverty ; but in the uplifted eyes, earnest and full of confidence, 
spoke the faith that moves mountains, the love that knows no 
fear. Lillian stood still a moment, then passed on out of the 
wide door ; but she felt an irresistible desire to see that face 
again. She was tempted to go back to ask the ragged boy 
he seemed scarcely more than a boy to pray for her; but as 
she opened the door again a queer, crippled figure was coming 
down the aisle. His face looked commonplace enough now, but 
she recognized it as that of the earnest pleader. She opened 
the door again and waited for him to come outside. The boy 
looked up a moment at the handsome young lady, and would 
have passed on, but she came over to him, smiling. "Will you 
kindly tell me," she said, " how long the church keeps open at 
night ? " 

This was the only question that suggested itself at the 
moment. 

" Until nine o'clock, I think, ma'am," answered the boy, sur- 
prised and abashed before so elegant a creature. He would have 
passed on, but she said : "I saw you praying in church, and you 
prayed as if you wanted something very much. Can I help 
you in any way? Do you need money?" And she took a 
little gold coin out of her purse. The boy looked so miserably 
poor that she need hardly have asked the question. The rough 



640 A NEW YEAR'S PR A YER. [Feb., 

features brightened with a grateful smile, but as he took the 
money a shade of disappointment flitted over his face. " Is it 
not enough?" she asked, a little surprised. "I have no more 
at present in my purse ; but if " 

" Oh ! thank you, ma'am," said the cripple, confused and 
blushing, " it's an awful lot. I guess it's more'n I ever had in 
my life ; but I thought ; maybe I I mean I didn't ask 
for no money." 

" No, I know you didn't," said Lillian kindly, " but you will 
take it as a little New Year's gift." The boy puzzled her. Was 
he afraid of being thought a beggar? 

"Oh! I mean I I didn't ask God for that." 

"Won't you tell me," she said, "what you asked? that is, 
if I can help you. What is it you want more than money ? " 

" Well, I'll tell you," he answered, hesitating at first, then 
with a burst of confidence, as he looked at her kind and pretty 
face. " It's what I bin making a novena for, and I kin do it if 
I only gets a chance, and bein's I've lived off alms ever sence I 
was borned almost, and I want to earn somethin', and nobody 
never'd give me no work becos I was crippled, and I never 
learned nothin', and I kin work better'n what I always done 
odd jobs and errands and sellin' papers. What I want the most 
of all is " and " he stopped, looking up in the lady's face, as 
though afraid that she might think his pretensions too exalted 
" it's stiddy work" He said the words slowly, as though con- 
sidering their great importance. 

Lillian could not suppress a smile as the boy announced the 
summit of his ambition. 

" What is your name ? " she asked kindly. 

"Jimmie Cronin." 

" Well, Jimmie, come to my house you'll remember the 

direction, No. , Street to-morrow morning at nine o'clock, 

and I will see what I can do for you. Our fireman is going- 
out West in a day or two, and I believe you could take his place, 
attend to the furnace, and so on. You don't look strong, but 
/ think you can work" 

Oh ! if she had known what happiness those words brought to 
the cripple's heart. His eyes filled with tears, but he shuffled 
his feet awkwardly, pursed his mouth as if about to whistle, and 
said : 

" You " Then he blushed, and said : " I mean, I'll come 
sure." 

She had gone a few steps, when she turned back suddenly. 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 641 

It was the lady's turn now to look confused. She blushed as 
she said hurriedly : " I that is, my family, my household, is 
Protestant. You need not mention where I met you." Jimmie 
stared stupidly. His astonishment could hardly have been greater 
if the lady had told him that the Pope had turned Protestant. 
He answered, "No," mechanically, and she walked away, thinking 
that after all he was a very stupid fellow. 

The New Year's dinner passed off brilliantly, and Lillian 
soon forgot her emotions of the morning and the almost pathetic 
little episode that had followed. At breakfast next morning the 
maid announced a queer little man to see Mrs. Brownly. "He 
said you told him to come, ma'am, or I wouldn't have let him 
in at all, he's that miserable-looking." 

Oh ! what a nuisance," exclaimed Lillian, who now wished 
that she had not bothered with the "creature." "Send him 
away," said Robert carelessly. 

" Oh ! no ; I suppose I must do something for him," 
Lillian said, suppressing a yawn. " He is a poor creature I 
discovered yesterday ; he is in need and wants work. I thought 
we might use him as fireman now that Curtis is going." 

Robert looked surprised and amused. " Why, this is a new 
departure ! Hunting up beggars to work for charity ! What next, 
I wonder ? I suppose you'll belong to an association for pro- 
viding the poor with strength, or something of the kind, before 
I know where I am. My wife is charitable, if she is not reli- 
gious." 

"No; I am serious, Robert. You want a fireman, and here 
is a young man who wants work." 

" Well, that is logical, at all events, though I don't doubt that 
there are thousands of young men in the same position. Where 
did you pick this one up ? What do you know about 
him ?" 

" Nothing," she answered, " except that he is good and will- 
ing to work." 

" For which endorsement," he said, laughing, " I'll be bound 
you can't give a reason or a proof except the usual one 
woman's instinct. Well, I suppose it's safe to engage him on the 
strength of that. If he is a success, so much the better, and if 
he robs us, kills us, and sets fire to the house, I'll have the 
satisfaction of proving to the world that this thing about woman's 
instinct is all humbug." So Jimmie was engaged. After a few 
weeks had passed Robert declared that the cripple was such 
an honest, upright fellow and such an energetic worker that for 



642 A NEW YEAR'S PRAYER. [Feb., 

the future " Lillian's first impressions " should be his only guide 
in judging character. 

To Jimmie's great disappointment, he rarely saw the lovely 
lady who had seemed to him an angel sent directly from God 
to answer his prayer. Certainly she had fulfilled her promise, but 
here her interest had ceased. The poor boy had had so little 
kindness shown him that he exaggerated the " beautiful lady's " 
goodness to him, and he longed and prayed for an oppor- 
tunity to do her some good in return. 

Little did Lillian dream as she came down the stairs in her 
trailing plush reception gown, or later, when robed for the 
opera or a party in her floating, gauzy fabric, that the poor 
cripple was gazing upon her from some unsuspected corner with 
an admiration that was the most genuine tribute her beauty 
could receive. " I wish she was a Catholic," Jimmie would say 
to himself. " I thought she was at first, but she an't, and I don't 
believe she's got any religion at all. I wonder what made her 
go in the church, anyways. When she told me 'bout not say- 
ing nothin' about seeing her in church I thought she was a 
Catholic and her folks was Protestants, and she was skeered of 
'em. But she an't skeered a bit ; the master'd stand on his head 
for her, and anyhow she an't no Catholic, for she never goes to 
Mass on Sundays." If his lady had been a persecuted Catholic. 
Jimmie would have had innumerable opportunities of helping 
her, he thought ; but as it was, he found that she had no need 
of him. Consequently, all his overflowing gratitude he lavished 
on the baby boy. 

Ellen, the nurse, found Jimmie a valuable assistant ; the boy 
would stretch out his dimpled arms eagerly to the cripple, and 
would crow with delight at Jimmie's antics, performed for his 
babyship's amusement. Jimmie's love for the little one soon grew 
so strong that he could not bear the thought of letting the 
cherub suffer the smallest neglect, and his confidence in Ellen 
being more limited than Lillian's, he generally managed to con- 
stitute himself baby's guardian during its mother's absence. One 
morning, however, Lillian had gone out shopping earlier than usual, 
just at the time that he was busiest. Nurse had taken baby up to 
the nursery for its first nap, when a short time afterwards he 
heard a scream. Rushing up-stairs, he found the nurse flown, 
and Polly, the kitchen-maid, running about frantically and shriek- 
ing, " Oh ! he's kilt ! the darlin' ! the lamb ! He fell out of the bed 
on his head ; and he's kilt, he's dead !, Ellen has run out of 
the house entirely, she was so skeered ! Oh ! the lamb ! " 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 643 

"My God!" said Jimmie, "it will kill her. Where is he?" 
There, upon the nursery floor beside the crib, lay the little son 
and heir of the house, white and motionless, with his golden 
hair fallen back, making a glory around his head. The cripple 
bent down sorrowfully over the little form, and lifting it tenderly 
in his arms, he carried it towards the window. " Hush, Polly," 
he said, "the little one has only fainted." 

Then, bearing his precious burden to the marble basin, and 
letting the cold water run from the tap, he sprinkled the white 
face over and over again. Before long the little one opened his 
. wide blue eyes, looked around m astonishment, then smiled up 
in Jimmie's earnest face with an expression the cripple never for- 
got. 

Lillian was thrown in a flutter of alarm and excitement when, 
upon her return half an hour later, she learned of her baby's 
accident. "O my precious boy, my baby!" she cried, rushing 
up-stairs ; and snatching the boy from the frightened Polly's arms, 
carried him to the window. She looked anxiously at the blue 
eyes, passed her hand over the golden head, laid her ear close 
to the child's heart, and covered him with kisses and caresses. 
The baby's blue eyes, she thought, looked bluer and deeper than 
ever as they smiled joyously into her anxious face. 

"Ah! thank God!" she exclaimed. "He's just as well as 
ever he was, mum," said Polly, " and there isn't a thing in 
the world the matter with him." Yet that night as Lillian lay 
awake thinking of the risk her child had run, she vowed to 
have him christened without delay. She knew that private bap- 
tism is allowed only in case of danger. And might not an acci- 
dent happen any day ? She was overcome with horror at the 
thought that God might punish her by snatching her baby from 
her unbaptized. 

The next day baby looked tired and pale. Under ordi- 
nary circumstances she would not have attached much importance 
to these symptoms, but after what had happened the day before 
they alarmed her somewhat and she sent for the doctor. " He 
is not ill," she said, " but I fear he is not very well, and I want 
to know." She spent all her morning in the nursery, bathing 
the little one, and lavishing upon him a hundred little cares and 
caresses. 

After lunch, finding him much brighter, she yielded to Robert's 
persuasions to take her usual afternoon drive. " The doctor will 
not be here until after his office hours, and you will be back 
long before then," he urged, as Lillian hesitated. Still she went 



644 A NEW YEAR'S PRAYER. [Feb., 

out reluctantly, with a misgiving that seemed to her unreasonable , 
but that she could not altogether control. 

She shortened her drive considerably, and when she alighted 
from her carriage there was Robert standing in the door-way, 
a look on his face that she never saw before, a look that was 
sorrowful and pitying. All her fears arose tumultuously in her 
heart. O heaven ! was the baby ill ? 

" God grant that I am not too late," she murmured, as she 
came up the steps. 

"What is it?" she cried at last in an agony of fear. Robert 
came towards her, his face full of grief and pity; he put his arm 
around her gently, but he could not speak. Her face grew pale 
and her eyes dilated wildly. 

" O my baby ! " she cried. " He is ill, he is dying ! Let 
me go to him before " 

She would have flown to the stairs, but he checked her. " No, 
dearest," he said tenderly, " you could not bear it. Our little 
baby is " 

" Dead ! " she cried, so wildly, so pitifully that R.obert's heart 
ached to hear her. Then, thrusting him aside, she exclaimed : 
"I do not believe you; I will see !" 

But as she said the words she fell, pale as death, in Robert's 
arms. He bore her gently to the library and laid her there upon 
the lounge. 

When she regained consciousness she called wildly for her baby. 
Robert attempted to console her with loving words, but she 
scarcely seemed to hear them. After a time he told her that the 
little one had had a convulsion just as the doctor arrived, and that it 
had died in the latter's arms. He even dwelt upon the baby's death, 
hoping that the storm of tears, dreaded at first and longed for 
at last, would come to her relief. But tears come to sorrow that 
is blessed, not to sorrow that is despair. 

The days and weeks rolled by, yet no comfort came to the 
sorrow-stricken household. An expression of settled despair was 
written on Lillian's face. Robert found it impossible to arouse 
her interest in her surroundings, and the fear that she was losing 
her mind became stronger day by day. At last a trip to Europe 
was decided upon, and accepted by Lillian as she accepted every- 
thing, with indifference. During the ocean voyage and amid all 
the novelty and beauty of the scenes through which they passed 
she showed the same stony apathy. Three months had gone by, 
yet there was no change for the better; on the contrary, Lillian 
was growing physically weaker every day. Since her baby's 



1890.] A NEW YEAR" s PRAYER. 645 

death she had not expressed a desire or shown pleasure at any 
plan or prospect ; but when Robert spoke of returning, she said : 
"Yes, it is better. I am glad." 

So, discouraged and sorrowful, Robert prepared to return to 
the home where not a year before he had been the happiest of 
men. Into that home Lillian entered, the ghost of her bright, 
pretty self. Her friends were " sorry," some "sincerely sorry," 
to see her suffering; but one friend, the humblest of all, grieved 
for her with a sorrow almost as deep, though not as hopeless, as 
her own. The more Jimmie grieved the more he prayed. In 
church and out of church, at his work, everywhere, one invoca- 
tion was constantly close to the grateful cripple's lips : " Dear 
Lord, won't you please let me help my lady?" More than ever, 
since the blow that had fallen upon her, he wished that his 
lady was a Catholic. 

Ignorant and humble as he was, the crippled boy could see 
that the lady's sorrow was without hope or consolation. He 
knew, too, that in prayer lay her only refuge, her only comfort. 
Had she not prayed once on New Year's day in the dear ca- 
thedral, and would she not go there again to pray if she was 
only reminded? But who would remind her? who would speak 
to her of God ? 

It seemed to the boy, as he thought of it, that she stood 
alone in her sorrow ; the books, flowers, and presents sent her by 
friends, and even her husband's tenderness and love, could not 
touch her or help her. Then it seemed to him that though he 
could not fight for her, or risk his life for her, as he had often 
wished to do, his opportunity had come to help her. 

He was only her servant ; it was not his place to speak as a 
friend; she might be indignant; but even though she turned him 
away, he would speak. If his words made her say one little 
prayer to God, would that not be worth the risk ? When Jim- 
mie entered Lillian's sitting-room she was seated before the 
grate-fire in a little, low wicker chair, the bright flames shining 
full in her poor, wan face. Was this the lovely lady who had 
appeared to him at the church-door on New Year's day, looking 
like a vision of happiness ? Was this the queenly mistress of 
the house before whom he scarcely dared to raise his eyes? 
Sitting there in her loneliness and sorrow, she touched him as 
she had never done before; he felt a rush of pity as he begged 
God to let him bring his lady comfort. 

" Ah ! the furnace, I suppose," Lillian said, looking up 



646 A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. [Feb., 

wearily as Jimmie entered the room. "You can speak to Mr. 
Bro wnly about it when he comes in." 

"Lady," he said, "you was good to me once; you give me 
work, stiddy work, and God sent you to answer my prayer ; and 
I bin wantin' to tell you that I can't bear to see you frettin' 
and grievin' so much. 

" You tole me once never to speak about seein' you in church, 
and I never did to this day; but what I got to say is that if you'd 
go to church ag'in, and if you'd see a priest there and hear him 
tell about the Catholic religion, you'd feel a great sight better. 

" I saw one Catholic baby die once, lady, and the mother 
was a poor woman, but she loved that baby better'n her own 
life, 'cos her husband was dead and the kid was all she had. 
She cried and went on awful at first, but afterwards I used to 
see her smiling all the time, and I asked her why, and she said 
she loved God so much she wouldn't begrudge him nothing, 
not even her little one that she know'd was safe and happy. 
O lady ! if you could only feel like that ! Little babies goes 
straight up to heaven " 

"How dare you speak in that way to me, boy!" cried Lil- 
lian, a flash of fury blazing up in her sunken eyes. She had 
caught him by the arm and was holding it tight. " Don't you 
know that my baby died without baptism ? " 

" Oh ! no, lady," said Jimmie, " that he didn't, for I baptized 
him myself the day he fainted, in the name of the Father, and 
of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, just like the priest told us 
in Sunday-school, for I thought he was in danger of dyin'!" 

Her hand tightened upon his arm until he could have shrieked 
with pain, but the wave of hope that rose in her breast spread 
shining over her countenance. " Thank God ! " she said as she 
sank on her knees and a flood of happy tears rushed to her 
eyes. 

She took Jimmie's trembling hand. " O boy! " she exclaimed 
amid her tears, "you don't know what you have done!" 

For a moment she looked in Jimmie's face, and in that mo- 
ment she almost realized the poor boy's tender and grateful 
compassion for her. 

Good God ! had the boy deceived her so as to bring her 
comfort ? 

" Prove it ! " she cried hysterically ; " prove that you baptized 
my baby, or if you have deceived me I I " And again 
the stony look cam^ back to her poor, wan features. "Was 



1890.] A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. 647 

there no one there ? Did any one see you ? Was the nurse 
was Polly ? Oh ! tell me, did no one know of it ? " 

Lillian was looking into the boy's face, watching its expres- 
sion, waiting for a word as if her soul depended on his answer. 

Something like a sob burst from the boy's heart. 

" No ; no one saw me ; no one knew it but God. Polly, 
I believe she was running around there, but she didn't know, 
and she was going on so she didn't take no notice of anything." 

Jimmy was hurt, but looking in his lady's pleading eyes he 
was ashamed the next moment of having thought of his own 
feelings. He went quickly to the door and called, " Polly ! " 
Perhaps he thought she might remember something. Yet he 
had not much hope. When Polly came in the room a few 
minutes afterwards Lillian was vainly struggling to keep calm. 

" Tell me, Polly," she said, " all about the day my baby 
fainted. You saw him, didn't you? Did you see Jimmie? 
Where was Jimmie ? What was he doing?" 

"Oh! indeed I does remember it, ma'am, and I'll remember it 
the longest day I live. Yis, ma'am, I'll tell you ev'ry partick- 
lar. Well, that mornin' Ellen came runnin' down-stairs, and 
say she, all of a tremble, ' The baby's fell out of his crib, and 
he's kilt ! Oh ! what'll I do at all ? I couldn't never face the 
missus ! ' And she ran out the kitchen door, and then I flew 
up-stairs as fast as I could go, trembling every bit of me, and 
I called Jimmie, and he came running up, and there we seed 
the poor lamb lying on the floor so quiet, and for all the world 
like dead. 

"And Jimmie took him up in his arms, and says he, ' He's 
only fainted.' And he took him to the wash-stand, and let 
the tap run, and he shprinkled water on the baby, and I was 
that frightened I was screaming all the while, and " 

"Yes, yes!" said Lillian. "Jimmie did you hear him speak 
Did he say anything when ?" 

" Yes, he was mutt'rin' somethin' ; I thought it was prayin' 
he was, and I ran to the window to see if you was comin', 
and when I come back the only words I heard him say was 
the ' Holy Ghost ' ! And I thought maybe the child was dyin' ; 
but what did I see ? " 

"Come away, Polly," said Jimmie. "The lady knows it now." 

"O Jimmie! forgive me," said Lillian, whose tears were 
now flowing freely. " God bless you ! Do you know what you 
have done ? You have saved my soul. " 

And Jimmie knew why his lady had suffered, knew that God 





648 A NEW YEAR' s PRAYER. [Feb. 

had answered his prayer, and that he had helped his lady most 
at the moment when he baptized her little baby. 

Ah ! why had he not told her before ? Had he known that 
she believed, that the knowledge of her baby's baptism could have 
given her the comfort it gave him, he would have told her long 
ago. But he knew also, alas ! and the knowledge was bitter 
that his beautiful lady had been false to her conscience and that 
God had punished her. 

Lillian's repentance was fervent and complete. She had been 
a traitor to her God, yet he had opened his arms with bless- 
ings to invite her return. However, God's love was not human 
love. 

It was many years before Lillian occupied the place in her 
husband's heart from which she fell when her trembling lips re- 
vealed her past hypocrisy. She suffered all the more to know 
that among Robert's many friends the friend of his youth whom 
he had loved best was a Catholic. Robert declared that he 
esteemed the Catholic doctrine above every other, though he 
professed no religion ; but his wife's deceit to him and treachery 
to her faith was a shock to his love and his pride, a blow 
that could not easily be healed. 

During those long years in which Lillian had many a struggle 
to endure, many a heart-ache to bear, many a victory to achieve, 
the humble friend who had been God's instrument of mercy 
towards her remained her constant helper and support. Not 
only was the cripple's presence a continual reminder of her 
debt to God, but Jimmie's eyes seemed to read her very soul. 
Before that honest soul she was ashamed of any weakness, of 
any faltering that looked like slipping backwards. 

When, years afterwards, Robert Brownly and his happy wife 
knelt side by side to partake of the sacred Banquet perhaps 
Jimmie's part in their happiness was forgotten, but there was 
One who did not forget, and even on this earth blessed a hun- 
dred-fold his faithful servant. 

MARIAN WHITE. 



I 8 90. ] PS YCHNIKA . 649 



PSYCHNIKA. 

To him who throws the weeds of doubt aside 

And walks, faith-armored, through the changing years, 

Girded with sunshine and the merry smiles 

Of happy children, bidding ill be well, 

And well be better still; to eyes that see 

The good day broadening ever in the East 

And all things circling to a nobler course ; 

To hand and brain that through the stifling days 

And weary nights of half-requited toil, 

Undaunted urge the wheel of progress on, 

No death, no final overthrow can come, 

But only passage, sweet transition up, 

Up to the peaks, the white, immortal heights, 

Where right is law and God is all in all. 

All lesser things, a mighty caravan, 

Shall pass before thee; kingdoms rise and fall, 

The mountains crumble and the seas roll back, 

And Earth, with tremblings like a frighted child, 

Uprear new ridges to the darkened sun ; 

The stars shall sink in some great Waterloo, 

Hurled from their thrones with all their courtly bands, 

And flying headlong through the blackened space 

Rise nevermore to rule the charmed night 

But thou thou shalt pass never; youth shall pass, 

And riper years, and age, perchance, may touch 

Thy outward husk, not thee ; within thee stirs 

A something yearning for the nobler course : 

Thy soul alone of all things cannot die. 

JOHN JEROME ROONEY. 



650 AMY Plowtf s INHERITANCE. [Feb., 



AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. 
i 

To MRS. CONRAD ALLAYNE, New York. 

MY DEAR MRS. ALLAYNE : Since meeting you at Nantasket 
last summer I have fallen heir to a handful of letters from your 
ancestress to mine. These, with supplementary evidence in the 
shape of letters from my great-grandmother Marian to my great- 
grandfather George, turn your family tradition into a pretty bit of 
history. Permit me to offer you the mosaic, my kindest of audi- 
ences, as something of interest to you, and so a reward for the 
sympathy you have shown in the things of interest to me. 

Gratefully your friend, 
January, 1888. ' BERKELEY REID. 

To MR. BERKELEY REID, Boston. 

DEAR MR. REID : The collection of old letters which 
you so kindly forward seem to me to be of more than 
personal value. Why do you not publish them, just as they are? 
I do not think it would be necessary even to change the names 
of our respective great-grandmothers, it was so long ago. With 
gratitude for your thoughtfulness, 

Your friend, 
January, 1888. RUTH HOWE ALLAYNE. 

HILLSIDE, September, 1809. 

SWEET MILDRED: How you can scold when you have a 
mind! Upon my word, ' I did not mean to wait so long. Since 
I have, be glad of it ; for now there is news to tell. 

Professor Heron has answered that grave epistle we con- 
cocted in Miss White's school-room ere I left. It is little 
but an answer, and written in haste, it would seem. He was on 
the sailing vessel Araminta, which came to America August, 
1790. He came for the material which went to make up the 
book we read about him, and - he does remember a four-year- 
old child they called Ama, whose mother or nurse died the 
first week out, and left her to wander about the ship. He says 
some pretty things about the waif; but alas ! dear Mildred, can 
tell nothing more than did the sailor who carried me through 






1890.] AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. 651 

Boston streets; nor Mrs. Howe, whose husband fell upon me 
borne thus, and brought me home. If Father Howe had lived 
I believe he would learn my parentage. It was he, you know, 
who first sent me to Miss White's school ; but Mother Howe 
can but babble of the way my hair curled in my neck, 'and of 
how she attired me in the long clothes that served the boys in 
cradle-hood. For my own ragged little skirts were past the 
saving, so she says. I would there were but an inch remain- 
ing, enough to bear a monogram or tell one letter of my un- 
known name. Ah me, my Mildred ! the romances we read to- 
gether in the window-seat had many such a tale, but none 
so tantalizing in its incompleteness. 

Mother Howe is proud to see that I have not forgot my 
spinning. She often declares no maiden in the country can 
outdistance my flying wheel. Shall I confess something? Its 
whirring prevents unwelcome talk and I can spin two threads 
at once the inner one so long, so fine at times it seems a 
cocoon-web to lie about my heart. 

You ask of the boys. Hosea is planning for a journey 
west, to New York State. David is in a taking to go with 
him; but John says one must bide with him. John is as 
ever my favorite, but thoughtfuller if anything than when you 
dubbed him Socrates, a year ago. Sailor Jack has not for- 
gotten me, nor ever will, I think. . He brought me silk for a 
gown when last he came to port, and a fine shell comb. 
Speaking of finery, the peddler passed through here yesterday. 
You should have seen the flocking from keeping-room and 
kitchen, mistress and maid, and even the men leaving their 
work to ask of news from town. His trifles did not please 
me and his stories smacked too strong of hatred towards Eng- 
land. I do believe myself English born. But the dear books, 
hid between lawn and lace, I seized upon forthwith. They 
were mostly fiction, and brought the ghost of good. Miss 
White to my elbow, warning me against the sweets, so that I 
took a sober elegy by one Mr. Gray as a sort of boneset 
to clear my tongue afterwards. Do you ever go back to the 
school ? My respectful affection to the mistress, if you ever 
see her; and to yourself you know how warm a love. Write 
soon again. Be no charier of commendation for this long 
letter than you have been of complaint for silence. 

Yours ever, 

AMY HOWE. 
To MISTRESS MILDRED HAVEN, Boston. 

VOL. L. 42 



652 AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. [Feb., 

HILLSIDE, June 15, 1810. 

To DR. GEORGE BERKELEY, Boston. 



DEAREST FRIEND : I feel like offering apologies to some one ; 
shall it be to you? You are the one to whom I have said most 
of what I would now retract. The Howe farm is not a dreari- 
ness set in silences, as I declared to you a year last winter. It 
is the loveliest place in all the world, the most poetical and ro- 
mantic. Mother Howe is a sweet old lady, and John well, it 
I were not yours, I know what I would do. Hosie has gone 
West, and Dave is going soon. I never did like them as well 
as John. He is one of the men they are going to make Presi- 
dents of; thoughtful, well read in what it is necessary to read, 
and a very knight for chivalrousness. I wish I had never 
encouraged Amy in feeling better than her belongings, so that 
she would marry John. Not that he has any idea of it himself, 
any more than of plucking the roses which frame his window. 
She is there, like the rose-bush ; that seems to be enough for 
him. Seems, I say, for I do believe if she once showed her 
heart was warm towards him she would see his aglow ; or, if 
he ^thought she needed his to keep hers warm. She does ; I 
would like to tell him so. There goes my mistress a-match- 
making, like all women who are once betrothed, I hear you say. 
Nay, love ; but when a woman has once found happiness, why 
should she not try to teach her sisters what they need ? 

We are having a glorious time. Constance has gained red 
cheeks, and I a pound or two of flesh. Are you missing me ? 
Indeed, I could not stay from you for ever. When you have 
leisure seek mamma ; she misses both her girls. Farewell for 
now. 

THY MILDRED. 

HILLSIDE, November 3, 1810. 

MY MILDRED : What will you say when I relate the doings 
of the past few days ? And yet I must tell you. Last Tues- 
day evening the Underwoods had their harvest dance. John 
'and Dave and I were there. Dave said I held my head too 
high, and tempted Bethiah Underwood to pull it down. But 
John declares the jade was jealous ; and it was nothing new. 
But that is neither here nor there. While John and I were 
leading Money Musk a strange gentleman came in with Beth, 



1890.] AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. 653 

and asked her who I was. " It is Amy Howe she calls her- 
self, but no one knows how" she answered pertly, and the 
whole room heard. " Say the word, sweetheart, and the 
name is yours by law," whispered John in my ear. Oh! 
but my heart was full to bursting with hurt pride and anger. 
I nodded yes, and went upon his arm when the dance was 
ended, and let him say to her, " Your compliments ! A month 
hence I change a foster-sister to a wife ! " You should have 
seen her redden. They say she would give her bold, black eyes 
to win him for herself. 

I have scarce had time to think. A month is short. The 
sewing-women are now here. The date is fixed December 3d. 
Will you not come ? 

Ah ! yes ; I know. The dreams of England and the grand 
estate; but they are only dreams. , 

Yours ever, 

AMY HOWE. 

HILLSIDE, July i, 1825. 
To DR. GEORGE BERKELEY, Boston. 

DEAR HUSBAND : Ever since I breathed this fresh, pure air 
I have pitied you, a prisoner in the city heat and dust. Little 
Mildred, on the couch beside me, sighs frequently, " Poor papa ! " 
The darling is much better for the change. I almost wish that 
I had brought the boys along. Amy and John both chide me 
for leaving them behind. They are well, as also Ruth, Matilda, 
tall Jo, and little John. Such wonderful good children, George, 
you never saw never come to Amy to fret or tease, but seem 
to study how to save her, and do her service. It is a ten- 
dency inherited, I think. You know their father is the same. 
Sometimes I question if it may be well for her. It is exact- 
ing children and husbands who expect much that make us 
wifely, motherly. No offence ! And Amy is as much a girl 
as when she stood before the dominie in this same keeping- 
room near fifteen years ago. I admire her as much as I ever 
did more than any of her kind. She is the only one 'consis- 
tent with herself. The rest of us but masquerade at our ideals, 
and, tired with them, are glad to be ourselves and common- 
place again. Commonplace she could not be. That may be why 
the village folk resent her so that and a proud indifference 



654 AMY HOWE 's INHERITANCE. [Feb., 

she has, which makes her husban'd and her boys and girls so 
inordinately glad of any slight unbending. 

* I love to see her come alive ; and she will do it yet for 
mention of her parentage. I asked her once why Ruth was Ruth 
and not another Amy. " I will learn first what is the proper 
spelling of my name," she said, with sudden fire, and then, 
before I could reply, she was her languid, lovely self again. 

Small likeness to her husband, who, I used to think, would 
come to be well known; but he will not have so much as the 
country hereabouts would give, refusing all positions, Amy says, 
unless a crying need induces him to speak. Then he is bold 
enough, but soon resigns and lapses back to quiet ways. He 
has his sly jokes at the petty magnates here, and asks us would 
we have him so-and-so. I never saw any one so dread publicity 
or care less for wealth and lofty ways though he is held in 
much respect. 

Dear Heart, I would you could be here. I would divide 
with you the days, and take my share in making rounds and 
doing surgeon's work, if you could catch this breeze upon your 
cheek and smell the sweet-brier by the window-sill. Tell our 
Bertram and Constant to be dear good boys and write their 
mother. She misses them and you. 

Your loving wife, 

MILDRED BERKELEY. 



HILLSIDE, September i, 1827. 

O Mildred, Mildred, it has surely come, and none of the 
old romances read any prettier. If I can rein my pen in to take 
a proper gait, I will go through from first to last. I may be 
glad some time to have a record, and now I can recall the most 
trifling detail. Two days ago I sat in the side porch with my 
needle-work. You know how it looks down the avenue of 
maples, and how often in my girlhood days I watched the road, 
fancying my kinsfolk riding up for me, their tall plumes tangled 
in the lowest boughs, calling, "Art thou our daughter?" And 
I would bow my head for their blessing, so that Mother Howe 
thought that I prayed over my work. 

It all came back to me as I sat there ; and I said softly to 
myself, Neither amid shower of scarlet leaves, nor past the fret of 
naked boughs, nor under May's triumphal arch of green ! Over 



1890.] AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. 655 

and over I said this, until it became a sort of refrain ; and of a 
sudden, as if I had used the words to conjure with, a horseman 
came riding up the avenue. Why should the sight disturb me ? 
Men were coming every day to talk with John of tariff and State 
rights. Yet I was disturbed, and crossed the keeping-room and 
entry-way with loud-beating heart. A dapper little man stood 
in the door-way, lashing his boot with a gold-mounted riding- 
whip. There was something in his searching stare, and in his 
clothes, well made and of fine material, though frayed at the 
seams and worn at the knees, that brought the color to my 
cheeks. Then frowning at such bashful, maiden ways, I drew 
myself together with a shrug, and answered to his question, 
" Mistress Amy Howe ? " his hat off and his head bent low 
" I am Mistress Amy Howe." 

" Madam, I knew it," he said then. " You have the noble 
features and high bearing of your English ancestry. I have come 
on an errand to you from England." 

I had liked to have fallen as he spoke, and then do you 
remember how I used to say I spun my dreams to make my 
own cocoon ? the thought came back to me as I stood there. 
I felt the close web draw like bands across my heart. All these 
long years, when you and I have thought that I was free from 
fancies, they have held me fast. 

It was Sailor Jack who did it after all. Poor Jack! he always 
swore that I should have my rights, if he could win them for 
me. He died a year ago of fever in a London hospital. It was 
there he fell in with this lawyer, seeking evidence to save some- 
one a-hanging. Jack gave him more, to save me a fortune and 
a name. Ama Myrtoun how do you like that, my Mildred? A 
distant cousin stole me and sent me away, that he might have 
my lands. It is all in writing his death-bed confession, Jack's 
affidavit, with the name of the ship and the testimony of another 
Jack that I was there. 

The very length of my nose and the curve of my eye-brows 
are hugely in my favor. Oh! I am too full for sober writing. 
I could laugh and cry in a breath, to think that it should come 
at last, and I not yet forty many happy years before me yet. 
I wish that Ruth had yielded to 1 your coaxing and spent last 
winter with you. She dislikes meeting people, and, of course, 
must do that now. Matilda tells already what she means to do. 
John is too young to care, and Jo is as close-mouthed as his 
father. He I don't know what he thinks. He laughs and asks, 



656 AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. [Feb.. 

" What do I, who have been Queen Amy here so long, want 
with new titles, and a paltry lot of land, which I must cross the 
seas to claim ? " There are no near relatives living. He does 
not seem to care a whit to know that I am well-born. When 
he is gravest, I console myself with blithe Attorney Duff, the 
English lawyer. I can tell him all my romantic dreams and he 
will sympathize with them ; display my little airs, and he will 
take them as a matter of course. 

Away with nonsense ! There is more in this than romance 
and affectation. It means that I shall be brought to my feet, and 
meet the large demands of life not sit tamely waiting for its 
small favors to be laid upon my lap. Write to me, and tell me 
you are glad with me. 

Your happy 

Ama Myrtoun. 



HILLSIDE, September 15, 1827. 

DEAR MILDRED : If this letter of yours had come to me ten 
days ago I should have missed some warmth in your congratu- 
lation ; but the ten days have seen a change in me. And I 
know you do not love me less for saying I am overkeen to 
leave the 'land which has been more than motherland to me. I 
was, Mildred, but I am not now; and as a penance for the 
selfish hours between the was and am I write this frank con- 
fession. Do you know, Mildred it is a shocking fact it is 
possible to cause those nearest and most dear to seem unlovable 
by looking on them as distant and unrelated to us, removed 
from the partiality of love, and scrutinized as a stranger might 
scrutinize them ? Little weaknesses, Mildred, which would ap- 
peal pathetically to a lover, dragged into the light of criticism ! 
Little attractions, unimportant except as you have become at 
home with them, lost sight of! You cannot know. You are 
as loyal as you are loving. But I do ; I did it. I looked at 
those about me with the eyes of a stranger, a new Ama 
Myrtoun, who felt superior to them. And John John, Mildred 
seemed unpolished and heavy. The children were ill-mannered, 
and Mother Howe's face, in its white cap-border, nearly drove 
me distracted. It was so aggravatingly meek. 

At last, one night the lawyer said I must tell him the next 
day how soon I would be ready to go. The autumn storms 






1890.] AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. 657 

would be upon us if we did not leave soon. He left me sit- 
ting by the fire-place and feeling more wicked and rebellious 
than I can tell you. 

You know how Jo lays the logs in the form of a cage. I 
watched the fire, like a wild thing, climb and cling to the 
highest arches, until they came down ; and then, with a purr, it 
gnawed at the heart of the fore-stick. I enjoyed its fierce 
destructiveness. You did not think that I could be cruel? I 
have been, more than once. The sparks flew out of the smould- 
ering embers in a flock, and a little gray cinder-witch picked 
up her petticoats and whirled after them, leering over her 
shoulder at me, as if we had a secret understanding with one 
another. " You are seeing things as they are," she seemed to 
say. I thought I was. But, Mildred, there are different ways 
of seeing things as they are. 

I went out and strolled slowly down the lane, hiding behind 
a tree when I saw that John was standing by the bars. The 
yearling colt came up to him for a petting. In an absent- 
minded way, John made a quick stroke down its nose, so that 
it turned and caught his sleeve, half-playful, half- remonstrant. 
"Did I hurt?" asked John aloud. "It is a rough hand." 
He held it up and scanned it curiously. It trembled the great, 
broad, gentle hand, which had so many times held mine en- 
tirely hid within it. " I am a fool," he said, and nervously 
pulled splinters from the fence and stuck them back in place. 
I knew what he was thinking. He had told me the night 
before it would be exile for him to live in England, but he 
would never stand out against my will. 

Turning, he let down the bars, and with slow dignity the 
cows stepped through. He likes to watch the big, comfortable 
creatures, treading heavily, tossing their horns, dipping their 
dark muzzles down to the ground ; but that night he saw some- 
thing else, and so did I a baby girl in long clothes, clinging 
about the neck of a tall, awkward boy, who tended her and 
taught her from the first ; a haughty maiden, out of favor with 
the other maids, and with most of the lads, but championed 
by the same true lover grown a man ; a woman, who might 
look from the door-stone as far as eye could reach and not 
come to the limit of her thrifty husband's land ; aye, and who 
might look far and wide through all his life with her, and not 
come to a place where she could say his love for her would 
stop ! I hastened into the house before he saw me, but 



658 AMY HOWE'S INHERITANCE. [Feb., 

that was not the end. You could not change me by such 
arguments. 

In the evening Ruth would have me read aloud ; and 
running over the books they had not heard, I came upon an 
ancient volume, itself a reprint of a still older one. It had 
been found in Judge Tyler's attic, and brought to me by his 
son some weeks before. Ye Nature and Uses of Gemmes, 
it is called ; and tells what metal or precious stone is in con- 
currence with each planet, and how mankind may coerce their 
destiny by wearing, every one, the stone which rules his star. 
" Read it out," called the children, as I went on and on, 
attracted by the quaintness of the lore ; and finding towards the 
end some legends, I chose Ye Legende of ye Opal, and began 
to read. Here it is, with no more change than the for ye and 
our modern s for f. 

THE LEGENDE OF THE OPAL. 

A mayden who was so fortunate as to possess a good Genius, 
was allowed by him her choice of gemmes to wear as an orny- 
ment. She was conveyed to a far countrie, where no men were 
but dwarfs, and these workers in precious metals and stones ot 
value. It was a wonderfull place, unlighted by sun or stars, but 
set thick with lamps of curious workmanship. The gemmes 
were arranged on a long cushion, for the mayden to choose ; 
but so great was her bewilderment that she lingered long and 
spoke no word. " This is the Jewel of Beauty," said the long- 
bearded dwarf, the setter-forth of the treasures, stopping before 
a turquoise. " It is Venus' stone. Behold how blue it is, like 
to the goddess' own eyes ; and how it doth symbolize innocence 
and youthful charm." 

" It will fade," whispered the Genius, plucking her by the 
sleeve ; and she withheld her hand. 

" This is the Jewel of Power," continued the dwarf, taking 
up a diamond, which did gather unto itself all the light of the 
place. 

" That is good," commended the Genius ; but the mayden did 
not say, " I will have it." 

Then came the Jewel of Pomp and Pride, a great red ruby, 
swelling with warm colors, seeming to pulsate as do flames. 
Here again the Genius nodded and cried, " Good ! " but the 
mayden went on. 



1890.] AMY HOWES INHERITANCE. 659 

There was a cold, white pearl, that was the Virgin's Stone. 
An agate and a garnet ; and these were Jewels of Industry and 
Thrift. Also an emerald, that was for Hopefulness ; a topaz, 
that was the Dream Stone ; and an amethyst, that was the Poet's 
Gift. 

But the mayden passed on, until she came to one which lay 
by itself, and did flush and glow like an infant in sleep. It was 
the opal. 

Then the Genius sought to withhold her, and cried unto her 
sharply : " Take heed, it is a dangerous toy ! " But the mayden 
had it already in her hands, and over her face a thoughtful look 
was stealing. " I think I will take this," she said unto the 
dwarf. " It doth please me right well." 

" Nay, but thou art a fool," quoth the Genius. " It is the Love 
Jewel. Behold how plain is the setting; and it doth make silk 
more shabby than fustian to the wearer." And if was so. For 
the stone was furnished with but a slender ring of dull silver, 
that was almost iron color. Moreover, the rich garments of the 
mayden grew tawdry beside it, and did no longer become her 
as heretofore. 

" Beware lest thou compare it with other gemmes," said the 
dwarf. 

Forthwith all disappeared and left the mayden alone in her 
own countrie. And in her own countrie there was comment and 
remark, when she did appear wearing the opal ; and especially 
that she had donned a homespun gown. Moreover, her mood 
was no less demure and quiet-seeming than her cloathes; and 
everywhere folke jostled one another and made whispered gossip 
go about. The mayden bore it for a time, but at last became 
infect. She said unto herself: " Alas ! I am a strange, outlandish 
mayd. Behold, how the diamonds and rubies, do glitter on the 
breasts of my fellows. My jewel is furnished forth so plainly, 
and it doth bear so marked a difference. Have I chosen happily ?" 
She gave no more heed to the warning of the dwarf, but took 
the opal from her bosom and held it up against the jewels 'which 
she had rejected, comparing it with them. 

Then a sorrowful thing did happen. The glow went from the 
heart of the opal, as it does from the sky at sunset, and there 
was only the whiteness of ashes there. Whereupon, the mayden 
discerned the excellence of her jewel. There came to her the 
knowledge that it had made her heart tender and filled her life 
with joy. She saw that the splendor of the diamond was unsatis- 



66o AMY HOWE 's INHERITANCE. [Feb., 

fying, the dreams of the topaz were lonely, and the emerald's 
anticipations were not founded upon truth. Thrift and industry 
appeared objectless ; chastity was a snow-queen, and pride a pain. 
Moreover, the Beauty-stone grew tiresome, and the Poet's Gift 
was but a dull thing after all. Then the mayden uttered a cry 
of sorrow and caught back the jewel. She said, " How could I 
compare my precious jewel, which is past compare?" And 
she fled away by herself, to cover with kisses the doubly dear 
stone, until its glow returned. Then she replaced it on her 
bosom. 



I cannot tell you how the story touched me, Mildred ; how 
that my own voice sounded like a warning in my ears. The light 
went from the jewel, and there was only the whiteness of ashes 
there. 

John saw it; he has seen everything, when I believed him 
dull and blind. He sent the children trooping off to bed as 
soon as they had had their good-night kiss. 

I am not going to England, Mildred ; I am going to stay 
here at Hillside; and the determination is four days old. The 
lawyer has been gone three days. He had much to say of my 
foolish relinquishment of the inheritance, of how my life here 
would cramp and fetter me. But, Mildred, I do believe not every- 
thing which cramps is a fetter. 

John watches me closely for a reaction, I suppose. He said 
that night it was not in the glow of heroism a sacrifice was 
hard, but in the twilight which comes afterward. 

But by this happiness the greatest in all my selfish life I 
know that I am at last, contentedly, AMY HOWE. 

A. B. WARD. 



1890.] " OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE" 66 1 



"OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE."* 

THE dominant error now threatening Christianity is without 
doubt that which is called agnosticism. In various forms and 
degrees it enters into control of very much that is accepted as 
science. It is essentially unspiritual. It has superseded mere heresy 
in its hold upon the minds of men. The voices that deny the 
legitimate authority of the Christian Church in spiritual things 
are feeble in comparison with those that deny the real existence 
of spiritual things at all. 

Now, while from the Catholic point of view agnosticism is the 
legitimate and expected successor of heresy in its attack on revealed 
religion, so also our quondam antagonists, or such of them, at 
least, as still cling to the main Christian facts and truths, have 
begun to recognize that their true enemy is not so much Rome 
as agnosticism. We quote from Dr. Charles L. Thompson's 
address at the opening of the last General Assembly of the Pres- 
byterian Church. He was the retiring moderator, and speaking 
of the dangers to religion, he said: 

"Much of our philosophy strives to bury God in the sarcophagus ot 
natural law, or to spirit him out of his universe in the vapor-clouds of a 
sentiment too ethereal to attract a human vision and too unreal to anchor 
a human hope. That God in whom our fathers believed, whose existence 
and agency were the nerve of the inductive philosophy, whose personality 
has lashed into whiteness every coast of thought as the ocean lashes con- 
tinents, is to the ear of much of our thinking the dim murmur of a reality 
which has almost passed from consciousness, the lingering echo of the 
ocean's diapason that haunts the tinted shell of our science or our sen- 
timent, but no longer has power to mould our philosophy or sustain our 
life. The pantheism of the German sophists is changed into the agnosticism 
of this generation. It infects our natural science, gives a glitter to our 
speculative philosophy, enters into imaginative literature, giving epigrams 
to the essayist and wings to the poet, and, entering the field of morals, 
it loosens man's spiritual connections, makes him an actor to himself, the 
world his theatre, and mammon his god. So it slips down into popular life. 
We need not ask what effect the speculations of Huxley, Spencer, or Comte 
can have on the morals of the people. The world is full of conductors. 
The thought of the thinker filtered down from its stormy heights runs 
easily to the lowest valley. No one who values the moral life of man, the 
bonds that bind man to his fellows, can afford to be indifferent to the 
refined worship of nature, of matter, of the present and tangible, which, 

* Our Christian Heritage. By Jams Cardinal Gibbons. Baltimore : John Murphy & 
Co.; London : R. Washbourne. 



662 " OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE" [Feb., 

finding its first expression among thinkers, drops to the level of workers, 
and blinds a whole generation to the invisible, the future the soul and its 
God." 

Referring to old controversies, he asks: "Why mount guns 
on parapets that are never menaced ? I notice in our harbors 
the guns point the way the enemy would probably come. New 
approaches demand new defences." 

So, too, in the Episcopalian General Convention, Bishop 
Whipple lamented that 

"We are perplexed by the unbelief and sin of our time. The Chris- 
tian faith is assailed not only with scoffs as old as Celsus and Julian, but 
also with the keenest intellectual criticism of Divine revelation, the opposi- 
tion of alleged scientific facts, and a Corinthian worldliness whose motto 
is, * Eat and drink, for to-morrow we die.' In many places Christian 
homes are dying out. Crime and impurity are coming in as a flood, and 
anarchy raises its hated form in a land where all men are equal before 
the law. The lines between the church and the world are dim. Never 
did greater problems confront a council of the church. An apostolic church 
has graver work than discussion about its name or the amending of its 
canons and rubrics. I fear that some of this unbelief is a revolt from a 
caricature of God. These mechanical ideas about the universe are the out- 
come of a mechanical theology which has lost sight of the fatherhood of 
God. There is much honest unbelief. In these yearnings of humanity ; in 
its clubs, brotherhoods, and orders; in their readiness to share all things 
with their brothers, I see unconscious prophecies of the brotherhood of all 
men as the children of one God and Father. Denunciation will not silence 
unbelief. The name of infidel has lost its terrors. There is only one remedy. 
It is in the spirit, the power, and the love of Jesus Christ. Philosophy can- 
not touch the want. It offers no hand to grasp, no Saviour to trust, no 
God to save. When men see in us the hand, the heart, and the love of Christ, 
they will believe in the brotherhood of men and the fatherhood of God." 

No doubt orthodox Protestants have far greater reason to 
dread agnosticism than Catholics. The whole agnostic body has 
been recruited from their ranks thus far, and their resources for 
defence against any error are necessarily weak. Still, it would 
be a fatal blunder for us to continue to adjust our own defences 
as if the main attack were hereafter to come from heresy. It 
was the realization of this fact that has prompted the most 
prominent and exalted churchman among us to stand forth as 
the champion of our common Christian heritage. God forbid, 
he seems to say, that we should not pass on to you the inheri- 
tance transmitted from our fathers. Welcoming to his side all 
those who under any name still retain faith in the divine au- 
thority of Christ, he addresses himself to that large and increas- 
ing class of persons "who, through association, a distorted edu- 



1890.] " OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE." 663 

cation, and pernicious reading, have not only become estranged 
from the special teachings of the Gospel, but whose moral and 
religious nature has received such a shock that they have only a 
vague and undefined faith even in the truths of natural religion 
underlying Christianity." His book, written for busy men who 
must run as they read, and who have no time, and perhaps no 
inclination, for more elaborate volumes, whatever their merit, is 
remarkable for the choice, the presentation, and the treatment of 
its topics, as well as for the spirit of conciliation, chanty, and 
piety that breathes through it from end to end. It is neither 
an elaborate discussion of textual difficulties and obscurities nor 
a finely drawn out refutation of modern systems of philosophy, 
but rather the solid, practical, persuasive utterances of a good 
and scholarly man who has not only read all and sifted all our 
adversaries have to say, but who has deep convictions and the 
desire as well as the ability and tact to make well the counter- 
statement. We know of no one book that on the. whole equals 
it as a presentation to ordinary readers of the grounds of our 
reasonable service to God in face of present objections and diffi- 
culties. We shall briefly indicate to our readers the course of 
the arguments, for though essay follows essay establishing the 
special truth proposed, there are certain natural divisions ; here 
the scope is enlarged, there a special application is made. 

Those whose vocation is to preach and to be officially teach- 
ers will profit by a consideration of the needs of many of their 
hearers as set forth by the cardinal in the first part of his intro 
duction ; and, in general, we may say there is a distinct and 
marked sermon value for priests in his suggestive treatment of 
such subjects as prayer, the presence and providence of God, the 
value of the soul, the divinity of Christ, and Christian education. 

The general reader is led step by step from the visible things 
which have been made to the invisible things of Him whose 
handiwork they are, and to whose existence, power, and God- 
head, and his attributes of providence, mercy, and justice, they 
all witness. Next man is treated of, his origin and destiny, 

-the spirituality and immortality of the soul, the freedom of the 
will. Further on there is a special chapter devoted to evolu- . 
tion and to such late theories as militate against the specific 
unity of the race. The importance of presenting these funda- 

t mental questions cannot be overestimated. The false and un- 
worthy views of God and man taken by the chief Reformers, 
Calvin and Luther, have borne their natural fruit in indifference, 
in aversion even to natural religion, and that denial of responsi- 






564 " OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE'' [Feb., 

bility for one's own acts now so common. It is these views 
which form the staple objections on the part of the common 
infidel class ; formulated, as they were, into confessions of faith, 
they have now become the torment of the churches which main- 
tain them, the rock of scandal and contradiction. Thus, in what 
we may call the first half of the book is to be found the refu- 
tation of that kind of unbelief which is produced by the too 
easy reception of so-called scientific theories, and whose result, 
or, more properly, utter lack of result, is summed up on page 289 
in these words of Mr. Tyndall : "Whence are we? whither do \\e 
go? The question dies without an answer, without even an echo, 
upon the infinite shores of the unknown." Moreover, in the first 
essays those diluted, undogmatic forms of Christianity known as 
Deism, Universalism, Unitarianism, receives each its own refutation 
in the proofs of God's providence, his justice, and the divinity of 
Christ. 

It is unquestionable that the faith of many even among our- 
selves has been shaken and their adherence to religion strained, 
while the comfort and peace of others have given place to 
anxiety and doubt caused by the supposed inconsistencies and 
contradictions between the teachings of science and the teachings 
of religion. To such we commend the discussion and arguments 
set forth in the cardinal's book. That their doubts and mis- 
givings are out of proportion with their knowledge or their 
capacity for making a judgment on the merits of the con- 
troversy is true, but is no diminution of the difficulty. That 
difficulties do exist and will continue is quite certain. But 
they have been exaggerated by various causes by a nar- 
row, literal, erroneous interpretation of the sacred writings, by the 
unjustifiable intrusions of scientists into provinces alien to their 
own studies and methods, by an uncalled for dogmatism, and 
especially by assuming as facts and verified conclusions what 
with more modesty and truthfulness men would have seen to be 
incomplete deductions and unsubstantiated theories. The treat- 
ment of these difficulties by Cardinal Gibbons is characterized by 
a liberality which will surprise not a few, and at the same time 
by a cogency and force that will satisfy troubled minds. 

To our own mind the gem of the book, the true pearl which 
needs to he dissolved and assimilated, and so pass into current 
thought and life, is contained in its third chapter, " Conscience 
bearing Witness to God." We commend to especial attention 
pages 52, 53, and 54. When the cardinal, after saying that to him 
the best witness of God's existence is the voice of conscience 



1890.] " OUR CHRISTIAN HERITAGE." 665 

goes on to remark that " modern science claims to deal with 
concrete facts rather than with abstract ideas ; we have here 
a concrete fact, known experimentally to every one, pervading 
human nature and asserting its influence everywhere," he touches 
the most vital point at issue between the Christian and the 
agnostic, and asserts valid rights of possession over it. There can 
be little doubt that it is God's will that a conspicuous cultivation 
of the virtues which are interior must now be looked for to 
counteract the prevalent denial of the validity of the secret aspi- 
rations of the soul. To be able to hear and to understand this 
inner voice is to the true Christian the very height of good for- 
tune, and to be guided by it the most eminently practical business 
of life. It is peculiarly so at the present time, when, as already 
said, the prevalent errors mainly result from agnosticism, for that 
teaches that the reality claimed to be underlying our religious as- 
pirations is non-existent or not ascertainable ; it limits the affir- 
mation of truth to things known by the senses ; or, if it allows 
any other certitude, it is merely of the metaphysical laws neces- 
sary to deal with the exact sciences. The controversy has 
changed ; why turn our faces backwards ? why rattle our armor 
and brandish our weapons at enemies dead upon the field or in 
hopeless flight ? But there does arise from the very rear of our 
own fortress the sound of a host, numerous and powerful, ad- 
vancing upon the least-protected defences, with torches towards 
the magazine, with shouts of triumph, into the very entrance of 
the citadel. God and the immortal soul are in controversy hot 
and deadly ; scepticism is beginning to attack the firmest Catholic 
strongholds ; its denials concern mainly the consciousness of God 
within us, the witness of conscience, the validity of religious 
longings for a future state, the reasonableness of prayer. God 
the Holy Ghost is the ^refuge and strength of men and nations 
in such a crisis. The leaders of thought, especially the ex- 
ponents of science in the literary world, answer to St. Paul's 
description : " They loved not to have God in their knowledge." 
Therefore the Spirit of wisdom must be invoked. Men must 
meet agnosticism with that only sufficient weapon for success, 
experimental knowledge. We who have the criterion of external 
authority at hand to test the correctness of our inner experience 
need fear no delusions. The sounder the faith, the deeper should 
be the interior life. 



666 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 



THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE.* 

IN the interesting volume which provides the text for the 
present article the accomplished editor of the London Month 
has given an intelligible account of that open sore of mankind 
which the illustrious Cardinal of the African Church is laboring 
to heal and radically cure. The first half of Father Clarke's work 
deals with the great patriarch himself; from childhood to ordi- 
nation, from the professor's rostrum to the episcopal throne, 
from the archiepiscopal see to the cardinalate it follows him. 
On reading the wonderful narrative, the cry of St. Philip Neri 
for twelve men like the apostles rings in one's ears. In this 
paper we shall, however, confine ourselves to the second part of 
Father Clarke's work, viz., the African slave-trade. 

Towards slavery in general Father Clarke seems quite lenient. 
His description of it would, in fact, satisfy the most rabid of pro- 
slavery men; he even holds that "the objections to slavery are 
drawn from a consideration of its moral influence on the master 
rather than from that of any habitual cruelty practised on the 
slaves " (p. 246). Indeed, this certainly would be news, unpalatable 
in many quarters. The church labors to abolish slavery, he tells 
us, as the moral educator of mankind, whatever that may mean. 
But almost immediately he adds the true reason: 

11 From the moment when Christianity began its work, slavery was doomed. 
It must needs fade away and disappear under the standard of the Cross. It 
could not withstand the Divine proclamation of universal freedom, that there is 
neither barbarian, Scythian, bond nor free, but all are one in Christ Jesus" 
(p. 247). 

Deo gratias ! in no Christian land is there a bondman. The 
year of Pope Leo XIII.'s jubilee saw the last manacle fall from 
a Christian slave, when Brazil by a stroke of the pen unshackled 
it. Truly the pen is mightier than the sword. How well shines 
out the truly Christian way in which a Catholic land broke those 
chains from how they were severed in our own land twenty-five 
years ago. Our slaves waded to freedom knee-deep in blood, 
while the Brazilian bondmen sallied forth in peace, with the bless- 
ings of their masters, their church, and their God. No sectional 
strifes, no political broils, no race-prejudice, no negro question 

* Cardinal Lavigerie and tke African Slave-Trade. Edited by Rev. Richard F. Clarke, 
S.J. London: Longmans, Green & Co. 



I 



1890.] THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. 667 

affects Brazil, because it is Catholic. But, on the other hand, 
perhaps the most burning question of the United States at this 
very hour is the negro and what to do with him. And why 
such a question ? Because of our utilitarian views of the unfortun- 
ate race views shared in as much by Catholics, who are al- 
ways affected by their environment, as by Protestants. 

Unhappily, slavery as yet flourishes in Mohammedan lands, 
although with two features, mentioned by Father Clarke, which 
throw the blush of shame on Southern slavery. Nearly all "Mo- 
hammedan slaves are domestic, and rarely employed in the 
fields; whereas the vast bulk of American slaves were engaged 
in out-door work, the masters, in very many cases, hiring out 
their slaves to work at trades or otherwise, and keeping their 
earnings. Again, "the child of a slave by her master is, ipso 
facto, free in all Mohammedan countries." A hard reproach 
this to our boastful land, where the old axiom, res fructificat 
domino, was applied to the offspring of human chattels, no mat- 
ter who the father might be. In America cuch a child was a 
slave ; in Islam it is free-born. Only a few days ago a widow 
came to see me about securing the pension her dead husband 
was entitled to. This' man, and ten sisters and brothers, were 
the children of a slave mother by her master. When the woman 
died that Christian master sold his eleven children, scattering them 
to the four winds of heaven. No Mussulman would do the like. 

Father Clarke, following his many authorities, regards do- 
mestic slavery as ineradicable in Africa. No anti-slavery crusade 
will destroy it, he claims. On the whole, he seems to recognize 
in it something more favorable than primeval savagery. The 
only hope of extinguishing domestic slavery seems to lie in the 
extinction of the slave-traffic. 

" Slavery requires a continual supply from without. The children ot 
domestic slaves are found by universal experience not to be sufficiently 
numerous to fill up the ranks. It is not easy at first to see Why it 
should be so, as the negro is remarkably prolific and of strong physique. 
But men, like other animals, do not seem to breed when they are in cap- 
tivity as they do when they are free, and it is not, as a rule, to the 
interest of their masters that they should do so. Slaves who grow up in 
the house occupy quite a different position from those that are purchased. 
For them slavery is a light yoke one so light that a great many of them 
shake it off altogether, and are virtually if not actually free. There is 
a sort of moral obligation on slave-owners to give their liberty to faith- 
ful slaves, and their ranks are this way considerably thinned. In all slave- 
holding countries in the present day the offspring of a white man and a 
slave is by the law born free, and thus the license existing among the 
owners of slaves in their intercourse with female slaves increases the free 
VOL. U--43 



668 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 

population in comparison with the slaves. Moreover, a prosperous man 
gradually increases his family of slaves, and such a one will go into 
the market or to the trader, and look out for a healthy boy or girl 
lately imported from the slave-producing countries rather than purchase 
one who is home-bred. He will get thus a cheaper and more serviceable 
article ; one more completely in his power and less likely to run away 
than if parents or a former owner were near at hand. Whatever the cause, 
an import trade is a necessity to the existence of slavery. Destroy the trade, 
and slavery itself will not last long" (p. 250). 

Whichever way one turns in considering this frightful horror, 
that has made of Africa a by-word and a reproach, the hope 
of improvement seems nil. Domestic slavery is baneful, the 
slave-traffic unnatural; but worse than both are the blood-stains, 
human bones, and skulls which mark the way from the villages 
of the captives to the slave-marts. Primarily, these horrors have 
the first claim on humanity. It would be tiresome to repeat the 
numerous narratives which Father Clarke gives of the razzias of 
slave-raids. During the past year the public press has kept 
before our eyes these sad scenes. It may be well, however, to 
give just one a description of a slave-raid of the White Nile 
traders : 

" On arriving at the desired locality, the [piratical] party disembark 
and proceed into the interior, until they arrive at the village of some 
negro chief, with whom they establish an intimacy. Charmed with his new 
friends, the power of whose weapons he acknowledges, the negro chief 
does not neglect the opportunity of seeking their alliance to attack a hostile 
neighbor. Marching throughout the night, guided by their negro hosts, 
they bivouac within an hour's march of the unsuspecting village, doomed 
to an attack about half an hour before the break of day. The time arrives, 
and quietly surrounding the village while its occupants are still sleeping, 
they fire the grass-huts in all directions, and pour volleys of musketry 
through the flaming thatch. Panic-stricken, the unfortunate victims rush 
from their burning dwellings, and the men are shot down like pheasants 
in a battue, while the women and children, bewildered in the danger and 
confusion, are kidnapped and secured. They are then fastened together, 
the former secured in an instrument called a sheba^ made of a forked 
pole, the neck of the prisoner fitting into the fork, secured by a cross- 
piece lashed behind, while the wrists, brought together in front of the 
body, are tied to the pole. The children are then fastened by their necks 
with a rope attached to the women, and thus form a living chain, in 
which order they are marched to the headquarters in company with the 
captured herds." (Sir S. Baker, Albert Nyanza, quoted by Father Clarke.) 

Amidst such sad scenes it is consoling to find the true Master 
bringing light out of darkness. Among the students at the 
College of Lille, Belgium, is one of these slaves, whom Cardinal 
Lavigerie's priests ransomed. But twenty years of age, the young 






1890.] THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. 669 

man had six masters during his captivity, which began when he 
was stolen from his home at the age of six, while on his face he 
carries fifteen scars, left by the cruel knives of his many masters. 
The hardships of his journey had so worn him out that the 
traders were only too gjad to find a buyer for him ; this is how 
the poor priests were able to secure him. He is now studying 
for the priesthood, and longs to return to his still-loved land and 
become an apostle to Ham's unhappy progeny. The Lord bless 
and prosper him ! 

II. MOHAMMEDANISM AND SLAVERY. 

With slavery is connected this question : Is Mohammedanism 
responsible for it in Africa ? It cannot be answered before con- 
sidering a wider topic, viz. : The influence of Mohammedanism on 
uncivilized nations and its attitude towards the Christian religion. 
The creed of the Prophet is regarded as a blight on a large 
portion of mankind by all Christians. Some learned students of 
man's progress agree, on the other hand, to see in Islamism an 
indispensable stepping-stone from barbarism to civilization, inas- 
much as it raises the negro from the fetichism and devil-worship 
of his ancestors. . 

"It counts in its ranks the most energetic and enterprising tribes. It 
claims as its adherents the only people who have any form of civil polity or 
social organization. It has built and occupies the largest cities in the heart of 
the continent. Its laws regulate the most powerful kingdoms. It produces and 
controls the most valuable commerce between Africa and foreign countries; it 
is daily gaining converts from the ranks of paganism ; and it commands respect 
among all Africans wherever it is known, even where the people have not sub- 
mitted to the sway of the Koran." (Blyden, a colored writer, Christianity ', 
Islam, and the Negro Race, p. 7, quoted by Father Clarke.) 

Without doubt, Islamism has a good effect on the negroes ; 
the mosque takes the place of the voudoo-hut, and Turkish 
prayers, said five times daily, are far more refining than the 
gross dances of the pagan festivals. Hence, everywhere in Africa 
the Mussulman missionary and their name is legion is looked 

!upon as a superior being, whcse presence seems to elevate the 
moral tone of the pagan villages which he visits. He travels 
about with absolute freedom, making many converts, not so 
much by his teaching and the doctrines of the Koran as by his 
personal influence, for he acts both as teacher and physician of 
the villages, which soon improve in his hands. Conscious of 
their superiority, the villages adopting the doctrines of Mohammed, 
unite together and are able to repel the slave-hunters' attacks, 



670 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 

while steadily increasing their own numbers. As a result, a 
number of large towns have grown up in Central Africa, while 
whole sections, like the Soudan and Nigritia, are entirely 
Mohammedan. At the present day, in fact, sixty millions almost 
the population of the whole United States of North Africans 
make their prayers to Allah and his Prophet, and are a living 
proof of the power of Mohammedan missionaries, not only in Africa 
of to- day, but of the future. 

True, Mohammedanism has exerted a beneficial influence over 
the negroes ; still, no Christian can see in Islamism a stepping- 
stone to Christianity. It hates Christianity ; the Crescent and the 
Cross are enemies to the death. . In dealing, then, with African 
slavery, there can be no truce between the two ; and so in all 
plans for the overthrow of the slave-traffic the Arabian Moslems 
must ever be regarded as our irreconcilable enemies. It will be 
war to the knife. Once again the Cross and the Crescent will 
meet ; this time in reverse positions. In Europe the Cross was 
in possession and the Crescent the aggressor ; in Africa the 
Crescent will be on the defensive, while the Cross will be the in- 
vader. May the new crusade have a happier ending than those 
of the middle ages ! 

III. ATTEMPTS TO SUPPRESS SLAVERY. 

The first means employed was blockading the coasts; natu- 
rally it could but prevent the export of slaves and tended to 
drive the traffic inland. It was like healing the surface and leav- 
ing the cancer's roots in full strength. Nor v/as running the 
blockade unfrequent, as the enormous profit more than repaid the 
risk of several failures. An inland expedition next followed un- 
der Sir Samuel Baker, on the White Nile and adjacent countries. 
He was armed with full powers from the khedive, with the 
moral support of the English government. The power of life and 
death was vested in him, over all his own men as well as over 
all the countries of the Southern Nile basin. From the start 
Baker found himself, although honestly aided by the khedive, 
thwarted by Egyptian officials, one of whom he finally cast into 
prison, on;y to be released after Baker left. The following ac- 
count of the capture of a slave-vessel on its way down the White 
Nile to Khartoum shows how the slave-traffic was carried on 
under Baker's very eye. It is related in his own words : 

"Colonel Abd-el-Kader was an excellent officer; he was one of the 
exceptions who took a great interest in the expedition, and he always 



1890.] THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. 671 

served me faithfully. He was a fine, powerful man, upwards of six 
feet high, and not only active, but extremely determined. He was gen- 
erally called 'the Englishman' by his brother-officers, as a bitter 
compliment reflecting on his debased taste for Christian society. This officer 
was not the man to neglect a search because the agent of Kutchuk Ali 
protested his innocence, and exhibited the apparently naked character of 
his vessel. She appeared suspiciously full of corn for a boat homeward 
bound. There was an awkward smell about the closely boarded forecastle 
which resembled that of unwashed negroes. Abd-el-Kader drew a steel 
ramrod from a soldier's rifle and probed sharply through the corn. 

'' A smothered cry from beneath, and a wriggling among the corn, was suc- 
ceeded by a woolly head, as the strong Abd-el-Kader, having thrust his long 
arm into the grain, dragged forth by the wrist a negro woman. The corn was 
at once removed; the planks which boarded up the forecastle -and the stern were 
broken down, and there was a mass of humanity exposed boys, girls, and 
women, closely packed like herrings in a barrel, who under the fear of threats 
had remained perfectly silent until thus discovered. The sail attached to the 
mainyard of the vessel appeared full and heavy in the lower part ; this was ex- 
amined, and upon unpacking it yielded a young woman, who had thus been sewn 
up to avoid discovery. The case was immediately reported to me. I at once 
ordered the vessel to be unloaded. We discovered one hundred and fifty slaves 
stowed away in a most inconceivably small area. The stench was horrible when 
they began to move. Many were in irons ; these were quickly released by the 
blacksmiths, to the astonishment of the captives, who did not appear to under- 
stand the proceeding. 

" I ordered the rakul, and the reis or captain of the vessel, to be put in 
irons. The slaves began to compreherid that their captors were now captives. 
They now began to speak, and many declared that the greater porti&n of the 
men of their villages had been killed by the slave-hunters." (Ismalia, pp. 127-8, 
quoted by Father Clarke. ) 

It soon dawned upon Baker that his expedition was a failure; 
but, brave man as he was, he held his post, manfully striving 
to crush the horrible traffic, till his appointed time expired. 
During the past years the British government has strengthened 
the coast blockade; but again only to the increase of the in- 
land traffic. 

Besides the attempts to suppress the slave-trade, there 
were abuses connected with domestic slavery in Africa which 
called for correction. Among the negro tribes exists a be- 
lief that after death the happiness of the deceased depends on 
having a number of slaves to wait upon him; hence a suitable 
escort is provided for the newly-dead by the sacrifice of a 
number of slaves at his grave. A frightful butchery ensues 
wherever this fetichism has not been rooted out by European or 
Arab influence. 

In 1887 the British government sent Sir James Marshall as 
chief-justice to the Niger territory. As a good Catholic, the judge 



672 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 

was very much pained by the cruel custom of killing slaves at a 
funeral, and resolved to wipe it out. In his first interview with 
the native chiefs, at which were present the Catholic and Pro- 
testant missionaries, the judge charged the forty chiefs gathered 
before him with being murderers ; told them that he knew for 
certain that slaves had been murdered only a few days before 
at a chiel's funeral, and expressed his resolve to root out the 
custom. Not long after three of the most important head men 
of the neighborhood died, and immemorial usage demanded the 
sacrifice of some slaves. This Judge Marshall determined to 
prevent, but failed. Unable at once to chastise the natives, he 
bided his time. At a favorable moment the military made a 
sortie, burning several houses of the natives. Alarmed at this, 
they sent a chief to sue for peace, which was refused unless 
the murderers were given up. A few shells scared them, but a 
strong attack, m which the dwellings and every temple and idol 
were destroyed, brought the natives to their senses, and led them 
to surrender the murderers, who were hanged. The upshot was 
a treaty of peace, in which the natives agreed to give up the 
horrible practice. Shortly afterward two slaves came as a depu- 
tation from their brother-slaves to thank the judge for his pro- 
tection. A little wholesome severity thus destroyed the worst 
feature of African domestic slavery, and is an argument of 
what may be done by timely measures with these savages. 



IV. SCHEMES FOR THE SUPPRESSION OF SLAVERY. 

Public opinion the world over is alive to the fact that all 
attempts hitherto made for the suppression of African slavery 
have been failures. True, an English squadron stopped the ex- 
port of slaves, but the inland traffic only gained in consequence. 
Neither commercial enterprise nor missionary efforts have done 
aught of importance against the traffic. 

" For twenty-nine years Cardinal Lavigerie has labored for the redemp- 
tion of the negro ; he has sent out many bands of missioners. Some have 
suffered martyrdom, others have died of fever and hardships. The survivors 
report no improvement ; on the contrary, matters are growing worse. Con- 
verts have been made, and individual slaves ransomed from their captors ; 
but the moral influence of the missioner has not availed to prevent a single 
razzia. Where nature has done much for man, and where man himself 
seems capable of progress, where a numerous and happy population might 
peacefully dwell, the slave-trader carries desolation. Slave-hunts are carried 
on in these countries as far as the sources of the Niger. The sale of slaves 
takes place publicly in all Mohammedan provinces on the same large scale 



1890.] THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. 673 

as ever. More than this, in the regions of the Great Lakes a fresh out- 
burst of fanaticism has taken place, resulting in the massacre of the Chris- 
tians and the expulsion of every white man. Throughout a wide extent 
of territory the feeble flame of civilization kindled by the missioners has 
been utterly extinguished" (p. 329). 

Slavery is the obstacle to the civilization, colonization, and 
evangelization of Africa. And this slave-traffic the church, 
by the mouth of Leo XIII., declares to be against all law, divine 
or human. The Pope has commissioned Cardinal Lavigerie to 
preach a crusade against it, and that great prelate's burning 
eloquence has aroused the conscience of Christian society ; and 
everywhere, from Protestants as from Catholics, from states and 
individuals, he has met cordial sympathy. Less indeed in our 
own land than in Europe has this new crusade received at- 
tention, and less again, we may add, among American Catholics 
than among their non-Catholic countrymen. It would need the 
presence and the burning words of the African Cardinal himself 
to stir up the hearts of American Catholics to the greatness of 
the task obedience has put upon him. And Africa has a great 
claim upon us, for seven millions of our countrymen belong to 
it by ties of consanguinity. 

Among the many proposals which have been made for the 
suppression of slavery the first is that the various powers 
declare that the status of slaves be no longer recognized by 
international law, and that the slave-traffic be treated as piracy. 
This would destroy the trade on the coast, but would not prove 
effectual inland without the co-operation of the Mussulman 
governors, who keep up the slave-traffic in order to maintain 
domestic slavery. The next measure proposed is to put restric- 
tions on the sale of fire-arms and ammunition into regions 
where slave-hunters make their razzias. To their shame, English 
and German (and no doubt American also) traders supply these 
weapons and cartridges. 

Cardinal Lavigerie relates that a slave-dealer, when questioned 
how he, could most safely penetrate into the heart of Africa, and 
who was its ruler, simply laid his hand on the barrel of his gun 
and answered : " The name of the ruler of Central Africa is 
King Rifle." It speaks volumes. 

A third and far more important scheme for abolishing the 
slave-trade is to destroy Moslem ascendency. Arab rule is the 
curse of Central Africa. It seems to hypnotize them, for the 
slave-dealers treat the natives just as they please. Not only do 
they barter with the chiefs for their subjects, but they make both 



674 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 

one and the other sons of the Prophet Now, Islamism is the 
enemy of Christianity, and every negro who bends his neck to 
the iron yoke becomes the implacable enemy of all Europeans. 
How to overthrow the Arab is a debatable question. Many 
believe that every approach of the white man, either as merchant 
or colonizer or missioner, will eventually uproot the evil spectre 
of the Arabian blight. Bring to the nations of the Dark Conti- 
nent the blessings of liberty and thus end the sale and barter 
of human beings. It is a pacific policy. On the other hand, 
Cardinal Lavigerie favors armed intervention. He would introduce 
into Africa a force of armed men, who would form a land- 
blockade against the slave-caravans and open a line of stations 
within easy reach of one another. 

To his appeal for volunteers the cardinal received in a few 
weeks the names of more than a thousand men. For some time 
a M. Joubert, an ex-Pontifical Zouave, with two hundred 
native soldiers under him and trained by him, has been living 
near one of the missionary stations on Lake Tanganyika. With 
this small force the brave soldier has effectually stopped the slave- 
traffic in his neighborhood. Cardinal Lavigerie's call to the secu- 
lar arm has not, however, met with universal approval. Many 
well qualified to express an opinion regard it as doomed to 
failure. As Napoleon's soldiers on the retreat from Moscow 
were beaten by the climate, so the deadly miasmatic African heat 
will make fall from the hands of the cardinal's soldiers the arms 
which their fevered brains could not guide them in aiming. It 
may be possible to train a negro soldiery; but to secure sufficient 
of them would consume valuable time and rob many a training 
officer of his life. 

Two other schemes proposed will help very much, , but can- 
not prove effectual. One is to establish fortified centres, follow- 
ing in this Emin Pasha, who for several years, with only native 
soldiers, has been a scourge to the Arab traders, passing from 
post to post, defending or attacking, pursuing or arbitrating in 
short, having recourse to every weapon of sword and tongue to 
root out the slave-traffic. The second may be termed a com- 
mercial scheme; it consists in outbidding Arab traders in buying 
ivory and other African products. This savors too much of the 
utilitarian to be efficacious. 

The last scheme for the suppression of slavery is colonization. 
As for the whites, the same objection holds against them as 
settlers that would prevent them going as soldiers. By great in- 
dustry the whites might overcome these drawbacks, which now 



1890.] THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. 675 

beset their dwelling in Africa. But it would demand a very long 
time. Meanwhile the slave traffic, and Islamism with it, ?vould 
go on increasing. Hence the question of negro colonization 
seems the most tangible. And Father Clarke appeals to the suc- 
cess, although partial only, of Liberia as a sufficient proof why 
American negroes should colonize in Africa. It is not a new 
thought. As far back as 1853 Edward Everett thus spoke of it: 

" When that last noble expedition, which was sent out from England, I 
think, in the year 1841, under the highest auspices, to found an agricultural 
settlement in the interior of Africa, ascended the Niger, every white man out 
of one hundred and fifty sickened, and all but two or three if my memory 
serves me died ; while of their dark-skinned associates, also one hundred and 
fifty in number, with all the added labor and anxiety that devolved upon them, 
a few only were sick, and they individuals who had passed years in a temperate 
climate, and not one died. I say again, sir, you Caucasian, you proud Anglo- 
Saxon, you self-sufficient, all-attempting white man, you cannot civilize Africa. 
You have subdued and appropriated Europe ; the native races are melting be- 
fore you in America as the untimely snows of April before a vernal sun ; you 
have possessed yourself of India; you menace China and Japan; the remotest 
isles of the Pacific are not distant enough to escape your grasp, nor insignificant 
enough to elude your notice; but Central Africa confronts you and bids you 
defiance. Your squadrons may blockade her coast, but neither on the errands 
of war nor the errands of peace can you penetrate the interior. The God of 
nature, no doubt for wise purposes, however inscrutable, has drawn across the 
chief inlets a cordon you cannot break through. You may hover on the coast, 
but you dare not set foot on the shore. Death sits portress at the undefended 
gateways of her mud-built villages. Yellow fevers, and blue plagues, and inter- 
mittent poisons, that you can see as well as feel, await your approach as 
you ascend the rivers. Pestilence shoots from the mangroves that fringe their 
noble banks, and the glorious sun, which kindles all inferior nature into teeming, 
bursting life, darts disease into your languid systems. 

" No ; you are not elected for this momentous work. The Great Disposer, 
in another branch of his family, has chosen out a race, descendants of this torrid 
region, children of this vertical sun, and fitted them by ages of stern discipline 
for the gracious achievement." (Quoted by Father Clarke, page 349, from Bly- 
den's Christianity \ Islamism, and the Negro Race. ) 

It is claimed that our negroes have no opening in the United 
States worthy of national ambition. True, they are hampered 
in many ways; shut out from trades, etc., etc.; in short, they 
are a serious problem. The following extract, quoted by Father 
Clarke, is from the pen of the same Blyden, who is a negro : 

" In the United States, notwithstanding the great progress made in the direc- 
tion of liberal ideas, the negro is still a stranger. The rights and privileges ac- 
corded by constitutional law offer him no security against the decrees of private 
or social intolerance. He is surrounded by a prosperity industrial, commercial, 
and political in which he is not permitted to share, and is tantalized by social 
respectabilities from which he is debarred. The future offers no encouragement 
to him. In the career of courage and virtue, of honor, emolument, and fame, 



676 THE AFRICAN SLAVE-TRADE. [Feb., 

which lies open to his white neighbors and to their children, neither he himself, 
nor his sons and daughters, can have any part. From that high and improving 
fellowship which binds together the elements from Europe, however incongruous, 
the negro child is excommunicated before he is born." (Blyden, ibid.} 

Any one giving any thought to the question of Africa must 
be struck by the unanimous agreement which sees in the 
American negro Africa's greatest hope. The feasibility of forced 
or government colonization is certainly a debatable question. 
Hard is it to understand how the United States could expatriate 
native-born citizens, no matter what their color. The Constitu- 
tion liberally provides for naturalizing aliens, but has no pro- 
vision for denaturalizing citizens. Should negro colonization be 
attempted, it seems possible only as a philanthropic measure, or 
an outgrowth on the part of the negroes themselves. Still, 
there seems a providential sign in this call for American negroes 
to face. toward Africa. We believe that Africa will be Christian- 
ized by the American negro. True, it seems far-fetched to write 
in this way when only a handful of our seven millions are 
Catholics. Arithmetical progression is, however, a feature of 
mathematics, not of the Gospel. The apostles stayed not in Jeru- 
salem till it became Christian. The best way to convert the 
negroes of the South or the whites of the North is to send 
missionaries to Africa and Asia. Sadly must we regret the ab- 
sence of the missionary spirit. Nearly all the priests among the 
Indians are Europeans, while of the nineteen Josephites laboring 
for the negroes but three were born in the United States. How 
to explain this! We are satisfied with saying that the fault lies 
chiefly in the home. As children we are too much indulged 
and humored; the hard virtue of self-denial is not implanted ; and 
when at man's estate, we fear the trials and sufferings of the 
foreign missionary. St. Joseph's Seminary and the Epiphany 
Apostolic College in Baltimore will prove, God grant ! nurseries 
to develop the missionary spirit. The "Macedonian cry" has 
already echoed within their walls, which is thrilling the young 
hearts there with longings to win the unhappy offspring of Ham, 
here and in Africa, to the church and civilization. With this 
sublime calling before the negroes of the South, every at- 
tempt should be made to develop vocations among themselves. 
The weakest point in all schemes regarding the blacks is that 
in the work of their uplifting they themselves are ignored. 
Scheme after scheme is hatched for their bettering, not one 
of which seems to think of themselves as a working factor. 
The true elevation of the blacks must be a growth ; it must 



1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 677 

come from within, from themselves. What they need to-day 
more than anything else are natural* leaders, both in the 
spiritual and civic orders. Not hirelings nor political demagogues, 
but apostles of grace and apostles of civic virtue. Give the 
negroes plenty of their own priests, and without doubt the " open 
sesame " to the negro problem of the South will be found. 
And then, reversing the march of the king of day, their 
priests will be the generals of the greatest crusade of Chris- 
tianity the evangelization of Africa by her own transatlantic 
sons. J. R. SLATTERY. 

St. Joseph's Seminary, Baltimore. 






A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 

THE Rev. Charles C. Starbuck, who writes a "good deal for the 
Andover Review and other Protestant reviews and magazines, has 
recently written a very noteworthy article for the New Englander 
and Yale Review, entitled " Considerations Touching the School 
Question." As he seems to represent the more fair-minded and 
reasonable section of our non-Catholic brethren, and to have given 
the subject some consideration we cannot say a careful one his 
article is interesting as presenting the views of those hostile to us, 
yet desirous ot keeping a kind and Christian spirit towards all 
men, even towards those with whom they differ. 

A great part of the article is devoted to showing up the 
wild and unreasoning sentiments of the Boston fanatics who have 
lately gone crazy on the school question. No Catholic could 
have administered a more deserved but unsparing lashing, for 
which we give him our heartfelt gratitude. 

Yet his article shows clearly how hard it is for a partisan, let 
him strive ever so hard, to rise to the level of Christian chanty. 
He has found it necessary to qualify the many excellent things 
he has said about us with a number of insinuations for which he 
gives no proof, so as to produce in the minds of his readers an 
impression of dislike and antipathy. 

Vague talk and insinuation are not proof. Honorable men 
should be careful not to deal in them. They stab you in the dark, 
when you cannot see how to defend yourself. They sow discord 
and hatred, and are altogether contrary to Christian charity, which, 
when one is not certain that another is doing wrong, leads him 
to put a good and not an evil construction on his motives. 



678 A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. [Feb., 

Mr. Starbuck, by his talk about a fancied conspiracy among 
Catholics, flaunts what I may call the " bloody shirt " before the 
eyes of his readers. He talks in this vein through a good many 
pages. "There is, therefore, a Roman Catholic plot carried on 
against our public weal by men who are just as really conspirators 
as Guy Fawkes." He sustains his statements by good, round 
asseverations, such as : " We may not be exactly able to define a 
particular ecclesiastical intrigue, but we all know and feel [italics 
ours] that such a thing is going on among our Catholics." 

We all know and feel is decidedly good for catching the 
unreasoning, prejudiced multitude who have had this dinned in 
their ears from infancy. This is not argument. Pro ratione stet 
voluntaSj which translated is, " Let prejudices take the place 
of truth and reason." Again, " There can be no doubt [italics 
ours] that a good many Roman Catholic priests use the most 
unscrupulous terrorism to break the laity to their ends, and 
exhibit the unworthy bribes of money and place, or the latter at 
least, to persuade Protestant politicians to connive at their silent 
infraction of fundamental principles of public action." 

Of course this " There can be no doubt" settles the case with all 
those who share this conviction with Mr. Starbuck, but not with 
any one else. Some proof would be decidedly desirable to con- 
vince them of the truth of these statements. A few instances, at 
least, would be in order, though among so large a body of 
clergy it would scarcely prove much, since we know there was one 
traitor even among the twelve apostles. The eight or ten millions 
of Catholics, who have a better opportunity to judge of facts 
relating to themselves, I am sure would exclaim with one voice 
that this statement is false and calumnious. The " exhibiting the 
unworthy bribes of money and place" is about as rich as 
anything we have read for a long while. Mr. Starbuck seems to 
feel that is rather too strong a dose, and dilutes it by adding, 
"the latter, at least." Now, we cannot help saying to him: If 
you doubted about the money, why did you say anything about 
it? It is not right to throw out insinuations. 

Let me say right here that the prospect of reaching Chris- 
tian unity (a thing Mr. Starbuck professes to have much at 
heart) is very slim so long as these unsupported accusations 
against fellow-Christians are flung out before the public. Catholic 
priests, as a general thing, mind their own business and rarely 
meddle with party politics, in which respect they are a shining 
example to the clergy of the several denominations. Again, Mr. 
Starbuck says: 






1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 679 

" The archbishop's palace and Tammany Hall have stood in 
an intimacy of intercourse which has been damning to the Chris- 
tian fame of the former and of more than one of its occupants." 
The fame of many an innocent person has been " damned " by 
false insinuations and unproved assertions, more shame to those 
who made them. We have been great sufferers. A lie about us 
need only be started to go the rounds. If completely refuted, it 
makes no difference. The lie suits the taste of the public, the 
refutation is unpalatable ; besides, is it not an injury to religion 
to stop such a serviceable lie ? If Catholics did not do just the 
thing they are accused of, all the same they have done things 
just as bad. So the lie that the site of the cathedral was given 
by the city has been completely refuted ; still it appears period- 
ically, and no coubt will continue to appear ad indefinitum. 

As to the intimacy of the archbishop's palace and Tammany 
Hall, I suppose it can be accounted for from the fact that Mr 
John Kelly, the late head of Tammany Hall, married the niece 
of the late Cardinal McCloskey, and sometimes visited his house. 
This is foundation broad enough for a prodigious structure of 
rumor, which rumor soon grows into a dead certainty among 
those interested in believing it. 

Mr. Starbuck, no doubt alluding to the excesses of the Bos- 
ton fanatics, says : " Matters are now, therefore, very much the 
same with us as they were with the English when they had all 
gone wild over the pretended popish plot in the times of Charles 
II." Is he any better off himself with his wild statements, based 
on no other evidence than " no doubt " and " we all know and 
feel," etc.? What difference is there essentially between them and 
himself, when he proceeds : " There was a real popish plot then 
and there is a real popish plot now"? 

Oh! what a fine phrase, "popish plot," to fire the Protestant 
heart ! " There was a dangerous plot then and there is a dan- 
gerous plot now. The conspirators then were Charles II., his 
presumptive heir, the king of France, and the Jesuits." The 
Jesuits, of course. " The conspirators now are^ the Jesuits " they 
cannot be dispensed with " the Catholic Irish as a body, the 
Curia, and such members of the American hierarchy and priest- 
hood as are men after the hearts of the Jesuits and the Curia." 

O the Jesuits and the Curia ! O Catholic Irish ! O Guy 
Fawkes ! O Foreign Potentates ! faggots, fire, and sword ! Wake 
up, American citizens ! The gunpowder is all stowed away under 
the Capitol, the train is laid, the slow match lighted ; before you 
know it you will be all sailing in the air, American liberty de- 



680 A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. [Feb., 

stroyed, our glorious common-school system, the very apple of 
our eye, completely ruined ! 

We cannot help being reminded by the alarm of Mr. Star- 
buck of a passage in the Acts of the Apostles : " But all for the 
space of about two hours cried out, Great is Diana of the 
Ephesians ! " Mr. Starbuck asks whether " the present controversy 
against our public schools is a part of the Roman Catholic con- 
spiracy. He answers, "Yes and no; it is taken up into the con- 
spiracy and actively promoted by it." He instances in support 
of this Catholic Belgium. " There, as we are credibly informed 
(for I do not pretend to rest on documentary evidence), the gov- 
ernment offered the priests every facility for giving the children 
regular and frequent doctrinal instruction at the public expense. 
But because they could not appoint and dismiss the teachers and 
entirely control the schools, they waged a war in which every 
instinct of charity, forbearance, righteousness, and common decency 
was set at naught," etc. 

There is an audacious hardihood in this statement which ill 
befits one calling himself a minister of the gospel. " We are 
credibly informed (for I do not pretend to rest on documentary 
evidence)." Who is your informant? Is he a Protestant? Is 
he free from partisan bias in this matter ? What are his 
sympathies ? This being " credibly informed " has a fishy odor 
about it. No doubt the anti-Catholic party in power in Belgium 
had to sugar-coat their pill in the hope that the people would 
swallow it; but what "every facility" for religious instruction is 
afforded if the schools are stuffed with a lot of agnostic and 
Freemason teachers ? The bishops and priests of Belgium were 
quite right in opposing vigorously the putting education and the 
appointment of teachers in the hands of an infidel government 
rather than in those of the local community, not of the priests, 
who do not claim it. What schools could be expected of 
Mr. Van Humbeck, minister of public instruction in Belgium, 
who got up this school law, may be judged by the following bit 
of "documentary evidence," not untrustworthy hearsay: 

" There is a dead body upon the world ; it bars the way of 
progress. This dead body of the past, to call it by its name, 
squarely and without roundabouts, is Catholicism. It is this 
dead body which we have looked to-day in the face, and if we 
have not succeeded as yet in flinging it into the ditch, we have 
got hold of it in such a way that it is somewhat nearer to it 
than it was." 

Mr. Van Humbeck, we are glad to say, got himself and his 






1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 68 1 

party into the ditch. Their heads are completely under water, 
with the smallest prospect of ever getting them out again. The 
Belgian people understand these things rather better than the 
Rev. Mr. Starbuck. But we must not be too hard upon him. 
He had what he thought a good end in view. We need not 
doubt it. His means of accomplishing it are bad. The end 
does not justify the means; but how can we blame severely a 
fervent Protestant minister, who believes his darling Protestant 
religion, the very child of his own brain and private judgment, 
to be in danger from that compact organization, united in 
one and the same faith, called the Catholic Church, if he looks 
through his fingers at the means of defending himself? 

Moreover, he intimates to his readers not to take too much 
stock in the conspiracy business. " Doubtless it is better to be 
fantastically alarmed than not to be alarmed at all." Yes, better 
to hang some fellow, even the wrong one, than no fellow at all. 

Now let us turn to something more substantial and more 
pleasing. We must express our heart-felt thanks to Rev. Mr. 
Starbuck for his complete vindication of us in our opposition to 
a public-school education as things now stand. He shows what 
any man of good sense, who knows anything about it, must see 
to be the truth, that we should be false to our inmost con- 
victions and hypocrites if we did not oppose- it. This is what 
he says : " But Roman Catholicism can acknowledge nothing as 
a Christian education which is not distinctively and extendedly 
dogmatic." 

Yes ; education must be distinctively dogmatic, and more or 
less extended according to circumstances. " Of course, then, if 
our public schools were thoroughly satisfactory to Protestants 
(which they by no means are), they could not possibly be satis- 
factory to Catholicism. Either the teaching in these must be 
undogmatic, or, for the most part, it would be dogmatically Pro- 
testant. That is, in the view of Roman Catholicism, the instruc- 
tion in most of our public schools, cannot fail to be either 
unchristian or heretically Christian. However mild and reason- 
able, and little inclined to make trouble, our American Catholicism 
might be, it is hard to see how it can ever consent to our 
public-school system so long as this is so distinctly separated 
from dogmatical Roman Catholic Christianity. We have no 
right to say that Roman Catholic opposition to it is a mere 
display of hierarchical wantonness. It is the result of an essen- 
tial opposition of principle" (italics ours). 

All honor to him for his fearlessness in saying this! If Pro- 



682 A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. [Feb., 

testants generally would imitate this example of doing towards 
others as they would wish others to do to them, we should be 
honored and respected for the purity of our motives at least, 
instead of being misrepresented and vilified. If Protestants would 
sincerely ponder over these golden words of Mr. Starbuck, and act 
according to their inmost convictions, our battle would be fought 
arid the victory won. We should hear no more of our wicked 
attempts to destroy "our glorious public-school system," of 
priestly dictation to the laity; for the laity, if sincere Catholics 
and not hypocrites, must oppose the public-school education for 
their own children on principle. May God speed the day when 
the Protestant clergy and laity may have enough of the spirit ol 
Christ to cease from such unjust aspersions, and not allow them- 
selves to say with their tongues what they are not convinced of 
in their hearts ! 

What are Catholics asking for in regard to education ? Simply 
to be put on an exactly equal footing with their fellow-citizens. 
They have not the slightest desire to use the public-school 
system as an instrument for proselytizing the children of their 
neighbors who are not Catholics. But, on the other hand, they 
do not want their own children to be proselytized at the public 
expense ; above all, not to have their own money used for their 
own spiritual destruction. 

There is a meanness about any such proceeding which neces- 
sarily creates intense disgust in their minds. We do not want an 
"exhibition of money and place" to " unworthily bribe " our poor 
or weak Catholics to be untrue to their religion and to violate 
their consciences. We do not want to be taxed for that from 
which we receive no benefit. Our forefathers in the Republic re- 
fused to pay taxes to the British government because they were 
not represented in it, but at least they had a show of protection 
and Great Britain was responsible for the maintenance of public 
order. We get no benefit from the public schools, but a positive 
injury and injustice. Yet .when we complain, the only answer 
we get is, " Sic volo, sic jubeo " ; or, as the Hon. William M. Tweed 
used to say, "What are you going -to do about it?" We are 
most anxious to live in peace and amity with our fellow-citizens. 
Religious difference, when unaccompanied by injustice, does not 
make Catholics feel animosity to others. What stirs up animosity 
is this deep sense that we are unfairly dealt with. The state is 
asking of us much more than she has a right to. We acknowl- 
edge that she has the right to see that all her citizens are 
educated so as to fulfil all the duties of citizenship. She can 



1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 683 

use the means necessary to bring this about ; but not means 
which are not necessary. If Catholics provide a satisfactory edu- 
cation for their children, that is all that the state has a right to 
ask. Why cannot the state, by some general law (which need not 
allude even to religion), enable the individuals who have paid 
the taxes to get back, under suitable conditions, what they have 
paid. Then the first principle of justice would be satisfied. 
" Tribue suum ctiique" Render to each one what is his own. 
No rights of conscience would be violated, either directly or in- 
directly, and no additional burden or fine would be imposed on 
any one for his honest endeavor to render unto God what is 
God's, as well as to Caesar what is Caesar's. The public-school 
system as at present constituted is nothing less then a bone of 
contention. It engenders bitter feeling, sets one man against 
another, and must necessarily continue this mischievous working 
until it is set right. We ask our Protestant brethren to be just. If 
they think we are in the wrong, by all means let them try to convert 
us, but let it be by fair argument and appeal to that right reason 
God has given us, but not by trying to stab us in the dark by 
means of Protestant schools masquerading under the guise of a 
fair, impartial public-school system. Act fairly and justly by us. 
We will agree to fulfil all that the public welfare demands in 
regard to education, keep it up to the mark. This is what will 
more than anything else tend to the harmony and good-will of 
the community. All our grievances would be removed and all hard 
feeling would disappear. The best state of things would prevail ; 
true liberty, civil equality, and fraternity would flourish in our 
land. 

It is a mistake, an entire misapprehension, to suppose that a 
system of Catholic schools in which our religion should be 
thoroughly taught would engender division among our citizens ; 
on the contrary, it would remove that which now exists. Cath- 
olics are taught kindness and fraternal charity towards all. They 
recognize that Protestants have inherited their religious ideas 
from their forefathers, and that, as a general thing, they honestly 
hold them. There is no reason for hatred or dislike in the 
actual state of things ; on the contrary, every reason for kindness 
and compassion. We wish all to enjoy all the benefits we enjoy, 
not by any merit of our own but by the grace of God. We 
know that a spoonful of honey will catch more flies than a barrel 
of vinegar. What will tend to hinder this spirit of charity is 
manifest injustice, lies, calumnies, insinuations, readiness to put an 
evil construction on our best actions and intentions. This, I am 

VOL. L. 44 



684 *4 NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. [Feb., 

sorry to say, is much too common. We, I am glad to say, 
seldom retaliate. One seldom hears from our pulpits any but kind 
sentiments towards Protestants. Ignorant and careless Catholics, 
who have thrown off the influence of religion, may sometimes 
express them, but, on the whole, our laity are remarkably free from 
them. 

If Protestants wish to convert us, they should rely more on 
the spirit of Christ in presenting their religion and less on legal 
contrivances, calumny, or contempt. They should not arrogate to 
themselves all the intelligence and all the wisdom of the world, 
or despise us because so many of our people happen to be poor 
in this world's goods. A large portion of the poor outside the 
Catholic Church are in a hostile position towards religion, while 
the church keeps her own under her influence. Christ promised 
that " the poor ye shall always have with you." The church 
glories in the fulfilment of this Divine promise. 

Protestants should not try to steal our children away by 
manipulating the law, and by a sort of dark-lantern process con- 
cealing a motive of proselytizing under an outward show of 
candor and fairness. If they cannot succeed in their endeavors 
by fair, honorable means, it seems to me they should stop and 
reflect that the fault must be inherent in their Protestantism, 
which must have been a grand mistake in the beginning, and that 
it would be better for them to return to the church from which 
they went out too hurriedly. For surely it cannot be good to 
uphold a false religion which cannot please God, to whom we are 
finally responsible. 

We are glad Mr. Starbuck has had the frankness to avow 
the following sentiments : " Now, the basis of our school system 
ought to be Protestantism. We are in fact, and ought to be by 
legal decision, a Protestant Christian country." Although we 
admire the frankness of this, we by no means admire its justice. He 
is evidently tarred by the same stick as the Boston fanatics, to 
whom he has given such a merited lashing. Boston, no doubt, 
is the Hub of the Universe. Boston had in old times the 
honor of burning down the Charlestovvn convent. The microbe 
which has lain dormant so many years has lately revived ; and 
many, no doubt, would be glad to do the same again if they 
dared. Mr. S. has undoubtedly a touch of the Boston grippe. 
But it is a mild case, and we hope he may soon recover. 

What kind of a school would Mr. Starbuck have by legal 
enactment, and force Catholic people to support by their hard- 
earned taxes? A huge proselytizing machine. "A school," he 



1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 685 

says, "in which our children are not free to study Macaulay's 
History and recite the 'Battle of Ivry ' is only half a school." 
Let us see his own estimation of Macaulay's History. "What 
Protestant synod or conference is there that would not raise 
the most indignant remonstrances if our children in a public 
school were required to recite the Jesuit Deharbe's catechism ? 
Yet this, though more dogmatically definite, is not one 
whit more intensely Catholic than Macaulay's History is 
intensely Protestant. It is a gloriously Protestant book, in 
which every Protestant youth ought to be indoctrinated. It 
would do more to fortify him against Romanism than any 
theological book I know of." This is the kind of teaching 
he would have established by legal enactment in all our public 
schools. 

In Massachusetts, a community nearly half of which is Catho- 
lic, mostly laboring men finding it close work to support their 
families, and brought to distress in case of a stoppage of work 
for any reason, he would present a free school, amply furnished 
to a great extent out of their * taxes, in which, without their 
suspecting it, their children are to be " gloriously indoctrinated " 
into Protestantism and a hatred of their parents' religion run- 
ning the risk of moral bankruptcy ; for, once detached from their 
religion by Macaulay's History and other instructions of the same 
sort, they are far more likely to become agnostics or infidels 
than to become Protestants. Or he will allow them the alternative 
of scraping together enough, after building their church, which 
their respect for God's service will lead them to make fit and 
Beautiful at any sacrifice, to build a large school-house and sup- 
port a sufficient staff of teachers to compete with the subsidized 
Protestant public school. If they cannot do this, the cry has 
often been raised that the Catholic people do not care for the 
Catholic schools, and that they are dragooned into it by unscru- 
pulous priests. 

The public-school system is now in effect just what Mr. 
Starbuck says it ought to be. The schools will be, and must be, 
pervaded by the spirit of the teachers. As the teachers are for 
the most part Protestants, with an inherited, ingrained prejudice 
against the Catholic Church, we cannot entrust our children to 
them. Every branch of study will be used as an engine to batter 
down their faith. 

Is this a free country ? Do we enjoy here a real, substan- 
tial liberty ? There is certainly no real freedom in a country 
where the majority can ride at will over the minority. It is not 



686 A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. [Feb., 

a free country where the dearest parental rights can be crushed 
by a state-rigged car of Juggernaut, pulled along by a multitude 
lashed by their unscrupulous, fanatical leaders into a blind fury 
of passion. What advantage is there in living in such a country 
rather than in Russia under the autocrat, or in Germany under 
the blood-and-iron Chancellor Bismarck? They at least may feel 
some responsibility, which it is vain to look for in an unreason- 
ing, excited multitude. 

But Mr. Starbuck tries to give us consolation on the principle 
that "what is sauce for the goose is sauce for the gander," 
viz., that, being forced to pay taxes for Protestant schools when 
in the minority, we can force Protestants to pay taxes for Cath- 
olic schools when we come to be in the majority. We give this 
delectable proposition in his own words : " But the question of 
a remission of taxes is another thing. We do not exempt a 
Quaker from military tax because he is opposed to war. We, 
if a Protestant country, at least, ought not to support Roman 
Catholic schools. Beyond that let a Protestant people decide. 
And if the Roman Catholics anywhere gain a majority, we are 
not to ask of them more than we have been willing to grant." 

As to this comparison of Catholics with Quakers, it is a 
transparent piece of clap-trap. If Catholics were conscientiously 
opposed to all schooling, as Quakers are to all wars, and claimed 
exemption from taxes without providing their own schools 
and education, I should say by all means override their objec- 
tions, for education is necessary for the welfare of the community ; 
but when they are ready to fulfil all necessary requirements, do 
not tax them for being conscientious Catholics. 

Besides, we cannot see the logic of speaking of Protestants 
paying for Roman Catholic schools when every cent of the money is 
paid by the Roman Catholics themselves. When I hand a man five 
dollars to go and buy me a pair of boots, is it he or I that pays 
for the boots ? And if he pockets the money and I must pay 
over again, it is usually called swindling. 

We can assure the Rev. Mr. Starbuck we have no desire to 
retaliate. We are at this disadvantage in the affairs of this mortal 
life, that our religion forbids retaliation. " Do unto others as you 
would have them do to you " is our motto, and we hold that 
our hopes of heaven depend upon our strictly living up to it . 
We do not hold the doctrine of justification by faith alone, but 
hold that our faith must be made alive by Divine charity, or a 
true obedience to the commandments and faithful following of 
the spirit of Christ. We cannot afford to lose the grace of God 



1890.] A NOVEL DEFENCE OF THE PUBLIC SCHOOL. 687 

in the endeavor to get even with those who have done us an 
injury. 

Mr. Starbuck tells us: "When our public schools were estab- 
lished we had virtually one religion, Protestantism. Now we 
have at least three, Protestantism, Catholicism, and secularism. 
One of these three must be at the basis of our system of public 
instruction, because it is simply impossible that an extended sys- 
tem of education should exist without a constitutive thought con- 
cerning ultimate truth at the bottom." The " constitutive thought" 
is undoubtedly secularism. Theoretically, the schools must be 
neutral as to religion in this country of theoretical equal rights. 
So long as all are to be taxed and no division made of the 
taxes, religion must be tabooed. When it is not, there are con- 
stant complaints of injustice and unfair dealing. Teachers of 
positive convictions are not suited to the system, and not wanted. 
The whole system gravitates to pure secularism, and secularism is 
only another term for agnosticism or infidelity. Mr. Starbuck says 
the same : " If it is secularism, then Christians, Catholic or Protes- 
tant, cannot use it without perpetual perturbations of conscience." 

Why should we not unite in stemming this tide of secularism 
which is sweeping down on us ? Why not do all in our power 
to have all the children educated in the fear and the love of 
God ? It seems to me that sincere Protestants ought to be glad 
to co-operate with their fellow-citizens who are Catholics, in order 
that they may educate their children in their own faith. 
Then, if they have no objection to unite in public schools among 
themselves, let them do so, and we shall have nothing to say 
about it. The school question will then be out of court. Each 
one will educate his own children as he thinks right. Each one 
will mind his own business and expect others to mind theirs. 
And the principles of the illustrious founders of our Republic will 
not be forgotten, nor the government in danger of merging into 
a centralized despotism, in which unnecessary state interference 
shall hamper and destroy the natural rights of the individual. 

GEORGE DESHON. 






688 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Feb., 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

A BEAUTIFUL book, both in its illustrations and its letter-press, 
is The Poor Sisters of Nazareth (London and New York : Burns 
& Oates). In form it is a small quarto. The drawings, many of 
which are full-page, and all of them interesting and charac- 
teristic, were made by George Lambert. Mrs. Alice Meynell 
writes the very readable record of life at Nazareth House, 
Hammersmith. It is done with a very free hand, and though 
crowded with interesting facts, and emphasized here and there 
with a suggestive comment, or a half-veiled hint looking toward 
possible modifications of certain widely current views, it may be 
easily read through within an hour. We learn from it that the 
Order of Nazareth Nuns is a comparatively new religious family, 
having been founded by Cardinal Wiseman. Although probably 
not exclusively English as to its composition, it is so as far as 
its work is concerned. Its apostolate is to the subjects of the 
British Empire, "white and black," says Mrs. Meynell, though 
perhaps with no deliberate intention of ignoring red, brown, and 
yellow. Still, we observe that of the fourteen houses already 
planted, the only foreign ones are the four situated in South 
Africa and Australia. The work of the community is to instruct 
and care for destitute children, and provide a home for the aged 
poor of both sexes and any creed. The inmates are mostly 
Catholics, but when they are not no constraint is put upon them. 
The old are free to go outside the enclosure to any place of 
worship that they choose, and their own ministers are sent for 
to attend them if they are known to have any preferences. 
There is no religious test for admission, and in the case of 
young children, " the wishes of parents when there are parents 
and when they have wishes are carefully respected." But 
children who are not to become Catholics are not kept later 
than the age of First Communion, as the nuns find themselves 
unable "to take the responsibilities of consciences more than 
twelve or fourteen years, and unguided by the rules of definite 
religious order." The spirit of the order combines action and 
contemplation. Office is recited by all, apparently in choir, and 
there are no lay sisters. In these respects, as well as in the 
daily quest for alms, the order resembles that branch of the 






1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 689 

Franciscan family so well known in this country as the Sisters 
of the Poor of St. Francis. 

Although so modern as to date and so English as to 
province, the Order of Nazareth shows few perceptible signs of 
having been met at any turn by the trend of modern ways. 
One thing, indeed, Mrs. Meynell says of them, possibly in order 
to explain the appearance of this beautiful volume. They are 
the simplest of the simple, she declares, in their dealings with 
all, " even with the press ! If the newspaper can indirectly help 
them to feed their flock, the newspaper may publish their neces- 
sities and describe their enterprises; and their personal love of 
complete seclusion is sacrificed for the sake of charity as 
sweetly and undemonstratively as every other wish or thought 
that is touched with self." But this willingness to encounter 
on behalf of their poor that terror of modern modest woman- 
hood, the interviewer, marks possibly their sole concession to 
the innovating spirit of the times. Some things that Mrs. 
Meynell relates concerning the customs of the community 
strongly suggest that in religious houses, at least, woman is 
not held to be "the weaker vessel." Is there any community 
of religious men, combining contemplation with the active 
labors of the ministry or of charity, of which it would be true 
to say that " prayer and the duties of devotion are always 
postponed to the duties of charity, but though postponed are 
never dispensed with " ? Or, again, that for one of its mem- 
bers " at least, in every twenty-four hours, the day never ends 
at all," because while each takes in turn to watch all night 
by the sick, that duty "excuses from nothing of the routine 
of the following day's labor or prayer" ? Of course, if such 
practices are adopted for the sake of mortification, pure 
and simple, we have no intention to animadvert upon them. 
But if charity to the neighbor is the end in view, they seem to 
the eye of common sense like burning one's candles at both 
ends ; and one is not surprised to learn that the novitiate of 
Nazareth House is less full now than formerly. Why should the 
flesh and blood of good women be held so cheap when they 
have been so faithfully consecrated to the service of the neigh- 
bor, whom the divine command obliges all of us to love as we 
love ourselves? Women know no measure in their devotion, one 
is told who puts such questions. They will not hear of relaxa- 
tions, they are ambitious to excel, they are resolved to do all 
that they can and even more. True ; but would not their holy 
ambition yield somewhat, if not to holy discretion, at least to 



690 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Feb., 

holy obedience ? "I have been too hard on my brother the ass," 
said St. Francis, dying in his prime, and looking back with 
compassion on that resigned and patient flesh which had borne 
so many burdens of his imposing. 

Concerning the habit of these nuns, understood to have been 
devised by Cardinal Wiseman himself with considerable pains, 
Mrs. Meynell remarks that " it is one of the graces of the house 
that while some women in the world are asking, with all the 
energy of intending acrobats, for emancipation from their draperies, 
these sisters contrive to do everything, and to do it well, muffled 
in close caps and hanging veils, checked by starch and enveloped 
in folds, and yet to keep the health and strength which make, 
their hard life possible. It may still be permitted to wonder 
whether even a cardinal would not find the burden of his 
fatigues increased if his head were encased in tight, empese linen, 
and his brows so bound as to. prevent that relief of grasping his 
overworked forehead which the most ascetic of mankind permits 
himself. . . . Doubtless the immunity of nuns from all the 
inconveniences of vanity helps them to bear those of their quasi- 
oriental disguise and concealment. Nevertheless, an audacious 
fancy may sketch for itself a future when a pope at Chicago may 
legislate for sisterhoods living under the ancient interior laws, but 
in the midst of new and Western conditions, set free from much 
that must be a waste of strength." Mrs. Meynell seems to have 
been consulting the prophets of the Contemporary and the Nine- 
teenth Century. There is food for meditation, all the same, in 
that word "quasi-oriental." As the German judge said to the 
man who pleaded in defence of his own objectionable book that 
greater licenses of speech were pardoned in Shakspere, the Latin 
and Greek poets, and still more ancient sources, " Dat is very 
true ; but you must remember we don't live in dose remote dark 
achis." 

The nameless author of Priest and Puritan (New York : 
Brentano's) is clearly of opinion that as between the average 
Methodist minister and the average Catholic priest, the priest may 
be counted on every time as sure to possess more liberality of 
mind and a more hearty sympathy with human nature. The 
Rev. Charles Foster and the Rev. Father Le Grand of his story 
are equally well-intentioned and honest men, but the former is a 
narrow bigot, a believer in total depravity, an enemy to all 
amusements, and with a special hatred for " popery " as the sum 
of all villanies. Father Le Grand is a faithful priest, and a total 
abstainer, as well as a man of broad views and a charitable heart. 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 691 

But he allows his young folk to hold picnics in summer- 
time and to amuse themselves by dancing evils on which the 
minister cannot look with any allowance whatever. Even the 
lemonade, which is the sole beverage sold or drank on the grounds, 
acidulates rather than sweetens his temper towards "that enemy 
of free thought and mockery of Christianity, as he considered it 
Romanism." Presently, when his only son falls in love with the 
priest's beautiful niece, the Rev. Charles Foster's grief and indig- 
nation precipitate him into a fever in which he becomes tempo- 
rarily insane, and in this state is in danger of doing himself or 
some one else a fatal injury. Then Father Le Grand comes and 
nurses him, and one night when the sick man wakes out of sleep he 

41 discovered the priest kneeling by the bed in prayer. The minister did not 
move lest he should interrupt him, but when the priest had resumed his seat 
said to him : 

" 'Was it for me?' 

" 'Yes,' said Father Le Grand. 

' ' How often have you done this ? ' asked the minister. 
" ' Every night that I have been here,' was the reply. 

' ' I think your medicine agrees with me. Continue as you have been do- 
ing,' said the minister." 

To the mind of the author it apparently seems that while the 
balance tilts favorably toward the priest where courtesy, liberality, 
and charity are concerned, the two men a're equally good Chris- 
tians, with nothing on that ground to choose between them. To 
him Christianity is an affair of what is call " ethics," with very little 
or no dogmatic foundation. It does not seem to have occurred 
to him that the good qualities which he has embodied in 
Father Le Grand, doubtless because he thought them typical, 
are the natural outcome of an intelligent faith. And yet it 
was his minister only whom he had to divest of merely Pro- 
testant prejudices his special intellectual outfit, that is before 
his heart could widen. But the religion the book is intended to 
spread is not Catholicity. It is a hybrid, " half- Catholic, half-Pro- 
testant," which is to be called "the religion of love." In the inter- 
ests of it a mixed marriage is brought about between Ernest and 
Agnes, the latter remaining a Catholic but urging Ernest, for 
the sake of general good feeling, to unite with the Methodists. 
The book is not very well written, and not specially entertaining ; 
but, like Mr. Habberton's story, of which we spoke last month, 
it gives evidence that the wall of bitter prejudice between us 
and our more observant non-Catholic fellow-countrymen is break- 
ing down in several places. 



692 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Feb., 

Dodd, Mead & Co. send us the latest of Martha Finley's 
" Elsie Books," Elsie and the Raymonds. They must enjoy a 
certain popularity among the purveyors of literature for Protestant 
Sunday-schools, or the series, which has now taken "Elsie" from 
babyhood to grandmotherhood, could hardly have been so pro- 
longed. But what an idea they give one of the long-suffering 
qualities of the average Sunday school scholar! In our parish 
libraries any series at all comparable to this for priggishness, dul- 
ness, and dryness would languish in dust upon the shelves. But 
even these are not its worst faults. Consider, as a specimen of 
what is still taught the children of American Protestants by 
writers in good repute, this conversation between " Grandma 
Elsie's " son-in-law, Captain Raymond, and one of the wives of 
a Mormon elder. The captain has been telling her that Scrip- 
tural teaching is all in favor of monogamy : 

'"You shake my faith in Mormonism,' she said, with a startled, troubled 
look. 

" ' I rejoice to hear it,' he responded ; ' would that I could shake it to its 
utter destruction. Popery has been well-called ' Satan's masterpiece,' and Mor- 
monism is another by the same hand ; the points of resemblance are sufficient 
to prove that to rny mind.' 

' " Points of resemblance?' she repeated, inquiringly, ' I have never thought 
there were any, and I have a heart-hatred of popery, as you may well suppose, 
coming, as I do, from a land where she slew in former ages so many of God's 
saints. But surely in one thing the two are very different the one forbidding to 
marry, the other encouraging men to take many wives.' 

" 'The difference in regard to that is not so great as may appear at first 
sight,' he returned. 'Both pander to men's lusts for what are nunneries but 
' priests' prisons for women,' as one who left the ranks of the popish priesthood 
has called them ? Both teach children to forsake their parents ; both teach lying 
and murder, when by such crimes they are expected to advance the cause of 
their church.' " 

There is a page or more of this stuff, which neither author 
nor publishers can intend to be irenical in any sense, That, 
however, is of comparatively small importance. The untruthful- 
ness of it, patent to all who do not deliberately confine them- 
selves within the walls of prejudice and misrepresentation, should 
be a more heavy weight upon the consciences of those who put 
it forth. It is good to fight against whatever, one honestly be- 
lieves to be wrong. But it is never excusable to take a lie for 
the truth when the truth is entirely accessible to all who desire 
to know it. 

Whatever else may be said of Miss Margaret Ryan's Songs of 
Remembrance (Dublin : M. H. Gill & Son), the first impression 






1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 693 

they make on any reader can hardly be other than that of an 
unmitigated, and, indeed, an immitigable sadness. And yet the 
sorrow they embody is not merely that arising from the death 
of one beloved, but from the death of an exceptionally pious and 
upright Christian priest, the author's brother. If it would not be 
quite true to say that her grief, as here expressed, is altogether 
like that of those who " sorrow as having no hope," yet it is 
quite true that in these poems the note of hope and consolation 
is almost lost in the less noble one of painful resignation. Miss 
Ryan is too narrow, too personal, too " constant," as she calls 
herself in one of her sonnets, in her attitude toward life and 
death and love. Why are we Christians if the grave is 
to be as hopelessly the grave to us as it might be to dis- 
ciples of Schopenhauer or to "-pagans suckled in a creed out- 
worn"? Miss Ryan has so good an ear, and so much facility in 
verse-making that it would be a pity if she should remain so- 
self-involved and despondent 

Bonnie Dnnraven : A Story of Kilcarrick (Boston : T. B. Noonan 
& Co.), is an interesting and well-written novel of Irish life 
among the smaller gentry, by Victor O'Donovan Power. The 
author has, in spots at least, a very feminine touch. The story 
is plotty, full of incident, and now and then dramatic. Some of 
the side sketches, as, for example, the Talbot girls at the 
picnic, show closer observation and better handling of superficial 
points of character than the more elaborately-conceived Bonnie 
and her friend Anna Wylde. There are some very poetic de- 
scriptive passages occasionally, and though the novel is not at 
all what would be called "patriotic" just now, it is thoroughly 
Irish in feeling. 

Dodd, Mead & Co. send us another volume of the stories of 
the deceased novelist, E. P. Roe, containing Taken Alive and 
other brief novelettes, and also a reprint from Lippincott's Maga- 
zine, of an autobiographical sketch named " A Native Author, 
Called Roe." Some of the tales have been already briefly 
noticed in these pages ; none of them ever called for any special 
remark. There is a breezy manliness about the autobiography, 
however, which awakens sympathy with the " native author's " 
pluck and energy. What a good worker, one says, what a faith- 

tful, industrious fellow! He deserved success! But when one 
turns from the record of his patient hours at his desk to con- 
sider the result arrived at not counting, of course, the result in 
dollars and cents, which was considerable what a flat waste of 
time it all seems. Was there anything intellectual in it ? Any- 



694 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Feb., 

thing as really dignified as growing strawberries and selling 
them ? On the whole, our personal preference is altogether for 
the market-gardener Roe, as against the "native author." 

From the same publishers comes a translation of Ludovic 
Halevy's famous story, The Abbe Constantin, too well known in 
its original form and in other English renderings to call for 
criticism. The present edition is well printed on smooth, heavy 
paper, with wide margins, and is moreover capitally illus- 
trated by reproductions of Madeleine Lemaire's beautiful water- 
color drawings. Barring a few freedoms of speech on the part 
of Paul de Lavardens, of the sort which very few Frenchmen 
seem to be able to deny themselves even when bent on decorum, 
the novel is a masterpiece, and may be safely recommended. 
Halevy, we believe, is a Jew, by -birth if not by conviction, but 
in this story he has been content to be an artist simply, and to 
paint the good Abbe Constantin and his two American parish- 
ioners with a most sympathetic hand. 

Mr. Thomas Bailey Aldrich's new poem, Wyndham lowers 
(New York and Boston: Houghton, Mifflin & Co.), is not only 
eminently readable for its story, but exceptionally good blank- 
verse into the bargain. But that was to be expected. Its 
author's lightness of touch and artistic sense of what may and 
what may not be said were to be counted on for so much as 
that. Nevertheless, one wonders that in describing the effect of 
the sudden revelation of Griselda's charm on Richard Wyndham, 
he could have allowed himself a figure so inconceivably bad as this : 

"If so much beauty had a tiger been 
'T had eaten him ! " 

There is a certain stupid ferocity in that conception which is, 
to say the least of it, inartistic. But the poem has many fine 
lines and some exquisite pictures. Take this, for instance : 

11 A chill wind freshened in the pallid East 
And brought sea-smell of newly-blossomed foam, 
And stirred the leaves and branch-hung nests of birds. 
Fainter the glow-worm's lantern glimmered now 
In the marsh-land and on the forest's hem, 
And the slow dawn, with purple laced the sky 
Where sky and sea lay sharply edge to edge. 
The purple melted, changed to violet, 
And that to every delicate sea-shell tinge, 
Blush-pink, deep cinnabar ; then no change was, 
Save that the air had in it sense of wings, 
Till suddenly the heavens were all aflame, 
And it was morning." 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 695 

Of the five women who record their convictions on the sub- 
ject of divorce in the January North American, only two, Rose 
Terry Cooke and " Jennie June," have their faces set dead 
against it. Mrs. Cooke takes . Protestant religious grounds for 
her opposition. "It has been," she writes, "and still is, after a 
long life, my fixed opinion that in all the affairs of this world, 
as well as the next, the Scriptures are the only infallible guide." 
Hence, in replying to the editor's four questions: "(i) Do you 
believe in the principle of divorce under any circumstances ? (2) 
Ought divorced people be allowed to marry under any circum- 
stances ? (3) What is the effect of divorce on the integrity of the 
family ? (4) Does the absolute prohibition of divorce where it 
exists contribute to the moral purity of society," she states her 
conviction that nothing but " the infidelity to the marriage vow 
in its most personal clause, of either husband or wife," can justify 
divorce. As to the remarriage of either, she not only disbelieves 
in it but adds that her own " feeling is strong against any re- 
marriage after separation by death" at least for women. These 
are the only salient points she makes a sort of assertion of 
individual preferences, in the first place for her own interpreta- 
tion of the letter of Holy Writ, and in the second for the princi- 
ple underlying the Hindoo suttee. The attitude of Mrs. Croly, 
"Jennie June," will be more generally comprehensible. She dis- 
approves of divorce, but not on sentimental grounds. Side by 
side, she justly says, with the ease with which divorces may be 
secured, there has grown up a belief in individual rights and the 
pursuit of individual inclination as the highest goods. A marriage 
that at the outset does not fulfil expectation is considered a 
" mistake," and one which ought to be rectified because it may 
have serious consequences. She goes on to remark that the 
order of nature compels those who make mistakes to suffer from 
their own acts, even though committed in ignorance of their con- 
sequences. She refuses to consider marriage as a mere arrange- 
ment "to make two people happy," and takes the ground that 
it has " a much more serious intention, a much deeper meaning 
than this a meaning that the civilized world generally feels and 
recognizes, and that renders it superior to the wickedness of 
many legal enactments, and still preserves the married home as 
the rule and separation as the exception." There is good, solid 
thinking in this paper of Mrs. Croly's. Though there is nothing 
formally religious in it, she has grasped the truth that marriage 
in the thought of God, the union of one man with one woman, is the 
gate through which life passes, and that it must be guarded in the high- 



696 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. fFeb., 

est interests of life. Duty is the only solvent she knows of for the per- 
plexities of this vexed question. " It clears up so many things," 
she says, " if we put ourselves out of the question, and accept 
what comes to us as simple duty, as that which is given us to 
do, and that we are to do as well as we can, with such patience 
and judgment and ability as we possess. . . . The grave and eternal 
responsibilities of marriage may well induce the thoughtful among 
the young to pause and reflect before incurring them. But once 
they have done so, there is no turning back ; for they are no 
longer living for themselves ; they no longer exist as separate 
entities ; they have formed a combination and become a new pro- 
duct, a part of the eternal and ever-flowing life of the universe 
and their business is to find points of agreement in this new life 
and thus aid in making it harmonious ; not reasons for difference, 
which must always exist in a life and among people of infinitely 
varied ideas, tastes, habits, and capacities." 

Of course, the trouble with such views, just as they are in 
themselves, is that they have no appreciable value as social 
forces. In the absence of a definite Christian faith which can 
answer satisfactorily the questions put to it by a trained intel- 
ligence, human nature and individual inclinations are seldom 
sufficiently "altruistic" to keep up to the difficult level of 
Christian marriage. That, as Dr. Brownson writes in The 
Convert, " is above the strength of human nature in our present 
fallen state, and needs Christian grace." The remark is, of 
course, not universally applicable, but there is no doubt that it 
does apply to average men and women encountering more than 
average difficulties in the marriage state. And the statistics of 
divorce seem to show either that the general average of 
humanity is much lower than it was even twenty years ago, or 
that the common run of difficulties rises above its old standard. 
The majority of the good and reputable women who have ex- 
pressed their opinions in the North American seem to think both 
horns of the dilemma more than sufficiently sharp. The list of 
reasons for granting divorce ought to be considerably lengthened, 
says Elizabeth Stuart Phelps, while Mrs. Barr puts the blunt 
question why the "Seventh Commandment" of the Mosaic law 
should be treated with so much respect when people have long 
been exempted from most of its other enactments ? Because it 
was reiterated by our Saviour? She thinks his words have been 
misunderstood. " What God has joined man cannot put asunder." 
It is the man-made marriages which result in unhappiness, and it 
is those this lady would call on the law to sever, with permission 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 697 

to one or both parties to it to remarry. Every marriage is man- 
made which does not result in perfect happiness, apparently. 
Colonel Ingersoll is of much the same mind, but then he has no 
steady employment, that we know of, as a contributor to Sunday- 
school literature and the Protestant religious press. To do Mrs. 
Barr justice, her novels, so far as we are acquainted with them, 
contain no trace of such opinions. Now and then they give a 
vicious " little dig " at the Catholic faith, which the paper we 
are referring to goes far to explain, but they uniformly breathe an 
atmosphere of purity and wholesome feeling. Perhaps the 
average good woman's heart is apt to be a safer guide than her 
head. We take it to be the latter which Mrs. Barr consulted 
when she sat down at her desk with this list of editorial 
questions before her. 

It would be pleasant to be able to say a hearty word of ap- 
proval concerning Mr. William Forbes Cooley's Emmanuel: The 
Story of the Messiah (New York: Dodd, Mead & Co.) It is 
an attempt to put the life of our Lord, as conceived from one 
of the several Protestant standpoints, into the form of a histor- 
ical novel. It runs, therefore, on the same general lines as 
Wallace's Ben Hur, and differs from it less in tenor and purport 
than in its manner of treating the same theme. It is as hope- 
lessly dull as any book could be which introduced the Son 
of God made man, and did so with an unfeigned reverence. 
But Mr. Cooley's reverence for the Christ whom he has evolved 
from the Gospels by the aid of a singularly tame imagination, 
is quite compatible with much which must be exceedingly repul- 
sive to any reader holding the Catholic doctrine of the Incarna- 
tion. According to him, our Lord received the first intimation 
that he might himself be the Messiah when talking with the 
doctors in the temple in his twelfth year. Perhaps this impres- 
sion might have faded, but the baptism at Jordan determined its 
validity. To quote Mr. Cooley: 

' Startling, wonderful, and in some cases full of promise as the scene of 
his baptism had been to many, to him its significance was incomparably 
greater! At last the question was settled; he, and not another, was the 
Chosen One, the Lord's Anointed. The great prophet of God, whose voice 
was shaking the land, had recognized him ; - the voice from heaven had 
confirmed and completed his recognition. The sign long waited for . . . 
had come at last ; he was the Son of God, and the time of his manifesta- 
tion was at hand." 

Mr. Cooley gives his readers no direct means of knowing his 
belief about the miraculous conception of Christ. His story 



698 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Feb., 

begins with the first Christmas, not with the Annunciation. But 
he gives abundant grounds for the inference that he considers 
St. Joseph to have been his natural father. True, he nowhere 
says so. Like the author of Ben Hur, he gives the spouse of 
Mary a rather ignominious part to play. He is a peasant with 
a " rather stolid but honest countenance," presumably the father 
of Jesus, and certainly so of Mary's other children four or five 
sons, that is, and a daughter. At one crisis in our Saviour's 
life these "brethren of Jesus," says Mr. Cooley, "induced their 
mother to accompany them to Capernaum," and try to persuade 
him to relinquish his dangerous course. She could not quite 
agree with 

" James and the other brothers that Jesus was beside himself. 
Yet in her perplexity and distress she was not without the fear that she Jiad 
made a mistake in relating to Jesus as he came to manhood the incidents of 
his birth. Who could tell but that these narratives had really unbalanced 
his mind? " 

No doubt these things are very shocking. But it will sur- 
prise nobody who has any knowledge of that idiosyncrasy of the 
Protestant mind which permits it to pick and choose its facts and 
alter or reject documents at will, and by virtue of which, indeed, it 
is Protestant and not avowedly infidel, to find that Mr. Cooley 
keeps pretty closely to the Gospel text, accepts all the miracles 
and believes in the death, resurrection, and ascension of our 
Saviour. We should add that, although at pains to provfde the 
ever- Virgin Mother with so many natural protectors, Mr. Cooley 
has almost lost sight of them by the time he arrives at the 
Passion, and is at no loss to discover a reason for the precious 
legacy to St. John. They had never been in close sympathy 
with their brother, he insinuates, and it was with an eye to this 
fact that he had once declared, "Whosoever shall do the will of 
God, the same is my brother, and sister, and mother." 

Mr. Cooley's book does not deserve on its merits the space 
here given it, but it affords occasion for accentuating the wide and 
painful difference between what passes for orthodox Protestant- 
ism in very many quarters and the true faith of Christendom. 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 699 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 

THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS OF BOOKS, ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WEST FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY. 

Boston leads the way with five newly-formed Catholic Reading Circles, 
started within the past year in response to the appeal of the Columbian Reading 
Union. No other city on our list can claim an equal number. To Boston, 
therefore, justly belongs the glory of having developed in a short space of time 
the largest number of active workers. We congratulate the leaders and mem- 
bers of the movement, and hope to get from them in the near future some further 
account of the methods used to promote the rapid growth of Reading Circles. 

We are informed that the speedy results at Boston are largely due to the 
active zeal and liberality of the Rev. James B. Troy. He has generously provided 
at his own expense fifty copies of the pamphlet edition of " Books and Read- 
ing," by Brother Azarias, lately republished from THE CATHOLIC WORLD by the 
Cathedral Library Reading Circle, of New York. At our request he has also 
kindly sent some valuable suggestions in the following letter for publication : 

" As to the utility of the Reading Circle there should be no question. But 
to bear much fruit it should be well managed. I think the Reading Circle 
should not be a religious society in the ordinary sense of the term. The object 
of a Sodality of the Blessed Virgin is to encourage devotion to the Mother of 
God. The end is distinctively religious. The end of the Reading Circle should 
be somewhat different. Hence it should be well understood that we are to read 
not only what are called " pious books," but that we are also to enter the whole 
wide field of Catholic literature. Fiction, history, philosophy, theology every 
foot of the field of Catholic literature should be traversed. 

" Going to the other extreme, the Reading Circle should not be merely a 
social club, though it is well to cultivate the social element in our nature. But 
this, I think, should be a work apart from that of the Reading Circle. Members 
of a Circle are then to understand that they are not merely to come together at 
stated intervals for the purpose of having a pleasant, social time. If they are to 
derive any profit from the Reading Circle, they must work. I mean that they 
must read the books intelligently, and also bring intelligence to the discussion of 
the books at the general meeting of the Circle. It will not do, for instance, to 
read only the conversational part of an historical novel and pay no attention to 

the facts of history. 
" In the discussion of the books there should be a competent guide. We all 
know that respect for intellectual ability is a special characteristic of the Ameri- 
can people. When we listen to a public speaker and are obliged to admit that 
the knows more about the matter he is discussing than we do, we respect his in- 
tellectual superiority. So with the guide in the Reading Circle. She should be 
a person whose opinion in literary matters the members of the Circle will re- 
spect. Not, indeed, that the guide should monopolize the conversation. Her 
main duty, as I conceive it, should be to make the members express the thoughts 
they have with regard to the books they have read. This at times will require a 
great deal of tact. JAMES B. TROY. 

" Roxbury, Boston, Mass." 
VOL. L. 45 



7oo WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Feb., 

We are glad to welcome the " Hecker Catholic Reading Circle," of Provi- 
dence, R. I., organized in the parish of the Immaculate Conception. The sec- 
retary, Miss Ellen L. Virgin, writes concerning it : 

" Our Circle consists of both young men and young women, and our young 
men manifest the deepest interest and enthusiasm in all the work of the Circle. 
We have an active membership of twenty, and have received as many more ap- 
plications for membership. We meet fortnightly in the hall attached to the 
church. Several other Circles are to be organized." 

To the Brownson Lyceum, of Providence, and especially to its energetic 
president, Mr. John G. Hanrahan, the Columbian Reading Union is already 
indebted for many favors. Its object and plans were explained by one of the 
speakers at the public meeting held in honor of the delegates to the Convention 
of the Catholic Young Men's National Union. From the golden words of advice 
uttered by Rt. Rev. Bishop Harkins on that occasion we feel convinced that he 
takes a deep paternal interest in all forms of organization having in view the 
self-improvement of young people. Besides favorable anticipations, we now 
rejoice to know that the " Hecker Reading Circle " is actually established, and 
is the first of many others to be organized in the beautiful city of Providence. 



We thoroughly appreciate the condition of things which prevails in many 
small towns, as well as in the cities, where the demand for Catholic literature is 
urgent and the supply is scanty. The following letter makes known an intel- 
lectual want felt by thousands of Catholics in the United States : 

" Those living within easy reach of Catholic literature hardly know the men- 
tal starvation endured by those of less favored places where a Catholic of any 
literary inclination is dependent upon the resources of public libraries, with their 
indiscriminate selections. I am sorry to be so far from any local benefits to be 
derived, but am glad to know that a Catholic Reading Union is a national possi- 
bility. M. E. M." 

* * 

The list of stories for young readers prepared by the Ozanam Reading Circle 
of New York City has been favorably received. We quote some passages from 
the introduction, worthy of the profound attention of all who wish to assist in the 
production and dissemination of healthful juvenile literature : 

"Conscientious parents and teachers do not give books to children under 
their charge without forming some opinion of their contents. Neither do they 
permit untrained minds to choose at random books from public libraries, which 
often contain an abundant supply of the worst juvenile literature and very few 
specimens of that which is best. It is very easy to get stories of boys who are 
made to talk like sceptics, and to perform daring acts of disobedience in school 
and out of school. For many reasons, which cannot here be mentioned, health- 
ful, interesting stories with a good moral tone are not so plentifully distributed. 
Many have neither the time nor opportunity for a personal inspection of books 
intended as presents for the young. Hence the need of making an effort to 
secure reliable guidance from those competent to decide. This list has been pre- 
pared, with that object in view, at the request of the Columbian Reading Union. 
It contains only a few of the many good books issued by Catholic publishers, and 
will serve as an introduction to more extended lists in the future. 

" Bulky volumes, used chiefly as ornaments for a marble-top table, are pur- 
chased at an exorbitant price from travelling agents. In vain do parents expect 
children to be attracted by such books, especially when they contain specimens 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 701 

of worn-out woodcuts and colored pictures in shocking bad taste. The money 
spent for such publications could be more profitably invested by getting handy 
volumes which children will read with avidity. Very few can afford to buy books 
merely as ornaments. 

" It is a matter of regret that so little attention has been given to the study 
of Catholic boy-life in the United States. The numerous specimens of imported 
boys in books used for premiums have too much of a foreign environment to be- 
come attractive heroes, or models to be imitated by young Americans. There is 
urgent need of writers in this field, and from the present outlook it does not 
seem likely that the supply will keep pace with the demand. Intelligent parents 
and school managers can do much, however, by judicious discrimination in favor 
of publishers who will offer liberal encouragement to authors fully qualified to 
write books showing forth the noble traits of character to be found among Cath- 
olic boys and girls of America." 

The list of titles as here given is not intended to be exhaustive, only four 
books being allowed to each publisher. But it is fairly representative of the best 
books yet produced under Catholic auspices ; and this statement is made with 
full knowledge of how much room there is for improvement. 

Catholic Authors. Titles of Books. Publishers. 

J. D. Bryant, M.D Pauline Seward John Murphy & Co., 182 Bal- 

Frederick W. Faber Ethel's Book of Angels timore St. , Baltimore, Md. 

Anna H. Dorsey Ada's Trust 

" " Beth' s Ptomise " " 

Countess de Se"gur Adventures of a Donkey. Illustrated. Baltimore Publishing Co., 106 

Mary M. Meline Mowbrays and Harringtons E. Baltimore St. , Baltimore 

Kate Taylor Known Too Late Md. 

Popular Moral Tales " < 

Maurice F. Egan A Garden of Roses Thomas B. Noonan & Co., 

Cardinal Wiseman The Lamp of the Sanctuary 17, 19 and 21 Boylston St. , 

Golden Legends of Christian Youth Boston, Mass. 

Told by the Firelight " " 

Memoirs of a. New York Doll. Illus- 
trated Catholic Publication Society 

, Uncle Ned's Stories fot Boys and Girls . Co. 

Illustrated 

! Little Pierre, the Pedlar of Alsace. Il- 
lustrated " " 

Maggie s Rosary " " 

Agnes Sadlier The Children's Book. Illustrated. . .D. & J. Sadlier & Co., 33 

Mary C. Crowley Merry Hearts and True Barclay St., New York City. 

Rev. W. H . Anderdon The Catholic Crusoe " " 

D . P. Conyngham, LL. D . . . The Flower of Avondale " < 

Winnie Rover The Neptutie Outward Bound P. O'Shea, 45 Warren St., 

" The Neptune Afloat New York City. 

" The Neptune at the Golden Horn 

E. Souvestre Legends of Brittany. " < 

Maurice F. Egan The Life Around Us Fr. Pustet & Co. 

Harry O'Brien The Prairie Boy. Illustrated P. J. Kenedy, 5 Barclay St., 

Marion J. Brunowe Seven of Us New York City. 

Valentine Williams The Captain of the Club " " 

Rev. A. M. Gruissi, C.PP.S . Stories for Yoimg Readers 

Rosa Mulholland Hetty Gray ; or, Nobody's Bairn The Vatican Library Co. , 13 

" The Victor's Laurel. Barclay St., New York City. 

Kathleens Motto 

Augusta Drane Uriel. " " 

Christian Reid A Child of Mary Ave Maria. Publishing Co. , 

Once Upon a Time Notre Dame, Ind. 

!. L. Dorsey Midshipman Bob " " 

Stories for Stormy Sundays " " 



702 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Feb., 

Marion J. Brunowe A Lucky Family A. Riftarth, 42 Barclay St. , 

New York City. 

Neenah Percy Wynn ; or, flaking a Boy of 

Him A. J. Schiml, Napoleon, Ohio. 

Marion Howard Peter F. Cunningham & Son, 

Femcli/e 817 Arch St. Philadelphia, 

Beech Bluff. Pa. 

Madame Lavalle s Bequest 

ATTRACTIVE BOOKS OF INSTRUCTION. 

Rev. B. J. Spalding History of the Church of God. Illus- 
trated Catholic Publication Society 

Co., 9 Barclay St., New 
York City. 

Rosa Mulholland The First Christmas. Illustrated Fr. Pustet & Co. , 50 and 52 

Thomas F. Brennan Shade and Light. Illustrated Barclay St. , New York City. 

Eleanor C. Donnelly Our Birthday Bouquet Benziger Bros. , 36 and 38 

Little Compliments of the Season . II- Barclay St. , New York City. 

lustrated 

Greetings to the Christ-Child. Illus- 
trated 

Rosa Mulholland Story of Jesus simply told for the 

Young. Illustrated 

For future lists of this kind we shall be pleased to get from each Catholic 
publisher a marked copy of his catalogue, indicating the most attractive books 
for general circulation. Send ten cents in postage for the complete list, with 
comments on authors, etc., of stories for young readers to the Columbian Read- 
ing Union, No. 415 West Fifty-ninth Street, New York City. M. C. M. 



A MISSION SCHOOL. 

ST. JOSEPH'S COLORED SCHOOL, 

NORFOLK, Virginia, Dec. 9, 1889. 

REV. DEAR SIR : Knowing how interested you are in our work here, I de- 
layed answering your kind letter until I learned more of the condition of our 
scholars, their parents, and their homes. 

There is but one Catholic church in Norfolk, St. Mary's, and the colored 
members of the congregation occupy a gallery at the back of the church and 
near the organ-loft. There are about seventy-five or one hundred practical 
Catholics at the very most, and they are all very poor. Most of the colored men 
are employed in the cotton-mills or in lading English vessels with cargo during 
this part of the year, while others are given work in the lumber-yards, or catch fish 
for a living. The women seem to earn their bread too, at washing, sewing, or 
cleaning houses, although .they get but fifty cents for a whole day's work, while 
the average pay for a man is six or seven dollars per week. 

In visiting their homes we found many who had been owned by Catholic 
masters, and have within the past few years only dropped from their own church, 
and now attend either of the Protestant denominations, and all this in spite of 
the zeal and devotion of our good priests ; but they all seemed to rejoice at the 
prospect of a church being built for them, and professed their willingness to 
" get renewed and come back." Many of them are like children, and must be 
treated with gentleness until they are taught to realize the seriousness of life and 
their duty to God and their neighbor. There is still too great a tendency in 
them to barter for everything they do or give, and yet it would not take very 






1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 703 

much to make them love the liberty of our religion and become faithful members. 
Many among them, as is quite natural, like to be prominent, and unless they are 
by themselves, and with colored people alone, there is a self-consciousness about 
them which acts as a restraint ; this shyness, together with the many "lodges " 
and "societies" attached to the churches where only colored members belong, 
have drawn some of our colored Catholics away from the true church ; but let 
us hope a better day is dawning for them, and for us who long to bring them 
to the Master from whom they have strayed. 

Not quite three months ago we opened the schools here, at the request of 
the Josephite Fathers, to whom money had been given for the purchase of the 
property and house we occupy. It was in possession of fifteen colored families, 
who rented it from the owners ; so extensive repairs were necessary to make it 
habitable for the four Franciscan Sisters who were appointed for the work. 
Three of us are engaged in teaching every day. We have one hundred scholars, 
divided into three classes, and they are attentive and anxious to learn as well 
and as much as they can. The larger children learn prayers, catechism, the 
''' three R's," with geography, history, and grammar; and on Wednesday and 
Friday afternoons the girls are taught plain sewing. During the sewing-class 
one girl is appointed to read some sjmple tale, Catholic, of course, and the 
following day it is the subject of their dictation lesson, and they show in that an 
evidence of attention and of understanding which has been a great surprise for us. 

I teach a primary class of thirty-seven boys and girls in one of the rooms in 
our little convent, and in the room above the larger girls are taught. The little 
girls showed great anxiety to be taught sewing on the two appointed days, and 
as I wished to encourage them and to teach them, I was at a loss how to occupy 
the boys so that we might be free to devote ourselves to the sewing. There was 
nothing better, it seemed, than to furnish each little black lad with a needle and 
thread and a strip of cloth and three large buttons, and let them belong to "our 
class." The girls tried to laugh at them, but the boys were brave and did not 
care, though the needle nearly always went through the top of their finger 
instead of through the hole in the button, and the buttons were nearly every one 
sewn on wrong side up, and every needle lost its point in that first awful sewing 
lesson ; but it was not altogether a failure, and they all agreed that it was much 
harder to sew a button on than to pull one off. 

There is a singular power in their secret societies. Even these little chil- 
dren often ask to be excused from school to attend their lodge meeting on 
certain afternoons. One little girl told me she belonged to the " Brothers and 
Sisters of Love and Charity." They pay ten cents every month and get "thirty 
dollars when they die. " That is the attraction, and they go on paying from 
infancy to old age. 

We pass by a Methodist church on our way to St. Vincent's Hospital, where 
we go to hear Mass, and on Sunday mornings and evenings meetings are held 
there, and it is a reproach to us to see the congregation that comes out of that 
church three hundred at the very least, and the greater number are men, young 
men, too. If we only had a big church, like the old church in Sixtieth Street, 
where we could have Mass and Benediction and congregational singing, what a 
harvest we might reap ! Do pray, father, that it may not be far distant. 

We can work for the children in the meantime, although we have only 
twenty-three Catholics among our one hundred pupils. The Sunday-school and 
children's Mass are much better attended at present than before we opened the 
school. Forty-three children were present last Sunday, of whom twenty-two 
were non-Catholic. They are attentive and respectful, and know their catechism 



704 Nw PUBLICATIONS. [Feb., 

as well as our white children. With some little tots we have had difficulty in 
making them say that "man is a creature composed of body and soul," for 
their decided opinion seemed to be that "man is a preacher"" ! 

There is an old wooden shanty back of our convent and facing Queen Street 
where the boys' school is held for the present. We have to get new beams and 
supports put in occasionally to keep it together, and to prevent the wind and rain 
from coming in through too many places at once. The ground on which this 
building stands is intended for a new school-house when we get the means to 
begin work. Who speaks first with a contribution ? My letter is much longer 
than it was intended it should be, and I hope you are not wearied by it. Your 
letter encouraged us very much, and it was a real act of charity, for, excepting 
our kind and benevolent priests, we are strangers here, and even the climate is 
not familiar to us, for it is not like the Christmas weather of the dear North, and 
it is not easy to realize that in two weeks the grand old Adeste fideles will be 
heard once more mingling its music with the Christmas bells in so many sanctu- 
aries, where the " Venite adoremus " will be accepted by Mary's Divine Child on 
our altars. Very sincerely yours, SISTER MARY PAUL, O.S.F. 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

APPRECIATIONS, with an Essay on Style. By Walter Pater. London and New 
York : Macmillan & Co. 

A book from the pen of Mr. Walter Pater is certain of a welcome from 
all those whose welcome is worth the having. There is that about his style 
that marks him as painstaking and exacting even to the turn of a phrase 
perhaps more painstaking as regards the turn of a phrase than as regards the 
whole truth of a statement. Still, his book is such as scholars delight in, even 
when bound to differ with him. Appreciations is not always easy reading. The 
sentences lack directness and point. They are not unfrequently labored ; the 
sentences of one groping after fresh material and new form in which to clothe it. 

The book contains suggestive essays about Wordsworth and Coleridge and 
Charles Lamb. But the authors with whom Mr. Pater seems to be most in sym- 
pathy are William Morris and Dante Gabriel Rossetti. The whole bent of his 
mind is towards the school of modern aestheticism. Indeed, his writings may well 
be taken as the best prosaic exponent of that school. There is the same devotion 
to art for art's sake ; there is the same careful structure of sentences ; there is the 
same sense for the weird and the bizarre ; there also is the same anxiety to leave 
all beaten paths and explore new fields of thought and construct new forms of 
expression 

To our mind the most thoughtful essay in the book is the opening one on 
Style. It is fresh and suggestive. It has the advantage of being written by one 
who has made a study of h'is subject, and who knows whereof he speaks. The 
very names he mentions show the high ideal he has set up. 

" Different classes of persons," he says, " at different times, make, of course, 
very various demands upon literature. Still, scholars, I suppose, and not only 
scholars but all disinterested lovers of books, will always look to it, as to all other 
fine art, for a refuge, a sort of cloistral refuge, from a certain vulgarity in the 
actual world. A perfect poem like Lycidas, a perfect fiction like Esmond, the 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 705 

perfect handling of a theory like Newman's Idea of a University, has for them 
something of the uses of a religious 'retreat '" (p. 24). 

In this quotation we find Mr. Pater's central idea of literature the 
point of view from which he regards it as well as his ideals. Literature 
is to him a fine art, "like all other fine art. 1 ' As such it must possess form. 
The form may be severe and unadorned, as in some of Stendhal's best work ; it 
may be luxuriant in ornament, as in Les Miserable* of Victor Hugo ; it may be 
rich in the graces of unpretentious and unconscious beauty, as in The Vicar of 
Wakefield ; so long as it contains the unity of design, the proportion of parts, 
"the one beauty" that is of the essence of the subject and is "independent, in 
prose and verse alike, of all removable decoration," so long will the work be 
appreciated as a piece of art. According to Mr. Pater, the great element that 
enters into the construction of artistic form is "self-restraint, a skilful economy 
of means." "The artist," says Schiller, "maybe known rather by what he 
omits." But, as we shall see later on, this artistic omission has various aspects, 
all of which must be taken into account when criticising a work. 

It is to be regretted that Mr. Pater barely touches upon the rhythm of prose. 
It is a fruitful theme and it may yet lead to the construction of laws of prose 
rhythm as well defined as those of poetic rhythm. It underlies every form of 
approved style. It varies with a music all its own. The rhythm of Milton's 
Areopagitica is distinct from that of Hooker's celebrated definition of law in the 
Ecclesiastical Polity / these, again, are distinct from that of Macaulay's well- 
known passage on the church or Newman's classic sentences on music. Then, 
also, is there variety in each author. Now he writes in a minor key, now in a 
major. 

But a more serious oversight in Mr. Pater's discussion of style is the fact that 
he loses sight of the possibilities of style. He speaks as though all the best forms 
of style were exhausted. Indeed, he is almost a Humanist in his conception of 
the importance of form. But we cannot make the past the exclusive measure of 
the future. Every innovation of every great artist has been a shock to his con- 
temporaries. We have before us a remonstrance of a friend and admirer of 
Michelangelo's when that great artist painted "The Last Judgment " in the 
Sistine Chapel. The artist represented every vice in all its horrors as his vast 
brain conceived it, and the friend objected to the boldness of the conception and 
the freedom of its execution. He was shocked. No doubt we shall all be shocked 
on that dread day " that day of wrath." A complacent painting of that sub- 
ject must needs be a failure. The remedy for Michelangelo was not to clothe 
his naked, loathsome figures, but to wipe out the great masterpiece. 

Again, the admirers of Mozart and Bach and Beethoven fount! in the 
music of Wagner nothing but the discord and the shrieks of nature. But who 
will say to-day that Wagner has not given music a new and a noble form? So 
also with Browning. He seems to have smashed every mould of literary expres- 
ion, and out of the fragments fashioned unto himself a rough and rugged 
lould in which he throws his magnificent soul-readings. Does not, our 
disappointment arise from our bringing to the reading of him our precon- 
:eived literary notions ? Of course we do not find them. His work is not that of 
rehearsing and re-echoing. He has a mission all his own, and he expresses him- 
self in language all his own. We look, for instance, for growth and development 
of character as exemplified in a series of words and acts. Browning has nothing 
to do with growth and development of character. He leaves that to the novelist. 
His work is to take a soul in the supreme moment the great crisis of its life 
id show forth the making or the marring of that soul under the touch of adver- 



706 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Feb., 

sity or prosperity. Or, in a mediaeval tale, he mirrors forth some old-new 
thought as applicable to-day as when the story was first told. Take as an 
example his last volume of poems, Asolando, over which the critics are at this 
moment so much divided. Take the story of the lawyer who has grown wealthy 
out of the money extorted from the widow and the orphan, and whom the devil 
is waiting to strangle as soon as he gives up saying the little prayer that he had 
learned in his youth. The lawyer is on good terms with himself and with the 
whole world. He gives liberally to the church. He has the ecclesiastical digni- 
taries to dine at his table. But once read, can that incident of the Father 
Superior wringing from his napkin the blood that had been coined into the 
means by which the lawyer could live so sumptuously ever be forgotten? 
And are there no deacons, no pillars and mainstays of our churches, on whom 
everybody smiles, who have coined the money they are so liberal with out of the 
sweat and blood and tears of the poor and the oppressed ? Is not the evil spirit 
of greed and rapine awaiting the opportunity to strangle such men ? No ; there 
is depth in Browning ; his meaning is hard to get at, but once you enter into his 
point of view and read from that outward the whole grandeur of his conception 
stands forth in all its rugged proportions. 

We may not admire the new forms ; we may prefer the old ones ; but it 
were unwisdom to quarrel with that which does not please us. A. 

HYMNS WITH TUNES FOR CATHOLIC SCHOOLS AND CONGREGATIONS. The 
music composed, selected, and arranged by Edmund G. Hurley, Organist 
and Choirmaster of the Church of St. Paul the Apostle, New York City. 
New York : Catholic Publication Society Co.; London : Burns & Oates, Lim- 
ited. 

HYMNS FOR CATHOLIC SCHOOLS AND CONGREGATIONS. Selected by Edmund 
G. Hurley, Organist and Choirmaster of the Church of St. Paul the Apos- 
tle, New York City. To accompany Hymns with Tunes for Catholic 
Schools and Congregations. New York : Catholic Publication Society Co.; 
London : Burns & Oates, Limited. 

The first of these little books contains the words and music of fifty hymns and 
the Litany of the Blessed Virgin ; the second contains the words only of the same 
hymns and litany. The first may be used for classes of larger children in schools, 
and the second for the smaller children. For congregational use, choice may be 
made of either, according to circumstances of the number and character of the 
people and the methods adopted to introduce hymn-singing into a parish. The 
larger book is sold for $10 a hundred; the smaller one, we presume, for very much 
less. 

This selection contains three hymns for Advent, six for Christmas-time, five 
for Lent, three for Easter and Pentecost, eight for the Blessed Sacrament, nine 
for the Blessed Virgin and for May devotions, and seventeen for occasional use. 
Thirteen of the tunes are original compositions of Mr. Hurley, and the rest have 
been selected on account of their proved fitness and beauty. All these hymns 
have been tried, most of them for many years, and found good by actual experi- 
ment. They are for the most part the result of selection by different judges after 
long trial in the Sunday-school and congregation of St. Paul's Church, New 
York. They are something like the result of " the survival of the fittest." They 
are not children's hymns in the sense of being juvenile; they are fitted for all 
ages and all grades of intelligence. The words and verses are simple, yet the re- 
verse of dull ; the music is tuneful, easy to learn, pleasant to sing. But its best 
praise is that it is religious. Very few of the tunes pass the boundaries of what is 
called grave music, and not one of them is frivolous. What is called lackadais- 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 707 

ical or even worldly music is not found here, and nothing is borrowed from the 
opera. The hymns are all calculated to arouse devotion, and are all expressive 
of doctrine and worship in a good degree, some in a very high degree. 

The harmonies are arranged so that any one who can play even a little can 
quickly learn them ; they are good, solid harmonies, mostly diatonic, suited to 
the capacities of any kind of organist and, for singing, of all who have had any 
practice in singing in parts. These harmonies will be found very effective for sing- 
ing, but the hymns cannot be used in less than four parts or in unison. Unison 
is the best for large numbers anyway, and two-part singing is not good in the cir- 
cumstances which these publications are designed to meet. 

It might be objected that the number of hymns given by Mr. Hurley is too 
small ; but this, we think, can only be urged by persons of limited experience. 
Fifty good hymns, well practised and known, is all that can be relied on in average 
congregations. The selection here offered goes through the entire liturgical year j 
with the addition of excellent hymns, under the head Occasional, for the usual 
devotions of the faithful. If one insists that a bigger book is needed, Father 
Young's Catholic Hymnal, or some other one of like scope, will be found more 
copious in repertory. But for practical use in Sunday-schools and parish schools, 
and especially for the introduction of congregational singing, Mr. Hurley's little 
book furnishes a practical, simple, and inexpensive manual. 

For schools the best plan would be to purchase a full supply of the book con- 
taining the words and tunes both, and place a copy in the hands of every child. 
All scholars are taught music nowadays, and here is the first and best occasion 
for practical use of that knowledge for religious purposes. The very same may 
be said of choirs and sodalities. The use of the notes by persons, children or 
adults, who know even a little music will make the task of learning a very short 
one indeed. For the use of the whole congregation, let those who know anything 
about music buy the larger book and use it, taking it home and playing and sing- 
ing the hymns in their families ; the others can use the smaller one. 

It is a delusion to suppose that there is any great difficulty in introducing the 
singing of hymns by the whole people. This hymn-book in the people's hands, 
an organist to play the tunes and accompany the singing, a priest to give some 
very simple rehearsals, and the result is secured. The tune of the hymn selected 
to begin with should be played over two or three times on the organ, then a few 
persons prepared beforehand for instance, the choir or a sodality scattered 
throughout the church should sing it over, after that the whole congregation 
should try the first one or two lines, and then the whole verse. In fifteen minutes 
or less you will have a large enough number able to go along with the organ very 
well indeed, and after a short time the whole people singing in a body without 
fear of mistakes. What, as a matter of fact, is most of all needed is neither 
organ, book, nor practice, but a conviction that the singing of the divine praises 
by all the people is pleasing to God and beneficial to souls, and then the courage 
of one's conviction. 

This book is also good for use on missions where the fathers are desirous of 
introducing congregational singing. 

THE CONTINUOUS CREATION. An Application of the Evolutionary Philoso- 
phy to the Christian Religion. By Myron Adams. Boston and New 
York : Houghton, Mifflin & Co. 

Mr. Adams is a theistic evolutionist of the most radical type, who seeks 
to reconcile the new philosophy with the Christian religion, not as that is 
authoritatively given, but as reconstructed to suit the evolutionary theory. 



708 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Feb., 

Accordingly, he reverses the doctrine of man's fall from a state of original 
justice to that of his rise from the condition of atoms and force to an Incarnate 
Deity. He holds that there is a personal God who causes all things by this pro- 
cess of evolution ; that Christ was produced by it, and was only a being in the 
order of nature, and that miracles were only natural operations. As regards the 
immortality of the soul, he applies the theory of the survival of the fittest, and 
seems to think that the quality of holiness is essential to immortal life ; then the 
continuous life, which is essential to the future existence, is made dependent 
upon the possession of a quality which the soul is free to have or not have. 
Moreover, according to evolution, the human intellect and will must have their 
origin in certain animal instincts (p. 144), and man must consequently be only 
force and matter, so developed through different eons by the power of the Eternal 
Energy as to be able to pray to and worship God. We see in this instance how 
a contradiction is involved in the application of the theory of the survival of the 
fittest to the soul. By it a quality non-essential to existence is made something 
without which the soul cannot exist. And, in regard to this theory of the origin 
of the soul, reason teaches us that it is absurd to derive a spiritual substance from 
the action of eternal energy upon matter and force, because spiritual and ma- 
terial natures have nothing in common. 

Besides, the denial of the supernatural order in the Incarnation, and the 
attempt to explain miracles by natural causes, are merely endeavors to set aside 
facts which are as indisputable as anything we can know by the testimony of 
the senses and the light of reason. Mr. Adams ought to understand that the 
historic facts which he denies the creation, the incarnation, and its attendant 
miracles are more certain than any which can be ascertained regarding the 
pre-historic periods of the earth ; and we fear that his mistake, like that of 
many others, is the result of a nervous impatience lest revelation should seem 
inconsistent with the speculations and half-truths of the hour. He should be 
content to wait, knowing that error, like other delinquents, has a strong ten- 
dency to self-destruction. It is remarkable that he, notwithstanding these errors, 
claims to believe in Christianity, and dedicates his book to Plymouth Congrega- 
tional Church, of Rochester, N. Y., over which he has been pastor for many 
years. 

TREE METHOD IN ELEMENTARY SCHOOLS. Suggestions offered to all lovers of 
children, by One of Themselves. London : Arthur J. Roche. 

This commendable treatise is an English production. It is in the writer's 
mind to see established the "free method" in education, of which so much is 
written by his American cousins. And this, albeit, with professed loyalty to 
"code requirements." We theorize so amazingly on elementary teaching, and 
have put so little of our theorizing into practice, that it is mildly exhilarating to 
read this suggestive work, with its fresh air of originality and simple tender of 
"new" modes for "drawing out" the dormant faculties of childhood. It is 
claimed for free method that it is one of the on-coming influences of the age. 
We will essay to give the gist of the argument, though the book, in order to be 
profited by, must be read as a whole. 

" Child-gardening," so we read, to be productive, must be commenced when 
the child is two or thereabouts, and at this tender age the perceptions of the 
senses should be cultivated with a foil and free development of every faculty ; with 
this, by the proper modes, fitting apparatus, and capable exponents, there would 
be an accompanying development in each individual child of self-recognition, 
self-dependence, and the healthy germs of a knowledge how to preserve and 
draw on reserve forces. 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 709 

The " mistaken ideals of the past, in which the training of character, if recog- 
nized at all, is made entirely subordinate to the aims of study " these are to be 
far distanced, and in their place the author " pleads especially for (i) Precision, 
{2) Fun, and (3) Mutual Helpfulness " It is thought the aim, the very meaning 
ot education (which is the development and training of the natural faculties, with 
the setting of these at their true work) is flagrantly lost sight of in daily routine 
of mechanical and arbitrary method. The instructors of youth are begged to 
develop and nourish those germs of all that is sweet and noble innate in the soul 
of each child, to satisfy the yearnings, the sometimes intense cravings, for the 
good in every form of those child-souls. To teach that truth, the soul of poetry, 
is likewise the soul of all that is beautiful. As for the considerable length of the- 
orizing preface, a possible accusation of Quixotism is refuted by, " ' Faith worketh 
by love.' Here is the true Key. The misuse of the word need not, must not, 
lead to the ignoring of it, still less the loss of the sacred thing it signifies.' 1 '' 

The plea for room, p. 36, sounds familiar. " We cannot be hurried, and 
must not be cramped. We want to be able to breathe and move freely." School 
furniture had better take its chances, is said further on, than that" rudimentary 
wings " be injured through lack of room for their activities. Elasticity, spontane- 
ity, a training of the affections and of the will these are the key-notes that reverber- 
ate all through the composition ; they are emphasized as they need be, if the free 
method is to take its place among the "on-coming influences " of the age. Teach 
the little ones to do the right for love and happiness, not for chains. 

So much for the preamble on principle, after which the practice. The ego- 
ism entailed by such individual development is to be remedied by various means 
proposed; among others, practical studies from the book of nature, lessons in the 
sciences, " translated into the vernacular"; the tendency to idleness in its many 
forms would be also thus counteracted, so it is set forth with persuasive and pleas- 
ing detail. The modes of securing a silence in the school-room " not dependent 
on mere outward restraint," are rich in practical wisdom. Self-imposed rules and 
penalties, mutual helpfulness, a sound public opinion, these conjoin with the 
practice as laid down, in an harmonious and what purports to be an eminently 
practicable manner, and to be fruitful of good results to teacher and taught. 
Following these twenty- five pages of principle and practice, we have practice 
pure and simple. An "Outline Course from the Book of Nature " is very neatly 
gotten up in matter, form, gradation, and development. 

Some exceptions must be taken in regard to the chapter on writing ; we know 
newer and better ways than are here indicated. Spelling we find an apology 
here offered for the phonetic system. Would they have the coming Britons speak 
American? The hints on reading are pertinent and good, as also are the samples 
of mental pabulum in a literary form directed to be doled out to the infant mind. 
The objective method of teaching numbers is strongly emphasized; there is but 
little here new to the American teacher. 

But the very best portion of the book is the one hundred odd pages entitled 
"Teachers on Teaching." The title fails to convey a proper estimate of its ex- 
ceedingly readable quality, triply interesting to parents, teachers, and children. 
Much of this is written charmingly, to say nothing of its sterling worth in the 
matter of suggestive aid. Space forbids yielding to the temptation to quote. 

The Utopia of childhood dreamed of by the writer forces on our mind the 
iasibility of its realization in all measure desirable, but its atmosphere must be 
that of religion, and this glowing light fails to pervade and warm the pages of 
Free Method. 



7 1 o NEW PUBLICA TIONS. [Feb. , 1 890. 

BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Mention of books in this place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers. 

WHAT MIGHT HAVE BEEN EXPECTED. By Frank R. Stockton, author oi Roundabout 
Rambles, etc. New York : Dodd, Mead & Co. 

THE GOLDEN DAYS OF '49. A Tale of the California Diggings. By Kirk Munroe. author 
of The Flamingo Feather, etc. New York : Dodd, Mead & Co. 

Music FOR THE PEOPLE. A Retrospect of the Glasgow International Exhibition, 1888, 
with an account of the rise of Choral Societies in Scotland. By Robert A. Marr, author 
of Music and Musicians, etc. Edinburgh and Glasgow : John Menzies & Co. 

A SHRINE AND A STORY. By the author of Tyborne, Irish Homes and Irish Hearts, etc. 
London, 18 West Square : Catholic Truth Society. 

THE SPANISH INQUISITION. By the Right Rev. Joseph Dwenger, D.D., Bishop of Fort 
Wayne. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

ROME AND REASON. Boston : Cashman, Keating & Co. 

HYMNS WITH TUNES FOR CATHOLIC SCHOOLS AND CONGREGATIONS. The music com- 
posed, selected, and arranged by Edmund G. Hurley, organist and choir-master of the 
Church of St. Paul the Apostle, New York City. New York : The Catholic Publica- 
tion Society Co. ; London : Burns & Gates. 

MEDICINA PASTORALIS. Edidit Dr. C. Capellmann, Medicus Aquisgranensis. Editio septima. 
Latinarum altera. Aquisgrani. Sumptibus Rudolphi Barth. (New York, Cincinnati, and 
Chicago : Benziger Bros.) 

THE GOLDEN PRAYER. Short Meditations on the Lord's Prayer for every day in the week, 
with Meditations on Prayer for every day in the month. By the Abbe" Duquesne. Trans- 
lated from the French by Anne Stuart Bailey. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : 
Benziger Bros. 

ST. TERESA'S OWN WORDS ; OR, INSTRUCTIONS ON THE PRAYER OF RECOLLECTION. 
Arranged from her work, The Way of Perfection. By the Right Reverend James Chad- 
wick. To which is added a Novena to St. Teresa, revised by the Very Reverend Felix 
Varella, D.D. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

THE MIRACULOUS POWER OF THE MEMORARE, illustrated by Examples. From the French 
of a Marist Father, by Miss Ella McMahon. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : 
Benziger Bros. 

ST. ALOYSIUS' SOCIETY MANUAL. Compiled from approved sources with the Approbation 
of the Right Rev. Bishop of Buffalo. Second edition. New York and Cincinnati : Fr. 
Pustet & Co. 

THE HOLY INFANCY. Short Meditations for Christmas. By Richard F. Clarke, S.J. New 
York, Cincinnati, and Chicago : Benziger Bros. 

THE PACIFIC COAST CATHOLIC ALMANAC for 1890. San Francisco : Diepenbrock & Co. 

THE RESPECTIVE RIGHTS AND DUTIES OF THE FAMILY, STATE, AND CHURCH IN RE- 
GARD TO EDUCATION By Rev. James Conway, S.J., Prof, in Canisius College, Buf- 
falo, N. Y. Second edition. New York and Cincinnati : Fr. Pustet & Co. 

ASTRONOMY, NEW AND OLD. By Rev. Martin S. Brennan, A.M. New York : The Catho- 
lic Publication Society Co. 

AROUND THE WORLD. Stories by Olive Risley Seward, editor of Wm. H. Seward's Travels 
around the World. Boston : D. Lothrop Co. 

PAPERS ON SCHOOL ISSUES OF THE DAY. No. i. Denominational Schools. A Discussion 
at the National Association, July, 1889, with Papers by Cardinal Gibbons, Bishop Keane, 
Edwin D. Mead, Ph.D., and Hon. John Jay. Syracuse, N. Y. : C. W. Bardeen. 

CAUSE EFFICIENTS ET CAUSE FINALE. Par E. Domet de Verges. Extrait des Annales 
de Philosophic Chrtttenne. Paris: Bureau des Annales de Philosophie Chre'tienne. 

AN ESSAY IN REFUTATION OF AGNOSTICISM. AND THE PHILOSOPHY OF THE UNKNOW- 
ABLE. A Review with an Analogy. By Rev. Simon Fitzsimons. Rochester, N. Y. 

HAPPY Go LUCKY AND OTHER STORIES. By Mary Catherine Crowley, author of Merry 
Hearts and True, etc. New York: D. & J. Sadlier & Co. 

LA REFORME ET LA POLITIQUE FRANCAISE EN EUROPE JUSQU'A LA PAIX DE WEST- 
PHALIE. Par le Vte. de Meaux. Paris : Librairie Acade'mique Didier, Perrin et Cie. 

LE PERIL SOCIAL ET LE DEVOIR ACTUEL. Le Mai Le Remede. Discours prononce"e i 
Geneve, les 17 et 24 Mars, 1889. Par Th. de la Rive. Geneve : H. Trembley. Paris : 
Socie'te' bibliographique. (For sale by Benziger Bros.) 






THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD. 



VOL. L. MARCH, 1890. No. 300. 



REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE.* 

MADE TO A DEVOUT SERVANT OF OUR LORD, CALLED 
MOTHER JULIANA, AN ANCHORITE OF NORWICH, WHO 
LIVED IN THE DAYS OF KlNG EDWARD III. 

THE SEVENTH CHAPTER. 

AND while my earnest thought upon this sight abode 
Our Ladie Marie by our courteous Lord was shewed, 

As it did seem to me : 

Which means the truth and wisdome that she understood 
Her God so great, so high, so mightie, and so good, 

And full of majestic. 

This nobletie and greatnes with which she beheld 
Her God, who is her Maker, all her being filled 

Of meeknes and of dreed. 

For when she did her litle self with God compare, 
So low, so simple, and so poor did she appear 

As seemed she nought indeed. 

Thus, by this ground of meeknes was she filled of grace, 
And fore all creatures she doth hold the highest place; 

Yea, doth her soule invest 
With vertues of all sort, as soothlie we infer 
From what the Angel said when he saluted her: 

" Hail ! thou of women blest ! " 

In all the time He shewed this that I now have said, 
Lasting I saw the plenteous bleeding of His head ; 

* Continued from THE CATHOLIC WORLD, April, 1888. 
Copyright. REV. A. F. HEWIT. 1890. 



;i2 REVELATIONS OF DIVINE LOVE. [Mar. 

The great drops falling down 

Like pellots 'neath the garland, as from out the veins 
Pierc'd by the sharp and cruel thornes with grievous pains, 

In colour dark and brown. 

For in the coming out the blood was thick, just where 
The garland press'd his forehead all so sweet and fair, 

And tore the tender flesh ; 

But in the spreading out it grew more brightlie red, 
And when it came unto the brows it vanished 

And then began afresh. 

This plenteous falling of the great, thick drops of blood 
Did last till manie things were seen and understood ; 

Yet there did still remain 

The same sweet lovesomeness and beautie as before. 
And greatlie marvailed I our Lord so patient bore 

Such cruel, bitter pain. 

The drops of blood did fall as fast and numerous 
As fall the drops from off the evesing of a house 

After a heavy rain. 

They seemed round as like unto a herring scale 
As they did spread upon His forehead high and pale 

And its fair beautie stain. 

This was a quick and hideous and a dreedful sight, 
Though sweet and lovelie, and did me excite 

To many thoughts of love ; 

That our good Lord that is so rev'rent and so great, 
Yet is so homelie to us in our low estate 

Coming from heav'n above 

To be our comfort and our joy and gladful chere ; 
The which I learnt the better by example clere, 

And given in this wise. 

It is most worshippe that a solemn king, or lord, 
Unto his poor and loving servant maie afford, 

If he with kindlie eies 

And courteous speech and mien will homelie toward him be 
With meaning true both open and in secrecie. 

Then this poor creature cries : 
41 Lo ! this is more of joy and liking to my mind 
That he, my noble lord, doth shew himself so kind 

To one so far below, 

Than if he gave me manie gifts both rich and rare, 
And yet himself in manner strange and distant were, 
Nor cared my name to know." 



1 890. ] RE VELA TIONS OF Dl VINE LOVE. 713 

So high was this example from the bodie brought 

To shew more clere the meaning while my wond'ring thought 

Was on the bleeding set ; 

That joy of this sweet homeliness might well repay 
This man all service, ravishing his heart awaie 

Till he himself forget. 

Thus faireth it by our Lord Jesu, of His love, 
For verilie it most of joy to us doth prove 

As hath before been said 

That He, the highest, nobliest, and worthiest 
Is lowest, meekest, homeliest, and courtsiest 

To us whom He hath made. 

When we shall see Him then will He reveal to us 
Right verilie this joy, so high and marvaillous ; 

And this will our good Lord 

That we believe and comfort us, and make solace 
As well we maie with His dear helpe and bounteous grace 

Till He this sight afford: 

That time, I wis, when we shall see it verilie 
And be fulfill'd of joy in heaven's jubilee, 

Which none in life may know, 
Except the Lord by special gift maie it impart, 
Or God the Holie Ghost with grace so fill his heart 

That it doth overflow. 

But faith with charitie doth well deserve the meed 
Sith faith with hope and charitie is life indeed 

By which our soule doth live, 

And grow in strength, and wit the things which God will shew 
With manie privie points most worshippful to know 

That faith alone maie give. 

And when this shewing, given for a time, is past, 
Faith keepeth it by holy grace while life doth last, 

Till we our meed receive. 

ALFRED YOUNG. 



VOL. L.- 46 



7 14 AN IRISH HAMLET. [Mar., 



AN IRISH HAMLET. 

You would like to know what an Irish hamlet is like ? Well, 
I will try and describe it to you. 

The glow of the autumn sunshine is just now shed over all. 
As I sit here in my room and look through the open window, 
it falls on the privet hedge and on the tender stalk and pearly 
berry of the egg-plant. The apple-trees are behind the house, 
laden with their own sweet fruit. On the green plot in front of 
me there is a shadow, as correct and well defined as any right- 
lined mathematician might desire it is the shadow of this dear 
old thatch-roofed cottage. I was " ordered " out here from town 
at the beginning of harvest ; my hearing was becoming over- 
sensitive to sound. And now I have before me the remainder of 
autumn with its gorgeous dyes, the bracing winter with its curi- 
ous, ever-varying frost-work and tracery on tree and window-pane, 
and after that the young spring with its primrose and violet, 
sweet-flavorsd and beautiful as the blissful dreams of youth. All 
before me, and little or no work to do ! tMy heart is jubilant 
with happiness, and in its depths it cries, " Hurrah ! hurrah ! " 

This very day I had a stroll through the fields and it was 
delightful ! The cows fed at their leisure, and whisked their long 
tails, more out of pastime, I suspect, or habit than from neces- 
sity. A distance off I could hear the driver cheer up his horses 
with a tone of voice that to uninitiated ears sounded angry, but 
which the dumb beasts knew well was but affection disguised. I 
passed by the end of the corn-fields and saw the yellow crop 
laid low, and heard those engaged men and women chatting 
away, possibly discussing the solitary figure dressed in black 
that was walking at " the headland." The little robin sang a 
sunshine hymn on the topmost bough, and the wood-pigeon 
softly coo-cooed in the grove hard by. And the fences all were 
laden with blackberries ; what an abundance of jam they would 
have made ! If I am here by this time next year, I will try 
and interest some one to teach the people what a valuable in- 
dustry they have at their door. Elderberries, too, with a plenti- 
ful promise of haws, sloes, and hazel-nuts! Oh! for the country, 
the dear, dear country ! The 'sloes will be splendid when the 
frost comes ; but I must hasten to gather the blackberries, for 
the legend among us is that when the last of the corn is gath- 



1890.] AN IRISH HAMLET. 715 

ered -in an old man comes from the graveyard and raises his 
skeleton arms to wither the blackberry. The black, glossy, 
tempting things are part of my mid-day luncheon. I take a 
piece of bread and butter on my rambles, and the way-side 
hedge supplies dessert. 

But you want to know about our hamlet ! Oh ! quite true, 
quite true. 

A glass of wine, then, before we start. What, no ? Teeto - 
taler ? All the better, friend ! I have been so myself for nigh 
thirty years, and have never regretted it. A biscuit and a glass 
of water, then. "And now, I go, my chief; I'm ready!" 

As you drove out from town (we are about six miles from 
town here) you saw a lovely belt of wood, spanning the brow 
of the ascent and somewhat resembling the hair on the human 
forehead, parted on either side, with the vein in the middle for 
the streetway passing through. Two huge chestnuts stand at 
the corners, forming an archway, beneath which the wayfarers 
pass. In their shelter and repose these trees seem to denote 
domestic happiness and peace, and, taken as a whole, the scene 
looks very picturesque. 

This tall, white house to the left ? you ask. That is the 
village school. Do you know anything of our primary schools, 
or our primary system at all ? Well, on the whole the system 
is a good one. It has some drawbacks, especially its school- 
books ; but, taking it all in all, it has done, and is doing, a 
large share of good work. We will enter. Four walls, white- 
washed ! Their only adornment is (as you see) school maps and 
the rules and regulations of the Board of Education, with the 
time-table, and some lessons for the very small children printed 
in large letters. Strong, unpretentious seats or forms, fitted with 
ink-stands, take up most of the floor, and are occupied by the 
children while writing their "copies" or "doing their sums," 
the vacant space being allotted to those who are " up at their 
class." The children range in age from four or five to sixteen or 
eighteen even a child of three can be put down in the roll- 
book and reckoned in the average attendance. The children arc 
generally clean and neat. The master or mistress rules the 
school. The district inspector a government officer holds an 
examination annually, and at any time of the year may drop in 
to pay "an incidental visit." After the annual examination he 
draws up a report on the state of the school, which he sends to 
the Board of Education, and a copy of which is sent back to 
the manager. The teacher is paid one portion of his income 






716 AN IRISH HAMLET. [Mar., 

according to the answering of the children ; in other words, by 
"results," as it is usually called; another portion from the board, 
according to his rank as a classified teacher ; and the remaining 
portion from the parents of those children who can afford it. 
The clergyman of the district is generally the manager, and he 
can dismiss the teacher instantaneously for certain well-defined 
faults, by a three months' notice for no fault at all. In an ex- 
perience of upwards of a quarter of a century I have never seen 
either of these two clauses acted on. The teachers, as a rule, 
are moral and painstaking; now and again a tinge of pedantry 
may be detected, but on the whole they form a well- trained, 
devoted, and useful body of men and women. 

The little street is, as you see, about a furlong in length ; no 
lanes, no off-shoots, nothing but the two straight lines of houses. 
The trees, scattered here and there at 'the back, or standing to- 
gether in clumps, give it a pretty appearance in the distance ; 
while the frequent trains in and out from town, and the all 
but constant stream of carts or other vehicles on their way to 
market, give it an air of life and business. We will pass up 
through it. 

Here to our right is the ever-present police-barrack. 

11 Tread where you will on Irish ground, 
From Antrim coast to wild Cape Clear, 
Or east or west, but still is found " 

an Irish constabulary barrack ! (I hope Mr. T. D. Sullivan 
will not see this parody on the opening of his delightful poem, 
." Dunboy.") 

There are six men in this barrack, and, except for some 
fiddle-faddle of drill or patrol, they are absolutely doing nothing. 
They are paid according to years of service and " good be- 
havior "; sub-constables about 70 ($35) a year, and the ser- 
geant in or about fyo ($450) ; that is, these five sub-constables 
and their sergeant cost the rate-payers about $2,250 a year; 
and so on with every town, village, hamlet, and country station 
all over the land. 

If the people had, of their own free will, put them there, or 
kept them there, there would be no grounds for complaint, but 
at present the people of Ireland have as little to do with the 
ordering or managing of the police force as the men in New 
Zealand. They are kept for the sake of the landlords. They 
are a machine of the government; and in the struggle now wag- 



1890.] AN IRISH HAMLET. 717 

ing between the Irish people and the English executive in Dub- 
lin Castle they have proved a savage and merciless machine. 

Where are these men recruited from ? you ask. From the 
ranks of the people. They are mostly all the sons of laborers or 
small farmers. You are puzzled, then, to account for their want 
of sympathy with the very class from which they are sprung. 
So are we all here in Ireland. Individually you will find them 
civil, obliging, agreeable, displaying all the kindly qualities of the 
Celtic nature ; but set .them in foray at an eviction or a Land 
League meeting and they seem to lose, not alone their reason, 
but even their nature. They appear almost to thirst for blood. 
If analyzed, many factors might be found conducing to this: 
(i) Their system of training ("obey orders first and see to the 
responsibility afterwards ") ; (2) They are under officers of a caste 
deadly hostile to the people ; (3) The ranks are always leavened 
with Orange and Freemason members, who spy and are petted ; 
(4) If not cowards, they are blessed with a strong love for a 
whole skin, and, having deadly weapons in their hands, they try 
to instil terror of the most abject kind into the minds of the 
poor people ; and, lastly, they know they have no chance of 
promotion if they do not show themselves all but wantonly cruel 
at the present crisis. 

It is a marvel how any man with an Irish heart can stay in 
their ranks. One might indeed find an excuse for a married 
man, with a wife and family, who could not easily find another 
means of living; but the young, unmarried man seems inexcus- 
able. His brothers or cousins or school-fellows or old neigh- 
bors at home have to labor or to emigrate ; and why not he do 
the same, and preserve his manly self-respect and honor ? Adieu, 
Messrs, of the Royal Irish; the day may come, and that soon, 
when the people will govern you, and not you the people ; and 
when that day comes, may the Irish people prove themselves 
noble, and not seek to avenge their wrongs! 

Come away, friend. Irishmen can hardly afford to speak of 
these matters with patience. Even a "galled jade will wince." 

Hark ! listen to that merry ring. Have you never in your youth 
entered the smith's forge, and watched the often .useless (as you 
thought) stroke of the hammer intermittingly on the cold anvil ? 
What a merry music it makes, and all the merrier that you know it 
is the voice of honest and useful work. This house with the wide 
door-way and the roof of smoke-blackened planks is the village 
smithy, where Shaun Go^v (Jack the Blacksmith) lives and moves 
in grime and coal-dust, among horseshoes, ploughs, cart-wheels, 



/i8 AN IRISH HAMLET. [Mar., 

machines, and various old irons. Jack is not a giant, as you 
may be going to imagine ; he is but middle-sized, and just pas- 
sably stout. We will come over. Through all the soot you 'no- 
tice that his face is regular and his eyes like brown velvet. 
His voice, too, is soft, and you are disposed to think he is a 
meek-mannered man without a touch of humor or drollery in 
him ; but if you were in the forge when " the lads " gather in 
of a wet or an idle day, and some fellow is showing off mighty 
smart, you should see Shaun call on him " to hand over that 
bit of iron there on the floore " (Shaun himself having quietly 
dropped it there reeking hot a moment or two ago) ; and then 
the moment it is touched it is of course let go, with sundry ex- 
clamations of the voice and many jerkings of the hand, while 
the whole forge is agape with laughter and Shaun is winking 
with the left of his eye. He has shrewd sense, too. 

"John, what are you going to do with Willie?" 

"With Willie, sir?" 

"Yes, your second boy; he used to look so nice on a Sun- 
day about the altar serving Mass. We had all quite settled, do 
you know, that you would send him into town." 

"What would I do with him in town, sir?" 

"Send him to school, or make something of him." 

"Ah! begor, a thrade is betther, sir; I'll give him my own 
thrade; a thrade is no load, sir; a thrade is never a load." 

W T e nod our heads in assent and bid him good-day. 

In the meantime John has re-entered his cavern of grime and 
dust, and the merry clink of his hammer follows us on our 
way. God bless him and every man like him that earns an 
honest penny ! 

That house you point to is the court-house. It is shut to- 
day, so we cannot enter; but I promise to take you in there 
some day and show what Irish justice and Irish justices are like. 
Comedy and tragedy never trod so hot-foot on each other's 
heels. 

At this side is one of the village hucksters' shops. Poor old 
Moll keeps it. In the little shop-window, two by two and a 
half, she has a grand display bottles of hair-oil, boxes of 
matches, soap, candles, pipes, reels of thread, sweets, and sugar- 
candy. As we push in the half-door Moll is serving a customer, 
the same being a little barefooted child that wants " a penn- 
'orth of light (a penny candle), and a box of matches, and an 
ounce of tibaccy for her dada." The child has brought half a 
dozen of eggs, " and my mamma tould me to say, ma'am, that she 






1890.] AN IRISH HAMLET. 719 

would send you the rest agen Saturday." " That's it all but a penny," 
is Moll's soliloquy. And she hobbles feebly to the window-shut- 
ter, pulls it out, and marks a stroke. The back of that shutter 
is to the uninitiated like Egyptian hieroglyphics ; it is a wilder- 
ness of strokes, crosses, and all manner of figures. The key to 
the riddle, however, is this : one stroke stands for a penny, 
a cross is sixpence, a circle or nought ' a shilling; and Moll 
keeps tally as correctly as the best bookkeeper in the kingdom. 
Her memory alone, so true is it from exercise, would have suf- 
ficed without any tablets, no matter for how many customers. God 
be with our school days, when we had to crib the penny from 
our little dinner allowance to buy candy or bull's-eyes from Moll! 

The next on our way is a public-house. There are three 
public-houses in this little village of thirty families. It is not on 
the thirty families, however, they depend for support, but on 
those going into or coming out from town. The drink question 
is a much-discussed and vexed one here in Ireland, as perhaps 
elsewhere, and it may, therefore, be better to put off any account 
of it until we come to consider the habits of our peasantry, 
whether they are temperate or intemperate. 

This row of low, one-storied houses that we are passing now is 
occupied by day-laborers and artisans. You see, too, by the roof- 
less cowels (shells of ruined houses) that eviction and emigration 
have been busy here, as in every other part of the country. 

Here is a better kind of a house. Tom, the shoemaker, lives 
in this. A great politician is Tom. " Begor, sir, when thim 
Parnell Commissions wor goin' on I nearly ran myself blind over 
'em. I'd stop airly to have a look at the paper that Mr. James 
gives me every day, and when I'd begin at the beginning of it 
never a one could I give up till I'd get to the very ind." 
With all that, Tom is a hard-working, industrious man. He built 
that nice little house of his himself, out of his own savings, and 
says, "A man needn't lave home if he'd mind his business; 
always allowing, sir, that he got fair play." 

Rody, the carman, lives here. He has a big mule, and sup- 
ports himself by carting goods out from town and carrying in 
other things, such as country produce or the returned empties. 

We will step into this middle house in the range. Morty 
Mann, the tailor, lives here. He is " one of the raal ould stock 
of the place." 

" Well, Mary, how is father to-day ? " 

" Much the same, then, sir, dear knows; no better, no worse, 
thank you." 



720 AN IRISH HAMLET. [Mar., 

" Won't we see him, Mary ? " 

"Ah! wisha, sir, sure 'tisn't up on the loft you'd be taking 
the strange gentleman, and that ould laddher, too ! " 

(A bedroom up near the roof, formed by boarding the kitchen, 
is called a loft.) 

" Never mind, Mary, here's up. Will you come?" (to our im- 
aginary friend). We find Morty lying in bed ; a pretty patch- 
work quilt is thrown over the bed-clothes, and everything looks 
very clean and neat. 

"This gentleman came with me to see you, Morty. How 
are you ? " 

"He's welcome, sir; ye're both heartily welcome, sir." 

"What age are you now, Morty?" 

" Something 'long with eighty, sir." 

" Do you remember the time that Blood was shot ? " 

" I do, sir ; a good right I have. My father lost his life by 
it." 

"How is that, Morty?" 

" Well, now, sir " (and Morty lifts himself on his elbow), " in 
thim times the poor people were very badly off; all the com- 
mons where they had their houses and little patches of land was 
taken from 'em and closed in, don't ye know, sir ? by the land- 
lords ; and they hadn't a house, or a haggard, or a cabbage- 
garden, or a haporth, but had to come into the village, every 
mother's sowl of 'em. The country was swarming with people 
then, and of course they couldn't starve ; so they made up in 
parties and turned out at night, and they dug a piece of land in 
this field, and a piece in that, and a piece in the other ; to mark it, 
don't you understand, sir? And woe be to the man that refused them 
that field for pratie ground. But no sooner were ' the boys ' 
out than ' the picket ' were out after them, with Major Monks, 
grandfather to the present lord, at their head, and Colonel 
Wyndham, and Mr. Hollybank, and the rest of 'em. Well, one 
morning they were goin' up the village, the men with their 
spades and some of 'em too, faith, sir, with blunderbushes ; ould 
Blood saw 'em it was a fine moonlight night, an hour or two 
before daybreak and when they passed his window he fires out 
at 'em. Some of 'em wor hot, and when th' others saw the 
blood they doubled back and forced their way up-stairs. He 
had the room doore boulted, but they fired in and broke the 
boult In the sthruggle he fell on the floore, and the bottom of 
the doore (the Lord save us !j caught him by the neck and 
choked him. 






1890.] AN IRISH HAMLET. 721 

" Next day and next night the yeomen were out, and next 
night again and the next night, and 'tis no knowin' all they 
took. They came to my father's and knocked at the doore with 
the butt of their muskets, and called out to have it opened ' in 
the name of the Queen ' queen or king, faith, I don't think 
which, but it doesn't matther ; sure they're both the same ! There 
was no one in the house but my father and mother and my uncle. 
My father and uncle were twin brothers, and I was then a good 
little bit of a gossoon. My father and uncle were arrested, and 
before they were dressed they were sthrapped on the horses be- 
hind two of the sodgers. You'd think my mother 'ud lose her 
life, and none of the neighbors daur come near us, and small 
blame to 'em ! 

" My father (God be good to him !) was always used to 
horses, and he was main sthrong ; so as they were clathering 
away round a corner in the road, he puts his leg under the 
forearm of the horse, caught one of the reins out of the sodger's 
hand, gave it a jerk of a sudden, and down they came, all of 
'em, in a plopsh on the road. Before you could say thrapstick 
my father was out of the sthrap and away across the fields ; and 
where, do you know, did he face to ? Over to the Protestant 
church. He knew Tom Smith, the sexton; many's the day Tom 
and he spent together. He up and tould Tom, and, begor, Tom 
hid him in the sacristy, or \vhatever you call it, of the church, 
and fed him there like a gamecock. 

" But one night the parson came. If ever there was a good 
man, Parson Bennett was that man. When the poor craythurs 
'ud be hungry, and 'ud come to his doore, and when more of 
thim ministhers 'ud make 'em sell their sowls, Parson Bennett 
'ud say, ' Tis blankets or bread ye want ? ' and he'd tell the 
housekeeper, be the same token, to give 'em. ' Becky, God 
never made human craythurs to starve ! ' Well, he came one 
night to the church. Oh ! but they wor in a hoult ! ' Smith,' 
says he, ' who can there be in the vestry ? ' Begannies ! Tom 
thought it the best of his play to make a clane breasht of it. 
' Throw a piece of carpet over him, Smith, that I wouldn't see 
him. You know what them other fellows are saying of me' fel- 
lows, he said, sir ' but I don't care a damn about 'em ; and see, 
Smith, there's a thirty-shilling note, and if you know any poor 
man to be in want, give him something to eat. ' 

" Well, sure, the yeomen were so mad to have my father 
escape that they thried my uncle by coort-martial, and he was 
sentenced to be hanged, and, of all the places in the world, on the 



722 AN IRISH HAMLET. [Mar., 

big three opposite our own doore. There was no ind to all the sodgers 
and milithary that was there that day. When my father heard it he 
wouldn't be kep from coming to have one last look. There was 
a lime-kiln just at the place, and my father hid himself in it. 
The major was blazing mad all the way out, that one of his 
own tenants should be hanged on his own property, and I heard 
'em say he all but drew his whip to the colonel as they came 
along. 

"The sodgers was drawn up in two lines, and when all was 
ready the hangman came over near my uncle ; but the minute 
he took up the rope to put it round my uncle's neck my father 
took a brick from the kiln, and with that one aim he levelled the 
hangman on the ground. The major at once stepped up and with 
his own swoord he cut my uncle loose. ' Run for your life, Mann! ' 
he cried ; ' open a way there, men ! ' And while they were 
looking at one another my uncle, who was as fast as a hare, 
was off behind th' ould forth, and away down toward the 
cockaun-a-pisha. 

" ' I'll see you yet for this, major,' said the colonel. 
'"I'll see you for what you were doing in jail,' said the 
major (he meant bribing the informers) ; and well the major knew 
that the colonel daurn't budge. 

" They never saw my uncle afther ; he got on boord a vessel 
sailing for Canada and made his escape, but my father wouldn't 
lave my mother or me. He was on his ' keeping ' for near a 
twelve-month, and at last he fell into bad health, from thrubble, 
I think, and the dampthure. Parson Bennett got him into the 
county infirmary unknownst ; they thought he was a beggar- 
man, and he died in the hospital. A letter came from my 
uncle offering to take my mother and me out, but my mother was 
heart-broken and she did not long live afther my father, and 
I was left an orphan to run about the roads or do as I liked, until 
Canon O'Rourke the heavens be his bed ! took me up and 
bound me to the tailoring. Thank God, gintlemin, thim days 
are gone," said Morty, as he drew a heavy breath and lay back 
again on his pillow. 

" I wish they were, Morty, but look at the way they are 
going on presently. A few years, however, may see them gone 
for good and all, and until then may the God of heaven look 
with pity on the poor and weak in Ireland !" R. O'K. 



1890.] SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES" 723 



SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES." 

IN a series of papers in THE CATHOLIC WORLD I have en- 
deavored to give my reasons for believing that, if critics of 
William Shakespeare and his plays would only make up their 
minds to come out of the clouds and forego all transcendental criti- 
cism : simply examine the evidences of their time and environ- 
ment by the light of common sense and the common run of 
human procedure much, if not all, that now seems inexplicable 
and paradoxical about them both would yield to simple and 
satisfactory solution. In the course of these papers I have tried 
to demonstrate (i) That Shakespeare coming to London poor and 
leaving it rich must have worked at some more money-making 
employment than experimenting in forms, styles of verse, the 
assonance and dissonance of metrical forms, and the effect of 
" stopped " and " unstopped " endings, upon the ears of his con- 
temporaries. (THE CATHOLIC WORLD, December, 1884.) (2) 
That the Sonnets whatever they meant and whoever wrote 
them were not necessarily autobiographical of William Shake- 
speare, although, by a very little twisting, they could be easily 
made autobiographical of anybody; and the more easily so of 
the one of whose life we had the fewest actual particulars. (THE 
CATHOLIC WORLD, November, 1885.) (3) That, proceeding cau- 
tiously in writing the record, William Shakespeare's stage life did 
not necessarily compel us either to accept tradition altogether, 
or to reject tradition altogether, but entitled us to examine tradi- 
tion entirely by the light of probability, in the case of William 
Shakespeare, precisely as in the case of any one else; and did 
not, certainly, warrant us in losing sight of history or of such 
documentary and circumstantial evidence of the date as was acces- 
sible. (THE CATHOLIC WORLD, October, 1886.) And, finally, 
(4) that, all things being considered, it was by no means im- 
probable that the Shakespeare Plays grew by accretions in the 
mouths of the actors entrusted with their representation; by local- 
isms, " gags " (as we say now), by alterations suggested by such 
circumstances or accidents as constantly occur in the stage history 
of any popular and often-represented play, and that this circumstan- 
tial probability would really account for much in the plays as we now 
have them, which it is hard to conceive of as from Shakespeare's 
pen. (THE CATHOLIC WORLD, October, 1887.) I now desire to call 



724 SHAKESPEARE: s "PERICLES." [Mar., 

attention to a practical use, which, taking these postulates as true, 
we can make of them in solving a question of precedence and of 
authorship, especially of the latter. And first, of the author- 
ship. 

It is generally conceded to-day, that the Pericles is Shake- 
speare's work, and it would be hard to find an editor who, to- 
day, does not include it among the authentic plays. Yet it was 
not included in the First Folio of 1623, nor in the Second Folio 
of 1632. But in 1663-4 appeared the Third Folio. I cannot 
help regarding the publication of this Third Folio edition of the 
Shakespeare plays in 1663-4 as by far the most important step 
in their circumstantial history subsequent to their appearance 
during William Shakespeare's own life-time. As early as 1623 we 
are confronted with a well-recognized and reasonable doubt as to 
what plays William Shakespeare really wrote. Some thirty-six 
plays had been printed in quarto during William Shakespeare's 
life-time, all of them bearing his name either in full or in abbre- 
viation. Which were his and which were spurious ? John Hem- 
inges and Henry Condell (two of Shakespeare's fellows and friends, 
whom he mentioned in his Will and made his beneficiaries therein, 
in testimonial of personal attachment) undertook to make decision, 
and deliberately sorted, out of these thirty-six, just twenty-six, 
thus putting themselves on record as deliberately rejecting one- 
third of the literary matter which was asserted to be the drama- 
tist's own composition during his own life-time. Of seven plays 
contemporary with this list (to only one of which on its appear- 
ing in a second edition was Shakespeare's name ever attached) 
they included all. They added one play which belonged to a 
rival theatrical company which operated, during Shakespeare's 
life-time, a rival theatre ("The Rose," which competed with " The 
Globe " for the public favor and patronage) ; one that first ap- 
peared five years after Shakespeare's death ; in all, ten that were 
never known before their appearance in the First Folio. The 
numerical result was about the same : let us say thirty-six plays 
in the life-time list, and thirty-six in the Heminges and Condell 
list. But the Heminges and Condell list is not by any means the 
life-time list. " William Shakespeare " had been a well-known 
name in London seven years before. It had been signed to more 
than one dedication addressed to a noble lord. Had there been 
an Athetuzum or a Saturday Review in 1623, we need not doubt 
that these would have called rather peremptorily on Messrs. Hem- 
inges and Condell to give their reasons for discarding substantially 
one-half of what had passed current as "Will Shakespeare plays" 



1890.] SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES" 725 

for so many years. But there was no critical press to ask for an 
accounting; and, moreover, this Heminges and Condell list does 
contain has always been admitted to contain the best of the 
plays included in the life-time list of Shakespeare. 

But, since there is no literary statute of limitations, it appears 
that there very soon began to be demurrer to the Heminges and 
Condell pronouncement as to what was and was not Shakespeare. 
The Revised List of the Third Folio of 16634 was, therefore, a 
demurrer filed in the only way it could have been filed at all, 
and which, had it appeared in the nineteenth instead of the 
seventeenth century, would have made the Athenceum or the 
Saturday Review, or some other prominent critical London jour- 
nal, its vehicle ; and that similar demurrers have continued to be 
filed from that day to this, will also appear upon opening any 
modern edition of Shakespeare, all of which include the Pericles, 
and many of which include the Edward Third and The Two Noble 
Kinsmen, while even such plays as Titus Andronicus and the 
Henry VIII. t and others, which did appear in the First Folio, 
though generally included, are, by several modern editors, admit- 
ted on sufferance only. 

What editor thus went to the expense, in or about 1664, and 
took the critical responsibility of restoring to the name of Shake- 
speare seven of the life-time list of thirty-six plays, which Hem- 
inges and Condell had set aside as un-Shakespearean, must, un- 
happily, always remain matter of conjecture. When we remember 
that these were years in London very unfavorable to literary 
ventures England being then recovering from the waste and 
rapine of civil war we can only infer that some other than merely 
mercenary motives induced the publication. But why should the 
unknown 1663-4 editor have had any doubts as to the Heminges 
and Condell list ? I cannot answer this question, but I can give 
several reasons why he might have doubted it. One of these 
reasons was that Heminges and Condell, for all their assertions in 
their Preface, that they now presented the plays " cured and per- 
fect of their limbs and absolute in their numbers as " Shakespeare 
"conceived them," were about the most careless editors that ever 
edited anything. It, indeed, needed only a very superficial ex- 

I animation of the quartos to lead to the suspicion that their " edit- 
ing" amounted to nothing but turning into the compositors as 
" copy " everything they could find bearing Shakespeare's name 
a suspicion which such critical and expert examination as has 
been since given the matter has overwhelmingly confirmed and 
therefore it is not an extraordinary or unwarranted conjecture that 



726 SHAKESPEARE'S " PERICLES" [Mar., 

the First Folio editors overlooked the Pericles through carelessness 
rather than rejected it from critical motives. They are certainly 
entitled to any benefit the supposition or doubt may bring to 
their editorial reputations. The immense and incalculable benefit 
they did do, by preserving to posterity the sixteen plays of which 
we have no quartos, and which but for them, so far as we know, 
Would have been incalculably lost ; for saving to us Macbeth, 
Julius Ccesar, Coriolanus, The Winter's Tale, Henry VIII., Cym- 
beline, The Tempest, Twelfth Night, Measure for Measure, Timon 
of Athens, Antony and Cleopatra, As You Like It, as well as 
The Two Gentlemen of Verona, The Comedy of Errors, and All's 
Well That Ends Well (which, minor as they are, would leave a 
sad void if perished) ought, in any event, whatever else they did 
or omitted to do, to for ever immortalize them in our gratitude. 
And we must remember, too, that the art of printing was yet in 
its infancy, was yet carried on with difficulty with clumsy types 
and rude contrivances ; and most of all, that no necessity was 
felt for that accuracy of types and proof-reading which to-day 
we demand from printing-houses. The proof-reader was yet to 
be invented; the only convenience the printers observed was, not 
their readers', but their own. For example, these early printers 
seem to have employed not only capital, Roman, and Italic let- 
ters and the punctuation marks we now use, but a font of letters 
with short dashes superimposed, which they found sometimes 
convenient instead of any "justification " at all ! Thus, if they set 
up the word them, and there was not room for the final m of 
that word, instead o*f going back to revise their spacing to admit 
it, they set it up the (and so, in a proper name, they would set 
up Hey for Henry, precisely as if the word were a common noun 
or particle). And not only this, but, if the word were them or 
then or thee, they still used the tlie with entire insouciance, and 
this while, at the same time, using the - indifferently as a dash, 
or as a hyphen to connect a broken word. Nay, more, these 
printers (especially the Quarto printers) even used a long dash, 

, to fill up a line where the text ran short, with the most 

ineffable indifference to the sense of what they were setting up. 
Nor did they take care to always break the word at the end of a 
line they broke in the middle of a line quite as imperiously, if 
they saw fit. The superimposed dash was used over consonants 
as well as vowels, the printer breaking the word just as he found 
convenient, spelling some som, or fare far, and he even went so 
far as to omit a consonant after a vowel, without any superim- 
position at all, in the middle of a word, as moe for more, if he so 



1 890. ] SHA KE SPEA RE' s ' ' PERICLES. " 727 

fancied.* Again, it is asserted by Zachary Jackson and others, 
that the Elizabethan printers did not set up by eye, as do ours, 
but by ear, another printer, or (usually) a boy, standing by and 
droning out from the sheets of " copy " he held in his hand, while 
the compositor worked. If this be so, here would be another 
capital reason for the botched work turned out by the early 
printing-houses, while the over-affection for capital letters is 
accounted for by the fact that most of the journeymen printers 
who found their way to London were Germans, in whose language 
the use of small initial letters was limited to verbs and particles. 
And even when, later on, proof began to be read at all, it was 
not read from " copy," but only for typographical errors. To illus- 
trate this, I subjoin the imprint of a curious block which I find 
among the collection bequeathed by the late J. O. Halliwell- 
Phillipps, Esq., F.R.S., to the New York Shakespeare Society. 



Tliacftandsvpon the Swell at th^ofjull^ridc: 








>. HeweretheworfefortbatiwereheaHorC 
jiebeinga man- 



Eno. Thatyearfe lodeed^he was trolbhd with aiume, 
X.ool<e hecre I haue you,thus I /let jfou go, 

bf. Madam,! heard her fpeake/hc is low vote'** P # 

The lines will be recognized as those of Anthony and Cleo- 
patra, iii., ii., 48, 52, 55, 64, and Hi., 17: and the careful student 

* My honored friend, Dr. Rolfe, editor of The Friendly Edition, a marvel of painful and 
conscientious industry that can never be surpassed, will not at all agree with me as to this 
latter example. Dr. Rolfe is sure that moe is an Elizabethan word, meaning exactly the 
same as more, but used only with a plural or collective noun, and that its occurrence more 
than forty times in the First Folio, and always so used, justifies its classification as a word 
by itself, and not as a contraction. And yet sometimes this very word more, when it occurs 
in the First Folio, is printed mo in the quarto (as, for example, see Bankside Edition of 
The Merchant of Venice, Quarto, line 950) ; and it seems to me quite as safe to say that mo 
is an Elizabethan word as that moe is an Elizabethan word, instead of a mere printer's con- 
traction for convenience' sake. That these contractions always occur with plurals or col- 
lectives is, I admit, remarkable. But some late Shakespearean vagaries, "ciphers," etc., 
have taught us to examine even the largest coincidences with care before postulating upon 
them. 



728 SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES" [Mar., 

will discover that, although made, they were quite disregarded by 
the corrector of the press, except in the single instance of the 
fourth line. It is in spite of such crude and formative methods, and 
through such perils at the hands of actors, short-hand pirates, 
printers, and editors, that the matchless plays have come down to 
us to be restored by modern care to what we have them. And, 
bad as all these were, all of them, even the pirates, are entitled 
to our praises, when we think, with almost bated breath, of the 
peril of their utter loss in transmission through such hazardous 
chances. 

The seven plays which the Third Folio includes are as follows, 
and in the following order : Pericles, The London Prodigal, Thomas 
Lord Cromwell, Sir John Oldcastle, The Puritan, A Yorkshire 
Tragedy, Lucrece. It is with the first only of these seven plays 
that we are now concerned. 

Admitting the carelessness with which Heminges and Condell 
worked, at least it is hard to imagine that they were not anx- 
ious to include among the Histories, Tragedies, and Comedies of 
Mr. William Shakespeare, their late colleague all matter of that 
description of which they knew him to have been the author. 
Could it have been possible that, if they had known Shakespeare 
to have been the author of the Pericles, they could have failed 
to procure a copy of it ? We do not know of any so-called 
Shakespeare play which had been oftener printed. To begin with, 
there had been two editions of the play printed in the first year 
it ever appeared that is, in the year 1609. The reasons why we 
know that there were two editions in this year are so curious, 
and so illustrative of the carelessness of the printers of that day, 
that they are worth stating here at length, especially as the fact 
of their being two editions, instead of one edition, is of modern 
discovery, and the result of very careful observation, as well as 
of the application of the science of comparative criticism, as 
follows : 

The modern editor finds a copy of a Pericles Quarto in which 
he reads these verses: 

" How dares the planets look up to heaven, 
From whence they have their nourishment?" 

and another, also dated 1609, in which these verses read : 

" How dares the plants look up to heaven, 
From whence they have their nourishment?" 

There is nothing, in the impressions themselves, to indicate 



1890.] SHAKESPEARE 's " PERICLES" 729 

that these are copies of two separate editions. The student sees, 
of course, that the first is pure nonsense; planets, being in the 
heavens, cannot "look up to heaven," and they do not, in any 
sense, " receive their nourishment " from the heavens. Whereas, 
the second version, given above, is perfectly correct; plants do 
" look up to heaven," and do " receive their nourishment" from 
the rain which falls upon them from the heavens. 

The ordinary reader might, perhaps, explain this by saying 
that, on looking at a proof, the proof-reader saw at once that 
the word plants had been set up planets, and stopped the press 
to correct it to the proper word. But the exact student, know- 
ing that there was no proof-reader, infers the following state of 
affairs ; viz. : the version in which the word plants occurs was the 
First Edition. In setting up this edition, the printer setting up 
from manuscript read slowly and got it all right. The second 
printer setting up from print ran his eye more rapidly along, 
or the boy reading to him blundered, and the word " heaven " 
helped his hand to setting up the word plants as planets. The 
chances that a careless printer was careless, in those days, were, 
in fact, just about ten thousand to one greater than the chance 
that, having the word planets before him, he was careful enough 
or intellectual enough to read the sentence critically and discover 
the error and proceed to correct it. In other words, carelessness 
was the rule, while carefulness was the rarest sort of an excep- 
tion ; so rare, indeed, as to be haidly worth computing, certainly 
not of expecting. This, were it the only instance, might per- 
haps have been overlooked, when there was no typographical 
indication of a difference in editions. But others occur, for in- 
stance ; "caste" is printed "cast"; "for't" is printed "fort"; "rest 
(harke in thine eare) " is printed "rest harke in thine eare" ; 
" exeunt " is printed " exit" ; " to " is printed " doe " ; " bring' st" 
is printed " brings? "; "chivalry" is printed " chivally" ; 
"paper" is printed "taper"; "ripe" is printed "right" ; "on" 
is printed "one"; "flies" is printed "fliies' "; "sight, hee, will" 
is printed "sight see, will" And so in between thirty and forty 
cases, such as grisled for grislee ; heave for have; hatest for 
hastes, and the like. The first printer was right, and the second 
printer wrong. To suppose the contrary, is to suppose that the 
errors were detected by careful reading, and corrected (some- 
thing entirely unheard of in that day) ; whereas, to suppose that 
there were two separate editions of the Pericles in 1609 is to 
merely recognize the absence of a proof-reader, and to assume 
the ordinary errors of the press. 
VOL. L. 47 



730 SHAKESPEARE 's " PERICLES:' [Mar., 

There were, then, two editions of the Pericles in 1609. A 
third Quarto appeared in 1611, printed by " S. S.," the first 
two having been printed for Henry Gosson. A fourth Quarto of 
the Pericles was printed in 1619 for T. P. (Thomas Pavier), and 
this edition bears,' on its face, the fact that Thomas Pavier believed 
Pericles to be one of the Shakespeare list, for it happens that the 
" signatures " of this edition are a continuation of those of " The 
Whole Contention between the two famous houses, Lancaster and 
Yorke" printed without date, but for the same publisher, Thomas 
Pavier, showing that the two plays originally formed parts of the 
same volume. Thomas Pavier, it is to be noticed, was a well- 
known publisher of Shakespeare matters, who had printed the 
"Chronicle history of Henry the Fifth," in 1608. 

Now, is it possible, or, at least, is it probable, that Heminges 
and Condell, undertaking so great a venture as printing the First 
Folio, had they wished to include the Pericles, could not have ob- 
tained a copy of one of these four Quartos, one of which was but 
four years old, even supposing that they had not, as they alleged 
that they had, access to Shakespeare's own unblotted manuscripts 
as well as to the actor's "lengths " ? It certainly looks as if Hem- 
inges and Condell had some reason, which they did not disclose, 
for excluding the Pericles. But, although they did not include the 
Pericles (thereby asserting that it was not Shakespeare's work), 
there was somebody in London who declined to concur with them 
in that judgment. A fifth Quarto was brought out in 1630, some 
copies of which have the imprint : " London, printed by I. N. 
for R. B., and are to be sould at his shop in Cheapside, at the 
signe of the Bible, 1630"; while others have simply, "London, 
printed by F. N. for R. B., 1630." In all other respects 
the latter are identical with the former. Condell died in 1627, 
and Heminges in 1630. The Second Folio, which was a practical 
reprint of the First Folio, appeared in 1632 (and in it is to be 
observed the same peculiarity dwelt on above ; namely, the seven- 
teenth century tendency of printers to blunder in setting up from 
print, by rapid reading, even more than from manuscript . But 
again a Quarto of the Pericles appears, the sixth, in 1635 : 
" Printed at London by Thomas Coates." So, again, ^his unknown 
somebody pronounced a protest against the exclusion of the 
Pericles from the canonical list of plays "written by the late 
William Shakespeare." Whoever he was, his persistence at last 
met its reward, and, in the Third Folio of 1663-4, the play is 
triumphantly admitted. 

Of course there is another possible supposition, and a not 



1890.] SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES." 731 

unnatural one. When Heminges and Condell published the first 
folio, they " entered," that is, registered, for (what we now call) 
copyright upon the Stationers' books, all the plays which had not 
been previously entered to other persons. So, of course, they 
must have, in some way, purchased or acquired permission to 
print the Shakespeare plays theretofore printed separately in 
quarto. It may be, therefore, that the simple reason why they 
did not include the Pericles was because they were unable to 
purchase or otherwise obtain the right to do so, the owner pre- 
ferring to keep that right himself, finding it a popular and lucra- 
tive play and a good paying property. Indeed, the more this 
simple explanation is examined, the more plausible it becomes, 
and the more one is inclined to the belief that the reason of the 
exclusion of the play from the First Folio was merely that Hem- 
inges, Condell, Jaggard, Blount, Apsley, and .Smithweeke all or 
any of them were unable to get permission to print the Pericles. 
The play seems originally to have been the copyright pro- 
perty of the above-named Blount, and in an extract from the 
books of the Stationers' Register occurs the first mention of the 
present play, viz.: 

20 maij [1608]. 

Edward Blount. Entred for his copie vnder thandes of Sir George Buck 
knight and Master Warden Seton A booke called The booke of Peri- 
cles prince of Tyre vjd 

But Blount transferred the right to print to Henry Gosson, 
who issued the play in quarto the next year (1609). The trans- 
fer was not entered upon the books of the Stationers' Company, 
as it should have been, undoubtedly, because the members of 
the Stationers' Company, being a close corporation, protected by 
rigid statutes in their monopoly, recognized each other's rights- 
equally well without it, knowing that no printer not a member, 
under penalty of cropped ears or worse, would dare intrude. 
Gosson, it seems, found his quarto profitable enough to justify 
republishing it (as we have seen) in 1609, when he in turn sold 
it out to " S. S.," who printed the play in 1611. This anony- 
mous " S. S." in his turn sold out again to " T. P.," who so late 
as 1619 still found money enough eleven years after its first 
appearance to justify another quarto. (It may be remarked that 
a contemporary dramatic work of the present century, which 
would justify a separate reprinting eleven years after its first per- 
formance, would be apt to be a very superior affair.) But this 
is not the end of Pericles. Not only could not Blount and his asso- 
ciates recover the play, but actually in 1630, seven years after 



732 SHAKESPEARE'S "PERICLES" [Mar., 

they had gone to press without it, " R. B." (Robert Bonian ? ) 
again issued it, and again five years, when so old a printer as 
Thomas Cotes once more brought it out. And it was from this 
Cotes version that at last, in 1663-4, it was permitted to be re- 
printed in the Third Folio ! 

If this simple explanation is the true one, it would be interesting 
to be sure of it, if only to laugh to mark how plain a tale would 
put down all the aesthetic critics who have argued that Shake- 
speare could not have written the Pericles for all the divers and 
sundry and particular transcendental and prosodical reasons on 
which they have so dilated. Certainly it would be more to the 
credit of Heminges and Condell than to charge the omission to 
their general slipshoddiness and indolence. Anyhow, there seems 
to be a plenitude of reasons why the unhappy Pericles does not 
appear where it never was put ! 

The question, therefore, as to which were right the First 
Folio editors who passed by, or the Third Folio editor (or editors) 
who included, the Pericles is a fairly open one by all historical, 
circumstantial, and documentary evidence. As to whether it is 
still an open one, by internal evidence, every reader must judge 
for himself. Shakespeare, the man, is dead, and the field of con- 
troversy as to what he wrote or did not write, is a very loving 
and a very free field, in which anybody has a right to enter 
and to tilt. But certainly, a little common sense in Shake- 
spearean matters should not always remain an exotic ! 

For my own part, which concerns only myself, I am most free 
to confess that I believe he did write the Pericles every word. 
The question as to whether the admission into the Third Folio, at 
the same time, of the six dubious and internally inferior plays 
above enumerated, does not cast a presumption against the 
Pericles, is another and an entirely different one. As to this, in- 
deed, there is something to be said, but not at present. 

APPLETON MORGAN. 



1890.] WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? 733 



WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? 

THE books, papers, and periodicals published expressly for the 
young of both sexes nowadays present for our consideration a 
subject of great importance; for this vast array of fable, fact, and 
fancy, with its various leanings, motives, and inspirations, taken 
in conjunction with the daily portions of reading, arithmetic, 
grammar, and geography furnished by the schools, constitutes the 
brain-food, soul-food, and heart-food of the average children of 
the rising generation. 

Realizing this, it becomes our duty as well as our interest 
to examine more closely than our children are likely to do into 
the material and purpose which enter into its .make. Let us 
remember that this subject is an average condition, and those 
who make use of the bulk of its material are an average class. 
The very rich and the very poor will not invariably seek it ; the 
former will be prevented by the very surfeit of material from going 
into its depths, the latter by the absence of all material, caused 
by the bitter poverty and grinding necessity which compel a 
large class of people to put their children at work before they 
have mastered the rudiments of a common-school education. 

Among the children of the masses we have a different state ; 
they are neither poor nor rich, only " comfortable, " and it is 
these young people whom we have in mind, and the books, 
papers, and magazines which they are reading concerning which 
we are so greatly troubled. An examination of this class of 
literature extending over late years and a wide field discloses a 
significant fact : it contains scant allusion, or only the most 
casual, to the Supreme Being of the universe, who is God ; 'as 
little to the Redeemer of mankind, who was both God and Man ; 
while that Person of the Blessed Trinity who deals with our 
souls in gifts of grace and wisdom, by which we are strengthened 
and prepared for the warfare of the spirit against the " world, the 
flesh, and the devil" the Holy Ghost (almost forgotten outside 
of the faithful) is, one may safely assert, entirely ignored. 

Noting, then, the absence of God from the bulk of this child- 
literature, let us ask, In what does it consist? 

We are answered, In the lives and adventures, possible and 
impossible, of all kinds of illustrious and wonderful children ex- 
cept the one illustrious Child whose life and teachings have 



734 WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? [Mar.; 

made childhood the beloved and blessed state that it is ; their 
dealings and relations with kings, queens, princes, fairies, Indians, 
animals, and hobgoblins ; in fact, with all beings, created and 
uncreated, except God ! 

These narratives which must be profusely illustrated, else 
they are likely to be " skipped " by the average youth, who much 
prefers a story " told " to one which must be read are the com- 
position of the "leading writers of the day" of both sexes, some 
of them atheists, others of greater or less degrees of " ortho- 
doxy " or "heterodoxy," as the case may be materialist or 
spiritualist, it matters little to the publisher, whose primary 
object, be it remembered, is the, to him, very legitimate one of 
making money. They are written in a good-natured, " rollick- 
ing," sometimes slovenly, style, a supposed "coming down to" 
and " seeing into " the hearts of children ; characters and events 
rest on a basis of physical courage, high "principles," and firm 
perseverance, combined with extraordinary good luck, these forces 
being traced to no source save natural goodness. Children who 
suffer from taints of vice and crime, hereditary or acquired, or 
who are compelled to face great temptations in childhood, are 
not welcome in the pages of the child's periodical they jeopar- 
dize its refinement ; or, if admitted, are held up only as brief, 
mysterious, lurid lights of an unknown world outside the pale of 
modern culture and civilization, about on a par with the hob- 
goblin of the story and about as well calculated to arouse pain- 
ful or serious moral or religious reflection of any kind. Indeed, 
there are periodicals which especially request of their writers to 
introduce into their narratives no war, religion, love, or temper- 
ance ! All this may be done to protect childhood from con- 
tamination, from the knowlege of evil; but since Adam and Eve 
ate of that tree, so must also their children's children eat and know, 
or know and be taught not to eat; and what absurdity to 
claim that a scrupulous adherence to refinement of expression 
and subject can ever take the place of religion or fear of God 
with those who will not be governed by love of God, or who 
have no knowledge of him ! 

And, after all, do these books and periodicals preserve their 
readers from the knowledge of evil ? 

Look upon the youth of the day, trained in the public schools, 
enlightened by the public press, polished off" by the intellects of 
the nineteenth century who bend their stately minds, after having 
demolished all systems of morality and religion, to mixing this 
literary pap for babes not of grace ! 









1890.] WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? 735 

Alas and alas ! who are these droves of boys, cigar in hand, 
profanity and vulgarity on their lips, well dressed and good 
looking, of all ages from ten to twenty, swarming down the 
streets at the edge of night-fall ? 

And who are these girls, loud-voiced, rude, and bold, also of 
all ages from ten to twenty, collected in groups on the corners, 
leaning over the railings of bridges, standing in the entrances of 
public places, most of them well dressed, many of them good- 
looking, all of them pert and forward beyond description, roaming 
the streets, gathering the harvest to be found there at night ? Are 
they graduates of the modern school of child-literature? 

Alas and alas ! for they should be at this hour safe in the 
sanctuary of home, in the company of their parents, learning 
wisdom, self-conquest, charity, and helpfulness all the high and 
solemn import of life contained in the relation between man and 
his Maker. 

Oh ! but they must be amused. Yes, for that is the curse of 
modern days, that men and women, being partially freed from 
the pains and penalties of necessity that demands unceasing 
labor, having drifted from the anchorage of past beliefs and hopes, 
must all be amused ; and to gain time and freedom from the re- 
sponsibility and restraint of the constant presence of their chil- 
dren, they must in turn provide amusement for them, and the 
earliest form it will take will, of course, be the " picture-book " ; 
and before the virgin mind is gradually unfolded in panorama a 
world of adventure and characters, as different from that which 
he will be called upon to live as is day from night, dreaming in 
profoundest slumber from waking toil for bread! Just how "stale, 
flat, and unprofitable " their every-day tasks and amusements 
come to be by reason of these well-seasoned narratives indis- 
criminately devoured, some mothers, at least, are learning to 
know and tremble for the results. I have heard a fragile, weary- 
looking mother request a son at least three times to perform 
some trifling office to save her tired feet; beyond an impatient 
movement and inarticulate murmur, no notice was taken of her 
request, until at last she arose and, laying down the cross infant 
which she had been trying to soothe, she performed the duty 
herself. In her absence I looked over the boy's shoulder he 
was old enough to have been reading history or the lives of the 
heroes of Christianity who unlocked the treasures of unknown 
worlds of spiritual and temporal richness and found the object 
of his fascination was some wonder-book from the public library ! 

" Would you banish fairy tales ? " is the alarmed query of a 



736 WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? [Mar., 

parent who has found them a source of relief from the annoyance 
of volatile and nervous children, so restless, so fully alive, so dif- 
ficult to deal with wisely and firmly, so apt to triumph over a 
parent in the end by sheer persistence ! 

Well, there are fairy tales and fairy tales ; the moral and re- 
ligious tone should influence the parents' decision, but I would 
certainly banish any book that seals the ears of a boy of twelve 
to the voice of his mother ! 

Fairy tales are better narrated than read ; they are poor stuff 
to leave .to the digestion of a child's mind ; and all along their 
unreality should be made manifest. After a certain age they 
should be dropped altogether; they are not really so attractive 
to children, for those who have dealt with them cannot have 
escaped noting the eager interest taken in what the child 
calls a sure story as compared with pure fiction; and then, 
surely, comes to the parent a bitter day of weariness and dis- 
couragement when he or she has to face the consequences of 
having allowed sons and daughters to feed from childhood upon 
this diluted pap until the strong meats of duty, morality, and re- 
ligion are unpalatable and indigestible. And, when one reflects 
further upon this subject, what possible reason can there be why 
children should read so much ? Why inflame their imagination 
or draw out too soon intellectual processes which should be more 
slow in their development than the growth of the body? It is 
heart and conscience which should be cultivated ; and what chance 
do they stand in the flood of children's books let loose upon the 
public every year ? What thought has the publisher taken in 
the matter, except that the author is popular and that the book 
will sell ? What thought has the author taken ? Surely no 
thought of the souls that will be caught in this sweeping flood, 
for he, or she, does not, perhaps, believe in a soul or a Maker 
of souls! 

Again, why should children read so much ? No one can deny 
that they are devouring a quantity of literary matter that is 
appalling ; which, were it ever so good, from mere bulk alone, 
they could never digest. 

There is no need of it ; it was not done in the past ; what was 
submitted to their perusal was not so strained, so embellished 
and painted, so flooded with all the gorgeous trickery of mod- 
ern coloring as to destroy all vigor and purpose. Why should 
not children find enough to do in the necessary duties of 
school, the practice of home helpfulness, the awakening ofc on- 
science, the training of the sensibilities, and the discipline of 



1890.] WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? 737 

the will, things only to be accomplished by religious instruc- 
tion ? Surely, it is all wrong to begin with the intellect and 
let the will and passions grow to giant power, while the least 
essential part of the child's existence is given an useless for- 
. wardness ? For souls may grow and become fit for heaven 
whose intellect was never more than feebly lit, or if brilliant in 
its time, may have gone out into darkness at noonday. 

Poor little children! deprived of God when he should be 
nearest, dearest, and most real to you, ye are well-nigh friend- 
less among the makers and publishers of books! If all things are 
to be eliminated from your " amusements " that savor of danger 
to be avoided, of sin that is coarse and disgusting and unrefined 
(the soul-destroying idea is left out), what is to become of you 
when some mighty passion rises and confronts you in your own 
hearts, where its germs entered at your birth, and have lain dor- 
mant until time and soil and favoring temperature of circum- 
stance have aroused it from its slumbers to a giant growth ? 
Will it hinder you from giving way to it if you recognize it as 
something "coarse, disgusting, low"? 

Alas! for these poor children. They have been running a tilt 
against monsters and overcoming hobgoblins for years ; lo ! there 
are monsters which they have not been taught to overcome, nor 
have they learned a magic Name whose utterance would subdue 
them. The heaven of pleasure, ease, and polish that modern cul- 
ture would make on earth cannot be maintained, for life is a 
long battle that begins in the cradle and ends only in the grave, 
and heaven is a kingdom to be taken only by storm and 
violence. 

What story of to-day's child-literature ever rises to the simple 
majesty, the absorbing interest to say nothing of the obvious 
spiritual teaching of the stories of the Bible? These were the 
mental food of the generations of intellectual, moral, and religious 
giants who have passed into history. With what care did the 
church preserve these narratives during the ages of persecution, 
violence, and rapine that followed the Christian era ! With what 
judgment, wisdom, and tender forethought has she prepared them 
for the use of her little ones, for it is in Catholic schools alone 
that the Bible is taught, expounded, and rendered interesting to 
children in the shape of a Bible history. From the unutterably 
sublime yet crystal-clear account of the creation of the world, 
through the long chain of story, character, and adventure among 
God's chosen people,, to the tale of man's redemption, in a way 
only possible for God to conceive and accomplish, the chain of 



738 WHAT ARE OUR CHILDREN READING? [Mar 

real, living, teaching wonders is unsurpassed and unsurpassable. 
How many youth, outside of Catholic schools, know these stones 
and the grand lessons they taught as their fathers knew 
them ? 

Ah ! but for these fathers and mothers that has all been 
settled. They no longer believe the Bible ; it has been dis- 
proved ; its chronicles are fables ; man is only an improved ape ; 
he needs no Saviour, he never needed one, for there is no 
hell, and, most like, no heaven. Tickle this cultured ape with the 
pleasant straws of modern fancy; keep him in good humor with 
himself and the world, and shut vice and crime decently out 
of sight in the slums and tenements where it is bred ; what have 
we to do with these things, we who are so respectable ? We are not 
puiblicans and sinners ! In the creed of these modern disciples of 
culture there is no heaven but riches, no hell but poverty, no 
calamity but death, no sin but detection, no judgment but the 
world's. From among them come forth the leaders of our chil- 
dren, who are being driven by them into that outer darkness where 
God and heaven are not. 

"By their fruits ye shall kn3w them," and we may be sure 
that the evils not discovered and eradicated in childhood yield 
a crop that will not fail in abundance, though its' fruits be the 
bitterness of filial disrespect, ingratitude, laxity of morals and 
loss of faith, and this is the harvest that awaits us, as already 
betrayed by the characteristics of the rising generation. 

Can it be denied ? Have we one Catholic magazine devoted 
exclusively to children that can compete in bulk, make-up, and 
" catchiness " of matter and illustration with the flood of period- 
icals that are non-Catholic ? And in the matter of the make-up 
of a magazine for children one needs to be " wise as a serpent, 
harmless as a dove." We have not, for it would not be bought 
or supported, unless it had enormous capital behind it, or, better 
still, a religious order, as suggested in one of the papers pre- 
sented at the recent Catholic Congress. 

Do we, can we, buy books enough for our boys and girls, 
written by Catholic authors ? 

No ; there are authors enough, ability enough, zeal enough, 
material enough, but no support adequate to the success of such 
an undertaking, for it would mean money enough to enable the 
authors to live decently, while they devoted their hearts and 
brains and time to the good of Catholic youth of the day; it 
would mean large sales and fair profits to the publishers; it 
would mean so many things that are not ! 



1890.] A HERO'S PLEDGE. 739 

In the meantime, what are our children, Catholic children, 
reading ? 

Look at the catalogue of the public library nearest to you ; 
read the names of the authors of juvenile fiction (for you can- 
not let them read history out of the library, it is so garbled, so 
falsified) ; look at some of the books turn the dirty things over 
with a stick, for they are glazed with the accumulations of the 
hundreds of fingers that have handled them ; if you have the 
courage to do this, you will find the answer to this burning 
question. 

MARGARET H. LAWLESS. 

Toledo, . Ohio. 



A HERO'S PLEDGE. 

UPON a day it chanced, heated with wine, ' 
The young Adolphus, Sweden's soldier king, . 
Meeting his mother, mocked her with rude fling 

Of words, as bitter as the salt sea brine. 

But on the morrow, when his spirit fine 

Had cooled, he with deep shame remembering 
His drunken folly, felt remorseful sting, 

And made resolve to do penance condign. 

" Mother," he said, holding the brimming glass, 
" I drink " ; and then dashing it 'gainst a stone : 

" No drop again my lips shall ever pass, 
For only so can I to thee atone." 

True as the heart beneath his strong cuirass 

He kept his word, more precious than his throne. 

J. L. SPALDING. 



740 BOD AS DE ORO. [Mar., 



BODAS DE ORO. 

A HOARY head is a crown of glory, if it be found in the way 
of righteousness, and a half- century is an exceptionally lengthy 
period for a person to occupy one position. We have recently 
witnessed the enthusiasm evoked by the almost coincident jubilees 
of Queen Victoria and Leo XIII. , and the church in Mexico has of 
late celebrated with eclat the Bodas de oro (golden wedding) of its 
chief pastor. The day fixed for the principal exercises was Sun- 
day, the 8th of December, and before this crowds of pilgrims, 
headed by their bishops, were brought into the capital of the 
republic from Puebla, Leon, and other great centres of popula- 
tion, the railroad companies putting on special excursion trains 
for the occasion. 

Between the columns of the cathedral hung heavy curtains of 
crimson velvet adorned with golden orphreys; large porcelain jars 
containing plants and flowers were ranged at intervals, and the 
railings were crowned by bouquets of the choice white roses, 
camellias, and other flowers for which, even in mid-winter, Mexico 
is unsurpassed. Festoons of cypress covered with flowers were 
suspended from the roof, and religious banners emblazoned with 
representations of saints hung from the columns. From the prin- 
cipal arch hung a gigantic screen of iron and crystal, centred by 
a blue medallion with this inscription : " The Metropolitan Chap- 
ter to its Illustrious Prelate, Dr. D. Pelagio Antonio de Labastida 
y Davalos 8th Dec., i839-8th Dec., 1889." From this hung 
a garland of pine, evergreen, and white flowers. In the sanctuary 
were sixteen superb jars of china containing flowering plants. In 
the transepts were two tribunes, the one for the accommodation 
of the diplomatic corps and the other for ladies having special 
invitations. There were probably six thousand persons present 
in all. The stars and ribbons, blue and red, which decorated 
certain distinguished ministers and ambassadors slightly relieved 
the sombre aspect of the congregation, but Mr. Ryan, the Ameri- 
can minister, appeared unadorned amidst his diplomatic brethren, 
arrayed in true republican simplicity, and doubtless amusing him- 
self at these articles of man-millinery and monarchical gauds. 
In the choir with the canons of the cathedral were numerous 
representatives of other cathedral chapters, and hundreds of other 
ecclesiastics in cassocks and surplices lined the crujia or gang- 
way between the choir and altar. The families of the president 






1890.] BODAS DE ORO. 741 

of the Republic and of many of the leading men in the state 
were present, besides those of bankers, merchants, lawyers, and 
many of the leading foreign residents. 

There was in all a strong representation of the leading ele- 
ments in the Mexican capital. The ceremony was fixed to com- 
mence at 8 A.M., and though the writer arrived long before that 
hour, he was too late to obtain a bench and had the pleasure of 
standing during five mortal hours. 

At half-past eight a general murmur announced the arrival 
of the archbishop. The procession entered by the Sagrario, 
passed by a side door into the choir, and then by the crujia to 
the sanctuary. First came various surpliced ecclesiastics, then a 
large body of canons from various cathedrals, and finally the 
bishops in robes (mucetas) and rochets, the archbishop terminat- 
ing the procession habited in a large rose-colored robe with 
long train. He then proceeded to his throne, where a body of 
priests habited him in the sacerdotal vestments, and proceeded to 
sing Mass. After the gospel the Bishop of- San Luis Potosi, Dr. 
Montes de Oca, habited in a flowing robe of scarlet, arose from 
amongst his fellow-prelates, and after making a reverence to the 
altar, to the celebrant, and to the bishops, advanced to the pul- 
pit, preceded by his attendant clergy and two canons. The 
bishop is forty-nine years of age, completely bald, rather stout 
and below the middle height, yet with flashing, dark eyes, full 
of intelligence, and of imposing presence ( " arrogante presencia" 
according to the Tiempo), calling up thoughts of the Eagle of 
Meaux. He is considered the most talented prelate and the 
most powerful orator in the Mexican Republic, and it is doubt- 
ful whether the ornament of the Fourteenth Louis' court could 
have surpassed the masterly oration with which the bishop for 
three-quarters of an hour held the vast assemblage spell-bound. 
The text was from Leviticus xxv. 10 : " Sanctificabisque annum 
quinquagesimum ; ipse est enim jubilceus" The preacher employed 
this passage of Scripture as affording a reason for the absence 
of himself and his brethren from their own churches at this 
holy season, dwelt on the exceptional fact of a man being for 
half a century engaged in a single purpose, and introduced his 
subject. He then powerfully portrayed the scene where St. 
Augustine at Hippo proposed to prefer the priest Heraclius to 
the episcopal throne, and the burst of enthusiasm with which 
the assembly he addressed prayed long life for the illustrious 
doctor of the church : Exaudi, Christe, Augustine vita. From 
this the preacher drew a parallel to the present occasion, deli- 
cately pointing out the extreme difficulty of the episcopal calling 



742 BODAS DE ORO. [Mar., 

in Mexico at the present time, and hinting that it would be 
extremely difficult to find a successor to Dr. Labastida capable 
of performing his duties with equal success: This was enforced 
by a graphic historical review, and the bishop adverted to the 
fact that but a few months previously the Archbishop of Guadal- 
ajara had also celebrated his jubilee Mass. He then recalled his 
meeting with Dr. Labastida in England when a pupil .at 
Oscott, his consecration to the diaconate by the same prelate 
in Rome twenty-seven years ago, and many other acts of 
personal friendship, and finally closed his powerful discourse by 
a fervent prayer to heaven, at which all present rose, that 
the life of the bishop might be prolonged to the benefit of 
his diocese and country. After the Mass, the music of which 
was exceedingly fine, a chaplain ascended the epistle ambon 
and read the pontifical brief authorizing Dr. Labastida to pronounce 
the apostolic benediction to the people at Easter and the Feast 
of the Immaculate Conception. The prelate from his throne then 
intoned the Papal blessing. The cathedral choir after this 
chanted the Te Deum in plain song. The faithful, headed by 
the clergy, now invaded the sanctuary to kiss the hands of 
the assembled prelates, and thus terminated a celebration the 
like of which had never previously been witnessed in this 
country. 

The banquet given by the archbishop on the 8th of Decem- 
ber (call it breakfast or dinner, which you will) was at half- 
past one, in the episcopal place of Perpetua, three blocks from the 
cathedral. On the right of the prelate was Sr. Ignacio Mariscal, 
Minister of Foreign Affairs, a most capable legal gentleman, mar- 
ried to an American lady, who some years ago gained great 
eclat as special envoy from Mexico to London, where he arranged 
for payment of the interest on the English debt, re-established 
friendly relations between that country and his own, and inaugu- 
rated the present period of confidence in the republic. On the 
archbishop's left sat Count de St. Foix, the French minister. 
Then came several bishops and cathedral canons. Facing Sr. 
Labastida was Sr. Montes de Oca, with the ministers of Ger- 
many and Belgium to his right and left. Near these were other 
prelates and diplomatists. The repast lasted about three hours; 
there were considerably over a hundred guests, and Irishmen will 
note with satisfaction that Mr. O'Brien was well to the fore. At 
dessert Sr. Montes de Oca presented to his venerable host a rich 
pastoral ring, accompanying the gift by some elegant stanzas, 
which we regret our inability to versify in suitable English, but 
their import was that as a boy he had received the exiled bishop 



1890.] BOD AS DE ORO. 743 

in England, that on the feast of St. Lawrence the latter had 
ordained him at Rome, that the prelate had knelt at his first Mass, 
which he had said over the relics of St. Ignatius ; that when 
Pius IX. anointed his head with the holy oil the same kind friend 
had stood by on the steps of the throne, that often had they 
walked side by side on the rich carpets of the Vatican and in 
the shady woods, and that now, after so many years, he rejoiced to 
have assisted when his friend, now aged, offered the Sacred Victim. 
With some appropriate remarks, in which he begged the bishop's 
acceptance of, the symbolical ring, and in which he commended 
him to the protection of the Blessed Virgin, whose festival they 
celebrated on that day, the gifted prelate brought his elegant 
verses to a close. In reply, Sr. Labastida, evidently much moved, 
said that his brother of San Luis Potosi was clearly bent on this 
day on overloading him with compliments, but, added he, I wish 
every one to understand that they are entirely undeserved and 
merely the offspring of his regard for me. These were the only 
speeches delivered. The dinner over, the priest of Ameca, con- 
ducting the archbishop into the throne room, presented him, in the 
name of himself and his parishioners, with a framed portrait of 
the metropolitan, executed in oil by an artist of his parish. 
At half-past four the guests retired, bearing with them pleasant 
memories of the reunion and of the graceful attentions of Sr. 
Labastida. 

The pilgrims from various dioceses were received by him at 
different hours on the Saturday and Monday, and many costly 
offerings were presented by them, the jewelled pastoral staff of 
silver offered by the president's wife being especially noteworthy. 
At six o'clock on the evening of the Qth a literary celebration 
was held, when, various pieces of music were rendered by the 
choir, several poems composed for the occasion by the Bishop of 
San Luis and others recited, and the archbishop presented with 
a volume containing the various congratulations offered him by 
letter and telegram on the occasion by the Pope, and friends and 
well-wishers in Mexico, the United States, and other parts of the 
world. 

The Right Rev. Dr. D. Pelagio Antonio cle Labastida y 
Davalos was born at Zamora, in the State of Michoacan, on the 
2 ist of March, 1816, being the eighth of a family of fourteen 
children. His parents, who were persons of eminent virtue, were 
Don Manuel Luciano de Labastida and Dona Maria Luisa Dava- 
los y Ochoa. 

Our bishop commenced his early studies under the paternal 
roof, at first being instructed by D. Jose Antonio de Labastida 



744 BOD AS DE ORO. [Mar., 

his father's brother, and then by Professor Francisco Diaz, both 
men of rare intelligence. When thirteen years of age, on the 8th 
of January, 1830, he entered the seminary of Morelia and made 
his course of philosophy under the direction of D. Joaquin Ladron 
de Guevara ; he then studied moral philosophy under Sr. D. Ig- 
nacio Barrera. 

In 1836 he was appointed professor of grammar in the same 
seminary ; next year he was ordained sub-deacon by Dr. Juan 
Cayetano Portugal, and on the 1st and loth days of November, 
1839, deacon and priest respectively. On the 8th- of December, 
1839, the young priest, surrounded by his parents and brethren, 
celebrated his first Mass in the sanctuary of the " Senor de la 
Salud" in his natal town. His apadrinadores (supporters) at this 
ceremony were two curates, D. Jose Maria Benibamonde and 
D. Jose Antonio de la Pena, afterwards first Bishop of Zamora. 
Speaking in March last to an intimate friend, Dr. Labastida said 
that although the projected jubilee rejoicings were most gratifying 
to him, more on account of the authority which he represents 
than from personal considerations, yet his intention had been to 
celebrate his jubilee Mass at the altar of Our Lord of Succour 
at which his first sacrifice had been offered, and by the ashes of 
his relatives who had assisted him on that solemn occasion. Two 
years after this Sr. Labastida was hastily summoned from his 
scholarly retreat in the lovely capital of Michoacan by the death 
of his mother. Arrived at his home, the young priest found 
that the heavy affliction had deprived his father of his reason. 
The old man was assiduously tended by his son, who made the 
recovery of his father's intelligence his constant care at the altar. 
His petition was granted, the head of the family was enabled to 
arrange his affairs, and then, in spite of the most assiduous at- 
tention, he sank and died in a few days. The doubly bereaved 
priest returned to Morelia, the most beautiful city in Mexico, 
where he occupied successively the chairs of natural, civil, and 
canon law, and was then attorney-general of the ecclesiastical 
courts of Michoacan, judge of wills, chaplaincies and pious foun- 
dations, and at the same time prebend of the cathedral of the 
diocese, and, some years later, canon. Contemporaries of his in 
the chapter were Sr. Jose Antonio de la Pena, already mentioned, 
and D. Clemente de Jesus Munguia, one of the most eminent 
philosophers and men of letters in modern Mexico. On the death 
of the bishop, D. Juan Cayetano Portugal, the first American 
cardinal, in 1851, the Morelian chapter submitted to the gov- 
ernment as his successor, amongst others, the names of Labastida 
and Munguia, and the government of D. Jose Joaquin de Her- 



1890.] BOD AS DE ORO. 745 

rera presented to the latter the Holy See. Labastida continued in 
the Morelian chapter, rendering powerful assistance to his old 
friend. Somewhat later Labastida, with Srs. Garza and Espinosa, 
was proposed for the first bishopric of San Luis Potosi, then 
created, and on the death of Dr. Jose Maria Luciano Becerra y 
Jimenez, Bishop of Puebla, the chapter of that diocese proposed 
Dr. Labastida as his successor to the government of General 
Santa Ana, by which he was presented to Pope Pius IX., and 
he was preconized to the vacant see by the consistory of the 
23d of March, 1855. The bulls were received on the I2th of 
May ; the bishop-elect proceeded to the beautiful City of the An- 
gels, and was there consecrated by his old ally, Bishop Munguia, 
on the 8th of July, 1855. In his new sphere our hero speedily 
gained the confidence and affection of his flock, devoting himself 
to the improvement of the hospitals and schools, at his own cost 
sending ecclesiastical students to study at Rome, and 
showing the greatest regard and solicitude for the poor. 
Though pre-eminently a man distinguished for meekness 
and forbearance, within a few months of his consecration 
the bishop found himself at issue with the governor, who 
had imprisoned an ecclesiastic named Miranda on mere suspicion; 
his remonstrances proving futile, Dr. Labastida addressed the 
general government on the matter, but with no better success. The 
ill success of his efforts in defence of the rights of the church did 
not, however, daunt the prelate, and when by the decree of the 
3 ist of March, 1856, President Comonfort enacted state supervision 
over the ecclesiastical property of the diocese of Puebla, the 
bishop again remonstrated with the civil power. A revolution 
was the result of the president's decree, which the government 
finally crushed at Puebla. Comonfort justified his decree on the 
ground that public opinion accused the clergy of Puebla of 
having fomented the late rising. The fact seems to have been 
that both the clergy and the commercial classes were victims of 
that revolution and entirely helpless. 

However, on the I2th of May that is, within the first year 
of his episcopate the government having decreed sentence of 
banishment against the bishop, General Manuel Chavero, second 
in command at Puebla, notified the bishop that he must leave 
in a couple of hours for Vera Cruz, and thence take ship for 
foreign parts. The bishop's request that he should be acquainted 
with the charges against him and be granted right of reply 
was refused, the officer in question having no option but to 
carry out his instructions. At three in the afternoon the bishop 

VOL. L. 48 



746 BOD AS DE ORO. [Mar.,, 

was removed in a common hackney coach, guarded by an 
armed force commanded by General Moret, the populace ex- 
pressing its regret and sympathy, but powerless to resist. The 
gentleness, amiability, and conciliatory disposition of the prelate, 
his erudition, virtues, and evangelical conduct, which had kept 
him aloof from politics, though constant in his respect for the 
civil power, all these united to his noble presence, his frank 
and benignant countenance, his stately carriage, and his dis- 
tinguished and affable manners, had rendered him a most highly 
esteemed person in the best sense of the term. Arrived at 
Jalapa, he learned from the canons Francisco Suarez Peredo 
and Francisco Serrano that the reason of his exile was certain 
expressions employed in a sermon attributed to him by a jour- 
nal, telling him at the same time that they had had an audience 
of the president, who wished to know what the bishop had to 
say on the subject. He immediately addressed the president, 
on the 1 6th of May, denying the utterances attributed to him, 
and appealing to the numerous audience that had heard him 
on the occasion in question. This, however, produced no effect,, 
and from Vera Cruz he addressed another letter to the Min- 
ister Don Ezequiel Montes, protesting that his sole offence was 
his vigorous defence of the jurisdiction and property of the church. 
The bishop requested of D. Manuel Zamora, governor of Vera 
Cruz, that he might be permitted to leave on the 22d of May 
in the Tejas instead of in the Iturbide, which sailed two 
days earlier, as had been ordered, on account of the unsea- 
worthiness of the latter vessel, but his request was unheeded, 
and in the Iturbide he embarked. But one of her paddles 
breaking down, he was transferred to a sailing ship bound for 
Havana, at which port he arrived fifteen days later, after a 
trying and perilous voyage. 

Having obtained permission from the Holy See, the bishop 
now fixed his residence at Rome, visiting at this period the Holy 
Land, Egypt, India, and the principal countries of Europe. He 
was highly esteemed by Pius IX., who naturally had many 
opportunities of judging of his merit, and that pontiff preferred 
him to the archiepiscopate of Mexico on the iQth of May, 1863. 
Meanwhile there had been bloody strife in Mexico ; the position 
was entirely altered, and the conservative party, now in the 
ascendant, thought that the only chance of securing the peace 
and integrity of the country was to revive the empire of 
Iturbide and offer the imperial throne to a member of the 
House of Hapsburg. Dr. Labastida during all this period of 



1890.] BOD AS DE ORO. 747 

exile had as usual abstained from politics, hoping that the times 
might alter and permit of his return to his diocese. At this 
time the Archduke Maximilian induced the exiled bishop to visit 
him at Miramar to obtain from him reliable information as to the 
position of affairs in Mexico at the time of his forcible ejectment 
from that country. Maximilian gave the bishop a sheet containing 
one hundred and eighty-four questions written with a black pencil, 
and requested him to reply to them. Dr. Labastida answered them 
all in red pencil on the same sheet. The whereabouts of this 
remarkable document is not known, but it is to be hoped that 
it will some day come to light. However, the replies to three 
of them exhibit the judicious manner in which the prelate 
avoided political complications. To the inquiry as to whether a 
monarchical party existed in Mexico, he replied that there had 
been none such at the time of his leaving the country, and 
that if there were at the present it could not be monarchical at 
heart, but that it would merely desire a monarchy as the sur- 
est road to peace and prosperity, but that Mexico had no 
monarchical traditions nor love for such institutions. To the 
question whether liberals could safely be employed in the gov- 
ernment service, he replied that there were many able, experi- 
enced, and patriotic men in that party, and that a government 
to be stable must be truly national and representative of all good 
citizens. Another question was whether an army exclusively 
Mexican could be formed, and the reply to this was that this 
would prove a most feasible measure, the Mexican generals 
being brave, warlike, generous, and humane, encountering dan- 
gers and difficulties with a calm valor not easily to be matched 
elsewhere. As to the Mexican soldier, the prelate said that he 
is of an heroic type, never deserting his standard, and fighting 
well after long marches and hardships. He can march without 
forage, rations, or transports, only encounters difficulties to 
conquer them, and follows his leader with blind devotion. In 
Europe people have no true conception of what the Mexican sol- 
dier really is. 

Penetrated with the thought of his mission and of his exalted 
duties, Mgr. Labastida, seeing a throne erected in Mexico, 
accepted it as he would have accepted any form of govern- 
ment from which a return of order and peace might be reason- 
ably anticipated for that distracted country. This he hoped 
the empire would accomplish, and with no other thought than 
that of serving the nation, he accepted his nomination as regent 
of the empire, hoping to inaugurate a period of prosperity for 
the country and of peace and tranquillity for the Mexican 



748 BOD AS DE ORO. [Mar., 

Church. Mgr. Labastida was appointed Archbishop of Mexico 
on the 1 9th of March, 1863, about the same time as he was nom- 
inated regent of the empire, and he embarked at St. Nazaire 
with Mgr. Munguia, Archbishop of Michoacan, and Mgr. Covar- 
rubias, Bishop of Oaxaca, and arrived at Vera Cruz on the i/th 
of September, where they were received with much distinction 
by the authorities of that port, civil, 'ecclesiastical, and military. 
The journey to the capital was a triumph, especially at Puebla, 
whence Dr. Labastida had been forcibly removed and exiled 
seven years previously; here he remained several days and the 
City of Mexico was reached on the nth of October. Here his 
reception was most enthusiastic, and a week later he entered on 
the duties of the regency, in which his conduct was that of a 
prelate and patriot. Within a few days he was in opposition to 
a measure which Napoleon, by Marshal Bazaine, forced on the 
regency; the other -members of that body yielded the French 
demands, but the bishop was inflexible. So, also, when the French 
general, Neigre, attributed certain anonymous libels to the clergy 
the bishop replied to him with spirit, and he similarly faced the 
emperor himself when, at the end of 1864, he gave indications 
of following a " liberal and anti-Catholic " policy. The bishop 
on this occasion was supported in his action by the bishops of 
Michoacan, Oaxaca, Queretaro, and Tulancingo, and the conserva- 
tive party say that the emperor's reply shows that a dark veil 
of liberalism had been drawn over his eyes, which led to the down- 
fall of his throne and to his own political murder at Queretaro. 
They further assert that he permitted the formation by the 
French authorities of a system of espionage to watch the action 
of the archbishop and clergy, and even that of the papal nuncio ; 
that the letter which D. Jose Fernando Ramirez, the Minister of 
Foreign Affairs, addressed to the latter on the 2ist of January, 
1865, was of a discourteous and menacing character, indicating 
scant respect for the Holy See, and that the press was permitted 
to calumniate the clergy with impunity. Similarly, when the 
emperor published his unwise decree on religious matters on the 
26th of February of the same year, the bishop protested on the 
ist of March in a ''truly unanswerable" exposition of the 
situation. From all of which it will be seen that the sub- 
ject of these remarks has as much of Thomas as of Anselm in 
his composition. He saw that the church had little to expect 
from the empire, and endeavoring to remain on good terms 
with the government, withdrew from all intervention in politics 
from 1865, devoting himself exclusively thenceforth to his epis- 
copal functions. 



1890.] BOD AS DE ORO. 749 

He commenced a pastoral visitation of his diocese on the 2/th 
of September, which occupied him for more than an entire year. 
The pope was then preparing to celebrate with great pomp the 
centenary of St. Peter, and the canonization of the Japanese 
martyrs, of whom San Filipe de Jesus, the Mexican proto- 
martyr, was one, and Mgr. Labastida received from the pontiff 
an especial invitation to attend the celebration. He accordingly 
left Mexico for Rome on the 5th of February, 1867, and as- 
sisted at the centenary observances. About this time the empire 
was destroyed, Maximilian shot, and the liberal party under 
Juarez triumphed. Dr. Labastida stayed on at Rome for the 
Vatican Council, which opened in 1869, and was adjourned the 
next year on the entry of the Italian troops into the Eternal 
City. The Juarez government permitted the bishop to return 
to his see in spite of his association with the late regime, and 
he re-entered the Mexican capital on the I9th of May, 1871, 
after an absence of over four years, and devoted himself anew 
to his episcopal duties, abjuring politics from thenceforth. He 
commenced a visitation of the archdiocese in 1872, which termi- 
nated in 1878 ; and, in addition to this, he has made many 
other parochial visitations, appearing in some parishes two, three, 
and even seven different times. Twice a week he administers 
the Sacrament of Confirmation in the cathedral ; he preaches 
at the great festivals, and displays great zeal in enforcing disci- 
pline amongst the clergy, and in the education of candidate 
for the priesthood, many of whom he has sent to Rome to ob- 
tain the best training possible. He is particularly devoted to the 
cultus of Our Lady of Guadalupe, the national patroness; 
obtained from Leo XIII. permission for the coronation of her 
image, and the works undertaken under his auspices for the 
renovation of the Collegiate Church in that suburb amount, in 
fact, to the foundation of a new temple. Moreover, on reception 
days, both at Tacuba and in the city, the worthy prelate re- 
ceives all who approach him with attention and sympathy, and 
his works of benevolence and charity are unnumbered. Though 
seventy-three years of age, his faculties are still vigorous, and 
it seems probable that many years of usefulness are still in 
store for him. It is to be regretted that His Eminence Cardinal 
Gibbons was prevented from being present at the celebration, 
as had been his intention; his portrait and an account of his 
life and work was, however, published in the Tiempo, together 
with those of the Mexican bishops who were present. 

City of Mexico. 



750 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 



HOW PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 

I. 

CONE CITY is well known now because the Hon. Perseus G. 
Mahaffy was born there. The noise he made in the House of 
Representatives when it was found that Golung Creek, on which 
Cone City has the happiness to be placed, had been left out of 
the first River and Harbor Bill is historical, for, reduced to 
printed symbols, it is in the Congressional Globe. He was known 
for the last ten years of his life as the Fixed Star of Golung 
Creek, and he was supposed to equal in learning the Sage of 
Hastings, Minn., and in eloquence the Tall Sycamore of the 
Wabash, Ind. 

The Cone City Eagle had sung his praises many times, but when he 
died it exhausted itself in a burst of adulation and appeared with a 
black 'border. The opposition paper, the Herald of Liberty, dropped 
its series of letters under the heading of "Why did He Change 
His Name ? " and likewise a respectful tear, although it said edi- 
torially that death condones even the weakness which impels a 
man to change his name from Patrick to Perseus. Both papers 
hfed long accounts of the services which were conducted in the 
First Baptist Church; the lists of the floral tributes occupied 
a column, and among them was a star of lilies-of-the-valley 
from Col. Will Brodbeck, who assisted at the service without, as 
he distinctly asserted, taking any part in a mummery which the 
world had outgrown. Still, Col. Will Brodbeck's presence at the 
church was looked on as a compliment to religion and as show- 
ing a very liberal spirit. The Rev. Mr. Schuyler changed his 
text from a passage in Isaias to one in Robert Elsmere when he 
saw that the colonel was one of the pall-bearers, and the congre- 
gation, consisting of the best people in Cone City, divided its 
attention between the widow's mourning suit and the colonel's 
face, which wore a highly decorous and non-committal expression. 
When the preacher alluded to the Hon. Perseus G. Mahaffy as 
one who had cast off the bonds of early superstition, who had 
seen the light lit by Luther and the Fathers of the Reformation, 
who had died firm in the Protestant belief, the colonel looked scorn- 
ful ; and when the colonel looked scornful he was very ugly. He was 
six feet high, of that pale, waxy complexion which gamblers are 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 751 

said to possess in works of fiction with a keen black eye, a mass 
of grayish hair, and a broad chest He took off his white gloves 
supplied by the undertaker, and, of course, too large even for 
him, and while Mr. Schuyler made his peroration, toyed with a 
large diamond on the little finger of his left hand. The mocking 
look in his eyes became more evident as the diamond flashed 
with his nervous movements, for he knew why and how the 
Hon. Perseus G. Mahaffy had died. 

The widow of the subject of Mr. Schuyler's eulogies, a 
handsome woman with a haughty manner and eyes like Col. 
Brodbeck's she was his sister sat with her three children quite 
near the coffin. She did not appear to be interested in the min- 
ister's discourse, and as it was known that she had violent 
differences of opinion with the deceased, and that he had left a 
large life insurance, many of the assembly felt that she should 
have shown more signs of grief. Clara, her eldest daughter, a 
girl of sixteen, was bent over the pew in front of her, a shape- 
less mass of black; the two boys seemed sad and bewildered 
rather than grief-stricken. 

When the long prayer was over and the choir, assisted by 
the Masonic Temple Quartette, had sung " Almost Persuaded," 
which was chosen with reference to the supposed effect of the 
sermon on Col. Brodbeck, the funeral procession filed slowly from 
the church. Nothing unusual happened until Mrs. Mahaffy 
reached the door of the church. An old woman in a bonnet 
and gown of rusty black bombazine rushed forward from a 
corner of the vestibule and caught Mrs. Mahaffy's hand. 
" Can you tell me will you tell me, in the presence of the 
dead, how he died ? " she asked in a hasty and trembling voice 

The widow snatched away her hand and passed on. Clara 
Mahaffy unconsciously raised her head at the words and the 
old woman caught sight of her gentle face, so like that of 
her father in his best moods. 

"Oh, dear! oh, acushla!" she said with a pathetic ring in 

her words, "maybe you can tell me maybe you were told " 
But the old woman was thrust aside by the undertaker^ 
and the mourners passed into the street. The longing, despair- 

I'ng eyes of the old woman, so wretched in appearance, so 
wretched in heart, never left the girl's mind until the answer 
:o that strange question was found. 



75 2 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

II. 

The opposition paper of Cone City made a mistake when 
it asserted that Perseus Mahaffy had dropped the name of 
Patrick. He often remarked that he would not have been fool 
enough to do that. If he had been named Patrick, it would 
have been money in his pocket, for the vote which is supposed 
to be attracted by that venerable name was very strong in 
Cone City, and sometimes held the balance of power. He had 
changed his name. His mother came from a part of Tipperary 
where Boethius is a cherished patronymic, and he had been 
called by that name. He had dropped it for Perseus Gifford,, 
because Perseus Gifford took an interest in the clever young Irish 
lad, and helped him to study law, and because Perseus was 
an honored name in Cone City; it gave an air of American- 
ism to his surname, which, until the Irish vote became a fac- 
tor in politics, he cursed with all his might. His father had 
died when he was eleven years of age. His mother, a rosy- 
cheeked, wrinkled old woman, who adored her son, had passed 
away about a year before Mr. Schuyler had delivered his ora- 
tion over him. He had gotten " beyond her," as she said 
towards the last, when he and his wife and her grandchildren 
passed the end of her little garden every evening without com- 
ing in. She shed many bitter tears over this; but she never 
blamed him ; in her heart she laid the guilt of this desertion 
on his wife. 

Ah ! what an angel of light he would have been had it not 
been for this wife ! she exclaimed to herself often in the twilight 
when she sat alone. These idle hours in the dusk were hardest 
for her to bear. She could see the lights in her son's house 
from where she sat. There was a sound of music and of chil- 
dren singing his children, her grandchildren, yet so far from 
her. She could never bear the music of those childish voices. 
She always shut down the window when they began and tried 
to say her beads. He was a good son still ; did he not send 
her every week from the bank enough money more than enough 
to keep her in comfort ? But oh ! if she could only go back 
again to the old days when he was' a little boy, and such an 
affectionate little fellow ! How he used to cry when she sang an 
old song to him in the gloaming, after she had done her day's 
work and they were waiting for the father. It was all about a 
little girl that lived in a red house by the sea, without sister or 
brother or father or mother. She often tried to recall it : 



1890.] How PEXSEUS BECAME A STAR. 755. 

"I sit alone in the twilight, 

While the wind comes sighing to me, 

And I see that dear little orphan 

In the little red house by the sea." 

Surely the loving little boy, whose eyes filled with tears, 
whenever she sang those simple words, could not have changed 
entirely. She had made his heart cold, the mother said of his, 
wife; she had made him forget church and priest, and even his 
mother. It must be said that the old woman could never re- 
strain herself when, soon after his marriage, her son had often 
come to see her. She never spared his wife, and from this fact 
had sprung the coldness which prevented him from going to see 
her. It was none the less hard for the warm-hearted old woman ; 
she took no pleasure in her son's political successes. Her one 
consolation, besides her religious duties, was in the company of 
one more unhappy, if possible, than herself. This was another 

Iold Irishwoman, Mrs. Carney, who lived in an unpainted and 
bare-looking frame house at the back of her garden. 
Frank Carney had been at the district school with Perseus 
Mrs. Mahany never called him by that name, but always "the 
Boy " and he had entered the same lodge as that enterprising 
politician when the time came to cast off his allegiance to the 
faith. Frank, a blue-eyed, light-haired, good-natured young 
man, was not quite so clever as Perseus, and not quite so unscrupu- 
lous. He had more conscience, but he had no firmness of will 
in face of a laugh. Moreover, he was fond of society, and, ac- 
cording to the social constitution of Cone City, Catholics were not 
socially eligible. He was gay, cheerful, with a fatal facility for 
making himself agreeable. He was handsome; he could dance 
well, and he soon acquired those graces which Cone City had 
just acquired with the "swallow- tail" and other metropolitan 
novelties. Perseus took him into his law office, and from that 
time Mrs. Carney's life became bitter. Her only son dropped 

I his habit of going to Mass with her ; he seldom came home ; 
he promised when he did come that "he'd make his soul by- 
and-by " and this with a laugh. But when she heard that he 
had been promoted Cone City looked on this as promotion 
to the friendship of Colonel Brodbeck, the notorious infidel, her 
heart sank; she refused to be comforted. In her heart Mrs. 
Mahaffy felt that her son had drawn Frank Carney from the 
way of peace. She never admitted it, nor did Mrs. Carney 
speak of it. But any one who knew the two old women could 
not help seeing that on one side was a desire to make amends 



754 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

and on the other a determination to accept kindness simply be- 
cause it relieved the one who conferred it. Each of these two old 
friends they were born on the banks of the Suir, and had crossed 
in the same ship, and had lost their husbands at the same time 
bore her burden better because she thought the other's was 
the heavier. At last old Mrs. Mahaffy died, blessing her son, 
although, being absent at a political convention, he came too 
late to receive it in person. And so great was this admirable 
man's horror of superstition, and so strong his desire not to give 
bad example to his fellow-townsmen, that he telegraphed to his 
mother's pastor to bury her at once with solemn services. He 
did this because he wanted to be sure of his nomination and 
because he did not care to be seen entering the Catholic 
church. Old Mrs. Carney, who had never said a word against 
Perseus, burst out at the funeral of her friend. " If I had 
such a son," she cried, " I'd curse him ! " It seemed some- 
how as if a change did take place in Perseus Mahaffy's life 
after the death of his mother. His wife was relieved by the 
disappearance of the old woman. She had had a feeling that, 
during some social function, her husband's mother might ap- 
pear and destroy the " form " of things. 

III. 

Perseus began to be a star when he married Judge Brod- 
beck's daughter. Judge Brodbeck came of an old English 
family, but this would have mattered very little in the truly 
Western town of Cone City had not the judge made a great 
deal of money in railroad speculations. People said the railroads 
had influenced his decisions on the bench ; but as he was rich 
there was a certain respect for him mixed with this censure. The 
judge had been the strictest of strict Calvinists ; his two children, the 
colonel and Clara, hated Presbyterianism. Clara meeting Perseus 
by chance at one of the dancing assemblies, found him to be a 
pleasant contrast to the business-sodden men around her. And 
the colonel, who saw that Perseus was vain as well as clever, 
did not object to the intimacy. When the marriage was 
announced Cone City was amazed. The ceremony was performed 
in the First Baptist Church simply because Clara held that a re- 
ligious ceremony was socially respectable. 

The mother of the bridegroom knelt before the crucifix in 
her little room. Her son had become an apostate to gain pros- 
perity he, the descendant of martyrs ! After this Perseus had 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 755 

fewer scruples ; the die was cast ; his mother's entreaties fell on 
callous ears. 

Colonel Brodbeck determined to take advantage of Perseus' 
vanity, as well as his cleverness. It was Perseus' misfortune 
that his horizon was bounded by Cone City. No parvenu who 
had suddenly married a princess could have been more elated 
than was Perseus by his marriage. 

" You have given up your God, your soul," his mother had 
said to him, " for nothing." 

" I have never seen God or my soul, mother," he had 
answered. " See here, mother : I want a big house, I want to be 
rich, I want to be one of the best people of this town, and you 
can't be that if you're poor ; for all these reasons I'm going to 
marry Clara Brodbeck. I'll get the best out of life I can, and 
take my chances." 

" And you'll turn your back on the church and the priest 
for this ! Sure, you've already joined a secret society." 

" Everybody knows that. As soon as I learned to read I 
learned that I must get on or live down here in this shanty, 
despised nobody. I was born of the poor; everybody looked 
down on the ' Irish boy ' I'm no more Irish then they are 
English or Dutch or anything else and the Irish boy had 
patches on his clothes, and he went to the church to which only 
the hewers of wood and the drawers of water went." 

" And his mother was only a poor Irishwoman ! " said Mrs. 
Mahaffy, with a flash of sarcasm. 

" She couldn't help that" 

"But her son would have helped being her son, if he could." 

Perseus reddened. He admitted the truth of this in his heart. 

" You ought tc be proud of me, mother. I've leaped over 
ic bounds that kept me out of everything worth having. I have 
in assured position in the town, and my children will have all 
the advantages which I lacked. My wife is the most cultured 
/oman in the town ; my " 

" God help us ! " interjected his mother, " you'd think he was 
liking of Dublin after having married a great lord's daughter ! 
You're too ignorant to know the miserable price for which 
you've sold your soul. Your grandmother starved in the famine 
rather than change her religion, or seem to change it even for a 
moment. Why was your father poor ? Why were we exiles ? 
For one reason only: we kept the faith." 

" I've heard all this before, mother," he said, " and there's 
no money in it." 



756 Ho w PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar.,. 

" And you're leading young Frank Carney away, too," said the 
old womaa, exhausted and despondent. 

Perseus only shrugged his shoulders. He was satisfied that 
he had done the best he could for himself. The duty of mak- 
ing money was the first recognized in Cone City. " Put money 
in thy purse," the spirit of the town whispered through every 
medium. The churches were valued according to their financial' 
status. The Presbyterians were in the ascendant in money mat- 
ters ; therefore their "socials" and meetings were best attended. 
The Catholic priest was respected because he paid his bills 
promptly and would not permit himself to be cheated. The 
Protestant- Episcopalians were poor, and their minister was a 
Canadian of high-church proclivities, and though some " nice 
people " sat under him people who wore diamonds and seal- 
skin sacques yet they were, as a rule, looked down on. 

Perseus must have been stronger than he was to have escaped 
the fever of money- making. He saw that in a Protestant and 
highly total-abstaining town Colonel Brodbeck's infidelity and 
fondness for whiskey which was not excessive, by the way were 
condoned because of his wealth. Money could do anything, he 
concluded ; it might even open the way socially to a Catholic, pro- 
vided he were not too Irish. He had a somewhat better educa- 
tion than the other boys at school. Father Deschamps taught a 
little school he was too poor to pay a teacher and when Per- 
seus had left it and gone to the district school the kind priest, 
discerning the boy's talent, had made him read Cicero and Virgil. 
Father Deschamps was replaced by another pastor, and Perseus 
was left to the deadening influence around him. Having planned 
his career, he was somewhat relieved to have Father Deschamps 
go. And yet he never felt that he was ungrateful; he became 
so entirely absorbed in his desire to be rich that it seemed only 
right that all the world should aid. In fact, he had become his. 
own Buddha, and he was rapidly losing himself in self. 

Colonel Brodbeck admired Perseus' capabilities. " If the fel- 
low," he said to himself, " only knew his ability, and if his con- 
founded snobbishness did not prevent him from seeing how supe- 
rior he is to these Cone City chumps, he'd get away from here 
as soon as possible. But he looks on the Cone -City settler as- 
one of a superior race." 

The colonel grinned sardonically, and opened a letter about 
the selling of the Cone City water-front to the new railroad 
company, whose stock was mostly owned in Chicago. 

"Ah!" he said, "we shall find some work here for Perseus.'* 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 757 

Perseus was sent to Congress. And just before the day of 
election the rival candidate brought out the old story about his 
having changed his name. Both of the Cone City papers had his 
mother " interviewed." According to the friendly journalist, she 
was a " handsome old lady, living in opulence provided by an 
adoring son." The other journal said that she was "a decent 
old woman, bowed down by her son's neglect, and living in 
comparative' squalor." All the old woman could be induced to 
say was that she " would not have cared how often the Boy 
changed his name, if he had only stuck to his religion." 

This brought a card from Perseus. He protested that religion 
had no place in politics. His religion .was his private affair. He 
would allow no human being to interfere between him and his 
God. His Irish friends, he hoped, would remember that, though 
an American in every fibre of his being, he loved, next to the 
principles of 1776, the principles of Parnell. While he lived he 
would oppose any State tax on church property. To be honest 
was the first commandment of his religion, and he hoped, in 
Congress, to show that this religion influenced his every act. 

The card was effective ; the Home- Rule phrase and that about 
church property helped him very much, though he promised the 
Methodist minister to lecture at Chautauqua at an early day on 
" The Aggressions of Rome." 

To be frank, Perseus believed that he was honest; he often 
said to himself that people did not know how good he was. His 
wife's indifference to religion annoyed him. He held that a wo- 
man ought to be religious ; but Clara laughed at him. 

" The children shall choose their own religion," she said one 
evening, after one of the Cone City functions called a "coffee." 
Sixty leading Cone City ladies had eaten chicken salad and ices 
with her from three until six, and the probable conversion of one 
of their number to Catholicity had been discussed. " Cora 
Bramber is going to turn Catholic, and I must say I like her 
spirit." 

" I thought you hated Catholics," Perseus said. 

" I ? Good gracious, no ! I think they are more consistent 
than other denominations. And I don't see why they should 

I be held responsible for the awful things the Jesuits and popes 
lid long ago. I'm sure the Puritans were bad enough." 
"You wouldn't want the children to be Catholics, Clara." 
" If they were rich and could do as they please, I think I 
would. But Providence, if there is a Providence, seems rather 
hard on people when he makes them Catholic and poor at the 



758 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

same time. The children must have some religion or other. I 
can keep straight without religion ; I've a natural tendency towards 
respectability, and you're a good husband ; but Perseus, I wouldn't 
trust anybody else. I'm thinking of sending Clara to a convent 
school." 

Perseus set down his coffee-cup in amazement he was in 
the act of making a collation from the remains of the afternoon 
feast. 

"I won't have it," he said; "it would ruin the girl's pros- 
pects, Clara. Who'd marry a Catholic here, and if she goes to 
a convent, she'll probably come back a Catholic." 

" If there's anything that exasperates me," answered his wife, 
calmly washing the silver, " it's your foolish reverence for Cone 
City people. They're only people who came here to earn 
a living; they're the sort of people who go to Europe every 
year to complete an education that was never begun at home. 
If Clara has money, she might be a Mohammedan. Haven't 
you learned that yet? She'll be safe in a convent school." 

" Well, I'll lose the Methodist vote, that's all." 

"No, you won't, nor the Baptist either. The anti- church 
property stand holds all denominations. Besides, haven't I 
given five hundred dollars for the Methodist chapel ? You'll 
gain more Catholic vptes than you ever had. Anyhow, I ivill 
have Clara well taken care of. I know our boarding-schools too 
well. The nuns may make her narrow-minded, but they'll 
keep her gentle. These sects make their girls both narrow- 
minded and aggressive." 

Perseus was silent. After all, it was like the sound of far-off 
bells, sweet to his ears, to think that his child might say the same 
old prayers and kneel before the tabernacle. Nevertheless, he 
would not sacrifice anything for this. As Clara took the responsi- 
bility, he left it to her. He was resolved that the boys should 
not be handicapped by religion. 

He took his wife to the opera-house that night to hear her 
brother lecture on " The Beautiful in Life." The theatre was 
crowded. The colonel was very florid in his speech. He said 
that beauty was religion, and that if religion and the enjoyment 
of the beautiful were opposed, religion must go. " If God is a 
God of terror," he repeated, " God must go ; when men's souls 
shall have attuned themselves to the grace of the Venus of 
Melos rather than to churchly ideas of womanhood, when the 
use of money shall mean more beauty in life, then virtue and 
sensuous enjoyment shall be one and life be complete." 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. , 759 

" I suppose you'd like Clara to hear that kind of stuff/" 
Perseus' wife said as they drove home. 

" It was very pretty," said Perseus ; " I don't quite see what 
it means ; it certainly makes irreligion very attractive. Like 
you, the colonel does not seem to need religion in order to be 
good." 

His wife laughed. " I don't know about that ; but I know 
what he means ; he means free love. As for religion, we all 
need it. Do you know, if you had stuck to your religion I 
should have had more respect for you, and it is probable I 
might have become a Catholic myself. There are times, Perseus, 
when your silly admiration for Cone City makes you very tire- 
some. As for my brother, can't you see that he is not a good 
man ? He believes in God in his heart, of course he does ! The 
way he protests against it shows that he does. As for myself, I 
dislike any unreasonable and illogical belief founded on man's, 
dictum and the Bible. But I don't know Catholicism. I might 
like it. We all need religion my brother worse than anybody 
I know," she added, with a short laugh. " There is nothing in 
our times, except religion, to keep a woman from dropping a 
husband she does not like and taking one she does; and no 
religion that can do it effectively, except yours I beg pardon,. 
I mean the religion you've progressed out of. There's Mrs. 
Churton ; she has been divorced twice, and yet she's head and 
front among the Congregationalists." 

"You don't mean to say that you'd " Perseus almost 
gasped, as he turned to his wife. 

" I don't mean to say anything but that Clara shall be for- 
tified against the dangers that would beset me if I cared for any 
other man than you." 

This was frank enough. Perseus shuddered as he heard it. 
He imagined his mother saying such a thing ! No ; toil-worn, 
uneducated, old-fashioned as she was, there was a bloom of in- 
nocence and womanliness about his mother which his wife lacked. 
Such frankness gradually built up a wall of distrust before him ; 
his wife did not see it, though she felt a difference. Later she 
differed with him almost habitually, and she was generally right. 
Finally, she came almost to despise him. 

The question of the sale of the water-front came up. Perseus 
and Colonel Brodbeck opposed it. It meant robbery. It would 
open the door to monopoly. It was an outrage on the rights of 
the people. It was on account of his course in this matter that 
he was sent to Congress a third time, and was enabled to second 






760 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

some of his brother-in-law's schemes very effectively. Frank 
Carney had been his constant supporter. Frank had now no 
legitimate business ; he was devoted to politics ; he lived by 
subsidies from the Hon. Perseus and Colonel Brodbeck. He was 
their slave, and the more self-respect he lost the more valuable 
he became. Somebody must do the dirty work in politics, and 
Frank's hand, once in the mire, did a great deal of it. His 
mother said this to him about Easter-time, when she was urging 
him to go to his "duty." 

" I can't, mother," he said ; " don't ask me. I'd have to get 
out of politics if I did. When I've made my pile," he added, 
with a rather timid attempt at a laugh, " I'll repent." 

" They say that you and Col. Brodbeck have robbed right 
and left. I can't bear to hear such things." 

" Oh ! it's newspaper lies. Don't you see the colonel's a big 
man, for all that ? It doesn't make much difference in this country 
where you get money, so that you get it." 

The old woman could only cry and wring her hands. She 
saw that her son had begun to drink, and it was said that he gam- 
bled. Prayer, constant and unwearying, was her only resource. 

The railroad company wanted the water-front badly. Its 
counsel and directors knew that Colonel Brodbeck and Perseus 
controlled the council of Cone City, of which the colonel was 
the attorney. Had the colonel and the Hon. Perseus a price ? 
An answer to this question was easily obtained through Frank 
Carney. They had, and it was high. Perseus was at first in- 
clined to be honest, but the colonel laughed at him. 

" Nonsense ! " he said, " that sort of thing went out of fashion 
with religion. You felt yourself trammelled in the process of 
making your career by your Catholicism, and you gave it up. 
Why should you keep up the bondage after you've emanci- 
pated yourself. It ought to be whole hog or none. There's no 
confession to be afraid of now." 

Perseus shivered involuntarily. He had the feeling " as if" 
as his mother would have said it " somebody was walking over 
his grave." 

His wife was shocked by his change of view on the water- 
side question. She spoke her opinion very plainly. " I might 
have known," she said in her most cutting tones, "that it was a 
risk to marry an apostate, but I never imagined this disgrace. 
Oh!. my brother? My brother is an infidel, but you pretend to 
be a Christian still." 

After this Perseus knew that his wife despised him, though 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 761 

he had cleaved the ether and was a star. He winced under sar- 
casms ; he distrusted her. What guarantee had he that she, 
bound to him by inclination, not duty, might not *desert him at 
any moment ? Clara, his daughter, was at a convent school ; 
his boys were also away ; his life was wretchedly unhappy but 
he was growing richer in this world's goods every day. 

The "deal " between the Cone City syndicate and the rail- 
road company had been arranged very neatly through Frank 
Carney. There had been no tell-tale checks in the matter. Frank 
had delivered forty thousand dollars in cash to each of these two 
most potent men in Cone City. The council had been managed, but 
no one knew who did it, so that while popular indignation struck 
the council, it never even glanced on the colonel and his con- 
frere. It was cleverly arranged; there was no scandal; Perseus 
admired his diplomacy and his success, for forty thousand dol- 
lars was a great sum in Cone City, and yet it was the begin- 
ning of* disaster. 

Frank Carney, good-natured, plastic, credulous, began to see 
that he was only a tool. He had been ignored in the division 
of the spoil. He feared Perseus and the colonel too much to 
find fault openly. But his discontent was growing. He was in 
this mood in the spring, when Easter came again. His mother 
met him one morning, just after old Mrs. Mahaffy's death, and 
said nothing. She stood and looked at him with yearning eyes. 
He had been drinking all night ; but he was sober enough. 

" What is it, mother ? " he said. 

" What is it, dear ? I'm just thinking that I'd give the world 
to have my own boy back again." 

Frank saw a tear on her cheek in the early sunlight as 
she turned away. 

"If God helps me, you shall, mother," he called after her; 
and then he said to himself: "She's worth it all; I'll surprise 
her; I'm tired of the mud." 

IV. 

It happened that the Honorable Perseus G. Mahaffy and 
Colonel Brodbeck were asked to address a spring meeting of a 
society called the Farmers' Alliance on one Saturday night. The 
colonel made an address which was not received well. It was 
not vaguely atheistical ; it was not humorously atheistical ; it was 
openly immoral a plea for affinities, an apology for a law grant- 
ing easier divorces. It was hissed by the farmers who had tol- 
VOL. L. 49 



762 Ho w PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

erated his jokes on the Divinity and his amusing caricatures of 
modern Calvinism. Going home with Perseus and Frank Carney, 
his humor was ferocious. The beautiful not even Goethe's 
" Helena " or the march in " Lohengrin " could have made him 
less savage. It was strange that the panaceas recommended by 
the colonel for other people rarely answered for himself. 

The three were walking ; it was a moonlight night. Perseus 
was well satisfied with himself; Frank Carney was moody. They 
were passing the arbor-vitae hedge which separated his mother's 
little house from the road. 

" Do you know, colonel," said Frank, " I have concluded to 
go back to my first love and to get out of your infidel clique, 
and likewise out of politics ? You haven't treated me right ; 
but that makes no difference now. I'm going into the insurance 
business at Oxhart next week, and I shall follow my conscience. 
I'm a Catholic at heart and I'll be one practically, with God's 
help, after this. A speech like the one you made to-night 
ought to make us all religious." 

Perseus laid his hand on Frank's arm ; he saw the colonel's 
ugly look. 

" Who hasn't treated you right ?" The colonel stood still 
and confronted Carney. 

" I said that was neither here nor there." They were stand- 
ing near the new railroad embankment, and Carney paused near 
the edge to answer the colonel. 

" I suppose you mean this as a threat," sneered the colonel. 
" I suppose you think we're afraid you'll go and confess certain 
little things to a priest. But you can't frighten us. If you want 
money, why don't you say so, instead of trying a monkey trick 
like this." 

Frank Carney's face turned ashy. 

" I don't want thieves' money." 

He had no sooner spoken the words than the colonel raised 
his fist. Frank Carney tried to guard himself; the colonel 
struck him, and he fell down the embankment, a descent of 
twenty feet. He lay still among the stones ; then he groaned. 
Perseus and the colonel went to the ladder at the side, and with 
some effort dragged him up to the hedge near his mother's 
house. There was a deep cut on his forehead, and another on 
the back of his head. His face was white. The colonel felt his 
pulse. 

" He can't live," he said coolly. 

The wounded man opened his eyes and his lips in a mute appeal. 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 763 

" He wants a priest," whispered Perseus. " Stay with him, 
while I run to the town ; it's not a half a mile." 

The colonel showed his white teeth. 

" A priest, you fool ! Do you want him to ruin us with 
his silly nonsense? He knows too much. Let him confess to 
us ; we'll keep his secrets." 

" He must have a priest, colonel." 

Again the dying man opened his lips and tried to raise his 
hands. 

The colonel looked at Perseus in his ugliest way. " You're a 
nice person to be talking of priests you that pretend to hate 
them. I can't afford to have a priest come here ; neither can 
you," 

Perseus stood irresolute. He felt that he was killing a soul. 
But he had let the colonel's evil will dominate him so long that 
he could not resist it now. At the same time his last hope 
of all better things seemed to die out as he steeled his heart 
against Frank Carney's whisper, " A priest." 

Carney's voice grew stronger in his agony: "For God's sake, 
get me Father Lovel he's not far my mother. It's all I ask. 
I can't stand this much longer." 

" You hear his confession, if you're so anxious about it," said 
the colonel, mockingly. 

Perseus had become accustomed to wince at that tone. He 
turned away from the agonized face of his friend, and went 
down the road ; and then it seemed to him that his own soul 
went to hell and a devil of despair took possession of his body. 
The colonel soon rejoined him, and spoke in his coolest voice. 

" He's dead. The thing's awkward ; but I just dropped my 
whiskey -flask into his pocket and rolled him down the embank- 
ment. Everybody knows he drank. That will account for it all 
when he's found. We'll say he left us at the Junction. The 
idiot!" 

Nobody cared much, except Frank's old mother. She heard 
that he had died almost at her door. The whiskey-flask part of 
the story was mercifully kept from her. " It accounted for it 
all," as the colonel had predicted. 

But the Honorable Perseus Mahaffy was never quite himself 
again. One night, in the autumn, he made a great speech at 
the closing dinner of the trustees of the County Fair. It was 
said to be the effort of his life. The colonel, who had noticed 
the change in him since the night of Frank Carney's death, 
watched his face intently. At first he sneered at the orator's 



764 How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. [Mar., 

grandiloquence. Then his expression became more serious, and 
when the Honorable Perseus began his peroration and was inter- 
rupted by cheers for the Star of Golung Creek, the colonel no- 
ticed a fixed look in his eyes, and when he attempted to go on 
he stammered. Suddenly the words seemed to freeze on his 
lips ; he looked at the large pyramid of fruit and flowers before 
him as if it were a human being of threatening aspect. The 
colonel jumped up and caught him as he was falling, crying, 
" What's the matter?" 

" I thought I saw his ghost," he whispered. " It has killed 
me; for God's sake, send for a priest!" 

"Nonsense!" returned the colonel. " What good will a 
priest do you? Here, take this brandy." 

Perseus thrust the little glass away from him. 

" A priest ! " he whispered again and again. But the group 
around him thought he was raving. Who among them had ever 
connected him with a priest? The sneer came back to the col- 
onel's face as he made room for the doctor. In less than an 
hour he was in convulsions, and so he died. The doctor gave 
his disease a medical name ; the colonel said to himself that it 
was superstition acting on a weak mind. And his last words 
had been: " Success, gentlemen, is not measured by material 
prosperity. It consists in being true to ideals, in sacrificing all 
aims and objects which are not truth's. That is success in the 
sight of God. All other things named success are illusions." 
Certainly he had found it so; he had paid very dearly for hav- 
ing become a star. 

His daughter did not forget the face of the old woman who 
had pulled her mother's frock at the funeral. She found out her 
name, and made her acquaintance. Poor Mrs. Carney prayed 
for her son as only a mother in doubt about a son's soul can 
pray; and Clara prayed, too, for she had been baptized, though 
she had not as yet made her First Communion. 

" If I only knew how he died ! " Mrs. Carney wailed con- 
stantly ; "if I only knew how he died! I've often thought your 
father might know whether he was prepared or not." 

Clara understood her ; she knew that the mother's thoughts 
were on her son's soul. She could say nothing; she did not 
dream that her father and the colonel knew only too well. 

It happened that just before the summer vacation Clara had 
finished a little picture of the Sacred Heart for Mrs. Carney. 
The chaplain, Father Morgan, was about to go to Cone City, 



1890.] How PERSEUS BECAME A STAR. 765 

and he had promised to take charge of it for her. Clara knew 
that the sight of his genial face would do Mrs. Carney good. 

"Mrs. Carney?" he said, reading the address. "Is that the 
mother of the poor young man who died under such strange 
circumstances last spring ? Ah ! indeed," he continued, musingly, 
in answer to Clara's assent. " I saw him that very afternoon. 
I was hearing confessions in the German church, and he came 
to me just as I was leaving the box. He introduced himself 
and asked for some advice about the examination of his con- 
science. I answered him by taking him back to the box and , 
hearing his confession. Poor young man ! " 

Clara's cheeks glowed, her eyes sparkled. She had found 
out how Frank Carney died ; now she knew that he had passed 
from earth with the cleansing dew of absolution upon him. 
She thanked Father Morgan and ran off to get permission from 
the mother-superior to go with him to Cone City ; she gave 
her reason, and as a great and special favor it was granted. 

" What would you like most of all to have ? " she asked, 
when the old woman had greeted the priest and kissed her. 

" To know that I should see my son again in heaven, to 
know that he died well," she answered, with a tremor in her 
voice Then Clara and Father Morgan made her happy. 

Colonel Brodbeck has begun to have more than a local repu- 
tation. His Life of the Honorable Perseus G. Mahaffy is 
much praised. The description of Perseus' " conversion " from 
Romanism to a serene state of religious indifference is particu- 
larly well done. His sister seldom sees him ; she is in doubt. 
" If I were anything," she says, " I would be a Catholic, like 
Clara that is, if all Catholics were like her. But Perseus' ex- 
ample and the example of so many like him make me pause. 
There's plenty of time." And she says to herself: "I'll send 
the boys to a Catholic school next year, in the hope that they 
will grow up unlike Perseus and the colonel." 

When the Rev. Mr. Schuyler remonstrates with her, she tells 
him that she has tried Calvinism and agnosticism, and found 
them hollow ; what is left to her but the Church ? 

MAURICE FRANCIS EGAN. 



766 Aux CARMELITES. [Mar., 



AUX CARMELITES. 

MADAME LOUISE sleeps well o' nights, 
Night is still at the Carmelites : 

Down at Versailles 
The dancers dance, and the violins play. 

There's a crucifix on the wall at her head, 
And a rush chair set by her pallet bed, 

Stony and hard y 
Sweeter than balm or the spikenard. 

Daughter of France and the King's daughter, 
She hath one poor serge gown to her wear: 

And her little feet 
Shall naked go in the wind and sleet. 

From things that stabbed her cheek to red 
She hath taken her milk-white soul and fled. 

Down at Versailles 
The revels go till the break of day. 

Jesus, King, is her harborer, 

With His wedding-ring on her hand to wear; 

And her love-vows given 
All to the King who is Lord in heaven. 

Sweetly singeth the nightingale 

In his screen of boughs while the moon is pale. 

Sweet, and so sweet, 
That the night-world is faint with it. 

The roses dream, and the lilies wake, 

While the bird of love with his wild heart-break 

Picrceth her dream ; 
Soft she sighs in the faint moon-beam. 

And all night long in the dark by her 
An angel sits with his wings astir. 

And his hidden eyes 
Keeping the secrets of Paradise. 



1890.] DISGUISES OF NATUXE. 767 

Madame Louise sleeps well o' nights, 
Night is still at the Carmelites : 

Down at Versailles 
The dancers dance while the dawn is gray. 

KATHARINE TYNAN. 



DISGUISES OF NATURE. 

WHEN in Natural History we speak of Mimicry, of one 
species of animal imitating another species, and putting on a 
disguise so perfect that it is difficult at first to tell the two 
apart, the expression is misleading, and is owing to the poverty 
of our language to find a better. For this deceptive resemblance 
is not a conscious act, but is supposed by the best authorities 
to have been brought about by a variety of one species having 
originally borne a superficial likeness to another which was 
gifted with special means of protection, and in consequence of 
this fortunate likeness, which had a tendency to be reproduced, 
the former was able to escape from its enemies. The imitation may 
have been very slight in the beginning, but as time went on, in 
the course of ages, it became more and more complete by the 
variety which more closely resembled the species imitated being 
naturally preserved, while those which had not the disguise 
perished. 

It is also quite probable that the resemblance which some 
animals bear to their environment has been brought about in the 
same way ; for this resemblance cannot be explained by the 
direct action of climate, soil, or food. In arctic regions white is 
the color which best protects, by making an animal of the same 
hue as the landscape. Accordingly, we find the polar bear 
white, the only bear that is white. The alpine hare, the 
ermine, and the arctic fox turn white in the snowy season. 
Among birds, the ptarmigan in winter loses its summer plum- 
age, which harmonizes so well with the lichen-covered stones 
among which it hides, and turns white, so very white that , 
one may tramp through a flock lying on the snow without 
perceiving a single bird. If the common raven, which even 
in midwinter goes as far north as any known bird or mam- 
mal, remains black, it is because it feeds on carrion and has 
no need of concealment to get near its prey. The Siberian 



;68 DISGUISES OF NATURE. [Mar., 

sable, like the raven, does not change color in winter, because 
its habits are such that it does not need to become white ; it 
often lives on berries at this season, and is so nimble on the 
trees that it easily catches small birds. The woodchuck ot 
Canada also stays brown in winter But it then burrows in 
river-banks and subsists on fish. We know that the lion, 
by its sandy color, easily conceals itself by crouching on 
the desert sand ; while the stripes of the tiger assimilate well 
with the vertical stems of the bamboo and tall, stiff grass of the 
jungle. Almost all the other animals of the cat tribe frequent 
trees, and these have often spotted skins, which help to blend 
them with the background of foliage. A marked exception is 
the puma, whose ashy-brown fur, the color of bark, and its habit 
of clinging very closely to a limb as it waits for its prey to pass 
underneath, make it uncommonly hard to distinguish. It might 
be thought that the conspicuous stripes of the zebra, in a coun- 
try abounding with lions and leopards, would be a danger to it. 
But zebras go in herds, and are so wary and swift that in the 
day-time they have little to fear. It is at dusk, when they go to 
drink, that they are most exposed. But Mr. Francis Galton, 
who has studied this animal in its native haunts, declares that in 
the twilight the zebra's black and white stripes blend so well 
into a grayish tint that at this hour it is not easy to be 
seen at a short distance. Even an animal as big as a giraffe is 
said by travellers to be admirably concealed by its form and 
color when standing perfectly still among the dead trees often 
found on the outskirts of the groves where it feeds. Its spots, 
its long neck, the peculiar shape of its head and horns appear 
all together so like broken branches that even the natives have 
been known to mistake a tree for a giraffe and a giraffe for a tree. 
In regard to the coloring of birds, the better opinion is that 
the dull colors of the female have been acquired for protection 
while sitting on the nest. To this rule there are exceptions, 
as the kingfishers, woodpeckers, toucans, parrots, starlings, and 
houguests, in which both sexes are equally conspicuous. But 
these birds either nest in holes, or build dome-shaped nests 
which hide the sitting bird. In the very few curious cases 
* where the female is actually more conspicuously colored than the 
male, it is found that the relation of the sexes in regard to 
nesting is reversed the male bird sitting on the eggs, while the 
more attractive but pugnacious female stands exposed to the 
enemy's eye. Such are the dotterel, an Australian creeper, 
and one or two others. 



1890.] DISGUISES OF NATURE. 769 

In the tropics, where leaves are always green, we find whole 
groups of birds whose feathers are green; while many tree- 
snakes in that par* of the world, comprising both harmless and 
venomous genera, are usually of a beautiful green color, and so 
perfectly does it conceal them that their prey comes within 
easy reach unconscious of danger. The only true arboreal snake 
whose color is seldom green is the genus Dipsas, which takes 
various shades, black, brown, olive. But the snakes of this 
genus are all nocturnal, and by day hide in holes, so that a 
green disguise would serve them no useful purpose. Professor 
Cope, speaking of mimetic analogy, and the sandy hue of rep- 
tiles in the deserts, says : " There is also a tendency to produce 
spiny forms in such places; witness . . . the cerastes of the 
Sahara . . . and horned rattlesnake of Southwestern America. 
The vegetation of every order, we are also informed, is in these 
situations extremely liable to produce spines and thorns." 

Among the smaller marine animals, many are protected by 
being so transparent as to be almost invisible, those that are 
brightly colored generally having a special protection, either in 
stinging tentacles or in a hard crust like the star-fish. In some 
rare cases, as in the chameleon, a lizard-like animal which 
turns from dull-white to a variety of tints in harmony with sur- 
rounding objects, the change of color is brought about by a re- 
flex action dependent on sensation ; and it has been discovered 
that this curious power is due to several layers of movable pig- 
ment cells buried deep under the skin, which, when the helpless 
creature sees an enemy, are capable, through the emotion of 
fear, of being pushed up .to the surface. 

There is a shrimp called the chameleon shrimp which has 
the same power of taking a protective tint, seemingly at will. 
It is of a sandy hue when swimming over a sandy bottom, but 
as soon as it gets among sea-weed it changes to green. And 
experiment shows that, if deprived of sight, this shrimp, 
not knowing the color of its surroundings, will not change 
color. The colors of most fishes with Slack or brownish 
backs and white bellies have very likely been acquired 
for concealment. When we look down on the dark back of a 
fish it is not easily perceived, while an enemy looking toward it 
from below would find its white belly equally hard to distin- 
guish against the light of the sky. The sea-horse (hippo- 
campus) of Australia often has long, foliaceous appendages, 
uncommonly like sea-grass, growing from it, and it is of a 
beautiful red hue. Frequenting, as it does, marine vegetation of 



7/0 DISGUISES OF NATURE. [Mar., 

the same color, it is almost impossible to discover it until it 
moves. 

Sometimes a conspicuous color adds to aft animal's safety. 
Perhaps the best example of this is the skunk. Its bushy 
white tail, curled well up over its black and white body, is a 
signal to attract attention. In the dusk this white signal is 
pretty sure to be seen, and prevents the skunk, a bold, presum- 
ing creature, from being pounced upon by any of the night- 
prowling carnivora, who turn away the moment they recognize it. 
In the opinion of Mr. Belt, the light of the glow-worm and 
fire fly at least in Central America is a sign to night-flying 
insectivorous birds that they are not eatable ; their phosphores- 
cent light is a warning signal. The same naturalist tells of a 
frog in Nicaragua, colored red and blue, which fearlessly hops 
about in the day-time ; it has perfect faith in its warning color ; 
no snake or bird will touch it, for it is disgusting to the taste, 
and the sooner it is recognized the better. But it is in the in- 
sect world that adaptation of an animal to its environment is 
most fully developed. Mr. Bates, in his interesting book, Na- 
turalist on the Amazons, tells of a long- horned beetle which 
is found only on rough-barked trees. It is very abundant, but 
so closely does it resemble the bark that until it moves it is 
absolutely invisible. The large, wingless stick insects of the 
Moluccas dangle in bunches from the shrubs, and are so like 
sticks that the eye alone cannot distinguish the dead twigs from 
the living insects. Mr. Wallace had to touch them in order to 
tell the twigs from the insects. Mr. Belt relates that he once 
saw a green, leaf-like locust remain apparently dead in the midst 
of a host of fierce, insectivorous ants, which swarmed over it 
without discovering that it was a locust and not a leaf. Had the 
locust moved it would have been quickly devoured, either by 
the ants, or by the small, rapacious birds that everywhere ac- 
company them. He adds: "So fixed was its instinctive knowl- 
edge that its safety depended on its immovability that it allbwed 
me to pick it up and replace it among the ants without making 
a single effort to escape. This species closely resembles a green 
leaf." 

Let us now speak of what we may call mimicry proper a 
form of protective resemblance where one species of animal 
appears in a disguise so like another species as to be mistaken for 
it, not only by man, but by birds and insects. In Central 
America there is a longicorn beetle, covered with long brown 
and black hairs, and exceedingly like some of the hairy cater- 



1890.] DISGUISES OF NATURE. 771 

pillars. This beetle, instead of hiding like other closely-allied spe- 
cies, rests exposed on the bushes, its antennae concealed against its 
body, and it is so like a caterpillar that at first you are pretty 
sure to be deceived. Now, insect-eating birds will not eat hairy 
caterpillars, and here this beetle finds its safety. In the same 
region is a small spider which resembles a stinging ant, and so 
perfect is the imitation that it was not until Mr. Belt had killed 
one that he discovered it was really a spider, and that there 
was no danger of being stung. Unlike other spiders, this little 
creature holds up its two fore-legs like antennas, and moves them 
about exactly as an ant does. Small birds, which devour other 
spiders, take it for a stinging ant and leave it alone. 

In Brazil the Heliconidae butterflies, which most birds will 
not touch on account of their nasty odor and taste, are closely 
mimicked by another kind of butterfly and by moths. Mr. Belt 
watched a pair of birds catching butterflies for their young, and 
although the heliconidae swarmed around them and moved about 
with a lazy flight, the birds did not bring one to their nest. In 
the same region is another genus, the Leptalis, one species of 
which so adroitly mimics the heliconidae in form, color, and mode 
of flight that only a careful examination revealed to Mr. Belt 
the essential differences. This species of leptalis has not the 
sickening odor and taste of the heliconidse ; but the birds do not 
know it, and consequently avoid them. A very curious case of 
mimicry is that of a large caterpillar of Brazil, which so closely 
imitates a poisonous viper that Mr. Bates was startled when he 
saw one draw itself backward as if to strike.. 

There is in South Africa an egg-eating snake which has 
neither fangs nor teeth, but is uncommonly like the dangerous 
adder, Clothos Atropos, and when alarmed this harmless reptile 
flattens out its ugly head and darts toward you with the adder's 
hiss. Let us here observe that in the opinion of Mr. Wallace 
the theory of warning coloration has thrown light on the much- 
disputed question of the use of the rattle of the rattlesnake. 
This snake, which is the most specialized and stands at the head 
of the order, is sluggish, not hard to kill, and haunts sunny, 
rocky places, where protective coloration is useful to save it from 
snake-eating birds and other enemies. But other snakes, harm- 
less species, equally well protected by color, frequent the same 
spots, where sharp-eyed buzzards do now and then spy them 
out. Here the rattlesnake finds its rattle useful. 

Speaking of rattlesnakes, we may add although it has noth- 
ipig to do with mimicry that in the structure of the end of 



772 DISGUISES OF NATURE. [Mar., 

the tail of harmless snakes we discover a horny cap cover- 
ing the terminal vertebrae, and this is doubtless the first button 
of the rattle which in the perfected rattlesnake is developed into 
several buttons or joints. Nearly all the larger harmless snakes, 
when excited, violently shake the end of the tail, which frequent 
vibration tends to determine an increase of nutritive fluid, or, as 
it is expressed, to localize growth-nutrition, and in the rattle- 
snake this finally results in new grade-structure, a repetition of 
the original button possessed by the non-venomous snakes. The 
best case of mimicry among mammals is that of the Cladobates 
of the Malay archipelago. Several species of this genus bear a 
close resemblance to the innocent fruit-eating squirrels; they have 
the same shape, same bushy tail and colors. Here the likeness 
enables the cladobates to approach the insects and little birds on 
which it feeds. The Hyaena-dog of Africa, a weak animal, is very 
like a hyena, and only for this it would probably soon become 
extinct. 

Plants seldom need to mimic other plants. Their safety lies 
either in their spines, hairy coverings, or poisonous secretions. 
There are, however, . a few cases of true protective resemblance. 
The most remarkable is that of the "stone Mesembryanthemum " 
of the Cape of Good Hope, whose form and color are the very 
same as the stones among which it grows ; and botanists believe 
that this perfect imitation has enabled it to escape the notice of 
cattle and wild herbivorous animals, for it is a juicy little plant 

The "Rosary bean" of the tropics has a pod which curls up 
and splits wide open, on the tree, thus showing its brilliant scar- 
let seeds to the birds, who mistake it for another seed they 
dearly love. But the seeds of the " rosary bean " are hard and 
indigestible, so that the birds, after swallowing them, pass them 
through their bodies undigested, and by this deception the shrub 
gets widely planted over the country. 

The Ajuga Ophrydis of South Africa strikingly resembles an 
orchid. This seems to be a means of attracting insects to fertil- 
ize it, in the absence of enough nectar in the flower itself. 

It is interesting to know that in the great majority of cases 
of mimicry, the mimickers and the mimicked inhabit the same 
country and are generally found together on the same spot. 
The mimicking species are, however, as a rule, few in number ; 
in the case of the leptalis being only one to a thousand of the 
butterflies it resembles, so that there is hardly a possibility of its 
being found out by its enemies. It should also be .said that 
mimicry, at least among insects, is confined almost wholly to 



1890.] DISGUISES OF NATURE. 773 

females, who need to be protected much more than the males. 
Insects pair only once in their brief lives, and the prolonged ex- 
istence of the male is unnecessary. 

If we often see great varieties of color among domesticated 
animals, as in our horses, dogs, cattle, poultry, it is because man 
protects them and attends to all their wants ; it does not matter 
to the animal's safety what its color may be. But in wild animals 
color and markings are, as a rule, constant ; for here nature 
selects what best protects. 

We may, therefore, take it as quite probable that the slight 
original tendency of one variety of a wild species to resemble 
its environment, or to assume a warning color, or to mimic an- 
other species gifted with some special means of protection, is the 
foundation of all those imitations and colorings which play so im- 
portant a part in nature. What were likely the first steps in the 
process of imitation in the case of the leptalis will suffice for 
all other cases. The heliconidae butterflies, which one species of 
this genus mimics, constitute a group of high antiquity, which in 
the course of ages has become more and more specialized, until 
it is now a dominant group in tropical America. But when the 
first heliconidae sprang from some ancestral form, whose juices, 
owing to its food, were distasteful to insect-eating animals, they 
were, perhaps, not very unlike other butterflies in pattern or 
color. They would at that distant epoch be often attacked by 
enemies, and even if these refused to swallow them, they would 
no doubt be often fatally hurt. Hence arose the need of some 
conspicuous mark to distinguish them and to let butterfly-eaters 
know that they were not eatable ; and every variation in shape 
or tint, which tended ever so little toward this distinctive 
necessary mark, nature preserved and stored up, until in time 
these butterflies appeared in most unmistakable colors their long, 
narrow wings banded with black, yellow, and red, unlike the 
colors of all other families of butterflies in Brazil, which distinctive, 
warning coloration caused them to be immediately recognized. 
From this time forth they were free from attack. And now they 
grew lazy, flew very slowly, and increased abundantly. 

But' during the early stages of this development some variety 
of a species belonging to the genus leptalis, inhabiting the same 
region, happened to be sufficiently like the heliconidae as to be 
now and then mistaken for them. These happy fellows naturally 
survived, while their less fortunate companions were eaten up. 
The descendants of these survivors, who were superficially still 
more like the heliconidae, again survived ; the mimicry becoming 



774 DISGUISES OF NATURE. [Mar., 

more successful with each succeeding generation for nothing 
succeeds like success until finally it could hardly be improved 
upon. In the meanwhile the heliconidae protected always by their 
bad taste and odor diverged into different species, all having 
conspicuous, warning tints; and it is interesting to know that, 
as they so diverged, the mimicking leptalis would occasionally be 
able to follow them with similar conspicuous variations ; a pro- 
cess which, Mr. Bates tells us, is going on to-day in the Ama- 
zon valley. 

The reason why mimicking forms are scarce is supposed to be 
the ever-increasing acuteness of enemies, which have again and 
again detected the imposture, and exterminated a feeble group 
before it had a chance to become further modified. The result 
of this growing acuteness, especially on the part of insect-eating 
birds, has been that those mimicking insects which have been 
able to survive have in the end put on such an uncommonly 
clever disguise that their shrewdest enemy is not shrewd enough 
to detect them. 

It seems to be, as Mr. Bates says, " a palpably intentional 
likeness that is perfectly staggering." Indeed, it is so perfect 
that it deceives the very insects themselves. As we have ob- 
served, the female, as a rule, alone mimics. But the male but- 
terfly of the mimicking leptalis has been seen to follow a female 
of the species mimicked until, suddenly aware of his mistake, he 
has turned away. 

It seems hard to believe that these wonderful resemblances 
may have been brought about by the accumulation of slight, 
useful variations. But we must ever bear in mind the great 
amount of individual variability which exists in all organisms 
(this inherent, surely God-planned tendency to variation having 
enabled organic life to put itself in harmony with new conditions), 
and that it has taken, perhaps, thousands of centuries to make 
the disguises as perfect as they are. Accurate comparisons and 
measurements demonstrating the large amount of variability in 
organisms may be found in a work by Professor J. A. Allen, 
late of Harvard University, to whom naturalists are much in- 
debted. 

WILLIAM SETON. 






1890.] THE DREAM OF PILATE' s WIFE. 775 



THE DREAM OF PILATE'S WIFE. 



I SAW the great sky open down all its deeps of blue, 

I saw the hosts of heaven come thronging swiftly through, 

And cherubim and seraphim float softly into view. 

They met, they closed together, and upward held their wings, 
And arm to arm they waited with gentle flutterings, 
Till one expanse of glory shone widely on all things. 

Then down the wavering pathway, a sea of flaming snow, 
I saw a human Presence in silent anguish go 
Great beams crossed on His shoulders, blood from His flesh did 
flow. 

He walked alone and downcast, weighed with a whole world's 

shame ; 
He turned not and He spoke not, but through the great white 

flame 
Adown the angels' pinions in grief and silence cane, 

Yet faltered not, or changed not, with step nor slow nor fleet 
He crossed the* azure causeway, where earth and heaven meet, 
Till on our world of turmoil He pressed His bleeding feet. 

And then dark shadows gathered and peals of thunder broke ; 
The glory of the heavens was veiled with hanging smoke ; 
Earth's rocks were rent asunder, earth's dead arose and spoke. 

Far in the murky darkness the shadow of the tree 
I saw that Being carry stood upward, one of three ; 

A shriek of mortal anguish came ringing up to me. 

. 

Then all was still; the darkness pressed upward over all, 
And sun and sky were hidden and earth as in a pall, 
And all the spirits vanished within heaven's closed wall. 

My lord ! my lord ! I charge thee, have naught to do with 

Him 

Who walked the flaming pathway upheld by cherubim, 
And bore the tree of sorrow into the shadows dim. 



7/6 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y GO VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. [Mar. 

Love, of its strange foreknowledge, my dream interpreteth 
Oh ! let it not be vainly ! If He must die the death, 
Keep thou thy hands blood- guiltless of Him of Nazareth! 

MARGARET H. LAWLESS. 

Toledo, O. 



A REVOLUTIONARY GOVERNOR AND HIS FAMILY. 

AMIDST a number of old letters, tender and practical, there 
is one which, in spite of torn parchment, faded ink, and the 
mould of more than a hundred years, still exhales a breath of 
romance. The writer, afterwards prominent socially and politically 
in the history of Maryland, then a youth of scarcely more than 
twenty years of age, had nothing but his pleasing address and 
distinguished name to recommend him to the favor of Miss Mary 
Digges, only child of Ignatius Digges, Esq., of Melwood Park. 

Thomas Sim Lee was descended from a Norman family 
established in England at the Conquest ; in America it is well 
known through the patriotism of Richard Henry Lee, Light-horse 
Harry, and Robert Lee of Arlington. In England the Lees 
ranked among the gentry. As early as 1192 Lionel Lee, with 
his company of gentlemen cavaliers, accompanied Richard Cceur- 
de-Lion in the third Crusade, and was created Earl of Litchfield 
for his gallant conduct at the siege of Acre. The pioneer of the 
family in America was Richard Lee, a cavalier from Shropshire, 
who, " some time in the reign of Charles I. went over to the 
colony of Virginia as secretary and one of the King's Privy 
Council. He and Sir William Berkeley kept the colony to its 
allegiance during the civil war between Charles I. and Cromwell. 
While Charles II. was at Breda, Richard Lee went over and had 
a private conference with him in regard to the colony. On his 
return he and Berkeley succeeded in having Charles II. pro- 
claimed King of England, France, Scotland, Ireland, and Virginia. 
In gratitude for his loyalty, on the Restoration Charles ordered 
the arms of Virginia to be added to those of England." 

Philip Lee, the second son of this gentleman, crossed over 
into Maryland, and became the founder of that branch of the 
family known as the Maryland Lees. He was the grandfather of 
Thomas Sim Lee, the young aspirant to the hand of Miss Digges 
and future governor of Maryland. 

Mr. Digges, a wealthy proprietor of Prince George County, 



. 



1 890.] A RE VOL UT10NAR Y GO VERNOR AND HlS FA MIL Y. 777 

Maryland, was the owner of a surJbrb estate and countless slaves, 
and lived en prince among the Southern gentry of the period. 
His magnificent household was modelled upon those of England. 
Like the patroons of New Amsterdam, he was all-powerful with 
his numerous dependents, to whom he administered justice. It 
is not surprising that young Lee, the favored lover of his " dear 
Molly," without fortune or patrimony, should have been frowned 
upon by her father. To add to their difficulties, Mr. Digges was 
an ardent Catholic, a friend of Lord Baltimore, and bitterly op- 
posed to the union of his daughter with one not of the same 
faith. He obtained from the young lady a promise not to marry 
without his consent; there ensued, in consequence, a stormy and 
fruitless courtship. 

In the meantime, Sir Robert Eaton, governor of the colony 
of Maryland, and guardian of Lee, died. The young fellow there- 
upon threw up the office (clerk of Frederick County) which he 
had inherited from his father, and sailed for England, in the 
hope of easing his heart and mending his fortunes. Of his career 
there little is known save the fact that he played whist at Bath 
with my Lord Chesterfield. Through the influence of his uncle, 
Mr. Russell, an English merchant, he obtained a position in the 
East India Company, a guarantee of wealth in those days. The 
prospect of a still more distant separation from the object of his 
affections, however, made him hesitate, though the future ap- 
peared golden. He requested leave to defer his answer, and set 
sail for America, determined to try his fortune once more with 
Miss Digges. 

To the consternation of the household, he arrived at Melwood 
and was again refused. In his perturbation, and somewhat ap- 
palled, no doubt, by the reproaches of the angry father, he was 
surprised into a falsehood, of which he immediately repents in the 
letter alluded to above. The note is written from the county 
town of Melwood Park. The handwriting is firm and clear in 
spite* of the mental excitement under which he must have written. 
He carefully reproduced his letter before despatching it, and 
added in his copy a memorandum of the date of its deliver- 
ance. It is from this copy that? we quote the following: 



" UPPER MARLBORO, August 3rd, 1771. 
" SIR, 

' I have without design told you an untruth, and I think 
it's incumbent on me to acknowledge it that all things may be 
placed in a proper light. 

VOL. L. 50 



778 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND His FA MIL Y. [Mar. , 

" I want to take no advantage by deceiving you, and I sin- 
cerely wish that all who have interested themselves in the affairs 
of your Daughter and myself hacT the same candor. This Blun- 
der which I made yesterday has given me a great deal of uneasi- 
ness, and I would willingly have rectified it immediately, but your 
refusing your consent for me to Marry Miss Digges, and the 
great hurry you were in to leave me, actually threw me into 
such confusion that I was deprived of utterance. You may 
recollect that you told me Miss Digges had made and repeated 
a promise never to Marry without your consent. Instead of my 
observing that she had told me of her having made such a 
promise, I said I had never asked her to marry me against your 
consent. I do now solemnly declare that I had no premeditated 
design of saying those words. No ! it's what my soul abhors ! 
I hope this assertion of mine will gain credit with you when I 
ingenuously confess that I have applied and proposed your 
daughter to Marry me without your consent ; in justice to her, 
I now inform you that she has repeatedly and determinately 

refused "I am, Sir, Yr. Hble. Servant, 

"THO. SIM LEE. 

"The original of this copy was sent to Mr. Digges the 5th 
August, 1771." 

Whether this ingenuous confession or the force of true love 
finally overcame the father's heart, history saith not. Lee was 
sent for, and having declared " in the most solemn and sacred 
manner, as soon as I shall be married to my Dearest Molly, 
. . . I will make my will and order and direct that in case of 
my Death in the minority of my children, they shall be educated 
in the faith of their Mother," the lovers were united. Mr. 
Digges presented them to each other, saying : " Mary will not 
marry without my consent. I cannot force her to marry 
another. Therefore, you may have her." * 

The .engagement was short. They were married on the 27th 
of October, 1771, just two months after the repentant letter. 

Many letters remain in the handwriting of Thomas Sim Lee, 
but there are only a few fragments from Mrs. Lee. In one of 
these her mind appears to be divided between the children's 
wardrobe and replying to the reproaches of her husband for not 
writing more frequently during his enforced absence : 

" You that have no such object continually in yr. sight as a 
poor sick child, and nothing to doe but to Dress yr. self & visit the 



1 890.] A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. 779 

Ladies in the afternoons or Receive visits, ought not to think 
much of 2 or 3 Letters to any one, don't get any Nankeen 
for N.acy [Ignatius], if you have any money Left that you 
intend to Lay out for him, Let it be in Linen what his shirts 
was made of is so bad that they are all to piecis alredy." 

Lee was made governor of Maryland in 17.79, at the age of 
thirty-four, and was re-elected three times by the legislature. He 
declined the last nomination, however, in compliance with his 
wife's wishes. The .season at Annapolis was a heavy drain upon 
-their income, which was royally spent despite the Lee motto : 
Non incautus futuri. Their fortunes suffered by contact with 
politics ; however, Nous avons change tout cela. 

After the Revolution Governor Lee was unanimously elected 
to the Senate from Maryland. He declined this office, as he did 
the appointment of commissioner of the City of Washington, 
offered to him by -the first President. He also subsequently re- 
fused to be one of the framers of the Constitution, and steadily 
declined all other offices. He was greatly esteemed by General 
Washington, who placed in him the utmost confidence. 

At the opening of the war between the colonies and Eng- 
land Governor Lee embraced the cause of liberty with ardor. He 
proved an able, energetic officer during that trying time, and organ- 
ized a fine band of militia to protect the State from the British, who 
were endeavoring to land from the Chesapeake. At the close 
of the war General Washington, in a very flattering letter ex- 
pressing a " high sense of the powerful aid which I have received 
from the State of Maryland, in complying with every request 
from the executive of it," informs Governor Lee of the sur- 
render of Lord Cornwallis, and consigns to his care half of the 
prisoners taken thereby. This letter is one of several still in the 
possession of his descendants. 

Mrs. Lee also united in her husband's zeal for the cause. 
To her General Washington also wrote, acknowledging with his- 
usual grace "the patriotic exertions of the Ladies of Maryland.' 

" PASSAIC FALLS, Oct. nth, 1780. 
" MADAM, 

" I am honored with your letter of the 27th of September, 
and cannot forbear taking the earliest moment to express the 
high sense I entertain of the patriotic exertions of the Ladies of 
Maryland in *favor of the army. 

" In answer to your enquiry respecting the disposal of the 
Gratuity, I must take the liberty to observe that it appears to 



780 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. [Mar. , 

me, the money which has been or may be collected, cannot 
be expended in so eligible and beneficial a manner, as in pur- 
chase of shirts & stocks (black) for the use bf the troops in 
the Southern army. 

" The polite offer you are pleased to make of your further 
assistance in the execution of this liberal design & the gen- 
erous disposition of the Ladies insure me of its success, and 
cannot -fail to entitle both yourself and them to the warmest 
gratitude of those who are the objects of it. 

" I have the honor to be, Madam, 

"With the highest respect & regard, 

"Yr. most obed't & H. Ser't, 

"GEO. WASHINGTON. 
" Mrs. Lee." 

The sympathy which Governor Lee felt for the Colonies in 
their struggle estranged from him many friends and relatives 
who remained loyal to King George. With the eminent excep- 
tion of Charles Carroll of Carrollton, Governor Lee was almost 
the only man of prominence in Maryland who declared himself 
openly againzt the British. His uncle, Richard Lee, the princely 
owner of Blenheim, Maryland, rebuked him severely for his 
political sentiments. When the Colonial successes became more 
assured, however, Mr. Lee gladly availed himself of his distin- 
guished nephew's influence, and applied for a guard of soldiers 
to protect his estate, whither they were promptly despatched. 

It is not surprising that the proprietor of Blenheim should 
have been anxious for the preservation of his manor. It has been 
described as one of the handsomest country-seats of Maryland 
or Virginia. The bricks employed in its construction were im- 
ported from England, as were also the superbly carved stair- 
case and wainscoting. The splendors of Blenheim drew visitors 
from far and near, and the renowned wood-work suffered much 
from their mutilations. Unfortunately, this superb house was 
burned with all its treasures. A second mansion, which is said 
to be of interest, though not so beautiful as the former, was 
built upon the same site. 

It may be of interest to mention here that Blenheim, 
England, the country-seat of the Duke of Marlborough, was 
formerly tenanted by Sir Henry Lee. He was the keeper of 
the royal domain of Woodstock during the time of Charles I. 
and his son, whom the fair Alice Lee aided in his flight from the 
Roundheads. Maryborough's palace of Blenheim has superseded 






1 8 90. ] A RE VOL UTIONAR Y GO VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. 781 

the interesting old pile, the last of whose towers was destroyed 
by gunpowder in obedience to the commands of his indefati- 
gable duchess. 

A romantic story is told of Richard Lee's son, Philip Lee, 
who during a sojourn in England had unwittingly won the heart 
of his cousin, Miss Russell. Unconscious of the young lady's 
affection, he started to make the conventional "grand tour," and 
returned from his travels to find her dangerously ill. The phy- 
sician having explained that a return to health would be rapid 
had she the will to recover, her anxious parents entreated Philip to 
find out the secret that stood in the way of her convalescence. 
He accordingly catechised the sick girl gently and with much 
sympathy. At length he ventured to inquire if she were brood- 
ing over some love affair, the hero of which might not be 
acceptable to her parents, assuring her warmly that, if such were 
the case, he was convinced it might be brought to a happy 
conclusion. Miss Russell blushed and replied that she was 
troubled by nothing of the kind. His questions soon pressed so 
closely that the poor girl, having no longer the strength to 
resist, exclaimed in despair : " If you will know the truth, .Phil, 
then, to use the words of Nathan, ' Thou art the man.' " This 
revelation was somewhat startling to the eager interlocutor, and 
the denoument natural. Miss Russell regained her health and 
spirits and became Mrs. Philip Lee, of Blenheim. 

But to return to Governor Lee. Some years after his mar- 
riage he moved to Western Maryland, where land was thought 
more fertile than on the Eastern Shore, and was to be had at 
a much lower rate. In the depth of winter he set out to Fred- 
erick Town, and sleighed thence with his little sons for fifteen 
miles until he reached Needwood Forest, the home of Parson 
Booth. According to a tradition in the family, the fences were 
entirely buried and the whole landscape was one vast mantle of 
snow. Mr. Booth, a clergyman of the Church of England, owned 
some two thousand acres of forest land, upon which he had built 
himself a small house. Little is known of him except that he 
was of the family of Lord Delamere, and appeared suddenly in 
the wilds of Maryland, leaving in England a wife and six sons, 
five of whom were afterwards drowned on their way to America. 
His household at Needwood consisted of two maiden ladies, some 
students, and an innumerable retinue of cats. Governor Lee, on 
his arrival, was greeted by the sight of this feline multitude 
dining luxuriously from a horse-trough filled with milk. Farmers 
long preserved their memory with gratitude, for during their 



782 A RE VOLUJIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND His FAMIL y. [Mar., 

prosperous reign x>f many years barn rats were an unknown 
quantity. 

Mr. Booth had established a flourishing school at Needwood, 
which was for some time one of the foremost places of instruc- 
tion in the South. Southern gentlemen of the period who were 
not educated abroad or by tutors were sent to Needwood Forest. 
They came on horseback from the most remote districts. Mr Alls- 
ton, who married the charming and unfortunate daughter of Aaron 
Burr, studied here, having ridden all the way from Charleston. 
Judge Purviance, of Baltimore, Judge Bushrod Washington, nephew 
of General Washington, and many other eminent men were edu- 
cated by the English parson. 

Governor Lee purchased the entire property, and Mr. Booth, 
removing still further west, crossed the mountain into Washing- 
ton County. In addition to the estate of Parson Booth, Gover- 
nor Lee bought other tracts of land in the same neighborhood 
from various Scotch and English syndicates, uniting them under 
the name of Needwood Forest. Among his purchases was a 
fertile piece of land running to the Potomac, rejoicing in the 
name of " Merryland Tract." The origin of this title, accord- 
ing to popular theory, is due to the fact that the land once 
belonged to a merry set of people, whose gay lives were 
thus deemed worthy of record. It is more probable, however, 
that the surveyors, whose fancy occasionally ran riot in the be- 
stowing of names on the vast lands they surveyed, are account- 
able for the title. Another tract belonging to Governor Lee 
still bears the name of "The Lost Pen and Ink," the gentle- 
men of the survey, having parted with their writing materials, 
chose thus to perpetuate the memory of their misfortune. 

On the close of his official life Governor Lee established 
his winter home in Georgetown, where his home was for a long 
time the headquarters of the Federal party. He, however, de- 
voted the greater part of the year to his Needwood farm, re- 
turning to Georgetown late in the fall. His daughter says in a 
letter to Mrs. Quincy : " We shall not leave Needwood until 
late in November. My father, who farms for revenue as well as 
amusement, finds it requisite to remain until he disposes of the 
fruits of his industry." 

Governor Lee tore down the house of Parson Booth and 
built himself a simple country house in the style of an English 
cottage. His estate lay at the foot of the Blue Ridge in Middle- 
town valley, one of the most beautiful and fertile valleys of 
Maryland. This valley and the surrounding country, in addition 



I 890.] A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. 783 

to their beauty and fertility, have become famous since the late 
war. Harper's Ferry, noted alike for the grandeur of its scenery 
and for the capture of John Brown, is within a few miles of 
Needwood, while to the north, at a short distance, lies Cramp- 
ton's Gap, a pass held by McClellan. The latter established his 
headquarters near the home of Governor Lee, and was there fre- 
quently entertained during his occupation of the valley. Still 
further to the north of Needwood rises the great mas^ of South 
Mountain, over which passes the western high-road disputed so 
fiercely by the troops of the rival armies until the bloody battle 
of Antietam was fought, about a mile from the summit of the 
mountain. For the purposes of social life, however, Needwood 
was but poorly equipped. Frederick, the nearest town, was fif- 
teen miles away. Mr. Clerc-Lee, a gentleman greatly attached 
to the governor, was the only person within several miles. He 
had bought land adjoining Needwood, and had built himself a 
house solely for the purpose of being near Governor Lee. The 
frequent and protracted absences of the latter, however, finally 
discouraged his friend, who, finding forest life rather dreary, re- 
turned with his family to the more inspiriting scenes of Charles 
County, then a fashionable part of Maryland. The departure of 
this* family left Governor Lee and his household completely 
isolated. 

Governor Lee now turned his whole attention to farming, and 
took great pride in his lands, which became famous for their 
fertility. Writing to his daughter, Miss Eliza Lee, then married 
and living in Wilmington, he says : " Some ladies and gentle- 
men came from Baltimore yesterday to see Needwood farm. 
Can you boast of one in Delaware that possesses such attrac- 
tions ? . . . My wheat stands higher than the fences, which, 
as you know, are not low, and my crop has a beautiful health 
and regular appearance which is probably not exceeded by any 
in the State." 

For years after Governor Lee's death Needwood was still 
noted. We find in an old newspaper a letter from a corre- 
spondent who had been stopping near there, in which he re- 
marks : " The descendants of Governor Lee form a circle as re- 
markable for refinement and cultivation as their lands are famous 
for productiveness and fertility." 

The politician had become so absorbed in the farmer that 
Governor Lee's heart was divided between patriotism and the 
fluctuations of the agricultural market. During the war of 1812 
he appears to be depressed, but hastens to add : " The pros- 



784 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y GO VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL ) ". [Mar. , 

pect of Peace, or even a good market for Flour and Beef, would 
cheer me"; and again: "We expect to hear of Peace every 
day, and a high price for everything that should be high." 

He owned, a fine body of slaves, two hundred in all, the 
majority of whom were well-trained laborers. He was attached 
to many of them, though some "perplexed and plagued him." 
In a letter he describes the death of one Robin, who, after a 
long illness, "went off like the snuff of an exhausted candle. 
He never took a dose of Physick during the course of a long 
life. 'When I told him that a doctor should be called, he warmly 
objected, declaring his belief that I knew as well as the doctor 
what was proper for him, from which we may clearly infer 
that he had not a greater reliance upon the skill of the Fac- 
ulty than Mr. Madison seems to have," 

Though no longer active in politics, Governor Lee still fol- 
lowed with interest the movements of the Federal party, of 
which he had formerly been a prominent member. In the fall 
of 1812 he congratulates himself upon the prospect of the 
county becoming Federal ; " a great meeting is soon to take 
place, at which arrangements will be made, I presume, to make 
the wished-for change. Of two evils it seems best to take the 
least. Madison and the Jefferson crew ought in all events to 
be discarded ; but Clinton, this De Witt Clinton, I like not that 
Jacobinical fellow." 

Mrs. Lee died in 1805, and was sincerely mourned by her 
husband. He has written the following inscription in a volume 
of Thomas a Kempis, given to his wife by Prince Gallitzin, the 
Russian convert to Catholicity, known throughout this country by 
the humble name of Father Smith. "The gift of the Reverend 
Mr. Smith to Mary Lee, 1788, passed by the ever-to-be-lamented 
death of my beloved wife to me, her inconsolable Husband, Thos. 
S. Lee." He had joined the Catholic Church some years be- 
fore his wife's death, having once made a vow so to do when 
she was dangerously ill. As a tribute to the memory of her 
who had been his intelligent and faithful companion during more 
than thirty yeaK of married life, Governor Lee built a church 
which he named St. Mary's, " in honor of my dearly loved 
wife, your sainted mother." This building remained in pos- 
session of the family until 1829. The bishops assembled 
in Baltimore then decided that the titles of all churches should 
be vested in the diocesan, on account of a great scan- 
dal caused by troubles in New Orleans. The owners of the 
cathedral there, having threatened to use it for other pur- 






1 890.] A RE VOL U TIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND HlS FAMIL Y. 785 

poses, brought the matter before the courts, where the famous 
lawsuit was at length decided against them, 1842. 

After the marriage of his eldest daughter, Miss Eliza Lee, 
who had been his friend and companion always, but more par- 
ticularly since the death of his wife, Governor Lee remained 
closely at Needwood, which he was loath to leave even for 
short visits to his daughter and her family, urging, in one let- 
ter, as a sufficient regret, the uncomfortable and unsuitable 
fashions of the period. " Golden will make my clothes fashion- 
able, do or say as I may, but I cannot wear them high in 
the neck, short- waisted, and flying off at the sides." Governor 
Lee died in 1819, at the age of seventy- four, leaving his 
estate to be divided equally between his children. There, are 
now four country-seats within the radius of one mile bearing 
the name of Needwood. Three of these belong to his descend- 
ants, who at present own about fifteen hundred acres of the 
original three thousand. The old homestead built by Governor 
Lee has passed into other hands. Unfortunately, there exists 
no portrait of him. It is thought that he had a great distaste 
to being painted. He is said to have been a remarkably hand- 
some man, standing six feet four inches, and magnificently pro- 
portioned. Frederick still preserves the memory of his superb 
appearance as he marched through the town at the head of 
the Maryland militia to assist the governor of Pennsylvania to 
crush the Whiskey Rebellion of 1794. His sons were all fine- 
looking men, none of them being under six feet. In 1824 
Peale, writing to John Lee, Esq., youngest son of the gov- 
ernor, says that he has "an engagement to paint portraits of 
the governors elected in the State of Maryland since the change 
of government I am desirous to know if there is a portrait in 
your family of Governor Lee, and whether I may have the 
favor of making a copy. " 

There being no portrait, the artist suggested that William Lee, 
the eldest son, said to be wonderfully like his father, should sit 
for the painting, which would be placed in Annapolis as that of 
Thomas Sim Lee. Unlike an enterprising Marylander, however, 
who recently sat for all the portraits of his ancestors, male and 
female, William Lee declined to personate his father. 

The superb estate of Melwood Park, which fell to the children 
of Governor Lee, was sold that the property might be divided 
among the heirs. 

Governor Lee left six children, four sons and two daughters. 
His eldest son, William, lived the greater portion of -his life at 



7 86 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND His FAMIL Y. [Mar. , 

Needwood, where he built himself a house, and where he was at 
one time the host of the charming Mrs. Lewis (Molly Custis). 

Archibald Lee, another son, was a charming and accomplished 
man of the world. He spent most of his time in England, where 
he was a great favorite. Among his papers there are a number 
of letters from eminent people whose autographs alone would 
make the correspondence interesting. Invitations to famous coun- 
try houses ; personal orders from Ponsonby and Sir John Sinclair 
for debates in the House of Lords; a note signed John Kemble; one 
requesting the pleasure of his company in a drive to Bath, from 
Thomas Weld, Esq., in whose chapel at Lulworth Castle Mr. Car- 
roll, first primate of Baltimore, was consecrated ; letters of friendship 
from Lord Lansdowne ; Henry David Erskine, son of the famous 
Baron Erskine, "the most consummate advocate of his age"; 
several from William Pinckney, then minister to London, and two 
from Lucien Bonaparte. These are both written from Thorn- 
grove, Worcestershire, where he was detained by the English, 
who treated him as a prisoner. In one he expressed his great 
desire to reach America, " ce pays dont la politique me tient 
eloigne. . . . J'espere quelque jour que nous nous y rever- 
rons et que nous benirons ensemble 1'heureuse terre oil on jouit 
de la liberte civile et politique." In another, addressed to Archi- 
bald Lee, citoyen Americain, he begs Mr. Lee to stop at Thorn- 
grove on his way to London. Bonaparte wished to discuss a 
project of sending to Philadelphia some of his effects, whose 
value he places at fifty thousand pounds sterling, and which 
were then awaiting embarkation at Civita Vecchia, from whence 
he had himself set sail to escape from the exasperation of Na- 
poleon, when he was captured by an English cruiser : " Je ne 
doute pas que tot ou tard on ne me laisse continuer ma route 
vers la nouvelle patrie que j'ai adoptee et, en attendant, je vou- 
drais y envoyer ce qui m'appartient, comme, malgre ma deten- 
tion je me regarde deja comme votre concitoyen. Je compte sur 
votre obligeance, et je serais bien aise de causer avec vous de 
cet objet. Agreez, je vous prie, mes salutations amicales." 

Miss Eliza D. Lee, her father's eldest and much-loved daughter, 
presided over his establishment during eleven years after the 
death of her mother. As the head of her father's house in 
Georgetown, she came in contact with all the brilliant and dis- 
tinguished men of the day. She was a great favorite with Mrs. 
Quincy, who, writing to a friend in Boston, says: "Eliza Lee, at 
the head of her father's establishment in Georgetown, has long 
commanded general admiration by her highly-cultivated mind 



I 8 90 .] A RE VOL U TIONA KY GO VERNOR A ND HlS FA MIL Y. 787 

and graceful and attractive manners." We find the following 
passage on the admiration which Miss Lee excited in a letter 
from a friend of hers : " You, I am told, have been the idol of 
the winter. The woman who has the power to draw Mr. Ran- 
dolph away from Miss Caton must calculate on the hatred of her 
own sex and the admiration of the other." Mrs. Quincy, on 
her return North, where, as she expresses it, she is " at last in 
the midst of the paternal acres, and among shades and scenes 
consecrated by recollections full of gratitude and tenderness," 
writes to her dear Miss Lee : " In all this restored happiness 
we think of you all, and charm our enquiring friends with the 
story of your worth, your kindness," etc. Her signature occurs 
frequently in Miss Lee's correspondence, as does also that of 
Josiah Quincy. In one place the latter writes regretting he may 
not accompany her on a riding expedition which they had 
planned together : 

" I am denied after all the privilege of being your and Miss 
Teackle's cavalier to-morrow, as I promised myself; a lighter 
carriage than my own cannot be obtained, and this requires my 
whole stock of cavalry and deprives me of my stud, which is a 
death-blow to my Knightly pretensions. Will you convey my 
lamentations to Miss Teackle. Be assured that whether on the 
spur or the wheel, I am very respectfully Y. Hble. S , 

"JOSIAH QUINCY. 

" I am supported in this disappointment by being informed 
that you have a devoted cavalier at y. command." 

Among other writers are Mrs. Madison, John Randolph of 
Roanoke, Colonel Pickering, etc. Mr. Randolph frequently in- 
vites Miss Lee's attention to various reviews, hoping she "will 
not find them wholly devoid of interest." Colonel Pickering 
sends a sermon with the following words : " The enclosed ser- 
mon, on the signs of the times, which Col. Pickering received 
last night, and has just read, he presents to Miss Lee : an. un- 
usual present to a young lady, but not the less acceptable to 
her serious and reflecting mind." 

Miss Lee married the Hon. Outerbridge Horsey, Senator 
from Delaware, Mr. Randolph officiating as groomsman. Mr. and 
Mrs. Horsey eventually settled upon part of Governor Lee's estate 
which she inherited, and which still bears the name of Needwood. 

The descendants of Governor Lee and Charles Carroll of 
Carrollton intermarried several times, thus cementing by a more 
intimate connection the friendship of their ancestors. John Lee, 
the youngest son, for several terms member of Congress from 



788 A RE VOL UTIONAR Y Go VERNOR AND His FAMIL Y. [Mar., 

Maryland, married Harriet Carroll, granddaughter to the signer, 
while her brother, Colonel Carroll, married Mary Digges Lee, 
granddaughter of Thomas Sim Lee. 

The mother of Mrs. John Lee was Miss Harriet Chew, of 
Philadelphia, one of the beauties of her day. She is represented 
leaning upon the arm of General Washington in the famous 
painting of Martha Washington's Reception. It is said that Mr. 
Carroll went to Philadelphia to address another lady, whose charms 
were, however, completely effaced by the sight of Miss Chew. 
He left the city an engaged man without having once thought 
of her for whose sake he had undertaken this trip. 

Colonel Carroll's wife, Miss Lee, had been intimately asso- 
ciated, before her marriage, with the beautiful Misses Caton, 
.about whom so much has been written. In a letter to one of 
her relatives, Miss Lee speaks thus of the eldest of the sisters, 
who married first the brother of Madame Bonaparte (n-Je Patter- 
son) and afterwards the Marquis of Wellesley : "You can form 
no idea of the change that has taken place in Mrs. Patterson; 
her whole soul is absorbed in religion. ... I always went into 
the chapel (Doughreghan Manor) at half-past five in the morn- 
ing, and invariably would find her already there. She told 
me last month, in speaking of England, that she reflects with 
the greatest remorse upon her dissipation while there, and that 
no consideration would induce her to return again ; that her 
only wish now was to atone for the follies of her past life. 
. . . Mrs. Patterson showed me all her correspondence with 
the Duke of Wellington, besides a variety of letters from other 
great people in England, in which they spoke of her loss not 
only to individuals, but to the nation. After reading these 
letters, all of which were filled with compliments, she told me 
that she had not shown them to me out of vanity, but to 
prove to me that if she had loved the world too much, she 
had been more excusable than most women '.' The fascinations 
of England eventually triumphed over Mrs. Patterson's religious 
determination to atone for the follies of her past life. After the 
death of her first husband, his fair widow yielded to^the solici- 
tations of her admirers and returned to England to console the 
nation for her loss. She married the Marquis of Wellesley, 
viceroy of Ireland and eider brother to the Duke of Wellington, 
her great friend and admirer. Lady Wellesley then entered 
upon her career of conquest, and together with her beautiful 
sisters, Lady Stafford and the Dijchess of Leeds, was for many 
years the reigning toast. M. C. L. 






1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 789 



THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 

*' O world, as God has made it ! All is beauty ; 
And knowing this is love, and love is duty, 
What further may be sought for or declared ? " 

Browning. 

I. 

THE French peasant has always been an interesting study. 
The Abbe Roux and Max O'Rell are the latest of his country- 
men to give us a view of his life and its difficulties. Though 
lacking in many ways, their accounts are truthful and detailed 
enough to deserve attention. The most thoughtful and sympa- 
thetic literary handling the peasant has ever received was from 
the pen of Georges Sand, whose brief tale of La Mare au 
Diable is an idyl of the soil, the beginning of which breathes the 
very essence of peasant life. Unhappily, the genius which could 
burn with so clear and pure a flame, knew not how to resist 
the gusts of wind that play havoc with most human candles. 
Therefore, we can but regret that La Mare au Diable is al- 
most the only expression in modern French literature of the 
depth and beauty, the simplicity of suffering and enjoyment of 
peasant life. In the other arts tlje peasant has fared equally 
well and ill. He ' has been caricatured, pettyfied, and puttyfied, 
but seldom justly^ delineated. We all know the type of peas- 
ant lads and lasses that rules supreme in comic opera. We 
know the type that adorns the canvases, more or less pro- 
fusely, of most modern artists. 

In the midst *of all this artistic untruth, a French painter, 
humble and unknown, by name Jean Francois Millet, began to 
reveal the peasant in the light of inner and outer reality. He 
was born on the 4th of October, 1814, in the little Norman 
village of Gruchy. His family, tillers of the soil from root to 
branch, was in many respects remarkable. His father, Jean 
Louis Nicolas Millet, had a strong and beautiful nature, con- 
taining the undeveloped germs of abilities in many lines. His 
mother appears to have been equally above the average ; but 
the influence that made itself most felt in the life of the youth- 
ful Millet was that of his grandmother a woman whose parallel 
would have to be sought among the rough-hewn, majestic por- 
traits of the women of the Old Testament. A picturesque house- 



790 THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

hold it must have been, that homestead hidden in the little val- 
ley opening toward the sea. The widowed grandmother ruled 
supreme. Jean Louis, his gentle wife, and their eight children 
sought her guidance in every matter. In the evenings, while 
the busy hum and burr of her spinning-wheel sounded, or the 
click-clack of her knitting-needles for the Widow Millet was 
never idle her keen eyes looked out from the net-work of 
wrinkles of her kindly brown face, observant of every one in 
the little group surrounding her, but ever and anon glancing to 
the corner of the hearth where " her heart's favorite," Jean Fran- 
9ois, was seated. As the rising and falling blaze from the great 
logs illumined his face and figure, the grandmother's busy fingers 
would occasionally slacken as she watched the lad, sometimes 
busy with a bit of board or paper, a pencil or charcoal, 
sometimes gazing dreamily into the fire, sometimes listening 
eagerly to the stories, ghostly and marvellous some, others 
bloody and cruel narratives of 'the days, yet near at hand, of 
the Terror stories that some of the little circle never tired of 
repeating. Oftenest the narrator of these tales would be the 
uncle of Jean Louis, Charles Millet, ordained priest before the 
Revolution, enveloped in all its dangers, and finally leading a 
peaceful and useful life, partly as priest and teacher, partly as la- 
borer, in sabots and soutane, on his nephew's little farm. All in all, 
they were a family that was not ill-calculated to produce a great 
man. They had strong intellects, not altogether undeveloped ; 
strong bodies, not without a certain rough comeliness ; hearts 
tender and upright; views of life honest and r^ardy. Their life 
was made up of hard work and scant rest, of privations and 
few enjoyments, but they took their fate in their hands with a 
ready and cheerful acceptance that was grander and nobler than 
any mere philosophical content or resignation. Such were the 
Millets. Such had been their fathers before them. 

The grandmother's favorite, the little Franois, grew to be a . 
sturdy, strong-limbed, open-browed, dark-eyed youth whose broad 
back had already for was he not the eldest of the boys ? 
to bear many of the family burdens. Fortunately, he got a little 
schooling, and still more fortunately, he learned with avidity all 
that fell in his way. The Bible he knew intimately, and all of his 
grandmother's little store of learned and pious books. A young 
vicar at the church of Greville, where Francois went to be con- 
firmed, taught him Latin and initiated him into the wonders of 
Virgil, who became at once and remained ever after an unfailing 
solace and comfort to the young peasant. 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 791 

In all these years while Frangois was working, learning, and 
dreaming, he had not forgotten the wish that had early developed 
within him to transfer to canvas some of the beauty that he saw 
and felt helped thereto by Virgil, perhaps in the life and 
scenes that were his. At last, one day, the father, Jean Louis, 
discovered the secret wish of his son's heart. His biographer, 
Alfred Sensier, gives the following account of the occurrence that 
turned the current of young Millet's life : " Coming home one day 
from Mass he (Frangois) met an old man, his back bcwed, and 
going wearily home. He was surprised at the perspective and 
movement of the bent figure. This was for the young peasant 
the discovery of foreshortening. With one glance he understood 
the mysteries of planes advancing, retreating, rising, and falling. 
He came quickly home, and taking a lump of charcoal, drew 
from memory all the lines he had noted in the action of the old 
man. When his parents returned from church they instantly 
recognized it his first portrait made them laugh. 

Millet was eighteen ; his father was deeply moved by the 
revelation of this unforeseen talent; they talked the matter over 
and Frangois admitted that he had some desire to become a 
painter. His father only said these touching words : " My poor 
Frangois, I see thou art troubled by the idea. I should gladly 
have sent you to have the trade of painting taught you, which 
they say is so fine, but you are the oldest boy and I was not 
able to spare you ; now that your brothers are growing older, 
I do not wish to prevent you from learning that which you are 
so anxious to know. We will soon go to Cherbourg and find 
out whether you have talent enough to earn your living by this 
business." 

Accordingly, in a few weeks Frangois and his father went to 
Cherbourg to the studio of a painter called Mouchel, a pupil of the 
school of David. At first the artist cannot be persuaded that the 
drawings they brought with them were the work of the big, awk- 
ward young fellow before him. When he is at last convinced, 
he willingly accepts him as a pupil , and assures the father : 
" Well, you will go to perdition for having kept him so long, 
for your child has the stuff of a great painter ! " 

The father went back to Gruchy. The son remained at 
Cherbourg, and for two months worked and studied indefati- 
gably under the tutelage of Mouchel. Then a sorrowful blow 
fell on him. One day a messenger from Gruchy came with 
sad news to Cherbourg Jean Louis Millet was dangerously ill. 
Frangois rushed madly homewards and reached Gruchy only to 



792 THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

find his father delirious, dying of brain-fever. His death left a 
grief-stricken, heart-sore family. But peasants must forego the 
luxury of grief with all others, and so, as soon as the funeral 
was over, Francois endeavored to take his father's place in the 
labors of the field. That was his work, he felt. Peasant-like, 
he accepted it as part of the inevitable, without rebellion or 
complaint. But his heart was not in his work. A different 
labor, not higher but other than farming, had already claimed 
his allegiance. The grandmother's observant eyes discovered his 
patient disquietude. One day she said to him : " My Fran- 
cois, you must accept the will of God. Your father, my Jean 
Louis, said you should be a painter; obey him and go back 
to Cherbourg." 

Very gladly he went. In Cherbourg he entered the studio 
of Langlois, who gave him little advice but boundless liberty 
to do as he pleased. He tried his hand at everything copy- 
ing and original work of every sort. He found time for much 
reading, which he chose with judgment and discretion. The 
months went by, and people began to talk of the young painter 
from the country whose work showed such cleverness and origi- 
nality. A few bold and good-natured spirits thought that he 
should be sent to Paris. Langlois, declaring that he could teach 
him nothing more, addressed a petition to the municipal council 
of Cherbourg, in consequence of which they voted an annuity of 
four hundred francs for Millet's education. The general council 
of La Manche added later six hundred francs, to be paid until 
the completion of the young artist's studies. With the splen- 
did prospect of this princely allowance before him (unfortu- 
nately it never became much more than a prospect), and with 
the trembling counsels of his mother and grandmother in his 
ears, young Millet departed for Paris in January, 1837. 

At first Paris, with its seething possibilities, bewildered him, 
saddened him, disheartened him. It is a trait of the peasant 
nature to be comfortable and happy only in the midst of the 
familiar. Millet, essentially a peasant, had a positive fear of the 
strange and new. His first contact with Parisians was so unfor- 
tunate that his only happiness during those early months in 
the great city was in his constant visits to the galleries of the 
Louvre and the Luxembourg. Very interesting are his accounts 
of his first impressions of these celebrated collections. His likes 
and dislikes are strongly indicated. He has an instant appre- 
ciation of true, as quick a discernment of false, art. After a 
good deal of dallying, Millet roused himself to action and was 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 793 

admitted to the studio of Paul Delaroche, the fashionable painter 
of the day. Here he fared very badly and was misunderstood 
by master and pupils, though occasionally some of his work 
compelled admiration. His first attempt in the life-class pro- 
voked the universal comment, " How insolently natural ! " Dela- 
roche, while admitting his talent, concerned himself very little 
about this " man of the woods," as his fellow-pupils dubbed 
him. Millet was too original, too eccentric, too little a wor- 
shipper of the great Delaroche, to please master or pupils. When 
the time came for competition for the great " Prix de Rome" 
Millet was admitted and worked enthusiastically at the figure. 
Delaroche, seeing his determination and much struck with his 
work, called him aside and said : 

"You want the ' Prix de Rome'?" 

" That is the reason I compete," answered Millet laconically. 

"I find your composition very good," continued the master, 
"but I must tell you that I especially want Roux appointed; but 
next year I will use all my influence for you." 

Millet said no more, relinquished his chance and left the 
studio, bitterly realizing that upon himself alone must he rely 
for instruction and protection. One friend the young Norman 
had made in the studio. A certain Marolle had been kind to 
him and had won his liking. When he left the studio Marolle, 
a good-natured, gay young fellow, went with him, and together 
they established a little studio in the Rue de 1'Est. There life 
very soon became a difficult problem for Millet, whose family 
could not, like Marolle's, smooth his rough path for him. Per- 
haps he occasionally wished that he, too, were the son of a 
wealthy varnish manufacturer. His pension came very irregularly, 
if it came at all, and was quite insufficient for his needs. It was 
only Marolle's advice, encouragement, and assistance that made 
living possible to him. He gave up the studies of forest forms 
and rural scenes, to which his fancy drew him from the first, 
and desperately turned his hand to whatever it could find to 
do. He occupied himself with anything and everything that 
would win him a few francs for daily bread. He did portraits, 
pastels, imitations of Watteau and Boucher, whom he detested 
mythological subjects. It is hardly fair to accuse him, as 
some critics have, of abandoning his ideals in the vulgar strug- 
gle of existence. He was young, inexperienced ; his ideals had 
scarcely matured, and " pot-boiling " was a necessity then as now. 
He did very little in those days that shamed him later on. A 
VOL. L. 51 



794 Tux PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

pure mind will not permit much evil to enter into the kindling 
of the fire, even for youthful " pot-boiling." 

In 1840 Millet made his first attempt to exhibit at the Salon. 
Of the two portraits he sent, one was rejected and one accepted, 
hung, and unnoticed. Discouraged by this failure, he went back to 
Normandy, whither, for the next few years, he annually returned to 
breathe again his native air and be again for a time with his 
family. During one of these visits he painted several portraits of 
his mother and grandmother. He worked at the latter's portrait 
with special care, for he understood the beauty and force of her 
character, and wished, he said, " to show the soul of his grand- 
mother." 

During one of these home visits he met and married his 
first wife, a good young girl of Cherbourg. They were married 
in 1841, and in 1844 she died. The marriage was not a happy 
one, and the fact that his young wife was almost a constant 
invalid served to further complicate the problem of existence. 
Of these years his biographer says : " He never spoke of this 
time without a sort of terror. He was without money, position, 
or connections. His material life was a daily fight. He was 
ready to do anything that chance offered, but had endless diffi- 
culties to get the most trifling sums paid. He met people who 
took advantage of his poverty, who wearied him with their 
refusals and went to all lengths of cruelty." 

After the death of his wife Millet went for a while to 
Cherbourg, and there married again, this time more fortunately. 
Despite Alphonse Daudet's recent utterances to the contrary, 
the wife of a man of genius does sometimes understand and 
appreciate him. It is a troublesome question ; therefore I leave 
M. Daudet to describe as flippantly as he pleases the prizes 
that the rod and line of genius generally draw from the matri- 
monial fish-pond. Not one of the unions so described was Millet's 
second marriage. Madame Millet proved to be a good and 
earnest woman and a most sympathetic helpmate. 

Before returning to Paris Millet took his bride to Havre, 
where they visited several friends while he executed some com- 
missions for pictures. While they remained there, a public ex- 
hibition of his works was organized, which met with some suc- 
cess. All in all, he got about nine hundred francs together before 
they left for Paris. The Havre visit was a brief interlude of peace 
and prosperity. In Paris recommenced his drudgery and failure. 
Yet the little attic home was bright and cheerful in spite of 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 795 

its poverty. A whole colony of young artists lived near at 
hand, with some of whom Millet became on the most friendly 
terms and who formed a little clique of admirers around him, 
for thoughtful artists and critics could not fail to appreciate the 
element in Millet's work, even of the " pot-boiling " order, that 
raised him far above mediocrity. About this time Alfred Sen- 
sier, Millet's biographer and most intimate friend, made his ac- 
quaintance. They became friends from the start and till death 
their friendship lasted. The day that he met Sensier was truly, 
for Millet, a rift in the dark clouds of his life. Never was 
friend more active or more faithful. During the hard times ot 
1848 the Millets would probably have starved to death had it 
not been for the unwearied exertions of this kind friend. Through 
his help and that of other friends, the artist sold a picture which 
the Salon had, as usual, refused, for five hundred francs, and re- 
ceived a commission from M. Ledru Rollin of eighteen hun- 
dred francs. This was comparative affluence, but even twenty- 
three hundred francs will not last for ever. Again Millet is 
hard pressed. For a time sign-painting is his only resource. 
Then he makes the grand discovery that drawings can be ex- 
changed for clothes and furniture. How rapidly his pencil 
flew then, and how willingly he gave half a dozen drawings 
for a pair of shoes ! Other drawings went for a franc apiece, 
and five or six portraits for twenty francs. 

The year 1849 rnarks a new era in Millet's life not oi 
prosperity, but of purpose. Heretofore his paintings had been 
marked by originality, cleverness, sincerity, but in all his work 
there was an absence of depth and thought that seems to have 
been not so much the abandonment of the ideal as an un- 
conscious ignorance of it. One evening he chanced to hear 
two young men coarsely commenting on one of his pictures 
that was exhibited in a picture-dealer's window r . The truth as 
well as the falsehood of their words cut him to the quick. 
To the day of his death he winced at the remembrance. From 
his pain and humiliation sprang forth both purpose and reso- 
lution. He returned home and told his wife the story. 

" If you consent," said he, " I will do no more of that sort of 
pictures. Living will be harder than ever and you will suffer, 
but I will be free to do what I have long been thinking of." 

Madame Millet answered with much simplicity and much noble- 
ness : " I am ready. Do as you will." 

"And from that time on," says M. Sensier, "Millet, relieved 



796 THE. PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

in a sense from all servitude, entered resolutely into rustic 
art." 

A few months before this event a number of Paris artists, 
among whom was Theodore Rousseau, in later years Millet's 
devoted friend, had left the capital to settle in the little village of 
Barbizon, on the outskirts of the forest of Fontainebleau. In the 
summer of 1849 various considerations induced Millet and his 
friend, the artist Jacque, to follow their example. They came 
with their families, expecting to remain a few months ; the few 
months became a life-time. 



II. 

In the recent exhibition at the American Art Galleries, in New 
York City, of the works of Barye and his contemporaries, there 
was a sketch of MiUet's home at Barbizon, signed " Millet, fils" 
The painting does not display inherited genius, but it gives us a 
very good idea of the humble and picturesque home that Millet 
and his family so long occupied. The long, low-roofed cottage 
is covered with vines and surrounded by trees. Inside, the three 
narrow, low rooms, which are gradually added to with the fami- 
ly's increasing size, are poor indeed, but neat and tasteful. One 
of these little rooms is the studio where Millet spends half his 
day the morning being always given to farming and gardening. 
He felt himself to be the interpreter of the peasant. The long 
years of desultory labor in Paris had given him technical skill 
in the highest degree. His years of suffering and discouragement 
had not embittered, but sweetened and strengthened, his charac- 
ter. His birth, his early training, his later years all helped to 
make him the one artist in France who could best understand 
and express rural life, who could best raise art from the debase- 
ment that talented dawdlers, unbelieving and unfeeling dilettanti 
of genius, had brought upon her. 

"Each eyed his neighbor, and was full of enthusiasm for a 
manner," is Millet's summary of the work of the soulless Paris- 
ians. Always clearly and concisely expressed are his views on 
art and artists. Good sense and good judgment rule his words. 
' Who shall dare to say that a potato is inferior to a pomegran- 
ate ? " he demands, when accused of trampling on the beautiful in 
his studies of peasant life. In various letters to M. Sensier he 
defines occasionally the feeling that inspires all his work. Per- 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 797 

haps a few excerpts from these letters will best give his creed on 
the matter. 

" Some tell me that I deny the charms of the country. I 
find much more than charms ; I find infinite glories. I see as 
well as they do the little flowers of which Christ said that 
Solomon, in all his glory, was not arrayed like one of these. 
I see the halos of dandelions, and the sun also, which spreads 
out beyond the world its glory in the clouds. But I see, as 
well, in the plain the steaming horses at work, and, in a rocky 
place, a man, all worn out, whose 'haw!' has been heard since 
morning, and who tries to straighten himself a moment and 
breathe. The drama is surrounded by beauty." 

" One can say that everything is beautiful in its own time 
and place, and, on the other hand, that nothing is beautiful 
which comes at the wrong time. . . . Beauty is expression." 

" I want the people I paint to look as if they were dedi- 
cated to their station that it would be impossible for them to 
ever think of being anything but what they are. A work 
should be all of a piece, and people and things should be there 
for an end." 

"At the bottom it always comes to this: a man must be 
touched himself in order to touch others ; and all that is done 
from theory, however clever, can never attain this end, for it 
is impossible that it should have the breath of life. To quote 
the expression of St. Paul, l ss sonans aut cymbalum tinniens? ' 

Very happy were the early days at Barbizon. To be im- 
mersed in work of the studio and the field, to be surrounded 
by his wife and children, to have his friends near at hand, and 
the great forest for draught of healing and consolation when 
he felt in need of both this was Millet's programme of com- 
fort. His friends tell us that with those for whom he really 
cared he was always genial and confidential, not disdaining an 
occasional joke and never happier than when he could persuade 
a couple of friends to share, for weeks at a time, the rough 
but warm hospitality of his simple home. His friends loved to 
be with him and often came to pay the desired visits. Pleas- 
ant recollections they took home with them of the long after- 
noons in the bare little studio dreamy hours, spent by 
the visitors in watching the rapid, creative strokes of their 
host's pencil or brush, listening to his thoughts, opinions, con- 
fidences, and all the time watching the rings of their tobacco- 
smoke curl around the portraits and sketches and studies that 



79 8 THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

clustered so thick on the walls, half-veiling, half-revealing the 
sturdy traits of Millet's pictured relatives. In the evenings they 
went to the forest of Fontainebleau, and there it was that this 
peasant artist, in his rough sabots and old red sailor's jacket, 
seemed most content with life. All the capacity for joy in his 
large, impressionable nature was always set vibrating by the slight- 
est contact with the open. In one of his letters to Sensier he 
gives an idea of his sensibility to nature as well as a pretty pic- 
ture of the Barbizon life : 

" If you could see how beautiful the forest is ! I rush there 
at the end of the day, after my work, and I come back every 
time crushed. It is so calm, such a terrible grandeur, that I 
find myself really frightened ; I don't know what those fellows, 
the trees, are saying to each other; they say something which 
we cannot understand, because we don't know their language, 
that is all. But I'm sure they don't make puns (!) To-morrow, 
Sunday, is the fete of Barbizon Every oven, stove, chimney, 
saucepan, and pot is in such activity that you might believe it 
was the day before the ' noces de Gamache' Every old triangle 
is used as a spit, and all the turkeys, geese, hens, and ducks which 
you saw in such good health are at this minute roasting and 
boiling and pies as big as wagon-wheels ! Barbizon is one big 
kitchen, and the fumes must be smelt for miles." 

Once in a while Millet's affairs took him to Paris for a day 
or two, and always, when evening brought his return, there was 
an affectionate, eager little group impatiently awaiting to escort 
him to the house. When things had gone well with him and 
a few spare francs enabled him to come laden with toys and bon- 
bons for the children, it was a very gay little party that assembled 
within the cottage ; and, in any case, the Millet household never 
lacked love and confidence. Often enough they lacked other 
things. Even in Barbizon it is impossible to support a large 
family on an income uncertain at best and often a purely minus 
quantity. In the art world, that part at least that is governed 
by the Salon, the critics, and the picture-dealers, Millet continued 
to meet with rebuffs, neglect, and abuse. Every time that a 
picture of- his, whether accepted or rejected, appeared at the 
Salon, a fresh storm burst about his ears. He had a few partisans, 
a few admirers, but in general he was profoundly misunderstood, 
maliciously misinterpreted. He was accused of revolutionary and 
socialistic tendencies. Every sort of motive was ascribed to him 
save the simple conscientiousness that alone actuated his work. 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARnr/.ox. 799 

Occasionally he sold a picture, but always at a very low figure. 
Usually, when he had a painting to dispose of his friends were occu- 
pied in the almost impossible task of first creating a Millet taste 
and then gratifying it with a profitable result to the artist. Strug- 
gling bravely along, working indefatigably, bearing his privations 
as best he could, appealing to his friends only when the burden 
grew heavier than he could bear, Millet is as touching a figure as 
was poor John Richling with his clever inefficiency. Quite often 
it happened that the baker, the butcher, the grocer, and the 
tailor of Barbizon took possession of the cottage, threatening 
untold ill if > their accounts were not instantly settled. Sometimes 
Rousseau, oftener Sensier, came to the rescue on these occasions. 
The comic side of these difficulties strikes us as often as their 
pathetic, for, in truth, the difference between the pathetic and 
the comic elements of human events lies principally in the dif- 
ference there is between the inner and the outer view of life's 
incongruities. Added to our artist's grinding poverty was the 
misery of ill health, troublesome eyes, constant headache. Some 
of the letters to Sensier that reveal his troubles are like the 
painful echo of the groans wrung from a strong and suffering 
heart. He writes one day: 

" If I have not the spleen, which you tell me not to take to 
myself as bosom companion, I have a settled weariness, but no 
anger against any one or anything, for I do not think myself 
any more a victim than lots of other people ; but I am afraid 
of getting tired out. It has lasted nearly twenty years. Well, 
it has not been the fault of my friends that it has not been 
different; that is a consolation to me." 

Several times the thought of suicide crossed his mind. 
" But," says his biographer, " between the thought and the act 
was a whole world which Millet would never have crossed." He 
was a Christian ; therefore, a prayer or a breath of the forest 
was sufficient to dispel the possibility of so wretched a release. 

During the first years at Barbizon, while the sweetness and 
freedom of his life there were struggling hard to overmaster its 
sordid cares, Millet was tenderly thought of and tenderly longed 
for by the two women, both growing old and feeble now, who 
were the first to guide and care for him. Scarcely more than 
a hundred leagues from Barbizon was the little Norman village 
where his mother and grandmother still remained in charge of 
the household that was now sadly scattered, for most of the 
daughters had married and settled in homes of their own, while 



. 

8oo 7V75? PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

one by one the sons had all been seized with the fever for 
Paris. Mother and grandmother longed for a sight of the 
artist son, who had ever most tenderly repaid their tenderness. 
He, too, earnestly longed to see them both again, but he was 
poor and they were poor, and every one knows that when poverty 
weights one's feet journeys are out of the question. How deep- 
ly Millet felt the pain of this hopeless longing is shown by his 
picture called " Waiting," a canvas full of grandeur, of beauty, 
of sorrow. " A painted silence," it has been called. It is more. 
It is resignation, patience, hope painted with the silence. 

The grandmother died in 1851, and two years later the 
mother also died. Not yet had Millet found means to go to her. 
These deaths seemed to snap some of his heart-strings, and were 
for a long time a living and constant grief to him. After the 
mother's death it was necessary for Fran9ois, as the eldest son, 
to go home and attend to the division of the inheritance. Luck- 
ily, the sale of some canvases gave him the wherewithal for the 
journey. He remained a very short time at Gruchy after asking 
and receiving as his share of the inheritance the books that had 
belonged to his great-uncle, and the huge wardrobe of polished 
oak which from father to son had come down for many genera- 
tions. It was surely a modest fortune with which he returned to 
Barbizon. 

The following year he met with a stroke of great good luck. 
He succeeded in paying his debts, and in selling a picture for 
the to him enormous sum of two thousand francs. The ques- 
tion of what to do with this unexpected wealth had then to be 
settled. To save it ? Very good, but it would be so much 
pleasanter to spend it for the wife and the little ones. He 
deliberates, and at last concludes that he has found the treat 
that will be most delightful to them. He will take them all for 
a whole long month to his old home, the Norman village near 
the sea, which they already seem to know, so often has he 
pictured it to them with word and pencil. The month length- 
ened to four, and a happy holiday it must have been' for parents 
and children and the kindred living at Gruchy; this renewal of 
early associations seemed the beginning of better things for the 
artist and his family. Bad times were to come again, and often 
again the faithful Sensier had to pilot their boat into quiet 
waters, but slowly and grudgingly fortune's wheel seemed turning 
towards them. 

In 1860 Millet gave a hostage to the future, in the shape 



1890.] THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. 80 r 

of a contract in which he pledged himself to give to a certain 

Monsieur M all the pictures and drawings he could do in 

three years, for the consideration of a thousand francs a month. 
It was a sort of bondage, but a bondage that gave Millet his 
first feeling of freedom. Relief from the miserable cares that 
had so long pursued him filled his whole soul with peace. 
Very joyfully he worked, producing in this interval some of his 
most beautiful compositions. 

To the Salon of 1863 he sent three pictures that were des- 
tined, despite their truth and beauty, to bring a perfect tem- 
pest of abuse and harsh criticism upon the artist who had the 
audacity to throw himself, again and again, so courageously 
against the wall of prejudice and false ideals with which the 
judges of the Salon allowed themselves to be encompassed. 
These pictures were : "A Peasant Leaning on his Hoe," " A 
Woman Carding Wool," and " A Shepherd Bringing Home his 
Sheep " one of the many works in which he dealt so sympa- 
thetically with the most beautiful subject that the beasts of the 
field can present us. Always sympathetic is Millet's treatment of 
any subject When he paints horses, or cattle, or sheep, he is 
equal to Barye or Rosa Bonheur, and he has all the feeling of 
Corot when he gives his grand and noble peasants their 
fitting background of majestic landscape. 

Occasionally Sensier and he made charming little trips to- 
gether through various parts of France. Once six or seven 
glorious days were spent in Switzerland. From all of these ex- 
cursions Millet returned with plenty of notes, sketches, and mem- 
ories, full of enthusiastic plans for future work. His enthusiasm 
for work was endless. A dozen life-times could scarcely have 
fulfilled all his projects. 

In 1868 the tide of public favor, that had slowly been turn- 
ing away from the false realism and false idealism of the artists 
most graciously received by the Paris Salon, rushed at last in full 
force upon Millet and his honest realities. After much hesitation, 
the government was compelled by public clamor to award to the 
peasant-painter of Barbizon the ribbon of a Chevalier of the Legion 
of Honor. In the midst of much popular enthusiasm Millet 
accepted the honor, and the revenge, with quiet and self-con- 
tained dignity. He was not a man to be dust-blinded, and 
various sad happenings at home, chiefly the serious illness of his 
wife and the recent death of his friend Rousseau, had served to 
render him more impervious to the clasping or loosening of that 
rope of sand, public favor. 



802 THE PAINTER OF BARBIZON. [Mar., 

A year or two after this the artist's health began to fail. 
Nevertheless, he continued to work. Though destitution no 
longer knocked constantly at the door, " My Lady Poverty " 
covered him as carefully with her weather-beaten mantle as she 
had covered that Francis of Assisi in whose honor the peasant- 
painter had received his name. The Franco-Prussian war ma- 
terially interfered with the artist and his work while it aroused 
his patriotism and his horror. For a time he was compelled to 
leave his beloved Barbizon and fly, with his family, to Cher- 
bourg. When the war clouds dispersed he resumed his labors, 
but with many interruptions, for his brave spirit could not al- 
ways fortify his failing bodily strength. At last he could no 
longer continue the struggle. At the end of December, 1874, 
he took to his bed. Many affecting anecdotes are told ot 
these last days of his among his family and his friends. Often 
he plaintively regretted that his life was closing too soon 
just as he began, he said, " to see clearly into nature and art" 
so clearly, indeed, that the dark crystal, hiding the inmost 
mysteries from his eager eyes, grew so thin and bright that the 
touch of his humanity sufficed to dash it into splinters. 

On the 2Oth of January, 1875, Jean Franois Millet peace- 
fully breathed his last. 

I shall not attempt to discuss or even enumerate the great 
works that have finally made the French peasant one of the 
most famous of the world's artists. Everybody knows the gran- 
deur of subject and treatment that the humble titles of " The 
Sower," "The Reapers," "Potato-Planting," "Tree-Grafting," etc., 
barely indicate. They are the autobiography of the peasant. 
They are the Christian apotheosis of labor. 

To speak of the greatest of all, the now more than famous 
"Angelus" since American gold has so profusely rained upon 
it would be worse than folly. Artist, critic, and dabbler, para- 
grapher, learned divine, and fashionable gossip have each and all 
said their word about "The Angelus." The crowd that con- 
stantly surrounded the picture during its recent exhibition sel- 
dom failed of comment, and the comments varied from one 
young lady's whispered, "Isn't it sweet?" and another's "How 
very expensive it was !" and the muttered " H'm ! what a dull- 
looking thing ! " from various cheerful, color-loving souls, to the 
technical praise or dispraise of the brethren of the brush. And 
perhaps among the little crowd of silent worshippers who are 
content to look and wonder, one or two there are who cannot 
help but feel in the still and softened atmosphere of the picture 



1890.] RECOMPENSE. 803 

a breath of remembrance of the artist's life at Barbizon. Per- 
haps the suffering there and the homage here seems to them 
the old, stupid trick, the heavy frolicsomeness of fate ; or, it 
may be, they get to thinking of the wrinkled old grandmother, 
writing with trembling hand that message to her Benjamin in 
Paris : "Ah ! dear child, follow the example of a man of your 
own profession and say, ' I paint for eternity ' ! " 

With the majesty and fervor of Millet's masterpiece before 
us, who can say that this holy injunction was disobeyed ? Surely, 
we may fancy eternity has set her seal upon "The Angelus." 

MARIE LOUISE SANDROCK. 

Buffalo, N. Y. 



RECOMPENSE. 

O GENEROUS seed 

I cast with weeping in, nor dreamt to find 
So large a harvest in my hour of need ! 

O tender moon, 
Sink in thy dreamy west ! Thanks for the light 

Thou gav'st my night 
Thy radiance soft, thy comfort-gleam : 

Now by thy fading beam 
New lights arise in heaven. The Day comes soon. 

O years forlorn ! 

Vanished the shadow of your heart-eclipse : 
Shattered your bitter cup so often quaffed 

Your night-born draught. 

Lo ! at my freshened lips 
The perfumed chalice of the glad new dawn ! 



8 04 CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. [Mar, 



CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. 

I HAVE been curious to discover what it is in the argument 
for Catholic and denominational schools derived from the rights 
of parents as opposed to the interference of the state, which has 
touched to the quick the sensitive nerve in certain distinguished 
advocates of what is called an unsectarian system of education. 
Why are those who use this argument accused of insincerity, 
and of substituting a plausible but fallacious issue for the true 
one, and by special pleading striving to gain a judgment in 
favor of a claim which is a covert for the real but hidden cause 
for which open plea is withheld ? Why is the discussion turned 
off on the Vatican Cpuncil, the Jesuits, foreign influence, the 
designs of the court of Rome on American liberty, and Papal in- 
fallibility ? It would seem that the question of the religious and 
Christian element in education is a plain one, to be discussed on 
general principles, some of which are common to all Monotheists, 
others to all believers in a revelation contained in those books 
of the Bible which they recognize as belonging to the authentic 
canon, and the rest to all who acknowledge the Christian reli- 
gion. As to the practical question of the way in which religious 
education is to be carried on, it is admitted by all to be an 
American principle that perfect freedom must be guaranteed to 
societies and individuals, so long as that liberty is not abused to 
the detriment of rights which the state is bound to safeguard. 
Moreover, all who have distinct and specific convictions respect- 
ing the doctrinal and ethical truths and rules which constitute 
the substance and integrity of the Christian religion, must regard 
it as of vital importance that children should be educated and 
instructed in the same by competent and trustworthy persons. 
Since Catholics are equal to non-Catholics of all denominations 
in all respects before the law, it would seem that the education 
of their children and young people in schools where they are 
instructed in the principles and doctrines of their religion, ought 
to- be regarded as strictly in accordance with the spirit and letter 
of our laws, just as much as the celebration of our rites of wor- 
ship, the preaching of sermons, and the publication of books. 
The same must be said, of course, of Jewish, Episcopalian, Pres- 
byterian, and Methodist schools. The President invites all to 
assemble in their houses of worship, on certain special occasions, 



1890.] CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. 805 

for thanksgiving or supplication to God, and, whatever his private 
belief may be, he cannot discriminate in his official capacity be- 
tween Jews, Catholics, Episcopalians, Unitarians, Quakers, or any 
others, even though, in his own eyes, there be as much differ- 
ence in their offerings as between the oblations of Cain and 
Abel. So far as the state is concerned, the religion, the mode 
of worship, the association of different sorts of worshippers in 
common and public acts of adoration, thanksgiving, propitiation, 
and supplication, are the private affair of her citizens, acting ac- 
cording to the dictates of their own reason and free-will. If the 
representatives of the commonwealth do well, in recognizing 
and encouraging assemblages of the people in their several 
ecclesiastical associations and places of reunion for public acts of 
worship, why may they not give them countenance and aid in 
other ways, with the same impartiality? Whatever the state may 
see fit to do, in the interest of the state and its citizens, where 
the element of religion enters into institutions or branches of 
useful work to be begun and carried on, why should not this re- 
ligious element be regarded as the affair of the conscience and 
convictions of the state's co-operators, without any partiality or 
preference 'in favor of one class over another? 

This question did not arise so long as the state had only to 
deal with Protestants, and would not probably have arisen at the 
present time, if Catholicism had not assumed a formidable aspect 
within the national horizon. Why is it formidable ? What rea- 
son is there for putting a plea in bar of the claim of the Catho- 
lic Church to educate her own children, as a right springing from 
the liberty of conscience and the equality before the law which 
belongs to all citizens of the republic ? What is that ele- 
ment in Catholicism which makes education in Catholic schools 
appear to threaten detriment to the republic ? Why should the 
safety and welfare of the country appear to demand of its gov- 
ernment to take measures to avert the danger, and to assume 
the task of educating all children on a system which excludes 
all religious instruction called denominational, chiefly for the pur- 
pose of shutting out Catholic teaching ? 

First of all, why does the very plea of the rights of the Ca- 
tholic conscience occasion such a perplexity and vexation in cer- 
tain minds ? The chief reason of the perplexity is the difficulty 
of rebutting the plea, without contradicting the American prin- 
ciples to which its opponents are committed. And another is, 
in the case of those who are bound by their principles to advo- 
cate religious education, the difficulty of making a telling stroke 



806 CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. [Mar., 

against the adversary's ball, without putting their own into the 
pocket. The perplexity is one cause of the vexation. But an- 
other is, that they do not think the plea is made in earnest, 
and in good faith ; or that Catholics have any right to appeal 
to the principle of liberty and the rights of the individual con- 
science in their own cause. John Locke put the extreme form 
of this maxim of exclusion in respect to Catholics into the pro- 
position : " that papists should not enjoy the benefit of tolera- 
tion, because where they have power they think themselves 
bound to deny it to others." * The maxim itself, as distinct 
from the reason given, was acted on by Protestant governments 
before the principle of toleration gained recognition from ruling 
statesmen. Locke's statement is important, because it shows the 
ground on which an eminent advocate of the general principle 
of toleration excluded " papists " from the pale of civilized so- 
ciety as intolerable. There is no question of toleration in our 
republic, at least for any kind of Christian society. Those who 
go furthest in declaring that our laws are based on the Chris- 
tian religion, do not pretend that they exclude Catholicism from 
the circle of Christianity. It is true that many have assumed 
that this is a Protestant country, and that toleration has been 
granted to Catholics as a favor. In some exceptional cases, 
State laws have discriminated against Catholics by refusing to 
them equal rights with other citizens. But these are incon- 
sistencies which will not be formally and explicitly justified by 
any publicists who are worthy of respect. Catholics assemble 
in churches on Sunday, hold councils, meet in congresses, pos- 
sess property devoted to sacred purposes, organize ecclesiastical 
provinces, dioceses, and parishes, precisely as Episcopalians, Pres- 
byterians, and Methodists do similar acts, in the exercise of 
rights which they possess equally with others, under the protection 
of the law. Ecclesiastical seminaries are established for the edu- 
cation of the clergy. Candidates for admission can be required 
to furnish a collegiate diploma or to pass an examination which 
will be an equivalent, to pursue a fixed course of study, to pro- 
fess adherence to a prescribed creed, and to be approved by 
certain persons in authority, before they can receive ordination. 
Without the ordination deemed necessary they cannot officiate 
or be appointed to parishes. In the same manner that the 
qualifications for administering religious rites are determined in 
each ecclesiastical society, the conditions for partaking in these 
ordinances are determined. If children are to be confirmed and 

* English Men of Letters ; N. Y. : Harpers, Vol. -XL, " Locke," by Thomas Fowler, p. 19: 



1890.] CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. 807 

admitted to communion, the ecclesiastical authority has the 
same right to prescribe the instruction which they must receive, 
as it has in the case of candidates for orders. The moral obli- 
gation of parents to take due care of their children in respect to 
their temporal and spiritual interests, comes within the scope of 
pastoral instruction, and of the discipline which is exercised by 
admitting to the sacraments those who are ready to fulfil this 
obligation, and rejecting those who obstinately refuse to do so. 
It is one of the rights of conscience, that conscientious parents 
should be free to obey the instructions and admonitions of their 
pastors in regard to this, and every other moral and religious 
obligation. The protest against this plea of the rights of con- 
science, so far as I have been able to detect its reason, is: that 
the rule according to which Catholics are required to form their 
conscience is the authority of the church lodged in the hier- 
archy. The declaration of this rule by bishops and councils pos- 
sessing spiritual authority is represented as dictation, and is thus 
made obnoxious, especially so in the case of councils which 
represent not only a part of the church which lies within the 
national boundary, but those parts also which are situated in 
foreign countries. But most of all, on account of the suprem- 
acy in teaching and ruling of the Roman Pontiff, who is assidu- 
ously designated as "a foreign potentate." 

This kind of language is very misleading, and tends to con- 
fuse two perfectly distinct orders, the temporal and the spirit- 
ual, as well as two diverse objects of the exercise of spiritual 
power, a nation in its corporate capacity, and private individ- 
uals taken singly. The odium attaching to a claim of juris- 
diction in the temporal order is cast upon the claim of spirit- 
ual power by the use of ambiguous terms. That old phantom 
of a plot to subvert our republican constitution and national 
independence by subjugation under papal monarchy, has van- 
ished. Yet, the exercise of spiritual power in the domain of 
conscience and in respect to ethical matters, is made to appear 
as a dictation, which interferes with and demands the abdica- 
tion of national independence and sovereignty in the making 
and executing of laws concerning those temporal interests which 
by their nature fall under the control of ethical principles. If 
popes and councils demanded of the rulers and legislators and 
judges of our States and of the nation a formal recognition of 
the binding character of their decrees and instructions in re- 
spect to ethical matters, there would be reason in this con- 
tention. For such a demand would be equivalent to a demand 



808 CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. [Mar., 

that we should change our position in respect to religion, for- 
mally recognize, as a nation, Catholicism as the one true and 
divine religion, and make its moral doctrines and precepts the 
basis and rule of our political administration. 

In point of fact, the claim of Catholic authority on assent 
and obedience, is addressed only to the mind and will of indi- 
viduals, and reaches them only through their reason and con- 
science. The judgments of the church become the dictates of 
the consciences of the' individual members of the church, and as 
such come under the cognizance of our laws, not as the dicta- 
tions of an external, superior power, but as claiming under our 
own rule of justice the liberty of profession and practice. 

As a case in point : The bishop, clergy, and- faithful of a 
diocese have a right to have the decrees of a national or oecu- 
menical council, the dogmatic decrees and encyclicals of the 
Pope, and such like documents read in their churches, and other- 
wise published, without asking leave from any magistrate, and 
without any interference of any kind, from any persons whatsoever. 
Can any one pretend that these ecclesiastical tribunals, when 
they command the bishops and pastors to promulgate their de- 
crees, dictate to the sovereign people of the United States and 
their magistrates that they shall use their authority to secure the 
fulfilment of this command ? 

The commonwealth is bound to respect the conscience of its 
citizens, and it is none of its affair from what source and rule 
they derive the motives upon which their conscience is formed, 
provided that there is no collision between this operative rule 
and that which is embodied in the laws of the commonwealth. 
Dr. Mivart has described religion as " the sociology of intelli- 
gences." This is a wide definition, and it seems to me that it 
gives to religion a comprehension which includes much more 
than its strictly proper contents. It serves, however, very well 
the purpose of showing how very wide and universal is the re- 
gion of those influences which act on the individual, in the for- 
mation of the convictions, the judgments, the sentiments, which 
form his intellectual and moral character, from which arise those 
practical judgments respecting right and wrong which are called 
the dictates of conscience. Each one is, in this respect, affected 
by the past, the present, his own community, civilized Christen- 
dom, and humanity in general. He is not a product of spon- 
taneous generation, in these vital evolutions of his being, any 
more than he is in respect to his vital principle itself, i.e., his 
human nature. His liberty of thought, opinion, choice of the di- 



1890.] CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. 809 

rection in which he will exert his power of action, cannot be 
limited 'to' a mere development from within himself, or from 
within the environment of the particular social and political com- 
munity to which he belongs. In philosophy, science, literature, 
art, civilization, we are in the wide circle of the " sociology ot 
intelligences," citizens of Christendom and of the world. And, 
whether we will or no, we are irresistibly dominated over by- 
men, by classes of men, by books and works of art, by em- 
bodied principles and ideas, which are outside of our own little 
sphere of self- hood, and of the community and nation to which 
we belong. It is absurd to pretend to make a Bostonia-n, or a 
New Haven, or a New England, or even an American mould, 
into which the intelligent and moral nature of all the citizens 
of this republic are to be thrown and to come out as peculiar 
and similar specimens of a very superior humanity, like a set ot 
glass tumblers. Sanscrit, Hebrew, Greek, Latin, Mathematics, 
Astronomy, History, Poetry, Architecture, Music, are not New 
England or American inventions, and their laws have not been 
determined by a constitutional convention. Religion and morals 
are not of American origin, or identical with our political and 
social order. They are extra-national and extra-secular, like the 
atmosphere, the ocean, and the movements of the solar system. 

Christianity is a universal religion, and all who profess to be 
orthodox Christians must admit that its moral precepts are al- 
ways and everywhere binding. Supposing that God has made 
the teaching of the body of Catholic bishops and of their head 
the supreme rule of determining the Christian moral law, it is 
plain enough that no civil power can lawfully hinder Christians 
from obeying this rule. 

Our opponents will aver that this is a false supposition, and 
that the authority of popes and councils is usurped. But this is , 
a disputed question between us, which the state cannot decide. 
It neither acknowledges nor repudiates the Catholic rule of faith, 
but remains simply aloof and neutral. It cannot take cognizance 
of anything prescribed by this rule to its Catholic citizens, ex- 
cept as concrete matter within the political and social order 
wherein its own jurisdiction is situated. That is, it begins to 
take cognizance of some matter in regard to ' which the church 
instructs the conscience of her children, just as soon as they, in 
obedience to their instructed conscience, proceed to overt acts, 
which can be qualified as legal or illegal. The question is 
simply one which regards the extension which the state allows 
to the liberty of doing or omitting acts on the ground of what 
VOL. L 52 



8 1 o CA THOLIC AND A M ERIC A N E THICS. [ M a r. , 

conscience requires or forbids. This is not an unlimited ex- 
tension. Obscene rites, sacrificing children, assassination of 
magistrates, cannot be tolerated, on any plea of conscience or of 
divine inspiration. Many of the men who partook in the move- 
ment of secession were as intelligent, as upright, as sincere, as 
conscientious as any of those who were in the councils and the 
armies of the republic ; but the state made war upon and 
overcame them, without heeding their plea for liberty to secede. 
Therefore, the state has a standard and rule in morals, and en- 
forces obedience to it. It is, consequently, within and not with- 
out the" "sociology of intelligences." This is the same as saying 
that it not only has a religion, but is founded upon religion. 
The question is, What is that religion ? Some of the best au- 
thorities say that it is the Christian religion. If this contention 
be admitted, it cannot, nevertheless, be affirmed that any spe- 
cific form of Christian religion embodied in any visible society, 
or even that any sort of eclectic creed containing certain supposed 
essentials of Christianity as a revealed religion, is the formal 
and recognized religion of the state in our republic. The 
position taken by the state is that of acknowledged incompe- 
tency in spirituals. It neither affirms nor denies anything respecting 
the church, divine revelation, religious dogmas, or purely religi- 
ous precepts, derived from the revealed law of God, as such. Its 
religion is natural religion, in so far as this is a code of ethics, 
and the animating form of political and social order. It is 
Christian in so far as its code of ethics is historically derived 
from the common law of Christendom. Inasmuch as religious 
societies agree with the state in proclaiming the same ethical 
code, they are in union with it. If the moral code of any 
society goes beyond that of the state, but does not go against 
it, there is no collision, and liberty of conscience can have full 
play. If there is opposition between the two, the state must 
decide for itself whether or no it shall tolerate what is contrary 
to its maxims, as, for instance, the refusal of Quakers to bear 
arms. 

If the religion of the state is supposed to go further, and to 
include the recognition of God, his sovereignty and providence, 
and the derivation of political power from him, or other matter 
contained in the Christian religion, I think that these must all 
likewise be referred to natural religion. The convictions, beliefs, 
sentiments, and customs of the European colonists of the terri- 
tory of our republic, and of their descendants, had been formed 
in that civilization which was created by Christianity. That 



1890.] CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN Ernies. - 811 

part of the Catholic tradition which survived in them was the 
rule of their general and common conscience, which has expressed 
itself in our laws. The books of the Bible which they received 
with the other parts of the Christian tradition retained by them, 
have had heretofore, and still continue to exercise, a powerful 
influence, especially over all who are of English and Scotch 
origin. In a certain sense, therefore, it is true that Christianity 
is the law of the land, as eminent statesmen and jurists have 
declared. Nevertheless, I think it is natural religion as contained 
in Christianity, and as resting on a rational basis, and not re- 
vealed truth and law, as revealed, and as demanding the assent 
of faith, which is implicitly or explicitly affirmed in our laws. 
The recognition of Sunday, for instance, as the Christian Sab- 
bath, appears to me not to be founded on an express acknowl- 
edgment of a divine law, ' but on respect for a tradition and 
custom which is historical and generally held sacred, is in con- 
formity with the dictates of natural religion, and is beneficial in 
many ways to the moral and physical interests of the commu- 
nity. 

Mr. Gladstone gives utterance, as I conceive his intention, to 
the same idea which I have briefly expressed, in his own pecu- 
liarly dignified and impressive manner: 

" How will the majestic figure, about to become the largest and most 
powerful on the stage of the world's history, make use of his power? Will it 
be instinct with moral life in proportion to its material strength ? Will he up- 
hold and propagate the Christian tradition with that surpassing energy which 
marks him in all the ordinary pursuits of life ? Will he maintain with a high 
hand an unfaltering reverence for that law of nature which is anterior to the 
Gospel, and supplies the standard to which it appeals, the very foundation on 
which it is built up? . . . May heaven avert every darker omen, and grant 
that the latest and largest growth of the great Christian civilization shall also 
be the brightest and the best ! " * 

Our friends of the opposition will assuredly join us in a hearty 
Amen to the prayer of the great English statesman. 

But as to the way of working for the attainment of this 
result ! Must there be such a radical and complete opposition 
between us, in respect to the fundamental ethics of the civiliza- 
tion which we agree to call Christian, that we can only contend 
.together in irreconcilable warfare over the principles and methods 
of education ? That is, coming closer to the point at issue, is 
there anything in the general Catholic conscience, instructed and 
formed under the spiritual authority of the church, which must 

* North American Review, January, 1890, pp. 26, 27. The italics are mine. 



8i2 . CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. [Mar., 

needs bring it into opposition, in the domain of political and 
social ethics, with the principles and maxims in respect to 
religion and morals explicitly or implicitly contained in the letter 
and spirit of our laws? I think not. If the discussion could be 
kept on the ground of principles, within the domain of rational, 
candid argument, it would -be easy to prove this point, and to 
show that there is nothing formidable to the country from the 
point of view of non-Catholics, in any possible extension ot 
Catholicism. But, unfortunately, the discussion is embarrassed 
by the diversion into particular, personal, and imaginary issues 
and side controversies, which raise a dust of prejudice and passion. 

The claims of Italians to superiority and primacy in the world, 
the definition of papal infallibility, the ambitious designs of the 
Roman court and its devoted adherents in all nations, the power 
of the Jesuits and their artful, far-reaching aims at spiritual domi- 
nation, the conspiracy to restore medievalism on the ruins ot 
modern civilization and liberty; these are the notes sounded 
from the trumpet, and struck as a tocsin of alarm. The educa- 
tion of American youth in Catholic schools threatens detriment to 
the republic, because it will train up a large body of American 
citizens owning allegiance to a foreign power, which is paramount 
to the allegiance due to their country. This is the upshot of 
the contention. A foreign power, i.e., the papal power, has 
been raised to its acme by, the Vatican Council through the 
influence of the Jesuits. They are dominant in the Roman 
court, and will control the education given in the Catholic 
schools in the United States. The effect of this education will 
be to produce a great mass of voters, servile subjects of a 
foreign and antagonistic power, which aims to obtain, through 
them, domination over our republic, to the ruin of its true and 
genuine civilization. So the alarmists declaim. 

In this way the controversy is turned into an issue in which 
the assertion of Mr. Gladstone that the Jesuits are " the deadliest 
foes that mental and moral liberty have ever known " becomes 
the burning question in dispute. By these polemical tactics our 
opponents are able to preserve an appearance of liberality 
toward Catholicism and Catholics in general, to disavow hostility 
toward the Catholic religion as such, and to set up something 
distinct and separable from it, under such names as " Vatican- 
ism," " Ultramontanism," " Jesuitism," and the like, as the target 
of their polemical rifles. 

They have a wide-spread and violent prejudice against the 
Jesuits to appeal to. And they contrive to make it appear that 






1890.] CA T IIO LIC AND A ME RICA N E THICS. 8 I 3 

the most enlightened Catholic sentiment is in sympathy with them. 
Clement XIV., Charles Carroll, Dr. Brownson, and Father Hecker, 
the Church of France, the lay-Catholics of England, are grouped 
by Mr. Jay in a perspective which puts them in line with his 
own allies in opposition to the Jesuits, so as to fortify his posi- 
tion against Catholic schools. 

There is no parallel to the merciless attack which has been 
made against the Society of Jesus, except the war waged against 
the Knights of the Temple by Philip the Fair. In this last 
affair, whatever exaggeration, injustice, and cruelty many im- 
partial judges may think are to be found in the accusation 
and condemnation of a once illustrious order, enough evidence 
of its gross degeneracy and of particular crimes by its members 
was brought to light to justify its suppression. And, in the case 
of the Jesuits, if one-tenth of the charges against them had been 
true, the facts would have been brought to light, and the society 
would not only have been suppressed for a time, but for ever, 
with the approbation " of the entire Catholic world. In point of 
fact, it has come out of this fire, not only unscathed but 
brightened. The extravagance and virulence of the assault on 
the Jesuits deprive it of all force and value for all those who 
will examine it fairly and calmly. There is no document which 
so completely establishes their innocence as the labored effort 
of Theiner to vindicate the decree of their suppression by Clement 
XIV. Mr. Jay considers that we ought to regard that act as 
an infallible judgment and condemnation of their maxims and 
methods by the Church of Rome. This is a misapprehension 
both of the law and the fact in the case. No Catholic looks on 
the brief Dominus ac Redemptor as infallible. It contains no 
judgment demanding universal assent and deciding finally any 
question pertaining to doctrine in the matter of faith or morals 
or in respect to dogmatic facts. It is a mere exercise of authority 
in a matter of discipline. It contains a recital of the reasons 
and motives urged by sovereigns in support of their demand for 
the suppression of the society, without any express approbation 
of the same, and, .as a concession to this demand, decrees the 
suppression of the society. The Pope did not act from his own 
free and deliberate judgment and choice sustained by the 
advice of his own proper counsellors, but yielded to the pressure 
unscrupulously applied by royal ministers who were among the 
worst men of their time. On the other hand, Pius VII. acted 
freely, deliberately, and with the approbation of the best men in-the 
Catholic Church, when he restored the society, to 'the immense 



8 14 CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS, [Mar., 

benefit of science and religion, as eminent non-Catholics have 
acknowledged. 

Nevertheless, Dr. Brownson did not like certain philosophical 
and theological opinions commonly current in the society. Ah ! 
this proves the danger to our youth from the Scientia Media. 
And Father Hecker, also, has his word on the subject, for which 
the interested reader is advised tc consult his book entitled 
The Church and tJie Age. 

The hidden significance ol their sayings had escaped our 
notice, but not the penetrating eye of Mr. Jay : 

"It must also be a source of profound satisfaction to the old- 
fashioned Catholics of America, who cherish American principles, 
and who have held with the illustrious prelate Pope Clement 
XIV., in his condemnation as scandalous of the doctrines and 
methods of the Jesuits, to find that such great authorities in the 
American Church as Brownson and Hecker have given new 
strength to the grave reasoning on which the venerable pontift 
condemned and dissolved the order for ever and ever."* 

This is like the travesty of a person's face in the back of a 
burnished spoon. I knew Dr. Brownson and Father Hecker 
well, and I declare on my word of honor that they do not 
belong to the company of the enemies of the Society of Jesus. 
What is really the purport of the passages in Father Hecker's 
book which are referred to in this connection? It is briefly this: 
that certain elements in Catholicism which are most completely 
developed in the Society of Jesus, and reduced to their ultimate 
distinctness of expression in the definition of papal infallibility, 
need to be supplemented at the present time by an equal and 
corresponding evolution of other elements. In few words, it was 
the principle of authority, the moral virtue of obedience, the 
strengthening of organic unity in the exterior discipline of the 
church, to which attention was chiefly directed during the past 
three centuries. At the present time, and in the actual condition 
of things, it is necessary to give attention chiefly to the intellec- 
tual, moral, and spiritual development of individuals, in all that 
belongs to them as distinct persons. I can .illustrate this by a 
parallel instance. 

The highest military authorities affirm that, in consequence of 
the changed condition of warfare, the old style of company and 
battalion drill no longer suffices to prepare troops for going into 
action. They cannot advance in company and battalion lines and 

* Sen pamphlet, Denominational Schools : A Discussion at the National Educational 
Association, Nashvill", Tenn., July, 1889, Mr. J.-y's article. 






I 890. ] CA THOLIC AND, A M ERIC AN E THICS. 8 I 5 

columns, but must advance in more open and scattered order, in 
small squads or singly. The company and field officers can- 
not, therefore, direct and control them in action so immediately' 
and efficiently as they could formerly, there is more responsi- 
bility thrown upon sergeants and private soldiers, and therefore 
a different kind ol drill and manoeuvres is required in the school of 
the soldier, as a preparation for the field. There is no censure 
pronounced on the military instructors' or the system of drill of 
the past, as if they were the cause of unfitness in soldiers for 
modern warfare without a different training. Nor is there any call 
for the dismissal of all officers and the appointment of an entirely 
new set, because changes in drill and instruction are advisable. 

Just so in regard to Father Hecker's contention concerning the 
policy and methods of the church and the Jesuits. The un- 
fitness of European Catholics to play the part required of 
them in modern politics is ascribed by Father Hecker to the 
fact that they have been trained in a way which was suitable 
and necessary for another time and other circumstances. There 
is no censure expressed or implied in this statement. It amounts 
only to this : that the church cannot do everything at once. 
The time and circumstances having changed, it is now requisite 
that the church should put forth her energy in a new direction. 
Does it follow from this that the Jesuits are to be discarded 
and disowned, so as no longer to take an active and conspicuous 
part in education and other honorable works ? Is the society like 
Nelson's flag-ship, and are its members like those seamen who 
only know how to work a wooden sailing-ship, but cannot 
man an iron-clad ? It would not be fair to suppose that because 
they have certain methods of conducting missions and schools 
for Chinese and Indians, they must do precisely the same things 
at Innspruck or Georgetown. Let them be judged by their 
works, and by real knowledge of what they are and what they 
are doing at the present moment and among ourselves. We 
expect that a certain class of zealots will shut their eyes and 
ears to all truth and reason, and keep up the outcries which 
have been so long filling the air. But it is matter of regret, 
and awakens our compassion, when the most intelligent and 
noble-minded among our opponents show that they are still in 
the mist of prejudice. I wish they would read Liberatore's 
Ethics, and candidly consider whether the universal adoption of 
its principles and maxims could do any harm to Christendom or 
to any nation. Let them also visit Jesuit colleges, and see for 
themselves if their students are deficient in manliness or being 



8i6 CATHOLIC AND AMERICAN ETHICS. [Mar.. 

imbued with un-American principles. Let them make the ac- 
quaintance of the young scholastics who are in the course ot 
education as members of the order. I know something of these 
young men, some of whom are of the elite of our Catholic 
American youth, of the purest American descent. I affirm un- 
hesitatingly, that if their professors wished to instil into their 
minds un-American ideas, as they certainly do not wish to 
do, the undertaking would be morally impossible. 

It is not a fact, moreover, that the Jesuits controlled the 
Council of the Vatican, that they have a dominant influence in 
the Roman court, or that the Catholic schools in the United 
States, apart from their own colleges and parishes, are under 
their direction. They are one of the great orders in the church, 
and all the intellectual and moral power they possess is due 
to their ability, learning, zeal, and virtue. But they are not the 
church, any more than the fifth regiment of artillery is the 
United States army. Whatever questions or controversies may 
arise among ourselves concerning systems and methods or dis- 
tinct divisions in the clerical body, are our own affair, and can- 
not be justly involved in the general question of education, any 
more than the special methods followed at Harvard, Yale, Johns 
Hopkins, and Cornell Universities, or the particular doctrines 
taught in theological seminaries. The real question at issue is 
concerning the compatibility of the Catholic religion and the 
education of the Catholic youth in the United States,- under 
the direction of the church, with the ethics of our national 
institutions. 

I find that I have not been able to treat this question as 
fully as I had expected, within the limits of the present article, 
and I must therefore leave it in an unfinished state.* 

AUGUSTINE F. HEWIT. 



* I beg leave to call Mr. Jay's attention to an oversight in his quotation of the words 01 
Washington's reply to the address of congratulation offered to him in the name of the Catholic 
citizens of the United States. Mr. Jay writes that Washington recognized the assistance we re- 
ceived " from a nation in which the Roman Catholic faith, as defined by the Gallican Church, 
prevailed." The phrase, "as denned by the Gallican Church," is not found in Washington's 
letter, but is a gloss of Mr. Jay. It is inserted, however, in the citation under quotation marks, 
and although we do not impute any intention of practising deception to Mr. Jay, yet the effect 
oi his oversight is in fact to deceive unwary readers. Denominational Schools, etc., p. 54. 



1890.] A FLOWER-LINK. 817 



A FLOWER-LINK. 

ONCE on a time the Present, which 

The Past so oft subpoenas 
There strayed through England's midland shires 

One of the Oldbuck genus, 

Questioning grave and altar-tomb, 

And country-side tradition, 
For tidings of that by-gone world 

Where woman had no mission, 

And man's seemed chiefly to ride forth 

Equipped as knight erratic, 
Proving philanthropy in ways 

If genial, yet emphatic. 

One name he sought where Derby's Peak 

Reveals its upper glory, 
By ruined keep, by ancient hall, 

By moss-grown cloister hoary 

A name once blared from herald's trump 

By battlemented tower, 
A name that once the minstrel bold 

Had sung in lady's bower! 

It had been borne by gallant men 

In fields where English prowess 
Had kept at bay the paladins 

Of many an earlier Louis. 

No trace the antiquary found 

Of all this warlike pride; 
From abbey, castle, tower, and town 

The FiNDERNE name had died. 



Musing on Time's vicissitudes 

And the inefficacy 
Of mural brass or monument 

To eternize a race, he 



8i8 A FLOWER-LINK. [Mar., 

Came on a group of little girls 

Sedately binding posies 
Of flowers unrecognized by his 

Heraldic tomes and glosses. 

Their name the Antiquary asked, 

Careless of answer given ; 
Little kenned he of carols not 

From stone or marble riven ! 

One spoke, the tallest of the band, 

Her peasant shyness hinted 
By the slow flood of carmine which 

Her modest brown cheek tinted : 

" We call them Finderne's Flowers," she said, 

" For from the far Crusade he, 
The old 'Sir Geoffrey, brought them back, 
And gave them to his lady. 

"No; naught know I or if he died 

In peace or fell in war-land ; 
Only, if we could find his grave 
We'd weave for it our garland ! " 

Yes, there where garden-terrace had 

Crumbled to meadowy masses, 
The little pale Judean flower 

Grew among English grasses, 

Bearing along the centuries, 

Of tender love this token ; 
Guarding the name which but for it 

For ever were unspoken 

Gone with the days of lance and shield, 

Of battle-axe and curtal, 
Were it not made by the gentle deed 

And the gentle flower immortal ! 

M. A. C. 

NOTE. For the central fact of the above rhyming narration, see Sir Bernard Burke's 
Vicissitudes of Families. 



1890.] THE NUNS' CENTENARY. 819 



THE NUNS' CENTENARY. 

IN the year 1790 the National Assembly governed France, 
and on the I2th February it issued a decree declaring that all 
religious vows were abolished and all convents and monastic 
orders suppressed. This was one of the first blows levelled 
against religion, and almost the first step openly taken upon that 
declivity at whose foot lay the abyss of infidelity, of blasphemy, 
and of sacrilege. 

This persecution fell with peculiar bitterness upon the reli- 
gious women of France. Monks driven from their monasteries 
can fly into distant lands, disguise themselves, find various em- 
ployments. Nuns, and especially cloistered ones, and especially at 
the period of which we write, were helpless ; there were no rail- 
roads or steamboats by which they could quickly escape, and 
they had no knowledge of any language save their own. The 
decree came upon them like the shock of an earthquake which 
tore up the ground under their feet. Some of these poor ladies 
had the simplicity to appeal to the National Assembly. The 
Carmelites of France united in making the supplication. They 
might just as well have appealed to the wild beasts of the forests. 
They say in their appeal : " The most entire liberty presides over 
our vows, the most perfect equality reigns in our establishments. 
Deign, gentlemen, to inform yourselves of the life which is led 
in all the communities of our order, and do not allow your 
judgment to be biased either by the prejudices of the multitude 
or the apprehensions of humanity. The world is fond of pub- 
lishing that the only inhabitants of monasteries are victims slowly 
pining beneath a load of unavailing regret, but we protest, in the 
presence of God, that if true happiness exists upon- earth we en- 
joy it under the shadow of the sanctuary, and that if we had now 
once more to choose between the world and the cloister, there is 
not one of us who would not ratify her choice with even more 
joy than when her vows were first pronounced." Then follow 
some sentences comforting to the English, who have had in their 
turn to be ashamed of so much religious persecution practised by 
their own country : " You will not have forgotten, gentlemen, 
that when the Canadian provinces passed from the dominion of 
France under that of another power which professes a religion 
different from our own, not only did their new masters respect the 



820 THE NUNS' CENTENARY. [Mar., 

orders they found established there, but took them under their 
protection. May we not expect from the justice of a protecting 
Assembly that which our brethren and our sisters obtained from 
the generosity of a victorious people ? And after solemnly as- 
serting the liberty of man would you force us to believe that we 
are no longer free ? " 

An appeal to the Assembly was also made by the Poor Clares 
of Amiens, a supplication which almost makes us smile from its 
exceeding simplicity and its revelation of these poor nuns' perfect 
ignorance of the ways of the world and of what was passing around 
them. Their fear was not that they should be turned out of their 
convent (that seems never to have occurred to them), but that 
their precious heritage of holy poverty should be taken from 
them. They tell the Assembly that they have no revenues save 
from charity; "for three hundred and forty-five years that our 
monastery has been in existence, Divine Providence has always 
provided for our wants according to the austerity of our life and 
the simplicity of our condition," and they go on to implore the 
august National Assembly " not to give us any property or income, 
but to leave us in peace to the enjoyment of a state of holy 
poverty which it is our glory to profess." Poor ladies ! their fears 
on this head were quite unfounded ; the tyrants were not for giving 
but for taking away. 

The next attack upon the French nuns was the attempt to 
force upon them the ministrations of constitutional priests, who 
had taken the oath that rendered them schismatic. Had this 
been accepted, it is very probable that many of the convents 
would have been left in peace. But the nuns of France were 
true to their God, and in no instance was this offer entertained. 
We hear of a Visitation convent where the nuns had been 
deprived 'for two months of Mass and the sacraments. Then 
came the feast of their foundress, St. Jane Frances de Chantal, 
and a constitutional priest again offered his services. Their reply 
was short and clear : " We had rather never hear Mass again 
than assist at one said by an apostate." So the persecution in- 
creased in virulence. The nuns could not be made to yield, but 
they could be made to suffer. The spouses of Christ were 
destined to follow in the footsteps ot their Lord. The scourge 
preceded Calvary, and to flagellations of the most barbarous 
and -infamous kind these Christian virgins were submitted. Two 
of the Sisters of St. Vincent de Paul, one of them eighty years 
of age, died victims of the cruel scourging which they re- 
ceived on the I Qth of April, 1791. The Protestant Necker pro- 



1890.] THE NUNS' CENTENARY. 821 

tested against these horrors. After describing the good deeds of 
the Sisters of Charity, he says : " But you perhaps venture to 
believe that they will add the patient endurance of the indigni- 
ties which you inflict upon them to the innumerable sacrifices 
they have imposed upon themselves. Yes, they will do so ; 
even to that point their unimaginable virtue will extend." 

At Casoul, Sister Cassin, a nun twenty-two years of age, was 
stopped by a national guard. " Wretch," said he, " when are 
you coming to the parish church ? " " When my lawful pastor 
returns thither," was her reply ; " not before." He drew his 
sword with curses. " Sir," said the sister calmly, " give me a 
few minutes to recommend myself to God." She knelt down, 
and after a short prayer said: "I am ready; strike when you 
please ; may God forgive you, as I do." The wretched man was 
disarmed. He cried : " I was paid to kill one of you. We want 
a head to carry round to all your houses on a pike, and to see 
what intimidation will do, but I have not the heart to take 
yours." 

Forty-two nuns were thrown into prison at Orange. They im- 
mediately began to prepare for their final sacrifice by continued 
prayer, profound silence, and recollection. Although belonging 
to different communities, they lived in common like the early 
Christians. At eight o'clock every day they said together the 
prayers for Mass, the Litanies of the Saints, the prayers for 
Confession and Extreme Unction. Then they would make a 
spiritual Communion, renew their baptismal promises and religious 
vows. Some might be heard exclaiming: "Yes, I am a nun, and 
this is my greatest consolation. I thank thee, O Lord, for having 
vouchsafed me this grace ! " At nine o'clock so many prisoners 
were summoned to the so-called trial, always followed by execu- 
tion. There was a holy rivalry as to who should be first 
Those left behind continued to pray. Then were thousands o! 
Hail Marys addressed to Our Lady, then arose a concert ot 
unnumbered litanies, then were the words of Jesus on the cross 
prayed over and meditated upon again and again. When the 
roll of the drum announced that the victims of the day were 
being led to execution the recommendation for the departing 
soul was recited. By six P.M. all was over, and then those who 
had at least one night more to live had a sort of spiritual recre- 
ation expressing their joy for the victories that had been gained,, 
and chanting the Laudate with a foretaste of celestial joy. The 
gladness -with which these holy religious went to their martyrdom 
greatly served to encourage other condemned prisoners. On one 



822 THE NUNS' CENTENARY. [Mar., 

occasion they spent half an hour in prayer, with their arms ex- 
tended in the form of a cross. They were interceding for the 
father of a numerous family, who was strongly tempted to de- 
spair. Their prayers were granted, and they saw him die as a 
brave Christian should. "This has hindered us from saying our 
Vespers," said one. " Never mind, we will sing them in 
heaven." 

Sister Andrew was sad one day, saying : " I fear that God 
does hot think me worthy of martyrdom." Ere the sun set on 
the morrow she won her crown. Sister Bernard and Sister 
Justina had prayed for thirteen years to Our Lady that they 
might die on one of her feasts or on a Saturday. They were 
called to martyrdom on the feast of Our Lady of Mount Car- 
mel. One of them said : " What bliss ! I cannot support this 
excess of joy." 

"Who are you?" said one of the judges to Sister Teresa. 
" I am a daughter of the church," was her reply. " And who 
are you ? " he said to Sister Clare. "I am a nun," said she, 
" and will remain so till I die." Sister Gertrude woke up one 
morning weeping with joy. " I am in ecstasy," she said ; " I am 
sure I shall be called to-day." She was called and condemned. 
She then thanked her judges for the happiness which by their 
means she was to enjoy, and when she reached the guillotine 
she kissed it. Sister Pelagia, after her condemnation, took a box 
of bonbons out of her pocket and distributed them to all those 
who had been sentenced with her, saying: "These are my 
wedding sweetmeats." Sister Frances exclaimed: " What joy ! we 
are going to behold our Spouse." 

Sister Angela de Rocher was residing with her father when 
the others were arrested. She could have escaped. She asked 
the advice of her father, aged eighty. " Daughter," said he, 
" you can have no difficulty in concealing yourself; but first 
consider well in the sight of God whether by so doing you 
may not be interfering with his adorable designs upon you, 
in case he may have chosen you to be one of the victims des- 
tined to appease his wrath. I would say to you, as Mardochai 
said to Esther, you are not on the throne for yourself, but for 
your people." So Sister Angela joined the others, and she 'also 
thanked the judges who condemned her for giving her the hap- 
piness of going to the company of the angels. Some of the 
brutal soldiery who guarded the guillotine exclaimed : " Look 
at these wretches ; every one of them dies with a smite on her 
face." Of the forty-two nuns, thirty-two gained the crown of 



1890.] THE NUNS' CENTENARY. 823 

martyrdom, and the ten who remained lamented that they were 
not allowed to follow their companions to the marriage of the 
Bridegroom. For them the cry used in hideous mockery by the 
news-venders of Paris had a very real and deep meaning : " Be- 
hold those who have drawn a prize in the lottery of the holy 
guillotine ! " 

A hundred years have passed now since these Christian hero- 
ines won their crown, and the nuns of France are now wonder- 
ing whether somewhat of a similar fate awaits themselves. Per- 
haps the barbarous cruelty of the Terror could not be repeated, 
but there are many forms of more civilized torture in which 
the European apostles of liberty, equality, fraternity are adepts. 
America alone seems to have the power of interpreting these 
words in their true sense. To tear away the Sisters of Charity 
from their hospitals and the teaching orders from their schools 
is to scourge and torment in very truth. 

But the nuns of France were true to their mission in 1790, 
and their successors will not be less true in 1890. Through 
evil report and good report they will persevere. When some 
are worn out in the strife and go to rest, others will rise up 
and take their places, and will show, if bitter persecution should 
hereafter come, that now, as then, there are very many in poor, 
misguided France " of whom the world is not worthy." 

THE AUTHOR OF "TYBORNE." 



824 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 



TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 

MR. R. D. BLACKMORE'S latest story, Kit and Kitty (New 
York : Harper & Brothers), is a very charming piece of work 
so charming that it forces one to consider whether the common 
belief that Lorna Doone must for ever stand alone and un- 
approachable, as well by its author as by other novelists of the 
period, is, after all, more than a fond superstition. Not that the 
present fiction takes the higher imagination by anything like so 
powerful a hold as its great predecessor. Kitty Fairthorn, sweet 
as she is, stands as remote from Lorna's unique and lofty charm 
as the ideal dairy- maid from the ideal duchess, and Downy 
Bulwrag, though a remorseless ruffian, is by no means so con- 
vincing in his villainy as Carver Doone. But Kit himself, the 
loving and soft-hearted and forgiving, who stands compassionate 
above his deadly enemy and says truly : " I have been 
through ten times worse than death, and the lesson I have 
learned is mercy," is, on the whole, as pleasant a figure as one 
shall meet in the entire collection of contemporary fiction. True 
he is only a market-gardener, earning five shillings a week and 
his board from " Corny the topper," his close-fisted, wider-hearted 
uncle, and having no ambition beyond that of dwelling in peace 
with Kitty while he diligently brings his fruit and vegetables 
to their highest perfection. But that, or something like it, must 
have been Adam's bliss in Eden. The story could hardly be 
Mr. Blackmore's and not be rural, with its hero a delver and 
a lover of our mother earth. It is delightfully old-fashioned in 
its whole scheme and lay-out, and although the secret of 
Kitty's mysterious absence is, sufficiently well kept to baffle the 
most penetrating novel-reader, yet when it is divulged it turns 
out to be of a piece with the narrow simplicity of all the rest. 
Of course the book is not realistic in the sense in which that 
term is at present understood when applied to fiction. But it 
is real enough, so far as fidelity to a very simple and 
unsophisticated kind of human nature goes, and not the less 
so for being romantic, and guiltless of the analytic method 
with its characters, and wholly free from compromising situa- 
tions. It shares, moreover, in a marked degree one of the 
singular excellences of Lorna Doone in that it not merely 
bears well the difficult test of reperusal, but gives more pleas- 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 825 

ure on the second or third reading than on the first. One 
takes up a novel ordinarily for the stcry in the first place, and 
if that be entertaining, as its plot deepens or its action acceler- 
ates, all that is suspected as likely to be padding is extremely 
apt to be skipped. If the vast majority of readers never return 
to see what they may have missed, it must be owned that the 
vast majority of the novels would hardly repay any such pains. 
Every one remembers fictions, some of them famous ones, like 
Debit and Credit for instance, through whose cumbrous mass ot 
details nothing would induce him to wade again, and yet which 
live in the memory by reason of a single scene, like that 
between Fink and Leonora when the girl gives over fighting. 
When such books are named, they rise again out of the abyss 
of memory in virtue of a supremely vitalized page or two in 
which their writers have struck so hard on some always tense 
human chord that they produced a long vibration. But in their 
totality they may never have given a hearty pleasure, or, if they 
have, they are unable to reproduce it. It is not easy to catch 
the secret of the books and the authors whose charm for one is 
something like perennial. Why does every scrap of Thackeray, 
from a private letter, or a Roundabout paper, to such a scene 
as Colonel Newcome's passing, have an equally invincible at- 
traction for those of us who have neither risen nor as yet felt any 
desire to rise to the fashionable appreciation of those higher 
and finer things which, as Mr. Howells has just been telling us 
again, so many of his successors have achieved ? Why is it that 
Mr. Stevenson's undeniable witchery does not suggest a repe- 
rusal of his tales, and why, in picking up George Eliot once 
more, does her pedantic philosophizing and her artificial 
style repel more than the memory of an old-time pleasure has 
power to reattract? It is hard to say. Certainly, with floating 
reminiscences of Spring haven, Mary Ancrley, and Alice Lor- 
raine to base a doubt on, we should hesitate to recommend 
Mr. Blackmore's books as safely to be relied on as full of re- 
sources for a rainy day in the country or a long sailing 
voyage. But some of them may, as Lorna Doom may 
witness, and, in its more homely but equally pleasant fashion, 
so may Kit and Kitty. 

Still, no reader of the latter novel is likely to care much 
for it unless he is still capable of being interested in very 
primitive English rural life and can be charmed by the most 
innocent, pure, and honest sort of mutual love. There is not 
a line in it from end to end which could win for its writer such 
VOL. L. 53 



826 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 

praise as Miss Woolson's admirers agree in according to her 
capacity to express "passion." That is supposed to be her 
specialty among our native women authors, though Mrs. Amelie 
Rives Chanler must have been running her hard of late for 
supremacy. Curious ideas these ladies appear to entertain ot 
ideal wedded love! In Jupiter Lights (New York: Harper & 
Brothers) we have again, as in East Angels, two women, each 
desperately in love after Miss Woolson's fashion, either with a 
present, a past, or a prospective husband. They differ, also, as 
in the other novel, by the fact that one of them is guided 
wholly by her natural instincts, while the other, as she says in 
a great crisis of her passion, has " been brought up a stupid, 
good woman, and can't change though I wish I could ! " And 
again, in an access of jealousy aroused by a disreputable prede- 
cessor in the fancy of the man she loves, she soliloquizes : 

"I wish I were beautiful beyond words! I could be beautiful if I had 
everything; if nothing but the finest lace ever touched me, if I never raised my 
hand to do anything for myself, if I had only dainty and delicate and beautiful 
things about me, I should be beautiful I know I should. Bad women have- 
those things, they say j why haven't they the best of it? " 

We said just now that Miss Woolson's brace of heroines v/ere 
desperately in love after a fashion of which this author is one of 
the most prominent American exponents. Perhaps the fashion 
could not be more specifically described than by saying that the 
love it paints is what might be looked for as the crown and 
flower of sentiment in a race which really had evolved from the 
beasts in the most radical, thorough-going Darwinian way not 
alone more graceful apes with a tendency to becoming dress,. 
but with moral and spiritual characteristics differing from those 
of their arboreal ancestors in degree only, not in kind. To our 
mind there is something shameless and offensive in the way in 
which Miss Woolson conceives and describes her women. Now 
and then there is a touch, as in her description of Cicely on 
page 20, when, as if by an irresistible necessity laid upon her, 
she achieves in one stroke the same effect over which a 
Frenchman would spend a page, defending himself from moral 
censure on the ground that only men are supposed to read 
him. Miss Woolson's hand is lighter, her malice, let us hope, 
not more than half so deliberate, but the effect she produces is 
about the same. And yet not the same, but even more dis- 
pleasing, since it proceeds from a woman, reputable, as w*e all 
know, who is of her own choice devoting herself to the analy- 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 827 

sis of other women technically pure, discreet, and edifying mem- 
bers of society surely a society developed on Spencerian lines 
from a Darwinian foundation. Perhaps it is our philosophy 
which is at fault, or our ideals. Certainly these headstrong 
creatures, overmastered by passion for men who may be drunk- 
ards, licentious, unfaithful, cruel, despotic without diminishing by 
a feather's weight the power of their attraction over their femi- 
nine adorers, are not types of any sentiment which has ever 
been recognized as Christian. Perhaps Miss Woolson does not 
intend them to be such it is only the old maids and the par- 
sons in her stories who now and then drop into piety. Listen 
to this conversation between Eve Bruce and her sister-in-law, 
Cicely Morrison. Cicely had been for six months the widow ot 
Eve's brother, who had loved her, but without return. Then she 
married Ferdie Morrison, whom Eve shot in order to protect 
Cicely and her child from being murdered by him in one of his 
periodical drunken rages. Ferdie dies, but not, as Eve supposes, 
through the effects of the wound she inflicted. Meanwhile Eve 
has fallen irrevocably in love with Ferdie's half-brother, Paul, 
who, after a while, returns her passion. But when the news of 
Ferdie's death comes, Eve knows that she must never marry 
Paul. She has told Cicely that she killed Ferdie, and Cicely 
rewards her for saving her own life and her baby's by a hatred 
which has some intermittent gusts of pity when a fellow-feeling 
makes her realize what Eve must suffer in abandoning Paul. 
Besides, Eve has just added to Cicely's obligations by saving 
the child's life a second time. She has been telling the mother 
that it was when she was almost in despair lest the boy should 
be drowned before she could reach him that she had uttered 
this prayer : " Oh ! let me save him, and I'll give up everything." 
Cicely, who has a good deal of the cat about her, and never 
can resist giving an easy scratch, answers : 

" ' And supposing that nothing had happened to Jack, and that I had not 
got back my senses, how could you even then have married Paul, Eve Bruce ? 
let him take as his wife a woman who did what you did ?' 

" 'What I did was not wrong,' said Eve, rising, a spot of red in each cheek. 
She looked down upon little Cicely. ' It was not wrong,' she repeated, firmly. 

" Blood for blood' ? " quoted Cicely with another jeer. 

" 'Yes, that is what Paul said,' Eve answered. And she sank down again, 
her face in her hands. 

" ' You say you have given him up ; are you going to tell him the reason why 
you do it ? ' pursued Cicely, with curiosity. 

" 'How can I?' 

" 'Well, it would keep him from pursuing you if he does pursue.' 



828 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 

** ' I don't want him to stop ! ' 

" ' Oh ! you're not in earnest, then ; you are going to marry him, after all? 
See here, Eve, I'll be good; I'll never tell him, I'll promise.' 

" ' No,' said Eve, letting her hands fall ; ' I gave him up when I said, " If 
I can only save baby ! " ' Her face had grown white again, her voice dull. 

"'What are you afraid of? Hell? At least you would have had Paul 
here, /should care more for that than for anything else.' 

" ' We're alike,' said Eve. 

" 'If we are, do it, then ; I should. It's a muddle, but that is the best way 
out of it.' 

" ' You don't understand,' Eve replied. ' What I'm afraid of is Paul 
himself.' 

" 'When he finds out?' 

" 'Yes.' 

" ' I told you I wouldn't tell.' 

" ' Oh ! any time; after death in the next world.' 

" ' You believe in the next world, then ? ' 

" 'Yes.' 

"'Well, I should take all the happiness I could get in this,' remarked 
Cicely. 

" ' I care for it more than you do more than you do ! ' said Eve, passion- 
ately. 

" Cicely gave a laugh of pure incredulity. 

" ' But I cannot face it his finding out,' Eve concluded." 

Eve runs away when it turns out that Paul considers that 
in firing at Ferdie she did what was under the circumstances a 
noble and heroic act, and is determined to marry her in spite 
of herself. She would be overjoyed to marry him, but there is 
that terrible future life to be faced. Some day, ages from now, 
perhaps, but still in a time through which her own love will 
always have increased, Paul will say to himself: ''She shot my 
brother, and I loved him," and he will grow cold to her. So 
she escapes, and in sixteen days from that on which she fled 
from Georgia, Paul discovers her* in a convent in North Italy. By 
some hocus-pocus of which only novelists know the secret, Eve 
Bruce has during this brief interval passed over from her variety 
of Protestantism to Catholicism, and is probably on her way to 
become a nun. But Paul, when he cannot find entrance by persua- 
sion, knocks down a priest, steps over his prostrate body into 
the interior of the convent, " opens doors at random," and to 
the superior, who remarks, " You'll hardly knock down a woman, 
I suppose?" answers, "Forty, if necessary." He comes to tell 
Eve that it was not of the wound she inflicted that his brother 
died. Finally the superior quietly opens a door : 

" ' No one has ever wished to prevent your entrance,' she said. ' Your 
violence has been unnecessary the violence of a boor. ' 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 829 

" Paul laughed in her face. There was no one in the room. But there was a 
second door. He opened it. And took Eve in his arms." 

Whereupon Miss Woolson's latest version of love between " man 
and woman when they love their best " abruptly ends. It is not 
inspiriting, to say the very best that one can say about it. It is 
suggestive, though, to s^ee how naively she accepts the conclusion 
that in this kind of love it is only a woman who can be counted 
on for a unique and faithful passion. 

From the New York publishing house of Worthington Co. 
we have received another of Mrs. J. W. Davis' translations from 
the German of W. Heimburg, Magdalen's Fortunes ; also a 
version by Edward Wakefield of Francois Coppee's Henriette ; 
or, a Corsican Mother. The Heimburg resembles all its prede- 
cessors in being wholesomely romantic and innocently entertain- 
ing, but it does not t call for special comment. The Coppee is 
beautifully told and painfully true to human nature under certain 
artificial conditions, but it is pernicious, and should be kept out 
of the way of young readers. 

Miss Mary Catherine Crowley's second volume of stories for 
children, Happy- Go- Lucky (New York: D. & J. Sadlier & Co.), 
is an improvement on the first one. It is pleasant to learn 
that Miss Crowley not only received ample recognition from the 
Catholic press, but found a ready market for Merry Hearts and 
True, and saw it speedily pass beyond the first edition. We 
hope that even greater success may attend this second venture. 
The stories are all interesting and well told, but is there not 
a slight hitch in the dialect employed by the ragamuffins ? 
Did any one ever hear a boy say " ter " for "to" in just such 
connections as Terry does ? "I don't want ter," everybody 
knows, but "Anyhow, the time I am goin' ter tell yer about, I 
took it ter Mrs. Moore ter keep for me," sounds suspiciously 
difficult in point of pronunciation, especially if euphony is what 
is aimed at by the untaught ear and tongue, as one naturally 
inclines to believe. Happy- Go-Lucky shows real pathetic power, 
and " Ned's Base-Ball Club " an eye more observant than sym- 
pathetic for the weaknesses of half-grown boys. There is little to 
choose between the half-dozen stories which compose the vouime 
in point of merit or attractiveness. All are pleasingly told and 
excellent in intention. 

Linda's Task ; or, The Debt of Honor (New York : Catholic 
Publication Society Co.) is another pleasant book for young 
readers. It is translated from the French of some unknown 
author by Sister Mary Fidelis of some unnamed religious 



830 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 

community. Linda, who has a truly French sense of the bind- 
ing nature of money obligations, undertakes, while still a child, 
to clear away the burden of debt her father left behind him 
when dying. With an old uncle who writes archaeological articles 
for French magazines, she settles down in Paris after her studies 
are completed, to earn her living and lay aside something yearly 
for the creditors. How she prospered, how she had her little 
romance, and ended by paying the debt of honor and becoming a 
happy wife, is told at no great length but with a certain charm ol 
simplicity in this pretty volume. 

Legend Laymonc, a poem by M. B. M. Toland (Philadelphia : J. 
B. Lippincott Company), is beautifully printed on thick paper, beau- 
tifully bound, and beautifully illustrated with full-page photogravures 
from drawings made by W. H. Gibson, W. T. Richards, Bolton Jones, 
F. S. Church, H. S. Mowbray, and other artists of high reputation, 
as well as by certain decorations, most of which are fine, mod- 
elled by John J. Boyle. But the poem on which so much pains 
have been spent seems little worthy of them. It is written in 
jerky, unmusical stanzas of which the following, taken at random, 
afford a good enough sample: 

" Where sentinels silent, like guards in command 
Tall cacti, 
Stiff, stately 
Impressively stand ; 

11 Where murmuring brooklets, with sallying sweep, 
Meander 
And wander 
Through wild dingles deep." 

There may be worse quatrains than these in the Legend 
Laymone, but we find none that are very much better. 

Georg Ebers' latest novel, completed only last September 
although begun many years ago, is called Joshua, a Biblical 
Picture (New York : John W. Lovell Company). It forms the 
first number of the " Series of Foreign Literature " to be issued 
by this house under the competent editorial supervision of Mr. 
Edmund Gosse. It is an interesting novel, but not specifically 
Biblical," except in the fact that certain Scriptural characters 
take prominent parts in the action of the tale. Moses, Aaron, 
Hur, Miriam, Nun, Joshua, appear and reappear in the course of 
a drama beginning on the night of the Exodus from Egypt and 
ending before the Law was given from Mount Sinai. But these 






1 390.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 831 

personages bear no very striking likeness to those images of 
them which have been a part of the mental furniture of those of 
us to whom the Old Testament stories have always been famil- 
iar. It confuses one to find Miriam the prophetess represented 
as a young woman of thirty, passionately in love with Joshua, 
when one remembers that at the time of the Exodus Aaron was 
eighty-three and Moses eighty. Of course Jochabed, their 
mother, may have had other daughters besides that unnamed 
one who carried Moses to the Nile and watched him in his 
cradle of bulrushes, but it is she who has usually been identified 
with Miriam. In Ebers' tale, it is to Miriam that Joshua owes 
the changing of his name, while Scripture assigns it to Moses 
himself. But this is one of those minor liberties permitted to 
the historical novelist in search of more dramatic material than 
the bare documents of his subject afford ; or it would be so 
if the documents in this instance were not hallowed by the 
peculiar veneration both of Christian and of Jew. The story 
of the flight from Egypt is told with much vividness. The 
interest centres, naturally, -upon the hero, Joshua; the great 
Lawgiver, perhaps because too imposing a figure to be handled 
easily, appears but seldom. Ebers, who professes to accept the 
Second Book of Moses as historical, plainly has his private 
reservations of belief with regard to portions of it. Thus, 
when the people, faint with thirst, murmur against Moses, 
Ebers paints with forcible details the anguish of the multitude, 
and their glad thanksgiving when they came to Horeb. But 
there is no striking of the rock, no miracle of any kind. 
They owe their relief not to the obedience of Moses to a 
divine command, but to the good memory of " the man of 
God who knew every rock and valley, every pasture and 
spring of the hills of Horeb better than any one, and who had 
again been the instrument of such blessing to his people." And 
again: "Mothers led their little ones to the spring to show 
them the spot where Moses with his staff had pointed out the 
spring bubbling through the rift in the granite. . . . None 
doubted that they here beheld the result of a great miracle." 

Joshua is described as a captain in Pharaoh's army. He has 
been, if not estranged from the religion of his people, yet accus- 
tomed to regard the worship of the God of Israel as almost 
identical with that paid by the initiated among the Egyptians 
to " the only god, who revealed himself in the world, who was 
co -existent and co-equal with the universe, immanent in all cre- 
ation, not merely as life exists in the body of man, but as being 



832 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 

himself the sum total of created things." The flight ot his people 
displeases him. He is high in favor at court, and at the solici- 
tation of Pharaoh and his queen, bowed down in anguish at the 
loss of their first-born, he undertakes to follow the Hebrews and 
communicate to Moses and their other leaders the news of the 
great advantages which will be granted them if they will return. 
All his own hopes and ambitions centre upon that return. With his 
own people he has almost nothing in common. " They were now 
as alien to him as the Libyans against whom he had taken the 
field." He feels that the bereaved Egyptians have been " the 
victims of ill-usage," " bereft by Moses' curse of thousands of 
precious lives." Still, two strong feelings bind him to his race 
filial affection for Nun, and love for Miriam, the sister of Moses. 
He follows the fugitives, therefore, with his messages from Pha- 
raoh. Then Miriam undeceives him. She shows him that the 
God of his fathers is the only God, and that he must cast in his 
lot with his people. And when she finds that his love for her is. 
greater than his fidelity to his race, or his belief in the leader- 
ship of Moses, in a burst of heroic sacrifice she refuses herself to 
him and binds herself in marriage to the aged Hur. Joshua, 
too, receives an uplifting of soul, in which is mingled a slight 
feeling of relief for his escape from an unwomanly woman. He 
throws in his fortunes with the Hebrews and becomes the right 
hand of Moses. 

There is a good deal of picturesque description in the novel. 
The journey to the mines to which Joshua is condemned when, 
faithful to his oath to Pharaoh, he returns to tell him the re- 
sult of his embassy, is particularly well done. So, too, the cross- 
ing of the Red Sea and the engulfing of the Egyptian host is 
drawn with a masterly hand, although there is neither a "cloud 
by day" nor "a pillar of fire by night" in Ebers' rendering ot 
the scene. Altogether, the novel, merely as such, is powerful 
and well worth reading. Still, it forces a contrast with the ma- 
jestic reticence and simplicity of Scripture which cannot but be 
to its disadvantage. 

From J. G. Cupples Company (Boston) comes a curiously 
bound and illustrated novel by E. L. Mason, called Hiero-Salein : 
The Vision of Peace, Its contents are not less unique than its 
cover. The author, whose sex it is hard to guess at whether 
man-woman like the hero, Daniel Heem, or woman-man like 
the heroine, Althea Eloi further describes the book as a "fiction 
founded on ideals which are grounded in the Real, that is greater 
than the greatest of all human Ideals." The flaming red cover of- 



1890.] TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. 833 

the book bears what Daniel presents to Althea as " the nuptial 
diagram " a right-angled triangle with squares described on 
each of its sides one being devoted to the " life results of Miss 
Eloi," one to those of Daniel Heem, and that on the hypothe- 
nuse presumably to those of their progeny. The Eloi-Heems 
are to start a new era for the race. As Daniel says to old Mrs.. 
Eloi when pleading for Althea's hand, "The name of Eloi 
blended with Heem, and placed first for euphony, gives the name 
Eloi-Heem, or Eloihim, Gods." The book, though very long, is 
more thoroughly packed with absurdities than one can well 
imagine capable of being compressed into its five hundred pages. 
Nevertheless occasional gleams of sanity, and what would not 
improbably turn out to be a good idea or a profitable suggestion, 
are not wholly lacking in it. The author has crammed his, or 
her, or possibly its head (the seed-thought of the book, we 
should explain, in excuse for the last pronoun, is the possi- 
bility and probability of a New Jerusalem on this earth, in which 
there shall be neither male nor female but a blending of both) 
with more theosophy, Buddhism, and matters of that sort than it 
was originally made to hold. But there is no harm in the book,, 
chiefly by reason of its pure absurdity. Except by the author 
and the proof-reader, it is probable that it never has and never 
will be read in its entirety. In fact, there is too much reason to 
believe that even the latter of these has disgracefully and often 
shirked his toilsome duty. 

Feet of Clay (New York : Dodd, Mead & Co.) is a pleasant 
story in Mrs. Amelia E. Barr's best vein. The scene is laid in 
the Isle of Man, and much of the interest of the tale arises 
from the certainly very taking way in which the family of the 
Manx fisherman, Ruthie Clucas, is described. Bella is by all 
odds the best figure in the book. The proud, " iggrint and 
poor" descendant of the old sea-rovers, as self-respecting as 
if her pure blood and ancient lineage had brought her some 
more tangible benefit than a life of hard labor, the position of 
an inferior, and the deepest insult a woman can receive from 
the man she loves, is drawn with a free and sympathetic 
hand. Mrs. Barr shows a greater respect for her sex than 
most of the younger women who to-day rush into print with what 
they take to be their hearts "upon their sleeves." Bella is very 
fine in her treatment of that cad, George Pennington, for whom, 
nevertheless, she had felt a pure woman's utmost love. As for 
Pennington himself, he seems made pretty much all of clay. Mrs. 
Barr is seldom so cordial with her men as with her women, as,. 



834 TALK ABOUT NEW BOOKS. [Mar., 

perhaps, might be expected. A Cicely Morrison, a Margaret 
Harold could by no possibility enter into her conception of 
what either a loving wife or a self-respecting one might be 
expected to do or to suffer. In Mrs. Pennington she has 
given us a brief study of a woman who has had to endure 
the shame of having the father of her children and the lover 
of her youth condemned to penal servitude. The mother alone 
survives in her when the poor fellow comes back, not only a 
reformed man but a hero of paternal love. He has shamed 
her. If she so far overcomes her loathing as to call him 
by his name and touch his hand for once, it is only 
that she may buy his silence and his absence by the sacri- 
fice. Still there is nature in that, too, one must admit. The 
returned convict is so pathetically dealt with that his spotless 
wife and daughter and ne'er-do-weel son seem but doubtfully 
worth the price he pays for the redemption of the latter. 
The elder Pennington had forged the name of his best friend, 
who caused him to be sent to Australia for twenty-five years. 
Just before he returns his son has put himself into a precisely 
similar predicament, the new victim being the son of the old one. 
But the younger Penrith is more merciful than his father. He 
forgives George while dropping his acquaintance. It is during 
the interval in which his mother is paying these and other debts 
that George makes false love to Bella Clucas. After the convict 
sees and is banished by his wife, he becomes a sort of humble 
guardian angel to his son. Somehow he has honestly amassed a 
good deal of money, and understanding his son's temptations, he 
tries to avert danger by. supplying him liberally with funds. 
But George is a spendthrift who would not require much time 
nor any considerable tax on his ingenuity to empty the Bank of 
England. He forges again, this time the name of his sister's 
husband. To save him his father assumes the guilt, is sent to 
Dartmoor, and dies there. It is only oH his death-bed that he 
becomes known to George under his true character. George has 
been already consumed with remorse; now he is almost in de- 
spair. He goes to the Crimea with his regiment, a repentant but 
not yet a forgiven man. A supernatural intimation of pardon is 
given him on the eve of a battle. He is desperately but not 
fatally wounded and lives to marry and be happy, Mrs. Barr 
leaving her readers to conclude that either his "feet of clay" 
have been changed to gold, or that he limps thereafter on stout 
crutches of true contrition. 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 835 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 

THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

ALL COMMUNICATIONS RELATING TO READING CIRCLES, LISTS OF BOOKS, ETC., SHOULD 
BE ADDRESSED TO THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION, NO. 415 WEST FIFTY-NINTH 
STREET, NEW YORK CITY 

Favorable reports have reached us from many sources indicating that the 
movement brought into prominence by our Reading Union is productive ot 
good results. We have not attempted to establish a dead-level uniformity 
among Catholic Reading Circles, believing that each Circle should preserve its 
own autonomy and endeavor to consult the best interests of its own members. 
We are pleased to notice the individual characteristics fostered by this policy. 
The general principles upon which the Columbian Reading Union is based per- 
mit an agreeable diversity in the practical plans selected for different localities. 
Provided something definite is done on behalf of Catholic literature, profitable 
work can be performed by allowing individual members of Reading Circles to 
choose magazine articles relating to events, to persons conspicuous for notable 
achievements, and to prominent institutions devoted to educational and charit- 
able efforts, which represent the active forces of Christian civilization. Even 
where a definite course of reading has been selected, it seems advisable for each 
Circle to get at stated times some information on current literature. 

* 

* * 

The "Catholic Fortnightly Reading Circle," of Buffalo, N. Y., is an- 
nounced as a branch of the Columbian Reading Union. From our knowledge 
of the persons associated together as its members, we have no doubt of its 
present and future progress. We extend to it our best wishes for success. At a 
recent meeting two articles were read from THE CATHOLIC WORLD, " The Egyp- 
tian Writings " and " The Stones Shall Cry Out," which were afterwards informally 
discussed, with allusions to the lectures by Miss Amelia B. Edwards on the buried 
cities and art treasures of ancient Egypt. We shall watch with interest the de- 
velopment of the plan adopted for the "Catholic Fortnightly Reading Circle." 
It seems to us particularly well suited to those personally qualified to read and 
discuss the merits of the best productions of contemporary authors. The officers 
of the Circle are : Mrs. John McManus, president ; Miss Matilda E. Karnes, 
vice-president ; Miss Mary E. Gibbons, corresponding secretary ; Miss Joseph- 
ine Greenough, recording secretary; and Miss Mary Lynch, treasurer. 

* 

* * 

In reply to a correspondent, we may state that our Reading Union has found 
many friends on the Pacific Coast. Several of their letters have been published. 
One letter from Gilroy, CaL, entitled to prominent consideration, was written by 
Miss M. A. Fitzgerald, who has won the laurels of authorship by a volume of 
poems which we commend to the notice of our readers. We have received also 
a marked copy of the Catholic News of San Francisco, containing a very favor- 
able notice here quoted : 

From the San Francisco Catholic News, 

"Practical results are bound to follow the formation of Reading Circles among 
Catholics. The Columbian Reading Union, under the management of the 
Paulist Fathers, who believe in carrying on a literary mission, is one which we, 
with others, believe will do much towards making converts and developing in 



836 WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS, [Mar , 

many Catholics a greater love for good literature. The Union is intended to be 
a useful auxiliary to the Catholic reading public. It will endeavor to counteract, 
wherever prevalent, the indifference shown towards Catholic literature; to sug- 
gest ways and means of acquiring a better knowledge of standard authors, and 
especially of our Catholic writers, and to secure a larger representation of their 
works on the shelves of public libraries. It will aim to do this by practical meth- 
ods of co-operation. 

"THE CATHOLIC WORLD, that great and excellent magazine published in 
New York, and whose editor is in charge of the Columbian Reading Union, was 
the first to discuss the question of Reading Circles among Catholics. The work 
it started out to accomplish is bearing good fruit, for in a recent letter that we 
are in receipt of from headquarters we learn that, from the evidence gathered by 
an extensive correspondence by the Union, the projectors are convinced that a 
great many of our young people will gladly accept guidance in their choice of 
reading. We hope to see soon several Circles formed in this city and Oakland." 

* 
* * 

The Catholic Columbian has given prominence to an admirable paper on 
" Reading Unions," which will be found very useful to all who can appreciate a 
good outline plan for a Reading Circle. We are opposed to the spirit which 
would dictate by rule to each officer and member. As these Reading Circles, 
which we hope to see formed everywhere, are voluntary associations, let there be 
a large margin allowed for individual taste, and as few rules as possible. One ot 
the best Circles known to us has existed over three years without a constitution 
or by-laws. It is very important, however, for each Circle to have a good sum- 
mary of directions, suggestions, and conditions of membership. The writer, who 
takes the signature " Josephus," has shown excellent judgment and skill in the 
summary which we quote. It is all the more acceptable to us as it contains many 
phrases which we recognize as our own. 

From the Catholic Columbian. 

READING UNIONS SOME SUGGESTIONS FOR THE FORMATION OF A CATHOLIC LITERARY 

CIRCLE. 

'' In these times of great literary activity few persons are able to keep up 
with the productions of many of even the best authors. The purchase of any 
considerable proportion of the new books constantly appearing is a drain upon 
the resources to which few persons and few public libraries are able or willing 
to submit. 

"Again, the number of books published annually is so great that few per- 
sons are able to select those which are suitable from a Catholic standpoint. What 
to read is a question of real difficulty to many. With the varied character of tho 
literary production, guidance in the selection of reading matter is of the utmost 
importance. Life is not long enough to allow time to read all the books that are 
printed, therefore it is advisable to adopt some plan by which the best among 
them can be secured. 

" To meet the want arising from such a state of affairs the Reading Circle 
has been devised, and it is but just to say that it is the best method yet suggested 
for the purpose. By means of an organization of this sort a constant supply of 
the latest and the best books can be had, at a very small expense to. each mem- 
ber. In fact, there is no method by which a larger literary return can be secured 
from a small investment. 

" The following plan has been adopted in certain localities : 

" The proper number of persons to form a club is about twenty. With less 
than that number the funds will hardly be sufficient, unless the dues be unusually 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. 837 

high ; with more it will take too long for books to pass around the whole circuit. 
As soon as the proper number of names has been secured, a meeting should be 
held, and the details of organization agreed upon. The club should hold semi- 
annual meetings, to discuss and indicate the sort of books that may be desired. 

" A presiding officer and a secretary, who should also act as librarian and 
treasurer, will ordinarily be sufficient to transact the business of the club. A 
committee of three on the purchase of books may be appointed. 

''The secretary, who also performs the duties of the librarian and treasurer, 
.should receive the new books and prepare them for circulation by covering, and 
pasting in the list of members ; should start them on their journey through the 
club ; receive them after they have been around, and keep them, subject to the 
order of the club. He should keep a list of the books and of the dates when they 
were issued, so that the whereabouts of a book may be ascertained at any time. 
He should collect the dues and fines, and other moneys due the club, and dis- 
burse them upon the order of the club, keeping an account of his financial trans- 
actions. 

" Five dollars (perhaps less) per annum from each member will supply all the 
books that can be kept in circulation by a club of twenty persons. Half of the 
amount should be paid at each of the semi-annual meetings of the club. A fine 
of two or three cents per day should be levied for each'day that a book is retained 
by any member beyond the time allowed. 

" The list of names should be printed on a small slip with the rules at the 
head, so that the whole may be pasted inside the cover, in form something like 
the following : 

" BROWNSON READING CIRCLE. 

" Keep this book seven days, and then deliver to the next on the list, enter- 
ing opposite your name the date of receipt and delivery. For second reading it 
may be retained for two weeks. Three cents fine for each day it is retained be- 
yond the time allowed. 

" George Washington, received May i, delivered May 8 ; Andrew Jackson, 
received May 8, delivered May 15, second reading; Mrs. Q. Adams, received 
May 15, delivered May 22; Henry Clay, received May 22, delivered May 30, 
second reading ; Daniel Webster, received May 30. 

" The above list is as it would appear after the book in which it was fixed 
had gone partly around the circuit. It shows that Daniel Webster was the last 
to receive it, on May 30 ; that it passed along regularly, except in the case of 
Henry Clay, who retained it one day longer than the time allowed, and is there- 
fore indebted to the club in a fine of three cents. It also shows that Andrew 
Jackson and Henry Clay desire to read the book a second time, and it will there- 
fore, after it has passed through the whole list, be returned to them in the order 
of their names, after which it will be delivered to the secretary. For the sake of 
fairness, the first on the list should not always be the first to receive a new book, 
but each one in turn should be the first recipient. 

"There are three methods by which the books maybe disposed of at the 
end of the year : 

"i. To distribute them among the members, which maybe done by dividing 
into sets of nearly equal value, and then casting lots for choice. 

" 2. To dispose of them at auction at each annual meeting of the club, and 
use. the money so obtained to purchase books for use during the next year. 

"3. To form the nucleus of a circulating library by means of the books so 
remaining ; this method might be found highly useful in places where there is no 
such institution. 

" As soon as the Circle or club is formed, it should affiliate with the Colum- 



838 WITH READERS AND CORRESPOXDKXTS. [Mar., 

bian Reading Union of New York City. This Union is endeavoring to counter- 
act, wherever prevalent, the indifference shown toward Catholic literature ; to 
suggest ways and means of acquiring a better knowledge of standard authors, 
and especially of our Catholic writers; and to secure a larger representation ot 
their works on the shelves of public libraries. Much judgment is required in 
preparing suitable lists of books for the different tastes of readers. The Union 
arranges guide-lists for the various classes of readers, some fully and others only 
partially educated, male and female, the leisured and the working classes. It has 
been truly said that to allow untrained intellects or unformed tastes to choose for 
themselves, and of themselves, from books gathered without discrimination, is. 
often as fatal and always as dangerous as to allow a child to pluck flowers at will 
in a garden filled with plants healthful and poisonous. JOSEPHUS." 

* 
* * 

We quote another letter of special interest to Catholic young men's societies, 
which have or should have abundant facilities for their members to get good 
reading : 

" It becomes every day more evident that the great need of our time is ta 
create a Catholic atmosphere, in which Catholics may live without detriment 
from those foul, fetid odors of worldly and irreligious thought and association that 
prove the destruction of so* many Christian lives. The indifference of some young 
men, which in too many cases eventually drifts into positive unbelief, is due ta 
various causes. Some even at home are not under the most desirable influences ; 
the associations of many others are not the most commendable ; while large num- 
bers of still another class are without homes, and therefore lose all the advantages 
of direction, training, and example rarely found outside of the domestic circle. 

" It is to these young men that the greatest advantages would accrue from soci- 
eties encouraging mental as well as moral improvement. Books necessarily play 
an important part in these associations. Therefore, what better work could be 
.done than raising the young men to a higher standard of literary culture, break- 
ing the charm which holds them to that which is contemptible, which destroys 
the finest and noblest qualities of the mind, and eradicates from the soul that 
which is good and holy? The Catholic faith of our young men is more precious 
than money ; their moral training is more important than all the gold in the world. 
Give them good literature, cost what it may ; the Catholic faith and morality ot 
young men are more to be esteemed than any other treasure. 

" Young men should be intellectually well equipped to fight against indiffer- 
entism, infidelity, and the many baneful issues which threaten them on all sides. 
Therefore, the possession of a useful library is a thing which every society should 
strive for, as a Catholic library is one of the arsenals containing the best 
accoutrements. 

" With an association like the Columbian Reading Union, proposing, as it 
does, to furnish lists of the books and periodicals with which to furnish libraries, 
and the best methods for their classification, we shall get a calm and judicial 
criticism of books. In these days of much bad writing and wide reading there is 
deep need of exact criticism of current literature and sure guidance of the public 
taste. Literature should soothe and compose the mind, should be its refuge 
from turbulence and care, should be a ministry of peace and refreshment to the 
wearied spirit. Catholics should consider it their duty to contribute their mite to 
this noble undertaking to keep gross sensationalism from the library shelves* 

" Substantial encouragement will lessen the difficulty of keeping off the per- 
nicious literature which strikes at the roots of our young trees in the nursery of 
the church. EDWARD MOUNTEL.'* 

" A'.7 ;//'<?.", Ohio. 



1890.] WITH READERS AND CO-RESPONDENTS. 839, 

. Among competent judges there is but one opinion concerning the Chautauqua 
course of reading, viz.: that it is designed on narrow lines, with a deliberate pur- 
pose to ignore the truth about Catholics in their relations to history, science, art, 
and literature. Some of our correspondents have admitted that they made this 
discovery by painful personal experience. We give here the testimony of another 
intelligent witness bearing on the same point : "I am very much interested in 
this work, and am glad to see Catholics coming to the front in a literary and 
educational way. Through the Pilot and New Record I have learned something 
of the Columbian Reading Union. I am well acquainted with the Chautauqua, 
but its Methodistical characteristics are very offensive to a Catholic. . . ." 

# 
* * 

Secretaries are requested to send a short account, written on one side of the 
paper, of the work attempted and accomplished in their respective Reading 
Circles. From such reports we can gather many useful suggestions for publica- 
tion. Whenever desired these reports will be used anonymously; but we hope 
that no false modesty will deprive us of valuable information. We want to hear 
from all places, even the most remote, the news of Catholic enterprise on behalt 
of good literature. 

M. C. M. 



HISTORY OF A CONVERSION. 

I have been often asked, "What made you a Catholic?" and I answer 
always : The grace of God. Nothing else expresses it. 

I was born in New England among a class of people who had not the faintest 
idea of what the Catholic Church really believes and teaches. They were so 
influenced by their surroundings and early education that nothing short of a 
miracle could have opened their eyes to the truth. That is why I say that the 
grace of God alone made me a Catholic. 

My parents were of the old Puritan order. Originally Calvinistic Baptists, 
they drifted into Methodism, and I was brought up in that faith. From my 
earliest recollection I attended Sunday-school and church. I knew Catholicism 
only as it was represented in the books in circulation among Protestants, for I 
had no Catholic friends, and had never been inside a Catholic church. Yet it 
possessed a most marvellous attraction for me. When a very little girl I used 
to sit upon the Catholic church steps listening to the music, longing, yet fear- 
ing, to enter. For priests and nuns I had a most profound respect, although 
I had been taught that they were unworthy of it. The fact was that / could not 
believe the things I heard against the Catholic Church, and often wished 
that I knew some Catholic personally. It seems almost incredible that so young 
a child should have felt as I did, but I was a veritable book- worm, and books 
are more liberal educators than men and women. 

When I was nine years old my sister's profession forced her to travel. 
My mother accompanied her, and I was placed in a small Methodist boarding- 
school, where for three years I was carefully trained in the religious path it 
was intended I should follow. 

Like the majority of Protestants, I had always been taught that I must ' 
perience a change of heart " in order to be saved a sort of moral earthquake, 
as it were. I was a nervous, impressionable child, and many a sleepless night I 
passed, praying in fear and trembling that I might be saved. Finally, during a 
"revival" in our church, I confided my doubts to the minister. I told him 



WITH READERS AND CORRESPONDENTS. [Mar., 

that I wanted to be a Christian, but not a Methodist. He tried to convince me 
of my error, but finding that impossible, and thinking it was but a childish whim 
which would pass away in time, admitted me to baptism, leaving the question of 
church membership to the future. 

My father, when they told him what I had said, suggested that I should try 
the Episcopal Church, as in his opinion one church was as good as another; it was 
only a question of individual taste. At a later period I reminded him of that re- 
mark, but with no apparent good result. 

Well, I did try to believe the Thirty-nine Articles of faith of the Episcopal 
Church, but in vain, although my sister was then and is now a devout member 
of that church. My little niece rather voiced the family sentiment when she 
asked me a short time ago, " Auntie, when you were going to join a church, 
why did you not join a nice, fashionable church like ours ? " 

One day I had occasion to visit the servant's room in our house. I saw her 
prayer-book on the table. I took it up and glanced at the contents, and I be- 
came so interested that I carried it to my room, where I studied it until I 
knew some of the prayers by heart. I remember particularly the Confiteor and 
the Litany of the Blessed Virgin. The book being missed, there was a search 
for it, and when it was finally discovered in my room I was severely repri- 
manded for my Romish proclivities and was subjected to a long lecture on the 
ignorance, etc., of papists. 

Just at this time my mother decided to send me to a convent. I never 
knew her reasons, but I remember that her fellow church-members were greatly 
shocked. It was bad enough for one daughter to follow a profession, but that 
fact sank into insignificance when they heard that I was to be sent to a Catholic 
convent-school. I am afraid they felt an unholy joy when their predictions were 
fulfilled and I became a Catholic. 

Heretofore I had known nothing of the dogmas of the church, but at the 
convent I studied them, secretly of course, for I was supposed to be a Protestant, 
and religious convictions of the Protestant pupils were respected, and conversa- 
tion with us about religion forbidden. At last I became thoroughly convinced, 
and then I openly avowed myself a Catholic. I was so simple-minded as to think 
my troubles at an end, but in reality they had only begun. When I asked leave 
of my parents to be received into the church, the objection was made and it 
came from all quarters that I was too young to decide upon so serious a matter 
and must wait. . 

I waited. The desire did not pass away, but grew stronger with each year 
of my life. Strange, nay, marvellous to say, I was given the works of Renan, 
Voltaire, and Rousseau to read, but my iaith remained unshaken, and I was final- 
ly received into the church. 

My firmness and my fidelity to conscience cost me family and friends, but I 
have never regretted it. 

It has been said that "he who travels much abroad is seldom holy." I 
hare been a traveller almost all my life. It is indeed more difficult to resist 
temptation when away from the restraining influences of home and friends. But I 
have met many faithful souls who "travel much abroad," and who, like me, if 
they are not holy, at least are 'good Christians. These find their greatest safe- 
guard in the church and in the Catholic offices of religion. The influence of the 
church is such as to make her sanctuaries the homes of all her children, so that 
in every city there is at least one place where we poor wanderers are not 
" strangers in a strange land," but can go for comfort and solace to our Father's 
house. 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 841 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

ILLUSTRATED HISTORY OF ANCIENT LITERATURE, ORIENTAL AND CLASSI- 
CAL. By John D. Quackenbos, A.M., M.D., Adjunct Professor of the 
English Language and Literature, Columbia College. New York : Harper 
Brothers. 

In Professor Ouackenbos's elegantly condensed volume the reading public 
is at last furnished with an authoritative and interesting work on the important 
subjects of which it treats. The aim of the author has been to present a popu- 
lar and attractive account of the literature of ancient nations, and thus to trace 
the history of human thought from the most remote periods. Before taking up 
the finished productions of Greece and Rome, he treats fully of the precious re- 
mains of Oriental literature that have recently been brought to light, dealing in 
turn with the Sanscrit, Persian, Chinese, Hebrew, Chaldean, Assyrian, Arabic, 
Hittite, Phoenician, and Egyptian. These are all considered from the stand- 
point of the most recent investigations, notably the Egyptian writing and litera- 
ture, in connection with which the results of the vast amount of labor expended in 
this important field during the decade just closed are for the first trme pre- 
sented to English readers. 

The many who have become interested in Egypt and her ancient inscrip- 
tions must turn to Professor Quackenbos's history as the only accessible popu- 
lar authority in which their curiosity can be satisfied. After an introductory 
consideration of hieroglyphic decipherment and the principles underlying this 
system of writing, the literature itself is divided into the archaic or dawn period, 
its classical and Augustan era, and its age of decline. Under each venerable writ- 
ings are discussed and translations presented. The Babylonian and Assyrian 
cuneiform remains are similarly treated, and the historical allusions in the 
Word of God are shown in many instances to be wonderfully confirmed. A 
singular correspondence is noticeable between the most ancient forms of belief 
and Christianity in regard to monotheism, immortality, and responsibility to a 
personal God. "A belief in a future life," says the author, " is expressed in 
the poem on the Descent of Istar, the moon-god's daughter, to Hades, ' the 
land where the dead outnumber the living ' ; and further in the so-called Nim- 
rod Epic, in which the hero is ferried across the waters of the dead to the shores 
of the regions of the blessed, where he recognizes an ancestor, and exclaims : 

" ' Thy appearance is not changed ; like me art thou : 
And thou thyself art not changed ; like me art thou.' " 

What is this but resurrection not the mere immortality of the soul, as 
taught by Plato, but the immortality of man, that mysterious union of chas- 
tened soul and resurrection body, as taught by Jesus Christ ? 

As we read the Vedic hymns and the Avesta philosophy, we are carried back 
beyond the age of idolatry to an era of simple faith in one eternal, infinite, and 
omnipotent Being, in .a heaven for the virtuous and a place of torment for the 
wicked ; and we rise from our reading with the feeling that the Divine Wisdom 
has raised up scholars in this material day to vindicate the truth of the Scriptures 
from the pages of profane record, from the facts of history fossilized in the very- 
words we use. 

VOL. L. 54 



'842 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Mar., 

We heartily commend Professor Quackenbos's work to our readers, with the 
conviction that it will be found as entertaining as the average novel and far 
more instructive. The general knowledge it embodies is essential to a polite 
education, and there are few who have the necessary leisure to read^Jbeyond its 
covers. For the convenience of such, however, as may desire full and more sat- 
isfying information, the author has scattered through the text frequent refer- 
ences to standard monographs and this is not the least among the many note- 
worthy features of the book. Illustrations, diagrams, and maps further enhance 
the value of the narrative. We predict for the volume a wide circulation among 
.educators and general readers. 

THE BEGINNINGS OF NEW ENGLAND; OR, THE PURITAN THEOCRACY IN ITS 
RELATIONS TO CIVIL AND RELIGIOUS LIBERTY. By John Fiske. Boston 
and New York : Houghton, M ifflin & Co. 

Mr. Fiske has many excellent qualities as a writer, being clear in style, di- 
rect and concise in statement, and gifted with sufficient imagination to adorn 
the path of history with the flowers of fancy. He is also a conscientious student. 
Although he makes little parade of learning, there is evidence of extended and 
patient research, though his over-frequent posing as "the historian" and " the 
titudent of history" is just a trifle annoying. Nor is he without a philosophical 
judgment of events and eras, races and their missions. His books are a val- 
uable iricrease to our stock of American historical narrative.* It is therefore 
with regret that we feel constrained to find fault with the volume before us. 

We have read it carefully through, and with prepossessions in its favor, and 
we yet must say that the epithet unsatisfactory belongs to its views of the politi- 
cal lessons of early New England history, and that of flippant to its treatment of 
the religious questions involved. Mr. Fiske, as is well known, is an agnostic 
evolutionist ; this history is written with foregone conclusions that all human 
events are but developments from barbarism, and all religious movements are 
advances from superstition towards rationality. 

He is primarily a preacher of evolutionism in its extreme type, and uses 
history as doctors use corpses for dissection; he is not seeking the discovery 
of healthful so much as that of unhealthful signs in the past life of man, for it is 
a corollary of his principle of development that we are freer from moral diseases 
than our forefathers. Can Mr. Fiske deny that what the founders of the New 
England commonwealths knew, they knew as clearly as their descendants? Can 
he affirm that those primary verities of rational life the existence of a Supreme 
Being, the absolute difference between right and wrong, the authority of con- 
science, the certainty of a future state are as well understood to-day in Anglo- 
Saxon IStew England as they were two hundred and fifty years ago? Can he 
affirm that there is as much earnestness of debate, as much sincerity of search, 
about those primary verities of rational life, concerning which the beginners of 
New England were at fault namely, the freedom of the human will and the lov- 
ing-kindness of God among his contemporaries as among their ancestors ? 
Are the children of the beginners equal to their fathers in sincerity, truth- 
fulness, courage, generosity, affection, consistency, honesty, industry, chastity? 
Do they compare with them as men and women ? Do the pilgrim fathers and 
their children, taken together and viewed from that point of high history which 
Mr. Fiske is so fond of claiming as his own, teach evolution from a worse to 
.a better type of humanity? or, rather, do they not teach the very reverse? 
Has modern New England made any better fist of the deep problems of re- 
ligion than old New England, or could the men of to-day found the common- 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 843 

wealths and help to found the great republic which are the enduring monuments 
of their fathers' prowess as men? It is true that they were infected with Calvin- 
ism, the deadliest blight known to modern religious error; but there is nothing 
in their successors to justify one of them in calling his age enlightened in compari- 
son with that of the forefathers, any more than in his calling the beginnings 
of the human race " primeval savagery." 

Another fault we find with Mr. Fiske in this book is his advocacy of a 
series of political theories which are at present in debate among the people, and 
have ever been in debate among us. We say advocacy, but we might better 
say his assumption of them as axiomatic truths of American politics. He talks 
of questions which are those of constitutional interpretation as if his political 
party were the final product of all evolution. This is offensive to his fairer-minded 
readers and injurious to his claim of vocation as a historian. There are other 
assumptions, too, which are at least equally offensive, such as the preposterous 
notion that Cromwell, who was autocrat in England, was an exponent of the 
right of self-government ; that Mazzini and Stein are products of Puritanism, and 
that they are the noblest types of modern European statesmanship ; that Wil- 
liam III., who consented to the torture and execution of Cornelius De Witt 
and broke the treaty of Limerick, and who signed the edict which caused the 
massacre of Glencoe, is a model statesman of a free nation. 

EVOLUTION. Popular Lectures and Discussions before the Brooklyn Ethical 
Association. Boston : James H. West. 

We have in this volume fifteen lectures by thirteen different gentlemen, 
most of them residents of Brooklyn, we believe, and all of them perfervid disci- 
ples of Darwin and Herbert Spencer. The first address is devoted to a briet 
consideration of the life and writings of the latter philosopher, whom Mr. Daniel 
Greenleaf Thompson, as a consistent evolutionist, naturally considers the 
flower and perfection of such intellectual life as has up to date appeared upon 
our planet. As he says, in a cheery and confident manner, which can hardly 
be too much admired, "Without disparaging those really worthy Greeks" 
(Plato and Aristotle), " who would be considered good philosophers, as philoso- 
phers go in our time, and who, it must be remembered, were far better than 
they used to run in earlier days, I do not hesitate to aver that the subject of this 
sketch, for instance, is much greater than either of them. Nor would I say it ot 
him alone, but also of many others who are not as prominent. The general 
level of intellectual power is so far raised in modern times that it is exceedingly 
difficult for any one man to become pre-eminent among his fellows " 

On the whole, the sentence we have italicized seems as clever a way as any for 
expressing the fact that when each man depends for his elevation on the opera- 
tion popularly known as lifting himself by his own waistband no one can ever 
hope to look down from any very lofty height upon his fellows. And that, we 
take it, is about the sum and substance of what atheistic evolution has to offer 
by way of incentive to individual endeavor. These are fortunate times, thinks 
Mr. Thompson: " Carlyle's 'Great Man 'is certainly disappearing from the 
earth, and soon to share the fate of the mastodon and the mammoth." In his 
enthusiasm for this proximate and glorious future Mr. Thompson even forgets 
to observe that the " great man " of the present will fall so far short of the 
attainment of the mammoth and the mastodon that he will not even leave any 
trace of himself for posterity to discover. No real animal, no fossil remains, it is 
reasonable to conclude, even though one adopts evolutionary modes of rea- 
soning. 



844 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Mar., 

It will be regretted by careful and candid evolutionists that some of these 
lecturers should not have better posted themselves on certain points before com- 
mitting their lucubrations to cold type. What would Professor Huxley, for ex- 
ample, have to say to the statement of Mr. William Potts, on page 1 19, that 
" Protoplasm in masses, as discovered at the bottom of the sea by the Challenger 
Expedition, was described by Huxley under the name of Bathybius " ? Al- 
though -each of these addresses was followed by an informal discussion of 
the points made, it does not appear that any of Mr. Potts's audience had later 
information concerning this too famous "find" than himself. It looks as 
though the Brooklyn Ethical Association were largely composed of amateurs, 
who roved indiscriminately from the pews to the pulpit of the church in which the 
lectures were delivered. Mr. James A. Skilton's talk on the " Evolution of So- 
ciety " is about the best-considered of them all, and contains more ideas that 
are fruitful. But generally the purpose of the speakers is so visibly that of ham- 
mering away at the "Mosaic cosmogony," which they appear to regard as a per- 
sonal foe, that they end by becoming tiresome. Mr. Skilton, by the way, differs 
radically from Mr. Thompson in his estimate of the comparative merits of an- 
cient and modern philosophers. According to him, the human intellect 
"reached, so far as we know, its highest elevation something more than two 
thousand years ago among the Greeks, but subsequently lost its position, and 
has not yet regained it." The reason he believes to be that the "so-called 
Christian Church " has put intellect "under a ban and in discredit." Mr. Skil- 
ton, we observe, like others of his lecturing confreres, seems to confound the 
Christian Church and its teachings with Protestantism and its moribund meth- 
ods. He has no quarrel with Christianity as he himself conceives it. We 
may add that Christianity has no necessary quarrel with evolution, when it 
works on lines similar to those taken by Mr. Skilton on p. 224 of this volume. 

AMERICAN STATESMEN. BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. By John F. Morse, Jr., author 
of Life of John Q. Adams, etc. Boston and New York : Houghton, 
Mifflin & Co. 

We have seldom read a more entertaining book than this, which is a por- 
trait of one of the greatest men of modern times. The peculiar value of it is in 
its subject, for Franklin was a " self-made man," and in this age that kind of man 
has much to do with human greatness. They almost monopolize our successful 
business men, and also our scientific inventors, and are fully represented in the 
front ranks of literature and statesmanship. 

One very instructive lesson taught by Franklin's life is learned from the kind 
of religious infidelity he was tainted with. Like very many infidels who have been 
brought up Protestants, Franklin was good-natured, tolerant, and mannerly. 
When, on the other hand, a man passes from Catholicity to infidelity he is gener- 
ally venomous, and this is because he is in bad faith. The same cannot always be 
said of what one may call Protestant infidels, for the implied philosophical prin- 
ciple of Protestantism is the validity of doubt as a universal predicate ; hence 
many honest men have thrown away belief in the supernatural, and even in God, 
because their training as Protestants had engendered a tendency to doubt. 
Hence in men like Franklin and like Lincoln, the vigorous action of their minds 
in early manhood resulted in infidelity ; and this was not venomous or blasphe- 
mous because so largely a matter of misfortune rather than of choice. .As in 
the case of Lincoln, so in that of -Franklin, the riper powers of reason, aided by 
experience and study in human nature, brought the mind back to many of the 
truths of natural and even of revealed religion. 



.1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 845 

The interesting story of Franklin's long and eventful life is well told, indeed 
brilliantly depicted, in these pages. It is to be regretted that Mr. Morse, quite 
unlike his hero, occasionally as on page 26 indulges in a fling at revealed 
religion, and at facts and dogmas which a wider knowledge of human nature 
than he seems to possess, and a deeper insight into the laws of thought, would 
have saved him from. 

FREDERIC OZANAM, PROFESSOR AT THE SORBONNE : His Life and Works. 
By Kathleen O'Meara ; with a preface by his Eminence Cardinal Manning. 
New York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

We have before us a copy of the fourth American edition of this model biogra- 
phy, which is a splendid monument to the intellectual power and literary skill of the 
late Kathleen O'Meara. The book is deserving of the highest praise. We are 
pleased to know that there has been for some time past an urgent demand for a 
new edition. As a specimen of fine printing and excellent binding, this volume 
will bear comparison with the best work of any publisher in the United States. 

We have no hesitation in saying that this life of Frederic Ozanam repre- 
sents accurately an important historical epoch, and for this reason it should 
have a place in every public library. His labors were not for France alone. He 
was an eloquent defender of Christian civilization as applied to the needs of the 
present century. That he had studied profoundly the labor question may be 
seen from his own words : 

'God did not make the poor; he sends no human creatures into- the 
chances of this world without providing them with these two sources of riches, 
which are the fountain of all others intelligence and will. Why should we 
hide from the people what they know, and flatter them like bad kings ? 

" It is human liberty that makes the poor ; it is that which dries up those 
two primitive fountains of wealth, by allowing intelligence to be quenched in 
ignorance and will to be weakened by misconduct. The workingmen know it 
better than we do. God forbid that we should calumniate the poor whom the 
Gospel blesses, or render the suffering classes responsible for their misery; 
thus pandering to the hardness of those bad hearts that fancy themselves ex- 
onerated from helping the poor man when they have proved his wrong-doing. 
While we have put crushing taxes on necessaries of life, we have not yet dis- 
cov'ered in the arsenal of our fiscal laws the secret of arresting the multiplication 
of distilleries, of raising the price of alcoholic liquors, of restricting the sale of 
those detestable, adulterated, poisonous drinks that cause more sickness than all 
the rigors of the seasons, and make more criminals than all the injustice of men 
combined." 

From the intrinsic evidence of his own statements, so carefully set forth by 
Kathleen O'Meara, we are thoroughly convinced that Frederic Ozanam had a 
most profound contempt for effete monarchies and bad kings. We are in- 
formed that some of his nearest and dearest friends were much concerned 
because of his indifference, to say the least, regarding the historic claims of 
certain royal families. 

FLOWERS FROM THE CATHOLIC KINDERGARTEN; OR, STORIES OF THE 
CHILDHOOD OF THE SAINTS. By Father Franz Hattler, S.J. Translated 
from the German by T. J. Livesey. London : Burns & Gates ; New 
York : The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

This charmin? little book will find a ready welcome from our children. If 



846 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Mar., 

the joy and innocence of childhood touch the most tender chords of the heart, 
how much greater the response when, as in this little book, the childhood of 
some of God's greatest saints is so beautifully, so delicately portrayed. The 
book is, indeed, "em Kindergarten," a "garden of children," sweet buds of 
happy childhood that blossomed into virtuous youth, to ripen and flower, at 
last, into perfect men and women. 

These flowers of saintly childhood have been transplanted into pure and 
simple English, and have in this an added charm for all who are lovers of chil- 
dren. It would make a beautiful present to the little ones. 

GOOD THINGS FOR CATHOLIC READERS. A Miscellany of Catholic Biogra- 
phy, Travel, etc. Profusely Illustrated. Second Series. New York: 
The Catholic Publication Society Co. 

The very great favor with which our Catholic reading public received the 
first series of Good Things induces the publishers to issue this second series, 
which is in all respects the equal and in many qualities the superior of its prede- 
cessor. It is not a mere reprint of the well-known Catholic Annual, for while 
there are many articles in the volume of a popular character, there is much be- 
sides that will prove of lasting value to the student, and especially the student 
of Catholic Church history in the United States. In this respect the book is a 
veritable store-house of information, especially in the biographical sketches,, 
which contain much that is otherwise inaccessible to the general reader. 

The book is well bound, printed, and illustrated. 

MANUAL FOR INTERIOR SOULS. A Collection of Unpublished Writings by 
the Rev. Father Grou, S.J. Translated by permission from the new edi- 
tion of Victor Lecoffre, Paris. London : St. Anselm's Society. (For sale 
by the Catholic Publication Society Co., New York.)- 

This book begins with a short account of the author's life, and consists of 
sixty-three short treatises on ascetical and mystical subjects. It is a work of 
much value to all who desire to serve God faithfully, whether living in the world 
or in communities. It is one of those works which may be used for years with 
steady profit, the style being clear and full of unction, and the matter chosen by 
a master of the spiritual life. It is true that it is characterized by that detailed 
and methodical minuteness peculiar to the school of the writer ; but this is 
absolutely necessary for many souls, and others can readily abstract from this 
peculiarity and grasp the able and powerful presentment of the maxims of the 
Gospel applied to the way of perfection. 

A specially instructive and really entertaining chapter is the author's ingen- 
ious treatment of selfishness under the heading " On the Human 'I.'" 

BOOKS AND READING. By Brother Azarias. Second Edition. New York : 
The Cathedral Library, 460 Madison Avenue. 

The second edition of this admirable essay of Brother Azarias makes the 
rather well-worn quotation from Addison's Cato particularly apt : 

" 'Tis not in mortals to command success, 
But we'll do more, Sempronius ; we'll deserve it." 

It is not many months since the first edition was noticed at length in these 
pages, but, though it is not our purpose here to again point out its many good 
qualities, we think it just to regard this early second edition as the sign of 



1890.] NEW PUBLICATIONS. 847 

changed and better times. It is at once a testimony of the value of the pam- 
phlet and an indication of the awakened interest of our people in the cultivation 
of literary good taste and judgment. May this interest abide ! In press- 
work and binding this little pamphlet is a beautiful specimen of the book- 
maker's art, and is highly creditable to the publisher. 

THE EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. By Rev. Prof. G. G. Findlay, B.A., 
Headingly College, Leeds. New York: A. C. Armstrong & Son. 

It is amusing to read a book which, like this one, sets forth the conspicuously 
Catholic doctrine of grace and justification, and yet now and then rails against 
the church in truly old-fashioned style. We have read this commentary with 
some care and fail to find any notable divergence from Catholic truth in its ex- 
position of St. Paul's teaching of the union of the soul and the Holy Ghost, in 
the conflict between flesh and spirit. The exposition of the gifts of the Holy 
Ghost_is really luminous. The author even adopts the traditional Catholic view 
of the difference between the Apostles Peter and Paul at Antioch. Accepting, 
unconsciously, we suppose, what Luther and the typical Protestant commenta- 
tors so hotly rejected, the author's flings at the church are very hard to under- 
stand. 

Deep exegetical learning, full knowledge of the linguistic kind, a true 
spirit of reverence, a thorough belief in our Lord's divinity, an orthodox view of 
the doctrine of grace, are the good qualities of this work, and its only evil one 
is injustice to the author's " Roman Catholic brethren." 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Mention of books in this place does not preclude extended notice in subsequent numbers. 
DIARY OF THE PARNELL COMMISSION. Revised from The Daily News. By John MacDon- 

ald, M.A. London : T. Fisher Unwin. (For sale by the Catholic Publication Society Co., 

New York.) 
THE FOLLOWING OF CHRIST. In four books. By Thomas a Kempis. Translated from the 

original Latin, with practical reflections and prayers. A new edition. Philadelphia: H. 

L. Kilner & Co. 
LIFE OF DOM Bosco, founder of the Salesian Society. Translated from the French of 

J. M. Villefranche by Lady Martin. London: Burns & Oates, Limited; New York: 

Catholic Publication Society Co. 
SHOULD CHRISTIANITY LEAVEN EDUCATION? Christian Schools. Addressed to parents. 

By Thomas J. Jenkins, author of Six Seasons on our Prairies. Baltimore : John Murphy 

& Co. 
THE DEVELOPMENT OF OLD ENGLISH THOUGHT. By Brother Azarias, of the Brothers ct 

the Christian Schools. Third edition. New York: D. Appleton & Co. 
ISABELLA OF CASTILE, 1492-1892. By Eliza Allen Starr. Chicago : C. V. Waite & Co. 
BULLETIN OF THE AGRICULTURAL EXPERIMENT STATION, BOTANICAL DEPARTMENT OF 

CORNELL UNIVERSITY. XIV. December, 1889. I. On the Strawberry-Leaf Blight. 

II. On another Disease of the Strawberry. Ithaca, N. Y. : Published by the University. 
SANITARY ENTOMBMENT ; THE IDEAL DISPOSITION OF THE DEAD. By the Rev. Charles 

R. Treat, Rector of the Church of the Archangel, New York City. Reprinted from The 

Sanitarian, December, 1889. 
VEN. P. LUDOVICI DE PON IE, SJ. MEDITATIONES de Praecipius Fidei Nostree Mysteriis, 

de Hispanico in Latinum translatae a Melchiore Trevinnio, S.J. ; de novo editae cura 

Augustini Lehmkuhl, S.J. Pars III. Complectens vitam Christi publicam ab ejus 

Baptismo usque ad passionem. Friburgi-Brisgovise : Herder (Herder, St. Louis, Mo.) 



848 NEW PUBLICATIONS. [Mar., 1890, 

Fin. SCIENCE OF METROLOGY ; OR, NATURAL WEIGHTS AND MEASURES. A challenge to 
the Metric System. By the Hon. E. Noel, Captain Rifle Brigade. London : Edward 
Stanford. 

LES OKIGINES DE LA REVOLUTION FRANCAISE AU COMMENCEMENT in; XVI. SIECLE. 
La Veille de la ReTorme. Par R. Maulde-la-Claviere. Paris : Ernest Leroux. 

SOUVENIR OF THE CONSECRATION OF ST. BRIGID'S CHURCH, NEW YORK. By an assistant 
Priest of the parish. 

THE LIGHT OF REASON. By Sebastian S. Wynell-Mayow, author of Notes on Astronomy, 
etc. London: Kegan Paul, Trench & Co. 

VIA CRUCIS; OR, THE WAY OF THE CROSS. With prayers translated from those composed 
by St. Alphonsus Liguon. Philadelphia : H. L. Kilner & Co. 

Lux VERA. Par un Laic Ame"ricain. Paris: Victor Palme. (New York: For sale by F. 
W. Christern, 254 Fifth Avenue.) 

THE ELEMENTS OF ASTRONOMY. A text book for use in High Schools and Academies. With 
an Uranography. By Charles A. Young, Ph.D., LL.D., Professor of Astronomy in 
the College of New Jersey (Princeton), etc. Boston and London : Ginn & Co. 

DEUS Lux MEA. Solemnities of the Dedication and opening of the Catholic University ot 
America, November 13, 1889. Official Report. Baltimore : John Murphy & Co. 

SERMON ON ST. AGNES. Preached in St. Agnes' Church, New York, January 26, 1890. By 
Rev. Henry A. Brann, D.D. New York : D. P. Murphy, Jr. 

THE IRISH UNIVERSITY QUESTION. Addresses delivered by the Most Rev. Dr. Walsh, Arch- 
bishop of Dublin, at the Catholic University School of Medicine, November 7, 1889, 
and at Blackrock College, December 5, 1889. Dublin : M. H. Gill & Son. 

MISSION WORK AMONG THE NEGROES AND INDIANS. Baltimore : The Sun office. 

THE HISTORY OF SLIGO, TOWN AND COUNTY. By Rev. T. O'Rorke, D.D., M.R.I. A. In 
two volumes. Dublin : James Duffy & Co. 

CENTENARY EDITION OF THE WORKS OF ST. ALPHONSUS DE LIGUORI, DOCTOR OF THE 
CHURCH. Volume XV. Preaching the Word of God. Edited by Rev. Eugene Grimm, 
C.SS.R. New York, Cincinnati, and Chicago: Benziger Bros. 

THE GROWTH OF THE MARRIAGE RELATION. By C. Staniland Wake, author of Evolu- 
tion and Morality, etc. Boston : James H. West. 

PRIMITIVE MAN. By Z. Sidney Sampson, author of The Evolution of Theology. Boston: 
James H. West. 

Miss PEGGY O'DlLLON; OR, THE IRISH CRITIC. By Viola Walda. Dublin: M. H. Gill 
& Son. 

IMAGO CHRISTI : THE EXAMPLE OF JESUS CHRIST. By Rev. James Stalker, M.A. Intro- 
duction by Rev. Wm. M. Taylor, D.D., LL.D. New York: A. C.Armstrong & Son. 

THE UNKNOWN GOD ; OR, INSPIRATION AMONG THE PRE-CHRISTIAN RACES. By C. 
Loring Brace. New York : A C. Armstrong & Son. 



AP 
2 

03 
v.50 



The Catholic world 



PLEASE DO NOT REMOVE 
CARDS OR SLIPS FROM THIS POCKET 



UNIVERSITY OF TORONTO LIBRARY